summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
path: root/old
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
Diffstat (limited to 'old')
-rw-r--r--old/cslrc10.txt.2002091823005
-rw-r--r--old/cslrc10.txt.2008102722742
-rw-r--r--old/cslrc10.zip.20020918bin0 -> 419917 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/cslrc10.zip.20081027bin0 -> 428605 bytes
4 files changed, 45747 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/old/cslrc10.txt.20020918 b/old/cslrc10.txt.20020918
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..3072808
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/cslrc10.txt.20020918
@@ -0,0 +1,23005 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of Castle Richmond, by Anthony Trollope
+#39 in our series by Anthony Trollope
+
+Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
+copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing
+this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook.
+
+This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project
+Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the
+header without written permission.
+
+Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the
+eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is
+important information about your specific rights and restrictions in
+how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a
+donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved.
+
+
+**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
+
+**eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
+
+*****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****
+
+
+Title: Castle Richmond
+
+Author: Anthony Trollope
+
+Release Date: June, 2004 [EBook #5897]
+[Yes, we are more than one year ahead of schedule]
+[This file was first posted on September 18, 2002]
+
+Edition: 10
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CASTLE RICHMOND ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Charles Aldarondo, Charles Franks
+and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team
+
+
+
+
+
+CASTLE RICHMOND
+
+BY
+
+ANTHONY TROLLOPE
+
+WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY ALGAR THOROLD
+
+LONDON & NEW YORK: MCMVI
+
+
+
+
+
+
+INTRODUCTION
+
+
+
+
+
+"Castle Richmond" was written in 1861, long after Trollope had left
+Ireland. The characterization is weak, and the plot, although the
+author himself thought well of it, mechanical.
+
+The value of the story is rather documentary than literary. It
+contains several graphic scenes descriptive of the great Irish
+famine. Trollope observed carefully, and on the whole impartially,
+though his powers of discrimination were not quite fine enough to
+make him an ideal annalist.
+
+Still, such as they were, he has used them here with no
+inconsiderable effect. His desire to be fair has led him to lay
+stress in an inverse ratio to his prepossessions, and his Priest is
+a better man than his parson.
+
+The best, indeed the only piece of real characterization in the book
+is the delineation of Abe Mollett. This unscrupulous blackmailer is
+put before us with real art, with something of the loving
+preoccupation of the hunter for his quarry. Trollope loved a rogue,
+and in his long portrait gallery there are several really charming
+ones. He did not, indeed, perceive the aesthetic value of sin--he
+did not perceive the esthetic value of anything,--and his analysis
+of human nature was not profound enough to reach the conception of
+sin, crime being to him the nadir of downward possibility--but he had a
+professional, a sort of half Scotland Yard, half master of hounds
+interest in a criminal. "See," he would muse, "how cunningly the
+creature works, now back to his earth, anon stealing an unsuspected
+run across country, the clever rascal"; and his ethical disapproval
+ever, as usual, with English critics of life, in the foreground,
+clearly enhanced a primitive predatory instinct not obscurely akin,
+a cynic might say, to those dark impulses he holds up to our
+reprobation. This self-realization in his fiction is one of
+Trollope's principal charms. Never was there a more subjective
+writer. Unlike Flaubert, who laid down the canon that the author
+should exist in his work as God in creation, to be, here or there,
+dimly divined but never recognized, though everywhere latent,
+Trollope was never weary of writing himself large in every man,
+woman, or child he described.
+
+The illusion of objectivity which he so successfully achieves is due
+to the fact that his mind was so perfectly contented with its
+hereditary and circumstantial conditions, was itself so perfectly
+the mental equivalent of those conditions. Thus the perfection of
+his egotism, tight as a drum, saved him. Had it been a little less
+complete, he would have faltered and bungled; as it was, he had the
+naive certainty of a child, to whose innocent apprehension the world
+and self are one, and who therefore I cannot err.
+
+ALGAR THOROLD.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+
+
+
+
+I. The Barony of Desmond
+
+II. Owen Fitzgerald
+
+III. Clara Desmond
+
+IV. The Countess
+
+V. The Fitzgeralds of Castle Richmond
+
+VI. The Kanturk Hotel, South Main Street, Cork
+
+VII. The Famine Year
+
+VIII. Gortnaclough and Berryhill
+
+IX. Family Councils
+
+X. The Rector of Drumbarrow and his Wife
+
+XI. Second Love
+
+XII. Doubts
+
+XIII. Mr. Mollett returns to South Main Street
+
+XIV. The Rejected Suitor
+
+XV. Diplomacy
+
+XVI. The Path beneath the Elms
+
+XVII. Father Barney
+
+XVIII. The Relief Committee
+
+XIX. The Friend of the Family
+
+XX. Two Witnesses
+
+XXI. Fair Arguments
+
+XXII. The Telling of the Tale
+
+XXIII. Before Breakfast at Hap House
+
+XXIV. After Breakfast at Hap House
+
+XXV. A Muddy Walk on a Wet Morning
+
+XXVI. Comfortless
+
+XXVII. Comforted
+
+XXVIII. For a' that and a' that
+
+XXIX. Ill News flies Fast
+
+XXX. Pallida Mors
+
+XXXI. The First Month
+
+XXXII. Preparations for Going
+
+XXXIII. The Last Stage
+
+XXXIV. Farewell
+
+XXXV. Herbert Fitzgerald in London
+
+XXXVI. How the Earl was won
+
+XXXVII. A Tale of a Turbot
+
+XXXVIII. Condemned
+
+XXXIX. Fox-hunting in Spinny Lane
+
+XL. The Fox in his Earth
+
+XLI. The Lobby of the House of Commons
+
+XLII. Another Journey
+
+XLIII. Playing Rounders
+
+XLIV. Conclusion
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+THE BARONY OF DESMOND
+
+
+
+
+
+I wonder whether the novel-reading world--that part of it, at
+least, which may honour my pages-will be offended if I lay the plot
+of this story in Ireland! That there is a strong feeling against
+things Irish it is impossible to deny. Irish servants need not
+apply; Irish acquaintances are treated with limited confidence;
+Irish cousins are regarded as being decidedly dangerous; and Irish
+stories are not popular with the booksellers.
+
+For myself, I may say that if I ought to know anything about any
+place, I ought to know something about Ireland; and I do strongly
+protest against the injustice of the above conclusions. Irish
+cousins I have none. Irish acquaintances I have by dozens; and Irish
+friends, also, by twos and threes, whom I can love and
+cherish--almost as well, perhaps, as though they had been born in
+Middlesex. Irish servants I have had some in my house for years, and
+never had one that was faithless, dishonest, or intemperate. I have
+travelled all over Ireland, closely as few other men can have done,
+and have never had my portmanteau robbed or my pocket picked. At
+hotels I have seldom locked up my belongings, and my carelessness
+has never been punished. I doubt whether as much can be said for
+English inns.
+
+Irish novels were once popular enough. But there is a fashion in
+novels, as there is in colours and petticoats; and now I fear they
+are drugs in the market. It is hard to say why a good story should
+not have a fair chance of success whatever may be its bent; why it
+should not be reckoned to be good by its own intrinsic merits alone;
+but such is by no means the case. I was waiting once, when I was
+young at the work, in the back parlour of an eminent publisher,
+hoping to see his eminence on a small matter of business touching a
+three--volumed manuscript which I held in my hand. The eminent
+publisher, having probably larger fish to fry, could not see me, but
+sent his clerk or foreman to arrange the business.
+
+"A novel, is it, sir?" said the foreman.
+
+"Yes," I answered; "a novel."
+
+"It depends very much on the subject," said the foreman, with a
+thoughtful and judicious frown--"upon the name, sir, and the
+subject;--daily life, sir; that's what suits us; daily English
+life. Now, your historical novel, sir. is not worth the paper it's
+written on."
+
+I fear that Irish character is in these days considered almost as
+unattractive as historical incident; but, nevertheless, I will make
+the attempt. I am now leaving the Green Isle and my old friends, and
+would fain say a word of them as I do so. If I do not say that word
+now it will never be said.
+
+The readability of a story should depend, one would say, on its
+intrinsic merit rather than on the site of its adventures. No one
+will think that Hampshire is better for such a purpose than
+Cumberland, or Essex than Leicestershire. What abstract objection
+can there then be to the county Cork?
+
+Perhaps the most interesting, and certainly the most beautiful part
+of Ireland is that which lies down in the extreme south-west, with
+fingers stretching far out into the Atlantic Ocean. This consists of
+the counties Cork and Kerry, or a portion, rather, of those
+counties. It contains Killarney, Glengarriffe, Bantry, and
+Inchigeela; and is watered by the Lee, the Blackwater, and the
+Flesk. I know not where is to be found a land more rich in all that
+constitutes the loveliness of scenery.
+
+Within this district, but hardly within that portion of it which is
+most attractive to tourists, is situated the house and domain of
+Castle Richmond. The river Blackwater rises in the county Kerry, and
+running from west to east through the northern part of the county
+Cork, enters the county Waterford beyond Fermoy. In its course it
+passes near the little town of Kanturk, and through the town of
+Mallow: Castle Richmond stands close upon its banks, within the
+barony of Desmond, and in that Kanturk region through which the
+Mallow and Killarney railway now passes, but which some thirteen
+years since knew nothing of the navvy's spade, or even of the
+engineer's theodolite.
+
+Castle Richmond was at this period the abode of Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald, who resided there, ever and always, with his wife, Lady
+Fitzgerald, his two daughters, Mary and Emmeline Fitzgerald, and, as
+often as purposes of education and pleasure suited, with his son
+Herbert Fitzgerald. Neither Sir Thomas nor Sir Thomas's house had
+about them any of those interesting picturesque faults which are so
+generally attributed to Irish landlords, and Irish castles. He was
+not out of elbows, nor was he an absentee Castle Richmond had no
+appearance of having been thrown out of its own windows. It was a
+good, substantial, modern family residence, built not more than
+thirty years since by the late baronet, with a lawn sloping down to
+the river, with kitchen gardens and walls for fruit, with ample
+stables, and a clock over the entrance to the stable yard. It stood
+in a well timbered park duly stocked with deer,--and with foxes
+also, which are agricultural animals much more valuable in an Irish
+county than deer. So that as regards its appearance Castle Richmond
+might have been in Hampshire or Essex, and as regards his property,
+Sir Thomas Fitzgerald might have been a Leicestershire baronet.
+
+Here, at Castle Richmond, lived Sir Thomas with his wife and
+daughters, and here, taking the period of our story as being exactly
+thirteen years since, his son Herbert was staying also in those hard
+winter months, his Oxford degree having been taken, and his English
+pursuits admitting of a temporary sojourn in Ireland.
+
+But Sir Thomas Fitzgerald was not the great man of that part of the
+country--at least, not the greatest man; nor was Lady Fitzgerald by
+any means the greatest lady. As this greatest lady, and the greatest
+man also, will, with their belongings, be among the most prominent
+of our dramatis personae, it may be well that I should not even say
+a word of them.
+
+All the world must have heard of Desmond Court. It is the largest
+inhabited residence known in that part of the world, where rumours
+are afloat of how it covers ten acres of ground; how in hewing the
+stones for it a whole mountain was cut away; how it should have cost
+hundreds of thousands of pounds, only that the money was never paid
+by the rapacious, wicked, bloodthirsty old earl who caused it to be
+erected;--and how the cement was thickened with human blood. So
+goes rumour with the more romantic of the Celtic tale-bearers.
+
+It is a huge place--huge, ungainly, and uselessly extensive; built
+at a time when, at any rate in Ireland, men considered neither
+beauty, aptitude, nor economy. It is three stories high, and stands
+round a quadrangle, in which there are two entrances opposite to
+each other. Nothing can be well uglier than that great paved court,
+in which there is not a spot of anything green, except where the
+damp has produced an unwholesome growth upon the stones; nothing can
+well be more desolate. And on the outside of the building matters
+are not much better. There are no gardens close up to the house, no
+flower-beds in the nooks and corners, no sweet shrubs peeping in at
+the square windows. Gardens there are, but they are away, half a
+mile off; and the great hall door opens out upon a flat, bleak park,
+with hardly a scrap around it which courtesy can call a lawn.
+
+Here, at this period of ours, lived Clara, Countess of Desmond,
+widow of Patrick, once Earl of Desmond, and father of Patrick, now
+Earl of Desmond. These Desmonds had once been mighty men in their
+country, ruling the people around them as serfs, and ruling them
+with hot iron rods. But those days were now long gone, and tradition
+told little of them that was true. How it had truly fared either
+with the earl, or with their serfs, men did not well know; but
+stories were ever being told of walls built with human blood, and of
+the devil bearing off upon his shoulder a certain earl who was in
+any other way quite unbearable, and depositing some small unburnt
+portion of his remains fathoms deep below the soil in an old burying
+ground near Kanturk. And there had been a good earl, as is always
+the case with such families; but even his virtues, according to
+tradition, had been of a useless namby-pamby sort. He had walked to
+the shrine of St. Finbar, up in the little island of the Gougane
+Barra, with unboiled peas in his shoes; had forgiven his tenants
+five years' rent all round, and never drank wine or washed himself
+after the death of his lady wife.
+
+At the present moment the Desmonds were not so potent either for
+good or ill. The late earl had chosen to live in London all his
+life, and had sunk down to be the toadying friend, or perhaps I
+should more properly say the bullied flunky, of a sensual,
+wine-bibbing, gluttonous----king. Late in life when he was broken in
+means and character, he had married. The lady of his choice had been
+chosen as an heiress; but there had been some slip between that cup
+of fortune and his lip; and she, proud and beautiful, for such she
+had been--had neither relieved nor softened the poverty of her
+profligate old lord.
+
+She was left at his death with two children, of whom the eldest,
+Lady Clara Desmond, will be the heroine of this story. The youngest,
+Patrick, now Earl of Desmond, was two years younger than his sister,
+and will make our acquaintance as a lad fresh from Eton.
+
+In these days money was not plentiful with the Desmonds. Not but
+that their estates were as wide almost as their renown, and that the
+Desmonds were still great people in the country's estimation.
+Desmond Court stood in a bleak, unadorned region, almost among the
+mountains, halfway between Kanturk and Maccoom, and the family had
+some claim to possession of the land for miles around. The earl of
+the day was still the head landlord of a huge district extending
+over the whole barony of Desmond, and half the adjacent baronies of
+Muskerry and Duhallow; but the head landlord's rent in many cases
+hardly amounted to sixpence an acre, and even those sixpences did
+not always find their way into the earl's pocket. When the late earl
+had attained his sceptre, he might probably have been entitled to
+spend some ten thousand a-year; but when he died, and during the
+years just previous to that, he had hardly been entitled to spend
+anything.
+
+But, nevertheless, the Desmonds were great people, and owned a great
+name. They had been kings once over those wild mountains; and would
+be still, some said, if every one had his own. Their grandeur was
+shown by the prevalence of their name. The barony in which they
+lived was the barony of Desmond. The river which gave water to their
+cattle was the river Desmond. The wretched, ragged, poverty-stricken
+village near their own dismantled gate was the town of Desmond. The
+earl was Earl of Desmond--not Earl Desmond, mark you; and the family
+name was Desmond. The grandfather of the present earl, who had
+repaired his fortune by selling himself at the time of the Union,
+had been Desmond Desmond, Earl of Desmond.
+
+The late earl, the friend of the most illustrious person in the
+kingdom, had not been utterly able to rob his heir of everything, or
+he would undoubtedly have done so. At the age of twenty-one the
+young earl would come into possession of the property, damaged
+certainly, as far as an actively evil father could damage it by long
+leases, bad management, lack of outlay, and rack renting;--but still
+into the possession of a considerable property. In the mean time it
+did not fare very well, in a pecuniary way, with Clara, the widowed
+countess, or with the Lady Clara, her daughter. The means at the
+widow's disposal were only those which the family trustees would
+allow her as the earl's mother: on his coming of age she would have
+almost no means of her own; and for her daughter no provision
+whatever had been made.
+
+As this first chapter is devoted wholly to the locale of my story, I
+will not stop to say a word as to the persons or characters of
+either of these two ladies, leaving them, as I did the Castle
+Richmond family, to come forth upon the canvas as opportunity may
+offer. But there is another homestead in this same barony of
+Desmond, of which and of its owner--as being its owner--I will say a
+word.
+
+Hap House was also the property of a Fitzgerald. It had originally
+been built by an old Sir Simon Fitzgerald, for the use and behoof of
+a second son, and the present owner of it was the grandson of that
+man for whom it had been built. And old Sir Simon had given his
+offspring not only a house--he had endowed the house with a
+comfortable little slice of land, either out from the large
+patrimonial loaf, or else, as was more probable, collected together
+and separately baked for this younger branch of the family. Be that
+as it may, Hap House had of late years been always regarded as
+conferring some seven or eight hundred a-year upon its possessor,
+and when young Owen Fitzgerald succeeded to this property, on the
+death of an uncle in the year 1843, he was regarded as a rich man to
+that extent.
+
+At that time he was some twenty-two years of age, and he came down
+from Dublin, where his friends had intended that he should practise
+as a barrister, to set up for himself as a country gentleman. Hap
+House was distant from Castle Richmond about four miles, standing
+also on the river Blackwater, but nearer to Mallow. It was a
+pleasant, comfortable residence, too large no doubt for such a
+property, as is so often the case in Ireland; surrounded by pleasant
+grounds and pleasant gardens, with a gorse fox covert belonging to
+the place within a mile of it, with a slated lodge, and a pretty
+drive along the river. At the age of twenty-two, Owen Fitzgerald
+came into all this; and as he at once resided upon the place, he
+came in also for the good graces of all the mothers with unmarried
+daughters in the county, and for the smiles also of many of the
+daughters themselves.
+
+Sir Thomas and Lady Fitzgerald were not his uncle and aunt, but
+nevertheless they took kindly to him;--very kindly at first, though
+that kindness after a while became less warm. He was the nearest
+relation of the name; and should anything happen--as the fatal
+death-foretelling phrase goes--to young Herbert Fitzgerald, he
+would become the heir of the family title and of the family place.
+
+When I hear of a young man sitting down by himself as the master of
+a household, without a wife, or even without a mother or sister to
+guide him, I always anticipate danger. If he does not go astray in
+any other way, he will probably mismanage his money matters. And
+then there are so many other ways. A house, if it be not made
+pleasant by domestic pleasant things, must be made pleasant by
+pleasure. And a bachelor's pleasures in his own house are always
+dangerous. Thre is too much wine drunk at his dinner parties. His
+guests sit too long over their cards. The servants know that they
+want a mistress; and, in the absence of that mistress, the language
+of the household becomes loud and harsh--and sometimes improper.
+Young men among us seldom go quite straight in their course, unless
+they are, at any rate occasionally, brought under the influence of
+tea and small talk.
+
+There was no tea and small talk at Hap House, but there were
+hunting-dinners. Owen Fitzgerald was soon known for his horses and
+his riding. He lived in the very centre of the Duhallow hunt; and
+before he had been six months owner of his property had built
+additional stables, with half a dozen loose boxes for his friends'
+nags. He had an eye, too, for a pretty girl--not always in the way
+that is approved of by mothers with marriageable daughters; but in
+the way of which they so decidedly disapprove.
+
+And thus old ladies began to say bad things. Those pleasant
+hunting-dinners were spoken of as the Hap House orgies. It was
+declared that men slept there half the day, having played cards all
+the night; and dreadful tales were told. Of these tales one-half was
+doubtless false. But, alas, alas! what if one-half were also true?
+
+It is undoubtedly a very dangerous thing for a young man of
+twenty-two to keep house by himself, either in town or country.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+OWEN FITZGERALD
+
+
+
+
+
+I have tied myself down to thirteen years ago as the time of my
+story; but I must go back a little beyond this for its first scenes,
+and work my way up as quickly as may be to the period indicated. I
+have spoken of a winter in which Herbert Fitzgerald was at home at
+Castle Richmond, having then completed his Oxford doings; but I must
+say something of two years previous to that, of a time when Herbert
+was not so well known in the country as was his cousin of Hap House.
+
+It was a thousand pities that a bad word should ever have been
+spoken of Owen Fitzgerald; ten thousand pities that he should ever
+have given occasion for such bad word. He was a fine, high-spirited,
+handsome fellow, with a loving heart within his breast, and bright
+thoughts within his brain. It was utterly wrong that a man
+constituted as he was should commence life by living alone in a
+large country-house. But those who spoke ill of him should have
+remembered that this was his misfortune rather than his fault. Some
+greater endeavour might perhaps have been made to rescue him from
+evil ways. Very little such endeavour was made at all. Sir Thomas
+once or twice spoke to him; but Sir Thomas was not an energetic man;
+and as for Lady Fitzgerald, though she was in many things all that
+was excellent, she was far too diffident to attempt the reformation
+of a headstrong young man, who after all was only distantly
+connected with her.
+
+And thus there was no such attempt, and poor Owen became the subject
+of ill report without any substantial effort having been made to
+save him. He was a very handsome man--tall, being somewhat over six
+feet in height--athletic, almost more than in proportion--with
+short, light chestnut-tinted hair, blue eyes, and a mouth perfect as
+that of Phoebus. He was clever, too, though perhaps not educated as
+carefully as might have been: his speech was usually rapid, hearty,
+and short, and not seldom caustic and pointed. Had he fallen among
+good hands, he might have done very well in the world's fight; but
+with such a character, and lacking such advantages, it was quite as
+open to him to do ill. Alas! the latter chance seemed to have fallen
+to him.
+
+For the first year of his residence at Hap House, he was popular
+enough among his neighbours. The Hap House orgies were not commenced
+at once, nor when commenced did they immediately become a subject of
+scandal; and even during the second year he was
+tolerated;--tolerated by all, and still flattered by some.
+
+Among the different houses in the country at which he had become
+intimate was that of the Countess of Desmond. The Countess of
+Desmond did not receive much company at Desmond Court. She had not
+the means, nor perhaps the will, to fill the huge old house with
+parties of her Irish neighbours--for she herself was English to the
+backbone. Ladies of course made morning calls, and gentlemen too,
+occasionally; but society at Desmond Court was for some years pretty
+much confined to this cold formal mode of visiting. Owen Fitzgerald,
+however, did obtain admittance into the precincts of the Desmond
+barracks.
+
+He went there first with the young earl, who, then quite a boy, had
+had an ugly tumble from his pony in the hunting-field. The countess
+had expressed herself as very grateful for young Fitzgerald's care,
+and thus an intimacy had sprung up. Owen had gone there once or
+twice to see the lad, and on those occasions had dined there; and on
+one occasion, at the young earl's urgent request, had stayed and
+slept.
+
+And then the good-natured people of Muskerry, Duhallow, and Desmond
+began, of course, to say that the widow was going to marry the young
+man. And why not? she was still a beautiful woman; not yet forty by
+a good deal, said the few who took her part; or at any rate, not
+much over, as was admitted by the many who condemned her. We, who
+have been admitted to her secrets, know that she was then in truth
+only thirty-eight. She was beautiful, proud, and clever; and if it
+would suit her to marry a handsome young fellow with a good house
+and an unembarrassed income of eight hundred a-year, why should she
+not do so? As for him, would it not be a great thing for him to have
+a countess for his wife, and an earl for his stepson?
+
+What ideas the countess had on this subject we will not just now
+trouble ourselves to inquire. But as to young Owen Fitzgerald, we
+may declare at once that no thought of such a wretched alliance ever
+entered his head. He was sinful in many things, and foolish in many
+things. But he had not that vile sin, that unmanly folly, which
+would have made a marriage with a widowed countess eligible in his
+eyes, merely because she was a countess, and not more than fifteen
+years his senior. In a matter of love he would as soon have thought
+of paying his devotions to his far-away cousin, old Miss Barbara
+Beamish, of Ballyclahassan, of whom it was said that she had set her
+cap at every unmarried man that had come into the west riding of the
+county for the last forty years. No; it may at any rate be said of
+Owen Fitzgerald, that he was not the man to make up to a widowed
+countess for the sake of the reflected glitter which might fall on
+him from her coronet.
+
+But the Countess of Desmond was not the only lady at Desmond Court.
+I have before said that she had a daughter, the Lady Clara, the
+heroine of this coming story; and it may be now right that I should
+attempt some short description of her; her virtues and faults, her
+merits and defects. It shall be very short; for let an author
+describe as he will, he cannot by such course paint the characters
+of his personages on the minds of his readers. It is by gradual,
+earnest efforts that this must be done--if it be done. Ten, nay,
+twenty pages of the finest descriptive writing that ever fell from
+the pen of a novelist will not do it.
+
+Clara Desmond, when young Fitzgerald first saw her, had hardly
+attained that incipient stage of womanhood which justifies a mother
+in taking her out into the gaieties of the world. She was then only
+sixteen; and had not in her manner and appearance so much of the
+woman as is the case with many girls of that age. She was shy and
+diffident in manner, thin and tall in person. If I were to say that
+she was angular and bony, I should disgust my readers, who,
+disliking the term, would not stop to consider how many sweetest
+girls are at that age truly subject to those epithets. Their
+undeveloped but active limbs are long and fleshless, the contour of
+their face is the same, their elbows and shoulders are pointed,
+their feet and hands seem to possess length without breadth. Birth
+and breeding have given them the frame of beauty, to which coming
+years will add the soft roundness of form, and the rich glory of
+colour. The plump, rosy girl of fourteen, though she also is very
+sweet, never rises to such celestial power of feminine grace as she
+who is angular and bony, whose limbs are long, and whose joints are
+sharp.
+
+Such was Clara Desmond at sixteen. But still, even then, to those
+who were gifted with the power of seeing, she gave promise of great
+loveliness. Her eyes were long and large, and wonderfully clear.
+There was a liquid depth in them which enabled the gazer to look
+down into them as he would into the green, pellucid transparency of
+still ocean water. And then they said so much--those young eyes of
+hers: from her mouth in those early years words came but scantily,
+but from her eyes questions rained quicker than any other eyes could
+answer them. Questions of wonder at what the world contained,--of
+wonder as to what men thought and did; questions as to the inmost
+heart, and truth, and purpose of the person questioned. And all this
+was asked by a glance now and again; by a glance of those long, shy,
+liquid eyes, which were ever falling on the face of him she
+questioned, and then ever as quickly falling from it.
+
+Her face, as I have said, was long and thin, but it was the longness
+and thinness of growing youth. The natural lines of it were full of
+beauty, of pale silent beauty, too proud in itself to boast itself
+much before the world, to make itself common among many. Her hair
+was already long and rich, but was light in colour, much lighter
+than it grew to be when some four or five more years had passed over
+her head. At the time of which I speak she wore it in simple braids
+brushed back from her forehead, not having as yet learned that
+majestic mode of sweeping it from her face which has in subsequent
+years so generally prevailed.
+
+And what then of her virtues and her faults--of her merits and
+defects? Will it not be better to leave them all to time and the
+coming pages? That she was proud of her birth, proud of being an
+Irish Desmond, proud even of her poverty, so much I may say of her,
+even at that early age. In that she was careless of the world's
+esteem, fond to a fault of romance, poetic in her temperament, and
+tender in her heart, she shared the ordinary--shall I say foibles or
+virtues?--of so many of her sex. She was passionately fond of her
+brother, but not nearly equally so of her mother, of whom the
+brother was too evidently the favoured child.
+
+She had lived much alone; alone, that is, with her governess and
+with servants at Desmond Court. Not that she had been neglected by
+her mother, but she had hardly found herself to be her mother's
+companion; and other companions there she had had none. When she was
+sixteen her governess was still with her; but a year later than that
+she was left quite alone, except inasmuch as she was with her
+mother.
+
+She was sixteen when she first began to ask questions of Owen
+Fitzgerald's face with those large eyes of hers; and she saw much of
+him and he of her, for the twelve months immediately after that.
+Much of him, that is, as much goes in this country of ours, where
+four or five interviews in as many months between friends is
+supposed to signify that they are often together. But this
+much-seeing occurred chiefly during the young earl's holidays. Now
+and again he did ride over in the long intervals, and when he did do
+so was not frowned upon by the countess; and so, at the end of the
+winter holidays subsequent to that former winter in which the earl
+had had his tumble, people through the county began to say that he
+and the countess were about to become man and wife.
+
+It was just then that people in the county were also beginning to
+talk of the Hay House orgies; and the double scandal reached Owen's
+ears, one shortly after the other. That orgies scandal did not hurt
+him much. It is, alas! too true that consciousness of such a
+reputation does not often hurt a young man's feelings. But the other
+rumour did wound him. What! he sell himself to a widowed countess
+almost old enough to be his mother; or bestow himself rather--for
+what was there in return that could be reckoned as a price? At any
+rate, he had given no one cause to utter such falsehood, such
+calumny as that. No; it certainly was not probable that he should
+marry the countess.
+
+But this set him to ask himself whether it might or might not be
+possible that he should marry some one else. Might it not be well
+for him if he could find a younger bride at Desmond Court? Not for
+nothing had he ridden over there through those bleak mountains; not
+for nothing, nor yet solely with the view of tying flies for the
+young earl's summer fishing, or preparing the new nag for his
+winter's hunting. Those large bright eyes had asked him many
+questions. Would it not be well that he should answer them?
+
+For many months of that year Clara Desmond had hardly spoken to him.
+Then, in the summer evening, as he and her brother would lie
+sprawling together on the banks of the little Desmond river, while
+the lad was talking of his fish, and his school, and his cricket
+club, she would stand by and listen, and so gradually she learned to
+speak.
+
+And the mother also would sometimes be there; or else she would
+welcome Fitzgerald in to tea, and let him stay there talking as
+though they were all at home, till he would have to make a midnight
+ride of it before he reached Hap House. It seemed that no fear as to
+he daughter had ever crossed the mother's mind; that no idea had
+ever come upon her that her favoured visitor might learn to love the
+young girl with whom he was allowed to associate on so intimate a
+footing. Once or twice he had caught himself calling her Clara, and
+had done so even before her mother; but no notice had been taken of
+it. In truth, Lady Desmond did not know her daughter, for the mother
+took her absolutely to be a child, when in fact she was a child no
+longer.
+
+"You take Clara round by the bridge," said the earl to his friend
+one August evening, as they were standing together on the banks of
+the river, about a quarter of a mile distant from the sombre old
+pile in which the family lived. "You take Clara round by the bridge,
+and I will get over the stepping-stones." And so the lad, with his
+rod in his hand, began to descend the steep bank.
+
+"I can get over the stepping-stones, too, Patrick," said she.
+
+"Can you though, my gay young woman? You'll be over your ankles if
+you do. That rain didn't come down yesterday for nothing."
+
+Clara as she spoke had come up to the bank, and now looked wistfully
+down at the stepping-stones. She had crossed them scores of times,
+sometimes with her brother, and often by herself. Why was it that
+she was so anxious to cross them now?
+
+"It's no use your trying," said her brother who was now half across,
+and who spoke from the middle of the river. "Don't you let her,
+Owen. She'll slip in, and then there will be no end of a row up at
+the house."
+
+"You had better come round by the bridge," said Fitzgerald. "It is
+not only that the stones are nearly under water, but they are wet,
+and you would slip."
+
+So cautioned, Lady Clara allowed herself to be persuaded, and turned
+upwards along the river by a little path that led to a foot bridge.
+It was some quarter of a mile thither, and it would be the same
+distance down the river again before she regained her brother.
+
+"I needn't bring you with me, you know," she said to Fitzgerald.
+"You can get over the stones easily, and I can go very well by
+myself."
+
+But it was not probable that he would let her do so. "Why should I
+not go with you?" he said. "When I get there I have nothing to do
+but see him fish. Only if we were to leave him by himself he would
+not be happy."
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald, how very kind you are are! I do so often think
+of it. How dull his holidays would be in this place if it were not
+for you!"
+
+"And what a godsend his holidays are to me!" said Owen. "When they
+come round I can ride over here and see him, and you--and your
+mother. Do you think that I am not dull also, living alone at Hap
+House, and that this is not an infinite blessing to me?"
+
+He had named them all--son, daughter, and mother; but there had been
+a something in his voice, an almost inappreciable something in his
+tone, which had seemed to mark to Clara's hearing that she herself
+was not the least prized of the three attractions. She had felt this
+rather than realized it, and the feeling was not unpleasant.
+
+"I only know that you are very goodnatured," she continued, "and
+that Patrick is very fond of you. Sometimes I think he almost takes
+you for a brother." And then a sudden thought flashed across her
+mind, and she said hardly a word more to him that evening.
+
+This had been at the close of the summer holidays. After that he had
+been once or twice at Desmond Court, before the return of the boy
+from Eton; but on these occasions he had been more with the countess
+than with her daughter On the last of these visits, just before the
+holidays commenced, he had gone over respective a hunter he had
+bought for Lord Desmond, and on this occasion he did not even see
+Clara.
+
+The countess, when she had thanked him for his trouble in the matter
+of the purchase, hesitated a moment, and then went on to speak of
+other matters.
+
+"I understand, Mr. Fitzgerald," said she. "that you have been very
+gay at Hap House since the hunting commenced."
+
+"Oh, I don't know," said Owen, half laughing and half blushing.
+"It's a convenient place for some of the men, and one must be
+sociable."
+
+"Sociable! yes, one ought to be sociable certainly. But I am always
+afraid of the sociability of young men without ladies. Do not be
+angry with me if I venture as a friend to ask you not to be too
+sociable."
+
+"I know what you mean, Lady Desmond. People have been accusing us
+of--of being rakes. Isn't that it?"
+
+"Yes, Mr. Fitzgerald, that is it. But then I know that I have no
+right to speak to you on such a--such a subject."
+
+"Yes, yes; you have every right," said he, warmly; "more right than
+any one else."
+
+"Oh no; Sir Thomas, you know----"
+
+"Well, yes, Sir Thomas. Sir Thomas is very ill, and so also is Lady
+Fitzgerald; but I do not feel the same interest about them that I do
+about you. And they are such humdrum, quiet-going people. As for
+Herbert, I'm afraid he'll turn out a prig."
+
+"Well, Mr. Fitzgerald, if you give me the right I shall use it." And
+getting up from her chair, and coming to him where he stood, she
+looked kindly into his face. It was a bonny, handsome face for a
+woman to gaze on, and there was much kindness in hers as she smiled
+on him. Nay, there was almost more than kindness, he thought, as he
+caught her eye. It was like,--almost like the sweetness of motherly
+love. "And I shall scold you," she continued. "People say that for
+two or three nights running men have been playing cards at Hap House
+till morning."
+
+"Yes, I had some men there for a week. I could not take their
+candles away, and put them to bed; could I, Lady Desmond?"
+
+"And there were late suppers, and drinking of toasts, and headaches
+in the morning, and breakfast at three o'clock, and gentlemen with
+very pale faces when they appeared rather late at the meet--eh, Mr.
+Fitzgerald?" And she held up one finger at him, as she upbraided him
+with a smile. The smile was so sweet, so unlike her usual look;
+that, to tell the truth, was often too sad and careworn for her age.
+
+"Such things do happen, Lady Desmond."
+
+"Ah, yes; they do happen. And with such a one as you, heaven knows I
+do not begrudge the pleasure, if it were but now and then,--once
+again and then done with. But you are too bright and too good for
+such things to continue." And she took his hand and pressed it, as a
+mother or a mother's dearest friend might have done. "It would so
+grieve me to think that you should be even in danger of shipwreck.
+
+"You will not be angry with me for taking this liberty?" she
+continued.
+
+"Angry! how could any man be angry for such kindness?"
+
+"And you will think of what I say. I would not have you unsociable,
+or morose, or inhospitable; but--"
+
+"I understand, Lady Desmond; but when young men are together, one
+cannot always control them."
+
+"But you will try. Say that you will try because I have asked you."
+
+He promised that he would, and then went his way, proud in his heart
+at this solicitude. And how could he not be proud? was she not high
+in rank, proud in character, beautiful withal, and the mother of
+Clara Desmond? What sweeter friend could a man have; what counsellor
+more potent to avert those dangers which now hovered round his head?
+
+And as he rode home he was half in love with the countess. Where is
+the young man who has not in his early years been half in love with
+some woman older, much older than himself, who has half conquered
+his heart by her solicitude for his welfare?--with some woman who
+has whispered to him while others were talking, who has told him in
+such gentle, loving tones of his boyish follies, whose tenderness
+and experience together have educated him and made him manly? Young
+men are so proud, proud in their inmost hearts, of such tenderness
+and solicitude, as long as it remains secret and wrapt, as it were,
+in a certain mystery. Such liaisons have the interests of intrigue,
+without--I was going to say without its dangers. Alas! it may be
+that it is not always so.
+
+Owen Fitzgerald as he rode home was half in love with the countess.
+Not that his love was of a kind which made him in any way desirous
+of marrying her, or of kneeling at her feet and devoting himself to
+her for ever; not that it in any way interfered with the other love
+which he was beginning to feel for her daughter. But he thought with
+pleasure of the tone of her voice, of the pressure of her hand, of
+the tenderness which he had found in her eye.
+
+It was after that time, as will be understood, that some goodnatured
+friend had told him that he was regarded in the county as the future
+husband of Lady Desmond. At first he laughed at this as being--as he
+himself said to himself--too good a joke. When the report first
+reached him, it seemed to be a joke which he could share so
+pleasantly with the countess. For men of three and twenty, though
+they are so fond of the society of women older than themselves,
+understand so little the hearts and feelings of such women. In his
+ideas there was an interval as of another generation between him and
+the countess. In her thoughts the interval was probably much less
+striking.
+
+But the accusation was made to him again and again till it wounded
+him, and he gave up that notion of a mutual joke with his kind
+friend at Desmond Court. It did not occur to him that she could ever
+think of loving him as her lord and master; but it was brought home
+to him that other people thought so.
+
+A year had now passed by since those winter holidays in which Clara
+Desmond had been sixteen, and during which she was described by
+epithets which will not, I fear, have pleased my readers. Those
+epithets were now somewhat less deserved, but still the necessity of
+them had not entirely passed away. Her limbs were still thin and
+long, and her shoulders pointed; but the growth of beauty had
+commenced, and in Owen's eyes she was already very lovely.
+
+At Christmas-time during that winter a ball was given at Castle
+Richmond, to celebrate the coming of age of the young heir. It was
+not a very gay affair, for the Castle Richmond folk, even in those
+days, were not very gay people. Sir Thomas, though only fifty, was
+an old man for his age; and Lady Fitzgerald, though known intimately
+by the poor all round her, was not known intimately by any but the
+poor. Mary and Emmeline Fitzgerald, with whom we shall become better
+acquainted as we advance in our story, were nice, good girls, and
+handsome withal; but they had not that special gift which enables
+some girls to make a party in their own house bright in spite of all
+obstacles.
+
+We should have but little to do with this ball, were it not that
+Clara Desmond was here first brought out, as the term goes. It was
+the first large party to which she had been taken, and it was to her
+a matter of much wonder and inquiry with those wondering, speaking
+eyes.
+
+And Owen Fitzgerald was there;--as a matter of course, the reader
+will say. By no means so. Previous to that ball Owen's sins had been
+commented upon at Castle Richmond, and Sir Thomas had expostulated
+with him. These expostulations had not been received quite so
+graciously as those of the handsome countess, and there had been
+anger at Castle Richmond.
+
+Now there was living in the house of Castle Richmond one Miss Letty
+Fitzgerald, a maiden sister of the baronet's, older than her brother
+by full ten years. In her character there was more of energy, and
+also much more of harsh judgment, and of consequent ill-nature, than
+in that of her brother. When the letters of invitation were being
+sent out by the two girls, she had given a decided opinion that the
+reprobate should not be asked. But the reprobate's cousins, with
+that partiality for a rake which is so common to young ladies, would
+not abide by their aunt's command, and referred the matter both to
+mamma and papa. Mamma thought it very hard that their own cousin
+should be refused admittance to their house, and very dreadful that
+his sins should be considered to be of so deep a dye as to require
+so severe a sentence; and then papa, much balancing the matter, gave
+final orders that the prodigal cousin should be admitted.
+
+He was admitted, and dangerously he used the privilege. The
+countess, who was there, stood up to dance twice, and twice only.
+She opened the ball with young Herbert Fitzgerald the heir; and in
+about an hour afterwards she danced again with Owen. He did not ask
+her twice; but he asked her daughter three or four times, and three
+or four times he asked her successfully.
+
+"Clara," whispered the mother to her child, after the last of these
+occasions, giving some little pull or twist to her girl's frock as
+she did so, "you had better not dance with Owen Fitzgerald again
+to-night. People will remark about it."
+
+"Will they?" said Clara, and immediately sat down, checked in her
+young happiness.
+
+Not many minutes afterwards, Owen came up to her again. "May we have
+another waltz together, I wonder?" he said.
+
+"Not to-night, I think. I am rather tired already." And so she did
+not waltz again all the evening, for fear she should offend him.
+
+But the countess, though she had thus interdicted her daughter's
+dancing with the master of Hap House, had not done so through
+absolute fear. To her, her girl was still a child; a child without a
+woman's thoughts, or any of a woman's charms. And then it was so
+natural that Clara should like to dance with almost the only
+gentleman who was not absolutely a stranger to her. Lady Desmond had
+been actuated rather by a feeling that it would be well that Clara
+should begin to know other persons.
+
+By that feeling,--and perhaps unconsciously by another, that it
+would be well that Owen Fitzgerald should be relieved from his
+attendance on the child, and enabled to give it to the mother.
+Whether Lady Desmond had at that time realized any ideas as to her
+own interest in this young man, it was at any rate true that she
+loved to have him near her. She had refused to dance a second time
+with Herbert Fitzgerald; she had refused to stand up with any other
+person who had asked her; but with Owen she would either have danced
+again, or have kept him by her side, while she explained to him with
+flattering frankness that she could not do so lest others should be
+offended.
+
+And Owen was with her frequently through the evening. She was taken
+to and from supper by Sir Thomas, but any other takings that were
+incurred were done by him. He led her from one drawing-room to
+another; he took her empty coffee-cup; he stood behind her chair,
+and talked to her; and he brought her the scarf which she had left
+elsewhere; and finally, he put a shawl round her neck while old Sir
+Thomas was waiting to hand her to her carriage. Reader,
+good-natured, middle-aged reader, remember that she was only
+thirty-eight, and that hitherto she had known nothing of the
+delights of love. By the young, any such hallucination on her part,
+at her years, will be regarded as lunacy, or at least frenzy.
+
+Owen Fitzgerald drove home from that ball in a state of mind that
+was hardly satisfactory. In the first place, Miss Letty had made a
+direct attack upon his morals, which he had not answered in the most
+courteous manner.
+
+"I have heard a great deal of your doings. Master Owen," she said to
+him. "A fine house you're keeping."
+
+"Why don't you come and join us, Aunt Letty?" he replied. "It would
+be just the thing for you."
+
+"God forbid!" said the old maid, turning up her eyes to heaven.
+
+"Oh, you might do worse, you know. With us you'd only drink and play
+cards, and perhaps hear a little strong language now and again. But
+what's that to slander, and calumny, and bearing false witness
+against one's neighbour?" and so saying he ended that interview--not
+in a manner to ingratiate himself with his relative, Miss Letty
+Fitzgerald.
+
+After that, in the supper-room, more than one wag of a fellow had
+congratulated him on his success with the widow. "She's got some
+some sort of a jointure, I suppose," said one. "She's very
+young-looking, certainly, to be the mother of that girl," declared
+another. "Upon my word, she's a handsome woman still," said a third.
+"And what title will you get when you marry her, Fitz?" asked a
+fourth, who was rather ignorant as to the phases under which the
+British peerage develops itself.
+
+Fitzgerald pshawed, and pished, and poohed; and then, breaking away
+from them, rode home. He felt that he must at any rate put an end to
+this annoyance about the countess, and that he must put an end also
+to his state of doubt about the countess's daughter. Clara had been
+kind and gracious to him in the first part of the evening; nay,
+almost more than gracious. Why had she been so cold when he went up
+to her on that last occasion? why had she gathered herself like a
+snail into its shell for the rest of the evening?
+
+The young earl had also been at the party, and had exacted a promise
+from Owen that he would be over at Desmond Court on the next day. It
+had almost been on Owen's lips to tell his friend, not only that he
+would be there, but what would be his intention when he got there.
+He knew that the lad loved him well; and almost fancied that, earl
+as he was, he would favour his friend's suit. But a feeling that
+Lord Desmond was only a boy, restrained him. It would not be well to
+induce one so young to agree to an arrangement of which in after and
+more mature years he would so probably disapprove.
+
+But not the less did Fitzgerald, as he drove home, determine that on
+the next day he would know something of his fate: and with this
+resolve he endeavoured to comfort himself as he drove up into his
+own avenue, and betook himself to his own solitary home.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+CLARA DESMOND
+
+
+
+
+
+It had been Clara Desmond's first ball, and on the following morning
+she had much to occupy her thoughts. In the first place, had she
+been pleased or had she not? Had she been most gratified or most
+pained?
+
+Girls when they ask themselves such questions seldom give themselves
+fair answers. She had liked dancing with Owen Fitzgerald; oh, so
+much! She had liked dancing with others too, though she had not
+known them, and had hardly spoken to them. The mere act of dancing,
+with the loud music in the room, and the gay dresses and bright
+lights around her, had been delightful. But then it had pained
+her--she knew not why, but it had pained her--when her mother told
+her that people would make remarks about her. Had she done anything
+improper on this her first entry into the world? Was her conduct to
+be scanned, and judged, and condemned, while she was flattering
+herself that no one had noticed her but him who was speaking to her?
+
+Their breakfast was late, and the countess sat, as was her wont,
+with her book beside her teacup, speaking a word every now and again
+to her son.
+
+"Owen will be over here to-day," said he. "We are going to have a
+schooling match down on the Callows." Now in Ireland a schooling
+match means the amusement of teaching your horses to jump.
+
+"Will he?" said Lady Desmond, looking up from her book for a moment.
+"Mind you bring him in to lunch; I want to speak to him."
+
+"He doesn't care much about lunch, I fancy," said he; "and, maybe,
+we shall be halfway to Millstreet by that time."
+
+"Never mind, but do as I tell you. You expect everybody to be as
+wild and wayward as yourself." And the countess smiled on her son in
+a manner which showed that she was proud even of his wildness and
+his waywardness.
+
+Clara had felt that she blushed when she heard that Mr. Fitzgerald
+was to be there that morning. She felt that her own manner became
+constrained, and was afraid that her mother should look at her. Owen
+had said nothing to her about love; and she, child as she was, had
+thought nothing about love. But she was conscious of something, she
+knew not what. He had touched her hand during those dances as it had
+never been touched before; he had looked into her eyes, and her eyes
+had fallen before his glance; he had pressed her waist, and she had
+felt that there was tenderness in the pressure. So she blushed, and
+almost trembled, when she heard that he was coming, and was glad in
+her heart when she found that there was neither anger nor sunshine
+in her mother's face.
+
+Not long after breakfast, the earl went out on his horse, and met
+Owen at some gate or back entrance. In his opinion the old house was
+stupid, and the women in it were stupid companions in the morning.
+His heart for the moment was engaged on the thought of making his
+animal take the most impracticable leaps which he could find, and it
+did not occur to him at first to give his mother's message to his
+companion. As for lunch, they would get a biscuit and glass of
+cherry-brandy at Wat M'Carthy's, of Drumban; and as for his mother
+having anything to say, that of course went for nothing.
+
+Owen would have been glad to have gone up to the house, but in that
+he was frustrated by the earl's sharpness in catching him. His next
+hope was to get through the promised lesson in horse-leaping as
+quickly as possible, so that he might return to Desmond Court, and
+take his chance of meeting Clara. But in this he found the earl very
+difficult to manage.
+
+"Oh, Owen, we won't go there," he said, when Fitzgerald proposed a
+canter through some meadows down by the river-side. "There are only
+a few gripes"--Irish for small ditches--"and I have ridden Fireball
+over them a score of times. I want you to come away towards
+Drumban."
+
+"Drumban! why, Drumban's seven miles from here."
+
+"What matter? Besides, it's not six the way I'll take you. I want to
+see Wat M'Carthy especially. He has a litter of puppies there out of
+that black bitch of his, and I mean to make him give me one of
+them."
+
+But on that morning, Owen Fitzgerald would not allow himself to be
+taken so far a-field as Drumban, even on a mission so important as
+this. The young lord fought the matter stoutly; but it ended by his
+being forced to content himself with picking out all the most
+dangerous parts of the fences in the river meadows.
+
+"Why, you've hardly tried your own mare at all," said the lad,
+reproachfully.
+
+"I'm going to hunt her on Saturday," said Owen; "and she'll have
+quite enough to do then."
+
+"Well, you're very slow to-day. You're done up with the dancing, I
+think. And what do you mean to do now?"
+
+"I'll go home with you, I think, and pay my respects to the
+countess."
+
+"By-the-by, I was to bring you in to lunch. She said she wanted to
+see you. By jingo, I forgot all about it! But you've all become very
+stupid among you, I know that." And so they rode back to Desmond
+Court, entering the demesne by one of the straight, dull, level
+roads which led up to the house.
+
+But it did not suit the earl to ride on the road while the grass was
+so near him; so they turned off with a curve across what was called
+the park, thus prolonging their return by about double the necessary
+distance.
+
+As they were cantering on, Owen saw her of whom he was in quest
+walking in the road which they had left. His best chance of seeing
+her alone had been that of finding her outside the house. He knew
+that the countess rarely or never walked with her daughter, and
+that, as the governess was gone, Clara was driven to walk by
+herself.
+
+"Desmond," he said, pulling up his horse, "do you go on and tell
+your mother that I will be with her almost immediately."
+
+"Why, where are you off to now?"
+
+"There is your sister, and I must ask her how she is after the
+ball;" and so saying he trotted back in the direction of the road.
+
+Lady Clara had seen them; and though she had hardly turned her head,
+she had seen also how suddenly Mr. Fitzgerald had stopped his horse,
+and turned his course when he perceived her. At the first moment she
+had been almost angry with him for riding away from her, and now she
+felt almost angry with him because he did not do so.
+
+He slackened his pace as he came near her, and approached her at a
+walk. There was very little of the faint heart about Owen Fitzgerald
+at any time, or in anything that he attempted. He had now made up
+his mind fairly to tell Clara Desmond that he loved her, and to ask
+for her love in return. He had resolved to do so, and there was very
+little doubt but that he would carry out his resolution. But he had
+in nowise made up his mind how he should do it, or what his words
+should be. And now that he saw her so near him he wanted a moment to
+collect his thoughts.
+
+He took off his hat as he rode up, and asked her whether she was
+tired after the ball; and then dismounting, he left his mare to
+follow as she pleased.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald, won't she run away?" said Clara, as she gave
+him her hand.
+
+"Oh no; she has been taught better than that. But you don't tell me
+how you are. I thought you were tired last night when I saw that you
+had altogether given over dancing." And then he walked on beside
+her, and the docile mare followed them like a dog.
+
+"No, I was not tired; at least, not exactly," said Clara, blushing
+again and again, being conscious that she blushed. "But--but--you
+know it was the first ball I was ever at."
+
+"That is just the reason why you should have enjoyed it the more,
+instead of sitting down as you did, and being dull and unhappy. For
+I know you were unhappy; I could see it."
+
+"Was I?" said Clara, not knowing what else to say.
+
+"Yes; and I'll tell you what. I could see more than that; it was I
+that made you unhappy."
+
+"You, Mr. Fitzgerald!"
+
+"Yes, I. You will not deny it, because you are so true. I asked you
+to dance with me too often. And because you refused me, you did not
+like to dance with any one else. I saw it all. Will you deny that it
+was so?"
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald!" Poor girl! She did not know what to say; how
+to shape her speech into indifference; how to assure him that he
+made himself out to be of too much consequence by far; how to make
+it plain that she had not danced because there was no one there
+worth dancing with. Had she been out for a year or two, instead of
+being such a novice, she would have accomplished all this in half a
+dozen words. As it was, her tell-tale face confessed it all, and she
+was only able to ejaculate, "Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald!"
+
+"When I went there last night," he continued, "I had only one
+wish--one hope. That was, to see you pleased and happy. I knew it
+was your first ball, and I did so long to see you enjoy it."
+
+"And so I did, till--"
+
+"Till what? Will you not let me ask?"
+
+"Mamma said something to me, and that stopped me from dancing."
+
+"She told you not to dance with me. Was that it?"
+
+How was it possible that she should have had a chance with him;
+innocent, young, and ignorant as she was? She did not tell him in
+words that so it had been; but she looked into his face with a
+glance of doubt and pain that answered his question as plainly as
+any words could have done.
+
+"Of course she did; and it was I that destroyed it all. I that
+should have been satisfied to stand still and see you happy. How you
+must have hated me!"
+
+"Oh no; indeed I did not. I was not at all angry with you. Indeed,
+why should I have been? It was so kind of you, wishing to dance with
+me."
+
+"No; it was selfish--selfish in the extreme. Nothing but one thing
+could excuse me, and that excuse--"
+
+"I'm sure you don't want any excuse, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"And that excuse, Clara, was this: that I love you with all my
+heart. I had not strength to see you there, and not long to have you
+near me--not begrudge that you should dance with another. I love you
+with all my heart and soul. There, Lady Clara, now you know it all."
+
+The manner in which he made his declaration to her was almost fierce
+in its energy. He had stopped in the pathway, and she, unconscious
+of what she was doing, almost unconscious of what she was hearing,
+had stopped also. The mare, taking advantage of the occasion, was
+cropping the grass close to them. And so, for a few seconds, they
+stood in silence.
+
+"Am I so bold, Lady Clara," said he, when those few seconds had gone
+by--"Am I so bold that I may hope for no answer?" But still she said
+nothing. In lieu of speaking she uttered a long sigh; and then
+Fitzgerald could bear that she was sobbing.
+
+"Oh, Clara, I love you so fondly, so dearly, so truly!" said he in
+an altered voice and with sweet tenderness. "I know my own
+presumption in thus speaking. I know and feel bitterly the
+difference in our rank."
+
+"I--care--nothing--for rank," said the poor girl, sobbing through
+her tears. He was generous, and she at any rate would not be less
+so. No; at that moment, with her scanty seventeen years of
+experience, with her ignorance of all that the world had in it of
+grand and great, of high and rich, she did care nothing for rank.
+That Owen Fitzgerald was a gentleman of good lineage, fit to mate
+with a lady, that she did know; for her mother, who was a proud
+woman, delighted to have him in her presence. Beyond this she cared
+for none of the conventionalities of life. Rank! If she waited for
+rank, where was she to look for friends who would love her? Earls
+and countesses, barons and their baronesses, were scarce there where
+fate had placed her, under the shadow of the bleak mountains of
+Muskerry. Her want, her undefined want, was that some one should
+love her. Of all men and women whom she had hitherto known, this
+Owen Fitzgerald was the brightest, the kindest, the gentlest in his
+manner, the most pleasant to look on. And now he was there at her
+feet, swearing that he loved her;--and then drawing back as it were
+in dread of her rank. What did she care for rank?
+
+"Clara, Clara, my Clara! Can you learn to love me?"
+
+She had made her one little effort at speaking when she attempted to
+repudiate the pedestal on which he affected to place her; but after
+that she could for a while say no more. But she still sobbed, and
+still kept her eyes fixed upon the ground.
+
+"Clara, say one word to me. Say that you do not hate me." But just
+at that moment she had not one word to say.
+
+"If you will bid me do so, I will leave this country altogether. I
+will go away, and I shall not much care whither. I can only stay now
+on condition of your loving me. I have thought of this day for the
+last year past, and now it has come."
+
+Every word that he now spoke was gospel to her. Is it not always
+so,--should it not be so always, when love first speaks to loving
+ears? What! he had loved her for that whole twelve-month that she
+had known him; loved her in those days when she had been wont to
+look up into his face, wondering why he was so nice, so much nicer
+than any one else that came near her! A year was a great deal to
+her; and had he loved her through all those days? and after that
+should she banish him from her house, turn him away from his home,
+and drive him forth unhappy and wretched? Ah, no! She could not be
+so unkind to him;--she could not be so unkind to her own heart. But
+still she sobbed; and still she said nothing.
+
+In the mean time they had turned, and were now walking back towards
+the house, the gentle-natured mare still following at their heels.
+They were walking slowly--very slowly back--just creeping along the
+path, when they saw Lady Desmond and her son coming to meet them on
+the road.
+
+"There is your mother, Clara. Say one word to me before we meet
+them."
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald; I am so frightened. What will mamma say?"
+
+"Say about what? As yet I do not know what she may have to say. But
+before we meet her, may I not hope to know what her daughter will
+say? Answer me this, Clara. Can you, will you love me?"
+
+There was still a pause, a moment's pause, and then some sound did
+fall from her lips. But yet it was so soft, so gentle, so slight,
+that it could hardly be said to reach even a lover's ear.
+Fitzgerald, however, made the most of it. Whether it were Yes, or
+whether it were No, he took it as being favourable, and Lady Clara
+Desmond gave him no sign to show that he was mistaken.
+
+"My own, own, only loved one," he said. embracing her, as it were,
+with his words, since the presence of her approaching mother forbade
+him even to take her hand in his, "I am happy now, whatever may
+occur; whatever others may say; for I know that you will be true to
+me. And remember this--whatever others may say, I also will be true
+to you. You will think of that, will you not, love?"
+
+This time she did answer him, almost audibly. "Yes," she said. And
+then she devoted herself to a vain endeavour to remove the traces of
+her tears before her mother should be close to them.
+
+Fitzgerald at once saw that such endeavour must be vain. At one time
+he had thought of turning away, and pretending that they had not
+seen the countess. But he knew that Clara would not be able to carry
+out any such pretence; and he reflected also that it might be just
+as well that Lady Desmond should know the whole at once. That she
+would know it, and know it soon, he was quite sure. She could learn
+it not only from Clara, but from himself. He could not now be there
+at the house without showing that he both loved and knew that he was
+beloved. And then why should Lady Desmond not know it? Why should he
+think that she would set herself against the match? He had certainly
+spoken to Clara of the difference in their rank; but, after all, it
+was no uncommon thing for an earl's daughter to marry a commoner.
+And in this case the earl's daughter was portionless, and the lover
+desired no portion. Owen Fitzgerald at any rate might boast that he
+was true and generous in his love.
+
+So he plucked up his courage, and walked on with a smiling face to
+meet Lady Desmond and her son; while poor Clara crept beside him
+with eyes downcast, and in an agony of terror.
+
+Lady Desmond had not left the house with any apprehension that there
+was aught amiss. Her son had told her that Owen had gone off "to do
+the civil to Clara;" and as he did not come to the house within some
+twenty minutes after this, she had proposed that they would go and
+meet him.
+
+"Did you tell him that I wanted him?" said the countess.
+
+"Oh yes, I did; and he is coming, only he would go away to Clara."
+
+"Then I shall scold him for his want of gallantry," said Lady
+Desmond, laughing, as they walked out together from beneath the huge
+portal.
+
+But as soon as she was near enough to see the manner of their gait,
+as they slowly came towards her, her woman's tact told her that
+something was wrong;--and whispered to her also what might too
+probably be the nature of that something. Could it be possible, she
+asked herself, that such a man as Owen Fitzgerald should fall in
+love with such a girl as her daughter Clara?
+
+"What shall I say to mamma?" whispered Clara to him, as they all
+drew near together.
+
+"Tell her everything."
+
+"But, Patrick--"
+
+"I will take him off with me if I can." And then they were all
+together, standing in the road.
+
+"I was coming to obey your behests, Lady Desmond," said Fitzgerald,
+trying to look and speak as though he were at his ease.
+
+"Coming rather tardily, I think," said her ladyship, not altogether
+playfully.
+
+"I told him you wanted him, as we were crossing to the house," said
+the earl. "Didn't I, Owen?"
+
+"Is anything the matter with Clara?" said Lady Desmond, looking at
+her daughter.
+
+"No, mamma," said Clara; and she instantly began to sob and cry.
+
+"What is it, sir?" And as she asked she turned to Fitzgerald; and
+her manner now at least had in it nothing playful.
+
+"Lady Clara is nervous and hysterical. The excitement of the ball
+has perhaps been too much for her. I think, Lady Desmond, if you
+were to take her in with you it would be well."
+
+Lady Desmond looked up at him; and he then saw, for the first time,
+that she could if she pleased look very stern. Hitherto her face had
+always worn smiles, had at any rate always been pleasing when he had
+seen it. He had never been intimate with her, never intimate enough
+to care what her face was like, till that day when he had carried
+her son up from the hall door to his room. Then her countenance had
+been all anxiety for her darling; and afterwards it had been all
+sweetness for her darling's friend. From that day to this present
+one, Lady Desmond had ever given him her sweetest smiles.
+
+But Fitzgerald was not a man to be cowed by any woman's looks. He
+met hers by a full, front face in return. He did not allow his eye
+for a moment to fall before hers. And yet he did not look at her
+haughtily, or with defiance, but with an aspect which showed that he
+was ashamed of nothing that he had done,--whether he had done
+anything that he ought to be ashamed of or no.
+
+"Clara," said the countess, in a voice which fell with awful
+severity on the poor girl's ears, "you had better return to the
+house with me."
+
+"Yes, mamma."
+
+"And shall I wait on you to-morrow, Lady Desmond?" said Fitzgerald,
+in a tone which seemed to the countess to be, in the present state
+of affairs, almost impertinent. The man had certainly been
+misbehaving himself, and yet there was not about him the slightest
+symptom of shame.
+
+"Yes; no," said the countess. "That is, I will write a note to you
+if it be necessary. Good morning."
+
+"Good-bye, Lady Desmond," said Owen. And as he took off his hat with
+his left hand, he put out his right to shake hands with her, as was
+customary with him. Lady Desmond was at first inclined to refuse the
+courtesy; but she either thought better of such intention, or else
+she had not courage to maintain it; for at parting she did give him
+her hand.
+
+"Good-bye, Lady Clara;" and he also shook hands with her, and it
+need hardly be said that there was a lover's pressure in the grasp.
+
+"Good-bye," said Clara, through her tears, in the saddest, soberest
+tone. He was going away, happy, light-hearted, with nothing to
+trouble him. But she had to encounter that fearful task of telling
+her own crime. She had to depart with her mother;--her mother, who,
+though never absolutely unkind, had so rarely been tender with her.
+And then her brother--!
+
+"Desmond," said Fitzgerald, "walk as far as the lodge with me like a
+good fellow. I have something that I want to say to you."
+
+The mother thought for a moment that she would call her son back;
+but then she bethought herself that she also might as well be
+without him. So the young earl, showing plainly by his eyes that he
+knew that much was the matter, went back with Fitzgerald towards the
+lodge.
+
+"What is it you have done now?" said the earl. The boy had some sort
+of an idea that the offence committed was with reference to his
+sister; and his tone was hardly as gracious as was usual with him.
+
+This want of kindliness at the present moment grated on Owen's ears;
+but he resolved at once to tell the whole story out, and then leave
+it to the earl to take it in dudgeon or in brotherly friendship as
+he might please.
+
+"Desmond," said he, "can you not guess what has passed between me
+and your sister?"
+
+"I am not good at guessing," he answered, brusquely.
+
+"I have told her that I loved her, and would have her for my wife;
+and I have asked her to love me in return."
+
+There was an open manliness about this which almost disarmed the
+earl's anger. He had felt a strong attachment to Fitzgerald, and was
+very unwilling to give up his friendship; but, nevertheless, he had
+an idea that it was presumption on the part of Mr. Fitzgerald of Hap
+House to look up to his sister. Between himself and Owen the earl's
+coronet never weighed a feather; he could not have abandoned his
+boy's heart to the man's fellowship more thoroughly had that man
+been an earl as well as himself. But he could not get over the
+feeling that Fitzgerald's worldly position was beneath that of his
+sister;--that such a marriage on his sister's part would be a
+mesalliance. Doubting, therefore, and in some sort dismayed--and in
+some sort also angry--he did not at once give any reply.
+
+"Well, Desmond, what have you to say to it? You are the head of her
+family, and young as you are, it is right that I should tell you."
+
+"Tell me! of course you ought to tell me. I don't see what youngness
+has to do with it. What did she say?"
+
+"Well, she said but little; and a man should never boast that a lady
+has favoured him. But she did not reject me." He paused a moment,
+and then added, "After all, honesty and truth are the best. I have
+reason to think that she loves me."
+
+The poor young lord felt that he had a double duty, and hardly knew
+how to perform it. He owed a duty to his sister which was paramount
+to all others; but then he owed a duty also to the friend who had
+been so kind to him. He did not know how to turn round upon him and
+tell him that he was not fit to marry his sister.
+
+"And what do you say to it, Desmond?"
+
+"I hardly know what to say. It would be a very bad match for her.
+You, you know, are a capital fellow; the best fellow going. There is
+nobody about anywhere that I like so much."
+
+"In thinking of your sister, you should put that out of the
+question."
+
+"Yes; that's just it. I like you for a friend better than any one
+else. But Clara ought--ought--ought--"
+
+"Ought to look higher, you would say."
+
+"Yes; that's just what I mean. I don't want to offend you, you
+know."
+
+"Desmond, my boy, I like you the better for it. You are a fine
+fellow, and I thoroughly respect you. But let us talk sensibly about
+this. Though your sister's rank is high--"
+
+"Oh, I don't want to talk about rank. That's all bosh, and I don't
+care about it. But Hap House is a small place, and Clara wouldn't be
+doing well; and what's more, I am quite sure the countess will not
+hear of it."
+
+"You won't approve, then?"
+
+"No, I can't say I will."
+
+"Well, that is honest of you. I am very glad that I have told you at
+once. Clara will tell her mother, and at any rate there will be no
+secrets. Good-bye, old fellow."
+
+"Good-bye," said the earl. Then they shook hands, and Fitzgerald
+rode off towards Hap House. Lord Desmond pondered over the matter
+some time, standing alone near the lodge; and then walked slowly
+back towards the mansion. He had said that rank was all bosh; and in
+so saying had at the moment spoken out generously the feelings of
+his heart. But that feeling regarded himself rather than his sister;
+and if properly analyzed would merely have signified that, though
+proud enough of his own rank, he did not require that his friends
+should be of the same standing. But as regarded his sister, he
+certainly would not be well pleased to see her marry a small squire
+with a small income.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+THE COUNTESS
+
+
+
+
+
+The countess, as she walked back with her daughter towards the
+house, had to bethink herself for a minute or two as to how she
+should act, and what she would say. She knew, she felt that she
+knew, what had occurred. If her daughter's manner had not told her,
+the downcast eyes, the repressed sobs, the mingled look of shame and
+fear;--if she had not read the truth from these, she would have
+learned it from the tone of Fitzgerald's voice, and the look of
+triumph which sat upon his countenance.
+
+And then she wondered that this should be so, seeing that she had
+still regarded Clara as being in all things a child; and as she
+thought further, she wondered at her own fatuity, in that she had
+allowed herself to be so grossly deceived.
+
+"Clara," said she, "what is all this?"
+
+"Oh, mamma!"
+
+"You had better come on to the house, my dear, and speak to me
+there. In the mean time, collect your thoughts, and remember this,
+Clara, that you have the honour of a great family to maintain."
+
+Poor Clara! what had the great family done for her, or how had she
+been taught to maintain its honour? She knew that she was an earl's
+daughter, and that people called her Lady Clara; whereas other young
+ladies were only called Miss So-and-So. But she had not been taught
+to separate herself from the ordinary throng of young ladies by any
+other distinction. Her great family had done nothing special for
+her, nor placed before her for example any grandly noble deeds. At
+that old house at Desmond Court company was scarce, money was
+scarce, servants were scarce. She had been confided to the care of a
+very ordinary governess; and if there was about her anything that
+was great or good, it was intrinsically her own, and by no means due
+to intrinsic advantages derived from her grand family. Why should
+she not give what was so entirely her own to one whom she loved, to
+one by whom it so pleased her to be loved?
+
+And then they entered the house, and Clara followed her mother to
+the countess's own small upstairs sitting-room. The daughter did not
+ordinarily share this room with her mother, and when she entered it,
+she seldom did so with pleasurable emotion. At the present moment
+she had hardly strength to close the door after her.
+
+"And now, Clara, what is all this?" said the countess, sitting down
+in her accustomed chair.
+
+"All which, mamma?" Can any one blame her in that she so far
+equivocated?
+
+"Clara, you know very well what I mean. What has there been between
+you and Mr. Fitzgerald?"
+
+The guilt-stricken wretch sat silent for a while, sustaining the
+scrutiny of her mother's gaze; and then falling from her chair on to
+her knees, she hid her face in her mother's lap, exclaiming, "Oh,
+mamma, mamma, do not look at me like that!"
+
+Lady Desmond's heart was somewhat softened by this appeal; nor would
+I have it thought that she was a cruel woman, or an unnatural
+mother. It had not been her lot to make an absolute, dearest,
+heartiest friend of her daughter, as some mothers do; a friend
+between whom and herself there should be, nay could be, no secrets.
+She could not become young again in sharing the romance of her
+daughter's love, in enjoying the gaieties of her daughter's balls,
+in planning dresses, amusements, and triumphs with her child. Some
+mothers can do this; and they, I think, are the mothers who enjoy
+most fully the delights of maternity. This was not the case with
+Lady Desmond; but yet she loved her child, and would have made any
+reasonable sacrifice for what she regarded as that child's welfare.
+
+"But, my dear," she said, in a softened tone, "you must tell me what
+has occurred. Do you not know that it is my duty to ask, and yours
+to tell me? It cannot be right that there should be any secret
+understanding between yourself and Mr. Fitzgerald. You know that,
+Clara, do you not?"
+
+"Yes, mamma," said Clara, remembering that her lover had bade her
+tell her mother everything.
+
+"Well, my love?"
+
+Clara's story was very simple, and did not, in fact, want any
+telling. It was merely the old well-worn tale, so common through all
+the world. "He had laughed on the lass with his bonny black eye!"
+and she,--she was ready to go "to the mountain to hear a love-tale!"
+One may say that an occurrence so very common could not want much
+telling.
+
+"Mamma; he says--"
+
+"Well, my dear?"
+
+"He says--. Oh, mamma! I could not help it."
+
+"No, Clara; you certainly could not help what he might say to you.
+You could not refuse to listen to him. A lady in such case, when she
+is on terms of intimacy with a gentleman, as you were with Mr.
+Fitzgerald, is bound to listen to him, and to give him an answer.
+You could not help what he might say, Clara. The question now is,
+what answer did you give to what he said?"
+
+Clara, who was still kneeling, looked up piteously into her mother's
+face, sighed bitterly, but said nothing.
+
+"He told you that he loved you, I suppose?"
+
+"Yes, mamma."
+
+"And I suppose you gave him some answer? Eh! my dear?"
+
+The answer to this was another long sigh.
+
+"But, Clara, you must tell me. It is absolutely necessary that I
+should know whether you have given him any hope, and if so, how
+much. Of course the whole thing must be stopped at once. Young as
+you are, you cannot think that a marriage with Mr. Owen Fitzgerald
+would be a proper match for you to make. Of course the whole thing
+must cease at once--at once." Here there was another piteous sigh.
+"But before I take any steps, I must know what you have said to him.
+Surely you have not told him that you have any feeling for him
+warmer than ordinary regard?"
+
+Lady Desmond knew what she was doing very well. She was perfectly
+sure that her daughter had pledged her troth to Owen Fitzgerald.
+Indeed, if she made any mistake in the matter, it was in thinking
+that Clara had given a more absolute assurance of love than had in
+truth been extracted from her. But she calculated, and calculated
+wisely, that the surest way of talking her daughter out of all hope,
+was to express herself as unable to believe that a child of hers
+would own to love for one so much beneath her, and to speak of such
+a marriage as a thing absolutely impossible. Her method of acting in
+this manner had the effect which she desired. The poor girl was
+utterly frightened, and began to fear that she had disgraced
+herself, though she knew that she dearly loved the man of whom her
+mother spoke so slightingly.
+
+"Have you given him any promise, Clara?"
+
+"Not a promise, mamma."
+
+"Not a promise! What then? Have you professed any regard for him?"
+But upon this Clara was again silent.
+
+"Then I suppose I must believe that you have professed a regard for
+him--that you have promised to love him?"
+
+"No, mamma; I have not promised anything. But when he asked me, I--I
+didn't--I didn't refuse him."
+
+It will be observed that Lady Desmond never once asked her daughter
+what were her feelings. It never occurred to her to inquire, even
+within her own heart, as to what might be most conducive to her
+child's happiness. She meant to do her duty by Clara, and therefore
+resolved at once to put a stop to the whole affair. She now desisted
+from her interrogatories, and sitting silent for a while, looked out
+into the extent of flat ground before the house. Poor Clara the
+while sat silent also, awaiting her doom.
+
+"Clara," said the mother at last, "all this must of course be made
+to cease. You are very young, very young indeed, and therefore I do
+not blame you. The fault is with him--with him entirely."
+
+"No, mamma."
+
+"But I say it is. He has behaved very badly, and has betrayed the
+trust which was placed in him when he was admitted here so
+intimately as Patrick's friend."
+
+"I am sure he has not intended to betray any trust," said Clara,
+through her sobs. The conviction was beginning to come upon her that
+she would be forced to give up her lover; but she could not bring
+herself to hear so much evil spoken of him.
+
+"He has not behaved like a gentleman," continued the countess,
+looking very stern. "And his visits here must of course be
+altogether discontinued. I am sorry on your brother's account, for
+Patrick was very fond of him--"
+
+"Not half so fond as I am," thought Clara to herself. But she did
+not dare to speak her thoughts out loud.
+
+"But I am quite sure that your brother, young as he is, will not
+continue to associate with a friend who has thought so slightly of
+his sister's honour. Of course I shall let Mr. Fitzgerald know that
+he can come here no more; and all I want from you is a promise that
+you will on no account see him again, or hold any correspondence
+with him."
+
+That was all she wanted. But Clara, timid as she was, hesitated
+before she could give a promise so totally at variance with the
+pledge which she felt that she had given, hardly an hour since, to
+Fitzgerald. She knew and acknowledged to herself that she had given
+him a pledge, although she had given it in silence. How then was she
+to give this other pledge to her mother?
+
+"You do not mean to say that you hesitate?" said Lady Desmond,
+looking as though she were thunderstruck at the existence of such
+hesitation. "You do not wish me to suppose that you intend to
+persevere in such insanity? Clara, I must have from you a distinct
+promise,--or--"
+
+What might be the dreadful alternative the countess did not at that
+minute say. She perhaps thought that her countenance might be more
+effective than her speech, and in thinking so she was probably
+right.
+
+It must be remembered that Clara Desmond was as yet only seventeen,
+and that she was young even for that age. It must be remembered
+also, that she knew nothing of the world's ways, of her own
+privileges as a creature with a soul and heart of her own, or of
+what might be the true extent of her mother's rights over her. She
+had not in her enough of matured thought to teach her to say that
+she would make no promise that should bind her for ever; but that
+for the present, in her present state, she would obey her mother's
+orders. And thus the promise was exacted and given.
+
+"If I find you deceiving me, Clara," said the countess, "I will
+never forgive you."
+
+Hitherto, Lady Desmond may probably have played her part
+well;--well, considering her object. But she played it very badly in
+showing that she thought it possible that her daughter should play
+her false. It was now Clara's turn to be proud and indignant.
+
+"Mamma!" she said, holding her head high, and looking at her mother
+boldly through her tears, "I have never deceived you yet."
+
+"Very well, my dear. I will take steps to prevent his intruding on
+you any further. There may be an end of the matter now. I have no
+doubt that he has endeavoured to use his influence with Patrick; but
+I will tell your brother not to speak of the matter further." And so
+saying, she dismissed her daughter.
+
+Shortly afterwards the earl came in, and there was a conference
+between him and his mother. Though they were both agreed on the
+subject, though both were decided that it would not do for Clara to
+throw herself away on a county Cork squire with eight hundred
+a-year, a cadet in his family, and a man likely to rise to nothing,
+still the earl would not hear him abused.
+
+"But, Patrick, he must not come here any more," said the countess.
+
+"Well, I suppose not. But it will be very dull, I know that. I wish
+Clara hadn't made herself such an ass;" and then the boy went away,
+and talked kindly over the matter to his poor sister.
+
+But the countess had another task still before her. She must make
+known the family resolution to Owen Fitzgerald. When her children
+had left her, one after the other, she sat at the window for an
+hour, looking at nothing, but turning over her own thoughts in her
+mind. Hitherto she had expressed herself as being very angry with
+her daughter's lover; so angry that she had said that he was
+faithless, a traitor, and no gentleman. She had called him a
+dissipated spendthrift, and had threatened his future wife, if ever
+he should have one, with every kind of misery that could fall to a
+woman's lot; but now she began to think of him perhaps more kindly.
+
+She had been very angry with him;--and the more so because she had
+such cause to be angry with herself;--with her own lack of judgment,
+her own ignorance of the man's character, her own folly with
+reference to her daughter. She had never asked herself whether she
+loved Fitzgerald--had never done so till now. But now she knew that
+the sharpest blow she had received that day was the assurance that
+he was indifferent to herself.
+
+She had never thought herself too old to be on an equality with
+him,--on such an equality in point of age as men and women feel when
+they learn to love each other; and therefore it had not occurred to
+her that he could regard her daughter as other than a child. To Lady
+Desmond, Clara was a child; how then could she be more to him? And
+yet now it was too plain that he had looked on Clara as a woman. In
+what light then must he have thought of that woman's mother? And so,
+with saddened heart, but subdued anger, she continued to gaze
+through the window till all without was dusk and dark.
+
+There can be to a woman no remembrance of age so strong as that of
+seeing a daughter go forth to the world a married woman. If that
+does not tell the mother that the time of her own youth has passed
+away, nothing will ever bring the tale home. It had not quite come
+to this with Lady Desmond;--Clara was not going forth to the world
+as a married woman. But here was one now who had judged her as fit
+to be so taken; and this one was the very man of all others in whose
+estimation Lady Desmond would have wished to drop a few of the years
+that encumbered her.
+
+She was not, however, a weak woman, and so she performed her task.
+She had candles brought to her, and sitting down, she wrote a note
+to Owen Fitzgerald, saying that she herself would call at Hap House
+at an hour named on the following day.
+
+She had written three or four letters before she had made up her
+mind exactly as to the one she would send. At first she had desired
+him to come to her there at Desmond Court; but then she thought of
+the danger there might be of Clara seeing him;--of the danger, also,
+of her own feelings towards him when he should be there with her, in
+her own house, in the accustomed way. And she tried to say by letter
+all that it behoved her to say, so that there need be no meeting.
+But in this she failed. One letter was stern and arrogant, and the
+next was soft-hearted, so that it might teach him to think that his
+love for Clara might yet be successful. At last she resolved to go
+herself to Hap House; and accordingly she wrote her letter and
+despatched it.
+
+Fitzgerald was of course aware of the subject of the threatened
+visit. When he determined to make his proposal to Clara, the matter
+did not seem to him to be one in which all chances of success were
+desperate. If, he thought, he could induce the girl to love him,
+other smaller difficulties might be made to vanish from his path. He
+had now induced the girl to own that she did love him; but not the
+less did he begin to see that the difficulties were far from
+vanishing. Lady Desmond would never have taken upon herself to make
+a journey to Hap House, had not a sentence of absolute banishment
+from Desmond Court been passed against him.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," she began, as soon as she found herself alone with
+him, "you will understand what has induced me to seek you here.
+After your imprudence with Lady Clara Desmond, I could not of course
+ask you to come to Desmond Court."
+
+"I may have been presumptuous, Lady Desmond, but I do not think that
+I have been imprudent. I love your daughter dearly and I told her
+so. Immediately afterwards I told the same to her brother; and she,
+no doubt, has told the same to you."
+
+"Yes, she has, Mr. Fitzgerald. Clara, as you are well aware, is a
+child, absolutely a child; much more so than is usual with girls of
+her age. The knowledge of this should, I think, have protected her
+from your advances."
+
+"But I absolutely deny any such knowledge. And more than that, I
+think that you are greatly mistaken as to her character."
+
+"Mistaken, sir, as to my own daughter?"
+
+"Yes, Lady Desmond; I think you are. I think--"
+
+"On such a matter, Mr. Fitzgerald, I need not trouble you for an
+expression of your thoughts. Nor need we argue that subject any
+further. You must of course be aware that all ideas of any such
+marriage as this must be laid aside."
+
+"On what grounds, Lady Desmond?"
+
+Now this appeared to the countess to be rather impudent on the part
+of the young squire. The reasons why he, Owen Fitzgerald of Hap
+House, should not marry a daughter of an Earl of Desmond, seemed to
+her to be so conspicuous and conclusive, that it could hardly be
+necessary to enumerate them. And such as they were, it might not be
+pleasant to announce them in his hearing. But though Owen Fitzgerald
+was so evidently an unfit suitor for an earl's daughter, it might
+still be possible that he should be acceptable to an earl's widow.
+Ah! if it might be possible to teach him the two lessons at the same
+time!
+
+"On what grounds, Mr. Fitzgerald!" she said, repeating his question;
+"surely I need hardly tell you. Did not my son say the same thing to
+you yesterday, as he walked with you down the avenue?"
+
+"Yes; he told me candidly that he looked higher for his sister; and
+I liked him for his candour, But that is no reason that I should
+agree with him; or, which is much more important, that his sister
+should do so. If she thinks that she can be happy in such a home as
+I can give her, I do not know why he or why you should object."
+
+"You think, then, that I might give her to a blacksmith, if she
+herself were mad enough to wish it?"
+
+"I thank you for the compliment, Lady Desmond."
+
+"You have driven me to it, sir."
+
+"I believe it is considered in the world," said he,--"that is, in
+our country, that the one great difference is between gentlemen and
+ladies, and those who are not gentlemen or ladies. A lady does not
+degrade herself if she marry a gentleman, even though that
+gentleman's rank be less high than her own."
+
+"It is not a question of degradation, but of prudence;--of the
+ordinary caution which I, as a mother, am bound to use as regards my
+daughter. Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald!" and she now altered her tone as she
+spoke to him; "we have all been so pleased to know you, so happy to
+have you there; why have you destroyed all this by one half-hour's
+folly?"
+
+"The folly, as you call it, Lady Desmond, has been premeditated for
+the last twelve months."
+
+"For twelve months!" said she, taken absolutely by surprise, and in
+her surprise believing him.
+
+"Yes, for twelve months. Ever since I began to know your daughter, I
+have loved her. You say that your daughter is a child. I also
+thought so this time last year, in our last winter holidays. I
+thought so then; and though I loved her as a child, I kept it to
+myself. Now she is a woman, and so thinking I have spoken to her as
+one. I have told her that I loved her, as I now tell you that come
+what may I must continue to do so. Had she made me believe that I
+was indifferent to her, absence, perhaps, and distance might have
+taught me to forget her. But such, I think, is not the case."
+
+"And you must forget her now."
+
+"Never, Lady Desmond."
+
+"Nonsense, sir. A child that does not know her own mind, that thinks
+of a lover as she does of some new toy, whose first appearance in
+the world was only made the other night at your cousin's house! you
+ought to feel ashamed of such a passion, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"I am very far from being ashamed of it, Lady Desmond."
+
+"At any rate, let me tell you this. My daughter has promised me most
+solemnly that she will neither see you again, nor have any
+correspondence with you. And this I know of her, that her word is
+sacred. I can excuse her on account of her youth; and, young as she
+is, she already sees her own folly in having allowed you so to
+address her. But for you, Mr. Fitzgerald, under all the
+circumstances I can make no excuse for you. Is yours, do you think,
+the sort of house to which a young girl should be brought as a
+bride? Is your life, are your companions of that kind which could
+most profit her? I am sorry that you drive me to remind you of these
+things."
+
+His face became very dark and his brow stern as his sins were thus
+cast into his teeth.
+
+"And from what you know of me, Lady Desmond," he said,--and as he
+spoke he assumed a dignity of demeanour which made her more inclined
+to love him than ever she had been before,--"do you think that I
+should be the man to introduce a young wife to such companions as
+those to whom you allude? Do you not know, are you not sure in your
+own heart, that my marriage with your daughter would instantly put
+an end to all that?"
+
+"Whatever may be my own thoughts, and they are not likely to be
+unfavourable to you--for Patrick's sake, I mean; but whatever may
+be my own thoughts, I will not subject my daughter to such a risk.
+And, Mr. Fitzgerald, you must allow me to say, that your income is
+altogether insufficient for her wants and your own. She has no
+fortune--"
+
+"I want none with her."
+
+"And--but I will not argue the matter with you. I did not come to
+argue it, but to tell you, with as little offence as may be
+possible, that such a marriage is absolutely impossible. My daughter
+herself has already abandoned all thoughts of it."
+
+"Her thoughts then must be wonderfully under her own control. Much
+more so than mine are."
+
+"Lord Desmond, you may be sure, will not hear of it."
+
+"Lord Desmond cannot at present be less of a child than his sister."
+
+"I don't know that, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"At any rate, Lady Desmond, I will not put my happiness, nor as far
+as I am concerned in it, his sister's happiness, at his disposal.
+When I told her that I loved her, I did not speak, as you seem to
+think, from an impulse of the moment. I spoke because I loved her;
+and as I love her, I shall of course try to win her. Nothing can
+absolve me from my engagement to her but her marriage with another
+person."
+
+The countess had once or twice made small efforts to come to terms
+of peace with him; or rather to a truce, under which there might
+still be some friendship between them,--accompanied, however, by a
+positive condition that Clara should be omitted from any
+participation in it. She would have been willing to say, "Let all
+this be forgotten, only for some time to come you and Clara cannot
+meet each other." But Fitzgerald would by no means agree to such
+terms; and the countess was obliged to leave his house, having in
+effect only thrown down a gauntlet of battle; having in vain
+attempted to extend over it an olive-branch of peace.
+
+He helped her, however, into her little pony carriage, and at
+parting she gave him her hand. He just touched it, and then, taking
+off his hat, bowed courteously to her as she drove from his door.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+THE FITZGERALDS OF CASTLE RICHMOND
+
+
+
+
+
+What idea of carrying out his plans may have been prevalent in
+Fitzgerald's mind when he was so defiant of the countess, it may be
+difficult to say. Probably he had no idea, but felt at the spur of
+the moment that it would be weak to yield. The consequence was, that
+when Lady Desmond left Hap House, he was obliged to consider himself
+as being at feud with the family.
+
+The young lord he did see once again during the holidays, and even
+entertained him at Hap House; but the earl's pride would not give
+way an inch.
+
+"Much as I like you, Owen, I cannot do anything but oppose it. It
+would be a bad match for my sister, and so you'd feel if you were in
+my place." And then Lord Desmond went back to Eton.
+
+After that they none of them met for many months. During this time
+life went on in a very triste manner at Desmond Court. Lady Desmond
+felt that she had done her duty by her daughter; but her tenderness
+to Clara was not increased by the fact that her foolish attachment
+had driven Fitzgerald from the place. As for Clara herself, she not
+only kept her word, but rigidly resolved to keep it. Twice she
+returned unopened, and without a word of notice, letters which Owen
+had caused to be conveyed to her hand. It was not that she had
+ceased to love him, but she had high ideas of truth and honour, and
+would not break her word. Perhaps she was sustained in her misery by
+the remembrance that heroines are always miserable.
+
+And then the orgies at Hap House became hotter and faster. Hitherto
+there had perhaps been more smoke than fire, more calumny than sin.
+And Fitzgerald, when he had intimated that the presence of a young
+wife would save him from it all, had not boasted falsely. But now
+that his friends had turned their backs upon him, that he was
+banished from Desmond Court, and twitted with his iniquities at
+Castle Richmond, he threw off all restraint, and endeavoured to
+enjoy himself in his own way. So the orgies became fast and furious;
+all which of course reached the ears of poor Clara Desmond.
+
+During the summer holidays, Lord Desmond was not at home, but Owen
+Fitzgerald was also away. He had gone abroad, perhaps with the
+conviction that it would be well that he and the Desmonds should not
+meet; and he remained abroad till the hunting season again
+commenced. Then the winter came again, and he and Lord Desmond used
+to meet in the field. There they would exchange courtesies, and, to
+a certain degree, show that they were intimate. But all the world
+knew that the old friendship was over. And, indeed, all the
+world--all the county Cork world--soon knew the reason. And so we
+are brought down to the period at which our story was to begin.
+
+We have hitherto said little or nothing of Castle Richmond and its
+inhabitants; but it is now time that we should do so, and we will
+begin with the heir of the family. At the period of which we are
+speaking, Herbert Fitzgerald had just returned from Oxford, having
+completed his affairs there in a manner very much to the
+satisfaction of his father, mother, and sisters; and to the
+unqualified admiration of his aunt, Miss Letty. I am not aware that
+the heads of colleges and supreme synod of Dons had signified by any
+general expression of sentiment, that Herbert Fitzgerald had so
+conducted himself as to be a standing honour and perpetual glory to
+the University; but at Castle Richmond it was all the same as though
+they had done so. There are some kindly-hearted, soft-minded
+parents, in whose estimation not to have fallen into disgrace shows
+the highest merit on the part of their children. Herbert had not
+been rusticated; had not got into debt, at least not to an extent
+that had been offensive to his father's pocket; he had not been
+plucked. Indeed, he had taken honours, in some low unnoticed
+degree;--unnoticed, that is, at Oxford; but noticed at Castle
+Richmond by an ovation--almost by a triumph.
+
+But Herbert Fitzgerald was a son to gladden a father's heart and a
+mother's eye. He was not handsome, as was his cousin Owen; not tall
+and stalwart and godlike in his proportions, as was the reveller of
+Hap House; but nevertheless, and perhaps not the less, was he
+pleasant to look on. He was smaller and darker than his cousin; but
+his eyes were bright and full of good humour. He was clean looking
+and clean made; pleasant and courteous in all his habits; attached
+to books in a moderate, easy way, but no bookworm; he had a gentle
+affection for bindings and titlepages; was fond of pictures, of
+which it might be probable that he would some day know more than he
+did at present; addicted to Gothic architecture, and already
+proprietor of the germ of what was to be a collection of coins.
+
+Owen Fitzgerald had called him a prig; but Herbert was no prig. Nor
+yet was he a pedant; which word might, perhaps, more nearly have
+expressed his cousin's meaning. He liked little bits of learning,
+the easy outsides and tags of classical acquirements, which come so
+easily within the scope of the memory when a man has passed some ten
+years between a public school and a university. But though he did
+love to chew the cud of these morsels of Attic grass which he had
+cropped, certainly without any great or sustained effort, he had no
+desire to be ostentatious in doing so, or to show off more than he
+knew. Indeed, now that he was away from his college friends, he was
+rather ashamed of himself than otherwise when scraps of quotations
+would break forth from him in his own despite. Looking at his true
+character, it was certainly unjust to call him either a prig or a
+pedant.
+
+He was fond of the society of ladies, and was a great favourite with
+his sisters, who thought that every girl who saw him must instantly
+fall in love with him. He was goodnatured, and, as the only son of a
+rich man, was generally well provided with money. Such a brother is
+usually a favourite with his sisters. He was a great favourite too
+with his aunt, whose heart, however, was daily sinking into her
+shoes through the effect of one great terror which harassed her
+respecting him. She feared that he had become a Puseyite. Now that
+means much with some ladies in England; but with most ladies of the
+Protestant religion in Ireland, it means, one may almost say, the
+very Father of Mischief himself. In their minds, the pope, with his
+lady of Babylon, his college of cardinals, and all his community of
+pinchbeck saints, holds a sort of second head-quarters of his own at
+Oxford. And there his high priest is supposed to be one wicked
+infamous Pusey, and his worshippers are wicked infamous Puseyites.
+Now, Miss Letty Fitzgerald was strong on this subject, and little
+inklings had fallen from her nephew which robbed her of much of her
+peace of mind.
+
+It is impossible that these volumes should be graced by any hero,
+for the story does not admit of one. But if there were to be a hero,
+Herbert Fitzgerald would be the man.
+
+Sir Thomas Fitzgerald at this period was an old man in appearance,
+though by no means an old man in years, being hardly more than
+fifty. Why he should have withered away, as it were, into premature
+greyness, and loss of the muscle and energy of life, none knew;
+unless, indeed, his wife did know. But so it was. He had, one may
+say, all that a kind fortune could give him. He had a wife who was
+devoted to him; he had a son on whom he doted, and of whom all men
+said all good things; he had two sweet, happy daughters; he had a
+pleasant house, a fine estate, position and rank in the world. Had
+it so pleased him, he might have sat in Parliament without any of
+the trouble, and with very little of the expense, which usually
+attends aspirants for that honour. And, as it was, he might hope to
+see his son in Parliament within a year or two. For among other
+possessions of the Fitzgerald family was the land on which stands
+the borough of Kilcommon, a borough to which the old Reform Bill was
+merciful, as it was to so many others in the south of Ireland.
+
+Why, then, should Sir Thomas Fitzgerald be a silent, melancholy man,
+confining himself for the last year or two almost entirely to his
+own study; giving up to his steward the care even of his own demesne
+and farm; never going to the houses of his friends, and rarely
+welcoming them to his; rarely as it was, and never as it would have
+been, had he been always allowed to have his own way?
+
+People in the surrounding neighbourhood had begun to say that Sir
+Thomas's sorrow had sprung from shortness of cash, and that money
+was not so easily to be had at Castle Richmond now-a-days as was the
+case some ten years since. If this were so, the dearth of that very
+useful article could not have in any degree arisen from
+extravagance. It was well known that Sir Thomas's estate was large,
+being of a value, according to that public and well-authenticated
+rent-roll which the neighbours of a rich man always carry in their
+heads, amounting to twelve or fourteen thousand a-year. Now Sir
+Thomas had come into the unencumbered possession of this at an early
+age, and had never been extravagant himself or in his family. His
+estates were strictly entailed, and therefore, as he had only a life
+interest in them, it of course was necessary that he should save
+money and insure his life, to make provision for his daughters. But
+by a man of his habits and his property, such a burden as this could
+hardly have been accounted any burden at all. That he did, however,
+in this mental privacy of his carry some heavy burden, was made
+plain enough to all who knew him.
+
+And Lady Fitzgerald was in many things a counterpart of her husband,
+not in health so much as in spirits. She, also, was old for her age,
+and woebegone, not only in appearance, but also in the inner
+workings of her heart. But then it was known of her that she had
+undergone deep sorrows in her early youth, which had left their mark
+upon her brow, and their trace upon her inmost thoughts. Sir Thomas
+had not been her first husband. When very young, she nad been
+married, or rather, given in marriage, to a man who in a very few
+weeks after that ill-fated union had shown himself to be perfectly
+unworthy of her.
+
+Her story, or so much of it as was known to her friends, was this.
+Her father had been a clergyman in Dorsetshire, burdened with a
+small income, and blessed with a large family. She who afterwards
+became Lady Fitzgerald was his eldest child; and, as Miss Wainwright
+--Mary Wainwright--had grown up to be the possessor of almost
+perfect female loveliness. While she was yet very young, a widower
+with an only boy, a man who at that time was considerably less than
+thirty, had come into her father's parish, having rented there a
+small hunting-box. This gentleman--we will so call him, in lack of
+some other term--immediately became possessed of an establishment,
+at any rate eminently respectable. He had three hunters, two grooms,
+and a gig; and on Sundays went to church with a prayer-book in his
+hand, and a black coat on his back. What more could be desired to
+prove his respectability?
+
+He had not been there a month before he was intimate in the parson's
+house. Before two months had passed he was engaged to the parson's
+daughter. Before the full quarter had flown by, he and the parson's
+daughter were man and wife; and in five months from the time of his
+first appearance in the Dorsetshire parish, he had flown from his
+creditors, leaving behind him his three horses, his two grooms, his
+gig, his wife, and his little boy.
+
+The Dorsetshire neighbours, and especially the Dorsetshire ladies,
+had at first been loud in their envious exclamations as to Miss
+Wainwright's luck. The parson and the parson's wife, and poor Mary
+Wainwright herself, had, according to the sayings of that moment
+prevalent in the county, used most unjustifiable wiles in trapping
+this poor rich stranger. Miss Wainwright, as they all declared, had
+not clothes to her back when she went to him. The matter had been
+got up and managed in most indecent hurry, so as to rob the poor
+fellow of any chance of escape. And thus all manner of evil things
+were said, in which envy of the bride and pity of the bridegroom
+were equally commingled.
+
+But when the sudden news came that Mr Talbot had bolted, and when
+after a week's inquiry no one could tell whither Mr. Talbot had
+gone, the objurgations of the neighbours were expressed in a
+different tone. Then it was declared that Mr. Wainwright had
+sacrificed his beautiful child without making any inquiry as to the
+character of the stranger to whom he had so recklessly given her.
+The pity of the county fell to the share of the poor beautiful girl,
+whose welfare and happiness were absolutely ruined; and the parson
+was pulled to pieces for his sordid parsimony in having endeavoured
+to rid himself in so disgraceful a manner of the charge of one of
+his children.
+
+It would be beyond the scope of my story to tell here of the anxious
+family councils which were held in that parsonage parlour, during
+the time of that daughter's courtship. There had been misgivings as
+to the stability of the wooer; there had been an anxious wish not to
+lose for the penniless daughter the advantage of a wealthy match;
+the poor girl herself had been much cross-questioned as to her own
+feelings. But let them have been right, or let them have been wrong
+at that parsonage, the matter was settled, very speedily as we have
+seen; and Mary Wainwright became Mrs Talbot when she was still
+almost a child.
+
+And then Mr. Talbot bolted; and it became known to the Dorsetshire
+world that he had not paid a shilling for rent, or for butcher's
+meat for his human family, or for oats for his equine family, during
+the whole period of his sojourn at Chevychase Lodge. Grand
+references had been made to a London banker, which had been answered
+by assurances that Mr. Talbot was as good as the Bank of England.
+But it turned out that the assurances were forged, and that the
+letter of inquiry addressed to the London banker had been
+intercepted. In short, it was all ruin, roguery, and wretchedness.
+
+And very wretched they all were, the old father, the young bride,
+and all that parsonage household. After much inquiry something at
+last was discovered. The man had a sister whose whereabouts was made
+out; and she consented to receive the child--on condition that the
+bairn should not come to her empty-handed. In order to get rid of
+this burden, Mr. Wainwright with great difficulty made up thirty
+pounds.
+
+And then it was discovered that the man's name was not Talbot. What
+it was did not become known in Dorsetshire, for the poor wife
+resumed her maiden name--with very little right to do so, as her
+kind neighbours observed--till fortune so kindly gave her the
+privilege of bearing another honourably before the world.
+
+And then other inquiries, and almost endless search was made with
+reference to that miscreant--not quite immediately--for at the
+moment of the blow such search seemed to be but of little use; but
+after some months, when the first stupor arising from their grief
+had passed away, and when they once more began to find that the
+fields were still green, and the sun warm, and that God's goodness
+was not at an end.
+
+And the search was made not so much with reference to him as to his
+fate, for tidings had reached the parsonage that he was no more. The
+period was that in which Paris was occupied by the allied forces,
+when our general, the Duke of Wellington, was paramount in the
+French capital, and the Tuileries and Champs Elysees were swarming
+with Englishmen.
+
+Report at the time was brought home that the soidisant Talbot,
+fighting his battles under the name of Chichester, had been seen and
+noted in the gambling-houses of Paris; that he had been forcibly
+extruded from some such chamber for non-payment of a gambling debt;
+that he had made one in a violent fracas which had subsequently
+taken place in the French streets; and that his body had afterwards
+been identified in the Morgue.
+
+Such was the story which bit by bit reached Mr. Wainwright's ears,
+and at last induced him to go over to Paris, so that the absolute
+and proof-sustained truth of the matter might be ascertained, and
+made known to all men. The poor man's search was difficult and
+weary. The ways of Paris were not then so easy to an Englishman as
+they have since become, and Mr. Wainwright could not himself speak a
+word of French. But nevertheless he did learn much; so much as to
+justify him, as he thought, in instructing his daughter to wear a
+widow's cap. That Talbot had been kicked out of a gambling-house in
+the Rue Richelieu was absolutely proved. An acquaintance who had
+been with him in Dorsetshire on his first arrival there had seen
+this done; and bore testimony of the fact that the man so treated
+was the man who had taken the hunting-lodge in England. This same
+acquaintance had been one of the party adverse to Talbot in the row
+which had followed, and he could not, therefore, be got to say that
+he had seen him dead. But other evidence had gone to show that the
+man who had been so extruded was the man who had perished; and the
+French lawyer whom Mr. Wainwright had employed, at last assured the
+poor broken-hearted clergyman that he might look upon it as proved.
+"Had he not been dead," said the lawyer, "the inquiry which has been
+made would have traced him out alive." And thus his daughter was
+instructed to put on her widow's cap, and her mother again called
+her Mrs. Talbot.
+
+Indeed, at that time they hardly knew what to call her, or how to
+act in the wisest and most befitting manner. Among those who had
+truly felt for them in their misfortunes, who had really pitied them
+and encountered them with loving sympathy, the kindest and most
+valued friend had been the vicar of a neighbouring parish. He
+himself was a widower without children; but living with him at that
+time, and reading with him, was a young gentleman whose father was
+just dead, a baronet of large property, and an Irishman. This was
+Sir Thomas Fitzgerald.
+
+It need not now be told how this young man's sympathies were also
+excited, or how sympathy had grown into love. In telling our tale we
+fain would not dwell much on the cradledom of our Meleager. The
+young widow in her widow's cap grew to be more lovely than she had
+ever been before her miscreant husband had seen her. They who
+remembered her in those days told wondrous tales of her surprising
+loveliness;--how men from London would come down to see her in the
+parish church; how she was talked of as the Dorsetshire Venus, only
+that unlike Venus she would give a hearing to no man; how sad she
+was as well as lovely; and how impossible it was found to win a
+smile from her.
+
+But though she could not smile, she could love; and at last she
+accepted the love of the young baronet. And then the father, who had
+so grossly neglected his duty when he gave her in marriage to an
+unknown rascally adventurer, endeavoured to atone for such neglect
+by the severest caution with reference to this new suitor. Further
+inquiries were made. Sir Thomas went over to Paris himself with that
+other clergyman. Lawyers were employed in England to sift out the
+truth; and at last, by the united agreement of some dozen men, all
+of whom were known to be worthy, it was decided that Talbot was
+dead, and that his widow was free to choose another mate. Another
+mate she had already chosen, and immediately after this she was
+married to Sir Thomas Fitzgerald.
+
+Such was the early life-story of Lady Fitzgerald; and as this was
+widely known to those who lived around her--for how could such a
+life-story as that remain untold?--no one wondered why she should
+be gentle and silent in her life's course. That she had been an
+excellent wife, a kind and careful mother, a loving neighbour to the
+poor, and courteous neighbour to the rich, all the county Cork
+admitted. She had lived down envy by her gentleness and soft
+humility, and every one spoke of her and her retiring habits with
+sympathy and reverence.
+
+But why should her husband also be so sad--nay, so much sadder? For
+Lady Fitzgerald, though she was gentle and silent, was not a
+sorrowful woman--otherwise than she was made so by seeing her
+husband's sorrow. She had been to him a loving partner, and no man
+could more tenderly have returned a wife's love than he had done.
+One would say that all had run smoothly at Castle Richmond since the
+house had been made happy, after some years of waiting, by the birth
+of an eldest child and heir. But, nevertheless, those who knew most
+of Sir Thomas saw that there was a peacock on the wall.
+
+It is only necessary to say further a word or two as to the other
+ladies of the family, and hardly necessary to say that. Mary and
+Emmeline Fitzgerald were both cheerful girls. I do not mean that
+they were boisterous laughers, that in waltzing they would tear
+round a room like human steam-engines, that they rode well to hounds
+as some young ladies now-a-days do--and some young ladies do ride
+very well to hounds; nor that they affected slang, and decked their
+persons with odds and ends of masculine costume. In saying that they
+were cheerful, I by no means wish it to be understood that they were
+loud.
+
+They were pretty, too, but neither of them lovely, as their mother
+had been--hardly, indeed, so lovely as that pale mother was now,
+even in these latter days. Ah, how very lovely that pale mother was,
+as she sat still and silent in her own place on the small sofa by
+the slight, small table which she used! Her hair was grey, and her
+eyes sunken, and her lips thin and bloodless; but yet never shall I
+see her equal for pure feminine beauty, for form and outline, for
+passionless grace, and sweet, gentle, womanly softness. All her sad
+tale was written upon her brow; and its sadness and all its poetry.
+One could read there the fearful, all but fatal danger to which her
+childhood has been exposed, and the daily thanks with which she
+praised her God for having spared and saved her.
+
+But I am running back to the mother in attempting to say a word
+about her children. Of the two, Emmeline, the younger, was the more
+like her; but no one who was a judge of outline could imagine that
+Emmeline, at her mother's age, would ever have her mother's beauty.
+Nevertheless, they were fine, handsome girls, more popular in the
+neighbourhood than any of their neighbours, well educated, sensible,
+feminine, and useful; fitted to be the wives of good men.
+
+And what shall I say of Miss Letty? She was ten years older than her
+brother, and as strong as a horse. She was great at walking, and
+recommended that exercise strongly to all young ladies as an
+antidote to every ill, from love to chilblains. She was short and
+dapper in person; not ugly, excepting that her nose was long, and
+had a little bump or excrescence at the end of it. She always wore a
+bonnet, even at meal times; and was supposed by those who were not
+intimately acquainted with the mysteries of her toilet, to sleep in
+it; often, indeed, she did sleep in it, and gave unmusical evidence
+of her doing so. She was not ill-natured; but so strongly
+prejudiced on many points as to be equally disagreeable as though
+she were so. With her, as with the world in general, religion was
+the point on which those prejudices were the strongest; and the
+peculiar bent they took was horror and hatred of popery. As she
+lived in a country in which the Roman Catholic was the religion of
+all the poorer classes, and of very many persons who were not poor,
+there was ample scope in which her horror and hatred could work. She
+was charitable to a fault, and would exercise that charity for the
+good of Papists as willingly as for the good of Protestants; but in
+doing so she always remembered the good cause. She always clogged
+the flannel petticoat with some Protestant teaching, or burdened the
+little coat and trousers with the pains and penalties of idolatry.
+
+When her brother had married the widow Talbot, her anger with him
+and her hatred towards her sister-in-law had been extreme. But time
+and conviction had worked in her so thorough a change, that she now
+almost worshipped the very spot in which Lady Fitzgerald habitually
+sat. She had the faculty to know and recognize goodness when she saw
+it, and she had known and recognized it in her brother's wife.
+
+Him also, her brother himself, she warmly loved and greatly
+reverenced. She deeply grieved over his state of body and mind, and
+would have given all she ever had, even her very self, to restore
+him to health and happiness.
+
+The three children of course she loved, and petted, and scolded; and
+as children bothered them out of all their peace and quietness. To
+the girls she was still almost as great a torment as in their
+childish days. Nevertheless, they still loved, and sometimes obeyed
+her. Of Herbert she stood somewhat more in awe. He was the future
+head of the family, and already a Bachelor of Arts. In a very few
+years he would probably assume the higher title of a married man of
+arts, she thought; and perhaps the less formidable one of a member
+of Parliament also. Him, therefore, she treated with deference But,
+alas! what if he should become a Puseyite!
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+THE KANTURK HOTEL, SOUTH MAIN STREET, CORK
+
+
+
+
+
+All the world no doubt knows South Main Street in the city of Cork.
+In the "ould" ancient days, South and North Main Streets formed the
+chief thoroughfare through the city, and hence of course they
+derived their names. But now, since Patrick Street, and Grand
+Parade, and the South Mall have grown up, Main Street has but little
+honour. It is crowded with second-rate tobacconists and third-rate
+grocers; the houses are dirty, and the street is narrow; fashionable
+ladies never visit it for their shopping, nor would any respectable
+commercial gent stop at an inn within its purlieus.
+
+But here in South Main Street, at the time, of which I am writing,
+there was an inn, or public-house, called the Kanturk Hotel. In dear
+old Ireland they have some foibles, and one of them is a passion for
+high nomenclature. Those who are accustomed to the sort of
+establishments which are met with in England, and much more in
+Germany and Switzerland, under the name of hotels, might be
+surprised to see the place in South Main Street which had been
+dignified with the same appellation. It was a small, dingy house of
+three stories, the front door of which was always open, and the
+passage strewed with damp, dirty straw. On the left-hand side as you
+entered was a sitting-room, or coffee-room as it was announced to be
+by an appellation painted on the door. There was but one window to
+the room, which looked into the street, and was always clouded by a
+dingy-red curtain. The floor was uncarpeted, nearly black with dirt,
+and usually half covered with fragments of damp straw brought into
+it by the feet of customers. A strong smell of hot whisky and water
+always prevailed, and the straggling mahogany table in the centre of
+the room, whose rickety legs gave way and came off whenever an
+attempt was made to move it, was covered by small greasy circles,
+the impressions of the bottoms of tumblers which had been made by
+the overflowing tipple. Over the chimney there was a round mirror,
+the framework of which was bedizened with all manner of would-be
+gilt ornaments, which had been cracked, and twisted, and mended till
+it was impossible to know what they had been intended to represent;
+and the whole affair had become a huge receptacle of dust, which
+fell in flakes upon the chimney-piece when it was invaded. There was
+a second table opposite the window, more rickety than that in the
+centre; and against the wall opposite to the fireplace there was an
+old sideboard, in the drawers of which Tom, the one-eyed waiter,
+kept knives and forks, and candle-ends, and bits of bread, and
+dusters. There was a sour smell, as of old rancid butter, about the
+place, to which the guests sometimes objected, little inclined as
+they generally were to be fastidious. But this was a tender subject,
+and not often alluded to by those who wished to stand well in the
+good graces of Tom. Many things much annoyed Tom; but nothing
+annoyed him so fearfully as any assertion that the air of the
+Kanturk Hotel was not perfectly sweet and wholesome.
+
+Behind the coffee-room was the bar, from which Fanny O'Dwyer
+dispensed dandies of punch and goes of brandy to her father's
+customers from Kanturk. For at this, as at other similar
+public-houses in Irish towns, the greater part of the custom on
+which the publican depends came to him from the inhabitants of one
+particular country district. A large four-wheeled vehicle, called a
+long car, which was drawn by three horses, and travelled over a
+mountain road at the rate of four Irish miles an hour, came daily
+from Kanturk to Cork, and daily returned. This public conveyance
+stopped in Cork at the Kanturk Hotel, and was owned by the owner of
+that house, in partnership with a brother in the same trade located
+in Kanturk. It was Mr. O'Dwyer's business to look after this
+concern, to see to the passengers and the booking, the oats, and
+hay, and stabling, while his well-known daughter, the charming Fanny
+O'Dwyer, took care of the house, and dispensed brandy and whisky to
+the customers from Kanturk.
+
+To tell the truth, the bar was a much more alluring place than the
+coffee-room, and Fanny O'Dwyer a more alluring personage than Tom,
+the one-eyed waiter. This Elysium, however, was not open to all
+comers--not even to all comers from Kanturk. Those who had the right
+of entry well knew their privilege; and so also did they who had
+not. This sanctum was screened off from the passage by a window,
+which opened upwards conveniently, as is customary with bar-windows;
+but the window was blinded inside by a red curtain, so that Fanny's
+stool near the counter, her father's wooden armchair, and the old
+horsehair sofa on which favoured guests were wont to sit, were not
+visible to the public at large.
+
+Of the upstair portion of this establishment it is not necessary to
+say much. It professed to be an hotel, and accommodation for
+sleeping was to be obtained there; but the well-being of the house
+depended but little on custom of this class.
+
+Nor need I say much of the kitchen, a graphic description of which
+would not be pleasing. Here lived a cook, who, together with Tom the
+waiter, did all that servants had to do at the Kanturk Hotel. From
+this kitchen lumps of beef, mutton chops, and potatoes did
+occasionally emanate, all perfumed with plenteous onions; as also
+did fried eggs, with bacon an inch thick, and other culinary messes
+too horrible to be thought of. But drinking rather than eating was
+the staple of this establishment. Such was the Kanturk Hotel in
+South Main Street, Cork.
+
+It was on a disagreeable, cold, sloppy, raw, winter evening--an
+evening drizzling sometimes with rain, and sometimes with
+sleet--that an elderly man was driven up to the door of the hotel on
+a one-horse car--or jingle, as such conveniences were then called in
+the south of Ireland. He seemed to know the house, for with his
+outside coat all dripping as it was he went direct to the
+bar-window, and as Fanny O'Dwyer opened the door he walked into that
+warm precinct. There he encountered a gentleman, dressed one would
+say rather beyond the merits of the establishment, who was taking
+his ease at full length on Fanny's sofa, and drinking some hot
+compound which was to be seen in a tumbler on the chimney-shelf just
+above his head. It was now six o'clock in the evening, and the
+gentleman no doubt had dined.
+
+"Well, Aby; here I am, as large as life, but as cold as death. Ugh!
+what an affair that coach is! Fanny, my best of darlings, give me a
+drop of something that's best for warming the cockles of an old
+man's heart."
+
+"A young wife then is the best thing in life to do that, Mr.
+Mollett," said Fanny, sharply, preparing, however, at the same time
+some mixture which might be taken more instantaneously.
+
+"The governor's had enough of that receipt already," said the man on
+the sofa; or rather the man now off the sofa, for he had slowly
+arisen to shake hands with the new comer.
+
+This latter person proceeded to divest himself of his dripping
+greatcoat. "Here, Tom," said he, "bring your old Cyclops eye to bear
+this way, will you. Go and hang that up in the kitchen; not too near
+the fire, now; and get me something to eat: none of your mutton
+chops; but a beefsteak, if there is such a thing in this benighted
+place. Well, Aby, how goes on the war?"
+
+It was clear that the elderly gentleman was quite at home in his
+present quarters; for Tom, far from resenting such impertinence, as
+he would immediately have done had it proceeded from an ordinary
+Kanturk customer, declared "that he would do his honour's bidding av
+there was such a thing as a beefsteak to be had anywheres in the
+city of Cork."
+
+And indeed the elderly gentleman was a person of whom one might
+premise, judging by his voice and appearance, that he would probably
+make himself at home anywhere. He was a hale hearty man, of perhaps
+sixty years of age, who had certainly been handsome, and was even
+now not the reverse. Or rather, one may say, that he would have been
+so were it not that there was a low, restless, cunning legible in
+his mouth and eyes, which robbed his countenance of all manliness.
+He was a hale man, and well preserved for his time of life; but
+nevertheless, the extra rubicundity of his face, and certain
+incipient pimply excrescences about his nose, gave tokens that he
+lived too freely. He had lived freely; and were it not that his
+constitution had been more than ordinarily strong, and that constant
+exercise and exposure to air had much befriended him, those pimply
+excrescences would have shown themselves in a more advanced stage.
+Such was Mr. Mollett senior--Mr. Matthew Mollett, with whom it will
+be soon our fate to be better acquainted.
+
+The gentleman who had slowly risen from the sofa was his son, Mr.
+Mollett junior--Mr. Abraham Mollett, with whom also we shall become
+better acquainted. The father has been represented as not being
+exactly prepossessing; but the son, according to my ideas, was much
+less so. He also would be considered handsome by some persons--by
+women chiefly of the Fanny O'Dwyer class, whose eyes are capable of
+recognizing what is good in shape and form, but cannot recognize
+what is good in tone and character. Mr. Abraham Mollett was perhaps
+some thirty years of age, or rather more. He was a very smart man,
+with a profusion of dark, much-oiled hair, with dark, copious
+mustachoes--and mustachoes being then not common as they are now,
+added to his otherwise rakish, vulgar appearance--with various rings
+on his not well-washed hands, with a frilled front to his not lately
+washed shirt, with a velvet collar to his coat, and patent-leather
+boots upon his feet.
+
+Free living had told more upon him, young as he was, than upon his
+father. His face was not yet pimply, but it was red and bloated; his
+eyes were bloodshot and protruding; his hand on a morning was
+unsteady; and his passion for brandy was stronger than that for
+beefsteaks; whereas his father's appetite for solid food had never
+flagged. Those who were intimate with the family, and were observant
+of men, were wont to remark that the son would never fill the
+father's shoes. These family friends, I may perhaps add, were
+generally markers at billiard-tables, head grooms at race-courses,
+or other men of that sharp, discerning class. Seeing that I
+introduce these gentlemen to my readers at the Kanturk Hotel, in
+South Main Street, Cork, it may be perhaps as well to add that they
+were both Englishmen; so that mistakes on that matter may be
+avoided.
+
+The father, as soon as he had rid himself of his upper coat, his
+dripping hat, and his goloshes, stood up with his back to the
+bar-room fire, with his hands in his trousers-pockets, and the tails
+of his coat stuck inside his arms.
+
+"I tell you, Aby, it was cold enough outside that infernal coach.
+I'm blessed if I've a morsel of feeling in my toes yet. Why the
+d--don't they continue the railway on to Cork? It's as much as a
+man's life is worth to travel in that sort of way at this time of
+the year."
+
+"You'll have more of it, then, if you intend going out of town
+to-morrow," said the son.
+
+"Well; I don't know that I shall. I shall take a day to consider of
+it, I think."
+
+"Consideration be bothered," said Mollett, junior; "strike when the
+iron's hot, that's my motto."
+
+The father here turned half round to his son and winked at him,
+nodding his head slightly towards the girl, thereby giving token
+that, according to his ideas, the conversation could not be
+discreetly carried on before a third person.
+
+"All right," said the son, lifting his joram of brandy and water to
+his mouth; an action in which he was immediately imitated by his
+father, who had now received the means of doing so from the hands of
+the fair Fanny.
+
+"And how about a bed, my dear?" said Mollett senior; "that's a
+matter of importance too; or will be when we are getting on to the
+little hours."
+
+"Oh, we won't turn you out, Mr. Mollett," said Fanny; "we'll find a
+bed for you, never fear."
+
+"That's all right, then, my little Venus. And now if I had some
+dinner I'd sit down and make myself comfortable for the evening."
+
+As he said this Fanny slipped out of the room, and ran down into the
+kitchen to see what Tom and the cook were doing. The Molletts,
+father and son, were rather more than ordinary good customers at the
+Kanturk Hotel, and it was politic therefore to treat them well. Mr.
+Mollett junior, moreover, was almost more than a customer; and for
+the sake of the son Fanny was anxious that the father should be well
+treated.
+
+"Well, governor, and what have you done?" said the younger man in a
+low voice, jumping up from his seat as soon as the girl had left
+them alone.
+
+"Well, I've got the usual remittance from the man in Bucklersbury.
+That was all as right as a trivet."
+
+"And no more than that? Then I tell you what it is; we must be down
+on him at once."
+
+"But you forget that I got as much more last month, out of the usual
+course. Come, Aby, don't you be unreasonable."
+
+"Bother--I tell you, governor, if he don't----" And then Miss
+O'Dwyer returned to her sanctum, and the rest of the conversation
+was necessarily postponed.
+
+"He's managed to get you a lovely steak, Mr. Mollett," said Fanny,
+pronouncing the word as though it were written "steek." "And we've
+beautiful pickled walnuts; haven't we, Mr. Aby? and there'll be
+kidneys biled" (meaning potatoes) "by the time the 'steek's' ready.
+You like it with the gravy in, don't you, Mr. Mollett?" And as she
+spoke she drew a quartern of whisky for two of Beamish and
+Crawford's draymen, who stood outside in the passage and drank it at
+the bar.
+
+The lovely "steek" with the gravy in it--that is to say, nearly
+raw--was now ready, and father and son adjourned to the next room.
+"Well, Tom, my lad of wax; and how's the world using you?" said Mr.
+Mollett senior.
+
+"There ain't much difference, then," said Tom; "I ain't no younger,
+nor yet no richer than when yer honour left us--and what is't to be,
+sir?--a pint of stout, sir?"
+
+As soon as Mr. Mollett senior had finished his dinner, and Tom had
+brought the father and son materials for making whisky-punch, they
+both got their knees together over the fire, and commenced the
+confidential conversation which Miss O'Dwyer had interrupted on her
+return to the bar-room. They spoke now almost in a whisper, with
+their heads together over the fender, knowing from experience that
+what Tom wanted in eyes he made up in ears.
+
+"And what did Prendergast say when he paid you the rhino?" asked the
+son.
+
+"Not a word," said the other. "After all, I don't think he knows any
+more than a ghost what he pays it for: I think he gets fresh
+instructions every time. But, any ways, there it was, all right."
+
+"Hall right, indeed! I do believe you'd be satisfied to go on
+getting a few dribblets now and then like that. And then if anything
+'appened to you, why I might go fish."
+
+"How, Aby, look here--"
+
+"It's hall very well, governor; but I'll tell you what. Since you
+started off I've been thinking a good deal about it, and I've made
+up my mind that this shilly-shallying won't do any good: we must
+strike a blow that'll do something for us."
+
+"Well, I don't think we've done so bad already, taking it
+all-in-all."
+
+"Ah, that's because you haven't the pluck to strike a good blow.
+Now, I'll just let you know what I propose--and I tell you fairly,
+governor, if you'll not hear reason, I'll take the game into my own
+hands."
+
+The father looked up from his drink and scowled at his son, but said
+nothing in answer to this threat.
+
+"By G--I will!" continued Aby. "It's no use 'umbugging, and I mean
+to make myself understood. While you've been gone I've been down to
+that place."
+
+"You 'aven't seen the old man?"
+
+"No; I 'aven't taken that step yet; but I think it's very likely I
+may before long if you won't hear reason."
+
+"I was a d---fool, Aby, ever to let you into the affair at all.
+It's been going on quiet enough for the last ten years, till I let
+you into the secret."
+
+"Well, never mind about that. That mischief's done. But I think
+you'll find I'll pull you through a deal better than hever you'd
+have pulled through yourself. You're already making twice more out
+of it than you did before I knew it. As I was saying, I went down
+there; and in my quiet way I did just venture on a few hinquiries."
+
+"I'll be bound you did. You'll blow it all in about another month,
+and then it'll be up with the lot of us."
+
+"It's a beautiful place: a lovely spot; and hall in prime horder.
+They say it's fifteen thousand a-year, and that there's not a
+shilling howing on the whole property. Even in these times the
+tenants are paying the rent, when no one else, far and near, is
+getting a penny out of them. I went by another place on the road
+--Castle Desmond they call it, and I wish you'd seen the difference.
+The old boy must be rolling in money."
+
+"I don't believe it. There's one as I can trust has told me he's
+hard up enough sometimes. Why, we've had twelve hundred in the last
+eight months."
+
+"Twelve hundred! and what's that? But, dickens, governor, where has
+the twelve hundred gone? I've only seen three of it, and part of
+that--. Well; what do you want there, you long-eared shark, you?"
+These last words were addressed to Tom, who had crept into the room,
+certainly without much preparatory noise.
+
+"I was only wanting the thingumbob, yer honour," said Tom,
+pretending to search diligently in the drawer for some required
+article.
+
+"Then take your thingumbob quickly out of that, and be d---to you.
+And look here; if you don't knock at the door when next you come in,
+by heavens I'll throw this tumbler at your yead."
+
+"Sure and I will, yer honour," said Tom, withdrawing.
+
+"And where on hearth has the twelve hundred pounds gone?" asked the
+son, looking severely at the father.
+
+Old Mr. Mollett made no immediate answer in words, but putting his
+left hand to his right elbow, began to shake it.
+
+"I do wonder that you keep hon at that work," said Mollett junior,
+reproachfully. "You never by any chance have a stroke of luck."
+
+"Well, I have been unfortunate lately; but who knows what's coming?
+And I was deucedly sold by those fellows at the October meeting. If
+any chap ever was safe, I ought to have been safe then; but hang me
+if I didn't drop four hundred of Sir Thomas's shiners coolly on the
+spot. That was the only big haul I've had out of him all at once;
+and the most of it went like water through a sieve within
+forty-eight hours after I touched it." And then, having finished
+this pathetical little story of his misfortune, Mr. Mollett senior
+finished his glass of toddy.
+
+"It's the way of the world, governor; and it's no use sighing after
+spilt milk. But I'll tell you what I propose; and if you don't like
+the task yourself, I have no hobjection in life to take it into my
+own hands. You see the game's so much our own that there's nothing
+on hearth for us to fear."
+
+"I don't know that. If we were all blown, where should we be--"
+
+"Why, she's your own--"
+
+"H-h-sh, Aby. There's that confounded long-eared fellow at the
+keyhole, as sure as my name's Matthew; and if he hears you, the
+game's all up with a vengeance."
+
+"Lord bless you, what could he hear? Besides, talking as we are now,
+he wouldn't catch a word even if he were in the room itself. And now
+I'll tell you what it is; do you go down yourself, and make your way
+into the hold gentleman's room. Just send your own name in boldly.
+Nobody will know what that means, except himself."
+
+"I did that once before; and I never shall forget it."
+
+"Yes, you did it once before, and you have had a steady income to
+live on ever since; not such an income as you might have had. Not
+such an income as will do for you and me, now that we both know so
+well what a fine property we have under our thumbs. But,
+nevertheless, that little visit has been worth something to you."
+
+"Upon my word, Aby, I never suffered so much as I did that day. I
+didn't know till then that I had a soft heart."
+
+"Soft heart! Oh, bother. Such stuff as that always makes me sick. If
+I 'ate anything, it's maudlin. Your former visit down there did very
+well, and now you must make another, or else, by the holy poker!
+I'll make it for you."
+
+"And what would you have me say to him if I did manage to see him?"
+
+"Perhaps I'd better go--"
+
+"That's out of the question. He wouldn't see you, or understand who
+you were. And then you'd make a row, and it would all come out, and
+the fat would be in the fire."
+
+"Well, I guess I should not take it quite quiet if they didn't treat
+me as a gentleman should be treated. I ain't always over-quiet if
+I'm put upon."
+
+"If you go near that house at all I'll have done with it. I'll give
+up the game."
+
+"Well, do you go, at any rate first. Perhaps it may be well that I
+should follow after with a reminder. Do you go down, and just tell
+him this, quite coolly, remember--"
+
+"Oh, I shall be cool enough."
+
+"That, considering hall things, you think he and you ought to--"
+
+"Well?"
+
+"Just divide it between you; share and share alike. Say it's
+fourteen thousand--and it's more than that--that would be seven for
+him and seven for you. Tell him you'll agree to that, but you won't
+take one farthing less."
+
+"Aby!" said the father, almost overcome by the grandeur of his son's
+ideas.
+
+"Well; and what of Haby? What's the matter now?"
+
+"Expect him to shell out seven thousand pounds a-year!"
+
+"And why not? He'll do a deal more than that, I expect, if he were
+quite sure that it would make all things serene. But it won't; and
+therefore you must make him another hoffer."
+
+"Another offer!"
+
+"Yes. He'll know well enough that you'll be thinking of his death.
+And for all they do say he might pop off any day."
+
+"He's a younger man than me, Aby, by full ten years."
+
+"What of that? You may pop off any day too, mayn't you? I believe
+you old fellows don't think of dying nigh as hoften as we young
+ones."
+
+"You young ones are always looking for us old ones to go. We all
+know that well enough."
+
+"That's when you've got anything to leave behind you, which hain't
+the case with you, governor, just at present. But what I was saying
+is this. He'll know well enough that you can split upon his son
+hafter he's gone, every bit as well as you can split on him now."
+
+"Oh, I always looked to make the young gentleman pay up handsome, if
+so be the old gentleman went off the hooks. And if so be he and I
+should go off together like, why you'd carry on, of course. You'll
+have the proofs, you know."
+
+"Oh, I should, should I? Well, we'll look to them by-and-by. But
+I'll tell you what, governor, the best way is to make all that safe.
+We'll make him another hoffer--for a regular substantial family
+harrangement--"
+
+"A family arrangement, eh?"
+
+"Yes; that's the way they always manage things when great family
+hinterests is at stake. Let him give us a cool seven thousand a-year
+between us while he's alive; let him put you down for twenty
+thousand when he's dead--that'd come out of the young gentleman's
+share of the property, of course--and then let him give me his
+daughter Hemmeline, with another twenty thousand tacked on to her
+skirt-tail. I should be mum then for hever for the honour of the
+family."
+
+The father for a moment or two was struck dumb by the magnitude of
+his son's proposition. "That's what I call playing the game firm,"
+continued the son. "Do you lay down your terms before him,
+substantial, and then stick to 'em. 'Them's my terms, Sir Thomas,'
+you'll say. 'If you don't like 'em, as I can't halter, why in course
+I'll go elsewhere.' Do you be firm to that, and you'll see how the
+game'll go."
+
+"And you think he'll give you his daughter in marriage?"
+
+"Why not? I'm honest born, hain't I? And she's a bastard."
+
+"But, Aby, you don't know what sort of people these are. You don't
+know what her breeding has been."
+
+"D---her breeding. I know this: she'd get a deuced pretty fellow
+for her husband, and one that girls as good as her has hankered
+hafter long enough. It won't do, governor, to let people as is in
+their position pick and choose like. We've the hupper hand, and we
+must do the picking and choosing."
+
+"She'd never have you, Aby; not if her father went down on his knees
+to her to ask her."
+
+"Oh, wouldn't she? By heaven, then, she shall, and that without any
+kneeling at all. She shall have me, and be deuced glad to take me.
+What! she'd refuse a fellow like me when she knows that she and all
+belonging to her'd be turned into the streets if she don't have me!
+I'm clear of another way of thinking, then. My opinion is she'd come
+to me jumping. I'll tell you what, governor, you don't know the
+sex."
+
+Mr. Mollett senior upon this merely shook his head. Perhaps the fact
+was that he knew the sex somewhat better than his son. It had been
+his fate during a portion of his life to live among people who were,
+or ought to have been, gentlemen. He might have been such himself
+had he not gone wrong in life from the very starting-post. But his
+son had had no such opportunities. He did know and could know
+nothing about ladies and gentlemen.
+
+"You're mistaken, Aby," said the old man. "They'd never suffer you
+to come among them on such a footing as that. They'd sooner go forth
+to the world as beggars."
+
+"Then, by G--! they shall go forth as beggars. I've said it now,
+father, and I'll stick to it. You know the stuff I'm made of." As he
+finished speaking, he swallowed down the last half of a third glass
+of hot spirits and water, and then glared on his father with angry,
+blood-shot eyes, and a red, almost lurid face. The unfortunate
+father was beginning to know the son, and to feel that his son would
+become his master.
+
+Shortly after this they were interrupted; and what further
+conversation they had on the matter that night took place in their
+joint bedroom; to which uninviting retreat it is not now necessary
+that we should follow them.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+THE FAMINE YEAR
+
+
+
+
+
+They who were in the south of Ireland during the winter of 1846-47
+will not readily forget the agony of that period. For many, many
+years preceding and up to that time, the increasing swarms of the
+country had been fed upon the potato, and upon the potato only; and
+now all at once the potato failed them, and the greater part of
+eight million human beings were left without food.
+
+The destruction of the potato was the work of God; and it was
+natural to attribute the sufferings which at once overwhelmed the
+unfortunate country to God's anger--to his wrath for the misdeeds of
+which that country had been guilty. For myself, I do not believe in
+such exhibitions of God's anger. When wars come, and pestilence, and
+famine; when the people of a land are worse than decimated, and the
+living hardly able to bury the dead, I cannot coincide with those
+who would deprecate God's wrath by prayers. I do not believe that
+our God stalks darkly along the clouds, laying thousands low with
+the arrows of death, and those thousands the most ignorant, because
+men who are not ignorant have displeased Him. Nor, if in his wisdom
+He did do so, can I think that men's prayers would hinder that which
+his wisdom had seen to be good and right.
+
+But though I do not believe in exhibitions of God's anger, I do
+believe in exhibitions of his mercy. When men by their folly and by
+the shortness of their vision have brought upon themselves penalties
+which seem to be overwhelming, to which no end can be seen, which
+would be overwhelming were no aid coming to us but our own, then God
+raises his hand, not in anger, but in mercy, and by his wisdom does
+for us that for which our own wisdom has been insufficient.
+
+But on no Christian basis can I understand the justice or
+acknowledge the propriety of asking our Lord to abate his wrath in
+detail, or to alter his settled purpose. If He be wise, would we
+change his wisdom? If He be merciful, would we limit his mercy?
+There comes upon us some strange disease, and we bid Him to stay his
+hand. But the disease, when it has passed by, has taught us lessons
+of cleanliness, which no master less stern would have made
+acceptable. A famine strikes us, and we again beg that that hand may
+be stayed;--beg as the Greeks were said to beg when they thought
+that the anger of Phoebus was hot against them because his priest
+had been dishonoured. We so beg, thinking that God's anger is hot
+also against us. But, lo! the famine passes by, and a land that had
+been brought to the dust by man's folly is once more prosperous and
+happy.
+
+If this was ever so in the world's history, it was so in Ireland at
+the time of which I am speaking. The country, especially in the
+south and west, had been brought to a terrible pass;--not, as so
+many said and do say, by the idolatry of popery, or by the sedition
+of demagogues, or even mainly by the idleness of the people. The
+idolatry of popery, to my way of thinking, is bad; though not so bad
+in Ireland as in most other Papist countries that I have visited.
+Sedition also is bad; but in Ireland, in late years, it has not been
+deep-seated--as may have been noted at Ballingarry and other
+places, where endeavour was made to bring sedition to its proof. And
+as for the idleness of Ireland's people, I am inclined to think they
+will work under the same compulsion and same persuasion which
+produce work in other countries.
+
+The fault had been the lowness of education and consequent want of
+principle among the middle classes; and this fault had been found as
+strongly marked among the Protestants as it had been among the Roman
+Catholics. Young men were brought up to do nothing. Property was
+regarded as having no duties attached to it. Men became rapacious,
+and determined to extract the uttermost farthing out of the land
+within their power, let the consequences to the people on that land
+be what they might.
+
+We used to hear much of absentees. It was not the absence of the
+absentees that did the damage, but the presence of those they left
+behind them on the soil. The scourge of Ireland was the existence of
+a class who looked to be gentlemen living on their property, but who
+should have earned their bread by the work of their brain, or,
+failing that, by the sweat of their brow. There were men to be found
+in shoals through the country speaking of their properties and
+boasting of their places, but who owned no properties and had no
+places when the matter came to be properly sifted.
+
+Most Englishmen have heard of profit-rent. In Ireland the term is so
+common that no man cannot have heard of it. It may, of course,
+designate a very becoming sort of income. A man may, for instance,
+take a plot of land for one hundred pounds a-year, improve and build
+on it till it be fairly worth one thousand pounds a-year, and thus
+enjoy a profit-rent of nine hundred pounds. Nothing can be better or
+fairer. But in Ireland the management was very different. Men there
+held tracts of ground, very often at their full value, paying for
+them such proportion of rent as a farmer could afford to pay in
+England and live. But the Irish tenant would by no means consent to
+be a farmer. It was needful to him that he should be a gentleman,
+and that his sons should be taught to live and amuse themselves as
+the sons of gentlemen--barring any such small trifle as education.
+They did live in this way; and to enable them to do so, they
+underlet their land in small patches, and at an amount of rent to
+collect which took the whole labour of their tenants, and the whole
+produce of the small patch, over and above the quantity of potatoes
+absolutely necessary to keep that tenant's body and soul together.
+
+And thus a state of things was engendered in Ireland which
+discouraged labour, which discouraged improvements in farming, which
+discouraged any produce from the land except the potato crop; which
+maintained one class of men in what they considered to be the
+gentility of idleness, and another class, the people of the country,
+in the abjectness of poverty.
+
+It is with thorough rejoicing, almost with triumph, that I declare
+that the idle, genteel class has been cut up root and branch, has
+been driven forth out of its holding into the wide world, and has
+been punished with the penalty of extermination. The poor cotter
+suffered sorely under the famine, and under the pestilence which
+followed the famine; but he, as a class, has risen from his bed of
+suffering a better man. He is thriving as a labourer either in his
+own country or in some newer--for him better--land to which he has
+emigrated. He, even in Ireland, can now get eight and nine shillings
+a-week easier and with more constancy than he could get four some
+fifteen years since. But the other man has gone, and his place is
+left happily vacant.
+
+There are an infinite number of smaller bearings in which this
+question of the famine, and of agricultural distress in Ireland, may
+be regarded, and should be regarded by those who wish to understand
+it. The manner in which the Poor Law was first rejected and then
+accepted, and then, if one may say so, swallowed whole by the
+people; the way in which emigration has affected them; the
+difference in the system of labour there from that here, which in
+former days was so strong that an agricultural labourer living on
+his wages and buying food with them, was a person hardly to be
+found: all these things must be regarded by one who would understand
+the matter. But seeing that this book of mine is a novel, I have
+perhaps already written more on a dry subject than many will read.
+
+Such having been the state of the country, such its wretchedness, a
+merciful God sent the remedy which might avail to arrest it; and
+we--we deprecated his wrath. But all this will soon be known and
+acknowledged; acknowledged as it is acknowledged that new cities
+rise up in splendour from the ashes into which old cities have been
+consumed by fire. If this beneficent agency did not from time to
+time disencumber our crowded places, we should ever be living in
+narrow alleys with stinking gutters, and supply of water at the
+minimum.
+
+But very frightful are the flames as they rush through the chambers
+of the poor, and very frightful was the course of that violent
+remedy which brought Ireland out of its misfortunes. Those who saw
+its course, and watched its victims, will not readily forget what
+they saw.
+
+Slowly, gradually, and with a voice that was for a long time
+discredited, the news spread itself through the country that the
+food of the people was gone. That his own crop was rotten and
+useless each cotter quickly knew, and realized the idea that he must
+work for wages if he could get them, or else go to the poorhouse.
+That the crop of his parish or district was gone became evident to
+the priest, and the parson, and the squire; and they realized the
+idea that they must fall on other parishes or other districts for
+support. But it was long before the fact made itself known that
+there was no food in any parish, in any district.
+
+When this was understood, men certainly did put their shoulders to
+the wheel with a great effort. Much abuse at the time was thrown
+upon the government; and they who took upon themselves the
+management of the relief of the poor in the south-west were taken
+most severely to task. I was in the country, travelling always
+through it, during the whole period, and I have to say--as I did say
+at the time with a voice that was not very audible--that in my
+opinion the measures of the government were prompt, wise, and
+beneficent; and I have to say also that the efforts of those who
+managed the poor were, as a rule, unremitting, honest, impartial,
+and successful.
+
+The feeding of four million starving people with food, to be brought
+from foreign lands, is not an easy job. No government could bring
+the food itself; but by striving to do so it might effectually
+prevent such bringing on the part of others. Nor when the food was
+there, on the quays, was it easy to put it, in due proportions, into
+the four million mouths. Some mouths, and they, alas! the weaker
+ones, would remain unfed. But the opportunity was a good one for
+slashing philanthropical censure; and then the business of the
+slashing, censorious philanthropist is so easy, so exciting, and so
+pleasant!
+
+I think that no portion of Ireland suffered more severely during the
+famine than the counties Cork and Kerry. The poorest parts were
+perhaps the parishes lying back from the sea and near to the
+mountains; and in the midst of such a district Desmond Court was
+situated. The region immediately round Castle Richmond was perhaps
+better. The tenants there had more means at their disposal, and did
+not depend so absolutely on the potato crop; but even round Castle
+Richmond the distress was very severe.
+
+Early in the year relief committees were formed, on one of which
+young Herbert Fitzgerald agreed to act. His father promised, and was
+prepared to give his best assistance, both by money and countenance;
+but he pleaded that the state of his health hindered him from active
+exertion, and therefore his son came forward in his stead on this
+occasion, as it appeared probable that he would do on all others
+having reference to the family property.
+
+This work brought people together who would hardly have met but for
+such necessity. The priest and the parson of a parish, men who had
+hitherto never been in a room together, and between whom neither had
+known anything of the other but the errors of his doctrine, found
+themselves fighting for the same object at the same board, and each
+for the moment laid aside his religious ferocity. Gentlemen, whose
+ancestors had come over with Strongbow, or maybe even with Milesius,
+sat cheek by jowl with retired haberdashers, concerting new soup
+kitchens, and learning on what smallest modicum of pudding made from
+Indian corn a family of seven might be kept alive, and in such
+condition that the father at least might be able to stand upright.
+
+The town of Kanturk was the headquarters of that circle to which
+Herbert Fitzgerald was attached, in which also would have been
+included the owner of Desmond Court, had there been an owner of an
+age to undertake such work. But the young earl was still under
+sixteen, and the property was represented, as far as any
+representation was made, by the countess.
+
+But even in such a work as this, a work which so strongly brought
+out what there was of good among the upper classes, there was food
+for jealousy and ill will. The name of Owen Fitzgerald at this time
+did not stand high in the locality of which we are speaking. Men had
+presumed to talk both to him and of him, and he replied to their
+censures by scorn. He would not change his mode of living for them,
+or allow them to believe that their interference could in any way
+operate upon his conduct. He had therefore affected a worse
+character for morals than he had perhaps truly deserved, and had
+thus thrown off from him all intimacy with many of the families
+among whom he lived.
+
+When, therefore, he had come forward as others had done, offering to
+join his brother-magistrates and the clergyman of the district in
+their efforts, they had, or he had thought that they had, looked
+coldly on him. His property was halfway between Kanturk and Mallow;
+and when this occurred he turned his shoulder upon the former place,
+and professed to act with those whose meetings were held at the
+latter town. Thus he became altogether divided from that Castle
+Richmond neighbourhood to which he was naturally attached by old
+intimacies and family ties.
+
+It was a hard time this for the poor countess. I have endeavoured to
+explain that the position in which she had been left with regard to
+money was not at any time a very easy one. She possessed high rank
+and the name of a countess, but very little of that wealth which
+usually constitutes the chief advantage of such rank and name. But
+now such means as had been at her disposal were terribly crippled.
+There was no poorer district than that immediately around her, and
+none, therefore, in which the poor rates rose to a more fearful
+proportion of the rent. The country was, and for that matter still
+is, divided, for purposes of poor-law rating, into electoral
+districts. In ordinary times a man, or at any rate a lady, may live
+and die in his or her own house without much noticing the limits or
+peculiarities of each district. In one the rate may be one and a
+penny in the pound, in another only a shilling. But the difference
+is not large enough to create inquiry. It is divided between the
+landlord and the tenant, and neither perhaps thinks much about it.
+But when the demand made rises to seventeen or eighteen shillings in
+the pound--as was the case in some districts in those days,--when
+out of every pound of rent that he paid the tenant claimed to deduct
+nine shillings for poor rates, that is, half the amount levied--then
+a landlord becomes anxious enough as to the peculiarities of his own
+electoral division.
+
+In the case of Protestant clergymen, the whole rate had to be paid
+by the incumbent. A gentleman whose half-yearly rent-charge amounted
+to perhaps two hundred pounds might have nine tenths of that sum
+deducted from him for poor rates. I have known a case in which the
+proportion has been higher than this.
+
+And then the tenants in such districts began to decline to pay any
+rent at all--in very many cases could pay no rent at all. They, too,
+depended on the potatoes which were gone; they, too, had been
+subject to those dreadful demands for poor rates; and thus a
+landlord whose property was in any way embarrassed had but a bad
+time of it. The property from which Lady Desmond drew her income had
+been very much embarrassed; and for her the times were very bad.
+
+In such periods of misfortune, a woman has always some friend. Let
+her be who she may, some pair of broad shoulders is forthcoming on
+which may be laid so much of the burden as is by herself unbearable.
+It is the great privilege of womanhood, that which compensates them
+for the want of those other privileges which belong exclusively to
+manhood--sitting in Parliament, for instance, preaching sermons, and
+going on 'Change.
+
+At this time Lady Desmond would doubtless have chosen the shoulders
+of Owen Fitzgerald for the bearing of her burden, had he not turned
+against her, as he had done. But now there was no hope of that.
+Those broad shoulders had burdens of their own to bear of another
+sort, and it was at any rate impossible that he should come to share
+those of Desmond Court.
+
+But a champion was forthcoming; one, indeed, whose shoulders were
+less broad; on looking at whose head and brow Lady Desmond could not
+forget her years as she had done while Owen Fitzgerald had been near
+her;--but a champion, nevertheless, whom she greatly prized. This
+was Owen's cousin, Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+"Mamma," her daughter said to her one evening, as they were sitting
+together in the only room which they now inhabited. "Herbert wants
+us to go to that place near Kilcommon to-morrow, and says he will
+send the car at two. I suppose I can go?"
+
+There were two things that Lady Desmond noticed in this: first, that
+her daughter should have called young Mr. Fitzgerald by his
+Christian name; and secondly, that it should have come to that with
+them, that a Fitzgerald should send a vehicle for a Desmond, seeing
+that the Desmond could no longer provide a vehicle for herself.
+
+"You could have had the pony-chair, my dear."
+
+"Oh no, mamma; I would not do that." The pony was now the only
+quadruped kept for the countess's own behoof; and the young earl's
+hunter was the only other horse in the Desmond Court stables. "I
+wouldn't do that, mamma; Mary and Emmeline will not mind coming
+round."
+
+"But they will have to come round again to bring you back."
+
+"Yes, mamma. Herbert said they wouldn't mind it. We want to see how
+they are managing at the new soup kitchen they have there. That one
+at Clady is very bad. The boiler won't boil at all."
+
+"Very well, my dear; only mind you wrap yourself up."
+
+"Oh yes; I always do."
+
+"But, Clara--" and Lady Desmond put on her sweetest, smoothest smile
+as she spoke to her daughter.
+
+"Yes, mamma."
+
+"How long have you taken to call young Mr. Fitzgerald by his
+Christian name?"
+
+"Oh, I never do, mamma," said Clara, with a blush all over her face;
+"not to himself, I mean. You see, Mary and Emmeline are always
+talking about him."
+
+"And therefore you mean always to talk about him also."
+
+"No, mamma. But one can't help talking about him; he is doing so
+much for these poor people. I don't think he ever thinks about
+anything else from morning to night. Emmeline says he always goes to
+it again after dinner. Don't you think he is very good about it,
+mamma?"
+
+"Yes, my dear; very good indeed; almost good enough to be called
+Herbert."
+
+"But I don't call him so; you know I don't," protested Clara, very
+energetically.
+
+"He is very good," continued the countess; "very good indeed. I
+don't know what on earth we should do without him. If he were my own
+son, he could hardly be more attentive to me."
+
+"Then I may go with the girls to that place? I always forget the
+name,"
+
+"Gortnaclough, you mean."
+
+"Yes, mamma. It is all Sir Thomas's property there; and they have
+got a regular kitchen, beautifully built, Her--Mr. Fitzgerald says,
+with a regular cook. I do wish we could have one at Clady."
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald will be here to-morrow morning, and I will talk to
+him about it. I fear we have not sufficient funds there."
+
+"No; that's just it. I do wish I had some money now. You won't mind
+if I am not home quite early? We all mean to dine there at the
+kitchen. The girls will bring something, and then we can stay out
+the whole afternoon."
+
+"It won't do for you to be out after nightfall, Clara."
+
+"No, I won't, mamma. They did want me to go home with them to Castle
+Richmond for to-morrow night; but I declined that," and Clara
+uttered a slight sigh, as though she had declined something that
+would have been very pleasant to her.
+
+"And why did you decline it?"
+
+"Oh, I don't know. I didn't know whether you would like it; and
+besides--"
+
+"Besides what?"
+
+"You'd be here all alone, mamma."
+
+The countess got up from her chair and coming over to the place
+where her daughter was sitting, kissed her on her forehead. "In such
+a matter as that, I don't want you to think of me, my dear. I would
+rather you went out. I must remain here in this horrid, dull,
+wretched place; but that is no reason why you should be buried
+alive. I would much rather that you went out sometimes."
+
+"No, mamma; I will remain with you."
+
+"It will be quite right that you should go to Castle Richmond
+to-morrow. If they send their carriage round here for you--"
+
+"It'll only be the car."
+
+"Well, the car; and if the girls come all that way out of their road
+in the morning to pick you up, it will be only civil that you should
+go back by Castle Richmond, and you would enjoy an evening there
+with the girls very much."
+
+"But I said decidedly that I would not go."
+
+"Tell them to-morrow as decidedly that you have changed your mind,
+and will be delighted to accept their invitation. They will
+understand that it is because you have spoken to me."
+
+"But, mamma--"
+
+"You will like going; will you not?"
+
+"Yes; I shall like it."
+
+And so that matter was settled. On the whole, Lady Desmond was
+inclined to admit within her own heart that her daughter had behaved
+very well in that matter of the banishment of Owen Fitzgerald. She
+knew that Clara had never seen him, and had refused to open his
+letters. Very little had been said upon the subject between the
+mother and daughter. Once or twice Owen's name had been mentioned;
+and once, when it had been mentioned, with heavy blame on account of
+his alleged sins, Clara had ventured to take his part.
+
+"People delight to say ill-natured things," she had said; "but one
+is not obliged to believe them all."
+
+From that time Lady Desmond had never mentioned his name, rightly
+judging that Clara would be more likely to condemn him in her own
+heart if she did not hear him condemned by others: and so the mother
+and daughter had gone on, as though the former had lost no friend,
+and the latter had lost no lover.
+
+For some time after the love adventure, Clara had been pale and
+drooping, and the countess had been frightened about her; but
+latterly she had got over this. The misfortune which had fallen so
+heavily upon them all seemed to have done her good. She had devoted
+herself from the first to do her little quota of work towards
+lessening the suffering around her, and the effort had been salutary
+to her.
+
+Whether or no in her heart of hearts she did still think of Owen
+Fitzgerald, her mother was unable to surmise. From the fire which
+had flashed from her eyes on that day when she accused the world of
+saying ill-natured things of him, Lady Desmond had been sure that
+such was the case. But she had never ventured to probe her child's
+heart. She had given very little confidence to Clara, and could not,
+therefore, and did not expect confidence in return.
+
+Nor was Clara a girl likely in such a matter to bestow confidence on
+any one. She was one who could hold her heart full, and yet not
+speak of her heart's fulness. Her mother had called her a child, and
+in some respects she then was so; but this childishness had been
+caused, not by lack of mental power, but want of that conversation
+with others which is customary to girls of her age. This want had in
+some respects made her childish; for it hindered her from expressing
+herself in firm tones, and caused her to blush and hesitate when she
+spoke. But in some respects it had the opposite effect, and made her
+older than her age, for she was thoughtful, silent, and patient of
+endurance.
+
+Latterly, since this dreary famine-time had come upon them, an
+intimacy had sprung up between Clara and the Castle Richmond girls,
+and in a measure, too, between Clara and Herbert Fitzgerald. Lady
+Desmond had seen this with great pleasure. Though she had objected
+to Owen Fitzgerald for her daughter, she had no objection to the
+Fitzgerald name. Herbert was his father's only son, and heir to the
+finest property in the county--at any rate, to the property which at
+present was the best circumstanced. Owen Fitzgerald could never be
+more than a little squire, but Herbert would be a baronet. Owen's
+utmost ambition would be to live at Hap House all his life, and die
+the oracle of the Duhallow hunt; but Herbert would be a member of
+Parliament, with a house in London. A daughter of the house of
+Desmond might marry the heir of Sir Thomas Fitzgerald, and be
+thought to have done well; whereas, she would disgrace herself by
+becoming the mistress of Hap House. Lady Desmond, therefore, had
+been delighted to see this intimacy.
+
+It had been in no spirit of fault-finding that she had remarked to
+her daughter as to her use of that Christian name. What would be
+better than that they should be to each other as Herbert and Clara?
+But the cautious mother had known how easy it would be to frighten
+her timid fawnlike child. It was no time, no time as yet, to
+question her heart about this second lover--if lover he might be.
+The countess was much too subtle in her way to frighten her child's
+heart back to its old passion. That passion doubtless would die from
+want of food. Let it be starved and die; and then this other new
+passion might spring up.
+
+The Countess of Desmond had no idea that her daughter, with severe
+self-questioning, had taken her own heart to task about this former
+lover; had argued with herself that the man who could so sin, could
+live such a life, and so live in these fearful times, was unworthy
+of her love, and must be torn out of her heart, let the cost be what
+it might. Of such high resolves on her daughter's part, nay, on the
+part of any young girl, Lady Desmond had no knowledge.
+
+Clara Desmond had determined, slowly determined, to give up the man
+whom she had owned to love. She had determined that duty and female
+dignity required her to do so. And in this manner it had been done;
+not by the childlike forgetfulness which her mother attributed to
+her.
+
+And so it was arranged that she should stay the following night at
+Castle Richmond.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+GORTNACLOUGH AND BERRYHILL
+
+
+
+
+
+And now at last we will get to Castle Richmond, at which place,
+seeing that it gives the title to our novel, we ought to have
+arrived long since.
+
+As had been before arranged, the two Miss Fitzgeralds did call at
+Desmond Court early on the following day, and were delighted at
+being informed by Lady Desmond that Clara had changed her mind, and
+would, if they would now allow her, stay the night at Castle
+Richmond.
+
+"The truth was, she did not like to leave me," said the countess,
+whispering prettily into the ear of the eldest of the two girls;
+"but I am delighted that she should have an opportunity of getting
+out of this dull place for a few hours. It was so good of you to
+think of her."
+
+Miss Fitzgerald made some civil answer, and away they all went.
+Herbert was on horseback, and remained some minutes after them to
+discuss her own difficulties with the countess, and to say a few
+words about that Clady boiler that would not boil. Clara on this
+subject had opened her heart to him, and he had resolved that the
+boiler should be made to boil. So he said that he would go over and
+look at it, resolving also to send that which would be much more
+efficacious than himself, namely, the necessary means and workmen
+for bringing about so desirable a result. And then he rode after the
+girls, and caught the car just as it reached Gortnaclough.
+
+How they all spent their day at the soup kitchen, which however,
+though so called, partook quite as much of the character of a bake-
+house; how they studied the art of making yellow Indian meal into
+puddings; how the girls wanted to add milk and sugar, not
+understanding at first the deep principles of political economy,
+which soon taught them not to waste on the comforts of a few that
+which was so necessary for the life of many; how the poor women
+brought in their sick ailing children, accepting the proffered food,
+but bitterly complaining of it as they took it,--complaining of it
+because they wanted money, with which they still thought that they
+could buy potatoes--all this need not here or now be described. Our
+present business is to get them all back to Castle Richmond.
+
+There had been some talk of their dining at Gortnaclough, because it
+was known that the ladies at Desmond Court dined early; but now that
+Clara was to return to Castle Richmond, that idea was given up, and
+they all got back to the house in time for the family dinner.
+
+"Mamma," said Emmeline, walking first into the drawing-room, "Lady
+Clara has come back with us after all, and is going to stay here
+to-night; we are so glad."
+
+Lady Fitzgerald got up from her sofa, and welcomed her young guest
+with a kiss.
+
+"It is very good of you to come," she said; "very good indeed. You
+won't find it dull, I hope, because I know you are thinking about
+the same thing as these children."
+
+Lady Clara muttered some sort of indistinct little protest as to the
+impossibility of being dull with her present friends.
+
+"Oh, she's as full of corn meal and pints of soup as any one," said
+Emmeline; "and knows exactly how much turf it takes to boil fifteen
+stone of pudding; don't you, Clara? But come upstairs, for we
+haven't long, and I know you are frozen. You must dress with us,
+dear; for there will be no fire in your own room, as we didn't
+expect you."
+
+"I wish we could get them to like it," said Clara, standing with one
+foot on the fender, in the middle of the process of dressing, so as
+to warm her toes; and her friend Emmeline was standing by her, with
+her arm round her waist.
+
+"I don't think we shall ever do that," said Mary, who was sitting at
+the glass brushing her hair; "it's so cold, and heavy, and
+uncomfortable when they get it."
+
+"You see," said Emmeline, "though they did only have potatoes
+before, they always had them quite warm; and though a dinner of
+potatoes seems very poor, they did have it altogether, in their own
+houses, you know; and I think the very cooking it was some comfort
+to them."
+
+"And I suppose they couldn't be taught to cook this themselves, so
+as to make it comfortable in their own cabins?" said Clara,
+despondingly.
+
+"Herbert says it's impossible," said Mary.
+
+"And I'm sure he knows," said Clara.
+
+"They would waste more than they would eat," said Emmeline.
+"Besides, it is so hard to cook it as it should be cooked; sometimes
+it seem impossible to make it soft."
+
+"So it does," said Clara, sadly; "but if we could only have it hot
+for them when they come for it, wouldn't that be better?"
+
+"The great thing is to have it for them at all," said Mary the wise
+(for she had been studying the matter more deeply than her friend);
+"there are so many who as yet get none."
+
+"Herbert says that the millers will grind up the husks and all at
+the mills, so as to make the most of it, that's what makes it so
+hard to cook," said Emmelme.
+
+"How very wrong of them!" protested Clara; "but isn't Herbert going
+to have a mill put up of his own?"
+
+And so they went on, till I fear they kept the Castle Richmond
+dinner waiting for full fifteen minutes.
+
+Castle Richmond, too, would have been a dull house, as Lady
+Fitzgerald had intimated, had it not been that there was a common
+subject of such vital interest to the whole party. On that subject
+they were all intent, and on that subject they talked the whole
+evening, planning, preparing, and laying out schemes; devising how
+their money might be made to go furthest; discussing deep questions
+of political economy, and making, no doubt, many errors in their
+discussions.
+
+Lady Fitzgerald took a part in all this, and so occasionally did Sir
+Thomas. Indeed, on this evening he was more active than was usual
+with him. He got up from his armchair, and came to the table, in
+order that he might pore over the map of the estate with them; for
+they were dividing the property into districts, and seeing how best
+the poor might be visited in their own localities.
+
+And then, as he did so, he became liberal. Liberal, indeed, he
+always was; but now he made offers of assistance more than his son
+had dared to ask; and they were all busy, contented, and in a great
+degree joyous--joyous, though their work arose from the contiguity
+of such infinite misery. But what can ever be more joyous than
+efforts made for lessening misery?
+
+During all this time Miss Letty was fast asleep in her own armchair.
+But let no one on that account accuse her of a hard heart; for she
+had nearly walked her old legs off that day in going about from
+cabin to cabin round the demesne.
+
+"But we must consult Somers about that mill," said Sir Thomas.
+
+"Oh, of course," said Herbert; "I know how to talk Somers over."
+
+This was added sotto voce to his mother and the girls. Now, Mr.
+Somers was the agent on the estate.
+
+This mill was to be at Berryhill, a spot also on Sir Thomas's
+property, but in a different direction from Gortnaclough. There was
+there what the Americans would call a water privilege, a stream to
+which some fall of land just there gave power enough to turn a mill;
+and was now a question how they might utilize that power.
+
+During the day just past Clara had been with them, but they were now
+talking of what they would do when she would have left them. This
+created some little feeling of awkwardness, for Clara had put her
+whole heart into the work at Gortnaclough, and it was evident that
+she would have been so delighted to continue with them.
+
+"But why on earth need you go home to-morrow, Lady Clara?" said
+Herbert.
+
+"Oh, I must; mamma expects me, you know."
+
+"Of course we should send word. Indeed, I must send to Clady
+to-morrow, and the man must pass by Desmond Court gate."
+
+"Oh yes, Clara; and you can write a line. It would be such a pity
+that you should not see all about the mill, now that we have talked
+it over together. Do tell her to stay, mamma."
+
+"I am sure I wish she would," said Lady Fitzgerald. "Could not Lady
+Desmond manage to spare you for one day?"
+
+"She is all alone, you know," said Clara, whose heart, however, was
+bent on accepting the invitation.
+
+"Perhaps she would come over and join us," said Lady Fitzgerald,
+feeling, however, that the subject was not without danger. Sending a
+carriage for a young girl like Lady Clara did very well, but it
+might not answer if she were to offer to send for the Countess of
+Desmond.
+
+"Oh, mamma never goes out."
+
+"I'm quite sure she'd like you to stay," said Herbert. "After you
+were all gone yesterday, she said how delighted she was to have you
+go away for a little time. And she did say she thought you could not
+go to a better place than Castle Richmond."
+
+"I am sure that was very kind of her," said Lady Fitzgerald.
+
+"Did she?" said Clara, longingly.
+
+And so after a while it was settled that she should send a line to
+her mother, saying that she had been persuaded to stay over one
+other night, and that she should accompany them to inspect the site
+of this embryo mill at Berryhill.
+
+"And I will write a line to the countess," said Lady Fitzgerald,
+"telling her how impossible it was for you to hold your own
+intention when we were all attacking you on the other side."
+
+And so the matter was settled.
+
+On the following day they were to leave home almost immediately
+after breakfast; and on this occasion Miss Letty insisted on going
+with them.
+
+"There's a seat on the car, I know, Herbert," she said; "for you
+mean to ride; and I'm just as much interested about the mill as any
+of you."
+
+"I'm afraid the day would be too long for you, Aunt Letty," said
+Mary: "we shall stay there, you know, till after four."
+
+"Not a bit too long. When I'm tired I shall go into Mrs. Townsend's;
+the glebe is not ten minutes' drive from Berryhill."
+
+The Rev. Aeneas Townsend was the rector of the parish, and he, as
+well as his wife, were fast friends of Aunt Letty. As we get on in
+the story we shall, I trust, become acquainted with the Rev. Aeneas
+Townsend and his wife. It was ultimately found that there was no
+getting rid of Aunt Letty, and so the party was made up.
+
+They were all standing about the hall after breakfast, looking up
+their shawls and cloaks and coats, and Herbert was in the act of
+taking special and very suspicious care of Lady Clara's throat, when
+there came a ring at the door. The visitor, whoever he might be, was
+not kept long waiting, for one servant was in the hall, and another
+just outside the front door with the car, and a third holding
+Herbert's horse.
+
+"I wish to see Sir Thomas," said a man's voice as soon as the door
+was opened; and the man entered the hall, and then, seeing that it
+was full of ladies, retreated again into the door-way. He was an
+elderly man, dressed almost more than well, for there was about him
+a slight affectation of dandyism; and though he had for the moment
+been abashed, there was about him also a slight swagger. "Good
+morning, ladies," he said, re-entering again, and bowing to young
+Herbert, who stood looking at him; "I believe Sir Thomas is at home;
+would you send your servant in to say that a gentleman wants to see
+him for a minute or so, on very particular business? I am a little
+in a hurry like."
+
+The door of the drawing-room was ajar, so that Lady Fitzgerald, who
+was sitting there tranquilly in her own seat, could hear the voice.
+And she did hear it, and knew that some stranger had come to trouble
+her husband. But she did not come forth; why should she? was not
+Herbert there--if, indeed, even Herbert could be of any service?
+
+"Shall I take your card in to Sir Thomas, sir?" said one of the
+servants, coming forward.
+
+"Card!" said Mollett senior out loud; "well, if it is necessary, I
+believe I have a card." And he took from his pocket a greasy
+pocket-book, and extracted from it a piece of pasteboard on which
+his name was written. "There; give that to Sir Thomas. I don't think
+there's much doubt but that he'll see me." And then, uninvited, he
+sat himself down in one of the hall chairs.
+
+Sir Thomas's study, the room in which he himself sat, and in which
+indeed he might almost be said to live at present,--for on many days
+he only came out to dine, and then again to go to bed,--was at some
+little distance to the back of the house, and was approached by a
+passage from the hall. While the servant was gone, the ladies
+finished their wrapping, and got up on the car.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald," said Clara, laughing, "I shan't be able to
+breathe with all that on me."
+
+"Look at Mary and Emmeline," said he; "they have got twice as much.
+You don't know how cold it is."
+
+"You had better have the fur close to your body," said Aunt Letty;
+"look here;" and she showed that her gloves were lined with fur, and
+her boots, and that she had gotten some nondescript furry article of
+attire stuck in underneath the body of her dress.
+
+"But you must let me have them a little looser, Mr. Fitzgerald,"
+said Clara; "there, that will do," and then they all got upon the
+car and started. Herbert was perhaps two minutes after them before
+he mounted; but when he left the hall the man was still sitting
+there; for the servant had not yet come back from his father's room.
+
+But the clatter of his horse's hoofs was still distinct enough at
+the hall door when the servant did come back, and in a serious tone
+desired the stranger to follow him. "Sir Thomas will see you," said
+the servant, putting some stress on the word will.
+
+"Oh, I did not doubt that the least in the world," said Mr. Mollett,
+as he followed the man along the passage.
+
+The morning was very cold. There had been rainy weather, but it now
+appeared to be a settled frost. The roads were rough and hard, and
+the man who was driving them said a word now and again to his young
+master as to the expediency of getting frost nails put into the
+horse's shoes. "I'd better go gently, Mr. Herbert; it may be he
+might come down at some of these pitches." So they did go gently,
+and at last arrived safely at Berryhill.
+
+And very busy they were there all day. The inspection of the site
+for the mill was not their only employment. Here also was an
+establishment for distributing food, and a crowd of poor half-fed
+wretches were there to meet them. Not that at that time things were
+so bad as they became afterwards. Men were not dying on the
+road-side, nor as yet had the apathy of want produced its terrible
+cure for the agony of hunger. The time had not yet come when the
+famished living skeletons might be seen to reject the food which
+could no longer serve to prolong their lives.
+
+Though this had not come as yet, the complaints of the women with
+their throngs of children were bitter enough; and it was
+heart-breaking too to hear the men declare that they had worked like
+horses, and that it was hard upon them now to see their children
+starve like dogs. For in this earlier part of the famine the people
+did not seem to realize the fact that this scarcity and want had
+come from God. Though they saw the potatoes rotting in their own
+gardens, under their own eyes, they still seemed to think that the
+rich men of the land could stay the famine if they would; that the
+fault was with them; that the famine could be put down if the rich
+would but stir themselves to do it. Before it was over they were
+well aware that no human power could suffice to put it down. Nay,
+more than that; they had almost begun to doubt the power of God to
+bring back better days.
+
+They strove, and toiled, and planned, and hoped at Berryhill that
+day. And infinite was the good that was done by such efforts as
+these. That they could not hinder God's work we all know; but much
+they did do to lessen the sufferings around, and many were the lives
+that were thus saved.
+
+They were all standing behind the counter of a small store that had
+been hired in the village--the three girls at least, for Aunt Letty
+had already gone to the glebe, and Herbert was still down at the
+"water privilege," talking to a millwright and a carpenter. This was
+a place at which Indian corn flour, that which after a while was
+generally termed "meal" in those famine days, was sold to the poor.
+At this period much of it was absolutely given away. This plan,
+however, was soon found to be injurious, for hundreds would get it
+who were not absolutely in want, and would then sell it;--for the
+famine by no means improved the morals of the people.
+
+And therefore it was found better to sell the flour; to sell it at a
+cheap rate, considerably less sometimes than the cost price, and to
+put the means of buying it into the hands of the people by giving
+them work, and paying them wages. Towards the end of these times,
+when the full weight of the blow was understood, and the subject had
+been in some sort studied, the general rule was thus to sell the
+meal at its true price, hindering the exorbitant profit of hucksters
+by the use of large stores, and to require that all those who could
+not buy it should seek the means of living within the walls of
+workhouses. The regular established workhouses,--unions as they were
+called,--were not as yet numerous, but supernumerary houses were
+provided in every town, and were crowded from the cellars to the
+roofs.
+
+It need hardly be explained that no general rule could be
+established and acted upon at once. The numbers to be dealt with
+were so great, that the exceptions to all rules were overwhelming.
+But such and such like were the efforts made, and these efforts
+ultimately were successful.
+
+The three girls were standing behind the counter of a little store
+which Sir Thomas had hired at Berryhill, when a woman came into the
+place with two children in her arms and followed by four others of
+different ages. She was a gaunt tall creature, with sunken cheeks
+and hollow eyes, and her clothes hung about her in unintelligible
+rags. There was a crowd before the counter, for those who had been
+answered or served stood staring at the three ladies, and could
+hardly be got to go away; but this woman pressed her way through,
+pushing some and using harsh language to others, till she stood
+immediately opposite to Clara.
+
+"Look at that, madam," she cried, undoing an old handkerchief which
+she held in her hand, and displaying the contents on the counter;
+"is that what the likes of you calls food for poor people? is that
+fit 'ating to give to children? Would any av ye put such stuff as
+that into the stomachs of your own bairns?" and she pointed to the
+mess which lay revealed upon the handkerchief.
+
+The food, as food, was not nice to look at; and could not have been
+nice to eat, or probably easy of digestion when eaten.
+
+"Feel of that." And the woman rubbed her forefinger among it to show
+that it was rough and hard, and that the particles were as sharp as
+though sand had been mixed with it. The stuff was half-boiled Indian
+meal, which had been improperly subjected at first to the full heat
+of boiling water; and in its present state was bad food either for
+children or grown people. "Feel of that," said the woman; "would you
+like to be 'ating that yourself now?"
+
+"I don't think you have cooked it quite enough," said Clara, looking
+into the woman's face, half with fear and half with pity, and
+putting, as she spoke, her pretty delicate finger down into the
+nasty daubed mess of parboiled yellow flour.
+
+"Cooked it!" said the woman scornfully. "All the cooking on 'arth
+wouldn't make food of that fit for a Christian--feel of the
+roughness of it"--and she turned to another woman who stood near
+her; "would you like to be putting sharp points like that into your
+children's bellies?"
+
+It was quite true that the grains of it were hard and sharp, so as
+to give one an idea that it would make good eating neither for women
+nor children. The millers and dealers, who of course made their
+profits in these times, did frequently grind up the whole corn
+without separating the grain from the husks, and the shell of a
+grain of Indian corn does not, when ground, become soft flour. This
+woman had reason for her complaints, as had many thousands reason
+for similar complaints.
+
+"Don't be throubling the ladies, Kitty," said an old man standing
+by; "sure and weren't you glad enough to be getting it."
+
+"She'd be axing the ladies to go home wid her and cook it for her
+after giving it her," said another.
+
+"Who says it war guv' me?" said the angry mother. "Didn't I buy it,
+here at this counter, with Mike's own hard-'arned money? and it's
+chaiting us they are. Give me back my money." And she looked at
+Clara as though she meant to attack her across the counter.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald is going to put up a mill of his own, and then the
+corn will be better ground," said Emmeline Fitzgerald, deprecating
+the woman's wrath.
+
+"Put up a mill!" said the woman, still in scorn. "Are you going to
+give me back my money; or food that my poor bairns can ate?"
+
+This individual little difficulty was ended by a donation to the
+angry woman of another lot of meal, in taking away which she was
+careful not to leave behind her the mess which she had brought in
+her handkerchief. But she expressed no thanks on being so treated.
+
+The hardest burden which had to be borne by those who exerted
+themselves at this period was the ingratitude of the poor for whom
+they worked;--or rather I should say thanklessness. To call them
+ungrateful would imply too deep a reproach, for their convictions
+were that they were being ill used by the upper classes. When they
+received bad meal which they could not cook, and even in their
+extreme hunger could hardly eat half-cooked; when they were desired
+to leave their cabins and gardens, and flock into the wretched
+barracks which were prepared for them; when they saw their children
+wasting away under a suddenly altered system of diet, it would have
+been unreasonable to expect that they should have been grateful.
+Grateful for what? Had they not at any rate a right to claim life,
+to demand food that should keep them and their young ones alive? But
+not the less was it a hard task for delicate women to work hard, and
+to feel that all their work was unappreciated by those whom they so
+thoroughly commiserated, whose sufferings they were so anxious to
+relieve.
+
+It was almost dark before they left Berryhill, and then they had to
+go out of their way to pick up Aunt Letty at Mr. Townsend's house.
+
+"Don't go in whatever you do, girls," said Herbert; "we should never
+get away."
+
+"Indeed we won't unpack ourselves again before we get home; will we,
+Clara?"
+
+"Oh, I hope not. I'm very nice now, and so warm. But, Mr.
+Fitzgerald, is not Mrs. Townsend very queer?"
+
+"Very queer indeed. But you mustn't say a word about her before Aunt
+Letty. They are sworn brothers-in-arms."
+
+"I won't of course. But, Mr. Fitzgerald, she's very good, is she
+not?"
+
+"Yes, in her way. Only it's a pity she's so prejudiced."
+
+"You mean about religion?"
+
+"I mean about everything. If she wears a bonnet on her head, she'll
+think you very wicked because you wear a hat."
+
+"Will she? what a very funny woman! But, Mr. Fitzgerald, I shan't
+give up my hat, let her say what she will."
+
+"I should rather think not."
+
+"And Mr. Townsend? we know him a little; he's very good too, isn't
+he?"
+
+"Do you mean me to answer you truly, or to answer you according to
+the good-natured idea of never saying any ill of one's neighbour?"
+
+"Oh, both; if you can."
+
+"Oh, both; must I? Well, then, I think him good as a man, but bad as
+a clergyman."
+
+"But I thought he worked so very hard as a clergyman?"
+
+"So he does. But if he works evil rather than good, you can't call
+him a good clergyman. Mind, you would have my opinion; and if I talk
+treason and heterodoxy and infidelity and papistry, you must only
+take it for what it's worth."
+
+"I'm sure you won't talk infidelity."
+
+"Nor yet treason; and then, moreover, Mr. Townsend would be so much
+better a clergyman, to my way of thinking, if he would sometimes
+brush his hair, and occasionally put on a clean surplice. But,
+remember, not a word of all this to Aunt Letty."
+
+"Oh dear, no; of course not."
+
+Mr. Townsend did come out of the house on the little sweep before
+the door to help Miss Letty up on the car, though it was dark and
+piercingly cold.
+
+"Well, young ladies, and won't you come in now and warm yourselves?"
+
+They all of course deprecated any such idea, and declared that they
+were already much too late.
+
+"Richard, mind you take care going down Ballydahan Hill," said the
+parson, giving a not unnecessary caution to the servant. "I came up
+it just now, and it was one sheet of ice."
+
+"Now, Richard, do be careful," said Miss Letty. "Never fear, miss,"
+said Richard.
+
+"We'll take care of you," said Herbert. "You're not frightened, Lady
+Clara, are you?"
+
+"Oh no," said Clara; and so they started.
+
+It was quite dark and very cold, and there was a sharp hard frost.
+But the lamps of the car were lighted, and the horse seemed to be on
+his mettle, for he did his work well. Ballydahan Hill was not above
+a mile from the glebe, and descending that, Richard, by his young
+master's orders, got down from his seat and went to the animal's
+head. Herbert also himself got off, and led his horse down the hill.
+At first the girls were a little inclined to be frightened, and Miss
+Letty found herself obliged to remind them that they couldn't melt
+the frost by screaming. But they all got safely down, and were soon
+chattering as fast as though they were already safe in the
+drawing-room of Castle Richmond.
+
+They went on without any accident, till they reached a turn in the
+road, about two miles from home; and there, all in a moment, quite
+suddenly, when nobody was thinking about the frost or the danger,
+down came the poor horse on his side, his feet having gone quite
+from under him, and a dreadful cracking sound of broken timber gave
+notice that a shaft was smashed. A shaft at least was smashed; if
+only no other harm was done!
+
+It can hardly be that Herbert Fitzgerald cared more for such a
+stranger as Lady Clara Desmond than he did for his own sisters and
+aunt; but nevertheless, it was to Lady Clara's assistance that he
+first betook himself. Perhaps he had seen, or fancied that he saw,
+that she had fallen with the greatest violence.
+
+"Speak, speak," said he, as he jumped from his horse close to her
+side. "Are you hurt? do speak to me." And going down on his knees on
+the hard ground, he essayed to lift her in his arms.
+
+"Oh dear, oh dear!" said she. "No; I am not hurt; at least I think
+not--only just my arm a very little. Where is Emmeline? Is Emmeline
+hurt?"
+
+"No," said Emmeline, picking herself up. "But, oh dear, dear, I've
+lost my muff, and I've spoiled my hat! Where are Mary and Aunt
+Letty?"
+
+After some considerable confusion it was found that nothing was much
+damaged except the car, one shaft of which was broken altogether in
+two. Lady Clara's arm was bruised and rather sore, but the three
+other ladies had altogether escaped. The quantity of clothes that
+had been wrapped round them had no doubt enabled them to fall
+softly.
+
+"And what about the horse, Richard?" asked young Fitzgerald.
+
+"He didn't come upon his knees at all at all, Master Herbert," said
+Richard, scrutinizing the animal's legs with the car lamp in his
+hand. "I don't think he's a taste the worse. But the car, Master
+Herbert, is clane smashed."
+
+Such being found to be undoubtedly the fact, there was nothing for
+it but that the ladies should walk home. Herbert again forgot that
+the age of his aunt imperatively demanded all the assistance that he
+could lend her, and with many lamentations that fortune and the
+frost should have used her so cruelly, he gave his arm to Clara.
+
+"But do think of Miss Fitzgerald," said Clara, speaking gently into
+his ear.
+
+"Who? oh, my aunt. Aunt Letty never cares for anybody's arm; she
+always prefers walking alone."
+
+"Fie, Mr. Fitzgerald, fie! It is impossible to believe such an
+assertion as that." And yet Clara did seem to believe it; for she
+took his proffered arm without further objection.
+
+It was half-past seven when they reached the hall door, and at that
+time they had all forgotten the misfortune of the car in the fun of
+the dark frosty walk home. Herbert had found a boy to lead his
+horse, and Richard was of course left with the ruins in the road.
+
+"And how's your arm now?" asked Herbert, tenderly, as they entered
+in under the porch.
+
+"Oh, it does not hurt me hardly at all. I don't mind it in the
+least." And then the door was opened for them.
+
+They all flocked into the hall, and there they were met by Lady
+Fitzgerald.
+
+"Oh, mamma," said Mary, "I know you're quite frightened out of your
+life! But there's nothing the matter. The horse tumbled down; but
+there's nobody hurt."
+
+"And we had to walk home from the turn to Ballyclough," said
+Emmeline. "But, oh mamma, what's the matter?" They all now looked up
+at Lady Fitzgerald, and it was evident enough that something was the
+matter; something to be thought of infinitely more than that
+accident on the road.
+
+"Oh, Mary, Mary, what is it?" said Aunt Letty, coming forward and
+taking hold of her sister-in-law's hand. "Is my brother ill?"
+
+"Sir Thomas is not very well, and I've been waiting for you so long.
+Where's Herbert? I must speak to Herbert." And then the mother and
+son left the hall together.
+
+There was then a silence among the four ladies that were left there
+standing. At first they followed each other into the drawing-room,
+all wrapped up as they were and sat on chairs apart, saying nothing
+to each other. At last Aunt Letty got up.
+
+"You had better go upstairs with Lady Clara," said she; "I will go
+to your mamma."
+
+"Oh, Aunt Letty, do send us word; pray send us word," said Emmeline.
+
+Mary now began to cry. "I know he's very ill. I'm sure he's very
+ill. Oh, what shall we do?"
+
+"You had better go upstairs with Lady Clara," said Aunt Letty. "I
+will send you up word immediately."
+
+"Oh, don't mind me; pray don't mind me," said Clara. "Pray, pray,
+don't take notice of me;" and she rushed forward, and throwing
+herself on her knees before Emmeline, began to kiss her.
+
+They remained here, heedless of Aunt Letty's advice, for some ten
+minutes, and then Herbert came to them. The two girls flew at him
+with questions; while Lady Clara stood by the window, anxious to
+learn, but unwilling to thrust herself into their family matters.
+
+"My father has been much troubled to-day, and is not well," said
+Herbert. "But I do not think there is anything to frighten us. Come;
+let us go to dinner."
+
+The going to dinner was but a sorry farce with any of them; but
+nevertheless, they went through the ceremony, each for the sake of
+the others.
+
+"Mayn't we see him?" said the girls to their mother, who did come
+down into the drawing-room for one moment to speak to Clara.
+
+"Not to-night, loves. He should not be disturbed." And so that day
+came to an end; not satisfactorily.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+Family Councils
+
+
+
+
+
+When the girls and Aunt Letty went to their chambers that night,
+Herbert returned to his mother's own dressing-room, and there,
+seated over the fire with her, discussed the matter of his father's
+sudden attack. He had been again with his father, and Sir Thomas had
+seemed glad to have him there; but now he had left him for the night.
+
+"He will sleep now, mother," said the son; "he has taken laudanum."
+
+"I fear he takes that too often now."
+
+"It was good for him to have it to-night. He did not get too much,
+for I dropped it for him." And then they sat silent for a few
+moments together.
+
+"Mother," said Herbert, "who can this man have been?"
+
+"I have no knowledge--no idea--no guess even," said Lady Fitzgerald.
+
+"It is that man's visit that has upset him."
+
+"Oh, certainly. I think there is no doubt of that. I was waiting for
+the man to go, and went in almost before he was out of the house."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"And I found your father quite prostrated."
+
+"Not on the floor?"
+
+"No, not exactly on the floor. He was still seated on his chair, but
+his head was on the table, over his arms."
+
+"I have often found him in that way, mother."
+
+"But you never saw him looking as he looked this morning, Herbert.
+When I went in he was speechless, and he remained so, I should say,
+for some minutes."
+
+"Was he senseless?"
+
+"No; he knew me well enough, and grasped me by the hand; and when I
+would have gone to the bell to ring for assistance, he would not let
+me. I thought he would have gone into a fit when I attempted it."
+
+"And what did you do?"
+
+"I sat there by him, with his hand in mine, quite quietly. And then
+he uttered a long, deep sigh, and--oh, Herbert!"
+
+"Well, mother?"
+
+"At last, he burst into a flood of tears, and sobbed and cried like
+a child."
+
+"Mother!"
+
+"He did, so that it was piteous to see him. But it did him good, for
+he was better after it. And all the time he never let go my hand,
+but held it and kissed it. And then he took me by the waist, and
+kissed me, oh, so often. And all the while his tears were running
+like the tears of a girl." And Lady Fitzgerald, as she told the
+story, could not herself refrain from weeping.
+
+"And did he say anything afterwards about this man?"
+
+"Yes; not at first, that is. Of course I asked him who he was as
+soon as I thought he could bear the question. But he turned away,
+and merely said that he was a stupid man about some old London
+business, and that he should have gone to Prendergast. But when,
+after a while, I pressed him, he said that the man's name was
+Mollett, and that he had, or pretended to have, some claim upon the
+city property."
+
+"A claim on the city property! Why, it's not seven hundred a-year
+altogether. If any Mollett could run away with it all, that loss
+would not affect him like that."
+
+"So I said, Herbert; not exactly in those words, but trying to
+comfort him. He then put it off by declaring that it was the
+consciousness of his inability to see any one on business which
+affected him so grievously."
+
+"It was that he said to me."
+
+"And there may be something in that, Herbert."
+
+"Yes; but then what should make him so weak, to begin with? If you
+remember, mother, he was very well,--more like himself than usual
+last night."
+
+"Oh, I observed it. He seemed to like having Clara Desmond there."
+
+"Didn't he, mother? I observed that too. But then Clara Desmond is
+such a sweet creature." The mother looked at her son as he said
+this, but the son did not notice the look. "I do wonder what the
+real truth can be," he continued. "Do you think there is anything
+wrong about the property in general? About this estate, here?"
+
+"No, I don't think that," said the mother, sadly.
+
+"What can it be, then?" But Lady Fitzgerald sat there, and did not
+answer the question. "I'll tell you what I will do, mother; I'll go
+up to London, and see Prendergast, and consult him."
+
+"Oh no; you mustn't do that. I am wrong to tell you all this, for he
+told me to talk to no one. But it would kill me if I didn't speak of
+it to you."
+
+"All the same, mother, I think it would be best to consult
+Prendergast."
+
+"Not yet, Herbert. I daresay Mr. Prendergast may be a very good sort
+of man, but we none of us know him. And if, as is very probable,
+this is only an affair of health, it would be wrong in you to go to
+a stranger. It might look--"
+
+"Look what, mother?"
+
+"People might think--he, I mean--that you wanted to interfere."
+
+"But who ought to interfere on his behalf if I don't?"
+
+"Quite true, dearest; I understand what you mean, and know how good
+you are. But perhaps Mr. Prendergast might not. He might think you
+wanted---"
+
+"Wanted what, mother? I don't understand you."
+
+"Wanted to take the things out of your father's hands."
+
+"Oh, mother!"
+
+"He doesn't know you. And, what is more, I don't think he knows much
+of your father. Don't go to him yet." And Herbert promised that he
+would not.
+
+"And you don't think that this man was ever here before?" he asked.
+
+"Well, I rather think he was here once before; many years ago--soon
+after you went to school."
+
+"So long ago as that?"
+
+"Yes; not that I remember him, or, indeed, ever knew of his coming
+then, if he did come. But Jones says that she thinks she remembers
+him."
+
+"Did Jones see him now?"
+
+"Yes; she was in the hall as he passed through on his way out. And
+it so happened that she let him in and out too when he came before.
+That is, if it is the same man."
+
+"That's very odd."
+
+"It did not happen here. We were at Tenby for a few weeks in the
+summer."
+
+"I remember; you went there with the girls just when I went back to
+school."
+
+"Jones was with us, and Richard. We had none other of our own
+servants. And Jones says that the same man did come then; that he
+stayed with your father for an hour or two; and that when he left,
+your father was depressed--almost as he was yesterday. I well
+remember that. I know that a man did come to him at Tenby; and--oh,
+Herbert!"
+
+"What is it, mother? Speak out, at any rate, to me."
+
+"Since that man came to him at Tenby he has never been like what he
+was before."
+
+And then there was more questioning between them about Jones and her
+remembrances. It must be explained that Jones was a very old and
+very valued servant. She had originally been brought up as a child
+by Mrs. Wainwright, in that Dorsetshire parsonage, and had since
+remained firm to the fortunes of the young lady, whose maid she had
+become on her first marriage. As her mistress had been promoted, so
+had Jones. At first she had been Kitty to all the world now she was
+Mrs. Jones to the world at large, Jones to Sir Thomas and her
+mistress and of late years to Herbert, and known by all manner of
+affectionate sobriquets to the young ladies. Sometimes they would
+call her Johnny, and sometimes the Duchess; but doubtless they and
+Mrs. Jones thoroughly understood each other. By the whole
+establishment Mrs. Jones was held in great respect, and by the
+younger portion in extreme awe. Her breakfast and tea she had in a
+little sitting-room by herself; but the solitude of this was too
+tremendous for her to endure at dinner-time. At that meal she sat at
+the head of the table in the servants' hall, though she never
+troubled herself to carve anything except puddings and pies, for
+which she had a great partiality, and of which she was supposed to
+be the most undoubted and severe judge known of anywhere in that
+part of the country.
+
+She was supposed by all her brother and sister servants to be a very
+Croesus for wealth; and wondrous tales were told of the money she
+had put by. But as she was certainly honest, and supposed to be very
+generous to certain poor relations in Dorsetshire, some of these
+stories were probably mythic. It was known, however, as a fact, that
+two Castle Richmond butlers, one outdoor steward, three neighbouring
+farmers, and one wickedly ambitious coachman, had endeavoured to
+tempt her to matrimony--in vain. "She didn't want none of them," she
+told her mistress. "And, what was more, she wouldn't have none of
+them." And therefore she remained Mrs, Jones, with brevet rank.
+
+It seemed, from what Lady Fitzgerald said, that Mrs. Jones's manner
+had been somewhat mysterious about this man, Mollett. She had
+endeavoured to reassure and comfort her mistress, saying that
+nothing would come of it as nothing had come of that other Tenby
+visit, and giving it as her counsel that the ladies should allow the
+whole matter to pass by without further notice. But at the same time
+Lady Fitzgerald had remarked that her manner had been very serious
+when she first said that she had seen the man before.
+
+"Jones," Lady Fitzgerald had said to her, very earnestly, "if you
+know more about this man than you are telling me, you are bound to
+speak out, and let me know everything."
+
+"Who--I, my lady? what could I know? Only he do look to me like the
+same man, and so I thought it right to say to your ladyship."
+
+Lady Fitzgerald had seen that there was nothing more to be gained by
+cross-questioning, and so she had allowed the matter to drop. But
+she was by no means satisfied that this servant whom she so trusted
+did not know more than she had told. And then Mrs. Jones had been
+with her in those dreadful Dorsetshire days, and an undefined fear
+began to creep over her very soul.
+
+"God bless you, my child!" said Lady Fitzgerald, as her son got up
+to leave her. And then she embraced him with more warmth even than
+was her wont. "All that we can do at present is to be gentle with
+him, and not to encourage people around him to talk of his illness."
+
+On the next morning Lady Fitzgerald did not come down to breakfast,
+but sent her love to Clara, and begged her guest to excuse her on
+account of headache. Sir Thomas rarely came in to breakfast, and
+therefore his absence was not remarkable. His daughters, however,
+went up to see him, as did also his sister; and they all declared
+that he was very much better.
+
+"It was some sudden attack, I suppose?" said Clara.
+
+"Yes, very sudden; he has had the same before," said Herbert. "But
+they do not at all affect his intellect or bodily powers. Depression
+is, I suppose, the name that the doctors would call it."
+
+And then at last it became noticeable by them that Lady Clara did
+not use her left arm. "Oh, Clara!" said Emmeline, "I see now that
+you are hurt. How selfish we have been! Oh dear, oh dear!" And both
+Emmeline and Mary immediately surrounded her, examining her arm, and
+almost carrying her to the sofa.
+
+"I don't think it will be much," said Clara. "It's only a little
+stiff."
+
+"Oh, Herbert, what shall we do? Do look here; the inside of her arm
+is quite black."
+
+Herbert, gently touching her hand, did examine the arm, and declared
+his opinion that she had received a dreadfully violent blow.
+Emmeline proposed to send for a doctor to pronounce whether or no it
+were broken. Mary said that she didn't think it was broken, but that
+she was sure the patient ought not to be moved that day, or probably
+for a week. Aunt Letty, in the mean time, prescribed a cold-water
+bandage with great authority, and bounced out of the room to fetch
+the necessary linen and basin of water.
+
+"It's nothing at all," continued Clara. "And indeed I shall go home
+to-day; indeed I shall."
+
+"It might be very bad for your arm that you should be moved." said
+Herbert.
+
+"And your staying here will not be the least trouble to us. We shall
+all be so happy to have you; shall we not, Mary?"
+
+"Of course we shall; and so will mamma."
+
+"I am so sorry to be here now," said Clara, "when I know you are all
+in such trouble about Sir Thomas. But as for going, I shall go as
+soon as ever you can make it convenient to send me. Indeed I shall."
+And so the matter was discussed between them, Aunt Letty in the mean
+time binding up the bruised arm with cold-water appliances.
+
+Lady Clara was quite firm about going, and, therefore, at about
+twelve she was sent. I should say taken, for Emmeline insisted on
+going with her in the carriage. Herbert would have gone also, but he
+felt that he ought not to leave Castle Richmond that day, on account
+of his father. But he would certainly ride over, he said, and learn
+how her arm was the next morning.
+
+"And about Clady, you know," said Clara.
+
+"I will go on to Clady also. I did send a man there yesterday to see
+about the flue. It's the flue that's wrong, I know."
+
+"Oh, thank you; I am so much obliged to you," said Clara. And then
+the carriage drove off, and Herbert returned into the morning
+sitting-room with his sister Mary.
+
+"I'll tell you what it is, Master Herbert," said Mary.
+
+"Well--what is it?"
+
+"You are going to fall in love with her young ladyship."
+
+"Am I? Is that all you know about it? And who are you going to fall
+in love with, pray?"
+
+"Oh! his young lordship, perhaps; only he ought to be about ten
+years older, so that I'm afraid that wouldn't do. But Clara is just
+the age for you. It really seems as though it were all prepared
+ready to your hand."
+
+"You girls always do think that those things are ready prepared;"
+and so saying, Herbert walked off with great manly dignity to some
+retreat among his own books and papers, there to meditate whether
+this thing were in truth prepared for him. It certainly was the fact
+that the house did seem very blank to him now that Clara was gone;
+and that he looked forward with impatience to the visit which it was
+so necessary that he should make on the following day to Clady.
+
+The house at Castle Richmond was very silent and quiet that day.
+When Emmeline came back, she and her sister remained together.
+Nothing had been said to them about Mollett's visit, and they had no
+other idea than that this lowness of spirits on their father's part,
+to which they had gradually become accustomed, had become worse and
+more dangerous to his health than ever.
+
+Aunt Letty talked much about it to Herbert, to Lady Fitzgerald, to
+Jones, and to her brother, and was quite certain that she had
+penetrated to the depth of the whole matter. That nasty city
+property, she said, which had come with her grandmother, had always
+given the family more trouble than it was worth. Indeed, her
+grandmother had been a very troublesome woman altogether; and no
+wonder, for though she was a Protestant herself, she had had Papist
+relations in Lancashire. She distinctly remembered to have heard
+that there was some flaw in the title of that property, and she knew
+that it was very hard to get some of the tenants to pay any rent.
+That she had always heard. She was quite sure that this man was some
+person laying a claim to it, and threatening to prosecute his claim
+at law. It was a thousand pities that her brother should allow such
+a trifle as this,--for after all it was but a trifle, to fret his
+spirits and worry him in this way. But it was the wretched state of
+his health: were he once himself again, all such annoyances as that
+would pass him by like the wind.
+
+It must be acknowledged that Aunt Letty's memory in this respect was
+not exactly correct; for, as it happened, Sir Thomas held his little
+property in the city of London by as firm a tenure as the laws and
+customs of his country could give him; and seeing that his income
+thence arising came from ground rents near the river, on which
+property stood worth some hundreds of thousands, it was not very
+probable that his tenants should be in arrear. But what she said had
+some effect upon Herbert. He was not quite sure whether this might
+not be the cause of his father's grief; and if the story did not
+have much effect upon Lady Fitzgerald, at any rate it did as well as
+any other to exercise the ingenuity and affection of Aunt Letty.
+
+Sir Thomas passed the whole of that day in his own room; but during
+a great portion of the day either his wife, or sister, or son was
+with him. They endeavoured not to leave him alone with his own
+thoughts, feeling conscious that something preyed upon his mind,
+though ignorant as to what that something might be.
+
+He was quite aware of the nature of their thoughts; perfectly
+conscious of the judgment they had formed respecting him. He knew
+that he was subjecting himself, in the eyes not only of his own
+family but of all those around him, to suspicions which must be
+injurious to him, and yet he could not shake off the feeling that
+depressed him.
+
+But at last he did resolve to make an attempt at doing so. For some
+time in the evening he was altogether alone, and he then strove to
+force his mind to work upon the matter which occupied it,--to
+arrange his ideas, and bring himself into a state in which he could
+make a resolution. For hours he had sat,--not thinking upon this
+subject, for thought is an exertion which requires a combination of
+ideas and results in the deducing of conclusions from premises; and
+no such effort as that had he hitherto made,--but endeavouring to
+think while he allowed the matter of his grief to lie ever before
+his mind's eye.
+
+He had said to himself over and over again, that it behoved him to
+make some great effort to shake off this incubus that depressed him;
+but yet no such effort had hitherto been even attempted. Now at last
+he arose and shook himself, and promised to himself that he would be
+a man. It might be that the misfortune under which he groaned was
+heavy, but let one's sorrow be what it may, there is always a better
+and a worse way of meeting it. Let what trouble may fall on a man's
+shoulders, a man may always bear it manfully. And are not troubles
+when so borne half cured? It is the flinching from pain which makes
+pain so painful.
+
+This truth came home to him as he sat there that day, thinking what
+he should do, endeavouring to think in what way he might best turn
+himself. But there was this that was especially grievous to him,
+that he had no friend whom he might consult in this matter. It was a
+sorrow, the cause of which he could not explain to his own family,
+and in all other troubles he had sought assistance and looked for
+counsel there and there only. He had had one best, steadiest,
+dearest, truest counsellor, and now it had come to pass that things
+were so placed that in this great trouble he could not go to her.
+
+And now a friend was so necessary to him! He felt that he was not
+fit to judge how he himself should act in this terrible emergency;
+that it was absolutely necessary for him that he should allow
+himself to be guided by some one else. But to whom should he appeal?
+
+"He is a cold man," said he to himself, as one name did occur to
+him, "very cold, almost unfeeling; but he is honest and just." And
+then again he sat and thought. "Yes, he is honest and just; and what
+should I want better than honesty and justice?" And then, shuddering
+as he resolved, he did resolve that he would send for this honest
+and just man. He would send for him; or, perhaps better still, go to
+him. At any rate, he would tell him the whole truth of his grief,
+and then act as the cold, just man should bid him.
+
+But he need not do this yet--not quite yet. So at least he said to
+himself, falsely. If a man decide with a fixed decision that his
+tooth should come out, or his leg be cut off, let the tooth come out
+or the leg be cut off on the earliest possible opportunity. It is
+the flinching from such pain that is so grievously painful.
+
+But it was something to have brought his mind to bear with a fixed
+purpose upon these things, and to have resolved upon what he would
+do, though he still lacked strength to put his resolution
+immediately to the proof.
+
+Then, later in the evening, his son came and sat with him, and he
+was able in some sort to declare that the worst of that evil day had
+passed from him. "I shall breakfast with you all to-morrow," he
+said, and as he spoke a faint smile passed across his face.
+
+"Oh! I hope you will," said Herbert; "we shall be so delighted: but,
+father, do not exert yourself too soon."
+
+"It will do me good, I think."
+
+"I am sure it will, if the fatigue be not too much."
+
+"The truth is, Herbert, I have allowed this feeling to grow upon me
+till I have become weak under it. I know that I ought to make an
+exertion to throw it off, and it is possible that I may succeed."
+
+Herbert muttered some few hopeful words, but he found it very
+difficult to know what he ought to say. That his father had some
+secret he was quite sure; and it is hard to talk to a man about his
+secret, without knowing what that secret is.
+
+"I have allowed myself to fall into a weak state," continued Sir
+Thomas, speaking slowly, "while by proper exertion I might have
+avoided it."
+
+"You have been very ill, father," said Herbert.
+
+"Yes, I have been ill, very ill, certainly. But I do not know that
+any doctor could have helped me."
+
+"Father--"
+
+"No, Herbert; do not ask me questions; do not inquire; at any rate,
+not at present. I will endeavour--now at least I will endeavour--to
+do my duty. But do not urge me by questions, or appear to notice me
+if I am infirm."
+
+"But, father,--if we could comfort you?"
+
+"Ah! if you could. But, never mind, I will endeavour to shake off
+this depression. And, Herbert, comfort your mother; do not let her
+think much of all this, if it can be helped."
+
+"But how can it be helped?"
+
+"And tell her this: there is a matter that troubles my mind."
+
+"Is it about the property, father?"
+
+"No--yes; it certainly is about the property in one sense."
+
+"Then do not heed it; we shall none of us heed it. Who has so good a
+right to say so as I?"
+
+"Bless you, my darling boy! But, Herbert, such things must be
+heeded--more or less, you know: but you may tell your mother this,
+and perhaps it may comfort her. I have made up my mind to go to
+London and to see Prendergast; I will explain the whole of this
+thing to him, and as he bids me so will I act."
+
+This was thought to be satisfactory to a certain extent both by the
+mother and son. They would have been better pleased had he opened
+his heart to them and told them everything; but that it was clear he
+could not bring himself to do. This Mr. Prendergast they had heard
+was a good man; and in his present state it was better that he
+should seek counsel of any man than allow his sorrow to feed upon
+himself alone.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+THE RECTOR OF DRUMBARROW AND HIS WIFE
+
+
+
+
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald, in speaking of the Rev. Aeneas Townsend to Lady
+Clara Desmond, had said that in his opinion the reverend gentleman
+was a good man, but a bad clergyman. But there were not a few in the
+county Cork who would have said just the reverse, and declared him
+to be a bad man, but a good clergyman. There were others, indeed,
+who knew him well, who would have declared him to be perfect in both
+respects, and others again who thought him in both respects to be
+very bad. Amidst these great diversities of opinion I will venture
+on none of my own, but will attempt to describe him.
+
+In Ireland stanch Protestantism consists too much in a hatred of
+Papistry--in that rather than in a hatred of those errors against
+which we Protestants are supposed to protest. Hence the cross--which
+should, I presume, be the emblem of salvation to us all--creates a
+feeling of dismay and often of disgust instead of love and
+reverence; and the very name of a saint savours in Irish Protestant
+ears of idolatry, although Irish Protestants on every Sunday profess
+to believe in a communion of such. These are the feelings rather
+than the opinions of the most Protestant of Irish Protestants, and
+it is intelligible that they should have been produced by the close
+vicinity of Roman Catholic worship in the minds of men who are
+energetic and excitable, but not always discreet or argumentative.
+
+One of such was Mr. Townsend, and few men carried their Protestant
+fervour further than he did. A cross was to him what a red cloth is
+supposed to be to a bull; and so averse was he to the intercession
+of saints, that he always regarded as a wolf in sheep's clothing a
+certain English clergyman who had written to him a letter dated from
+the feast of St. Michael and All Angels. On this account Herbert
+Fitzgerald took upon himself to say that he regarded him as a bad
+clergyman: whereas, most of his Protestant neighbours looked upon
+this enthusiasm as his chief excellence.
+
+And this admiration for him induced his friends to overlook what
+they must have acknowledged to be defects in his character. Though
+he had a good living--at least, what the laity in speaking of
+clerical incomes is generally inclined to call a good living, we
+will say amounting in value to four hundred pounds a-year--he was
+always in debt. This was the more inexcusable as he had no children,
+and had some small private means.
+
+And nobody knew why he was in debt--in which word nobody he himself
+must certainly be included. He had no personal expenses of his own;
+his wife, though she was a very queer woman, as Lady Clara had said,
+could hardly be called an extravagant woman; there was nothing large
+or splendid about the way of living at the glebe; anybody who came
+there, both he and she were willing to feed as long as they chose to
+stay, and a good many in this way they did feed; but they never
+invited guests; and as for giving regular fixed dinner-parties, as
+parish rectors do in England, no such idea ever crossed the brain of
+either Mr. or Mrs. Townsend.
+
+That they were both charitable all the world admitted; and their
+admirers professed that hence arose all their difficulties. But
+their charities were of a most indiscreet kind. Money they rarely
+had to give, and therefore they would give promises to pay. While
+their credit with the butcher and baker was good they would give
+meat and bread; and both these functionaries had by this time
+learned that, though Mr. Townsend might not be able to pay such
+bills himself, his friends would do so, sooner or later, if duly
+pressed. And therefore the larder at Drumbarrow Glebe--that was the
+name of the parish--was never long empty, and then again it was
+never long full.
+
+But neither Mr. nor Mrs. Townsend were content to bestow their
+charities without some other object than than of relieving material
+wants by their alms. Many infidels, Mr. Townsend argued, had been
+made believers by the miracle of the loaves and fishes; and
+therefore it was permissible for him to make use of the same means
+for drawing over proselytes to the true church. If he could find
+hungry Papists and convert them into well-fed Protestants by one and
+the same process, he must be doing a double good, he argued;--could
+by no possibility be doing an evil.
+
+Such being the character of Mr. Townsend, it will not be thought
+surprising that he should have his warm admirers and his hot
+detractors. And they who were inclined to be among the latter were
+not slow to add up certain little disagreeable eccentricities among
+the list of his faults,--as young Fitzgerald had done in the matter
+of the dirty surplices.
+
+Mr. Townsend's most uncompromising foe for many years had been the
+Rev. Bernard M'Carthy, the parish priest for the same parish of
+Drumbarrow. Father Bernard, as he was called by his own flock, or
+Father Barney, as the Protestants in derision were delighted to name
+him, was much more a man of the world than his Protestant colleague.
+He did not do half so many absurd things as did Mr. Townsend, and
+professed to laugh at what he called the Protestant madness of the
+rector. But he also had been an eager, I may also say, a malicious
+antagonist. What he called the "souping" system of the Protestant
+clergyman stank in his nostrils--that system by which, as he stated,
+the most ignorant of men were to be induced to leave their faith by
+the hope of soup, or other food. He was as firmly convinced of the
+inward, heart-destroying iniquity of the parson as the parson was of
+that of the priest. And so these two men had learned to hate each
+other. And yet neither of them were bad men.
+
+I do not wish it to be understood that this sort of feeling always
+prevailed in Irish parishes between the priest and the parson even
+before the days of the famine. I myself have met a priest at a
+parson's table, and have known more than one parish in which the
+Protestant and Roman Catholic clergymen lived together on amicable
+terms. But such a feeling as that above represented was common, and
+was by no means held as proof that the parties themselves were
+quarrelsome or malicious. It was a part of their religious
+convictions, and who dares to interfere with the religious
+convictions of a clergyman?
+
+On the day but one after that on which the Castle Richmond ladies
+had been thrown from their car on the frosty road, Mr. Townsend and
+Father Bernard were brought together in an amicable way, or in a way
+that was intended to be amicable, for the first time in their lives.
+The relief committee for the district in which they both lived was
+one and the same, and it was of course well that both should act on
+it. When the matter was first arranged, Father Bernard took the bull
+by the horns and went there; but Mr. Townsend, hearing this, did not
+do so. But now that it had become evident that much work, and for a
+long time, would have to be performed at these committees, it was
+clear that Mr. Townsend, as a Protestant clergyman, could not remain
+away without neglecting his duty. And so, after many mental
+struggles and questions of conscience, the parson agreed to meet the
+priest.
+
+The point had been very deeply discussed between the rector and his
+wife. She had given it as her opinion that priest M'Carthy was
+pitch, pitch itself in its blackest turpitude, and as such could not
+be touched without defilement. Had not all the Protestant clergymen
+of Ireland in a body, or, at any rate, all those who were worth
+anything, who could with truth be called Protestant clergymen, had
+they not all refused to enter the doors of the National schools
+because they could not do so without sharing their ministration
+there with papist priests; with priests of the altar of Baal, as
+Mrs. Townsend called them? And should they now yield, when, after
+all, the assistance needed was only for the body--not for the soul?
+
+It may be seen from this that the lady's mind was not in its nature
+logical; but the extreme absurdity of her arguments, though they did
+not ultimately have the desired effect, by no means came home to the
+understanding of her husband. He thought that there was a great deal
+in what she said, and almost felt that he was yielding to
+instigations from the evil one; but public opinion was too strong
+for him; public opinion and the innate kindness of his own heart. He
+felt that at this very moment he ought to labour specially for the
+bodies of these poor people, as at other times he would labour
+specially for their souls; and so he yielded.
+
+"Well," said his wife to him as he got off his car at his own door
+after the meeting, "what have you done?" One might have imagined
+from her tone of voice and her manner that she expected, or at least
+hoped to hear that the priest had been absolutely exterminated and
+made away with in the good fight.
+
+Mr. Townsend made no immediate answer, but proceeded to divest
+himself of his rusty outside coat, and to rub up his stiff,
+grizzled, bristly, uncombed hair with both his hands, as was his
+wont when he was not quite satisfied with the state of things.
+
+"I suppose he was there?" said Mrs. Townsend.
+
+"Oh yes, he was there. He is never away, I take it, when there is
+any talking to be done." Now Mr. Townsend dearly loved to hear
+himself talk, but no man was louder against the sins of other
+orators. And then he began to ask how many minutes it wanted to
+dinner-time.
+
+Mrs. Townsend knew his ways. She would not have a ghost of a chance
+of getting from him a true and substantial account of what had
+really passed if she persevered in direct questions to the effect.
+So she pretended to drop the matter, and went and fetched her lord's
+slippers, the putting on of which constituted his evening toilet;
+and then, after some little hurrying inquiry in the kitchen,
+promised him his dinner in fifteen minutes.
+
+"Was Herbert Fitzgerald there?"
+
+"Oh yes; he is always there. He's a nice young fellow; a very fine
+young fellow; but--"
+
+"But what?"
+
+"He thinks he understands the Irish Roman Catholics, but he
+understands them no more than--than--than this slipper," he said,
+having in vain cudgelled his brain for a better comparison.
+
+"You know what Aunt Letty says about him. She doubts he isn't quite
+right, you know."
+
+Mrs. Townsend by this did not mean to insinuate that Herbert was at
+all afflicted in that way which we attempt to designate, when we say
+that one of our friends is not all right, and at the same time touch
+our heads with our forefinger. She had intended to convey an
+impression that the young man's religious ideas were not exactly of
+that stanch, true-blue description which she admired.
+
+"Well, he has just come from Oxford, you know," said Mr. Townsend:
+"and at the present moment Oxford is the most dangerous place to
+which a young man can be sent."
+
+"And Sir Thomas would send him there, though I remember telling his
+aunt over and over again how it would be." And Mrs. Townsend as she
+spoke shook her head sorrowfully.
+
+"I don't mean to say, you know, that he's absolutely bitten."
+
+"Oh, I know--I understand. When they come to crosses and
+candlesticks, the next step to the glory of Mary is a very easy one.
+I would sooner send a young man to Rome than to Oxford. At the one
+he might be shocked and disgusted; but at the other he is cajoled,
+and cheated, and ruined." And then Mrs. Townsend threw herself back
+in her chair, and threw her eyes up towards the ceiling.
+
+But there was no hypocrisy or pretence in this expression of her
+feelings. She did in her heart of hearts believe that there was some
+college or club of papists at Oxford, emissaries of the Pope or of
+the Jesuits. In her moments of sterner thought the latter were the
+enemies she most feared; whereas, when she was simply pervaded by
+her usual chronic hatred of the Irish Roman Catholic hierarchy, she
+was wont to inveigh most against the Pope. And this college, she
+maintained, was fearfully successful in drawing away the souls of
+young English students. Indeed, at Oxford a man had no chance
+against the devi. Things were better at Cambridge; though even
+there there was great danger. Look at A--and Z--; and she would name
+two perverts to the Church of Rome, of whom she had learned that
+they were Cambridge men. But, thank God, Trinity College still stood
+firm. Her idea was, that if there were left any real Protestant
+truth in the Church of England, that Church should look to feed her
+lambs by the hands of shepherds chosen from that seminary, and from
+that seminary only.
+
+"But isn't dinner nearly ready?" said Mr. Townsend, whose ideas were
+not so exclusively Protestant as were those of his wife. "I haven't
+had a morsel since breakfast." And then his wife, who was peculiarly
+anxious to keep him in a good humour that all might come out about
+Father Barney, made another little visit to the kitchen.
+
+At last the dinner was served. The weather was very cold, and the
+rector and his wife considered it more cosy to use only the parlour,
+and not to migrate into the cold air of a second room. Indeed,
+during the winter months the drawing-room of Drumbarrow Glebe was
+only used for visitors, and for visitors who were not intimate
+enough in the house to be placed upon the worn chairs and threadbare
+carpet of the dining-parlour. And very cold was that drawing-room
+found to be by each visitor.
+
+But the parlour was warm enough; warm and cosy, though perhaps at
+times a little close; and of evenings there would pervade it a smell
+of whisky punch, not altogether acceptable to unaccustomed nostrils.
+Not that the rector of Drumbarrow was by any means an intemperate
+man. His single tumbler of whisky toddy, repeated only on Sundays
+and some other rare occasions, would by no means equal, in point of
+drinking, the ordinary port of an ordinary English clergyman. But
+whisky punch does leave behind a savour of its intrinsic virtues,
+delightful no doubt to those who have imbibed its grosser elements,
+but not equally acceptable to others who may have been less
+fortunate.
+
+During dinner there was no conversation about Herbert Fitzgerald, or
+the committee, or Father Barney. The old gardener, who waited at
+table with all his garden clothes on him, and whom the neighbours,
+with respectful deference, called Mr. Townsend's butler, was a Roman
+Catholic, as, indeed, were all the servants at the glebe, and as
+are, necessarily, all the native servants in that part of the
+country. And though Mr. and Mrs. Townsend put great trust in their
+servant Jerry as to the ordinary duties of gardening, driving, and
+butlering, they would not knowingly trust him with a word of their
+habitual conversation about the things around them. Their idea was,
+that every word so heard was carried to the priest, and that the
+priest kept a book in which every word so uttered was written down.
+If this were so through the parish, the priest must in truth have
+had something to do, both for himself and his private secretary,
+for, in spite of all precautions that were taken, Jerry and Jerry's
+brethren no doubt did hear much of what was said. The repetitions to
+the priest, however, I must take leave to doubt.
+
+But after dinner, when the hot water and whisky were on the table,
+when the two old armchairs were drawn cozily up on the rug, each
+with an old footstool before it, when the faithful wife had mixed
+that glass of punch--or jug rather, for, after the old fashion, it
+was brewed in such a receptacle; and when, to inspire increased
+confidence, she had put into it a small extra modicum of the
+eloquent spirit, then the mouth of the rector was opened, and Mrs.
+Townsend was made happy.
+
+"And so Father Barney and I have met at last," said he, rather
+cheerily, as the hot fumes of the toddy regaled his nostrils.
+
+"And how did he behave, now?"
+
+"Well, he was decent enough--that is, as far as absolute behaviour
+went. You can't have a silk purse from off a sow's ear, you know."
+
+"No, indeed; and goodness knows there's plenty of the sow's ear
+about him. But now, Aeneas, dear, do tell me how it all was, just
+from the beginning."
+
+"He was there before me," said the husband.
+
+"Catch a weasel asleep!" said the wife.
+
+"I didn't catch him asleep, at any rate," continued he. "He was
+there before me; but when I went into the little room where they
+hold the meeting--"
+
+"It's at Berryhill, isn't it?"
+
+"Yes, at the Widow Casey's. To see that woman bowing and scraping
+and curtsying to Father Barney, and she his own mother's brother's
+daughter, was the best thing in the world."
+
+"That was just to do him honour before the quality, you know."
+
+"Exactly. When I went in, there was nobody there but his reverence
+and Master Herbert."
+
+"As thick as possible, I suppose. Dear, dear; isn't it
+dreadful!--Did I put sugar enough in it, Aeneas?"
+
+"Well, I don't know; perhaps you may give me another small lump. At
+any rate, you didn't forget the whisky."
+
+"I'm sure it isn't a taste too strong--and after such work as you've
+had to-day.--And so young Fitzgerald and Father Barney--"
+
+"Yes, there they were with their heads together. It was something
+about a mill they were saying."
+
+"Oh, it's perfectly dreadful!"
+
+"But Herbert stopped, and introduced me at once to Father Barney."
+
+"What! a regular introduction? I like that, indeed."
+
+"He didn't do it altogether badly. He said something about being
+glad to see two gentlemen together--"
+
+"A gentleman, indeed!"
+
+"--who were both so anxious to do the best they could in the parish,
+and whose influence was so great--or something to that effect. And
+then we shook hands."
+
+"You did shake hands?"
+
+"Oh yes; if I went there at all, it was necessary that I should do
+that."
+
+"I am very glad it was not me, that's all. I don't think I could
+shake hands with Father Barney."
+
+"There's no knowing what you can do, my dear, till you try."
+
+"H--m," said Mrs. Townsend, meaning to signify thereby that she was
+still strong in the strength of her own impossibilities.
+
+"And then there was a little general conversation about the potato,
+for no one came in for a quarter of an hour or so. The priest said
+that they were as badly off in Limerick and Clare as we are here.
+Now, I don't believe that; and when I asked him how he knew, he
+quoted the 'Freeman.'"
+
+"The 'Freeman,' indeed! Just like him. I wonder it wasn't the
+'Nation.'" In Mrs. Townsend's estimation, the parish priest was much
+to blame because he did not draw his public information from some
+newspaper specially addicted to the support of the Protestant cause.
+
+"And then Somers came in, and he took the chair. I was very much
+afraid at one time that Father Barney was going to seat himself
+there."
+
+"You couldn't possibly have stood that?"
+
+"I had made up my mind what to do. I should have walked about the
+room, and looked on the whole affair as altogether irregular,--as
+though there was no chairman. But Somers was of course the proper
+man."
+
+"And who else came?"
+
+"There was O'Leary, from Boherbue."
+
+"He was another Papist?"
+
+"Oh yes; there was a majority of them. There was Greilly, the man
+who has got that large take of land over beyond Banteer; and then
+Father Barney's coadjutor came in."
+
+"What! that wretched-looking man from Gortnaclough?"
+
+"Yes; he's the curate of the parish, you know."
+
+"And did you shake hands with him too?"
+
+"Indeed I did; and you never saw a fellow look so ashamed of himself
+in your life."
+
+"Well, there isn't much shame about them generally."
+
+"And there wasn't much about him by-and-by. You never heard a man
+talk such trash in your life, till Somers put him down."
+
+"Oh, he was put down? I'm glad of that."
+
+"And to do Father Barney justice, he did tell him to hold his
+tongue. The fool began to make a regular set speech."
+
+"Father Barney, I suppose, didn't choose that anybody should do that
+but himself."
+
+"He did enough for the two, certainly. I never heard a man so fond
+of his own voice. What he wants is to rule it all just his own way."
+
+"Of course he does; and that's just what you won't let him do. What
+other reason can there be for your going there?"
+
+And so the matter was discussed. What absolute steps were taken by
+the committee; how they agreed to buy so much meal of such a
+merchant, at such a price, and with such funds; how it was to be
+resold, and never given away on any pretext; how Mr. Somers had
+explained that giving away their means was killing the goose that
+laid the golden eggs, when the young priest, in an attitude for
+oratory, declared that the poor had no money with which to make the
+purchase; and how in a few weeks' time they would be able to grind
+their own flour at Herbert Fitzgerald's mill;--all this was also
+told. But the telling did not give so much gratification to Mrs.
+Townsend as the sly hits against the two priests.
+
+And then, while they were still in the middle of all this; when the
+punch-jug had given way to the teapot, and the rector was beginning
+to bethink himself that a nap in his armchair would be very
+refreshing, Jerry came into the room to announce that Richard had
+come over from Castle Richmond with a note for "his riverence." And
+so Richard was shown in.
+
+Now, Richard might very well have sent in his note by Jerry, which
+after all contained only some information with reference to a list
+of old women which Herbert Fitzgerald had promised to send over to
+the glebe. But Richard knew that the minister would wish to chat
+with him, and Richard himself had no indisposition for a little
+conversation.
+
+"I hope yer riverences is quite well, then," said Richard, as he
+tendered his note, making a double bow, so as to include them both.
+
+"Pretty well, thank you," said Mrs. Townsend. "And how's all the
+family?"
+
+"Well, then, they're all rightly, considhering. The Masther's no
+just what he war, you know, ma'am."
+
+"I'm afraid not--I'm afraid not," said the rector. "You'll not take
+a glass of spirits, Richard?"
+
+"Yer riverence knows I never does that," said Richard, with somewhat
+of a conscious look of high morality, for he was a rigid
+teetotaller.
+
+"And do you mean to say that you stick to that always?" said Mrs.
+Townsend, who firmly believed that no good could come out of
+Nazareth, and that even abstinence from whisky must be bad if
+accompanied by anything in the shape of a Roman Catholic ceremony.
+
+"I do mean to say, ma'am, that I never touched a dhrop of anything
+sthronger than wather, barring tay, since the time I got the pledge
+from the blessed apostle." And Richard boldly crossed himself in the
+presence of them both. They knew well whom he meant by the blessed
+apostle: it was Father Mathew.
+
+"Temperance is a very good thing, however we may come by it," said
+Mr. Townsend, who meant to imply by this that Richard's temperance
+had been come by in the worst way possible.
+
+"That's thrue for you, sir," said Richard; "but I never knew any
+pledge kept, only the blessed apostle's." By which he meant to imply
+that no sanctity inherent in Mr. Townsend's sacerdotal proceedings
+could be of any such efficacy.
+
+And then Mr. Townsend read the note. "Ah, yes," said he; "tell Mr.
+Herbert that I'm very much obliged to him. There will be no other
+answer necessary."
+
+"Very well, yer riverence, I'll be sure to give Mr. Herbert the
+message." And Richard made a sign as though he were going.
+
+"But tell me, Richard," said Mrs. Townsend, "is Sir Thomas any
+better? for we have been really very uneasy about him."
+
+"Indeed and he is, ma'am; a dail betther this morning, the Lord be
+praised."
+
+"It was a kind of a fit, wasn't it, Richard?" asked the parson.
+
+"A sort of a fit of illness of some kind, I'm thinking," said
+Richard, who had no mind to speak of his family's secrets out of
+doors. Whatever he might be called upon to tell the priest, at any
+rate he was not called on to tell anything to the parson.
+
+"But it was very sudden this time, wasn't it, Richard?" asked the
+lady; "immediately after that strange man was shown into his room
+--eh?"
+
+"I'm sure, ma'am, I can't say; but I don't think he was a ha'porth
+worse than ordinar, till after the gentleman went away. I did hear
+that he did his business with the gentleman, just as usual like."
+
+"And then he fell into a fit, didn't he, Richard?"
+
+"Not that I heard of, ma'am. He did a dail of talking about some law
+business, I did hear our Mrs. Jones say; and then afther he warn't
+just the betther of it."
+
+"Was that all?"
+
+"And I don't think he's none the worse for it neither, ma'am; for
+the masther do seem to have more life in him this day than I'se seen
+this many a month. Why, he's been out and about with her ladyship in
+the pony-carriage all the morning."
+
+"Has he now? Well, I'm delighted to hear that. It is some trouble
+about the English estates, I believe, that vexes him?"
+
+"Faix, then, ma'am, I don't just know what it is that ails him,
+unless it be just that he has too much money for to know what to do
+wid it. That'd be the sore vexation to me, I know."
+
+"Well; ah, yes; I suppose I shall see Mrs. Jones to-morrow, or at
+latest the day after," said Mrs. Townsend, resolving to pique the
+man by making him understand that she could easily learn all that
+she wished to learn from the woman: "a great comfort Mrs. Jones must
+be to her ladyship."
+
+"Oh yes, ma'am; 'deed an' she is," said Richard; "'specially in the
+matter of puddins and pies, and such like."
+
+He was not going to admit Mrs. Jones's superiority, seeing that he
+had lived in the family long before his present mistress's marriage.
+
+"And in a great many other things too, Richard. She's quite a
+confidential servant. That's because she's a Protestant, you know."
+
+Now of all men, women, and creatures living, Richard the coachman of
+Castle Richmond was the most good tempered. No amount of anger or
+scolding, no professional misfortune--such as the falling down of
+his horse upon the ice, no hardship--such as three hours' perpetual
+rain when he was upon the box--would make him cross. To him it was a
+matter of perfect indifference if he were sent off with his car just
+before breakfast, or called away to some stable work as the dinner
+was about to smoke in the servants' hall. He was a great eater, but
+what he didn't eat one day he could eat the next. Such things never
+ruffled him, nor was he ever known to say that such a job wasn't his
+work. He was always willing to nurse a baby, or dig potatoes, or
+cook a dinner, to the best of his ability, when asked to do so; but
+he could not endure to be made less of than a Protestant; and of all
+Protestants he could not endure to be made less of than Mrs. Jones.
+
+"'Cause she's a Protestant, is it, ma'am?"
+
+"Of course, Richard; you can't but see that Protestants are more
+trusted, more respected, more thought about than Romanists, can
+you?"
+
+"'Deed then I don't know, ma'am."
+
+"But look at Mrs. Jones."
+
+"Oh, I looks at her often enough; and she's well enough too for a
+woman. But we all know her weakness."
+
+"What's that, Richard?" asked Mrs. Townsend, with some interest
+expressed in her tone; for she was not above listening to a little
+scandal, even about the servants of her great neighbours.
+
+"Why, she do often talk about things she don't understand. But she's
+a great hand at puddins and pies, and that's what one mostly looks
+for in a woman."
+
+This was enough for Mrs. Townsend for the present, and so Richard
+was allowed to take his departure, in full self-confidence that he
+had been one too many for the parson's wife.
+
+"Jerry," said Richard, as they walked out into the yard together to
+get the Castle Richmond pony, "does they often thry to make a
+Prothestant of you now?"
+
+"Prothestants be d----," said Jerry, who by no means shared in
+Richard's good gifts as to temper.
+
+"Well, I wouldn't say that; at laist, not of all of 'em."
+
+"The likes of them's used to it," said Jerry.
+
+And then Richard, not waiting to do further battle on behalf of his
+Protestant friends, trotted out of the yard.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+SECOND LOVE
+
+
+
+
+
+On the day after Clara's departure, Herbert did, as a matter of
+course, make his promised visit at Desmond Court. It was on that day
+that Sir Thomas had been driving about in the pony-carriage with
+Lady Fitzgerald, as Richard had reported. Herbert had been with his
+father in the morning, and then having seen him and his mother well
+packed up in their shawls and cloaks, had mounted his horse and
+ridden off.
+
+"I may be kept some time," said he, "as I have promised to go on to
+Clady, and see after that soup kitchen."
+
+"I shouldn't wonder if Herbert became attached to Clara Desmond,"
+said the mother to Sir Thomas, soon after they had begun their
+excursion.
+
+"Do you think so?" said the baronet; and his tone was certainly not
+exactly that of approbation.
+
+"Well, yes; I certainly do think it probable. I am sure he admires
+her, and I think it very likely to come to more. Would there be any
+objection?"
+
+"They are both very young," said Sir Thomas.
+
+"But in Herbert's position will not a young marriage be the best
+thing for him?"
+
+"And she has no fortune; not a shilling. If he does marry young,
+quite young you know, it might be prudent that his wife should have
+something of her own."
+
+"They'd live here," said Lady Fitzgerald, who knew that of all men
+her husband was usually most free from mercenary feelings and an
+over-anxiety as to increased wealth, either for himself or for his
+children; "and I think it would be such a comfort to you. Herbert,
+you see, is so fond of county business, and so little anxious for
+what young men generally consider pleasure."
+
+There was nothing more said about it at that moment; for the
+question in some measure touched upon money matters and
+considerations as to property, from all of which Lady Fitzgerald at
+present wished to keep her husband's mind free. But towards the end
+of the drive he himself again referred to it.
+
+"She is a nice girl, isn't she?"
+
+"Very nice, I think; as far as I've seen her."
+
+"She is pretty, certainly."
+
+"Very pretty; more than pretty; much more. She will be beautiful."
+
+"But she is such a mere child. You do not think that anything will
+come of it immediately;--not quite immediately?"
+
+"Oh no; certainly not quite immediately. I think Herbert is not
+calculated to be very sudden in any such feelings, or in the
+expression of them: but I do think such an event very probable
+before the winter is over."
+
+In the mean time Herbert spent the whole day over at Desmond Court,
+or at Clady. He found the countess delighted to see him, and both
+she and Lady Clara went on with him to Clady. It was past five and
+quite dark before he reached Castle Richmond, so that he barely got
+home in time to dress for dinner.
+
+The dinner-party that evening was more pleasant than usual. Sir
+Thomas not only dined with them, but came into the drawing-room
+after dinner, and to a certain extent joined in their conversation.
+Lady Fitzgerald could see that this was done by a great effort; but
+it was not remarked by Aunt Letty and the others, who were delighted
+to have him with them, and to see him once more interested about
+their interests.
+
+And now the building of the mill had been settled, and the final
+orders were to be given by Herbert at the spot on the following
+morning.
+
+"We can go with you to Berryhill, I suppose, can't we?" said Mary.
+
+"I shall be in a great hurry," said Herbert, who clearly did not
+wish to be encumbered by his sisters on this special expedition.
+
+"And why are you to be in such a hurry to-morrow?" asked Aunt Letty.
+
+"Well, I shall be hurried; I have promised to go to Clady again, and
+I must be back here early, and must get another horse."
+
+"Why, Herbert, you are becoming a Hercules of energy," said his
+father, smiling: "you will have enough to do if you look to all the
+soup kitchens on the Desmond property as well as our own."
+
+"I made a sort of promise about this particular affair at Clady, and
+I must carry it out," said Herbert.
+
+"And you'll pay your devoirs to the fair Lady Clara on your way home
+of course," said Mary.
+
+"More than probable," he replied.
+
+"And stay so late again that you'll hardly be here in time for
+dinner," continued Mary: to which little sally her brother
+vouchsafed no answer.
+
+But Emmeline said nothing. Lady Clara was specially her friend, and
+she was too anxious to secure such a sister-in-law to make any joke
+upon such a subject.
+
+On that occasion nothing more was said about it; but Sir Thomas
+hoped within his heart that his wife was right in prophesying that
+his son would do nothing sudden in this matter.
+
+On the following morning young Fitzgerald gave the necessary orders
+at Berryhill very quickly, and then coming back remounted another
+horse without going into the house. Then he trotted off to Clady,
+passing the gate of Desmond Court without calling; did what he had
+promised to do at Clady, or rather that which he had made to stand
+as an excuse for again visiting that part of the world so quickly;
+and after that, with a conscience let us hope quite clear, rode up
+the avenue at Desmond Court. It was still early in the day when he
+got there, probably not much after two o'clock; and yet Mary had
+been quite correct in foretelling that he would only be home just in
+time for dinner.
+
+But, nevertheless, he had not seen Lady Desmond. Why or how it had
+occurred that she had been absent from the drawing-room the whole of
+the two hours which he had passed in the house, it may be
+unnecessary to explain. Such, however, had been the fact. The first
+five minutes had been passed in inquiries after the bruise, and, it
+must be owned, in a surgical inspection of the still discoloured
+arm. "It must be very painful," he had said, looking into her face,
+as though by doing so he could swear that he would so willingly bear
+all the pain himself, if it were only possible to make such an
+exchange.
+
+"Not very," she had answered, smiling. "It is only a little stiff. I
+can't quite move it easily."
+
+And then she lifted it up, and afterwards dropped it with a little
+look of pain that ran through his heart.
+
+The next five minutes were taken up in discussing the case of the
+recusant boiler, and then Clara discovered that she had better go
+and fetch her mother. But against the immediate taking of this step
+he had alleged some valid reason, and so they had gone on, till the
+dark night admonished him that he could do no more than save the
+dinner hour at Castle Richmond.
+
+The room was nearly dark when he left her, and she got up and stood
+at the front window, so that, unseen, she might see his figure as he
+rode off from the house. He mounted his horse within the quadrangle,
+and coming out at the great old-fashioned ugly portal, galloped off
+across the green park with a loose rein and a happy heart. What is
+it the song says?
+
+"Oh, ladies, beware of a gay young knight Who loves and who rides
+away."
+
+There was at Clara's heart, as she stood there at the window, some
+feeling of the expediency of being beware, some shadow of doubt as
+to the wisdom of what she had done. He rode away gaily, with a happy
+spirit, for he had won that on the winning of which he had been
+intent. No necessity for caution presented itself to him. He had
+seen and loved; had then asked, and had not asked in vain.
+
+She stood gazing after him, as long as her straining eye could catch
+any outline of his figure as it disappeared through the gloom of the
+evening. As long as she could see him, or even fancy that she still
+saw him, she thought only of his excellence; of his high character,
+his kind heart, his talents--which in her estimation were ranked
+perhaps above their real value--his tastes, which coincided so well
+with her own, his quiet yet manly bearing, his useful pursuits, his
+gait, appearance, and demeanour. All these were of a nature to win
+the heart of such a girl as Clara Desmond; and then, probably, in
+some indistinct way, she remembered the broad acres to which he was
+the heir, and comforted herself by reflecting that this at least was
+a match which none would think disgraceful for a daughter even of an
+Earl of Desmond.
+
+But sadder thoughts did come when that figure had wholly
+disappeared. Her eye, looking out into the darkness, could not but
+see another figure on which it had often in past times delighted
+almost unconsciously to dwell. There, walking on that very road,
+another lover, another Fitzgerald, had sworn that he loved her; and
+had truly sworn so, as she well knew. She had never doubted his
+truth to her, and did not doubt it now;--and yet she had given
+herself away to another.
+
+And in many things he too, that other lover, had been noble and
+gracious, and fit for a woman to love. In person he exceeded all
+that she had ever seen or dreamed of, and why should we think that
+personal excellence is to count for nothing in female judgment, when
+in that of men it ranks so immeasurably above all other excellences?
+His bearing, too, was chivalrous and bold, his language full of
+poetry, and his manner of loving eager, impetuous, and of a kin to
+worship. Then, too, he was now in misfortune, and when has that
+failed to soften even the softness of a woman's heart?
+
+It was impossible that she should not make comparisons, comparisons
+that were so distasteful to her; impossible, also, that she should
+not accuse herself of some falseness to that first lover. The time
+to us, my friends, seems short enough since she was walking there,
+and listening with childish delight to Owen's protestations of love.
+It was but little more than one year since: but to her those months
+had been very long. And, reader, if thou hast arrived at any period
+of life which enables thee to count thy past years by lustrums; if
+thou art at a time of life, past thirty we will say, hast thou not
+found that thy years, which are now short enough, were long in those
+bygone days?
+
+Those fourteen months were to her the space almost of a second life,
+as she now looked back upon them. When those earlier vows were made,
+what had she cared for prudence, for the world's esteem, or an
+alliance that might be becoming to her? That Owen Fitzgerald was a
+gentleman of high blood and ancient family, so much she had cared to
+know; for the rest, she had only cared to feel this, that her heart
+beat high with pleasure when he was with her.
+
+Did her heart beat as high now, when his cousin was beside her? No;
+she felt that it did not. And sometimes she felt, or feared to feel,
+that it might beat high again when she should again see the lover
+whom her judgment had rejected.
+
+Her judgment had rejected him altogether long before an idea had at
+all presented itself to her that Herbert Fitzgerald could become her
+suitor. Nor had this been done wholly in obedience to her mother's
+mandate. She had realized in her own mind the conviction that Owen
+Fitzgerald was not a man with whom any girl could at present safely
+link her fortune. She knew well that he was idle, dissipated, and
+extravagant; and she could not believe that these vices had arisen
+only from his banishment from her, and that they would cease and
+vanish whenever that banishment might cease.
+
+Messages came to her, in underhand ways--ways well understood in
+Ireland, and not always ignored in England--to the effect that all
+his misdoings arose from his unhappiness; that he drank and gambled
+only because the gates of Desmond Court were no longer open to him.
+There was that in Clara's heart which did for a while predispose her
+to believe somewhat of this, to hope that it might not be altogether
+false. Could any girl loving such a man not have had some such hope?
+But then the stories of these revelries became worse and worse, and
+it was dinned into her ears that these doings had been running on in
+all their enormity before that day of his banishment. And so,
+silently and sadly, with no outspoken word either to mother or
+brother, she had resolved to give him up.
+
+There was no necessity to her for any outspoken word. She had
+promised her mother to hold no intercourse with the man; and she had
+kept and would keep her promise. Why say more about it? How she
+might have reconciled her promise to her mother with an enduring
+engagement, had Owen Fitzgerald's conduct allowed her to regard her
+engagement as enduring,--that had been a sore trouble to her while
+hope had remained; but now no hope remained, and that trouble was
+over.
+
+And then Herbert Fitzgerald had come across her path, and those
+sweet, loving, kind Fitzgerald girls, who were always ready to cover
+her with such sweet caresses, with whom she had known more of the
+happiness of friendliness than ever she had felt before. They threw
+themselves upon her like sisters, and she had never before enjoyed
+sisterly treatment. He had come across her path; and from the first
+moment she had become conscious of his admiration.
+
+She knew herself to be penniless, and dreaded that she should be
+looked upon as wishing to catch the rich heir. But every one had
+conspired to throw them together. Lady Fitzgerald had welcomed her
+like a mother, with more caressing soft tenderness than her own
+mother usually vouchsafed to her; and even Sir Thomas had gone out
+of his usual way to be kind to her.
+
+That her mother would approve of such a marriage she could not
+doubt. Lady Desmond in these latter days had not said much to her
+about Owen; but she had said very much of the horrors of poverty.
+And she had been too subtle to praise the virtues of Herbert with
+open plain words; but she had praised the comforts of a handsome
+income and well-established family mansion. Clara at these times had
+understood more than had been intended, and had, therefore, put
+herself on her guard against her mother's worldly wisdom; but,
+nevertheless, the dropping of the water had in some little measure
+hollowed the stone beneath.
+
+And thus, thinking of these things, she stood at the window for some
+half-hour after the form of her accepted lover had become invisible
+in the gathering gloom of the evening.
+
+And then her mother entered the room, and candles were brought. Lady
+Desmond was all smiles and benignity, as she had been for this last
+week past, while Herbert Fitzgerald had been coming and going almost
+daily at Desmond Court. But Clara understood this benignity, and
+disliked it.
+
+It was, however, now necessary that everything should be told.
+Herbert had declared that he should at once inform his father and
+mother, and obtain their permission for his marriage. He spoke of it
+as a matter on which there was no occasion for any doubt or
+misgiving. He was an only son, he said, and trusted and loved in
+everything. His father never opposed him on any subject whatever;
+and would, he was sure, consent to any match he might propose. "But
+as to you," he added, with a lover's flattering fervour, "they are
+all so fond of you, they all think so much of you, that my only fear
+is that I shall be jealous. They'll all make love to you, Aunt Letty
+included."
+
+It was therefore essential that she should at once tell her mother,
+and ask her mother's leave. She had once before confessed a tale of
+love, and had done so with palpitation of the heart, with trembling
+of the limbs, and floods of tears. Then her tale had been received
+with harsh sternness. Now she could tell her story without any
+trembling, with no tears; but it was almost indifferent to her
+whether her mother was harsh or tender.
+
+"What! has Mr. Fitzgerald gone?" said the countess, on entering the
+room.
+
+"Yes, mamma; this half-hour," said Clara, not as yet coming away
+from the window.
+
+"I did not hear his horse, and imagined he was here still. I hope he
+has not thought me terribly uncivil, but I could not well leave what
+I was doing."
+
+To this little make-believe speech Clara did not think it necessary
+to return any answer. She was thinking how she would begin to say
+that for saying which there was so strong a necessity, and she could
+not take a part in small false badinage on a subject which was so
+near her heart.
+
+"And what about that stupid mason at Clady?" asked the countess,
+still making believe.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald was there again to-day, mamma; and I think it will
+be all right now; but he did not say much about it."
+
+"Why not? you were all so full of it yesterday."
+
+Clara, who had half turned round towards the light, now again turned
+herself towards the window. This task must be done; but the doing of
+it was so disagreeable! How was she to tell her mother that she
+loved this man, seeing that so short a time since she had declared
+that she loved another?
+
+"And what was he talking about, love?" said the countess, ever so
+graciously. "Or, perhaps, no questioning on the matter can be
+allowed. May I ask questions, or may I not? eh, Clara?" and then the
+mother, walking up towards the window, put her fair white hands upon
+her daughter's two shoulders.
+
+"Of course you may inquire," said Clara.
+
+"Then I do inquire--immediately. What has this preux chevalier been
+saying to my Clara, that makes her stand thus solemn and silent,
+gazing out into the dark night?"
+
+"Mamma!"
+
+"Well, love?"
+
+"Herbert Fitzgerald has--has asked me to be his wife. He has
+proposed to me."
+
+The mother's arm now encircled the daughter lovingly, and the
+mother's lips were pressed to the daughter's forehead. "Herbert
+Fitzgerald has asked you to be his wife, has he? And what answer has
+my bonny bird deigned to make to so audacious a request?"
+
+Lady Desmond had never before spoken to her daughter in tones so
+gracious, in a manner so flattering, so caressing, so affectionate.
+But Clara would not open her heart to her mother's tenderness. She
+could not look into her mother's face, and welcome her mother's
+consent with unutterable joy, as she would have done had that
+consent been given a year since to a less prudent proposition. That
+marriage for which she was now to ask her mother's sanction would of
+course be sanctioned. She had no favour to beg; nothing for which to
+be grateful. With a slight motion, unconsciously, unwillingly, but
+not the less positively, she repulsed her mother's caress as she
+answered her question.
+
+"I have accepted him, mamma; that is, of course, if you do not
+object."
+
+"My own, own child!" said the countess, seizing her daughter in her
+arms, and pressing her to her bosom. And in truth Clara was, now
+probably for the first time, her own heart's daughter. Her son,
+though he was but a poor earl, was Earl of Desmond. He too, though
+in truth but a poor earl, was not absolutely destitute,--would in
+truth be blessed with a fair future. But Lady Clara had hitherto
+been felt only as a weight. She had been born poor as poverty
+itself, and hitherto had shown so little disposition to find for
+herself a remedy for this crushing evil! But now--now matters were
+indeed changed. She had obtained for herself the best match in the
+whole country round, and, in doing so, had sacrificed her heart's
+young love. Was she not entitled to all a mother's tenderness? Who
+knew, who could know the miseries of poverty so well as the Countess
+of Desmond? Who then could feel so much gratitude to a child for
+prudently escaping from them? Lady Desmond did feel grateful to her
+daughter.
+
+"My own, own child; my happy girl," she repeated. "He is a man to
+whom any mother in all the land would be proud to see her daughter
+married. Never, never did I see a young man so perfectly worthy of a
+girl's love. He is so thoroughly well educated, so thoroughly well
+conducted, so good-looking, so warm-hearted, so advantageously
+situated in all his circumstances. Of course he will go into
+Parliament, and then any course is open to him. The property is, I
+believe, wholly unembarrassed, and there are no younger brothers.
+You may say that the place is his own already, for old Sir Thomas is
+almost nobody. I do wish you joy, my own dearest, dearest Clara!"
+After which burst of maternal eloquence, the countess pressed her
+lips to those of her child, and gave her a mother's warmest kiss.
+
+Clara was conscious that she was thoroughly dissatisfied with her
+mother, but she could not exactly say why it was so. She did return
+her mother's kiss, but she did it coldly, and with lips that were
+not eager.
+
+"I'm glad you think that I have done right, mamma."
+
+"Right, my love! Of course I think that you have done right: only I
+give you no credit, dearest; none in the least; for how could you
+help loving one so lovable in every way as dear Herbert?"
+
+"Credit! no, there is no credit," she said, not choosing to share
+her mother's pleasantry.
+
+"But there is this credit. Had you not been one of the sweetest
+girls that ever was born, he would not have loved you."
+
+"He has loved me because there was no one else here," said Clara.
+
+"Nonsense! No one else here, indeed! Has he not the power if he
+pleases to go and choose whomever he will in all London. Had he been
+mercenary, and wanted money," said the countess, in a tone which
+showed how thoroughly she despised any such vice, "he might have had
+what he would. But then he could not have had my Clara. But he has
+looked for beauty and manners and high-bred tastes, and an
+affectionate heart; and, in my opinion, he could not have been more
+successful in his search." After which second burst of eloquence,
+she again kissed her daughter.
+
+'Twas thus, at that moment, that she congratulated the wife of the
+future Sir Herbert Fitzgerald; and then she allowed Clara to go up
+to her own room, there to meditate quietly on what she had done, and
+on that which she was about to do. But late in the evening, Lady
+Desmond, whose mind was thoroughly full of the subject, again broke
+out into triumph.
+
+"You must write to Patrick to-morrow, Clara. He must hear the good
+news from no one but yourself."
+
+"Had we not better wait a little, mamma?"
+
+"Why, my love? You hardly know how anxious your brother is for your
+welfare."
+
+"I knew it was right to tell you, mamma--"
+
+"Right to tell me! of course it was. You could not have had the
+heart to keep it from me for half a day."
+
+"But perhaps it may be better not to mention it further till we
+know--"
+
+"Till we know what?" said the countess, with a look of fear about
+her brow.
+
+"Whether Sir Thomas and Lady Fitzgerald will wish it. If they
+object--"
+
+"Object! why should they object? how can they object? They are not
+mercenary people; and you are an earl's daughter. And Herbert is not
+like a girl. The property is his own, entailed on him, and he may do
+as he pleases."
+
+"In such a matter I am sure he would not wish to displease either
+his father or his mother."
+
+"Nonsense, my dear; quite nonsense; you do not at all see the
+difference between a young man and a girl. He has a right to do
+exactly as he likes in such a matter. But I am quite sure that they
+will not object. Why should they? How can they?"
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald says that they will not," Clara admitted, almost
+grudgingly.
+
+"Of course they will not. I don't suppose they could bring
+themselves to object to anything he might suggest. I never knew a
+young man so happily situated in this respect. He is quite a free
+agent. I don't think they would say much to him if he insisted on
+marrying the cook-maid. Indeed, it seems to me that his word is
+quite paramount at Castle Richmond."
+
+"All the same, mamma, I would rather not write to Patrick till
+something more has been settled."
+
+"You are wrong there, Clara. If anything disagreeable should happen,
+which is quite impossible, it would be absolutely necessary that
+your brother should know. Believe me, my love, I only advise you for
+your own good."
+
+"But Mr. Fitzgerald will probably be here to-morrow; or if not
+to-morrow, next day."
+
+"I have no doubt he will, love. But why do you call him Mr.
+Fitzgerald? You were calling him Herbert the other day. Don't you
+remember how I scolded you? I should not scold you now."
+
+Clara made no answer to this, and then the subject was allowed to
+rest for that night. She would call him Herbert, she said to
+herself; but not to her mother. She would keep the use of that name
+till she could talk with Emmeline as a sister. Of all her
+anticipated pleasures, that of having now a real sister was perhaps
+the greatest; or, rather, that of being able to talk about Herbert
+with one whom she could love and treat as a sister. But Herbert
+himself would exact the use of his own Christian name, for the
+delight of his own ears; that was a matter of course; that,
+doubtless, had been already done.
+
+And then mother and daughter went to bed. The countess, as she did
+so, was certainly happy to her heart's core. Could it be that she
+had some hope, unrecognized by herself, that Owen Fitzgerald might
+now once more be welcomed at Desmond Court? that something might now
+be done to rescue him from that slough of despond?
+
+And Clara too was happy, though her happiness was mixed. She did
+love Herbert Fitzgerald. She was sure of that. She said so to
+herself over and over again. Love him! of course she loved him, and
+would cherish him as her lord and husband to the last day of her
+life, the last gasp of her breath.
+
+But still, as sleep came upon her eyelids, she saw in her memory the
+bright flash of that other lover's countenance, when he first
+astonished her with the avowal of his love, as he walked beside her
+under the elms, with his horse following at his heels.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+DOUBTS
+
+
+
+
+
+I believe there is no period of life so happy as that in which a
+thriving lover leaves his mistress after his first success. His joy
+is more perfect then than at the absolute moment of his own eager
+vow, and her half-assenting blushes. Then he is thinking mostly of
+her, and is to a certain degree embarrassed by the effort necessary
+for success. But when the promise has once been given to him, and he
+is able to escape into the domain of his own heart, he is as a
+conqueror who has mastered half a continent by his own strategy.
+
+It never occurs to him, he hardly believes, that his success is no
+more than that which is the ordinary lot of mortal man. He never
+reflects that all the old married fogies whom he knows and despises,
+have just as much ground for pride, if such pride were enduring;
+that every fat, silent, dull, somnolent old lady whom he sees and
+quizzes, has at some period been deemed as worthy a prize as his
+priceless galleon; and so deemed by as bold a captor as himself.
+
+Some one has said that every young mother, when her first child is
+born, regards the babe as the most wonderful production of that
+description which the world has yet seen. And this too is true. But
+I doubt even whether that conviction is so strong as the conviction
+of the young successful lover, that he has achieved a triumph which
+should ennoble him down to late generations. As he goes along he has
+a contempt for other men; for they know nothing of such glory as
+his. As he pores over his "Blackstone," he remembers that he does
+so, not so much that he may acquire law, as that he may acquire
+Fanny; and then all other porers over "Blackstone" are low and mean
+in his sight--are mercenary in their views and unfortunate in their
+ideas, for they have no Fanny in view.
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald had this proud feeling strong within his heart as
+he galloped away across the greensward, and trotted fast along the
+road, home to Castle Richmond. She was compounded of all
+excellences--so he swore to himself over and over again--and being
+so compounded, she had consented to bestow all these excellences
+upon him. Being herself goddess-like, she had promised to take him
+as the object of her world's worship. So he trotted on fast and
+faster, as though conscious of the half-continent which he had won
+by his skill and valour.
+
+She had told him about his cousin Owen. Indeed, the greater number
+of the soft musical words which she had spoken in that long three
+hours' colloquy had been spoken on this special point. It had
+behoved her to tell him all; and she thought that she had done so.
+Nay, she had done so with absolute truth--to the best of her heart's
+power.
+
+"You were so young then," he had argued; "so very young."
+
+"Yes, very young. I am not very old now, you know," and she smiled
+sweetly on him.
+
+"No, no; but a year makes so much difference. You were all but a
+child then. You do not love him now, Clara?"
+
+"No; I do not love him now," she had answered.
+
+And then he exacted a second, a third, a fourth assurance, that she
+did absolutely, actually, and with her whole heart love him, him
+Herbert, in lieu of that other him, poor Owen; and with this he,
+Herbert, was contented. Content; nay, but proud, elated with
+triumph, and conscious of victory. In this spirit he rode home as
+fast as his horse could carry him.
+
+He too had to tell his tale to those to whom he owed obedience, and
+to beg that they would look upon his intended bride with eyes of
+love and with parental affection. But in this respect he was hardly
+troubled with more doubt than Clara had felt. How could any one
+object to his Clara?
+
+There are young men who, from their positions in life, are obliged
+to abstain from early marriage, or to look for dowries with their
+wives. But he, luckily, was not fettered in this way. He could marry
+as he pleased, so long as she whom he might choose brought with her
+gentle blood, a good heart, a sweet temper, and such attraction of
+person and manners as might make the establishment at Castle
+Richmond proud of his young bride. And of whom could that
+establishment be more proud than of Lady Clara Desmond? So he rode
+home without any doubt to clog his happiness.
+
+But he had a source of joy which Clara wanted. She was almost
+indifferent to her mother's satisfaction; but Herbert looked forward
+with the liveliest, keenest anticipation to his mother's gratified
+caresses and unqualified approval--to his father's kind smile and
+warm assurance of consent. Clara had made herself known at Castle
+Richmond; and he had no doubt but that all this would be added to
+his cup of happiness. There was therefore no alloy to debase his
+virgin gold as he trotted quickly into the stable-yard.
+
+But he resolved that he would say nothing about the matter that
+night. He could not well tell them all in full conclave together.
+Early after breakfast he would go to his father's room; and after
+that, he would find his mother. There would then be no doubt that
+the news would duly leak out among his sisters and Aunt Letty.
+
+"Again only just barely in time, Herbert," said Mary, as they
+clustered round the fire before dinner.
+
+"You can't say I ever keep you waiting; and I really think that's
+some praise for a man who has got a good many things on his hand."
+
+"So it is, Herbert," said Emmeline. "But we have done something too.
+We have been over to Berryhill; and the people have already begun
+there: they were at work with their pickaxes among the rocks by the
+river-side."
+
+"So much the better. Was Mr. Somers there?"
+
+"We did not see him: but he had been there," said Aunt Letty. "But
+Mrs. Townsend found us. And who do you think came up to us in the
+most courteous, affable, condescending way?"
+
+"Who? I don't know. Brady, the builder, I suppose."
+
+"No, indeed: Brady was not half so civil, for he kept himself to his
+own work. It was the Rev. Mr. M'Carthy, if you please."
+
+"I only hope you were civil to him," said Herbert, with some slight
+suffusion of colour over his face; for he rather doubted the conduct
+of his aunt to the priest, especially as her great Protestant ally,
+Mrs. Townsend, was of the party.
+
+"Civil! I don't know what you would have, unless you wanted me to
+embrace him. He shook hands with us all round. I really thought Mrs.
+Townsend would have looked him into the river when he came to her."
+
+"She always was the quintessence of absurdity and prejudice," said
+he.
+
+"Oh, Herbert!" exclaimed Aunt Letty.
+
+"Well; and what of 'Oh, Herbert?' I say she is so. If you and Mary
+and Emmeline did not look him into the river when he shook hands
+with you, why should she do so? He is an ordained priest even
+according to her own tenets,--only she knows nothing of what her own
+tenets are."
+
+"I'll tell you what they are. They are the substantial, true, and
+holy doctrines of the Protestant religion, founded on the gospel.
+Mrs. Townsend is a thoroughly Protestant woman; one who cannot abide
+the sorceries of popery."
+
+"Hates them as a mad dog hates water; and with the same amount of
+judgment. We none of us wish to be drowned; but nevertheless there
+are some good qualities in water."
+
+"But there are no good qualities in popery," said Aunt Letty, with
+her most extreme energy.
+
+"Are there not?" said Herbert. "I should have thought that belief in
+Christ, belief in the Bible, belief in the doctrine of a Saviour's
+atonement, were good qualities. Even the Mahommedan's religion has
+some qualities that are good."
+
+"I would sooner be a Mahommedan than a Papist," said Aunt Letty,
+somewhat thoughtlessly, but very stoutly.
+
+"You would alter your opinion after the first week in a harem," said
+Herbert. And then there was a burst of laughter, in which Aunt Letty
+herself joined. "I would sooner go there than go to confession," she
+whispered to Mary, as they all walked off to dinner.
+
+"And how is the Lady Clara's arm?" asked Mary, as soon as they were
+again once more round the fire.
+
+"The Lady Clara's arm is still very blue," said Herbert.
+
+"And I suppose it took you half an hour to weep over it?" continued
+his sister.
+
+"Exactly, by Shrewsbury clock."
+
+"And while you were weeping over the arm, what happened to the hand?
+She did not surrender it, did she, in return for so much tenderness
+on your part?"
+
+Emmeline thought that Mary was very pertinacious in her badinage,
+and was going to bid her hold her tongue; but she observed that
+Herbert blushed, and walked away without further answer. He went to
+the further end of the long room, and there threw himself on to a
+sofa. "Could it be that it was all settled?" thought Emmeline to
+herself.
+
+She followed him to the sofa, and sitting beside him, took hold of
+his arm. "Oh, Herbert! if there is anything to tell, do tell me."
+
+"Anything to tell!" said he. "What do you mean?"
+
+"Oh! you know. I do love her so dearly. I shall never be contented
+to love any one else as your wife--not to love her really, really
+with all my heart."
+
+"What geese you girls are!--you are always thinking of love, and
+weddings, and orange-blossoms."
+
+"It is only for you I think about them," said Emmeline. "I know
+there is something to tell. Dear Herbert, do tell me."
+
+"There is a young bachelor duke coming here to-morrow. He has a
+million a-year, and three counties all his own; he has blue eyes,
+and is the handsomest man that ever was seen. Is that news enough?"
+
+"Very well, Herbert. I would tell you anything."
+
+"Well; tell me anything."
+
+"I'll tell you this. I know you're in love with Clara Desmond, and
+I'm sure she's in love with you; and I believe you are both engaged,
+and you're not nice at all to have a secret from me. I never tease
+you, as Mary does, and it would make me so happy to know it."
+
+Upon this he put his arm round her waist and whispered one word into
+her ear. She gave an exclamation of delight; and as the tears came
+into her eyes congratulated him with a kiss. "Oh dear, oh dear! I am
+so happy!" she exclaimed.
+
+"Hush--sh," he whispered. "I knew how it would be if I told you."
+
+"But they will all know to-morrow, will they not?"
+
+"Leave that to me. You have coaxed me out of my secret, and you are
+bound to keep it. And then he went away well pleased. This
+description of delight on his sister's part was the first instalment
+of that joy which he had promised himself from the satisfaction of
+his family."
+
+Lady Fitzgerald had watched all that had passed, and had already
+learned her mistake--her mistake in that she had prophesied that no
+immediate proposal was likely to be made by her son. She now knew
+well enough that he had made such a proposal, and that he had been
+accepted.
+
+And this greatly grieved her. She had felt certain from the few
+slight words which Sir Thomas had spoken that there were valid
+reasons why her son should not marry a penniless girl. That
+conversation, joined to other things, to the man's visit, and her
+husband's deep dejection, had convinced her that all was not right.
+Some misfortune was impending over them, and there had been that in
+her own early history which filled her with dismay as she thought of
+this.
+
+She had ardently desired to caution her son in this respect,--to
+guard him, if possible, against future disappointment and future
+sorrow. But she could not do so without obtaining in some sort her
+husband's assent to her doing so. She resolved that she would talk
+it over with Sir Thomas. But the subject was one so full of pain,
+and he was so ill, and therefore she had put it off.
+
+And now she saw that the injury was done.
+
+Nevertheless, she said nothing either to Emmeline or to Herbert. If
+the injury were done, what good could now result from talking? She
+doubtless would hear it all soon enough. So she sat still, watching
+them.
+
+On the following morning Sir Thomas did not come out to breakfast.
+Herbert went into his room quite early, as was always his custom;
+and as he left it for the breakfast-parlour he said, "Father, I
+should like to speak to you just now about something of importance."
+
+"Something of importance, Herbert; what is it? Anything wrong?" For
+Sir Thomas was nervous, and easily frightened.
+
+"Oh dear, no; nothing is wrong. It is nothing that will annoy you;
+at least, I think not. But it will keep till after breakfast. I will
+come in again the moment breakfast is over." And so saying he left
+the room with a light step.
+
+In the breakfast-parlour it seemed to him as though everybody was
+conscious of some important fact. His mother's kiss was peculiarly
+solemn and full of solicitude; Aunt Letty smirked as though she was
+aware of something--something over and above the great Protestant
+tenets which usually supported her; and Mary had no joke to fling at
+him.
+
+"Emmeline," he whispered, "you have told."
+
+"No, indeed," she replied. But what mattered it? Everybody would
+know now in a few minutes. So he ate his breakfast, and then
+returned to Sir Thomas.
+
+"Father," said he, as soon as he had got into the armchair, in which
+it was his custom to sit when talking with Sir Thomas, "I hope what
+I am going to tell you will give you pleasure. I have proposed to a
+young lady, and she has--accepted me."
+
+"You have proposed, and have been accepted!"
+
+"Yes, father."
+
+"And the young lady--?"
+
+"Is Lady Clara Desmond. I hope you will say that you approve of it.
+She has no fortune, as we all know, but that will hardly matter to
+me; and I think you will allow that in every other respect she is--"
+
+Perfect, Herbert would have said, had he dared to express his true
+meaning. But he paused for a moment to look for a less triumphant
+word; and then paused again, and left his sentence incomplete, when
+he saw the expression of his father's face.
+
+"Oh, father! you do not mean to say that you do not like her?"
+
+But it was not dislike that was expressed in his father's face, as
+Herbert felt the moment after he had spoken. There was pain there,
+and solicitude, and disappointment; a look of sorrow at the tidings
+thus conveyed to him; but nothing that seemed to betoken dislike of
+any person.
+
+"What is it, sir? Why do you not speak to me? Can it be that you
+disapprove of my marrying?"
+
+Sir Thomas certainly did disapprove of his son's marrying, but he
+lacked the courage to say so. Much misery that had hitherto come
+upon him, and that was about to come on all those whom he loved so
+well, arose from this lack of courage. He did not dare to tell his
+son that he advised him for the present to put aside all such hopes.
+It would have been terrible for him to do so; but he knew that in
+not doing so he was occasioning sorrow that would be more terrible.
+
+And yet he did not do it. Herbert saw clearly that the project was
+distasteful to his father,--that project which he had hoped to have
+seen received with so much delight; but nothing was said to him
+which tended to make him alter his purpose.
+
+"Do you not like her?" he asked his father, almost piteously.
+
+"Yes, yes; I do like her, we all like her, very much indeed,
+Herbert."
+
+"Then why--"
+
+"You are so young, my boy, and she is so very young, and--"
+
+"And what?"
+
+"Why, Herbert, it is not always practicable for the son even of a
+man of property to marry so early in life as this. She has nothing,
+you know."
+
+"So," said the young man, proudly; "I never thought of looking for
+money."
+
+"But in your position it is so essential if a young man wishes to
+marry."
+
+Herbert had always regarded his father as the most liberal man
+breathing,--as open-hearted and open-handed almost to a fault. To
+him, his only son, he had ever been so, refusing him nothing, and
+latterly allowing him to do almost as he would with the management
+of the estate. He could not understand that this liberality should
+be turned to parsimony on such an occasion as that of his son's
+marriage.
+
+"You think then, sir, that I ought not to marry Lady Clara?" said
+Herbert very bitterly.
+
+"I like her excessively," said Sir Thomas. "I think she is a sweet
+girl, a very sweet girl, all that I or your mother could desire to
+see in your wife; but--"
+
+"But she is not rich."
+
+"Do not speak to me in that tone, my boy," said Sir Thomas, with an
+expression that would have moved his enemy to pity, let alone his
+son. His son did pity him, and ceased to wear the angry expression
+of face which had so wounded his father.
+
+"But, father, I do not understand you," he said. "Is there any real
+objection why I should not marry? I am more than twenty-two, and
+you, I think, married earlier than that."
+
+In answer to this Sir Thomas only sighed meekly and piteously.
+
+"If you mean to say," continued the son, "that it will be
+inconvenient to you to make me any allowance--"
+
+"No, no, no; you are of course entitled to what you want, and as
+long as I can give it, you shall have it."
+
+"As long as you can give it, father!"
+
+"As long as it is in my power, I mean. What can I want of anything
+but for you--for you and them?"
+
+After this Herbert sat silent for a while, leaning on his arm. He
+knew that there existed some mischief, but he could not fathom it.
+Had he been prudent, he would have felt that there was some
+impediment to his love; some evil which it behoved him to fathom
+before he allowed his love to share it; but when was a lover
+prudent?
+
+"We should live here, should we not, father? No second establishment
+would be necessary."
+
+"Of course you would live here," said Sir Thomas, glad to be able to
+look at the subject on any side that was not painful. "Of course you
+would live here. For the matter of that, Herbert, the house should
+be considered as your own if you so wished it."
+
+Against this the son put in his most violent protest. Nothing on
+earth should make him consider himself master of Castle Richmond as
+long as his father lived. Nor would Clara,--his Clara, wish it. He
+knew her well, he boasted. It would amply suffice to her to live
+there with them all. Was not the house large enough? And, indeed,
+where else could he live, seeing that all his interests were
+naturally centred upon the property?
+
+And then Sir Thomas did give his consent. It would be wrong to say
+that it was wrung from him. He gave it willingly enough, as far as
+the present moment was concerned. When it was once settled, he
+assured his son that he would love Clara as his daughter. But,
+nevertheless--
+
+The father knew that he had done wrong; and Herbert knew that he
+also, he himself, had done wrongly. He was aware that there was
+something which he did not understand. But he had promised to see
+Clara either that day or the next, and he could not bring himself to
+unsay all that he had said to her. He left his father's room
+sorrowful at heart, and discontented. He had expected that his
+tidings would have been received in so far other a manner; that he
+would have been able to go from his father's study upstairs to his
+mother's room with so exulting a step; that his news, when once the
+matter was ratified by his father's approval, would have flown about
+the house with so loud a note of triumph. And now it was so
+different! His father had consented; but it was too plain that there
+was no room for any triumph.
+
+"Well, Herbert!" said Emmeline, jumping up to meet him as he
+returned to a small back drawing-room, through which he had gone to
+his father's dressing-room. She had calculated that he would come
+there, and that she might thus get the first word from him after the
+interview was over.
+
+But there was a frown upon his brow, and displeasure in his eyes.
+There was none of that bright smile of gratified pride with which
+she had expected that her greeting would have been met. "Is there
+anything wrong?" she said. "He does not disapprove, does he?"
+
+"Never mind; and do leave me now. I never can make you understand
+that one is not always in a humour for joking." And so saying, he
+put her aside, and passed on.
+
+Joking! That was indeed hard upon poor Emmeline, seeing that her
+thoughts were so full of him, that her heart beat so warmly for his
+promised bride. But she said nothing, shrinking back abashed, and
+vanishing out of the way. Could it be possible that her father
+should have refused to receive Lady Clara Desmond as his
+daughter-in-law?
+
+He then betook himself to a private territory of his own, where he
+might be sure that he would remain undisturbed for some half-hour or
+so. He would go to his mother, of course, but not quite immediately.
+He would think over the matter, endeavouring to ascertain what it
+was that had made his father's manner and words so painful to him.
+
+But he could not get his thoughts to work rightly;--which getting of
+the thoughts to work rightly is, by-the-by, as I take it, the
+hardest work which a man is called upon to do. Not that the subject
+to be thought about need in itself be difficult. Were one to say
+that thoughts about hydrostatics and pneumatics are difficult to the
+multitude, or that mental efforts in regions of political economy or
+ethical philosophy are beyond ordinary reach, one would only
+pronounce an evident truism, an absurd platitude. But let any man
+take any subject fully within his own mind's scope, and strive to
+think about it steadily, with some attempt at calculation as to
+results. The chances are his mind will fly off, will-he-nill-he, to
+some utterly different matter. When he wishes to debate within
+himself that question of his wife's temper, he will find himself
+considering whether he may not judiciously give away half a dozen
+pairs of those old boots; or when it behoves him to decide whether
+it shall be manure and a green crop, or a fallow season and then
+grass seeds, he cannot keep himself from inward inquiry as to the
+meaning of that peculiar smile on Mrs. Walker's face when he shook
+hands with her last night.
+
+Lord Brougham and Professor Faraday can, no doubt, command their
+thoughts. If many men could do so, there would be many Lord
+Broughams and many Professor Faradays.
+
+At the present moment Herbert Fitzgerald had no right to consider
+himself as following in the steps of either one or other of these
+great men. He wished to think about his father's circumstances, but
+his mind would fly off to Clara Desmond and her perfections. And
+thus, though he remained there for half an hour, with his back to
+the fire and his hands in his pockets, his deliberations had done
+him no good whatever,--had rather done him harm, seeing that he had
+only warmed himself into a firmer determination to go on with what
+he was doing. And then he went to his mother.
+
+She kissed him, and spoke very tenderly, nay affectionately, about
+Clara; but even she, even his mother, did not speak joyously; and
+she also said something about the difficulty of providing a
+maintenance for a married son. Then to her he burst forth, and spoke
+somewhat loudly.
+
+"I cannot understand all this, mother. If either you or my father
+know any reason why I should be treated differently from other sons,
+you ought to tell me; not leave me to grope about in the dark."
+
+"But, my boy, we both think that no son was ever entitled to more
+consideration, or to kinder or more liberal treatment."
+
+"Why do I hear all this, then, about the difficulty of my marrying?
+Or if I hear so much, why do I not hear more? I know pretty well, I
+believe, what is my father's income."
+
+"If you do not, he would tell you for the asking."
+
+"And I know that I must be the heir to it, whatever it is,--not that
+that feeling would make any difference in my dealings with him, not
+the least. And, under these circumstances, I cannot conceive why he
+and you should look coldly upon my marriage."
+
+"I look coldly on it, Herbert!"
+
+"Do you not? Do you not tell me that there will be no income for me?
+If that is to be so; if that really is the case; if the property has
+so dwindled away, or become embarrassed--"
+
+"Oh, Herbert! there never was a man less likely to injure his son's
+property than your father."
+
+"I do not mean that, mother. Let him do what he likes with it, I
+should not upbraid him, even in my thoughts. But if it be
+embarrassed; if it has dwindled away; if there be any reason why I
+should not regard myself as altogether untrammelled with regard to
+money, he ought to tell me. I cannot accuse myself of expensive
+tastes."
+
+"Dearest Herbert, nobody accuses you of anything."
+
+"But I do desire to marry; and now I have engaged myself, and will
+not break from my engagement, unless it be shown to me that I am
+bound in honour to do so. Then, indeed--"
+
+"Oh, Herbert! I do not know what you mean."
+
+"I mean this: that I expect that Clara shall be received as my wife
+with open arms--"
+
+"And so she shall be if she comes."
+
+"Or else that some reason should be given me why she should not
+come. As to income, something must be done, I suppose. If the means
+at our disposal are less than I have been taught to believe, I at
+any rate will not complain. But they cannot, I think, be so small as
+to afford any just reason why I should not marry."
+
+"Your father, you see, is ill, and one can hardly talk to him fully
+upon such matters at present."
+
+"Then I will speak to Somers. He, at any rate, must know how the
+property is circumstanced, and I suppose he will not hesitate to
+tell me."
+
+"I don't think Somers can tell you anything."
+
+"Then what is it? As for the London estate, mother, that is all
+moonshine. What if it were gone altogether? It may be that it is
+that which vexes my father; but if so, it is a monomania."
+
+"Oh, my boy, do not use such a word!"
+
+"You know what I mean. If any doubt as to that is creating this
+despondency, it only shows that though we are bound to respect and
+relieve my father's state of mind, we are not at all bound to share
+it. What would it really matter, mother, if that place in London
+were washed away by the Thames? There is more than enough left for
+us all, unless--"
+
+"Ah, Herbert, that is it."
+
+"Then I will go to Somers, and he shall tell me. My father's
+interest in this property cannot have been involved without his
+knowledge; and circumstanced as we and my father are, he is bound to
+tell me."
+
+"If there be anything within his knowledge to tell, he will tell
+it."
+
+"And if there be nothing within his knowledge, then I can only look
+upon all this as a disease on my poor father's part. I will do all I
+can to comfort him in it; but it would be madness to destroy my
+whole happiness because he labours under delusions."
+
+Lady Fitzgerald did not know what further to say. She half believed
+that Sir Thomas did labour under some delusion; but then she half
+believed also that he had upon his mind a sorrow, terribly real,
+which was in no sort delusive. Under such circumstances, how could
+she advise her son? Instead of advising him, she caressed him.
+
+"But I may claim this from you, mother, that if Somers tells me
+nothing which ought to make me break my word to Clara, you will
+receive her as your daughter. You will promise me that, will you
+not?"
+
+Lady Fitzgerald did promise, warmly; assuring him that she already
+dearly loved Clara Desmond, that she would delight in having such a
+daughter-in-law, and that she would go to her to welcome her as such
+as soon as ever he should bid her do so. With this Herbert was
+somewhat comforted, and immediately started on his search after Mr.
+Somers.
+
+I do not think that any person is to be found, as a rule, attached
+to English estates whose position is analogous to that of an Irish
+agent. And there is a wide misunderstanding in England as to these
+Irish functionaries. I have attempted, some pages back, to describe
+the national delinquencies of a middleman, or profit-renter. In
+England we are apt to think that the agents on Irish properties are
+to be charged with similar shortcomings. This I can assert to be a
+great mistake; and I believe that, as a class, the agents on Irish
+properties do their duty in a manner beneficial to the people.
+
+That there are, or were, many agents who were also middlemen, or
+profit-renters, and that in this second position they were a
+nuisance to the country, is no doubt true. But they were no nuisance
+in their working capacity as agents. That there are some bad agents
+there can be no doubt, as there are also some bad shoemakers.
+
+The duties towards an estate which an agent performs in Ireland are,
+I believe, generally shared in England between three or four
+different persons. The family lawyer performs part, the estate
+steward performs part, and the landlord himself performs part;--as
+to small estates, by far the greater part.
+
+In Ireland, let the estate be ever so small--eight hundred a-year,
+we will say--all the working of the property is managed by the
+agent. It is he who knows the tenants, and the limits of their
+holdings; it is he who arranges leases, and allows--or much more
+generally does not allow--for improvements. He takes the rent, and
+gives the order for the ejection of tenants if he cannot get it.
+
+I am far from saying that it would not be well that much of this
+should be done by the landlord himself; that all of it should be so
+done on a small property. But it is done by agents; and, as a rule,
+is, I think, done honestly.
+
+Mr. Somers was agent to the Castle Richmond property, and as he took
+to himself as such five per cent, on all rents paid, and as he was
+agent also to sundry other small properties in the neighbourhood, he
+succeeded in making a very snug income. He had also an excellent
+house on the estate, and was altogether very much thought of; on the
+whole, perhaps, more than was Sir Thomas. But in this respect it was
+probable that Herbert might soon take the lead.
+
+He was a large, heavy, consequential man, always very busy, as
+though aware of being one of the most important wheels that kept the
+Irish clock agoing; but he was honest, kind-hearted in the main,
+true as steel to his employers, and good-humoured--as long as he was
+allowed to have his own way. In these latter days he had been a
+little soured by Herbert's interference, and had even gone so far as
+to say that, "in his humble judgment, Mr. Fitzgerald was wrong in
+doing"--so and so. But he generally called him Herbert, was always
+kind to him, and in his heart of hearts loved him dearly. But that
+was a matter of course, for had he not been agent to the estate
+before Herbert was born?
+
+Immediately after his interview with his mother, Mr. Herbert rode
+over to Mr. Somers's house, and there found him sitting alone in his
+office. He dashed immediately into the subject that had brought him
+there. "I have come, Mr. Somers," said he, "to ask you a question
+about the property."
+
+"About the Castle Richmond property?" said Mr. Somers, rather
+surprised by his visitor's manner.
+
+"Yes; you know in what a state my poor father now is."
+
+"I know that Sir Thomas is not very well. I am sorry to say that it
+is long since he has been quite himself."
+
+"There is something that is preying upon his spirits."
+
+"I am afraid so, Herbert."
+
+"Then tell me fairly, Mr. Somers, do you know what it is?"
+
+"Not--in--the least. I have no conception whatever, and never have
+had any. I know no cause for trouble that should disquiet him."
+
+"There is nothing wrong about the property?"
+
+"Not to my knowledge."
+
+"Who has the title-deeds?"
+
+"They are at Coutts's."
+
+"You are sure of that?"
+
+"Well; as sure as a man can be of a thing that he does not see. I
+have never seen them there; indeed, have never seen them at all; but
+I feel no doubt in my own mind as to their being at the bankers."
+
+"Is there much due on the estate?"
+
+"Very little. No estate in county Cork has less on it. Miss Letty
+has her income, and when Poulnasherry was bought,--that townland
+lying just under Berryhill, where the gorse cover is, part of the
+purchase money was left on mortgage. That is still due; but the
+interest is less than a hundred a-year."
+
+"And that is all?"
+
+"All that I know of."
+
+"Could there be encumbrances without your knowing it?"
+
+"I think not. I think it is impossible. Of all men your father is
+the last to encumber his estates in a manner unknown to his agent,
+and to pay off the interest in secret."
+
+"What is it, then, Mr. Somers?"
+
+"I do not know." And then Mr. Somers paused. "Of course you have
+heard of a visit he received the other day from a stranger?"
+
+"Yes; I heard of it."
+
+"People about here are talking of it. And he--that man, with a
+younger man--they are still living in Cork, at a little
+drinking-house in South Main Street. The younger man has been seen
+down here twice."
+
+"But what can that mean?"
+
+"I do not know. I tell you everything that I do know."
+
+Herbert exacted a promise from him that he would continue to tell
+him everything which he might learn, and then rode back to Castle
+Richmond.
+
+"The whole thing must be a delusion," he said to himself; and
+resolved that there was no valid reason why he should make Clara
+unhappy by any reference to the circumstance.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+MR. MOLLETT RETURNS TO SOUTH MAIN STREET
+
+
+
+
+
+I must now take my readers back to that very unsavoury public-house
+in South Main Street, Cork, in which, for the present, lived Mr.
+Matthew Mollett and his son Abraham.
+
+I need hardly explain to a discerning public that Mr. Matthew
+Mollett was the gentleman who made that momentous call at Castle
+Richmond, and flurried all that household.
+
+"Drat it!" said Mrs. Jones to herself on that day, as soon as she
+had regained the solitude of her own private apartment, after having
+taken a long look at Mr. Mollett in the hall. On that occasion she
+sat down on a low chair in the middle of the room, put her two hands
+down substantially on her two knees, gave a long sigh, and then made
+the above exclamation,--"Drat it!"
+
+Mrs. Jones was still thoroughly a Saxon, although she had lived for
+so many years among the Celts. But it was only when she was quite
+alone that she allowed herself the indulgence of so peculiarly Saxon
+a mode of expressing either her surprise or indignation.
+
+"It's the same man," she said to herself, "as come that day, as sure
+as eggs;" and then for five minutes she maintained her position,
+cogitating. "And he's like the other fellow too," she continued.
+"Only, somehow he's not like him." And then another pause. "And yet
+he is; only it can't be; and he ain't just so tall, and he's older
+like." And then, still meditating, Mrs. Jones kept her position for
+full ten minutes longer; at the end of which time she got up and
+shook herself. She deserved to be bracketed with Lord Brougham and
+Professor Faraday, for she had kept her mind intent on her subject,
+and had come to a resolution. "I won't say nothing to nobody,
+noways," was the expression of her mind's purpose. "Only I'll tell
+missus as how he was the man as come to Wales." And she did tell so
+much to her mistress--as we have before learned.
+
+Mr. Mollett had gone down from Cork to Castle Richmond in one of
+those delightful Irish vehicles called a covered car. An inside-
+covered car is an equipage much given to shaking, seeing that it has
+a heavy top like a London cab, and that it runs on a pair of wheels.
+It is entered from behind, and slopes backwards. The sitter sits
+sideways, between a cracked window on one side and a cracked doorway
+on the other; and as a draught is always going in at the ear next
+the window, and out at the ear next the door, it is about as cold
+and comfortless a vehicle for winter as may be well imagined. Now
+the journey from Castle Richmond to Cork has to be made right across
+the Boggeragh Mountains. It is over twenty miles Irish; and the road
+is never very good. Mr. Mollett, therefore, was five hours in the
+covered car on his return journey; and as he had stopped for lunch
+at Kanturk, and had not hurried himself at that meal, it was very
+dark and very cold when he reached the house in South Main Street.
+
+I think I have explained that Mr. Mollett senior was not absolutely
+a drunkard; but nevertheless, he was not averse to spirits in cold
+weather, and on this journey had warmed himself with whiskey once or
+twice on the road. He had found a shebeen house when he crossed the
+Nad river, and another on the mountaintop, and a third at the point
+where the road passes near the village of Blarney, and at all these
+convenient resting-spots Mr. Mollett had endeavoured to warm
+himself.
+
+There are men who do not become absolutely drunk, but who do become
+absolutely cross when they drink more than is good for them; and of
+such men Mr. Mollett was one. What with the cold air, and what with
+the whisky, and what with the jolting, Mr. Mollett was very cross
+when he reached the Kanturk Hotel so that he only cursed the driver
+instead of giving him the experted gratuity.
+
+"I'll come to yer honour in the morning," said the driver.
+
+"You may go to the devil in the morning," answered Mr. Mollett; and
+this was the first intimation of his return which reached the ears
+of his expectant son.
+
+"There's the governor," said Aby, who was then flirting with Miss
+O'Dwyer in the bar. "Somebody's been stroking him the wrong way of
+the 'air."
+
+The charms of Miss O'Dwyer in these idle days had been too much for
+the prudence of Mr. Abraham Mollett; by far too much, considering
+that in his sterner moments his ambition led him to contemplate a
+match, with a young lady of much higher rank in life. But wine,
+which "inspires us" and fires us "With courage, love, and joy,"
+had inspired him with courage to forget his prudence, and with
+love for the lovely Fanny.
+
+"Now, nonsense, Mr. Aby," she had said to him a few minutes before
+the wheels of the covered car were heard in South Main Street. "You
+know you main nothing of the sort."
+
+"By 'eavens, Fanny, I mean every word of it; may this drop be my
+poison if I don't. This piece of business here keeps me and the
+governor hon and hoff like, and will do for some weeks perhaps; but
+when that's done, honly say the word, and I'll make you Mrs. M.
+Isn't that fair, now?"
+
+"But, Mr. Aby--"
+
+"Never mind the mister, Fan, between friends."
+
+"La! I couldn't call you Aby without it; could I?"
+
+"Try, my darling."
+
+"Well--Aby--there now. It does sound so uppish, don't it? But tell
+me this now; what is the business that you and the old gentleman is
+about down at Kanturk?"
+
+Abraham Mollett hereupon had put one finger to his nose, and then
+winked his eye.
+
+"If you care about me, as you say you do, you wouldn't be shy of
+just telling me as much as that."
+
+"That's business, Fan; and business and love don't hamalgamate like
+whisky and sugar."
+
+"Then I'll tell you what it is, Mr. Aby; I don't want to have
+anything to do with a man who won't show his rispect by telling me
+his sacrets."
+
+"That's it, is it, Fan?"
+
+"I suppose you think I can't keep a sacret. You think I'd be telling
+father, I suppose."
+
+"Well, it's about some money that's due to him down there."
+
+"Who from?"
+
+"He expects to get it from some of those Fitzgerald people."
+
+In saying so much Mr. Mollett the younger had not utterly abandoned
+all prudence. He knew very well that the car-driver and others would
+be aware that his father had been to Castle Richmond; and that it
+was more than probable that either he or his father would have to
+make further visits there. Indeed, he had almost determined that he
+would go down to the baronet himself. Under these circumstances it
+might be well that some pretext for these visits should be given.
+
+"Which Fitzgerald, Mr. Aby? Is it the Hap House young man?"
+
+"Hap House. I never heard of such a place. These people live at
+Castle Richmond."
+
+"Oh--h--h! If Mr. Mollett have money due there, sure he have a good
+mark to go upon. Why, Sir Thomas is about the richest man in these
+parts."
+
+"And who is this other man; at 'Appy--what is it you call his
+place?"
+
+"Hap House. Oh, it's he is the thorough-going young gentleman. Only
+they say he's a leetle too fast. To my mind, Mr. Owen is the
+finest-looking man to be seen anywheres in the county Cork."
+
+"He's a flame of yours, is he, Fan?"
+
+"I don't know what you main by a flame. But there's not a girl in
+Cork but what likes the glance of his eye. They do say that he'd
+have Lady Clara Desmond; only there ain't no money."
+
+"And what's he to these other people?"
+
+"Cousin, I believe; or hardly so much as that, I'm thinking. But all
+the same if anything was to happen to young Mr. Herbert, it would
+all go to him."
+
+"It would, would it?"
+
+"So people say."
+
+"Mr. 'Erbert is the son of the old cock at Castle Richmond, isn't
+he?"
+
+"Just so. He's the young cock; he, he, he!"
+
+"And if he was to be--nowhere like; not his father's son at all, for
+instance, it would all go to this 'andsome 'Appy 'Ouse man; would
+it?"
+
+"Every shilling, they say; house, title, and all."
+
+"Hum," said Mr. Abraham Mollett; and he began again to calculate his
+family chances. Perhaps, after all, this handsome young man who was
+at present too poor to marry his noble lady love might be the more
+liberal man to deal with. But then any dealings with him would kill
+the golden goose at once. All would depend on the size of the one
+egg which might be extracted.
+
+He certainly felt, however, that this Fitzgerald family arrangement
+was one which it was beneficial that he should know; but he felt
+also that it would be by no means necessary at present to
+communicate the information to his father. He put it by in his mind,
+regarding it as a fund on which he might draw if occasion should
+require. It might perhaps be pleasant for him to make the
+acquaintance of this 'andsome young Fitzgerald of 'Appy 'Ouse.
+
+"And now, Fan, my darling, give us a kiss," said he, getting up from
+his seat.
+
+"'Deed and I won't," said Fan, withdrawing herself among the bottles
+and glasses.
+
+"'Deed and you shall, my love," said Aby, pertinaciously, as he
+prepared to follow her through the brittle ware.
+
+"Hu--sh--be aisy now. There's Tom. He's ears for everything, and
+eyes like a cat."
+
+"What do I care for Tom?"
+
+"And father'll be coming in. Be aisy, I tell you. I won't now, Mr.
+Aby; and that's enough. You'll break the bottle."
+
+"D---the bottle. That's smashed hany way. Come, Fan, what's a kiss
+among friends?"
+
+"Cock you up with kisses, indeed! how bad you are for dainties!
+There; do you hear that? That's the old gentleman;" and then, as the
+voice of Mr. Mollett senior was heard abusing the car-driver, Miss
+O'Dwyer smoothed her apron, put her hands to her side hair, and
+removed the debris of the broken bottle.
+
+"Well, governor," said Aby, "how goes it?"
+
+"How goes it, indeed! It goes pretty well, I dare say, in here,
+where you can sit drinking toddy all the evening, and doing
+nothing."
+
+"Why, what on hearth would you have me be doing? Better here than
+paddling about in the streets, isn't it?"
+
+"If you could do a stroke of work now and then to earn your bread,
+it might be better." Now Aby knew from experience that whenever his
+father talked to him about earning his bread, he was half drunk and
+whole cross. So he made no immediate reply on that point.
+
+"You are cold, I suppose, governor, and had better get a bit of
+something to eat, and a little tea."
+
+"And put my feet in hot water, and tallow my nose, and go to bed,
+hadn't I? Miss O'Dwyer, I'll trouble you to mix me a glass of
+brandy-punch. Of all the roads I ever travelled, that's the longest
+and hardest to get over. Dashed, if I didn't begin to think I'd
+never be here." And so saying he flung himself into a chair, and put
+up his feet on the two hobs.
+
+There was a kettle on one of them, which the young lady pushed a
+little nearer to the hot coals, in order to show that the water
+should be boiling; and as she did so Aby gave her a wink over his
+father's shoulder, by way of conveying to her an intimation that
+"the governor was a little cut," or in other language tipsy, and
+that the brandy-punch should be brewed with a discreet view to past
+events of the same description. All which Miss O'Dwyer perfectly
+understood.
+
+It may easily be conceived that Aby was especially anxious to
+receive tidings of what had been done this day down in the Kanturk
+neighbourhood. He had given his views to his father, as will be
+remembered; and though Mr. Mollett senior had not professed himself
+as absolutely agreeing with them, he had nevertheless owned that he
+was imbued with the necessity of taking some great step. He had gone
+down to take this great step, and Aby was very anxious to know how
+it had been taken.
+
+When the father and son were both sober, or when the son was tipsy,
+or when the father was absolutely drunk--an accident which would
+occur occasionally, the spirit and pluck of the son was in the
+ascendant. He at such times was the more masterful of the two, and
+generally contrived, either by persuasion or bullying, to govern his
+governor. But when it did happen that Mollett pere was half drunk
+and cross with drink, then, at such moments, Mollett fils had to
+acknowledge to himself that his governor was not to be governed.
+
+And, indeed, at such moments his governor could be very
+disagreeable--could say nasty, bitter things, showing very little
+parental affection, and make himself altogether bad society, not
+only to his son, but to his son's companions also. Now it appeared
+to Aby that his father was at present in this condition.
+
+He had only to egg him on to further drinking, and the respectable
+gentleman would become stupid, noisy, soft, and affectionate. But
+then, when in that state, he would blab terribly. It was much with
+the view of keeping him from that state, that under the present
+circumstances the son remained with the father. To do the father
+justice, it may be asserted that he knew his own weakness, and that,
+knowing it, he had abstained from heavy drinking since he had taken
+in hand this great piece of diplomacy.
+
+"But you must be hungry, governor; won't you take a bit of
+something?"
+
+"Shall we get you a steek, Mr. Mollett?" asked Miss O'Dwyer,
+hospitably, "or just a bit of bacon with a couple of eggs or so? It
+wouldn't be a minute, you know?"
+
+"Your eggs are all addled and bad," said Mr. Mollett; "and as for a
+beef-steak, it's my belief there isn't such a thing in all Ireland."
+After which civil speech, Miss O'Dwyer winked at Aby, as much as to
+say, "You see what a state he's in."
+
+"Have a bit of buttered toast and a cup of tea, governor," suggested
+the son.
+
+"I'm d---if I do," replied the father. "You're become uncommon fond
+of tea of late--that is, for other people. I don't see you take
+much of it yourself."
+
+"A cup of tay is the thing to warm one afther such a journey as
+you've had; that's certain, Mr. Mollett," said Fanny.
+
+"Them's your ideas about warming, are they, my dear?" said the
+elderly gentleman. "Do you come and sit down on my knee here for a
+few minutes or so, and that'd warm me better than all the 'tay' in
+the world."
+
+Aby showed by his face that he was immeasurably disgusted by the
+iniquitous coarseness of this overture. Miss O'Dwyer, however,
+looking at the gentleman's age, and his state as regarded liquor,
+passed it over as of no moment whatsoever. So that when, in the
+later part of the evening, Aby expressed to that young lady his deep
+disgust, she merely said, "Oh, bother; what matters an old man like
+that?"
+
+And then, when they were at this pass, Mr. Dwyer came in. He did not
+interfere much with his daughter in the bar room, but he would
+occasionally take a dandy of punch there, and ask how things were
+going on indoors. He was a fat, thickset man, with a good-humoured
+face, a flattened nose, and a great aptitude for stable occupations.
+He was part owner of the Kanturk car, as has been before said, and
+was the proprietor of sundry other cars, open cars and covered cars,
+plying for hire in the streets of Cork.
+
+"I hope the mare took your honour well down Kanturk and back again,"
+said he, addressing his elder customer with a chuck of his head
+intended for a bow.
+
+"I don't know what you call well," said Mr. Mollett "She hadn't a
+leg to stand upon for the last three hours."
+
+"Not a leg to stand upon! Faix, then, and it's she'd have the four
+good legs if she travelled every inch of the way from Donagh-a-Dee
+to Ti-vora," to which distance Mr. O'Dwyer specially referred as
+being supposed to be the longest known in Ireland.
+
+"She may be able to do that; but I'm blessed if she's fit to go to
+Kanturk and back."
+
+"She's done the work, anyhow," said Mr. O'Dwyer, who evidently
+thought that this last argument was conclusive.
+
+"And a precious time she's been about it. Why, my goodness, it would
+have been better for me to have walked it. As Sir Thomas said to
+me--"
+
+"What! did you see Sir Thomas Fitzgerald?"
+
+Hereupon Aby gave his father a nudge; but the father either did not
+appreciate the nudge, or did not choose to obey it.
+
+"Yes; I did see him. Why shouldn't I?"
+
+"Only they do say he's hard to get to speak to now-a-days. He's not
+over well, you know, these years back."
+
+"Well or ill he'll see me, I take it, when I go that distance to ask
+him. There's no doubt about that; is there, Aby?"
+
+"Can't say, I'm sure, not knowing the gentleman," said Aby.
+
+"We holds land from Sir Thomas, we do; that is, me and my brother
+Mick, and a better landlord ain't nowhere," said Mr. O'Dwyer.
+
+"Oh, you're one of the tenants, are you? The rents are paid pretty
+well, ain't they?"
+
+"To the day," said Mr. O'Dwyer, proudly.
+
+"What would you think, now--" Mr. Mollett was continuing; but Aby
+interrupted him somewhat violently.
+
+"Hold your confounded stupid tongue, will you, you old jolterhead;"
+and on this occasion he put his hand on his father's shoulder and
+shook him.
+
+"Who are you calling jolterhead? Who do you dare to speak to in that
+way? you impudent young cub you. Am I to ask your leave when I want
+to open my mouth?"
+
+Aby had well known that his father in his present mood would not
+stand the manner in which the interruption was attempted. Nor did he
+wish to quarrel before the publican and his daughter. But anything
+was better than allowing his father to continue in the strain in
+which he was talking.
+
+"You are talking of things which you don't hunderstand, and about
+people you don't know," said Aby. "You've had a drop too much on the
+road too, and you 'ad better go to bed."
+
+Old Mollett turned round to strike at his son; but even in his
+present state he was somewhat quelled by Aby's eye. Aby was keenly
+alive to the necessity for prudence on his father's part, though he
+was by no means able to be prudent himself.
+
+"Talking of things which I don't understand, am I?" said the old
+man. "That's all you know about it. Give me another glass of that
+brandy toddy, my dear."
+
+But Aby's look had quelled, or at any rate silenced him; and though
+he did advance another stage in tipsiness before they succeeded in
+getting him off to bed, he said no more about Sir Thomas Fitzgerald
+or his Castle Richmond secrets.
+
+Nevertheless, he had said enough to cause suspicion. One would not
+have imagined, on looking at Mr. O'Dwyer, that he was a very crafty
+person, or one of whose finesse in affairs of the world it would be
+necessary to stand much in awe. He seemed to be thick, and stolid,
+and incapable of deep inquiry; but, nevertheless, he was as fond of
+his neighbour's affairs as another, and knew as much about the
+affairs of his neighbours at Kanturk as any man in the county Cork.
+
+He himself was a Kanturk man, and his wife had been a Kanturk woman;
+no less a person, indeed, than the sister of Father Bernard
+M'Carthy, rest her soul;--for it was now at peace, let us all hope.
+She had been dead these ten years; but he did not the less keep up
+his connection with the old town, or with his brother-in-law the
+priest, or with the affairs of the persons there adjacent;
+especially, we may say, those of his landlord, Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald, under whom he still held a small farm, in conjunction
+with his brother Mick, the publican at Kanturk.
+
+"What's all that about Sir Thomas?" said he to his daughter in a low
+voice as soon as the Molletts had left the bar.
+
+"Well, I don't just know," said Fanny. She was a good daughter, and
+loved her father, whose indoor affairs she kept tight enough for
+him. But she had hardly made up her mind as yet whether or no it
+would suit her to be Mrs. Abraham Mollett. Should such be her
+destiny, it might be as well for her not to talk about her husband's
+matters.
+
+"Is it true that the old man did see Sir Thomas to-day?"
+
+"You heard what passed, father; but I suppose it is true."
+
+"And the young 'un has been down to Kanturk two or three times. What
+can the like of them have to do with Sir Thomas?"
+
+To this Fanny could only say that she knew nothing about it, which
+in the main was true. Aby, indeed, had said that his father had gone
+down to collect money that was due to him; but then Fanny did not
+believe all that Aby said.
+
+"I don't like that young 'un at all," continued Mr. O'Dwyer. "He's a
+nasty, sneaking fellow, as cares for no one but his own belly. I'm
+not over fond of the old 'un neither."
+
+"They is both free enough with their money, father," said the
+prudent daughter.
+
+"Oh, they is welcome in the way of business, in course. But look
+here, Fan; don't you have nothing to say to that Aby; do you hear
+me?"
+
+"Who? I? ha, ha, ha!"
+
+"It's all very well laughing; but mind what I says, for I won't have
+it. He is a nasty, sneaking, good-for-nothing fellow, besides being
+a heretic. What'd your uncle Bernard say?"
+
+"Oh! for the matter of that, if I took a liking to a fellow I
+shouldn't ask Uncle Bernard what he had to say. If he didn't like
+it, I suppose he might do the other thing."
+
+"Well, I won't have it. Do you hear that?"
+
+"Laws, father, what nonsense you do talk. Who's thinking about the
+man? He comes here for what he wants to ate and dhrink, and I
+suppose the house is free to him as another. If not we'd betther
+just shut up the front door." After which she tossed herself up and
+began to wipe her glasses in a rather dignified manner.
+
+Mr. O'Dwyer sat smoking his pipe and chewing the cud of his
+reflections. "They ain't afther no good, I'm sure of that." In
+saying which, however, he referred to the doings of the Molletts
+down at Kanturk, rather than to any amatory proceedings which might
+have taken place between the young man and his daughter.
+
+On the following morning Mr. Mollett senior awoke with a racking
+headache. My belief is, that when men pay this penalty for drinking,
+they are partly absolved from other penalties. The penalties on
+drink are various. I mean those which affect the body, exclusive of
+those which affect the mind. There are great red swollen noses, very
+disagreeable both to the wearer and his acquaintances; there are
+morning headaches, awful to be thought of; there are sick stomachs,
+by which means the offender escapes through a speedy purgatory;
+there are sallow cheeks, sunken eyes, and shaking shoulders; there
+are very big bellies, and no bellies at all; and there is delirium
+tremens. For the most part a man escapes with one of these
+penalties. If he have a racking headache, his general health does
+not usually suffer so much as though he had endured no such
+immediate vengeance from violated nature. Young Aby when he drank
+had no headaches; but his eye was bloodshot, his cheek bloated, and
+his hand shook. His father, on the other hand, could not raise his
+head after a debauch; but when that was gone, all ill results of his
+imprudence seemed to have vanished.
+
+At about noon on that day Aby was sitting by his father's bedside.
+Up to that time it had been quite impossible to induce him to speak
+a word. He could only groan, swallow soda-water with "hairs of the
+dog that bit him" in it and lay with his head between his arms. But
+soon after noon Aby did induce him to say a word or two. The door of
+the room was closely shut, the little table was strewed with
+soda-water bottles and last drops of small goes of brandy. Aby
+himself had a cigar in his mouth, and on the floor near the bed-foot
+was a plate with a cold, greasy mutton chop, Aby having endeavoured
+in vain to induce his father to fortify exhausted nature by eating.
+The appearance of the room and the air within it would not have been
+pleasant to fastidious people. But then the Molletts were not
+fastidious.
+
+"You did see Sir Thomas, then?"
+
+"Yes, I did see him. I wish, Aby, you'd let me lie just for another
+hour or so. I'd be all right then. The jolting of that confounded
+car has nearly shaken my head to pieces."
+
+But Aby was by no means inclined to be so merciful. The probability
+was that he would be able to pump his father more thoroughly in his
+present weak state than he might do in a later part of the
+afternoon; so he persevered.
+
+"But, governor, it's so important we should know what we're about.
+Did you see any one else except himself?"
+
+"I saw them all, I believe, except her. I was told she never showed
+in the morning; but I'm blessed if I don't think I saw the skirt of
+her dress through an open door. I'll tell you what, Aby, I could not
+stand that."
+
+"Perhaps, father, after hall it'll be better I should manage the
+business down there."
+
+"I believe there won't be much more to manage. But, Aby, do leave me
+now, there's a good fellow; then in another hour or so I'll get up,
+and we'll have it all out."
+
+"When you're out in the open air and comfortable, it won't be fair
+to be bothering you with business. Come, governor, ten minutes will
+tell the whole of it if you'll only mind your eye. How did you begin
+with Sir Thomas?" And then Aby went to the door, opened it very
+gently, and satisfied himself that there was nobody listening on the
+landing-place.
+
+Mr. Mollett sighed wearily, but he knew that his only hope was to
+get this job of talking over. "What was it you were saying, Aby?"
+
+"How did you begin with Sir Thomas?"
+
+"How did I begin with him? Let me see. Oh! I just told him who I
+was; and then he turned away and looked down under the fire like,
+and I thought he was going to make a faint of it."
+
+"I didn't suppose he would be very glad to see you, governor."
+
+"When I saw how badly he took it, and how wretched he seemed, I
+almost made up my mind to go away and never trouble him any more."
+
+"You did, did you?"
+
+"And just to take what he'd choose to give me."
+
+"Oh, them's your hideas, hare they? Then I tell you what; I shall
+just take the matter into my own hands hentirely. You have no more
+'eart than a chicken."
+
+"Ah, that's very well, Aby; but you did not see him."
+
+"Do you think that would make hany difference? When a man's a job of
+work to do, 'e should do it. Them's my notions. Do you think a man
+like that is to go and hact in that way, and then not pay for it?
+Whose wife is she, I'd like to know?"
+
+There was a tone of injured justice about Aby which almost roused
+the father to participate in the son's indignation. "Well; I did my
+best, though the old gentleman was in such a taking," said he.
+
+"And what was your best? Come, out with it at once."
+
+"I--m-m. I--just told him who I was, you know."
+
+"I guess he understood that quite well."
+
+"And then I said things weren't going exactly well with me."
+
+"You shouldn't have said that at all. What matters that to him? What
+you hask for you hask for because you're able to demand it. That's
+the ground for hus to take, and by---I'll take it too. There shall
+be no 'alf-measures with me."
+
+"And then I told him--just what we were agreed, you know."
+
+"That we'd go snacks in the whole concern?"
+
+"I didn't exactly say that."
+
+"Then what the devil did you say?"
+
+"Why, I told him that, looking at what the property was, twelve
+hundred pounds wasn't much."
+
+"I should think not either."
+
+"And that if his son was to be allowed to have it all--"
+
+"A bastard, you know, keeping it away from the proper heir." It may
+almost be doubted whether, in so speaking, Aby did not almost think
+that he himself had a legitimate right to inherit the property at
+Castle Richmond.
+
+"He must look to pay up handsome."
+
+"But did you say what 'andsome meant?"
+
+"Well, I didn't--not then. He fell about upon the table like, and I
+wasn't quite sure he wouldn't make a die of it; and then heaven
+knows what might have happened to me."
+
+"Psha; you 'as no pluck, governor."
+
+"I'll tell you what it is, Aby, I ain't so sure you'd have such an
+uncommon deal of pluck yourself."
+
+"Well, I'll try, at any rate."
+
+"It isn't such a pleasant thing to see an old gentleman in that
+state. And what would happen if he chose to ring the bell and order
+the police to take me? Have you ever thought of that?"
+
+"Gammon."
+
+"But it isn't gammon. A word from him would put me into quod, and
+there I should be for the rest of my days. But what would you care
+for that?" And poor Mr. Mollett senior shook under the bedclothes as
+his attention became turned to this very dreary aspect of his
+affairs. "Pluck, indeed! I'll tell you what it is, Aby, I often
+wonder at my own pluck."
+
+"Psha! Would'nt a word from you split upon him, and upon her, and
+upon the young 'un, and ruin 'em? Or a word from me either, for the
+matter of that?"
+
+Mr. Mollett senior shook again. He repented now, as he had already
+done twenty times, that he had taken that son of his into his
+confidence.
+
+"And what on hearth did you say to him?" continued Aby.
+
+"Well, not much more then; at least, not very much more. There was a
+good deal of words, but they didn't seem to lead to much, except
+this, just to make him understand that he must come down handsome."
+
+"And there was nothing done about Hemmiline?"
+
+"No," said the father, rather shortly.
+
+"If that was settled, that would be the clincher. There would be no
+further trouble to nobody then. It would be all smooth sailing for
+your life, governor, and lots of tin."
+
+"I tell you what it is, Aby, you may just drop that, for I won't
+have the young lady bothered about it, nor yet the young lady's
+father."
+
+"You won't, won't you?"
+
+"No, I won't; so there's an end of it."
+
+"I suppose I may pay my distresses to any young lady if I think
+fitting."
+
+"And have yourself kicked into the ditch."
+
+"I know too much for kicking, governor."
+
+"They shall know as much as you do, and more too, if you go on with
+that. There's a measure in all things. I won't have it done, so I
+tell you." And the father turned his face round to the wall.
+
+This was by no means the end of the conversation, though we need not
+verbatim go through any more of it. It appeared that old Mollett had
+told Sir Thomas that his permanent silence could be purchased by
+nothing short of a settled "genteel" income for himself and his son,
+no absolute sum having been mentioned; and that Sir Thomas had
+required a fortnight for his answer, which answer was to be conveyed
+to Mr. Mollett verbally at the end of that time. It was agreed that
+Mr. Mollett should repeat his visit to Castle Richmond on that day
+fortnight.
+
+"In the mean time I'll go down and freshen the old gentleman up a
+bit," said Aby, as he left his father's bedroom.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+THE REJECTED SUITOR
+
+
+
+
+
+After the interview between Herbert and his mother, it became an
+understood thing at Castle Richmond that he was engaged to Lady
+Clara. Sir Thomas raised no further objection, although it was clear
+to all the immediate family that he was by no means gratified at his
+son's engagement. Very little more passed between Sir Thomas and
+Lady Fitzgerald on the subject. He merely said that he would
+consider the question of his son's income, and expressed a hope, or
+perhaps an opinion rather than a hope, that the marriage would not
+take place quite immediately.
+
+Under these circumstances, Herbert hardly spoke further to his
+father upon the matter. He certainly did feel sore that he should be
+so treated--that he should be made to understand that there was a
+difficulty, but that the difficulty could not be explained to him.
+No absolute position was however made, and he would not therefore
+complain. As to money, he would say nothing till something should be
+said to him.
+
+With his mother, however, the matter was different. She had said
+that she would welcome Clara; and she did so. Immediately after
+speaking to Sir Thomas she drove over to Desmond Court, and said
+soft, sweet things to Clara in her most winning way;--said soft
+things also to the countess, who received them very graciously; took
+Clara home to Castle Richmond for that night, somewhat to the
+surprise and much to the gratification of Herbert, who found her
+sitting slily with the other girls when he came in before dinner;
+and arranged for her to make a longer visit after the interval of a
+week or two. Herbert, therefore, was on thoroughly good terms with
+his mother, and did enjoy some of the delights which he had promised
+himself.
+
+With his sisters, also, and especially with Emmeline, he was once
+more in a good humour. To her he made ample apology for his former
+crossness, and received ample absolution. "I was so harassed," he
+said, "by my father's manner that I hardly knew what I was doing.
+And even now, when I think of his evident dislike to the marriage,
+it nearly drives me wild." The truth of all which Emmeline sadly
+acknowledged. How could any of them talk of their father except in a
+strain of sadness?
+
+All these things did not happen in the drawing-room at Castle
+Richmond without also being discussed in the kitchen. It was soon
+known over the house that Master Herbert was to marry Lady Clara,
+and, indeed, there was no great pretence of keeping it secret. The
+girls told the duchess, as they called Mrs. Jones--of course in
+confidence--but Mrs. Jones knew what such confidence meant,
+especially as the matter was more than once distinctly alluded to by
+her ladyship; and thus the story was told, in confidence, to
+everybody in the establishment, and then repeated by them, in
+confidence also, to nearly everybody out of it.
+
+Ill news, they say, flies fast; and this news, which, going in that
+direction, became ill, soon flew to Hap House.
+
+"So young Fitzgerald and the divine Clara are to hit it off, are
+they?" said Captain Donnellan, who had driven over from Buttevant
+barracks to breakfast at Hap House on a hunting-morning.
+
+There were other men present, more intimate friends of Owen than
+this captain, who had known of Owen's misfortune in that quarter;
+and a sign was made to Donnellan to bid him drop the subject; but it
+was too late.
+
+"Who? my cousin Herbert," said Owen, sharply. "Have you heard of
+this, Barry?"
+
+"Well," said Barry, "those sort of things are always being said, you
+know. I did hear something of it somewhere. But I can't say I
+thought much about it." And then the subject was dropped during that
+morning's breakfast. They all went to the hunt, and in the course of
+the day Owen contrived to learn that the report was well founded.
+
+That evening, as the countess and her daughter were sitting together
+over the fire, the grey-headed old butler brought in a letter upon
+an old silver salver, saying, "For Lady Clara, if you please, my
+lady."
+
+The countess not unnaturally thought that the despatch had come from
+Castle Richmond, and smiled graciously as Clara put out her hand for
+the missive. Lady Desmond again let her eyes drop upon the book
+which she was reading, as though to show that she was by far too
+confiding a mamma to interfere in any correspondence between her
+daughter and her daughter's lover. At the moment Lady Clara had been
+doing nothing. Her work was, indeed, on her lap, and her workbox was
+at her elbow; but her thoughts had been far away; far away as
+regards idea, though not so as to absolute locality; for in her mind
+she was walking beneath those elm-trees, and a man was near her,
+with a horse following at his heels.
+
+"The messenger is to wait for an answer, my lady," said the old
+butler, with a second nod, which on this occasion was addressed to
+Clara; and then the man withdrew.
+
+Lady Clara blushed ruby red up to the roots of her hair when her
+eyes fell on the address of the letter, for she knew it to be in the
+handwriting of Owen Fitzgerald. Perhaps the countess from the corner
+of her eye may have observed some portion of her daughter's blushes;
+but if so, she said nothing, attributing them to Clara's natural
+bashfulness in her present position. "She will get over it soon,"
+the countess may probably have said to herself.
+
+Clara was indecisive, disturbed in her mind, and wretched. Owen had
+sent her other letters; but they had been brought to her
+surreptitiously, had been tendered to her in secret, and had always
+been returned by her unopened. She had not told her mother of these;
+at least, not purposely or at the moment: but she had been at no
+trouble to conceal the facts; and when the countess had once asked,
+she freely told her what had happened with an absence of any
+confusion which had quite put Lady Desmond at her ease. But this
+letter was brought to her in the most open manner, and an answer to
+it openly demanded.
+
+She turned it round slowly in her hand, and then looking up, said,
+"Mamma, this is from Owen Fitzgerald; what had I better do with it?"
+
+"From Owen Fitzgerald! Are you sure?"
+
+"Yes, mamma." And then the countess had also to consider what steps
+under such circumstances had better be taken. In the mean time Clara
+held out her hand, tendering the letter to her mother.
+
+"You had better open it, my dear, and read it. No doubt it must be
+answered." Lady Desmond felt that now there could be no danger from
+Owen Fitzgerald. Indeed she thought that there was not a remembrance
+of him left in her daughter's bosom; that the old love, such
+baby-love as there had been, had vanished, quite swept out of that
+little heart by this new love of a brighter sort. But then Lady
+Desmond knew nothing of her daughter.
+
+So instructed, Clara broke the seal, and read the letter, which ran
+thus:--
+
+"Hap House, February, 184-.
+
+"My promised Love,
+
+"For let what will happen, such you are; I have this morning heard
+tidings which, if true, will go far to drive me to despair. But I
+will not believe them from any lips save your own. I have heard that
+you are engaged to marry Herbert Fitzgerald. At once, however, I
+declare that I do not believe the statement. I have known you too
+well to think that you can be false.
+
+"But, at any rate, I beg the favour of an interview with you. After
+what has passed I think that under any circumstances I have a right
+to demand it. I have pledged myself to you; and as that pledge has
+been accepted, I am entitled to some consideration.
+
+"I write this letter to you openly, being quite willing that you
+should show it to your mother if you think fit. My messenger will
+wait, and I do implore you to send me an answer. And remember, Lady
+Clara, that, having accepted my love, you cannot whistle me down the
+wind as though I were of no account. After what has passed between
+us, you cannot surely refuse to see me once more.
+
+"Ever your own--if you will have it so,
+
+"OWEN FITZGERALD."
+
+She read the letter very slowly, ever and anon looking up at her
+mother's face, and seeing that her mother was--not reading her book,
+but pretending to read it. When she had finished it, she held it for
+a moment, and then said, "Mamma, will you not look at it?"
+
+"Certainly, my dear, if you wish me to do so." And she took the
+letter from her daughter's hand, and read it.
+
+"Just what one would expect from him, my dear; eager, impetuous, and
+thoughtless. One should not blame him much, for he does not mean to
+do harm. But if he had any sense, he would know that he was taking
+trouble for nothing."
+
+"And what shall I do, mamma?"
+
+"Well, I really think that I should answer him." It was delightful
+to see the perfect confidence which the mother had in her daughter.
+"And I think I should see him, if he will insist upon it. It is
+foolish in him to persist in remembering two words which you spoke
+to him as a child; but perhaps it will be well that you should tell
+him yourself that you were a child when you spoke those two words."
+
+And then Clara sent off the following reply, written under her
+mother's dictation; though the countess strove very hard to convince
+her daughter that she was wording it out of her own head:--
+
+"Lady Clara Desmond presents her compliments to Mr. Owen Fitzgerald,
+and will see Mr. Owen Fitzgerald at Desmond Court at two o'clock
+to-morrow, if Mr. Owen Fitzgerald persists in demanding such an
+interview. Lady Clara Desmond, however, wishes to express her
+opinion that it would be better avoided.
+
+"Desmond Court,
+
+"Thursday evening."
+
+The countess thought that this note was very cold and formal, and
+would be altogether conclusive; but, nevertheless, at about eleven
+o'clock that night there came another messenger from Hap House with
+another letter, saying that Owen would be at Desmond Court at two
+o'clock on the following day.
+
+"He is very foolish; that is all I can say," said the countess.
+
+All that night and all the next morning poor Clara was very
+wretched. That she had been right to give up a suitor who lived such
+a life as Owen Fitzgerald lived she could not doubt. But,
+nevertheless, was she true in giving him up? Had she made any
+stipulation as to his life when she accepted his love? If he called
+her false, as doubtless he would call her, how would she defend
+herself? Had she any defence to offer? It was not only that she had
+rejected him, a poor lover; but she had accepted a rich lover! What
+could she say to him when he upbraided her for such sordid conduct?
+
+And then as to her whistling him down the wind. Did she wish to do
+that? In what state did her heart stand towards him? Might it not be
+that, let her be ever so much on her guard, she would show him some
+tenderness,--tenderness which would be treason to her present
+affianced suitor? Oh, why had her mother desired her to go through
+such an interview as this!
+
+When two o'clock came Clara was in the drawing-room. She had said
+nothing to her mother as to the manner in which this meeting should
+take place. But then at first she had had an idea that Lady Desmond
+would be present. But as the time came near Clara was still alone.
+When her watch told her that it was already two, she was still by
+herself; and when the old servant, opening the door, announced that
+Mr. Fitzgerald was there, she was still unsupported by the presence
+of any companion. It was very surprising that on such an occasion
+her mother should have kept herself away.
+
+She had not seen Owen Fitzgerald since that day when they had walked
+together under the elm-trees, and it can hardly be said that she saw
+him now. She had a feeling that she had injured him--had deceived,
+and in a manner betrayed him; and that feeling became so powerful
+with her that she hardly dared to look him in the face.
+
+He, when he entered the room, walked straight up to her, and offered
+her his hand. He, too, looked round the room to see whether Lady
+Desmond was there, and not finding her, was surprised. He had hardly
+hoped that such an opportunity would be allowed to him for declaring
+the strength of his passion.
+
+She got up, and taking his hand, muttered something; it certainly
+did not matter what, for it was inaudible; but such as the words
+were, they were the first spoken between them.
+
+"Lady Clara," he began; and then stopped himself; and, considering,
+recommenced--"Clara, a report has reached my ears which I will
+believe from no lips but your own."
+
+She now sat down on a sofa, and pointed to a chair for him, but he
+remained standing, and did so during the whole interview; or rather,
+walking; for when he became energetic and impetuous, he moved about
+from place to place in the room, as though incapable of fixing
+himself in one position.
+
+Clara was ignorant whether or no it behoved her to rebuke him for
+calling her simply by her Christian name. She thought that she ought
+to do so, but she did not do it.
+
+"I have been told," he continued, "that you have engaged yourself to
+marry Herbert Fitzgerald; and I have now come to hear a
+contradiction of this from yourself."
+
+"But, Mr. Fitzgerald, it is true."
+
+"It is true that Herbert Fitzgerald is your accepted lover?"
+
+"Yes," she said, looking down upon the ground, and blushing deeply
+as she said it.
+
+There was a pause of a few moments, during which she felt that the
+full fire of his glance was fixed upon her, and then he spoke.
+
+"You may well be ashamed to confess it," he said; "you may well feel
+that you dare not look me in the face as you pronounce the words. I
+would have believed it, Clara, from no other mouth than your own."
+
+It appeared to Clara herself now as though she were greatly a
+culprit. She had not a word to say in her own defence. All those
+arguments as to Owen's ill course of life were forgotten; and she
+could only remember that she had acknowledged that she loved him,
+and that she was now acknowledging that she loved another.
+
+But now Owen had made his accusation; and as it was not answered, he
+hardly knew how to proceed. He walked about the room, endeavouring
+to think what he had better say next.
+
+"I know this, Clara; it is your mother's doing, and not your own.
+You could not bring yourself to be false, unless by her
+instigation."
+
+"No," said she; "you are wrong there. It is not my mother's doing:
+what I have done, I have done myself."
+
+"Is it not true," he asked, "that your word was pledged to me? Had
+you not promised me that you would be my wife?"
+
+"I was very young," she said, falling back upon the only excuse
+which occurred to her at the moment as being possible to be used
+without incriminating him.
+
+"Young! Is not that your mother's teaching? Why, those were her very
+words when she came to me at my house. I did not know that youth was
+any excuse for falsehood."
+
+"But it may be an excuse for folly," said Clara.
+
+"Folly! what folly? The folly of loving a poor suitor; the folly of
+being willing to marry a man who has not a large estate! Clara, I
+did not think that you could have learned so much in so short a
+time."
+
+All this was very hard upon her. She felt that it was hard, for she
+knew that he had done that which entitled her to regard her pledge
+to him as at an end; but the circumstances were such that she could
+not excuse herself.
+
+"Am I to understand," said Owen Fitzgerald, "that all that has
+passed between us is to go for nothing? that such promises as we
+have made to each other are to be of no account? To me they are
+sacred pledges, from which I would not escape even if I could."
+
+As he then paused for a reply, she was obliged to say something.
+
+"I hope you have not come here to upbraid me, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"Clara," he continued, "I have passed the last year with perfect
+reliance upon your faith. I need hardly tell you that it has not
+been passed happily, for it has been passed without seeing you. But
+though you have been absent from me, I have never doubted you. I
+have known that it was necessary that we should wait--wait perhaps
+till years should make you mistress of your own actions: but
+nevertheless I was not unhappy, for I was sure of your love."
+
+Now it was undoubtedly the case that Fitzgerald was treating her
+unfairly; and though she had not her wits enough about her to
+ascertain this by process of argument, nevertheless the idea did
+come home to her. It was true that she had promised her love to this
+man, as far as such promise could be conveyed by one word of assent;
+but it was true also that she had been almost a child when she
+pronounced that word, and that things which had since occurred had
+entitled her to annul any amount of contract to which she might have
+been supposed to bind herself by that one word. She bethought
+herself, therefore, that as she was so hard pressed she was forced
+to defend herself.
+
+"I was very young then, Mr. Fitzgerald, and hardly knew what I was
+saying: afterwards, when mamma spoke to me, I felt that I was bound
+to obey her."
+
+"What, to obey her by forgetting me?"
+
+"No; I have never forgotten you, and never shall. I remember too
+well your kindness to my brother; your kindness to us all."
+
+"Psha! you know I do not speak of that. Are you bound to obey your
+mother by forgetting that you have loved me?"
+
+She paused a moment before she answered him, looking now full before
+her,--hardly yet bold enough to look him in the face.
+
+"No," she said; "I have not forgotten that I loved you. I shall
+never forget it. Child as I was, it shall never be forgotten. But I
+cannot love you now--not in the manner you would have me."
+
+"And why not, Lady Clara? Why is love to cease on your part--to be
+thrown aside so easily by you, while with me it remains so stern a
+fact, and so deep a necessity? Is that just? When the bargain has
+once been made, should it not be equally binding on us both?"
+
+"I do not think you are fair to me, Mr. Fitzgerald," she said; and
+some spirit was now rising in her bosom.
+
+"Not fair to you? Do you say that I am unfair to you? Speak but one
+word to say that the troth which you pledged me a year since shall
+still remain unbroken, and I will at once leave you till you
+yourself shall name the time when my suit may be renewed."
+
+"You know that I cannot do that."
+
+"And why not? I know that you ought to do it."
+
+"No, Mr. Fitzgerald, I ought not. I am now engaged to your cousin,
+with the consent of mamma and of his friends. I can say nothing to
+you now which I cannot repeat to him; nor can I say anything which
+shall oppose his wishes."
+
+"He is, then, so much more to you now than I am?"
+
+"He is everything to me now."
+
+"That is all the reply I am to get, then! You acknowledge your
+falseness, and throw me off without vouchsafing me any answer beyond
+this."
+
+"What would you have me say? I did do that which was wrong and
+foolish, when--when we were walking there on the avenue. I did give
+a promise which I cannot now keep. It was all so hurried that I
+hardly remember what I said. But of this I am sure, that if I have
+caused you unhappiness, I am very sorry to have done so. I cannot
+alter it all now; I cannot unsay what I said then, nor can I offer
+yon that which I have now absolutely given to another."
+
+And then, as she finished speaking, she did pluck up courage to look
+him in the face. She was now standing as well as he; but she was so
+standing that the table, which was placed near the sofa, was still
+between him and her. As she finished speaking the door opened, and
+the Countess of Desmond walked slowly into the room.
+
+Owen Fitzgerald, when he saw her, bowed low before her, and then
+frankly offered her his hand. There was something in his manner to
+ladies devoid of all bashfulness, and yet never too bold. He seemed
+to be aware that in speaking to any lady, be she who she might, he
+was only exercising his undoubted privilege as a man. He never
+hummed and hawed and shook in his shoes as though the majesty of
+womanhood were too great for his encounter. There are such men, and
+many of them, who carry this dread to the last day of their long
+lives. I have often wondered what women think of men who regard
+women as too awful for the free exercise of open speech.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," she said accepting the hand which he offered to
+her, but resuming her own very quickly, and then standing before him
+in all the dignity which she was able to assume, "I quite concurred
+with my daughter that it was right that she should see you, as you
+insisted on such an interview, but you must excuse me if I interrupt
+it. I must protect her from the embarrassment which your--your
+vehemence may occasion her."
+
+"Lady Desmond," he replied, "you are quite at liberty, as far as I
+am concerned, to hear all that passes between us. Your daughter is
+betrothed to me, and I have come to claim from her the fulfilment of
+her promise."
+
+"For shame, Mr. Fitzgerald, for shame! When she was a child you
+extracted from her one word of folly; and now you would take
+advantage of that foolish word; now, when you know that she is
+engaged to a man she loves with the full consent of all her friends.
+I thought I knew you well enough to feel sure that you were not so
+ungenerous."
+
+"Ungenerous! no; I have not that generosity which would enable me to
+give up my very heart's blood, the only joy of my soul, to such a
+one as my cousin Herbert."
+
+"You have nothing to give up, Mr. Fitzgerald: you must have known
+from the very first that my daughter could not marry you--"
+
+"Not marry me! And why not, Lady Desmond? Is not my blood as good as
+his?--unless, indeed, you are prepared to sell your child to the
+highest bidder!"
+
+"Clara, my dear, I think you had better leave the room," said the
+countess; "no doubt you have assured Mr. Fitzgerald that you are
+engaged to his cousin Herbert."
+
+"Yes, mamma."
+
+"Then he can have no further claim on your attendance, and his
+vehemence will terrify you."
+
+"Vehement! how can I help being vehement when, like a ruined
+gambler, I am throwing my last chance for such a stake?"
+
+And then he intercepted Clara as she stepped towards the
+drawing-room door. She stopped in her course, and stood still,
+looking down upon the ground.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," said the countess, "I will thank you to let Lady
+Clara leave the room. She has given you the answer for which you
+have asked, and it would not be right in me to permit her to be
+subjected to further embarrassment."
+
+"I will only ask her to listen to one word. Clara--"
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald, you have no right to address my daughter with that
+freedom," said the countess; but Owen hardly seemed to hear her.
+
+"I here, in your hearing, protest against your marriage with Herbert
+Fitzgerald. I claim your love as my own. I bid you think of the
+promise which you gave me; and I tell you that as I loved you then
+with all my heart, so do I love you at this moment; so shall I love
+you always. Now I will not hinder you any longer."
+
+And then he opened the door for her, and she passed on, bowing to
+him, and muttering some word of farewell that was inaudible.
+
+He stood for a moment with the door in his hand, meditating whether
+he might not say good morning to the countess without returning into
+the room; but as he so stood she called him. "Mr. Fitzgerald," she
+said; and so he therefore came back, and once more closed the door.
+
+And then he saw that the countenance of Lady Desmond was much
+changed. Hitherto she had been every inch the countess, stern and
+cold and haughty; but now she looked at him as she used to look in
+those old winter evenings when they were accustomed to talk together
+over the evening fire in close friendliness, while she, Lady
+Desmond, would speak to him in the intimacy of her heart of her
+children, Patrick ad Clara.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," she said, and the tone of her voice also was
+changed. "You are hardly fair to us; are you?"
+
+"Not fair, Lady Desmond?"
+
+"No, not fair. Sit down now, and listen to me for a moment. If you
+had a child, a penniless girl like Clara, would you be glad to see
+her married to such a one as you are yourself?"
+
+"In what way do you mean? Speak out, Lady Desmond."
+
+"No; I will not speak out, for I would not hurt you. I myself am too
+fond of you--as an old friend, to wish to do so. That you may marry
+and live happily, live near us here, so that we may know you, I most
+heartily desire. But you cannot marry that child."
+
+"And why not, if she loves me?"
+
+"Nay, not even if she did. Wealth and position are necessary to the
+station in which she has been born. She is an earl's daughter,
+penniless as she is. I will have no secrets from you. As a mother, I
+could not give her to one whose career is such as yours. As the
+widow of an earl, I could not give her to one whose means of
+maintaining her are so small. If you will think of this, you will
+hardly be angry with me."
+
+"Love is nothing, then?"
+
+"Is all to be sacrificed to your love? Think of it, Mr. Fitzgerald,
+and let me have the happiness of knowing that you consent to this
+match."
+
+"Never!" said he. "Never!" And so he left the room, without wishing
+her further farewell.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+DIPLOMACY
+
+
+
+
+
+About a week after the last conversation that has been related as
+having taken place at the Kanturk Hotel, Mr. Mollett junior was on
+his way to Castle Richmond. He had on that occasion stated his
+intention of making such a journey with the view of "freshening the
+old gentleman up a bit;" and although his father did all in his
+power to prevent the journey, going so far on one occasion as to
+swear that if it was made he would throw over the game altogether,
+nevertheless Aby persevered.
+
+"You may leave the boards whenever you like, governor," said Aby. "I
+know quite enough of the part to carry on the play."
+
+"You think you do," said the father in his anger; "but you'll find
+yourself in the dark yet before you've done."
+
+And then again he expostulated in a different tone. "You'll ruin it
+all, Aby; you will indeed; you don't know all the circumstances;
+indeed you don't."
+
+"Don't I?" said Aby. "Then I'll not be long learning them."
+
+The father did what he could; but he had no means of keeping his son
+at home, and so Aby went. Aby doubtless entertained an idea that his
+father was deficient in pluck for the management of so difficult a
+matter, and that he could supply what his father wanted. So he
+dressed himself in his best, and having hired a gig and a man who he
+flattered himself would look like a private servant, he started from
+Cork, and drove himself to Castle Richmond.
+
+He had on different occasions been down in the neighbourhood,
+prowling about like a thief in the night, picking up information, as
+he called it, and seeing how the land lay; but he had never yet
+presented himself to any one within the precincts of the Castle
+Richmond demesne. His present intention was to drive up to the front
+door, and ask at once for Sir Thomas Fitzgerald, sending in his card
+if need be, on which were printed the words:--
+
+MR. ABRAHAM MOLLETT, Junior.
+
+With the additional words, "Piccadilly, London," written in the
+left-hand lower corner.
+
+"I'll take the bull by the horns," said he to himself. "It's better
+to make the spoon at once, even if we do run some small chance of
+spoiling the horn." And that he might be well enabled to carry out
+his purpose with reference to this bull, he lifted his flask to his
+mouth as soon as he had passed through the great demesne gate, and
+took a long pull at it. "There's nothing like a little jumping
+powder," he said, speaking to himself again, and then he drove
+boldly up the avenue.
+
+He had not yet come in sight of the house when he met two gentlemen
+walking on the road. They, as he approached, stood a little on one
+side, not only so as to allow him to pass, but to watch him as he
+did so. They were Mr. Somers and Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+"It is the younger of those two men. I'm nearly certain of it," said
+Somers as the gig approached. "I saw him as he walked by me in
+Kanturk Street, and I don't think I can mistake the horrid impudence
+of his face. I beg your pardon, sir,"--and now he addressed Mollett
+in the gig--"but are you going up to the house?"
+
+"Yes, sir; that's my notion just at present. Any commands that way?"
+
+"This is Mr. Fitzgerald--Mr. Herbert Fitzgerald; and I am Mr.
+Somers, the agent. Can we do anything for you?"
+
+Aby Mollett raised his hat, and the two gentlemen touched theirs.
+"Thank'ee, sir," said Aby; "but I believe my business must be with
+the worthy baro-nett himself; more particularly as I 'appen to know
+that he's at home."
+
+"My father is not very well," said Herbert, "and I do not think that
+he will be able to see you."
+
+"I'll take the liberty of hasking and of sending in my card," said
+Aby; and he gave his horse a flick as intending thus to cut short
+the conversation. But Mr. Somers had put his hand upon the bridle,
+and the beast was contented to stand still.
+
+"If you'll have the kindness to wait a moment," said Mr. Somers; and
+he put on a look of severity, which he well knew how to assume, and
+which somewhat cowed poor Aby. "You have been down here before, I
+think," continued Mr. Somers.
+
+"What, at Castle Richmond? No, I haven't. And if I had, what's that
+to you if Sir Thomas chooses to see me? I hain't hintruding, I
+suppose."
+
+"You've been down at Kanturk before--once or twice; for I have seen
+you."
+
+"And supposing I've been there ten or twelve times,--what is there
+in that?" said Aby.
+
+Mr. Somers still held the horse's head, and stood a moment
+considering.
+
+"I'll thank you to let go my 'oss," said Aby, raising his whip and
+shaking the reins.
+
+"What do you say your name is?" asked Mr. Somers.
+
+"I didn't say my name was anything yet. I hain't ashamed of it,
+however, nor hasn't hany cause to be. That's my name, and if you'll
+send my card in to Sir Thomas, with my compliments, and say that
+hi've three words to say to him very particular; why, hi'll be
+obliged to you." And then Mr. Mollett handed Mr. Somers his card.
+
+"Mollett!" said Mr. Somers very unceremoniously. "Mollett, Mollett.
+Do you know the name, Herbert?"
+
+Herbert said that he did not.
+
+"It's about business, I suppose?" asked Mr. Somers.
+
+"Yes," said Aby; "private business; very particular."
+
+"The same that brought your father here;" and Mr. Somers again
+looked into his face with a close scrutiny.
+
+Aby was abashed, and for a moment or two he did not answer. "Well,
+then; it is the same business," he said at last. "And I'll thank you
+to let me go on. I'm not used to be stopped in this way."
+
+"You can follow us up to the house," said Mr. Somers to him. "Come
+here, Herbert." And then they walked along the road in such a way
+that Aby was forced to allow his horse to walk after them.
+
+"These are the men who are doing it," said Mr. Somers in a whisper
+to his companion. "Whatever is in the wind, whatever may be the
+cause of your father's trouble, they are concerned in it. They are
+probably getting money from him in some way."
+
+"Do you think so?"
+
+"I do. We must not force ourselves upon your father's confidence,
+but we must endeavour to save him from this misery. Do you go in to
+him with this card. Do not show it to him too suddenly; and then
+find out whether he really wishes to see the man. I will stay about
+the place; for it may be possible that a magistrate will be wanted,
+and in such a matter you had better not act."
+
+They were now at the hall door, and Somers, turning to Mollett, told
+him that Mr. Herbert Fitzgerald would carry the card to his father.
+And then he added, seeing that Mollett was going to come down, "You
+had better stay in the gig till Mr. Fitzgerald comes back; just sit
+where you are; you'll get an answer all in good time."
+
+Sir Thomas was crouching over the fire in his study when his son
+entered, with his eyes fixed upon a letter which he held in his
+hand, and which, when he saw Herbert, he closed up and put away.
+
+"Father," said Herbert, in a cheerful everyday voice, as though he
+had nothing special to communicate, "there is a man in a gig out
+there. He says he wants to see you."
+
+"A man in a gig!" and Herbert could see that his father had already
+begun to tremble. But every sound made him tremble now.
+
+"Yes; a man in a gig. What is it he says his name is? I have his
+card here. A young man."
+
+"Oh, a young man?" said Sir Thomas.
+
+"Yes, here it is. Abraham Mollett. I can't say that your friend
+seems to be very respectable, in spite of his gig," and Herbert
+handed the card to his father.
+
+The son purposely looked away as he mentioned the name, as his great
+anxiety was not to occasion distress. But he felt that the sound of
+the word had been terrible in his father's ears. Sir Thomas had
+risen from his chair; but he now sat down again, or rather fell into
+it. But nevertheless he took the card, and said that he would see
+the man.
+
+"A young man, do you say, Herbert?"
+
+"Yes, father, a young man. And, father, if you are not well, tell me
+what the business is and let me see him."
+
+But Sir Thomas persisted, shaking his head, and saying that he would
+see the man himself.
+
+"Somers is out there. Will you let him do it?"
+
+"No. I wonder, Herbert, that you can tease me so. Let the man be
+sent in here. But, oh, Herbert--Herbert--!"
+
+The young man rushed round and kneeled at his father's knee. "What
+is it, father? Why will you not tell me? I know you have some grief,
+and cannot you trust me? Do you not know that you can trust me?"
+
+"My poor boy, my poor boy!"
+
+"What is it, father? If this man here is concerned in it, let me see
+him."
+
+"No, no, no."
+
+"Or at any rate let me be with you when he is here. Let me share
+your trouble if I can do nothing to cure it."
+
+"Herbert, my darling, leave me and send him in. If it be necessary
+that you should bear this calamity, it will come upon you soon
+enough."
+
+"But I am afraid of this man--for your sake, father."
+
+"He will do me no harm; let him come to me. But, Herbert, say
+nothing to Somers about this. Somers has not seen the man; has he?"
+
+"Yes; we both spoke to him together as he drove up the avenue."
+
+"And what did he say? Did he say anything?
+
+"Nothing but that he wanted to see you, and then he gave his card to
+Mr. Somers. Mr. Somers wished to save you from the annoyance."
+
+"Why should it annoy me to see any man? Let Mr. Somers mind his own
+business. Surely I can have business of my own without his
+interference." With this Herbert left his father, and returned to
+the hall door to usher in Mr. Mollett junior.
+
+"Well?" said Mr. Somers, who was standing by the hall fire, and who
+joined Herbert at the front door.
+
+"My father will see the man."
+
+"And have you learned who he is?"
+
+"I have learned nothing but this--that Sir Thomas does not wish that
+we should inquire. Now, Mr. Mollett, Sir Thomas will see you; so you
+can come down. Make haste now, and remember that you are not to stay
+long, for my father is ill." And then leading Aby through the hall
+and along a passage, he introduced him into Sir Thomas's room.
+
+"And, Herbert--" said the father; whereupon Herbert again turned
+round. His father was endeavouring to stand, but supporting himself
+by the back of his chair. "Do not disturb me for half an hour; but
+come to me then, and knock at the door. This gentleman will have
+done by that time."
+
+"If we do not put a stop to this, your father will be in a mad-house
+or on his death-bed before long." So spoke Mr, Somers in a low,
+solemn whisper when Herbert again joined him at the hall door.
+
+"Sit down, sir; sit down," said Sir Thomas, endeavouring to be civil
+and to seem at his ease at the same time. Aby was himself so much
+bewildered for the moment, that he hardly perceived the
+embarrassment under which the baronet was labouring.
+
+Aby sat down, in the way usual to such men in such places, on the
+corner of his chair, and put his hat on the ground between his feet.
+Then he took out his handkerchief and blew his nose, and after that
+he expressed an opinion that he was in the presence of Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald.
+
+"And you are Mr. Abraham Mollett," said Sir Thomas.
+
+"Yes, Sir Thomas, that's my name. I believe, Sir Thomas, that you
+have the pleasure of some slight acquaintance with my father, Mr.
+Matthew Mollett?"
+
+What a pleasure under such circumstances! Sir Thomas, however,
+nodded his head, and Aby went on.
+
+"Well, now, Sir Thomas, business is business; and my father, 'e
+ain't a good man of business. A gen'leman like you, Sir Thomas, has
+seen that with 'alf an eye, I know." And then he waited a moment for
+an answer; but as he got none he proceeded.
+
+"My governor's one of the best of fellows going, but 'e ain't sharp
+and decisive. Sharp's the word now a days, Sir Thomas; ain't it?"
+and he spoke this in a manner so suited to the doctrine which he
+intended to inculcate, that the poor old gentleman almost jumped up
+in his chair.
+
+And Aby, seeing this, seated himself more comfortably in his own.
+The awe which the gilt bindings of the books and the thorough
+comfort of the room had at first inspired was already beginning to
+fade away. He had come there to bully, and though his courage had
+failed him for a moment under the stern eye of Mr. Somers, it
+quickly returned to him now that he was able to see how weak was his
+actual victim.
+
+"Sharp's the word, Sir Thomas; and my governor, 'e ain't sharp--not
+sharp as he ought to be in such a matter as this. This is what I
+calls a real bit of cheese. Now it's no good going on piddling and
+peddling in such a case as this; is it now, Sir Thomas?"
+
+Sir Thomas muttered something, but it was no more than a groan.
+
+"Not the least use," continued Aby. "Now the question, as I takes
+it, is this. There's your son there as fetched me in 'ere; a fine
+young gen'leman 'e is, as ever I saw; I will say that. Well, now;
+who's to have this 'ere property when you walk the plank--as walk it
+you must some day, in course? Is it to be this son of yours, or is
+it to be this other Fitzgerald of 'Appy 'Ouse? Now, if you ask me,
+I'm all for your son, though maybe he mayn't be all right as regards
+the dam."
+
+There was certainly some truth in what Aby had said with reference
+to his father. Mr. Mollett senior had never debated the matter in
+terms so sharp and decisive as these were. Think who they were of
+whom this brute was talking to that wretched gentleman; the wife of
+his bosom, than whom no wife was ever more dearly prized; the son of
+his love, the centre of all his hopes, the heir of his wealth--if
+that might still be so. And yet he listened to such words as these,
+and did not call in his servants to turn the speaker of them out of
+his doors.
+
+"I've no wish for that 'Appy 'Ouse man, Sir Thomas; not the least.
+And as for your good lady, she's nothing to me one way or the other
+whatever she may be to my governor--" and here there fell a spasm
+upon the poor man's heart, which nearly brought him from the chair
+to the ground; but nevertheless, he still contained himself--"my
+governor's former lady, my own mother," continued Aby, "whom I never
+see'd, she'd gone to kingdom come, you know, before that time, Sir
+Thomas. There hain't no doubt about that. So you see--" and hereupon
+he dropped his voice from the tone which he had hitherto been using
+to an absolute whisper, and drawing his chair close to that of the
+baronet, and putting his hands upon his knees, brought his mouth
+close to his companion's ear--"So you see," he said, "when that
+youngster was born, Lady F. was Mrs. M.--wasn't she? and for the
+matter of that, Lady F. is Mrs. M. to this very hour. That's the
+real chat; ain't it, Sir Thomas? My stepmother, you know. The
+governor could take her away with him to-morrow if he chose,
+according to the law of the land--couldn't he now?"
+
+There was no piddling or peddling about this at any rate. Old
+Mollett in discussing the matter with his victim had done so by
+hints and inuendos, through long windings, by signs and the dropping
+of a few dark words. He had never once mentioned in full terms the
+name of Lady Fitzgerald; had never absolutely stated that he did
+possess or ever had possessed a wife. It had been sufficient for him
+to imbue Sir Thomas with the knowledge that his son Herbert was in
+great danger as to his heritage. Doubtless the two had understood
+each other; but the absolute naked horror of the surmised facts had
+been kept delicately out of sight. But such delicacy was not to
+Aby's taste. Sharp, short, and decisive; that was his motto. No
+"longae ambages" for him. The whip was in his hand, as he thought,
+and he could best master the team by using it.
+
+And yet Sir Thomas lived and bore it. As he sat there half
+stupefied, numbed as it were by the intensity of his grief, he
+wondered at his own power of endurance. "She is Mrs. M., you know;
+ain't she now?" He could sit there and hear that, and yet live
+through it. So much he could do, and did do; but as for speaking,
+that was beyond him.
+
+Young Mollett thought that this "freshening up of the old gentleman"
+seemed to answer; so he continued. "Yes, Sir Thomas, your son's my
+favourite, I tell you fairly. But then, you know, if I backs the
+favourite, in course I likes to win upon him. How is it to be, now?"
+and then he paused for an answer, which, however, was not
+forthcoming.
+
+"You see you haven't been dealing quite on the square with the
+governor. You two is, has it were, in a boat together. We'll call
+that boat the Lady F., or the Mrs. M., which ever you like; "--and
+then Aby laughed, for the conceit pleased him--"but the hearnings of
+that boat should be divided hequally. Ain't that about the ticket?
+heh, Sir Thomas? Come, don't be down on your luck. A little quiet
+talkee-talkee between you and me'll soon put this small matter on a
+right footing."
+
+"What is it you want? tell me at once," at last groaned the poor
+man.
+
+"Well now, that's something like; and I'll tell you what we want.
+There are only two of us you know, the governor and I; and very
+lonely we are, for it's a sad thing for a man to have the wife of
+his bosom taken from him."
+
+Then there was a groan which struck even Aby's ear; but Sir Thomas
+was still alive and listening, and so he went on.
+
+"This property here, Sir Thomas, is a good twelve thousand a year. I
+know hall about it as though I'd been 'andling it myself for the
+last ten years. And a great deal of cutting there is in twelve
+thousand a year. You've 'ad your whack out of it, and now we wants
+to have hourn. That's Henglish, hain't it?"
+
+"Did your father send you here, Mr. Mollett?"
+
+"Never you mind who sent me, Sir Thomas. Perhaps he did, and perhaps
+he didn't. Perhaps I came without hany sending. Perhaps I'm more hup
+to this sort of work than he is. At any rate, I've got the part
+pretty well by 'eart--you see that, don't you? Well hour hultimatum
+about the business is this. Forty thousand pounds paid down on the
+nail, half to the governor, and half to your 'umble servant, before
+the end of this year; a couple of thousand more in hand for the
+year's hexpenses--and--and--a couple of hundred or so now at once
+before I leave you; for to tell the truth we're run huncommonly dry
+just at the present moment." And then Aby drew his breath and paused
+for an answer.
+
+Poor Sir Thomas was now almost broken down. His head swam round and
+round, and he felt that he was in a whirlpool from which there was
+no escape. He had heard the sum named, and knew that he had no power
+of raising it. His interest in the estate was but for his life, and
+that life was now all but run out. He had already begun to feel that
+his son must be sacrificed, but he had struggled and endured in
+order that he might save his wife. But what could he do now? What
+further struggle could he make? His present most eager desire was
+that that horrid man should be removed from his hearing and his
+eyesight.
+
+But Aby had not yet done: he had hitherto omitted to mention one not
+inconsiderable portion of the amicable arrangement which, according
+to him, would have the effect of once more placing the two families
+comfortably on their feet. "There's one other pint, Sir Thomas," he
+continued, "and hif I can bring you and your good lady to my way of
+thinking on that, why, we may all be comfortable for all that is
+come and gone. You've a daughter Hemmeline."
+
+"What!" said Sir Thomas, turning upon him; for there was still so
+much of life left in him that he could turn upon his foe when he
+heard his daughter's name thus polluted.
+
+"Has lovely a gal to my way of thinking as my heyes ever rested on;
+and I'm not haccounted a bad judge of such cattle, I can tell you,
+Sir Thomas."
+
+"That will do, that will do," said Sir Thomas, attempting to rise,
+but still holding on by the back of his chair. "You can go now, sir;
+I cannot hear more from you."
+
+"Go!"
+
+"Yes, sir; go."
+
+"I know a trick worth two of that, Sir Thomas. If you like to give
+me your daughter Hemmeline for my wife, whatever her fortin's to be,
+I'll take it as part of my half of the forty thousand pounds. There
+now." And then Aby again waited for a reply.
+
+But now there came a knock at the door, and following quick upon the
+knock Herbert entered the room. "Well, father," said the son.
+
+"Herbert!"
+
+"Yes, father;" and he went round and supported his father on his
+arm.
+
+"Herbert, will you tell that man to go?"
+
+"Come, sir, you have disturbed my father enough; will you have the
+kindness to leave him now?"
+
+"I may chance to disturb him more, and you too, sir, if you treat me
+in that way. Let go my arm, sir. Am I to have any answer from you,
+Sir Thomas?"
+
+But Sir Thomas could make no further attempt at speaking. He was now
+once more seated in his chair, holding his son's hand, and when he
+again heard Mollett's voice he merely made a sign for him to go.
+
+"You see the state my father is in, Mr. Mollett," said Herbert; "I
+do not know what is the nature of your business, but whatever it may
+be, you must leave him now." And he made a slight attempt to push
+the visitor towards the door.
+
+"You'd better take care what you're doing, Mr. Fitzgerald," said
+Mollett. "By---you had! If you anger me, I might say a word that I
+couldn't unsay again, which would put you into queer street, I can
+tell you."
+
+"Don't quarrel with him, my boy; pray don't quarrel with him, but
+let him leave me," said Sir Thomas.
+
+"Mr. Mollett, you see my father's state; you must be aware that it
+is imperative that he should be left alone."
+
+"I don't know nothing about that, young gen'leman; business is
+business, and I hain't got hany answer to my proposals. Sir Thomas,
+do you say 'Yes' to them proposals." But Sir Thomas was still dumb.
+"To all but the last? Come," continued Aby, "that was put in quite
+as much for your good as it was for mine." But not a word came from
+the baronet.
+
+"Then I shan't stir," said Aby, again seating himself.
+
+"Then I shall have the servants in," said Herbert, "and a magistrate
+who is in the hall," and he put his hand towards the handle of the
+bell.
+
+"Well, as the old gen'leman's hill, I'll go now and come again. But
+look you here, Sir Thomas, you have got my proposals, and if I don't
+get an answer to them in three days' time,--why you'll hear from me
+in another way, that's all. And so will her ladyship." And with this
+threat Mr Abraham Mollett allowed himself to be conducted through
+the passage into the hall, and from thence to his gig.
+
+"See that he drives away, see that he goes," said Herbert to Mr.
+Somers, who was still staying about the place.
+
+"Oh, I'll drive away fast enough," said Aby, as he stepped into the
+gig, "and come back fast enough too," he muttered to himself. In the
+mean time Herbert had run back to his father's room.
+
+"Has he gone?" murmured Sir Thomas.
+
+"Yes, he has gone. There; you can hear the wheels of his gig on the
+gravel."
+
+"Oh, my boy, my poor boy!"
+
+"What is it, father? Why do you not tell me? Why do you allow such
+men as that to come and harass you, when a word would keep them from
+you? Father, good cannot come of it."
+
+"No, Herbert, no, good will not come of it. There is no good to come
+at all."
+
+"Then why will you not tell us?"
+
+"You will know it all soon enough. But, Herbert, do not say a word
+to your mother. Not a word as you value my love. Let us save her
+while we can. You promise me that."
+
+Herbert gave him the required promise.
+
+"Look here," and he took up the letter which he had before crumpled
+in his hand. "Mr. Prendergast will be here next week. I shall tell
+everything to him."
+
+Soon afterwards Sir Thomas went to his bed, and there by his bedside
+his wife sat for the rest of the evening. But he said no word to her
+of his sorrow.
+
+"Mr. Prendergast is coming here," said Herbert to Mr. Somers.
+
+"I am glad of it, though I do not know him," said Mr. Somers. "For,
+my dear boy, it is necessary that there should be some one here."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+THE PATH BENEATH THE ELMS
+
+
+
+
+
+It will be remembered that in the last chapter but one Owen
+Fitzgerald left Lady Desmond in the drawing-room at Desmond Court
+somewhat abruptly, having absolutely refused to make peace with the
+Desmond faction by giving his consent to the marriage between Clara
+and his cousin Herbert. And it will perhaps be remembered also, that
+Lady Desmond had asked for this consent in a manner that was almost
+humble. She had shown herself most anxious to keep on friendly terms
+with the rake of Hap House,--rake and roue, gambler and spendthrift,
+as he was reputed to be,--if only he would abandon his insane claim
+to the hand of Clara Desmond. But this feeling she had shown when
+they two were alone together, after Clara had left them. As long as
+her daughter had been present, Lady Desmond had maintained her tone
+of indignation and defiance; but, when the door was closed and they
+two were alone, she had become kind in her language and almost
+tender.
+
+My readers will probably conceive that she had so acted, overcome by
+her affection for Owen Fitzgerald and with a fixed resolve to win
+him for herself. Men and women when they are written about are
+always supposed to have fixed resolves, though in life they are so
+seldom found to be thus armed. To speak the truth, the countess had
+had no fixed resolve in the matter, either when she had thought
+about Owen's coming, or when, subsequently, she had found herself
+alone with him in her drawing-room. That Clara should not marry
+him,--on so much she had resolved long ago. But all danger on that
+head was, it may be said, over. Clara, like a good child, had
+behaved in the best possible manner; had abandoned her first lover,
+a lover that was poor and unfitted for her, as soon as told to do
+so; and had found for herself a second lover, who was rich, and
+proper, and in every way desirable. As regards Clara, the countess
+felt herself to be safe; and, to give her her due, she had been
+satisfied that the matter should so rest. She had not sought any
+further interview with Fitzgerald. He had come there against her
+advice, and she had gone to meet him prompted by the necessity of
+supporting her daughter, and without any other views of her own.
+
+But when she found herself alone with him; when she looked into his
+face, and saw how handsome, how noble, how good it was--good in its
+inherent manliness and bravery--she could not but long that this
+feud should be over, and that she might be able once more to welcome
+him as her friend. If only he would give up this frantic passion,
+this futile, wicked, senseless attempt to make them all wretched by
+an insane marriage, would it not be sweet again to make some effort
+to rescue him from the evil ways into which he had fallen?
+
+But Owen himself would make no response to this feeling. Clara
+Desmond was his love, and he would, of his own consent, yield her to
+no one. In truth, he was, in a certain degree, mad on this subject.
+He did think that because the young girl had given him a
+promise--had said to him a word or two which he called a
+promise--she was now of right his bride; that there belonged to him
+an indefeasible property in her heart, in her loveliness, in the
+inexpressible tenderness of her young springing beauty, of which no
+subsequent renouncing on her part could fairly and honestly deprive
+him. That others should oppose the match was intelligible to him;
+but it was hardly intelligible that she should betray him. And, as
+yet, he did not believe that she herself was the mainspring of this
+renouncing. Others, the countess and the Castle Richmond people, had
+frightened her into falseness; and, therefore, it became him to
+maintain his right by any means--almost by any means, within his
+power. Give her up of his own free will and voice! Say that Herbert
+Fitzgerald should take her with his consent! that she should go as a
+bride to Castle Richmond, while he stood by and smiled, and wished
+them joy! Never! And so he rode away with a stern heart, leaving her
+standing there with something of sternness about her heart also.
+
+In the meantime, Clara, when she was sure that her rejected suitor
+was well away from the place, put on her bonnet and walked out. It
+was her wont at this time to do so; and she was becoming almost a
+creature of habit, shut up as she was in that old dreary barrack.
+Her mother very rarely went with her; and she habitually performed
+the same journey over the same ground, at the same hour, day after
+day. So it had been, and so it was still,--unless Herbert
+Fitzgerald were with her.
+
+On the present occasion she saw no more of her mother before she
+left the house. She passed the drawing-room door, and seeing that it
+was ajar, knew that the countess was there: but she had nothing to
+say to her mother as to the late interview, unless her mother had
+aught to say to her. So she passed on. In truth her mother had
+nothing to say to her. She was sitting there alone, with her head
+resting on her hand, with that sternness at her heart and a cloud
+upon her brow, but she was not thinking of her daughter. Had she
+not, with her skill and motherly care, provided well for Clara? Had
+she not saved her daughter from all the perils which beset the path
+of a young girl? Had she not so brought her child up and put her
+forth into the world, that, portionless as that child was, all the
+best things of the world had been showered into her lap? Why should
+the countess think more of her daughter? It was of herself she was
+thinking; and of what her life would be all alone, absolutely alone,
+in that huge frightful home of hers, without a friend, almost
+without an acquaintance, without one soul near her whom she could
+love or who would love her. She had put out her hand to Owen
+Fitzgerald, and he had rejected it. Her he had regarded merely as
+the mother of the woman he loved. And then the Countess of Desmond
+began to ask herself if she were old and wrinkled and ugly, only fit
+to be a dowager in mind, body, and in name!
+
+Over the same ground! Yes, always over the same ground. Lady Clara
+never varied her walk. It went from the front entrance of the court,
+with one great curve, down to the old ruined lodge which opened on
+to the road running from Kanturk to Cork. It was here that the row
+of elm trees stood, and it was here that she had once walked with a
+hot, eager lover beside her, while a docile horse followed behind
+their feet. It was here that she walked daily; and was it possible
+that she should walk here without thinking of him?
+
+It was always on the little well-worn path by the road-side, not on
+the road itself, that she took her measured exercise; and now, as
+she went along, she saw on the moist earth the fresh prints of a
+horse's hoofs. He also had ridden down the same way, choosing to
+pass over the absolute spot in which those words had been uttered,
+thinking of that moment, as she also was thinking of it. She felt
+sure that such had been the case. She knew that it was this that had
+brought him there--there on to the foot-traces which they had made
+together.
+
+And did he then love her so truly,--with a love so hot, so eager, so
+deeply planted in his very soul? Was it really true that a passion
+for her had so filled his heart, that his whole life must by that be
+made or marred? Had she done this thing to him? Had she so impressed
+her image on his mind that he must be wretched without her? Was she
+so much to him, so completely all in all as regarded his future
+worldly happiness? Those words of his, asserting that love--her
+love--was to him a stern fact, a deep necessity--recurred over and
+over again to her mind. Could it really be that in doing as she had
+done, in giving herself to another after she had promised herself to
+him, she had committed an injustice which would constantly be
+brought up against her by him and by her own conscience? Had she in
+truth deceived and betrayed him,--deserted him because he was poor,
+and given herself over to a rich lover because of his riches?
+
+As she thought of this she forgot again that fact--which, indeed,
+she had never more than half realized in her mind--that he had
+justified her in separating herself from him by his reckless course
+of living; that his conduct must be held to have so justified her,
+let the pledge between them have been of what nature it might. Now,
+as she walked up and down that path, she thought nothing of his
+wickedness and his sins; she thought only of the vows to which she
+had once listened, and the renewal of those vows to which it was now
+so necessary that her ear should be deaf.
+
+But was her heart deaf to them? She swore to herself, over and over
+again, scores and scores of oaths, that it was so; but each time
+that she swore, some lowest corner in the depth of her conscience
+seemed to charge her with a falsehood. Why was it that in all her
+hours of thinking she so much oftener saw his face, Owen's, than she
+did that other face of which in duty she was bound to think and
+dream? It was in vain that she told herself that she was afraid of
+Owen, and therefore thought of him. The tone of his voice that rang
+in her ears the oftenest was not that of his anger and sternness,
+but the tone of his first assurance of love--that tone which had
+been so inexpressibly sweet to her--that to which she had listened
+on this very spot where she now walked slowly, thinking of him. The
+look of his which was ever present to her eyes was not that on which
+she had almost feared to gaze but an hour ago; but the form and
+spirit which his countenance had worn when they were together on
+that well-remembered day.
+
+And then she would think, or try to think, of Herbert, and of all
+his virtues and of all his goodness. He too loved her well. She
+never doubted that. He had come to her with soft words, and pleasant
+smiles, and sweet honeyed compliments--compliments which had been
+sweet to her as they are to all girls; but his soft words, and
+pleasant smiles, and honeyed love-making had never given her so
+strong a thrill of strange delight as had those few words from Owen.
+Her very heart's core had been affected by the vigour of his
+affection. There had been in it a mysterious grandeur which had half
+charmed and half frightened her. It had made her feel that he, were
+it fated that she should belong to him, would indeed be her lord and
+ruler; that his was a spirit before which hers would bend and feel
+itself subdued. With him she could realize all that she had dreamed
+of woman's love, and that dream which is so sweet to some women--of
+woman's subjugation. But could it be the same with him to whom she
+was now positively affianced, with him to whom she knew that she did
+now owe all her duty? She feared that it was not the same.
+
+And then again she swore that she loved him. She thought over all
+his excellences; how good he was as a son--how fondly his sisters
+loved him--how inimitable was his conduct in these hard trying
+times. And she remembered also that it was right in every way that
+she should love him. Her mother and brother approved of it. Those
+who were to be her new relatives approved of it. It was in every way
+fitting. Pecuniary considerations were so favourable! But when she
+thought of that her heart sank low within her breast. Was it true
+that she had sold herself at her mother's bidding? Should not the
+remembrance of Owen's poverty have made her true to him had nothing
+else done so?
+
+But be all that as it might, one thing, at any rate, was clear to
+her, that it was now her fate, her duty--and, as she repeated again
+and again, her wish to marry Herbert. No thought of rebellion
+against him and her mother ever occurred to her as desirable or
+possible. She would be to him a true and loving wife, a wife in very
+heart and soul. But, nevertheless, walking thus beneath those trees,
+she could not but think of Owen Fitzgerald.
+
+In this mood she had gone twice down from the house to the lodge and
+back again, and now again she had reached the lodge the third time,
+making thus her last journey for in these solitary walks her work
+was measured. The exercise was needful, but there was little in the
+task to make her prolong it beyond what was necessary. But now, as
+she was turning for the last time, she heard the sound of a horse's
+hoof coming fast along the road, and looking from the gate, she saw
+that Herbert was coming to her. She had not expected him, but now
+she waited at the gate to meet him.
+
+It had been arranged that she was to go over in a few days to Castle
+Richmond, and stay there for a fortnight. This had been settled
+shortly before the visit made by Mr. Mollett, junior, at that place,
+and had not as yet been unsettled. But as soon as it was known that
+Sir Thomas had summoned Mr. Prendergast from London, it was felt by
+them all that it would be as well that Clara's visit should be
+postponed. Herbert had been especially cautioned by his father, at
+the time of Mollett's visit, not to tell his mother anything of what
+had occurred, and to a certain extent he had kept his promise. But
+it was of course necessary that Lady Fitzgerald should know that Mr.
+Prendergast was coming to the house, and it was of course impossible
+to keep from her the fact that his visit was connected with the
+lamentable state of her husband's health and spirits. Indeed, she
+knew as much as that without any telling. It was not probable that
+Mr. Prendergast should come there now on a visit of pleasure.
+
+"Whatever this may be that weighs upon his mind," Herbert had said,
+"he will be better for talking it over with a man whom he trusts."
+
+"And why not with Somers?" said Lady Fitzgerald.
+
+"Somers is too often with him, too near to him in all the affairs of
+his life. I really think he is wise to send for Mr. Prendergast. We
+do not know him, but I believe him to be a good man."
+
+Then Lady Fitzgerald had expressed herself as satisfied--as
+satisfied as she could be, seeing that her husband would not take
+her into his confidence; and after this it was settled that Herbert
+should at once ride over to Desmond Court, and explain that Clara's
+visit had better be postponed.
+
+Herbert got off his horse at the gate, and gave it to one of the
+children at the lodge to lead after him. His horse would not follow
+him, Clara said to herself as they walked back together towards the
+house. She could not prevent her mind running off in that direction.
+She would fain not have thought of Owen as she thus hung upon
+Herbert's arm, but as yet she had not learned to control her
+thoughts. His horse had followed him lovingly-the dogs about the
+place had always loved him-the men and women of the whole country
+round, old and young, all spoke of him with a sort of love:
+everybody admired him. As all this passed through her brain, she was
+hanging on her accepted lover's arm, and listening to his soft sweet
+words.
+
+"Oh, yes! it will be much better," she said, answering his proposal
+that she should put off her visit to Castle Richmond. "But I am so
+sorry that Sir Thomas should be ill. Mr. Prendergast is not a
+doctor, is he?"
+
+And then Herbert explained that Mr. Prendergast was not a doctor,
+that he was a physician for the mind rather than for the body.
+Regarding Clara as already one of his own family, he told her as
+much as he had told his mother. He explained that there was some
+deep sorrow weighing on his father's heart of which they none of
+them knew anything save its existence; that there might be some
+misfortune coming on Sir Thomas of which he, Herbert, could not even
+guess the nature; but that everything would be told to this Mr.
+Prendergast.
+
+"It is very sad," said Herbert.
+
+"Very sad; very sad," said Clara, with tears in her eyes. "Poor
+gentleman! I wish that we could comfort him."
+
+"And I do hope that we may," said Herbert.
+
+"Somers seems to think that his mind is partly affected, and that
+this misfortune, whatever it be, may not improbably be less serious
+than we anticipate;-that it weighs heavier on him than it would do,
+were he altogether well."
+
+"And your mother, Herbert?"
+
+"Oh, yes; she also is to be pitied. Sometimes, for moments, she
+seems to dread some terrible misfortune; but I believe that in her
+calm judgment she thinks that our worst calamity is the state of my
+father's health."
+
+Neither in discussing the matter with his mother or Clara, nor in
+thinking it over when alone, did it ever occur to Herbert that he
+himself might be individually subject to the misfortune over which
+his father brooded. Sir Thomas had spoken piteously to him, and
+called him poor, and had seemed to grieve over what might happen to
+him; but this had been taken by the son as a part of his father's
+malady.
+
+Everything around him was now melancholy, and therefore these terms
+had not seemed to have any special force of their own. He did not
+think it necessary to warn Clara that bad days might be in store for
+both of them, or to caution her that their path of love might yet be
+made rough.
+
+"And whom do you think I met, just now, on horseback?" he asked, as
+soon as this question of her visit had been decided.
+
+"Mr. Owen Fitzgerald, probably," said Clara. "He went from hence
+about an hour since."
+
+"Owen Fitzgerald here!" he repeated, as though the tidings of such a
+visit having been made were not exactly pleasant to him. "I thought
+that Lady Desmond did not even see him now."
+
+"His visit was to me, Herbert, and I will explain it to you. I was
+just going to tell you when you first came in, only you began about
+Castle Richmond."
+
+"And have you seen him?"
+
+"Oh yes, I saw him. Mamma thought it best. Yesterday he wrote a note
+to me which I will show you." And then she gave him such an account
+of the interview as was possible to her, making it, at any rate,
+intelligible to him that Owen had come thither to claim her for
+himself, having heard the rumour of her engagement to his cousin.
+
+"It was inexcusable on his part--unpardonable!" said Herbert,
+speaking with an angry spot on his face, and with more energy than
+was usual with him.
+
+"Was it? why?" said Clara, innocently. She felt unconsciously that
+it was painful to her to hear Owen ill spoken of by her lover, and
+that she would fain excuse him if she could.
+
+"Why, dearest? Think what motives he could have had; what other
+object than to place you in a painful position, and to cause trouble
+and vexation to us all. Did he not know that we were engaged?"
+
+"Oh yes; he knew that;--at least, no; I am not quite sure--I think
+he said that he had heard it but did not---"
+
+"Did not what, love?"
+
+"I think he said he did not quite believe it;" and then she was
+forced, much against her will, to describe to her betrothed how Owen
+had boldly claimed her as his own.
+
+"His conduct has been unpardonable," said Herbert, again. "Nay, it
+has been ungentleman-like. He has intruded himself where he well
+knew that he was not wanted; and he has done so taking advantage of
+a few words which, under the present circumstances, he should force
+himself to forget."
+
+"But, Herbert, it is I that have been to blame."
+
+"No; you have not been in blame. I tell you honestly that I can lay
+no blame at your door. At the age you were then, it was impossible
+that you should know your own mind. And even had your promise to him
+been of a much more binding nature, his subsequent conduct, and your
+mother's remonstrance, as well as your own age, would have released
+you from it without any taint of falsehood. He knew all this as well
+as I do; and I am surprised that he should have forced his way into
+your mother's house with the mere object of causing you
+embarrassment."
+
+It was marvellous how well Herbert Fitzgerald could lay down the law
+on the subject of Clara's conduct, and on all that was due to her,
+and all that was not due to Owen. He was the victor; he had gained
+the prize; and therefore it was so easy for him to acquit his
+promised bride, and heap reproaches on the head of his rejected
+rival. Owen had been told that he was not wanted, and of course
+should have been satisfied with his answer. Why should he intrude
+himself among happy people with his absurd aspirations? For were
+they not absurd? Was it not monstrous on his part to suppose that he
+could marry Clara Desmond?
+
+It was in this way that Herbert regarded the matter. But it was not
+exactly in that way that Clara looked at it. "He did not force his
+way in." she said. "He wrote to ask if we would see him; and mamma
+said that she thought it better."
+
+"That is forcing his way in the sense that I meant it; and if I find
+that he gives further annoyance I shall tell him what I think about
+it. I will not have you persecuted."
+
+"Herbert, if you quarrel with him you will make me wretched. I think
+it would kill me."
+
+"I shall not do it if I can help it, Clara. But it is my duty to
+protect you, and if it becomes necessary I must do so; you have no
+father, and no brother of an age to speak to him, and that
+consideration alone should have saved you from such an attack."
+
+Clara said nothing more, for she knew that she could not speak out
+to him the feelings of her heart. She could not plead to him that
+she had injured Owen, that she had loved him and then given him up;
+that she had been false to him: she could not confess that, after
+all, the tribute of such a man's love could not be regarded by her
+as an offence. So she said nothing further, but walked on in
+silence, leaning on his arm.
+
+They were now close to the house, and as they drew near to it Lady
+Desmond met them on the door-step. "I dare say you have heard that
+we had a visitor here this morning," she said, taking Herbert's hand
+in an affectionate motherly way, and smiling on him with all her
+sweetness.
+
+Herbert said that he had heard it, and expressed an opinion that Mr.
+Owen Fitzgerald would have been acting far more wisely to have
+remained at home at Hap House.
+
+"Yes, perhaps so; certainly so," said Lady Desmond, putting her arm
+within that of her future son, and walking back with him through the
+great hall. "He would have been wiser: he would have saved dear
+Clara from a painful half-hour, and he would have saved himself from
+perhaps years of sorrow. He has been very foolish to remember
+Clara's childhood as he does remember it. But, my dear Herbert, what
+can we do? You lords of creation sometimes will be foolish even
+about such trifling things as women's hearts."
+
+And then, when Herbert still persisted that Owen's conduct had been
+inexcusable and ungentlemanlike, she softly flattered him into
+quiescence. "You must not forget," she said, "that he perhaps has
+loved Clara almost as truly as you do. And then what harm can he do?
+It is not very probable that he should succeed in winning Clara away
+from you!"
+
+"Oh no, it is not that I mean. It is for Clara's sake."
+
+"And she, probably, will never see him again till she is your wife.
+That event will, I suppose, take place at no very remote period."
+
+"As soon as ever my father's health will admit. That is if I can
+persuade Clara to be so merciful."
+
+"To tell the truth, Herbert, I think you could persuade her to
+anything. Of course we must not hurry her too much. As for me, my
+losing her will be very sad; you can understand that; but I would
+not allow any feeling of my own to stand in her way for
+half-an-hour."
+
+"She will be very near you, you know."
+
+"Yes, she will; and therefore, as I was saying, it would be absurd
+for you to quarrel with Mr. Owen Fitzgerald. For myself, I am sorry
+for him--very sorry for him. You know the whole story of what
+occurred between him and Clara, and of course you will understand
+that my duty at that time was plain. Clara behaved admirably, and if
+only he would not be so foolish, the whole matter might be
+forgotten. As far as you and I are concerned I think it may be
+forgotten."
+
+"But then his coming here?"
+
+"That will not be repeated. I thought it better to show him that we
+were not afraid of him, and therefore I permitted it. Had I
+conceived that you would have objected--"
+
+"Oh no!" said Herbert.
+
+"Well, there was not much for you to be afraid of, certainly," said
+the countess. And so he was appeased, and left the house promising
+that he, at any rate, would do nothing that might lead to a quarrel
+with his cousin Owen.
+
+Clara, who had still kept on her bonnet, again walked down with him
+to the lodge, and encountered his first earnest supplication that an
+early day should be named for their marriage. She had many reasons,
+excellent good reasons, to allege why this should not be the case.
+When was a girl of seventeen without such reasons? And it is so
+reasonable that she should have such reasons. That period of having
+love made to her must be by far the brightest in her life. Is it not
+always a pity that it should be abridged?
+
+"But your father's illness, Herbert, you know."
+
+Herbert acknowledged that, to a certain extent, his father's illness
+was a reason--only to a certain extent. It would be worse than
+useless to think of waiting till his father's health should be
+altogether strong. Just for the present, till Mr. Prendergast should
+have gone, and perhaps for a fortnight longer, it might be well to
+wait. But after that--and then he pressed very closely the hand
+which rested on his arm. And so the matter was discussed between
+them with language and arguments which were by no means original.
+
+At the gate, just as Herbert was about to remount his horse, they
+were encountered by a sight which for years past had not been
+uncommon in the south of Ireland, but which had become frightfully
+common during the last two or three months. A woman was standing
+there of whom you could hardly say that she was clothed, though she
+was involved in a mass of rags which covered her nakedness. Her head
+was all uncovered, and her wild black hair was streaming round her
+face. Behind her back hung two children enveloped among the rags in
+some mysterious way; and round about her on the road stood three
+others, of whom the two younger were almost absolutely naked. The
+eldest of the five was not above seven. They all had the same wild
+black eyes, and wild elfish straggling locks; but neither the mother
+nor the children were comely. She was short ad broad in the
+shoulders, though wretchedly thin; her bare legs seemed to be of
+nearly the same thickness up to the knee, and the naked limbs of the
+children were like yellow sticks. It is strange how various are the
+kinds of physical development among the Celtic peasantry in Ireland.
+In many places they are singularly beautiful, especially as
+children; and even after labour and sickness shall have told on them
+as labour and sickness will tell, they still retain a certain
+softness and grace which is very nearly akin to beauty. But then
+again in a neighbouring district they will be found to be squat,
+uncouth, and in no way attractive to the eye. The tint of the
+complexion, the nature of the hair, the colour of the eyes, shall be
+the same. But in one place it will seem as though noble blood had
+produced delicate limbs and elegant stature, whereas in the other a
+want of noble blood had produced the reverse. The peasants of Clare,
+Limerick, and Tipperary are, in this way, much more comely than
+those of Cork and Kerry.
+
+When Herbert and Clara reached the gate they found this mother with
+her five children crouching at the ditch-side, although it was still
+mid-winter. They had seen him enter the demesne, and were now
+waiting with the patience of poverty for his return.
+
+"An' the holy Virgin guide an' save you, my lady," said the woman,
+almost frightening Clara by the sudden way in which she came
+forward, "an' you too, Misther Herbert; and for the love of heaven
+do something for a poor crathur whose five starving childher have
+not had wholesome food within their lips for the last week past."
+
+Clara looked at them piteously and put her hand towards her pocket.
+Her purse was never well furnished, and now in these bad days was
+usually empty. At the present moment it was wholly so. "I have
+nothing to give her; not a penny," she said, whispering to her
+lover.
+
+But Herbert had learned deep lessons of political economy, and was
+by no means disposed to give promiscuous charity on the road-side.
+"What is your name," said he; "and from where do you come?"
+
+"Shure, an' it's yer honor knows me well enough; and her ladyship
+too; may the heavens be her bed. And don't I come from Clady; that
+is two long miles the fur side of it? And my name is Bridget Sheehy.
+Shure, an' yer ladyship remembers me at Clady the first day ye war
+over there about the biler."
+
+Clara looked at her, and thought that she did remember her, but she
+said nothing. "And who is your husband?" said Herbert.
+
+"Murty Brien, plaze yer honor;" and the woman ducked a curtsey with
+the heavy load of two children on her back. It must be understood
+that among the poorer classes in the south and west of Ireland it is
+almost rare for a married woman to call herself or to be called by
+her husband's name.
+
+"And is he not at work?"
+
+"Shure, an' he is, yer honor--down beyant Kinsale by the say. But
+what's four shilling a week for a man's diet, let alone a woman and
+five bairns?"
+
+"And so he has deserted you?"
+
+"No, yer honor; he's not dasarted me thin. He's a good man and a
+kind, av' he had the mains. But we've a cabin up here, on her
+ladyship's ground that is; and he has sent me up among my own
+people, hoping that times would come round; but faix, yer honor, I'm
+thinking that they'll never come round, no more."
+
+"And what do you want now, Bridget?"
+
+"What is it I'm wanting? just a thrifle of money then to get a sup
+of milk for thim five childher as is starving and dying for the want
+of it." And she pointed to the wretched, naked brood around her with
+a gesture which in spite of her ugliness had in it something of
+tragic grandeur.
+
+"But you know that we will not give money. They will take you in at
+the poorhouse at Kanturk."
+
+"Is it the poorhouse, yer honor?"
+
+"Or, if you get a ticket from your priest they will give you meal
+twice a week at Clady. You know that. Why do you not go to Father
+Connellan?"
+
+"Is it the mail? An' shure an' haven't I had it the last month past;
+nothin' else; not a taste of a piaty or a dhrop of milk for nigh a
+month, and now look at the childher. Look at them, my lady. They are
+dyin' by the very road-side. And she undid the bundle at her back,
+and laying the two babes down on the road, showed that the elder of
+them was in truth in a fearful state. It was a child nearly two
+years of age. but its little legs seemed to have withered away; its
+cheeks were wan, and yellow and sunken, and the two teeth which it
+had already cut were seen with terrible plainness through its
+emaciated lips. Its head and forehead were covered with sores; and
+then the mother, moving aside the rags, showed that its back and
+legs were in the same state. "Look to that," she said, almost with
+scorn. "That's what the mail has done--my black curses be upon it,
+and the day that it first come nigh the counthry." And then again
+she covered the child and began to resume her load.
+
+"Do give her something, Herbert, pray do," said Clara, with her
+whole face suffused with tears.
+
+"You know that we cannot give away money," said Herbert, arguing
+with Bridget Sheehy, and not answering Clara at the moment. "You
+understand enough of what is being done to know that. Why do you not
+go into the Union?"
+
+"Shure thin an' I'll jist tramp on as fur as Hap House, I and my
+childher; that is av' they do not die by the road-side. Come on,
+bairns. Mr. Owen won't be afther sending me to the Kanturk union
+when I tell him that I've travelled all thim miles to get a dhrink
+of milk for a sick babe; more by token when I tells him also that
+I'm one of the Desmond tinantry. It's he that loves the Desmonds,
+Lady Clara,--loves them as his own heart's blood. And it's I that
+wish him good luck with his love, in spite of all that's come and
+gone yet. Come on, bairns, come along; we have seven weary miles to
+walk."
+
+And then, having rearranged her burden on her back, she prepared
+again to start.
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald, from the first moment of his interrogating the
+woman, had of course known that he would give her somewhat. In spite
+of all his political economy, there were but few days in which he
+did not empty his pocket of his loose silver, with these culpable
+deviations from his theoretical philosophy. But yet he felt that it
+was his duty to insist on his rules, as far as his heart would allow
+him to do so. It was a settled thing at their relief committee that
+there should be no giving away of money to chance applicants for
+alms. What money each had to bestow would go twice further by being
+brought to the general fund--by being expended with forethought and
+discrimination. This was the system which all attempted, which all
+resolved to adopt who were then living in the south of Ireland. But
+the system was impracticable, for it required frames of iron and
+hearts of adamant. It was impossible not to waste money in
+almsgiving.
+
+"Oh, Herbert!" said Clara, imploringly, as the woman prepared to
+start.
+
+"Bridget, come here," said Herbert, and he spoke very seriously, for
+the woman's allusion to Owen Fitzgerald had driven a cloud across
+his brow. "Your child is very ill, and therefore I will give you
+something to help you," and he gave her a shilling and two
+sixpences.
+
+"May the God in heaven bless you thin, and make you happy, whoever
+wins the bright darling by your side; and may the good days come
+back to yer house and all that belongs to it. May yer wife clave to
+you all her days, and be a good mother to your childher." And she
+would have gone on further with her blessing had not he interrupted
+her.
+
+"Go on now, my good woman," said he, "and take your children where
+they may be warm. If you will be advised by me, you will go to the
+Union at Kanturk." And so the woman passed on still blessing them.
+Very shortly after this none of them required pressing to go to the
+workhouse. Every building that could be arranged for the purpose was
+filled to overflowing as soon as it was ready. But the worst of the
+famine had not come upon them as yet. And then Herbert rode back to
+Castle Richmond.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII
+
+FATHER BARNEY
+
+
+
+
+
+Mick O'Dwyer's public-house at Kanturk was by no means so
+pretentious an establishment as that kept by his brother in South
+Main Street, Cork, but it was on the whole much less nasty. It was a
+drinking-shop and a public car office, and such places in Ireland
+are seldom very nice; but there was no attempt at hotel grandeur,
+and the little room in which the family lived behind the bar was
+never invaded by customers.
+
+On one evening just at this time--at the time, that is, with which
+we have been lately concerned--three persons were sitting in this
+room over a cup of tea. There was a gentleman, midddle-aged, but
+none the worse on that account, who has already been introduced in
+these pages as Father Bernard M'Carthy. He was the parish priest of
+Drumbarrow; and as his parish comprised a portion of the town of
+Kanturk, he lived, not exactly in the town, but within a mile of it.
+His sister had married Mr. O'Dwyer of South Main Street, and
+therefore he was quite at home in the little back parlour of Mick
+O'Dwyer's house in Kanturk. Indeed Father Bernard was a man who made
+himself at home in the houses of most of his parishioners,--and of
+some who were not his parishioners.
+
+His companions on the present occasion were two ladies who seemed to
+be emulous in supplying his wants. The younger and more attractive
+of the two was also an old friend of ours, being no other than Fanny
+O'Dwyer from South Main Street. Actuated, doubtless, by some
+important motive she had left her bar at home for one night, having
+come down to Kanturk by her father's car, with the intention of
+returning by it in the morning. She was seated as a guest here on
+the corner of the sofa near the fire, but nevertheless she was
+neither too proud nor too strange in her position to administer as
+best she might to the comfort of her uncle.
+
+The other lady was Mistress O'Dwyer, the lady of the mansion. She
+was fat, very; by no means fair, and perhaps something over forty.
+But nevertheless there were those who thought that she had her
+charms. A better hand at curing a side of bacon there was not in the
+county Cork, nor a woman who was more knowing in keeping a house
+straight and snug over her husband's head. That she had been worth
+more than a fortune to Mick O'Dwyer was admitted by all in Kanturk;
+for it was known to all that Mick O'Dwyer was not himself a good
+hand at keeping a house straight and snug.
+
+"Another cup of tay, Father Bernard," said this lady. "It'll be more
+to your liking now than the first, you'll find." Father Barney,
+perfectly reliant on her word, handed in his cup.
+
+"And the muffin is quite hot," said Fanny, stooping down to a tray
+which stood before the peat fire, holding the muffin dish. "But
+perhaps you'd like a morsel of buttered toast; say the word, uncle,
+and I'll make it in a brace of seconds."
+
+"In course she will," said Mrs. O'Dwyer: "and happy too, av you'll
+only say that you have a fancy, Father Bernard."
+
+But Father Bernard would not own to any such fancy. The muffin, he
+said, was quite to his liking, and so was the tea; and from the
+manner in which he disposed of these delicacies, even Mrs. Townsend
+might have admitted that this assertion was true, though she was
+wont to express her belief that nothing but lies could, by any
+possibility, fall from his mouth.
+
+"And they have been staying with you now for some weeks, haven't
+they?" said Father Barney.
+
+"Off and on," said Fanny.
+
+"But there's one of them mostly there, isn't he?" added the priest.
+
+"The two of them is mostly there, just now. Sometimes one goes away
+for a day or two, and sometimes the other."
+
+"And they have no business which keeps them in Cork?" continued the
+priest, who seemed to be very curious on the matter.
+
+"Well, they do have business, I suppose," said Fanny, "but av so I
+never sees it."
+
+Fanny O'Dwyer had a great respect for her uncle, seeing that he
+filled an exalted position, and was a connexion of whom she could be
+justly proud; but, though she had now come down to Kanturk with the
+view of having a good talk with her aunt and uncle about the
+Molletts, she would only tell as much as she liked to tell, even to
+the parish priest of Drumbarrow. And we may as well explain here
+that Fanny had now permanently made up her mind to reject the suit
+of Mr. Abraham Mollett. As she had allowed herself to see more and
+more of the little domestic ways of that gentleman, and to become
+intimate with him as a girl should become with the man she intends
+to marry, she had gradually learned to think that he hardly came up
+to her beau ideal of a lover. That he was crafty and false did not
+perhaps offend her as it should have done. Dear Fanny, excellent and
+gracious as she was, could herself be crafty on occasions. He drank
+too, but that came in the way of her profession. It is hard,
+perhaps, for a barmaid to feel much severity against that offence.
+But in addition to this Aby was selfish and cruel and insolent, and
+seldom altogether good tempered. He was bad to his father, and bad
+to those below him whom he employed. Old Mollett would give away his
+sixpences with a fairly liberal hand, unless when he was exasperated
+by drink and fatigue. But Aby seldom gave away a penny. Fanny had
+sharp eyes, and soon felt that her English lover was not a man to be
+loved, though he had two rings, a gold chain, and half a dozen fine
+waistcoats.
+
+And then another offence had come to light in which the Molletts
+were both concerned. Since their arrival in South Main Street they
+had been excellent customers--indeed quite a godsend, in this light,
+to Fanny, who had her own peculiar profit out of such
+house-customers as they were. They had paid their money like true
+Britons,--not regularly indeed, for regularity had not been
+desired, but by a five pound now, and another in a day or two, just
+as they were wanted. Nothing indeed could be better than this, for
+bills so paid are seldom rigidly scrutinized. But of late, within
+the last week, Fanny's requests for funds had not been so promptly
+met, and only on the day before her visit to Kanturk she had been
+forced to get her father to take a bill from Mr. Mollett senior for
+20 l. at two months' date. This was a great come-down, as both Fanny
+and her father felt, and they had begun to think that it might be
+well to bring their connexion with the Molletts to a close. What if
+an end had come to the money of these people, and their bills should
+be dishonoured when due? It was all very well for a man to have
+claims against Sir Thomas Fitzgerald, but Fanny O'Dwyer had already
+learnt that nothing goes so far in this world as ready cash.
+
+"They do have business, I suppose," said Fanny.
+
+"It won't be worth much, I'm thinking," said Mrs. O'Dwyer, "when
+they can't pay their weekly bills at a house of public
+entertainment, without flying their names at two months' date."
+
+Mrs. O'Dwyer hated any such payments herself, and looked on them as
+certain signs of immorality. That every man should take his drop of
+drink, consume it noiselessly, and pay for it immediately--that was
+her idea of propriety in its highest form.
+
+"And they've been down here three or four times, each of them," said
+Father Barney, thinking deeply on the subject.
+
+"I believe they have," said Fanny. "But of course I don't know much
+of where they've been to."
+
+Father Barney knew very well that his dear niece had been on much
+more intimate terms with her guest than she pretended. The rumours
+had reached his ears some time since that the younger of the two
+strangers in South Main Street was making himself agreeable to the
+heiress of the hotel, and he had intended to come down upon her with
+all the might of an uncle, and, if necessary, with all the authority
+of the Church. But now that Fanny had discarded her lover, he wisely
+felt that it would be well for him to know nothing about it. Both
+uncles and priests may know too much--very foolishly.
+
+"I have seen them here myself," said he, "and they have both been up
+at Castle Richmond."
+
+"They do say as poor Sir Thomas is in a bad way," said Mrs. O'Dwyer,
+shaking her head piteously.
+
+"And yet he sees these men," said Father Barney. "I know that for
+certain. He has seen them, though he will rarely see anybody
+now-a-days."
+
+"Young Mr. Herbert is a-doing most of the business up about the
+place," said Mrs. O'Dwyer. "And people do say as how he is going to
+make a match of it with Lady Clara Desmond. And it's the lucky girl
+she'll be, for he's a nice young fellow entirely."
+
+"Not half equal to her other Joe, Mr. Owen that is," said Fanny.
+
+"Well, I don't know that, my dear. Such a house and property as
+Castle Richmond is not likely to go a-begging among the young women.
+And then Mr. Herbert is not so rampageous like as him of Hap house,
+by all accounts."
+
+But Father Barney still kept to his subject. "And they are both at
+your place at the present moment, eh, Fanny?"
+
+"They was to dine there, after I left."
+
+"And the old man said he'd be down here again next Thursday,"
+continued the priest. "I heard that for certain. I'll tell you what
+it is, they're not after any good here. They are Protestants, ain't
+they?"
+
+"Oh, black Protestants," said Mrs. O'Dwyer. "But you are not taking
+your tay, Father Bernard," and she again filled his cup for him.
+
+"If you'll take my advice, Fanny, you'll give them nothing more
+without seeing their money. They'll come to no good here, I'm sure
+of that. They're afther some mischief with that poor old gentleman
+at Castle Richmond, and it's my belief the police will have them
+before they've done."
+
+"Like enough," said Mrs. O'Dwyer.
+
+"They may have them to-morrow, for what I care," said Fanny, who
+could not help feeling that Aby Mollett had at one time been not
+altogether left without hope as her suitor.
+
+"But you wouldn't like anything like that to happen in your father's
+house," said Father Barney.
+
+"Bringing throuble and disgrace on an honest name," said Mrs.
+O'Dwyer.
+
+"There'd be no disgrace as I knows of," said Fanny, stoutly. "Father
+makes his money by the public, and in course he takes in any that
+comes the way with money in their pockets to pay the shot."
+
+"But these Molletts ain't got the money to pay the shot," said Mrs.
+O'Dwyer, causticly. "You've about sucked 'em dhry, I'm thinking, and
+they owes you more now than you're like to get from 'em."
+
+"I suppose father'll have to take that bill up," said Fanny,
+assenting. And so it was settled down there among them that the
+Molletts were to have the cold shoulder, and that they should in
+fact be turned out of the Kanturk Hotel as quickly as this could be
+done. "Better a small loss at first, than a big one at last," said
+Mrs. O'Dwyer, with much wisdom. "They'll come to mischief down here,
+as sure as my name's M'Carthy," said the priest. "And I'd be sorry
+your father should be mixed up in it."
+
+And then by degrees the conversation was changed, but not till the
+tea-things had been taken away, and a square small bottle of very
+particular whisky put on the table in its place. And the sugar also
+was brought, and boiling water in an immense jug, as though Father
+Barney were going to make a deep potation indeed, and a lemon in a
+wine-glass; and then the priest was invited, with much hospitality,
+to make himself comfortable. Nor did the luxuries prepared for him
+end here; but Fanny, the pretty Fan herself, filled a pipe for him,
+and pretended that she would light it, for such priests are merry
+enough sometimes, and can joke as well as other men with their
+pretty nieces.
+
+"But you're not mixing your punch, Father Bernard," said Mrs.
+O'Dwyer, with a plaintive melancholy voice, "and the wather getting
+cowld and all! Faix then, Father Bernard, I'll mix it for ye, so I
+will." And so she did, and well she knew how. And then she made
+another for herself and her niece, urging that "a thimbleful would
+do Fanny all the good in life afther her ride acrass them cowld
+mountains," and the priest looked on assenting, blowing the
+comfortable streams of smoke from his nostrils.
+
+"And so, Father Bernard, you and Parson Townsend is to meet again
+to-morrow at Gortnaclough." Whereupon Father Bernard owned that such
+was the case, with a nod, not caring to disturb the pipe which lay
+comfortably on his lower lip.
+
+"Well, well; only to think on it," continued Mrs. O'Dwyer. "That the
+same room should hould the two of ye." And she lifted up her hands
+and shook her head.
+
+"It houlds us both very comfortable, I can assure you, Mrs.
+O'Dwyer."
+
+"And he ain't rampageous and highty-tighty? He don't give hisself no
+airs?"
+
+"Well, no; nothing in particular. Why should the man be such a fool
+as that?"
+
+"Why, in course? But they are such fools, Father Bernard. They does
+think theyselves such grand folks. Now don't they? I'd give a dandy
+of punch all round to the company just to hear you put him down
+once; I would. But he isn't upsetting at all, then?"
+
+"Not the last time we met, he wasn't; and I don't think he intends
+it. Things have come to that now that the parsons know where they
+are and what they have to look to. They're getting a lesson they'll
+not forget in a hurry. Where are their rent charges to come from--
+can you tell me that, Mrs. O'Dwyer?"
+
+Mrs. O'Dwyer could not, but she remarked that pride would always
+have a fall. "And there's no pride like Protesthant pride," said
+Fanny. "It is so upsetting, I can't abide it." All which tended to
+show that she had given up her Protestant lover.
+
+"And is it getthing worse than iver with the poor crathurs?" said
+Mrs. O'Dwyer, referring, not to the Protestants, but to the victims
+of the famine.
+
+"Indeed it's getting no betther," said the priest, "and I'm fearing
+it will be worse before it is over. I haven't married one couple in
+Drumbarrow since November last."
+
+"And that's a heavy sign, Father Bernard."
+
+"The surest sign in the world that they have no money among them at
+all, at all. And it is bad with thim, Mrs. O'Dwyer,--very bad, very
+bad indeed."
+
+"Glory be to God, the poor cratures!" said the soft-hearted lady.
+"It isn't much the like of us have to give away, Father Bernard; I
+needn't be telling you that. But we'll help, you know,--we'll help."
+
+"And so will father, uncle Bernard. If you're so bad off about here
+I know he'll give you a thrifle for the asking." In a short time,
+however, it came to pass that those in the cities could spare no aid
+to the country. Indeed it may be a question whether the city poverty
+was not the harder of the two.
+
+"God bless you both--you've soft hearts, I know." And Father Barney
+put his punch to his lips. "Whatever you can do for me shall not be
+thrown away. And I'll tell you what, Mrs. O'Dwyer, it does behove us
+all to put our best foot out now. We will not let them say that the
+Papists would do nothing for their own poor."
+
+"'Deed then an' they'll say anything of us, Father Bernard. There's
+nothing too hot or too heavy for them."
+
+"At any rate let us not deserve it, Mrs. O'Dwyer. There will be a
+lot of them at Gortnaclough to-morrow, and I shall tell them that
+we, on our side, won't be wanting. To give them their due, I must
+say that they are working well. That young Herbert Fitzgerald's a
+trump, whether he's Protestant or Catholic."
+
+"An' they do say he's a strong bearing towards the ould religion,"
+said Mrs. O'Dwyer.
+
+"God bless his sweet young face av' he'd come back to us. That's
+what I say."
+
+"God bless his face any way, say I," said Father Barney, with a
+wider philanthropy. "He is doing his best for the people, and the
+time has come now when we must hang together, if it be any way
+possible." And with this the priest finished his pipe, and wishing
+the ladies good night, walked away to his own house.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII
+
+THE RELIEF COMMITTEE
+
+
+
+
+
+At this time the famine was beginning to be systematised. The
+sternest among landlords and masters were driven to acknowledge that
+the people had not got food, or the means of earning it. The people
+themselves were learning that a great national calamity had
+happened, and that the work was God's work; and the Government had
+fully recognized the necessity of taking the whole matter into its
+own hands. They were responsible for the preservation of the people,
+and they acknowledged their responsibility.
+
+And then two great rules seemed to get themselves laid down--not by
+general consent, for there were many who greatly contested their
+wisdom--but by some force strong enough to make itself dominant. The
+first was, that the food to be provided should be earned and not
+given away. And the second was, that the providing of that food
+should be left to private competition, and not in any way be
+undertaken by the Government. I make bold to say that both these
+rules were wise and good.
+
+But how should the people work? That Government should supply the
+wages was of course an understood necessity; and it was also
+necessary that on all such work the amount of wages should be
+regulated by the price at which provisions might fix themselves.
+These points produced questions which were hotly debated by the
+Relief Committees of the different districts; but at last it got
+itself decided, again by the hands of Government, that all hills
+along the country roads should be cut away, and that the people
+should be employed on this work. They were so employed,--very little
+to the advantage of the roads for that or some following years.
+
+"So you have begun, my men," said Herbert to a gang of labourers
+whom he found collected at a certain point on Ballydahan Hill, which
+lay on his road from Castle Richmond to Gortnaclough. In saying this
+he had certainly paid them an unmerited compliment, for they had
+hitherto begun nothing. Some thirty or forty wretched-looking men
+were clustered together in the dirt and slop and mud, on the brow of
+the hill, armed with such various tools as each was able to
+find--with tools, for the most part, which would go but a little way
+in making Ballydahan Hill level or accessible. This question of
+tools also came to a sort of understood settlement before long; and
+within three months of the time of which I am writing legions of
+wheelbarrows were to be seen lying near every hill; wheelbarrows in
+hundreds and thousands. The fate of those myriads of wheelbarrows
+has always been a mystery to me.
+
+"So you have begun, my men," said Herbert, addressing them in a
+kindly voice. There was a couple of gangsmen with them, men a little
+above the others in appearance, but apparently incapable of
+commencing the work in hand, for they also were standing idle,
+leaning against a bit of wooden paling. It had, however, been
+decided that the works at Ballydahan Hill should begin on this day,
+and there were the men assembled. One fact admitted of no doubt,
+namely, this, that the wages would begin from this day.
+
+And then the men came and clustered round Herbert's horse. They were
+wretched-looking creatures, half-clad, discontented, with hungry
+eyes, each having at his heart's core a deep sense of injustice done
+personally upon him. They hated this work of cutting hills from the
+commencement to the end,--hated it, though it was to bring them
+wages and save them and theirs from actual famine and death. They
+had not been accustomed to the discomfort of being taken far from
+their homes to their daily work. Very many of them had never worked
+regularly for wages, day after day, and week after week. Up to this
+time such was not the habit of Irish cottiers. They held their own
+land, and laboured there for a spell; and then they would work for a
+spell, as men do in England, taking wages; and then they would be
+idle for a spell. It was not exactly a profitable mode of life, but
+it had its comforts; and now these unfortunates who felt themselves
+to be driven forth like cattle in droves for the first time,
+suffered the full wretchedness of their position. They were not
+rough and unruly, or inclined to be troublesome and perhaps violent,
+as men similarly circumstanced so often are in England;--as Irishmen
+are when collected in gangs out of Ireland. They had no aptitudes
+for such roughness, and no spirits for such violence. But they were
+melancholy, given to complaint, apathetic, and utterly without
+interest in that they were doing.
+
+"Yz, yer honer," said one man who was standing, shaking himself,
+with his hands enveloped in the rags of his pockets. He had on no
+coat, and the keen north wind seemed to be blowing through his
+bones; cold, however, as he was, he would do nothing towards warming
+himself, unless that occasional shake can be considered as a doing
+of something. "Yz, yer honer; we've begun thin since before daylight
+this blessed morning."
+
+It was now eleven o'clock, and a pick-axe had not been put into the
+ground, nor the work marked.
+
+"Been here before daylight!" said Herbert. "And has there been
+nobody to set you to work?"
+
+"Divil a sowl, yer honer," said another, who was sitting on a
+hedge-bank leaning with both his hands on a hoe, which he held
+between his legs, "barring Thady Molloy and Shawn Brady; they two do
+be over us, but they knows nothin' o' such jobs as this."
+
+Thady Molloy and Shawn Brady had with others moved up so as to be
+close to Herbert's horse, but they said not a word towards
+vindicating their own fitness for command.
+
+"And it's mortial cowld standing here thin," said another, "without
+a bit to ate or a sup to dhrink since last night, and then only a
+lump of the yally mail." And the speaker moved about on his toes and
+heels, desirous of keeping his blood in circulation with the
+smallest possible amount of trouble.
+
+"I'm telling the boys it's home we'd betther be going," said a
+fourth.
+
+"And lose the tizzy they've promised us," said he of the hoe.
+
+"Sorrow a tizzy they'll pay any of yez for standing here all day,"
+said an ill-looking little wretch of a fellow, with a black muzzle
+and a squinting eye; "ye may all die in the road first." And the man
+turned away among the crowd, as an Irishman does who has made his
+speech and does not want to be answered.
+
+"You need have no fear about that, my men," said Herbert. "Whether
+you be put to work or no you'll receive your wages; you may take my
+word for that."
+
+"I've been telling 'em that for the last half-hour," said the man
+with the hoe, now rising to his feet. "'Shure an' didn't Mr. Somers
+be telling us that we'd have saxpence each day as long we war here
+afore daylight?' said I, yer honer; 'an' shure an' wasn't it black
+night when we war here this blessed morning, and devil a fear of the
+tizzy?' said I. But it's mortial cowld, an' it'd be asier fur uz to
+be doing a spell of work than crouching about on our hunkers down on
+the wet ground."
+
+All this was true. It had been specially enjoined upon them to be
+early at their work. An Irishman as a rule will not come regularly
+to his task. It is a very difficult thing to secure his services
+every morning at six o'clock: but make a special point,--tell him
+that you want him very early, and he will come to you in the middle
+of the night. Breakfast every morning punctually at eight o'clock is
+almost impossible in Ireland; but if you want one special breakfast,
+so that you may start by a train at 4 A.M., you are sure to be
+served. No irregular effort is distasteful to an Irishman of the
+lower classes, not if it entails on him the loss of a day's food and
+the loss of a night's rest; the actual pleasure of the irregularity
+repays him for all this, and he never tells you that this or that is
+not his work. He prefers work that is not his own. Your coachman
+will have no objection to turn the mangle, but heaven and earth put
+together won't persuade him to take the horses out to exercise every
+morning at the same hour. These men had been told to come early, and
+they had been there on the road-side since five o'clock. It was not
+surprising that they were cold and hungry, listless and unhappy.
+
+And then, as young Fitzgerald was questioning the so-named gangmen
+as to the instructions they had received, a jaunting car came up to
+the foot of the hill. "We war to wait for the ongineer," Shawn Brady
+had said, "an' shure an' we have waited." "An' here's one of Misther
+Carroll's cars from Mallow," said Thady Molloy, "and that's the
+ongineer hisself." Thady Molloy was right; this was the engineer
+himself, who had now arrived from Mallow. From this time forth, and
+for the next twelve months, the country was full of engineers, or of
+men who were so called. I do not say this in disparagement; but the
+engineers were like the yellow meal. When there is an immense
+demand, and that a suddenly immense demand, for any article, it is
+seldom easy to get it very good. In those days men became engineers
+with a short amount of apprenticeship, but, as a rule, they did not
+do their work badly. In such days as those, men, if they be men at
+all, will put their shoulders to the wheel.
+
+The engineer was driven up to where they were standing, and he
+jumped off the car among the men who were to work under him with
+rather a pretentious air. He had not observed, or probably had not
+known, Herbert Fitzgerald. He was a very young fellow, still under
+one-and-twenty, beardless, light-haired, blue-eyed, and fresh from
+England. "And what hill is this?" said he to the driver.
+
+"Ballydahan, shure, yer honer. That last war Connick-a-coppul, and
+that other, the big un intirely, where the crass road takes away to
+Buttevant, that was Glounthauneroughtymore. Faix and that's been the
+murthering hill for cattle since first I knew it. Bedad yer honer
+'ll make it smooth as a bowling-green."
+
+"Ballydahan," said the young man, taking a paper out of his pocket
+and looking up the names in his list, "I've got it. There should be
+thirty-seven of them here."
+
+"Shure an' here we are these siven hours," said our friend of the
+hoe, "and mighty cowld we are."
+
+"Thady Molloy and Shawn Brady," called out the engineer, managing
+thoroughly to Anglicise the pronunciation of the names, though they
+were not Celtically composite to any great degree.
+
+"Yez, we's here," said Thady, coming forward. And then Herbert came
+up and introduced himself, and the young engineer took off his hat.
+"I came away from Mallow before eight," said he apologetically; "but
+I have four of these places to look after, and when one gets to one
+of them it is impossible to get away again. There was one place
+where I was kept two hours before I could get one of the men to
+understand what they were to do. What is it you call that big hill?"
+
+"Glounthauneroughtymore, yer honer," said the driver, to whom the
+name was as easy and familiar as his own.
+
+"And you are going to set these men to work now?" said Herbert.
+
+"Well, I don't suppose they'll do much to-day, Mr. Fitzgerald. But
+I must try and explain to the head men how they are to begin. They
+have none of them any tools, you see." And then he called out again.
+"Thady Molloy and Shawn Brady."
+
+"We's here," said Thady again; "we did not exactly know whether yer
+honer'd be afther beginning at the top or the botthom. That's all
+that war staying us."
+
+"Never fear," said Shawn, "but we'll have ould Ballydahan level in
+less than no time. We're the boys that can do it, fair and aisy."
+
+It appeared to Herbert that the young engineer seemed to be rather
+bewildered by the job of work before him, and therefore he rode on,
+not stopping to embarrass him by any inspection of his work. In
+process of time no doubt so much of the top of Ballydahan Hill was
+carried to the bottom as made the whole road altogether impassable
+for many months. But the great object was gained; the men were fed,
+and were not fed by charity. What did it matter, that the springs of
+every conveyance in the county Cork were shattered by the process,
+and that the works resulted in myriads of wheelbarrows?
+
+And then, as he rode on towards Gortnaclough, Herbert was overtaken
+by his friend the parson, who was also going to the meeting of the
+relief committee. "You have not seen the men at Ballydahan Hill,
+have you?" said Herbert.
+
+Mr. Townsend explained that he had not seen them. His road had
+struck on to that on which they now were not far from the top of the
+hill. "But I knew they were to be there this morning," said Mr.
+Townsend.
+
+"They have sent quite a lad of a fellow to show them how to work,"
+said Herbert. "I fear we shall all come to grief with these road-
+cuttings."
+
+"For heaven's sake don't say that at the meeting," said Mr.
+Townsend, "or you'll be playing the priests' game out and out.
+Father Barney has done all in his power to prevent the works."
+
+"But what if Father Barney be right?" said Herbert.
+
+"But he's not right," said the parson, energetically. "He's
+altogether wrong. I never knew one of them right in my life yet in
+anything. How can they be right?"
+
+"But I think you are mixing up road-making and Church doctrine, Mr.
+Townsend."
+
+"I hope I may never be in danger of mixing up God and the devil. You
+cannot touch pitch and not be defiled. Remember that, Herbert
+Fitzgerald."
+
+"I will remember nothing of the kind," said Herbert. "Am I to set
+myself up as a judge and say that this is pitch and that is pitch?
+Do you remember St. Peter on the housetop? Was not he afraid of what
+was unclean?"
+
+"The meaning of that was that he was to convert the Gentiles, and
+not give way to their errors. He was to contend with them and not
+give way an inch till he had driven them from their idolatry." Mr.
+Townsend had been specially primed by his wife that morning with
+vigorous hostility against Father Barney, and was grieved to his
+heart at finding that his young friend was prepared to take the
+priest's part in anything. In this matter of the roads Mr. Townsend
+was doubtless right, but hardly on the score of the arguments
+assigned by him.
+
+"I don't mean to say that there should be no road-making," said
+Herbert, after a pause. "The general opinion seems to be that we
+can't do better. I only say that we shall come to grief about it.
+Those poor fellows there have as much idea of cutting down a hill as
+I have; and it seems to me that the young lad whom I left with them
+has not much more."
+
+"They'll learn all in good time."
+
+"Let us hope it will be in good time."
+
+"If we once let them have the idea that we are to feed them in
+idleness," said Mr. Townsend, "they will want to go on for ever in
+the same way. And then, when they receive such immense sums in money
+wages, the priests will be sure to get their share. If the matter
+had been left to me, I would have paid the men in meal. I would
+never have given them money. They should have worked and got their
+food. The priest will get a penny out of every shilling; you'll see
+else." And so the matter was discussed between them as they went
+along to Gortnaclough.
+
+When they reached the room in which the committee was held they
+found Mr. Somers already in the chair. Priest M'Carthy was there
+also, with his coadjutor, the Rev. Columb Creagh--Father Columb as
+he was always called; and there was a Mr. O'Leary from Boherbuy, one
+of the middlemen as they were formerly named--though, by the way, I
+never knew that word to be current in Ireland; it is familiar to
+all, and was I suppose common some few years since, but I never
+heard the peasants calling such persons by that title. He was one of
+those with whom the present times were likely to go very hard. He
+was not a bad man, unless in so far as this, that he had no idea of
+owing any duty to others beyond himself and his family. His doctrine
+at present amounted to this, that if you left the people alone and
+gave them no false hopes, they would contrive to live somehow. He
+believed in a good deal, but he had no belief whatever in
+starvation,--none as yet. It was probable enough that some belief in
+this might come to him now before long. There were also one or two
+others; men who had some stake in the country, but men who hadn't a
+tithe of the interest possessed by Sir Thomas Fitzgerald.
+
+Mr. Townsend again went through the ceremony of shaking hands with
+his reverend brethren, and, on this occasion, did not seem to be
+much the worse for it. Indeed, in looking at the two men cursorily,
+a stranger might have said that the condescension was all on the
+other side. Mr. M'Carthy was dressed quite smartly. His black
+clothes were spruce and glossy; his gloves, of which he still kept
+on one and showed the other, were quite new; he was clean shaven,
+and altogether he had a shiny, bright, ebon appearance about him
+that quite did a credit to his side of the Church. But our friend
+the parson was discreditably shabby. His clothes were all brown, his
+white neck-tie could hardly have been clean during the last
+forty-eight hours, and was tied in a knot, which had worked itself
+nearly round to his ear as he had sat sideways on the car; his boots
+were ugly and badly brushed, and his hat was very little better than
+some of those worn by the workmen--so called--at Ballydahan Hill.
+But nevertheless, on looking accurately into the faces of both, one
+might see which man was the better nurtured and the better born.
+That operation with the sow's ear is, one may say, seldom successful
+with the first generation.
+
+"A beautiful morning, this," said the coadjutor, addressing Herbert
+Fitzgerald, with a very mild voice and an unutterable look of
+friendship; as though he might have said, "Here we are in a boat
+together, and of course we are all very fond of each other." To tell
+the truth, Father Columb was not a nice-looking young man. He was
+red-haired, slightly marked with the small-pox, and had a low
+forehead and cunning eyes.
+
+"Yes, it is a nice morning," said Herbert. "We don't expect anybody
+else here, do we, Somers?"
+
+"At any rate we won't wait," said Somers. So he sat down in the
+arm-chair, and they all went to work.
+
+"I am afraid, Mr. Somers," said Mr. M'Carthy from the other end of
+the table, where he had constituted himself a sort of deputy
+chairman, "I am afraid we are going on a wrong tack." The priest had
+shuffled away his chair as he began to speak, and was now standing
+with his hands upon the table. It is singular how strong a
+propensity some men have to get upon their legs in this way.
+
+"How so, Mr. M'Carthy?" said Somers. "But shan't we be all more
+comfortable if we keep our chairs? There'll be less ceremony, won't
+there, Mr. Townsend?"
+
+"Oh! certainly," said Townsend.
+
+"Less liable to interruption, perhaps, on our legs," said Father
+Columb, smiling blandly.
+
+But Mr. M'Carthy was far too wise to fight the question, so he sat
+down. "Just as you like," said he; "I can talk any way, sitting or
+standing, walking or riding; it's all one to me. But I'll tell you
+how we are on the wrong tack. We shall never get these men to work
+in gangs on the road. Never. They have not been accustomed to be
+driven like droves of sheep."
+
+"But droves of sheep don't work on the road," said Mr. Townsend.
+
+"I know that, Mr. Townsend," continued Mr. M'Carthy. "I am quite
+well aware of that. But droves of sheep are driven, and these men
+won't bear it."
+
+"'Deed an' they won't," said Father Columb, having altogether laid
+aside his bland smile now that the time had come, as he thought, to
+speak up for the people. "They may bear it in England, but they
+won't here." And the sternness of his eye was almost invincible.
+
+"If they are so foolish, they must be taught better manners," said
+Mr. Townsend. "But you'll find they'll work just as other men do--
+look at the navvies."
+
+"And look at the navvies' wages," said Father Columb.
+
+"Besides, the navvies only go if they like it," said the parish
+priest.
+
+"And these men need not go unless they like it," said Mr. Somers.
+"Only with this proviso, that if they cannot manage for themselves
+they must fall into our way of managing for them."
+
+"What I say, is this," said Mr. O'Leary. "Let 'em manage for
+'emselves. God bless my sowl! Why, we shall be skinned alive if we
+have to pay all this money back to Government. If Government chooses
+to squander thousands in this way, Government should bear the brunt.
+That's what I say." Eventually, Government, that is, the whole
+nation, did bear the brunt. But it would not have been very wise to
+promise this at the time.
+
+"But we need hardly debate all that at the present moment," said Mr.
+Somers. "That matter of the roads has already been decided for us,
+and we can't alter it if we would."
+
+"Then we may as well shut up shop," said Mr. O'Leary.
+
+"It's all very aisy to talk in that way," said Father Columb; "but
+the Government, as you call it, can't make men work. It can't force
+eight millions of the finest pisantry on God's earth--," and Father
+Columb was, by degrees, pushing away the seat from under him, when
+he was cruelly and ruthlessly stopped by his own parish priest.
+
+"I beg your pardon for a moment, Creagh," said he; "but perhaps we
+are getting a little out of the track. What Mr. Somers says is very
+true. If these men won't work on the road--and I don't think they
+will--the responsibility is not on us. That matter has been decided
+for us."
+
+"Men will sooner work anywhere than starve," said Mr. Townsend.
+
+"Some men will," said Father Columb, with a great deal of meaning in
+his tone. What he intended to convey was this--that Protestants, no
+doubt, would do so, under the dominion of the flesh; but that Roman
+Catholics, being under the dominion of the Spirit, would perish
+first.
+
+"At any rate we must try," said Father M'Carthy.
+
+"Exactly," said Mr. Somers; "and what we have now to do is to see
+how we may best enable these workers to live on their wages, and how
+those others are to live, who, when all is done, will get no wages."
+
+"I think we had better turn shopkeepers ourselves, and open stores
+for them everywhere," said Herbert. "That is what we are doing
+already at Berryhill."
+
+"And import our own corn," said the parson.
+
+"And where are we to get the money?" said the priest.
+
+"And why are we to ruin the merchants?" said O'Leary, whose brother
+was in the flour-trade, in Cork.
+
+"And shut up all the small shopkeepers," said Father Columb, whose
+mother was established in that line in the neighbourhood of
+Castleisland.
+
+"We could not do it," said Somers. "The demand upon us would be so
+great, that we should certainly break down. And then where would we
+be?"
+
+"But for a time, Somers," pleaded Herbert.
+
+"For a time we may do something in that way, till other means
+present themselves. But we must refuse all out-door relief. They who
+cannot or do not bring money must go into the workhouses."
+
+"You will not get houses in county Cork sufficient to hold them,"
+said Father Bernard. And so the debate went on, not altogether
+without some sparks of wisdom, with many sparks also of eager
+benevolence, and some few passing clouds of fuliginous
+self-interest. And then lists were produced, with the names on them
+of all who were supposed to be in want--which were about to become,
+before long, lists of the whole population of the country. And at
+last it was decided among them, that in their district nothing
+should be absolutely given away, except to old women and
+widows,--which kind-hearted clause was speedily neutralised by
+women becoming widows while their husbands were still living; and it
+was decided also, that as long as their money lasted, the
+soup-kitchen at Berryhill should be kept open, and mill kept going,
+and the little shop maintained, so that to some extent a check might
+be maintained on the prices of the hucksters. And in this way they
+got through their work, not perhaps with the sagacity of Solomon,
+but as I have said, with an average amount of wisdom, as will always
+be the case when men set about their tasks with true hearts and
+honest minds.
+
+And then, when they parted, the two clergy-men of the parish shook
+hands with each other again, having perhaps less animosity against
+each other than they had ever felt before. There had been a joke or
+two over the table, at which both had laughed. The priest had wisely
+shown some deference to the parson, and the parson had immediately
+returned it, by referring some question to the priest. How often
+does it not happen that when we come across those whom we have hated
+and avoided all our lives, we find that they are not quite so bad as
+we had thought? That old gentleman of whom we wot is never so black
+as he has been painted.
+
+The work of the committee took them nearly the whole day, so that
+they did not separate till it was nearly dark. When they did so,
+Somers and Herbert Fitzgerald rode home together.
+
+"I always live in mortal fear," said Herbert, "that Townsend and the
+priests will break out into warfare."
+
+"As they haven't done it yet, they won't do it now," said Somers.
+"M'Carthy is not without sense, and Townsend, queer and intolerant
+as he is, has good feeling. If he and Father Columb were left
+together, I don't know what might happen. Mr. Prendergast is to be
+with you the day after to-morrow, is he not?"
+
+"So I understood my father to say."
+
+"Will you let me give you a bit of advice. Herbert?"
+
+"Certainly."
+
+"Then don't be in the house much on the day after he comes. He'll
+arrive, probably, to dinner."
+
+"I suppose he will."
+
+"If so, leave Castle Richmond after breakfast the next morning, and
+do not return till near dinner-time. It may be that your father will
+not wish you to be near him. Whatever this matter may be, you may be
+sure that you will know it before Mr. Prendergast leaves the
+country. I am very glad that he is coming."
+
+Herbert promised that he would take this advice, and he thought
+himself that among other things he might go over to inspect that
+Clady boiler, and of course call at Desmond Court on his way. And
+then, when they got near to Castle Richmond, they parted company,
+Mr. Somers stopping at his own place, and Herbert riding home alone.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX
+
+THE FRIEND OF THE FAMILY
+
+
+
+
+
+On the day named by Herbert, and only an hour before dinner, Mr.
+Prendergast did arrive at Castle Richmond. The Great Southern and
+Western Railway was not then open as far as Mallow, and the journey
+from Dublin was long and tedious. "I'll see him of course," said Sir
+Thomas to Lady Fitzgerald; "but I'll put off this business till
+to-morrow." This he said in a tone of distress and agony, which
+showed too plainly how he dreaded the work which he had before him.
+"But you'll come in to dinner," Lady Fitzgerald had said. "No," he
+answered, "not to day, love; I have to think about this." And he put
+his hand up to his head, as though this thinking about it had
+already been too much for him.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was a man over sixty years of age, being, in fact,
+considerably senior to Sir Thomas himself. But no one would have
+dreamed of calling Mr. Prendergast an old man. He was short of
+stature, well made, and in good proportion; he was wiry, strong, and
+almost robust. He walked as though in putting his foot to the earth
+he always wished to proclaim that he was afraid of no man and no
+thing. His hair was grizzled, and his whiskers were grey, and round
+about his mouth his face was wrinkled; but with him even these
+things hardly seemed to be signs of old age. He was said by many who
+knew him to be a stern man, and there was that in his face which
+seemed to warrant such a character. But he had also the reputation
+of being a very just man; and those who knew him best could tell
+tales of him which proved that his sternness was at any rate
+compatible with a wide benevolence. He was a man who himself had
+known but little mental suffering, and who owned no mental weakness;
+and it might be, therefore, that he was impatient of such weakness
+in others. To chance acquaintances his manners were not soft, or
+perhaps palatable; but to his old friends his very brusqueness was
+pleasing. He was a bachelor, well off in the world, and, to a
+certain extent, fond of society. He was a solicitor by profession,
+having his office somewhere in the purlieus of Lincoln's Inn, and
+living in an old-fashioned house not far distant from that classic
+spot. I have said that he owned no mental weakness. When I say
+further that he was slightly afflicted with personal vanity, and
+thought a good deal about the set of his hair, the shape of his
+coat, the fit of his boots, the whiteness of his hands, and the
+external trim of his umbrella, perhaps I may be considered to have
+contradicted myself. But such was the case. He was a handsome man
+too, with clear, bright, gray eyes, a well-defined nose, and
+expressive mouth--of which the lips, however, were somewhat too
+thin. No man with thin lips ever seems to me to be genially human at
+all points.
+
+Such was Mr. Prendergast; and my readers will, I trust, feel for Sir
+Thomas, and pity him, in that he was about to place his wounds in
+the hands of so ruthless a surgeon. But a surgeon, to be of use,
+should be ruthless in one sense. He should have the power of cutting
+and cauterizing, of phlebotomy and bone-handling without effect on
+his own nerves. This power Mr. Prendergast possessed, and therefore
+it may be said that Sir Thomas had chosen his surgeon judiciously.
+None of the Castle Richmond family, except Sir Thomas himself, had
+ever seen this gentleman, nor had Sir Thomas often come across him
+of late years. But he was what we in England call an old family
+friend; and I doubt whether we in England have any more valuable
+English characteristic than that of having old family friends. Old
+family feuds are not common with us now-a-days--not so common as
+with some other people. Sons who now hated their father's enemies
+would have but a bad chance before a commission of lunacy; but an
+old family friend is supposed to stick to one from generation to
+generation.
+
+On his arrival at Castle Richmond he was taken in to Sir Thomas
+before dinner. "You find me but in a poor state," said Sir Thomas,
+shaking in his fear of what was before him, as the poor wretch does
+before an iron-wristed dentist who is about to operate. "You will be
+better soon," Mr. Prendergast had said, as a man always does say
+under such circumstances. What other remark was possible to him?
+"Sir Thomas thinks that he had better not trouble you with business
+to-night," said Lady Fitzgerald. To this also Mr. Prendergast agreed
+willingly. "We shall both of us be fresher to-morrow, after
+breakfast," he remarked, as if any time made any difference to
+him,--as though he were not always fresh, and ready for any work
+that might turn up.
+
+That evening was not passed very pleasantly by the family at Castle
+Richmond. To all of them Mr. Prendergast was absolutely a stranger,
+and was hardly the man to ingratiate himself with strangers at the
+first interview. And then, too, they were all somewhat afraid of
+him. He had come down thither on some business which was to them
+altogether mysterious, and, as far as they knew, he, and he alone,
+was to be intrusted with the mystery. He of course said nothing to
+them on the subject, but he looked in their eyes as though he were
+conscious of being replete with secret importance; and on this very
+account they were afraid of him. And then poor Lady Fitzgerald,
+though she bore up against the weight of her misery better than did
+her husband, was herself very wretched. She could not bring herself
+to believe that all this would end in nothing; that Mr. Prendergast
+would put everything right, and that after his departure they would
+go on as happily as ever. This was the doctrine of the younger part
+of the family, who would not think that anything was radically
+wrong. But Lady Fitzgerald had always at her heart the memory of her
+early marriage troubles, and she feared greatly, though she feared
+she knew not what.
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald and Aunt Letty did endeavour to keep up some
+conversation with Mr. Prendergast; and the Irish famine was, of
+course, the subject. But this did not go on pleasantly. Mr.
+Prendergast was desirous of information; but the statements which
+were made to him one moment by young Fitzgerald were contradicted in
+the next by his aunt. He would declare that the better educated of
+the Roman Catholics were prepared to do their duty by their country,
+whereas Aunt Letty would consider herself bound both by party
+feeling and religious duty, to prove that the Roman Catholics were
+bad in everything.
+
+"Oh, Herbert, to hear you say so!" she exclaimed at one time, "it
+makes me tremble in my shoes. It is dreadful to think that those
+people should have got such a hold over you."
+
+"I really think that the Roman Catholic priests are liberal in their
+ideas and moral in their conduct." This was the speech which had
+made Aunt Letty tremble in her shoes, and it may, therefore, be
+conceived that Mr. Prendergast did not find himself able to form any
+firm opinion from the statements then made to him. Instead of doing
+so, he set them both down as "Wild Irish," whom it would be insane
+to trust, and of whom it was absurd to make inquiries. It may,
+however, be possibly the case that Mr. Prendergast himself had his
+own prejudices as well as Aunt Letty and Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+On the following morning they were still more mute at breakfast. The
+time was coming in which Mr. Prendergast was to go to work and even
+he, gifted though he was with iron nerves, began to feel somewhat
+unpleasantly the nature of the task which he had undertaken. Lady
+Fitzgerald did not appear at all. Indeed during the whole of
+breakfast-time and up to the moment at which Mr. Prendergast was
+summoned, she was sitting with her husband, holding his hand in
+hers, and looking tenderly but painfully into his face. She so sat
+with him for above an hour, but he spoke to her no word of this
+revelation he was about to make. Herbert and the girls, and even
+Aunt Letty, sat solemn and silent, as though it was known by them
+all that something dreadful was to be said and done. At last
+Herbert, who had left the room, returned to it. "My father will see
+you now, Mr. Prendergast, if you will step up to him," said he; and
+then he ran to his mother and told her that he should leave the
+house till dinner-time.
+
+"But if he sends for you, Herbert, should you not be in the way?"
+
+"It is more likely that he should send for you; and, were I to
+remain here, I should be going into his room when he did not want
+me." And then he mounted his horse and rode off.
+
+Mr. Prendergast, with serious air and slow steps, and solemn resolve
+to do what he had to do at any rate with justice, walked away from
+the dining-room to the baronet's study. The task of an old friend is
+not always a pleasant one, and Mr. Prendergast felt that it was not
+so at the present moment. "Be gentle with him," said Aunt Letty,
+catching hold of his arm as he went through the passage. He merely
+moved his head twice, in token of assent, and then passed on into
+the room.
+
+The reader will have learnt by this time, with tolerable accuracy,
+what was the nature of the revelation which Sir Thomas was called
+upon to make, and he will be tolerably certain as to the advice
+which Mr. Prendergast, as an honest man, would give. In that respect
+there was no difficulty. The laws of meum and tuum are sufficiently
+clear if a man will open his eyes to look at them. In this case they
+were altogether clear. These broad acres of Castle Richmond did
+belong to Sir Thomas--for his life. But after his death they could
+not belong to his son Herbert. It was a matter which admitted of no
+doubt. No question as to whether the Molletts would or would not
+hold their tongue could bear upon it in the least. Justice in this
+case must be done, even though the heavens should fall. It was sad
+and piteous. Stern and hard as was the man who pronounced this doom,
+nevertheless the salt tear collected in his eyes and blinded him as
+he looked upon the anguish which his judgment had occasioned.
+
+Yes, Herbert must be told that he in the world was nobody; that he
+must earn his bread, and set about doing so right soon. Who could
+say that his father's life was worth a twelve-month's purchase? He
+must be told that he was nobody in the world, and instructed also to
+tell her whom he loved, an Earl's daughter, the same tidings; that
+he was nobody, that he would come to possess no property, and that
+in the law's eyes did not possess even a name. How would his young
+heart suffice for the endurance of so terrible a calamity? And those
+pretty girls, so softly brought up--so tenderly nurtured; it must be
+explained to them too that they must no longer be proud of their
+father's lineage and their mother's fame. And that other Fitzgerald
+must be summoned and told of all this; he on whom they had looked
+down, whom the young heir had robbed of his love, whom they had cast
+out from among them as unworthy. Notice must be sent to him that he
+was the heir to Castle Richmond, that he would reign as the future
+baronet in those gracious chambers. It was he who could now make a
+great county lady of the daughter of the countess.
+
+"It will be very soon, very soon," sobbed forth the poor victim. And
+indeed, to look at him one might say that it would be soon. There
+were moments when Mr. Prendergast hardly thought that he would live
+through that frightful day.
+
+But all of which we have yet spoken hardly operated upon the
+baronet's mind in creating that stupor of sorrow which now weighed
+him to the earth. It was none of these things that utterly broke him
+down and crushed him like a mangled reed. He had hardly mind left to
+remember his children. It was for the wife of his bosom that he
+sorrowed.
+
+The wife of his bosom! He persisted in so calling her through the
+whole interview, and, even in his weakness, obliged the strong man
+before him so to name her also. She was his wife before God, and
+should be his to the end. Ah! for how short a time was that! "Is she
+to leave me?" he once said, turning to his friend, with his hands
+clasped together, praying that some mercy might be shown to his
+wretchedness. "Is she to leave me?" he repeated, and then sank on
+his knees upon the floor.
+
+And how was Mr. Prendergast to answer this question? How was he to
+decide whether or no this man and woman might still live together as
+husband and wife? Oh, my reader, think of it if you can, and put
+yourself for a moment in the place of that old family friend! "Tell
+me, tell me; is she to leave me?" repeated the poor victim of all
+this misery.
+
+The sternness and justice of the man at last gave way. "No," said
+he, "that cannot, I should think, be necessary. They cannot demand
+that." "But you won't desert me?" said Sir Thomas, when this crumb
+of comfort was handed to him. And he remembered as he spoke, the
+bloodshot eyes of the miscreant who had dared to tell him that the
+wife of his bosom might be legally torn from him by the hands of
+another man. "You won't desert me?" said Sir Thomas; meaning by
+that, to bind his friend to an obligation that, at any rate, his
+wife should not be taken from him.
+
+"No," said Mr. Prendergast, "I will not desert you; certainly not
+that; certainly not that." Just then it was in his heart to promise
+almost anything that he was asked. Who could have refused such
+solace as this to a man so terribly overburthened?
+
+But there was another point of view at which Mr. Prendergast had
+looked from the commencement, but at which he could not get Sir
+Thomas to look at all. It certainly was necessary that the whole
+truth in this matter should be made known and declared openly. This
+fair inheritance must go to the right owner and not to the wrong.
+Though the affliction on Sir Thomas was very heavy, and would be
+equally so on all the family, he would not on that account, for the
+sake of saving him and them from that affliction, be justified in
+robbing another person of what was legally and actually that other
+person's property. It was a matter of astonishment to Mr.
+Prendergast that a conscientious man, as Sir Thomas certainly was,
+should have been able to look at the matter in any other light; that
+he should ever have brought himself to have dealings in the matter
+with Mr. Mollett. Justice in the case was clear, and the truth must
+be declared. But then they must take good care to find out
+absolutely what the truth was. Having heard all that Sir Thomas had
+to say, and having sifted all that he did hear, Mr. Prendergast
+thoroughly believed, in his heart of hearts, that that wretched
+miscreant was the actual and true husband of the poor lady whom he
+would have to see. But it was necessary that this should be proved.
+Castle Richmond for the family, and all earthly peace of mind for
+that unfortunate lady and gentleman, were not to be given up on the
+bare word of a scheming scoundrel, for whom no crime would be too
+black, and no cruelty too monstrous. The proofs must be looked into
+before anything was done, and they must be looked into before
+anything was said--to Lady Fitzgerald. We surely may give her that
+name as yet.
+
+But then, how were they to get at the proofs--at the proofs one way
+or the other? That Mollett himself had his marriage certificate Sir
+Thomas declared. That evidence had been brought home to his own mind
+of the identity of the man--though what was the nature of that
+evidence he could not now describe--as to that he was quite
+explicit. Indeed, as I have said above, he almost refused to
+consider the question as admitting of a doubt. That Mollett was the
+man to whom his wife had been married he thoroughly believed; and,
+to tell the truth, Mr. Prendergast was afraid to urge him to look
+for much comfort in this direction. The whole manner of the man,
+Mollett, had been such as to show that he himself was sure of his
+ground. Mr. Prendergast could hardly doubt that he was the man,
+although he felt himself bound to remark that nothing should be said
+to Lady Fitzgerald till inquiry had been made. Mr. Mollett himself
+would be at Castle Richmond on the next day but one, in accordance
+with the appointment made by himself; and, if necessary, he could be
+kept in custody till he had been identified as being the man, or as
+not being the man, who had married Miss Wainwright.
+
+"There is nobody living with you now who knew Lady Fitzgerald at
+----?" asked Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"Yes," said Sir Thomas, "there is one maid servant." And then he
+explained how Mrs. Jones had lived with his wife before her first
+marriage, during those few months in which she had been called Mrs.
+Talbot, and from that day even up to the present hour.
+
+"Then she must have known this man," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+But Sir Thomas was not in a frame of mind at all suited to the
+sifting of evidence. He did not care to say anything about Mrs.
+Jones; he got no crumb of comfort out of that view of the matter.
+Things had come out, unwittingly for the most part, in his
+conversations with Mollett, which made him quite certain as to the
+truth of the main part of the story. All those Dorsetshire
+localities were well known to the man, the bearings of the house,
+the circumstances of Mr. Wainwright's parsonage, the whole history
+of those months; so that on this subject Sir Thomas had no doubt;
+and we may as well know at once that there was no room for doubt.
+Our friend of the Kanturk Hotel, South Main Street, Cork, was the
+man who, thirty years before, had married the child-daughter of the
+Dorsetshire parson.
+
+Mr. Prendergast, however, stood awhile before the fire balancing the
+evidence. "The woman must have known him," he said to himself, "and
+surely she could tell us whether he be like the man. And Lady
+Fitzgerald herself would know; but then, who would have the hardness
+of heart to ask Lady Fitzgerald to confront that man?"
+
+He remained with Sir Thomas that day for hours. The long winter
+evening had begun to make itself felt by its increasing gloom before
+he left him. Wine and biscuits were sent in to them, but neither of
+them even noticed the man who brought them. Twice in the day,
+however, Mr. Prendergast gave the baronet a glass of sherry, which
+the latter swallowed unconsciously; and then, at about four, the
+lawyer prepared to take his leave. "I will see you early to-morrow,"
+said he, "immediately after breakfast."
+
+"You are going then?" said Sir Thomas, who greatly dreaded being
+left alone.
+
+"Not away, you know," said Mr. Prendergast. "I am not going to leave
+the house."
+
+"No," said Sir Thomas; "no, of course not, "but--" and then he
+paused.
+
+"Eh!" said Mr. Prendergast, "you were saying something."
+
+"They will be coming in to me now," said Sir Thomas, wailing like a
+child; "now, when you are gone; and what am I to say to them?"
+
+"I would say nothing at present; nothing to-day."
+
+"And my wife?" he asked, again. Through this interview he studiously
+called her his wife. "Is--is she to know it?"
+
+"When we are assured that this man's story is true, Sir Thomas, she
+must know it. That will probably be very soon,--in a day or two.
+Till then I think you had better tell her nothing."
+
+"And what shall I say to her?"
+
+"Say nothing. I think it probable that she will not ask any
+questions. If she does, tell her that the business between you and
+me is not yet over. I will tell your son that at present he had
+better not speak to you on the subject of my visit here." And then
+he again took the hand of the unfortunate gentleman, and having
+pressed it with more tenderness than seemed to belong to him, he
+left the room.
+
+He left the room, and hurried into the hall and out of the house;
+but as he did so he could see that he was watched by Lady
+Fitzgerald. She was on the alert to go to her husband as soon as she
+should know that he was alone. Of what then took place between those
+two we need say nothing, but will wander forth for a while with Mr.
+Prendergast into the wide-spreading park.
+
+Mr. Prendergast had been used to hard work all his life, but he had
+never undergone a day of severer toil than that through which he had
+just passed. Nor was it yet over. He had laid it down in a broad way
+as his opinion that the whole truth in this matter should be
+declared to the world, let the consequences be what they might; and
+to this opinion Sir Thomas had acceded without a word of
+expostulation. But in this was by no means included all that portion
+of the burden which now fell upon Mr. Prendergast's shoulders. It
+would be for him to look into the evidence, and then it would be for
+him also--heavy and worst task of all--to break the matter to Lady
+Fitzgerald.
+
+As he sauntered out into the park, to wander about for half an hour
+in the dusk of the evening, his head was throbbing with pain. The
+family friend in this instance had certainly been severely taxed in
+the exercise of his friendship. And what was he to do next? How was
+he to conduct himself that evening in the family circle, knowing, as
+he so well did, that his coming there was to bring destruction upon
+them all? "Be tender to him," Aunt Letty had said, little knowing
+how great a call there would be on his tenderness of heart, and how
+little scope for any tenderness of purpose.
+
+And was it absolutely necessary that that blow should fall in all
+its severity? He asked himself this question over and over again,
+and always had to acknowledge that it was necessary. There could be
+no possible mitigation. The son must be told that he was no son--no
+son in the eye of the law; the wife must be told that she was no
+wife, and the distant relative must be made acquainted with his
+golden prospects. The position of Herbert and Clara, and of their
+promised marriage, had been explained to him,--and all that too
+must be shivered into fragments. How was it possible that the
+penniless daughter of an earl should give herself in marriage to a
+youth, who was not only penniless also, but illegitimate and without
+a profession? Look at it in which way he would, it was all misery
+and ruin, and it had fallen upon him to pronounce the doom!
+
+He could not himself believe that there was any doubt as to the
+general truth of Mollett's statement. He would of course inquire. He
+would hear what the man had to say and see what he had to adduce. He
+would also examine that old servant, and, if necessary--and if
+possible also--he would induce Lady Fitzgerald to see the man. But
+he did feel convinced that on this point there was no doubt. And
+then he lifted up his hands in astonishment at the folly which had
+been committed by a marriage under such circumstances--as wise men
+will do in the decline of years, when young people in the heyday of
+youth have not been wise. "If they had waited for a term of years,"
+he said, "and if he then had not presented himself!" A term of
+years, such as Jacob served for Rachel, seems so light an affair to
+old bachelors looking back at the loves of their young friends.
+
+And so he walked about in the dusk by no means a happy man, nor in
+any way satisfied with the work which was still before him. How was
+he to face Lady Fitzgerald, or tell her of her fate? In what words
+must he describe to Herbert Fitzgerald the position which in future
+he must fill? The past had been dreadful to him, and the future
+would be no less so, in spite of his character as a hard, stern man.
+
+When he returned to the house he met young Fitzgerald in the hall.
+"Have you been to your father?" he asked immediately. Herbert, in a
+low voice, and with a saddened face, said that he had just come from
+his father's room, but Mr. Prendergast at once knew that nothing of
+the truth had been told to him. "You found him very weak," said Mr.
+Prendergast. "Oh, very weak," said Herbert. "More than weak, utterly
+prostrate. He was lying on the sofa almost unable to speak. My
+mother was with him, and is still there."
+
+"And she?" He was painfully anxious to know whether Sir Thomas had
+been weak enough--or strong enough--to tell his wife any of the
+story which that morning had been told to him.
+
+"She is doing what she can to comfort him," said Herbert; "but it is
+very hard for her to be left so utterly in the dark."
+
+Mr. Prendergast was passing on to his room, but at the foot of the
+stairs Herbert stopped him again, going up the stairs with him, and
+almost whispering into his ear--
+
+"I trust, Mr. Prendergast," said he, "that things are not to go on
+in this way."
+
+"No, no," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"Because it is unbearable--unbearable for my mother and for me, and
+for us all. My mother thinks that some terrible thing has happened
+to the property; but if so, why should I not be told?"
+
+"Of anything that really has happened, or does happen, you will be
+told."
+
+"I don't know whether you are aware of it, Mr. Prendergast, but I am
+engaged to be married. And I have been given to understand--that
+is, I thought that this might take place very soon. My mother seems
+to think that your coming here may--may defer it. If so, I think I
+have a right to expect that something shall be told to me."
+
+"Certainly you have a right, my dear young friend. But, Mr.
+Fitzgerald, for your own sake, for all our sakes, wait patiently for
+a few hours."
+
+"I have waited patiently."
+
+"Yes, I know it. You have behaved admirably. But I cannot speak to
+you now. This time the day after to-morrow, I will tell you
+everything that I know. But do not speak of this to your mother. I
+make this promise only to you." And then he passed on into his bed-
+room.
+
+With this Herbert was obliged to be content. That evening he again
+saw his father and mother, but he told them nothing of what had
+passed between him and Mr. Prendergast. Lady Fitzgerald remained in
+the study with Sir Thomas the whole evening, nay, almost the whole
+night, and the slow hours as they passed there were very dreadful.
+No one came to table but Aunt Letty, Mr. Prendergast, and Herbert,
+and between them hardly a word was spoken. The poor girls had found
+themselves utterly unable to appear. They were dissolved in tears,
+and crouching over the fire in their own room. And the moment that
+Aunt Letty left the table Mr. Prendergast arose also. He was
+suffering, he said, cruelly from headache, and would ask permission
+to go to his chamber. It would have been impossible for him to have
+sat there pretending to sip his wine with Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+After this Herbert again went to his father, and then, in the gloom
+of the evening, he found Mr. Somers in the office, a little
+magistrate's room, that was used both by him and by Sir Thomas. But
+nothing passed between them. Herbert had nothing to tell. And then
+at about nine he also went up to his bedroom. A more melancholy day
+than that had never shed its gloom upon Castle Richmond.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX
+
+TWO WITNESSES
+
+
+
+
+
+Mr. Prendergast had given himself two days to do all that was to be
+done, before he told Herbert Fitzgerald the whole of the family
+history. He had promised that he would then let him know all that
+there was to be known; and he had done so advisedly, considering
+that it would be manifestly unjust to leave him in the dark an hour
+longer than was absolutely necessary. To expect that Sir Thomas
+himself should, with his own breath and his own words, make the
+revelation either to his son or to his wife, was to expect a
+manifest impossibility. He would, altogether, have sank under such
+an effort, as he had already sank under the effort of telling it to
+Mr. Prendergast; nor could it be left to the judgment of Sir Thomas
+to say when the story should be told. He had now absolutely
+abandoned all judgment in the matter. He had placed himself in the
+hands of a friend, and he now expected that that friend should do
+all that there was to be done. Mr. Prendergast had therefore felt
+himself justified in making this promise.
+
+But how was he to set about the necessary intervening work, and how
+pass the intervening hours? It had already been decided that Mr.
+Abraham Mollett, when he called, should be shown, as usual, into the
+study, but that he should there find himself confronted, not with
+Sir Thomas, but with Mr. Prendergast. But there was some doubt
+whether or no Mr. Mollett would come. It might be that he had means
+of ascertaining what strangers arrived at Castle Richmond; and it
+might be that he would, under the present circumstances, think it
+expedient to stay away. This visit, however, was not to take place
+till the second day after that on which Mr. Prendergast had heard
+the story; and, in the meantime, he had that examination of Mrs.
+Jones to arrange and conduct.
+
+The breakfast was again very sad. The girls suggested to their
+brother that he and Mr. Prendergast should sit together by
+themselves in a small breakfast parlour, but to this he would not
+assent. Nothing could be more difficult or embarrassing than a
+conversation between himself and that gentleman, and he moreover was
+unwilling to let it be thought in the household that affairs were
+going utterly wrong in the family. On this matter he need hardly
+have disturbed himself, for the household was fully convinced that
+things were going very wrong. Maid-servants and men-servants can
+read the meaning of heavy brows and sad faces, of long meetings and
+whispered consultations, as well as their betters. The two girls,
+therefore, and Aunt Letty, appeared at the breakfast-table, but it
+was as though so many ghosts had assembled round the urn.
+
+Immediately after breakfast, Mr. Prendergast applied to Aunt Letty.
+"Miss Fitzgerald," said he, "I think you have an old servant of the
+name of Jones living here."
+
+"Yes, sure," said Aunt Letty. "She was living with my sister-in-law
+before her marriage."
+
+"Exactly,--and ever since too, I believe," said Mr. Prendergast,
+with a lawyer's instinctive desire to divert suspicion from the true
+point.
+
+"Oh yes, always; Mrs. Jones is quite one of ourselves."
+
+"Then would you do me the favour to beg Mrs. Jones to oblige me with
+her company for half an hour or so? There is an excellent fire in my
+room, and perhaps Mrs. Jones would not object to step there."
+
+Aunt Letty promised that Mrs. Jones should be sent, merely
+suggesting the breakfast-parlour, instead of the bed-room; and to
+the breakfast-parlour Mr. Prendergast at once betook himself, "What
+can she know about the London property, or about the Irish
+property?" thought Aunt Letty, to herself; and then it occurred to
+her that, perhaps, all these troubles arose from some source
+altogether distinct from the property.
+
+In about a quarter of an hour, a knock came to the breakfast-parlour
+door, and Mrs. Jones, having been duly summoned, entered the room
+with a very clean cap and apron, and with a very low curtsey. "Good
+morning, Mrs. Jones," said Mr. Prendergast; "pray take a seat;" and
+he pointed to an armchair that was comfortably placed near the fire,
+on the further side of the hearth-rug. Mrs. Jones sat herself down,
+crossed her hands on her lap, and looked the very personification of
+meek obedience.
+
+And yet there was something about her which seemed to justify the
+soubriquet of duchess, which the girls had given to her. She had a
+certain grandeur about her cap, and a majestical set about the skirt
+of her dress, and a rigour in the lines of her mouth, which
+indicated a habit of command, and a confidence in her own dignity,
+which might be supposed to be the very clearest attribute of
+duchessdom.
+
+"You have been in this family a long time. I am told, Mrs. Jones,"
+said Mr. Prendergast, using his pleasantest voice.
+
+"A very long time indeed," said Mrs. Jones.
+
+"And in a very confidential situation, too. I am told by Sir Thomas
+that pretty nearly the whole management of the house is left in your
+hands?"
+
+"Sir Thomas is very kind, sir; Sir Thomas always was very
+kind,--poor gentleman!"
+
+"Poor gentleman, indeed! you may well say that, Mrs. Jones. This
+family is in great affliction; you are no doubt aware of that." And
+Mr. Prendergast as he spoke got up, went to the door, and saw that
+it was firmly closed.
+
+Mrs. Jones acknowledged that she was aware of it. "It was
+impossible," she said, "for servants to shut their eyes to things,
+if they tried ever so."
+
+"Of course, of course," said Mr. Prendergast; "and particularly for
+a person so attached to them all as you are."
+
+"Well, Mr. Pendrergrass, I am attached to them, certainly. I have
+seed 'em all born, sir--that is, the young ladies and Mr. Herbert.
+And as for her ladyship, I didn't see her born, in course, for we're
+both of an age. But it comes much to the same thing, like."
+
+"Exactly, exactly; you are quite one of themselves, as Sir Thomas's
+sister said to me just now. 'Mrs. Jones is quite one of ourselves.'
+Those were her very words."
+
+"I'm sure I'm much obliged to Miss Letty."
+
+"Well, as I was saying, a great sorrow has come upon them all, Mrs.
+Jones. Now, will you tell me this--do you know what it is? Can you
+guess at all? Do the servants know, down-stairs?"
+
+"I'd rather not be guessing on any such matters, Mr. Pendrergrass.
+And as for them, if they were impudent enough for the like, they'd
+never dare to tell me. Them Irish servants is very impudent betimes,
+only they're good at the heart too, and there isn't one'd hurt a dog
+belonging to the family."
+
+"I am sure they would not," said Mr. Prendergast. "But you yourself,
+you don't know what this trouble is?"
+
+"Not a know," said Mrs. Jones, looking down and smoothing her apron.
+
+"Well, now. Of course you understand, Mrs. Jones--and I must explain
+this to you to account for my questions. Of course you understand
+that I am here as Sir Thomas's friend, to set certain matters right
+for him if I can."
+
+"I supposed as much as that, if you please, sir."
+
+"And any questions that I may ask you, I ask altogether on his
+behalf--on his behalf and on that of his wife, Lady Fitzgerald. I
+tell you, that you may have no scruples as to answering me."
+
+"Oh, sir, I have no scruples as to that. But of course, sir, in
+anything I say I must be guided by--by--"
+
+"By your own judgment, you were going to say."
+
+"Yes, sir; begging pardon for mentioning such a thing to the likes
+of you, sir."
+
+"Quite right; quite right. Everybody should use their own judgment
+in everything they do or say, more or less. But now, Mrs. Jones, I
+want to know this: you remember her ladyship's first marriage, I
+dare say."
+
+"Yes, sir, I remember it," said Mrs. Jones, shaking her head.
+
+"It was a sad affair, wasn't it? I remember it well, though I was
+very young then. So were you too, Mrs. Jones."
+
+"Young enough, surely, sir; and foolish enough too. We were the most
+of us that, then, sir."
+
+"True, true; so we were. But you remember the man, don't you--her
+ladyship's husband? Mr. Talbot, he called himself." And Mr.
+Prendergast took some trouble to look as though he did not at all
+wish to frighten her.
+
+"Yes, I do remember him." This she said after a considerable pause.
+"But it is a very long time ago, you know, Mr. Pendrergrass."
+
+"A very long time. But I am sure you do remember. You lived in the
+house, you know, for some months."
+
+"Yes, I did. He was my master for three months, or thereabouts; and
+to tell the truth, I never got my wages for those three months yet.
+But that's neither here nor there."
+
+"Do you believe now, Mrs. Jones, that that Mr. Talbot is still
+alive?" He asked the question in a very soft voice, and endeavoured
+not to startle her by his look as he did so. But it was necessary to
+his purpose that he should keep his eye upon her. Half the answer to
+his question was to be conveyed by the effect on the muscles of her
+face which that question would produce. She might perhaps command
+her voice to tell a falsehood, but be unable to command her face to
+support it.
+
+"Believe what, sir?" said she, and the lawyer could immediately
+perceive that she did believe and probably knew that that man who
+had called himself Talbot was still alive.
+
+"Do you believe, Mrs. Jones, that he is alive--her ladyship's
+former husband, you know?"
+
+The question was so terrible in its nature, that Mrs. Jones
+absolutely shook under it. Did she think that that man was still
+alive? Why, if she thought that what was she to think of her
+ladyship? It was in that manner that she would have answered the
+question, had she known how; but she did not know; she had therefore
+to look about her for some other words which might be equally
+evasive. Those which she selected served her turn just as well.
+"Lord bless you, sir!" she said. It was not that the words were
+expressive, but the tone was decidedly so. It was as though she
+said, "How can that man be alive, who has been dead these twenty
+years and more?" But nevertheless, she was giving evidence all the
+time against the cause of her poor mistress.
+
+"You think, then, that he is dead?"
+
+"Dead, sir! Oh, laws! why shouldn't he be dead?" And then there was
+a pause between them for a couple of minutes.
+
+"Mrs. Jones," said Mr. Prendergast, when he had well considered the
+matter, "my belief is that your only object and wish is to do good
+to your master and mistress."
+
+"Surely, sir, surely; it would be my bounden duty to do them good,
+if I knew how."
+
+"I will tell you how. Speak out to me the whole truth openly and
+freely. I am here as the friend of Sir Thomas and of her ladyship.
+He has sent to me that I may advise him what to do in a great
+trouble that has befallen him, and I cannot give him good advice
+till I know the truth."
+
+"What good could it do him, poor gentleman, to know that that man is
+alive?"
+
+"It will do him good to know the truth; to know whether he be alive
+or no. Until he knows that he cannot act properly."
+
+"Poor gentleman! poor gentleman!" said Mrs. Jones, putting her
+handkerchief up to her eyes.
+
+"If you have any information in this matter--and I think you have,
+Mrs. Jones--or even any suspicion, it is your duty to tell me."
+
+"Well, sir, I'm sure I don't say against that. You are Sir Thomas's
+friend to be sure, and no doubt you know best. And I'm a poor
+ignorant woman. But to speak candidly, sir, I don't feel myself free
+to talk on this matter. I haven't never made nor marred since I've
+been in this family, not in such matters as them. What I've seed,
+I've kep' to myself, and when I've had my suspecs, as a woman can't
+but have 'em, I've kep' them to myself also. And saving your
+presence, sir, and meaning no offence to a gentleman like you," and
+here she got up from her chair and made another curtsey, "I think
+I'd liefer hold my tongue than say anything more on this matter."
+And then she remained standing as though she expected permission to
+retire.
+
+But there was still another pause, and Mr. Pendergast sat looking at
+the fire. "Don't you know, ma'am," at last he said, with almost an
+angry voice, "that the man was here, in this house, last week?" And
+now he turned round at her and looked her full in the face. He did
+not, however, know Mrs. Jones. It might be difficult to coax her
+into free communication, but it was altogether out of his power to
+frighten her into it.
+
+"What I knows, sir, I knows," said she, "and what I don't know, I
+don't know. And if you please, sir, Lady Fitzgerald--she's my
+missus; and if I'm to be said anything more to about this here
+matter, why, I'd choose that her ladyship should be by." And then
+she made a little motion as though to walk towards the door, but Mr.
+Prendergast managed to stop her.
+
+"But we want to spare Lady Fitzgerald, if we can--at any rate, for a
+while," said he. "You would not wish to bring more sorrow upon her,
+would you?"
+
+"God forbid, Mr. Pendrergrass; and if I could take the sorrow from
+her heart, I would willingly, and bear it myself to the grave; for
+her ladyship has been a good lady to me. But no good never did come,
+and never will, of servants talking of their missusses. And so if
+you please, sir, I'll make bold to"--and again she made an attempt
+to reach the door.
+
+But Mr. Prendergast was not yet persuaded that he could not get from
+the good old woman the information that he wanted, and he was
+persuaded that she had the information if only she could be
+prevailed upon to impart it. So he again stopped her, though on this
+occasion she made some slight attempt to pass him by as she did so.
+"I don't think," said she, "that there will be much use in my
+staying here longer."
+
+"Wait half a minute, Mrs. Jones, just half a minute. If I could only
+make you understand how we are all circumstanced here. And I tell
+you what; though you will trust me with nothing, I will trust you
+with everything."
+
+"I don't want no trust, sir; not about all this."
+
+"But listen to me. Sir Thomas has reason to believe--nay, he feels
+quite sure--that this man is alive."
+
+"Poor gentleman! poor gentleman!"
+
+"And has been here in this house two or three times within the last
+month. Sir Thomas is full sure of this. Now, can you tell me whether
+the man who did come was this Talbot, or was not? If you can answer
+that positively, either one way or the other, you will do a service
+to the whole family,--which shall not go unrewarded."
+
+"I don't want no reward sir. Ask me to tattle of them for rewards,
+after thirty years!" And she put her apron up to her eyes.
+
+"Well, then, for the good of the family. Can you say positively that
+the man who came here to your master was Talbot, or that he was
+not?"
+
+"Indeed then, sir, I can't say anything positively, nor for that
+matter, not impositively either." And then she shut herself up
+doggedly, and sat with compressed lips, determined to resist all the
+lawyer's arts.
+
+Mr. Prendergast did not immediately give up the game, but he failed
+in learning from her any more than what she had already told him. He
+felt confident that she did know the secret of this man's existence
+and presence in the south of Ireland, but he was forced to satisfy
+himself with that conviction. So he let her go, giving her his hand
+as she went in token of respect, and receiving her demure curtsey
+with his kindest smile. "It may be," thought he to himself, "that I
+have not done with her yet."
+
+And then he passed another tedious day,--a day that was terribly
+tedious to them all. He paid a visit to Sir Thomas; but as that
+arrangement about Mollett's visit had been made between them, it was
+not necessary that anything should be done or said about the
+business on hand. It was understood that further action was to be
+stayed till that visit was over, and therefore for the present he
+had nothing to say to Sir Thomas. He did not see Lady Fitzgerald
+throughout the whole day, and it appeared to him, not unnaturally,
+that she purposely kept out of his way, anticipating evil from his
+coming. He took a walk with Herbert and Mr. Somers, and was driven
+as far as the soup-kitchen and mill at Berry Hill, inquiring into
+the state of the poor, or rather pretending to inquire. It was a
+pretence with them all, for at the present moment their minds were
+intent on other things. And then there was that terrible dinner,
+that mockery of a meal, at which the three ladies were constrained
+to appear, but at which they found it impossible to eat or to speak.
+Mr. Somers had been asked to join the party, so that the scene after
+dinner might be less painful; but even he felt that he could not
+talk as was his ordinary wont. Horrible suspicions of the truth had
+gradually come upon him; and with a suspicion of such a truth--of
+such a tragedy in the very household--how could he, or how could any
+one hold a conversation? and then at about half-past nine, Mr.
+Prendergast was again in his bed-room.
+
+On the next morning he was early with Sir Thomas, persuading him to
+relinquish altogether the use of his study for that day. On that
+evening they were to have another interview there, in which Mr.
+Prendergast was to tell his friend the result of what had been done.
+And then he had to arrange certain manoeuvring with the servants in
+which he was forced to obtain the assistance of Herbert. Mollett was
+to be introduced into the study immediately on his arrival, and this
+was to be done in such a manner that Mrs. Jones might assuredly be
+ignorant of his arrival. On this duty our old friend Richard was
+employed, and it was contrived that Mrs. Jones should be kept
+upstairs with her mistress. All this was difficult enough, but he
+could not explain even to Herbert the reason why such scheming was
+necessary. Herbert, however, obeyed in silence, knowing that
+something dreadful was about to fall on them.
+
+Immediately after breakfast Mr. Prendergast betook himself to the
+study, and there remained with his London newspaper in his hand. A
+dozen times he began a leading article, in which the law was laid
+down with great perspicuity and certainty as to the present state of
+Ireland; but had the writer been treating of the Sandwich Islands he
+could not have attracted less of his attention. He found it
+impossible to read. On that evening he would have to reveal to
+Herbert Fitzgerald what was to be his fate!
+
+Matthew Mollett at his last interview with Sir Thomas had promised
+to call on this day, and had been counting the days till that one
+should arrive on which he might keep his promise. He was terribly in
+want of cash, and as we all know Aby had entirely failed in raising
+the wind--any immediate fund of wind--on the occasion of his visit
+to the baronet; and now, when this morning came, old Mollett was
+early on the road. Aby had talked of going with him, but Aby had
+failed so signally on the occasion of the visit which he did make to
+Castle Richmond, that he had been without the moral strength to
+persist in his purpose.
+
+"Then I shall write to the baronet and go alone to London," said
+Mollett, pere.
+
+"Bother!" replied Mollett, fils. "You hain't got the cash,
+governor."
+
+"I've got what'll take me there, my boy, whether you know it or not.
+And Sir Thomas'll be ready enough to send me a remittance when I'm
+once out of this country."
+
+And so Aby had given way,--partly perhaps in terror of Mr. Somers'
+countenance; and Matthew Mollett started again in a covered car on
+that cold journey over the Boggeragh mountains. It was still
+mid-winter, being now about the end of February, and the country was
+colder, and wetter, and more wretched, and the people in that
+desolate district more ragged and more starved than when he had last
+crossed it. But what were their rags and starvation to him? He was
+worse off than they were. They were merely dying, as all men must
+do. But he was inhabiting a hell on earth, which no man need do.
+They came out to him in shoals begging; but they came in vain,
+getting nothing from him but a curse through his chattering teeth.
+What right had they to torment with their misery one so much more
+wretched than themselves?
+
+At a little before twelve the covered car was at the front door of
+Castle Richmond house, and there was Richard under the porch. On
+former occasions Mr. Mollett had experienced some little delay in
+making his way into the baronet's presence. The servants had looked
+cold upon him, and he had felt as though there might be hot
+ploughshares under his feet at any step which he took. But now
+everything seemed to be made easy. Richard took him in tow without a
+moment's delay, told him confidentially that Sir Thomas was waiting
+for him, bade the covered car to be driven round into the yard with
+a voice that was uncommonly civil, seeing that it was addressed to a
+Cork carman, and then ushered Mr. Mollett through the hall and down
+the passage without one moment's delay. Wretched as he had been
+during his journey--wretched as an infernal spirit--his hopes were
+now again elated, and he dreamed of a golden paradise. There was
+something pleasant in feeling his mastery over that poor old
+shattered baronet.
+
+"The gentleman to wait upon Sir Thomas," said Richard, opening the
+study door; and then Mr. Mollett senior found himself in the
+presence of Mr. Prendergast.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was sitting in a high-backed easy-chair, facing the
+fire, when the announcement was made, and therefore Mollett still
+fancied that he was in the presence of Sir Thomas until he was well
+into the room and the door was closed upon him; otherwise he might
+probably have turned on his heels and bolted. He had had three or
+four interviews with Mr. Prendergast, having received different sums
+of money from that gentleman's hands, and had felt on all such
+occasions that he was being looked through and through. Mr.
+Prendergast had asked but few questions, never going into the matter
+of his, Mollett's, pecuniary connexion with Sir Thomas; but there
+had always been that in the lawyer's eye which had frightened the
+miscreant, which had quelled his bluster as soon as it was assumed,
+and had told him that he was known for a blackguard and a scoundrel.
+And now when this man, with the terrible grey eye, got up from Sir
+Thomas's chair, and wheeling round confronted him, looking him full
+in the face, and frowning on him as an honest man does frown on an
+unconvicted rascal--when, I say, this happened to Mr. Mollett
+senior, he thoroughly at that moment wished himself back in London.
+He turned his eye round to the door, but that was closed behind him.
+He looked around to see whether Sir Thomas was there, but no one was
+in the room with him but Mr. Prendergast. Then he stood still, and
+as that gentleman did not address him, he was obliged to speak; the
+silence was too awful for him--"Oh, Mr. Prendergast!" said he. "Is
+that you?"
+
+"Yes, Mr. Mollett, it is I."
+
+"Oh, ah--I suppose you are here about business of your own. I was
+wishing to see Sir Thomas about a little business of my own; maybe
+he's not in the way."
+
+"No, he is not; not exactly. But perhaps, Mr. Mollett, I can do as
+well. You have known me before, you know, and you may say to me
+openly anything you have to say to Sir Thomas."
+
+"Well; I don't know about that, sir; my business is with the
+baronet--particular." Mr. Mollett, as he spoke, strained every nerve
+to do so without appearance of dismay; but his efforts were
+altogether ineffectual. He could not bring himself to look Mr.
+Prendergast in the face for a moment, or avoid feeling like a dog
+that dreads being kicked. All manner of fears came upon him, and he
+would at the moment have given up all his hopes of money from the
+Castle Richmond people to have been free from Mr. Prendergast and
+his influence. And yet Mollett was not a coward in the ordinary
+sense of the word. Indeed he had been very daring in the whole
+management of this affair. But then a course of crime makes such
+violent demands on a man's courage. Let any one think of the
+difference of attacking a thief, and being attacked as a thief! We
+are apt to call bad men cowards without much consideration. Mr.
+Mollett was not without pluck, but his pluck was now quelled. The
+circumstances were too strong against him.
+
+"Listen to me, Mr. Mollett--; and, look here, sir; never mind
+turning to the door; you can't go now till you and I have had some
+conversation. You may make up your mind to this: you will never see
+Sir Thomas Fitzgerald again--unless indeed he should be in the
+witness-box when you are standing in the dock."
+
+"Mr. Prendergast; sir!"
+
+"Well. Have you any reason to give why you should not be put in the
+dock? How much money have you got from Sir Thomas during the last
+two years by means of those threats which you have been using? You
+were well aware when you set about this business that you were
+committing felony; and have probably felt tolerably sure at times
+that you would some day be brought up short. That day has come."
+
+Mr. Prendergast had made up his mind that nothing could be gained by
+soft usage with Mr. Mollett. Indeed nothing could be gained in any
+way, by any usage, unless it could be shown that Mollett and Talbot
+were not the same person. He could afford therefore to tell the
+scoundrel that he was a scoundrel, and to declare against him--war
+to the knife. The more that Mollett trembled, the more abject he
+became, the easier would be the task Mr. Prendergast now had in
+hand. "Well, sir," he continued, "are you going to tell me what
+business has brought you here to-day?"
+
+But Mr. Mollett, though he did shake in his shoes, did not look at
+the matter exactly in the same light. He could not believe that Sir
+Thomas would himself throw up the game on any consideration, or that
+Mr. Prendergast as his friend would throw it up on his behalf. He,
+Mollett, had a strong feeling that he could have continued to deal
+easily with Sir Thomas, and that it might be very hard to deal at
+all with Mr. Prendergast; but nevertheless the game was still open.
+Mr. Prendergast would probably distrust the fact of his being the
+lady's husband, and it would be for him therefore to use the
+indubitable proofs of the facts that were in his possession.
+
+"Sir Thomas knows very well what I've come about," he began, slowly;
+"and if he's told you, why you know too; and in that case--"
+
+But what might or might not happen in that case Mr. Mollett had not
+now an opportunity of explaining, for the door opened and Mrs. Jones
+entered the room.
+
+"When that man comes this morning," Mr. Prendergast had said to
+Herbert, "I must get you to induce Mrs. Jones to come to us in the
+study as soon as may be." He had not at all explained to Herbert why
+this was necessary, nor had he been at any pains to prevent the
+young heir from thinking and feeling that some terrible mystery hung
+over the house. There was a terrible mystery--which indeed would be
+more terrible still when it ceased to be mysterious. He therefore
+quietly explained to Herbert what he desired to have done, and
+Herbert, awaiting the promised communication of that evening,
+quietly did as he was bid.
+
+"You must go down to him, Jones," he had said.
+
+"But I'd rather not, sir. I was with him yesterday for two mortal
+hours; and, oh, Mr. Herbert! it ain't for no good."
+
+But Herbert was inexorable; and Mrs. Jones, feeling herself overcome
+by the weight of the misfortune that was oppressing them all,
+obeyed, and descending to her master's study, knocked at the door.
+She knew that Mr. Prendergast was there, and she knew that Sir
+Thomas was not; but she did not know that any stranger was in the
+room with Mr. Prendergast. Mr. Mollett had not heard the knock, nor,
+indeed, had Mr. Prendergast; but Mrs. Jones having gone through this
+ceremony, opened the door and entered.
+
+"Sir Thomas knows; does he?" said Mr. Prendergast, when Mollett
+ceased to speak on the woman's entrance. "Oh, Mrs. Jones, good
+morning. Here is your old master, Mr. Talbot."
+
+Mollett of course turned round, and found himself confronted with
+the woman. They stared at each other for some moments, and then
+Mollett said, in a low dull voice, "Yes, she knows me; it was she
+that lived with her at Tallyho Lodge."
+
+"You remember him now, Mrs. Jones; don't you?" said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+For another moment or two Mrs. Jones stood silent; and then she
+acknowledged herself overcome, and felt that the world around her
+had become too much for her. "Yes," said she, slowly; "I remembers
+him," and then sinking into a chair near the door, she put her apron
+up to her eyes, and burst into tears.
+
+"No doubt about that; she remembers me well enough," said Mollett,
+thinking that this was so much gained on his side. "But there ain't
+a doubt about the matter at all, Mr. Prendergast. You look here, and
+you'll see it all as plain as black and white." And Mr. Mollett
+dragged a large pocket-book from his coat, and took out of it
+certain documents, which he held before Mr. Prendergast's eyes,
+still keeping them in his own hand. "Oh, I'm all right; I am," said
+Mollett.
+
+"Oh, you are, are you?" said the lawyer, just glancing at the paper,
+which he would not appear to heed. "I am glad you think so."
+
+"If there were any doubt about it, she'd know," said he, pointing
+away up towards the body of the house. Both Mr. Prendergast and Mrs.
+Jones understood well who was that she to whom he alluded.
+
+"You are satisfied, at any rate, Mrs. Jones," said the lawyer. But
+Mrs. Jones had hidden her face in her apron, and would not look up.
+She could not understand why this friend of the family should push
+the matter so dreadfully against them. If he would rise from his
+chair and destroy that wretch who stood before them, then indeed he
+might be called a friend!
+
+Mr. Prendergast had now betaken himself to the door, and was
+standing with his back to it, and with his hands in his
+trousers-pockets, close to the chair on which Mrs. Jones was
+sitting. He had resolved that he would get that woman's spoken
+evidence out of her; and he had gotten it. But now, what was he to
+do with her next?--with her or with the late Mr. Talbot of Tallyho
+Lodge? And having satisfied himself of that fact, which from the
+commencement he had never doubted, what could he best do to spare
+the poor lady who was so terribly implicated in this man's presence?
+
+"Mrs. Jones," said he, standing over her, and gently touching her
+shoulder, "I am sorry to have pained you in this way; but it was
+necessary that we should know, without a doubt, who this man
+is,--and who he was. Truth is always the best, you know. So good a
+woman as you cannot but understand that."
+
+"I suppose it is, sir,--I suppose it is," said Mrs. Jones, through
+her tears, now thoroughly humbled. The world was pretty nearly at an
+end, as far as she was concerned. Here, in this very house of Castle
+Richmond, in Sir Thomas's own room, was her ladyship's former
+husband, acknowledged as such! What further fall of the planet into
+broken fragments could terrify or drive her from her course more
+thoroughly than this? Truth! yes, truth in the abstract, might be
+very good. But such a truth as this! how could any one ever say that
+that was good? Such was the working of her mind; but she took no
+trouble to express her thoughts.
+
+"Yes," continued Mr. Prendergast, speaking still in a low voice,
+with a tone that was almost tender, "truth is always best. Look at
+this wretched man here! He would have killed the whole
+family--destroyed them one by one--had they consented to assist him
+in concealing the fact of his existence. The whole truth will now be
+known; and it is very dreadful; but it will not be so dreadful as
+the want of truth."
+
+"My poor lady! my poor lady!" almost screamed Mrs. Jones from under
+her apron, wagging her head, and becoming almost convulsive in her
+grief.
+
+"Yes, it is very sad. But you will live to acknowledge that even
+this is better than living in that man's power."
+
+"I don't know that," said Mollett. "I am not so bad as you'd make
+me. I don't want to distress the lady."
+
+"No, not if you are allowed to rob the gentleman till there's not a
+guinea left for you to suck at. I know pretty well the extent of the
+evil that's in you. If we were to kick you from here to Cork, you'd
+forgive all that, so that we still allowed you to go on with your
+trade. I wonder how much money you've had from him altogether?"
+
+"What does the money signify? What does the money signify?" said
+Mrs. Jones, still wagging her head beneath her apron. "Why didn't
+Sir Thomas go on paying it, and then my lady need know nothing about
+it?"
+
+It was clear that Mrs. Jones would not look at the matter in a
+proper light. As far as she could see, there was no reason why a
+fair bargain should not have been made between Mollett and Sir
+Thomas,--made and kept on both sides, with mutual convenience. That
+doing of justice at the cost of falling heavens was not intelligible
+to her limited philosophy. Nor did she bethink herself, that a leech
+will not give over sucking until it be gorged with blood. Mr.
+Prendergast knew that such leeches as Mr. Mollett never leave the
+skin as long as there is a drop of blood left within the veins.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was still standing against the door, where he had
+placed himself to prevent the unauthorized departure of either Mrs.
+Jones or Mr. Mollett; but now he was bethinking himself that he
+might as well bring this interview to an end. "Mr. Mollett," said
+he, "you are probably beginning to understand that you will not get
+much more money from the Castle Richmond family?"
+
+"I don't want to do any harm to any of them," said Mollett, humbly;
+"and if I don't make myself troublesome, I hope Sir Thomas will
+consider me."
+
+"It is out of your power, sir, to do any further harm to any of
+them. You don't pretend to think that after what has passed, you can
+have any personal authority over that unfortunate lady?"
+
+"My poor mistress! my poor mistress!" sobbed Mrs. Jones.
+
+"You cannot do more injury than you at present have done. No one is
+now afraid of you; no one here will ever give you another shilling.
+When and in what form you will be prosecuted for inducing Sir Thomas
+to give you money, I cannot yet tell. Now, you may go: and I
+strongly advise you never to show your face here again. If the
+people about here knew who you are, and what you are, they would not
+let you off the property with a whole bone in your skin. Now go,
+sir. Do you hear me?"
+
+"Upon my word, Mr. Prendergast, I have not intended any harm!"
+
+"Go, sir!"
+
+"And even now, Mr. Prendergast, it can all be made straight, and I
+will leave the country altogether, if you wish it--"
+
+"Go, sir!" shouted Mr. Prendergast. "If you do not move at once, I
+will ring the bell for the servants!"
+
+"Then, if misfortune comes upon them, it is your doing, and not
+mine," said Mollett.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Pendrergrass, if it can be hushed up--" said Mrs. Jones,
+rising from her chair and coming up to him with her hands clasped
+together. "Don't send him away in your anger; don't'ee now, sir.
+Think of her ladyship. Do, do, do;" and the woman took hold of his
+arm, and looked up into his face with her eyes swimming with tears.
+Then going to the door she closed it, and returning again, touched
+his arm, and again appealed to him. "Think of Mr. Herbert, sir, and
+the young ladies! What are they to be called, sir, if this man is to
+be my lady's husband? Oh, Mr. Pendrergrass, let him go away, out of
+the kingdom; do let him go away."
+
+"I'll be off to Australia by the next boat, if you'll only say the
+word," said Mollett. To give him his due, he was not at that moment
+thinking altogether of himself and of what he might get. The idea of
+the misery which he had brought on these people did, to a certain
+measure, come home to him. And it certainly did come home to him
+also, that his own position was very perilous.
+
+"Mrs. Jones," said the lawyer, seeming to pay no attention whatever
+to Mollett's words, "you know nothing of such men as that. If I were
+to take him at his word now, he would turn upon Sir Thomas again
+before three weeks were over."
+
+"By---, I would not! By all that is holy, I would not. Mr.
+Prendergast, do--."
+
+"Mr. Mollett, I will trouble you to walk out of this house. I have
+nothing further to say to you."
+
+"Oh, very well, sir." And then slowly Mollett took his departure,
+and finding his covered car at the door, got into it without saying
+another word to any of the Castle Richmond family.
+
+"Mrs. Jones," said Mr. Prendergast, as soon as Mollett was gone, "I
+believe I need not trouble you any further. Your conduct has done
+you great honour, and I respect you greatly as an honest woman and
+an affectionate friend."
+
+Mrs. Jones could only acknowledge this by loud sobs.
+
+"For the present, if you will take my advice, you will say nothing
+of this to your mistress."
+
+"No, sir, no; I shall say nothing. Oh dear! oh dear!"
+
+"The whole matter will be known soon, but in the mean time, we may
+as well remain silent. Good day to you." And then Mrs. Jones also
+left the room, and Mr. Prendergast was alone.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI
+
+FAIR ARGUMENTS
+
+
+
+
+
+As Mollett left the house he saw two men walking down the road away
+from the sweep before the hall door, and as he passed them he
+recognized one as the young gentleman of the house. He also saw that
+a horse followed behind them, on the grass by the roadside, not led
+by the hand, but following with the reins laid loose upon his neck.
+They took no notice of him or his car, but allowed him to pass as
+though he had no concern whatever with the destinies of either of
+them. They were Herbert and Owen Fitzgerald.
+
+The reader will perhaps remember the way in which Owen left Desmond
+Court on the occasion of his last visit there. It cannot be said
+that what he had heard had in any way humbled him, nor indeed had it
+taught him to think that Clara Desmond looked at him altogether with
+indifference. Greatly as she had injured him, he could not bring
+himself to look upon her as the chief sinner. It was Lady Desmond
+who had done it all. It was she who had turned against him because
+of his poverty, who had sold her daughter to his rich cousin, and
+robbed him of the love which he had won for himself. Or perhaps not
+of the love--it might be that this was yet his; and if so, was it
+not possible that he might beat the countess at her own weapons?
+Thinking over this, he felt that it was necessary for him to do
+something, to take some step; and therefore he resolved to go boldly
+to his cousin, and tell him that he regarded Lady Clara Desmond as
+still his own.
+
+On this morning, therefore, he had ridden up to the Castle Richmond
+door. It was now many months since he had been there, and he was no
+longer entitled to enter the house on the acknowledged intimate
+footing of a cousin. He rode up, and asked the servant with grave
+ceremony whether Mr. Herbert Fitzgerald were at home. He would not
+go in, he said, but if Mr. Herbert were there he would wait for him
+at the porch. Herbert at the time was standing in the dining-room,
+all alone, gloomily leaning against the mantelpiece. There was
+nothing for him to do during the whole of that day but wait for the
+evening, when the promised revelation would be made to him. He knew
+that Mollett and Mrs. Jones were with Mr. Prendergast in the study,
+but what was the matter now being investigated between them--that he
+did not know. And till he knew that, closely as he was himself
+concerned, he could meddle with nothing. But it was already past
+noon and the evening would soon be there.
+
+In this mood he was interrupted by being told that his cousin Owen
+was at the door. "He won't come in at all, Mr. Herbert," Richard had
+said; for Richard, according to order, was still waiting about the
+porch; "but he says that you are to go to him there." And then
+Herbert, after considering the matter for a moment, joined his
+cousin at the front entrance.
+
+"I want to speak to you a few words," said Owen; "but as I hear that
+Sir Thomas is not well, I will not go into the house; perhaps you
+will walk with me as far as the lodge. Never mind the mare, she will
+not go astray." And so Herbert got his hat and accompanied him. For
+the first hundred yards neither of them said anything. Owen would
+not speak of Clara till he was well out of hearing from the house,
+and at the present moment Herbert had not much inclination to
+commence a conversation on any subject.
+
+Owen was the first to speak. "Herbert," said he, "I have been told
+that you are engaged to marry Lady Clara Desmond."
+
+"And so I am," said Herbert, feeling very little inclined to admit
+of any question as to his privilege in that respect. Things were
+happening around him which might have--Heaven only knows what
+consequence. He did fear--fear with a terrible dread that something
+might occur which would shatter the cup of his happiness, and rob
+him of the fruition of his hopes. But nothing had occurred as yet.
+
+"And so I am," he said; "it is no wonder that you should have heard
+it, for it has been kept no secret. And I also have heard of your
+visit to Desmond Court. It might have been as well, I think, if you
+had stayed away."
+
+"I thought differently," said Owen, frowning blackly. "I thought
+that the most straight-forward thing for me was to go there openly,
+having announced my intention, and tell them both, mother and
+daughter, that I hold myself as engaged to Lady Clara, and that I
+hold her as engaged to me."
+
+"That is absurd nonsense. She cannot be engaged to two persons."
+
+"Anything that interferes with you, you will of course think absurd.
+I think otherwise. It is hardly more than twelve months since she
+and I were walking there together, and then she promised me her
+love. I had known her long and well, when you had hardly seen her. I
+knew her and loved her; and what is more, she loved me. Remember, it
+is not I only that say so. She said it herself, and swore that
+nothing should change her. I do not believe that anything has
+changed her."
+
+"Do you mean to say that at present she cares nothing for me? Owen,
+you must be mad on this matter."
+
+"Mad; yes, of course; if I think that any girl can care for me while
+you are in the way. Strange as it may appear, I am as mad even as
+that. There are people who will not sell themselves even for money
+and titles. I say again, that I do not believe her to be changed.
+She has been weak, and her mother has persuaded her. To her mother,
+rank and money, titles and property, are everything. She has sold
+her daughter, and I have come to ask you, whether, under such
+circumstances, you intend to accept the purchase."
+
+In his ordinary mood Herbert Fitzgerald was by no means a
+quarrelsome man. Indeed we may go further than that, and say that he
+was very much the reverse. His mind was argumentative rather than
+impulsive, and in all matters he was readier to persuade than
+overcome. But his ordinary nature had been changed. It was quite new
+with him to be nervous and fretful but he was so at the present
+moment. He was deeply concerned in the circumstances around him, but
+yet had been allowed no voice in them. In this affair that was so
+peculiarly his own,--this of his promised bride, he was determined
+that no voice should be heard but his own; and now, contrary to his
+wont, he was ready enough to quarrel with his cousin.
+
+Of Owen we may say, that he was a man prone to fighting of all
+sorts, and on all occasions. By fighting I do not mean the
+old-fashioned resource of putting an end to fighting by the aid of
+two pistols, which were harmless in nineteen cases out of twenty. In
+saying that Owen Fitzgerald was prone to fight, I do not allude to
+fighting of that sort; I mean that he was impulsive, and ever
+anxious to contend and conquer. To yield was to him ignoble, even
+though he might know that he was yielding to the right. To strive
+for mastery was to him noble, even though he strove against those
+who had a right to rule, and strove on behalf of the wrong. Such was
+the nature of his mind and spirit; and this nature had impelled him
+to his present enterprise at Castle Richmond. But he had gone
+thither with an unwonted resolve not to be passionate. He had, he
+had said to himself, right on his side, and he had purposed to argue
+it out fairly with his more cold-blooded cousin. The reader may
+probably guess the result of these fair arguments on such a subject.
+"And I have come to ask you," he said, "whether under such
+circumstances you intend to accept the purchase?"
+
+"I will not allow you to speak of Lady Desmond in such language; nor
+of her daughter," said Herbert, angrily.
+
+"Ah! but, Herbert, you must allow me; I have been ill used in this
+matter, and I have a right to make myself heard."
+
+"Is it I that have ill used you? I did not know before that
+gentlemen made loud complaints of such ill usage from the hands of
+ladies."
+
+"If the ill usage, as you please to call it--"
+
+"It is your own word."
+
+"Very well. If this ill usage came from Clara Desmond herself, I
+should be the last person to complain of it; and you would be the
+last person to whom I should make complaint. But I feel sure that it
+is not so. She is acting under the influence of her mother, who has
+frightened her into this thing which she is doing. I do not believe
+that she is false herself."
+
+"I am sure that she is not false. We are quite agreed there, but it
+is not likely that we should agree further. To tell you the truth
+frankly I think you are ill-judged to speak to me on such a topic."
+
+"Perhaps in that respect you will allow me to think for myself. But
+I have not yet said that which I came to say. My belief is that
+unfair and improper restraint is put upon Clara Desmond, that she
+has been induced by her mother to accept your offer in opposition to
+her own wishes, and that therefore it is my duty to look upon her as
+still betrothed to me. I do so regard her, and shall act under such
+conviction. The first thing that I do therefore is to call upon you
+to relinquish your claim."
+
+"What, to give her up?"
+
+"Yes, to give her up;--to acknowledge that you cannot honestly call
+upon her to fulfil her pledge to you."
+
+"The man must be raving," Herbert said.
+
+"Very probably; but remember this, it may be that he will rave to
+some purpose, when such insolence will be but of little avail to
+you. Raving! Yes, I suppose that a man poor as I am must be mad
+indeed to set his heart upon anything you may choose to fancy."
+
+"All that is nonsense; Owen, I ask for nothing but my own. I won her
+love fairly, and I mean to keep it firmly."
+
+"You may possibly have won her hand, but never her heart. You are
+rich, and it may be that even she will condescend to barter her
+hand; but I doubt it; I altogether doubt it. It is her mother's
+doing, as it was plain enough for me to see the other day at Desmond
+Court; but much as she may fear her mother, I cannot think that she
+will go to the altar with a lie in her mouth."
+
+And then they walked on in silence for a few yards. Herbert was
+anxious to get back to the house, and was by no means desirous of
+continuing this conversation with his cousin. He, at any rate, could
+get nothing by talking about Lady Clara Desmond to Owen Fitzgerald.
+He stopped therefore on the path, and said, that if Owen had nothing
+further to say, he, Herbert, would go back to the house.
+
+"Nothing further! Nothing further, if you understand me; but you do
+not. You are not honest enough in this matter to understand any
+purpose but your own."
+
+"I tell you what, Owen: I did not come out here to hear myself
+abused; and I will not stand it. According to my idea you had no
+right whatever to speak to me about Lady Clara Desmond. But you are
+my cousin; and therefore I have borne it. It may be as well that we
+should both understand that it is once for all. I will not listen to
+you again on the same subject."
+
+"Oh, you won't. Upon my word you are a very great man! You will tell
+me next, I suppose, that this is your demesne, and will warn me
+off!"
+
+"Even if I did that, I should not be wrong, under such provocation."
+
+"Very well, sir; then I will go off. But remember this, Herbert
+Fitzgerald, you shall live to rue the day when you treated me with
+such insolence. And remember this also, Clara Desmond is not your
+wife as yet. Everything now seems happy with you, and fortunate; you
+have wealth and a fine house, and a family round you, while I am
+there all alone, left like a dog, as far as my own relatives are
+concerned. But yet it may come to pass that the Earl of Desmond's
+daughter will prefer my hand to yours, and my house to your house.
+They who mount high may chance to get a fall." And then, having
+uttered this caution, he turned to his mare, and putting his hand
+upon the saddle, jumped into his seat, and pressing her into a
+gallop, darted off across the grass.
+
+He had not meant anything specially by his threat; but his heart was
+sore within him. During some weeks past, he had become sick of the
+life that he was leading. He had begun to hate his own solitary
+house--his house that was either solitary, or filled with riot and
+noise. He sighed for the quiet hours that were once his at Desmond
+Court, and the privilege of constant entrance there, which was now
+denied him. His cousin Herbert had everything at his
+command--wealth, station, family ties, society, and all the
+consideration of high place. Every blessing was at the feet of the
+young heir; but every blessing was not enough, unless Clara Desmond
+was also added. All this seemed so cruel to him, as he sat alone in
+his parlour at Hap House, meditating on his future course of life!
+And then he would think of Clara's promise, of her assurance that
+nothing should frighten her from her pledge. He thought of this as
+though the words had been spoken to him only yesterday. He pondered
+over these things till he hated his cousin Herbert; and hating him,
+he vowed that Clara Desmond should not be his wife. "Is he to have
+everything?" he would say to himself. "No, by leavens! not
+everything. He has enough, and may be contented; but he shall not
+have all." And now, with similar thoughts running through his mind,
+he rode back to Hap House.
+
+And Herbert turned back to Castle Richmond. As he approached the
+front door, he met Mr. Prendergast, who was leaving the house; but
+they had no conversation with each other. Herbert was in hopes that
+he might now, at once, be put out of suspense. Mollett was gone; and
+would it not be better that the tale should be told? But it was
+clear that Mr. Prendergast had no intention of lessening by an hour
+the interval he had given himself. He merely muttered a few words
+passing on, and Herbert went into the house.
+
+And then there was another long, tedious, dull afternoon. Herbert
+sat with his sisters, but they had not the heart to talk to each
+other. At about four a note was brought to him. It was from Mr.
+Prendergast, begging Herbert to meet him in Sir Thomas's study at
+eight. Sir Thomas had not been there during the day; and now did not
+intend to leave his own room. They dined at half-past six; and the
+appointment was therefore to take place almost immediately after
+dinner.
+
+"Tell Mr. Prendergast that I will be there," he said to the servant.
+And so that afternoon passed away, and the dinner also, very slowly
+and very sadly.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII
+
+THE TELLING OF THE TALE
+
+
+
+
+
+The dinner passed away as the former dinners had done; and as soon
+as Aunt Letty got up Mr. Prendergast also rose, and touching Herbert
+on his shoulder, whispered into his ear, "You'll come to me at
+eight, then." Herbert nodded his head; and when he was alone he
+looked at his watch. These slow dinners were not actually very long,
+and there still remained to him some three-quarters of an hour for
+anticipation.
+
+What was to be the nature of this history? That it would affect
+himself personally in the closest manner he could not but know.
+There seemed to be no doubt on the minds of any of them that the
+affair was one of money, and his father's money questions were his
+money questions. Mr. Prendergast would not have been sent for with
+reference to any trifle; nor would any pecuniary difficulty that was
+not very serious have thrown his father into such a state of misery.
+Could it be that the fair inheritance was absolutely in danger?
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald was by no means a selfish man. As regarded
+himself, he could have met ruin in the face with more equanimity
+than most young men so circumstanced. The gilt of the world had not
+eaten into his soul; his heart was not as yet wedded to the
+splendour of pinchbeck. This is saying much for him; for how seldom
+is it that the hearts and souls of the young are able to withstand
+pinchbeck and gilding? He was free from this pusillanimity; free as
+yet as regarded himself; but he was hardly free as regarded his
+betrothed. He had promised her, not in spoken words but in his
+thoughts, rank, wealth, and all the luxuries of his promised high
+position; and now, on her behalf, it nearly broke his heart to think
+that they might be endangered.
+
+Of his mother's history, he can hardly be said to have known
+anything. That there had been something tragic in her early life;
+that something had occurred before his father's marriage; and that
+his mother had been married twice, he had learned,--he hardly knew
+when or from whom. But on such matters there had never been
+conversation between him and any of his own family; and it never
+occurred to him that this sorrow arose in any way from this subject.
+That his father had taken some fatal step with regard to the
+property--had done some foolish thing for which he could not forgive
+himself, that was the idea with which his mind was filled.
+
+He waited, with his watch in his hand, till the dial showed him that
+it was exactly eight; and then, with a sinking heart, he walked
+slowly out of the dining-room along the passage, and into his
+father's study. For an instant he stood with the handle in his hand.
+He had been terribly anxious for the arrival of this moment, but now
+that it had come, he would almost fain have had it again postponed.
+His heart sank very low as he turned the lock, and entering, found
+himself in the presence of Mr. Prendergast.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was standing with his back to the fire. For him,
+too, the last hour had been full of bitterness; his heart also had
+sunk low within him; his blood had run cold within his veins: he
+too, had it been possible, would have put off this wretched hour.
+
+Mr. Prendergast, it may be, was not much given to poetry; but the
+feeling, if not the words, were there within him. The work which a
+friend has to perform for a friend is so much heavier than that
+which comes in the way of any profession!
+
+When Herbert entered the room, Mr. Prendergast came forward from
+where he was standing, and took him by the hand. "This is a very sad
+affair," he said; "very sad."
+
+"At present I know nothing about it," said Herbert. "As I see people
+about me so unhappy, I suppose it is sad. If there be anything that
+I hate, it is a mystery."
+
+"Sit down, Mr. Fitzgerald," said the other; "sit down." And Mr.
+Prendergast himself sat down in the chair that was ordinarily
+occupied by Sir Thomas. Although he had been thinking about it all
+the day, he had not even yet made up his mind how he was to begin
+his story. Even now he could not help thinking whether it might be
+possible for him to leave it untold.
+
+But it was not possible.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," said he, "you must prepare yourself for tidings
+which are very grievous indeed--very grievous."
+
+"Whatever it is I must bear it," said he.
+
+"I hope you have that moral strength which enables a man to bear
+misfortune. I have not known you in happy days, and therefore
+perhaps can hardly judge; but it seems to me that you do possess
+such courage. Did I not think so, I could hardly go through the task
+that is before me."
+
+Here he paused as though he expected some reply, some assurance that
+his young friend did possess this strength of which he spoke; but
+Herbert said nothing--nothing out loud. "If it were only for myself!
+if it were only for myself!" It was thus that he spoke to his own
+heart.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," continued the lawyer, "I do not know how far you
+may be acquainted with the history of your mother's first marriage."
+
+Herbert said that he was hardly acquainted with it in any degree;
+and explained that he merely knew the fact that his mother had been
+married before she met Sir Thomas.
+
+"I do not know that I need recount all the circumstances to you now,
+though doubtless you will learn them. Your mother's conduct
+throughout was, I believe, admirable."
+
+"I am quite sure of that. No amount of evidence could make me
+believe the contrary."
+
+"And there is no tittle of evidence to make any one think so. But in
+her early youth, when she was quite a child, she was given in
+marriage to a man--to a man of whom it is impossible to speak in
+terms too black, or in language too strong. And now, this day--"
+
+But here he paused. It had been his intention to say that that very
+man, the first husband of this loved mother now looked upon as dead
+for so many years, this miscreant of whom he had spoken--that this
+man had been in that room that very day. But he hardly knew how to
+frame the words.
+
+"Well," said Herbert, "well;" and he spoke in a hoarse voice that
+was scarcely audible.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was afraid to bring out the very pith of his story
+in so abrupt a manner. He wished to have the work over, to feel,
+that as regarded Herbert it was done,--but his heart failed him when
+he came to it.
+
+"Yes," he said, going back as it were to his former thoughts. "A
+heartless, cruel, debauched, unscrupulous man; one in whose bosom no
+good thing seemed to have been implanted. Your father, when he first
+knew your mother, had every reason to believe that this man was
+dead."
+
+"And he was not dead?" Mr. Prendergast could see that the young
+man's face became perfectly pale as he uttered these words. He
+became pale, and clutched hold of the table with his hand, and there
+sat with mouth open and staring eyes.
+
+"I am afraid not," said Mr. Prendergast; "I am afraid not."
+
+"And--"
+
+"I must go further than that, and tell you that he is still living."
+
+"Mr. Prendergast, Mr. Prendergast!" exclaimed the poor fellow,
+rising up from his chair and shouting out as though for mercy. Mr.
+Prendergast also rose from his seat, and coming up to him took him
+by the arm. "My dear boy, my dear boy, I am obliged to tell you. It
+is necessary that you should know it. The fact is as I say, and it
+is now for you to show that you are a man."
+
+Who was ever called upon for a stronger proof of manhood than this?
+In nine cases out of ten it is not for oneself that one has to be
+brave. A man, we may almost say, is no man, whose own individual
+sufferings call for the exercise of much courage. But we are all so
+mixed up and conjoined with others--with others who are weaker and
+dearer than ourselves, that great sorrows do require great powers of
+endurance.
+
+By degrees, as he stood there in silence, the whole truth made its
+way into his mind,--as he stood there with his arm still tenderly
+pressed by that old man. No one now would have called the lawyer
+stern in looking at him, for the tears were coursing down his
+cheeks. But no tears came to the relief of young Fitzgerald as the
+truth slowly came upon him, fold by fold, black cloud upon cloud,
+till the whole horizon of his life's prospect was dark as death. He
+stood there silent for some few minutes hardly conscious that he was
+not alone, as he saw all his joys disappearing from before his
+mind's eye, one by one; his family pride, the pleasant high-toned
+duties of his station, his promised seat in Parliament and
+prosperous ambition, the full respect of all the world around him,
+his wealth and pride of place--for let no man be credited who boasts
+that he can part with these without regret. All these were gone. But
+there were losses more bitter than these. How could he think of his
+affianced bride? and how could he think of his mother?
+
+No tears came to his relief while the truth, with all its bearings,
+burnt itself into his very soul, but his face expressed such agony
+that it was terrible to be seen. Mr. Prendergast could stand that
+silence no longer, so at last he spoke. He spoke,--for the sake of
+words; for all his tale had been told.
+
+"You saw the man that was here yesterday? That was he, who then
+called himself Talbot"
+
+"What! the man that went away in the car? Mollett!"
+
+"Yes; that was the man."
+
+Herbert had said that no evidence could be sufficient to make him
+believe that his mother had been in any way culpable: and such
+probably was the case. He had that reliance on his mother--that
+assurance in his mind that everything coming from her must be
+good--that he could not believe her capable of ill. But,
+nevertheless, he could not prevent himself from asking within his
+own breast, how it had been possible that his mother should ever
+have been concerned with such a wretch as that. It was a question
+which could not fail to make itself audible. What being on earth was
+sweeter than his mother, more excellent, more noble, more fitted for
+the world's high places, more absolutely entitled to that universal
+respect which seemed to be given to her as her own by right? And
+what being could be more loathsome, more contemptible than he, who
+was, as he was now told, his mother's husband? There was in it a
+want of verisimilitude which almost gave him comfort, one--which
+almost taught him to think that he might disbelieve the story that
+was told to him. Poor fellow! he had yet to learn the difference
+that years may make in men and women--for better as well as for
+worse. Circumstances had given to the poor half-educated village
+girl the simple dignity of high station; as circumstances had also
+brought to the lowest dregs of human existence the man, whose
+personal bearing and apparent worldly standing had been held
+sufficient to give warrant that he was of gentle breeding and of
+honest standing; nay, her good fortune in such a marriage had once
+been almost begrudged her by all her maiden neighbours.
+
+But Herbert, as he thought of this, was almost discouraged to
+disbelieve the story. To him, with his knowledge of what his mother
+was, and with knowledge as he also had of that man, it did not seem
+possible. "But how is all this known?" he muttered forth at last.
+
+"I fear there is no doubt of its truth," said Mr. Prendergast. "Your
+father has no doubt whatever; has had none--I must tell you this
+plainly--for some months."
+
+"For some months! And why have I not been told?"
+
+"Do not be hard upon your father."
+
+"Hard! no; of course I would not be hard upon him."
+
+"The burden he has had to bear has been very terrible. He has
+thought that by payments of money to this man the whole thing might
+be concealed. As is always the case when such payments are made, the
+insatiable love of money grew by what it fed on. He would have
+poured out every shilling into that man's hands, and would have
+died, himself a beggar--have died speedily too under such
+torments--and yet no good would have been done. The harpy would have
+come upon you; and you--after you had innocently assumed a title
+that was not your own and taken a property to which you have no
+right, you then would have had to own--that which your father must
+own now."
+
+"If it be so," said Herbert, slowly, "it must be acknowledged."
+
+"Just so, Mr. Fitzgerald; just so. I know you will feel that--in
+such matters we can only sail safely by the truth. There is no other
+compass worth a man's while to look at."
+
+"Of course not," said Herbert, with hoarse voice. "One does not wish
+to be a robber and a thief. My cousin shall have what is his own."
+And then he involuntarily thought of the interview they had had on
+that very day. "But why did he not tell me when I spoke to him of
+her?" he said, with something approaching to bitterness in his voice
+and a slight struggle in his throat that was almost premonitory of a
+sob.
+
+"Ah! it is there that I fear for you. I know what your feelings are;
+but think of his sorrows, and do not be hard on him."
+
+"Ah me, ah me!" exclaimed Herbert
+
+"I fear that he will not be with you long. He has already endured
+till he is now almost past the power of suffering more. And yet
+there is so much more that he must suffer!"
+
+"My poor father!"
+
+"Think what such as he must have gone through in bringing himself
+into contact with that man; and all this has been done that he might
+spare you and your mother. Think of the wound to his conscience
+before he would have lowered himself to an unworthy bargain with a
+swindler. But this has been done that you might have that which you
+have been taught to look on as your own. He has been wrong. No other
+verdict can be given. But you, at any rate, can be tender to such a
+fault; you and your mother."
+
+"I will--I will," said Herbert. "But if it had happened a month
+since I could have borne it." And then he thought of his mother, and
+hated himself for what he had said. How could he have borne that
+with patience? "And there is no doubt, you say?"
+
+"I think none. The man carries his proofs with him. An old servant
+here in the house, too, knows him."
+
+"What, Mrs. Jones?"
+
+"Yes; Mrs. Jones. And the burden of further proof must now, of
+course, be thrown on us,--not on him. Directly that we believe the
+statement, it is for us to ascertain its truth. You and your father
+must not be seen to hold a false position before the world."
+
+"And what are we to do now?"
+
+"I fear that your mother must be told, and Mr. Owen Fitzgerald; and
+then we must together openly prove the facts, either in one way or
+in the other. It will be better that we should do this
+together;--that is, you and your cousin Owen conjointly. Do it
+openly, before the world,--so that the world may know that each of
+you desires only what is honestly his own. For myself I tell you
+fairly that I have no doubt of the truth of what I have told you;
+but further proof is certainly needed. Had I any doubt I would not
+propose to tell your mother. As it is I think it will be wrong to
+keep her longer in the dark."
+
+"Does she suspect nothing?"
+
+"I do not know. She has more power of self-control than your father.
+She has not spoken to me ten words since I have been in the house,
+and in not doing so I have thought that she was right."
+
+"My own mother; my dear mother!"
+
+"If you ask me my opinion, I think that she does suspect the
+truth,--very vaguely, with an indefinite feeling that the calamity
+which weighs so heavily on your father has come from this source.
+She, dear lady, is greatly to be pitied. But God has made her of
+firmer material than your father, and I think that she will bear her
+sorrow with a higher courage."
+
+"And she is to be told also?"
+
+"Yes, I think so. I do not see how we can avoid it. If we do not
+tell her we must attempt to conceal it, and that attempt must needs
+be futile when we are engaged in making open inquiry on the subject.
+Your cousin, when he hears of this, will of course be anxious to
+know what his real prospects are."
+
+"Yes, yes. He will be anxious, and determined too."
+
+"And then, when all the world will know it. how is your mother to be
+kept in the dark? And that which she fears and anticipates is as
+bad, probably, as the actual truth. If my advice be followed nothing
+will be kept from her."
+
+"We are in your hands, I suppose, Mr. Prendergast?"
+
+"I can only act as my judgment directs me."
+
+"And who is to tell her?" This he asked with a shudder, and almost
+in a whisper. The very idea of undertaking such a duty seemed almost
+too much for him. And yet he must undertake a duty almost as
+terrible, he himself--no one but him--must endure the anguish of
+repeating this story to Clara Desmond and to the countess. But now
+the question had reference to his own mother. "And who is to tell
+her?" he asked.
+
+For a moment or two Mr. Prendergast stood silent. He had not
+hitherto, in so many words, undertaken this task--this that would be
+the most dreadful of all. But if he did not undertake it, who would?
+"I suppose that I must do it," at last he said, very gently.
+
+"And when?"
+
+"As soon as I have told your cousin. I will go down to him to-morrow
+after breakfast. Is it probable that I shall find him at home?"
+
+"Yes, if you are there before ten. The hounds meet to-morrow at
+Cecilstown, within three miles of him, and he will not leave home
+till near eleven. But it is possible that he may have a house full
+of men with him."
+
+"At any rate, I will try. On such an occasion as this he may surely
+let his friends go to the hunt without him."
+
+And then between nine and ten this interview came to an end. "Mr.
+Fitzgerald," said Mr. Prendergast, as he pressed Herbert's hand,
+"you have borne all this as a man should do. No loss of fortune can
+ruin one who is so well able to endure misfortune." But in this Mr.
+Prendergast was perhaps mistaken. His knowledge of human nature had
+not carried him sufficiently far. A man's courage under calamity is
+only tested when he is left in solitude. The meanest among us can
+bear up while strange eyes are looking at us. And then Mr.
+Prendergast went away, and he was alone.
+
+It had been his habit during the whole of this period of his
+father's illness to go to Sir Thomas at or before bedtime. These
+visits had usually been made to the study, the room in which he was
+now standing; but when his father had gone to his bedroom at an
+earlier hour, Herbert had always seen him there. Was he to go to him
+now--now that he had heard all this? And if so, how was he to bear
+himself there, in his father's presence? He stood still, thinking of
+this, till the hand of the clock showed him that it was past ten,
+and then it struck him that his father might be waiting for him. It
+would not do for him now, at such a moment, to appear wanting in
+that attention which he had always shown. He was still his father's
+son, though he had lost the light to bear his father's name. He was
+nameless now, a man utterly without respect or standing-place in the
+world, a being whom the law ignored except as the possessor of a
+mere life; such was he now, instead of one whose rights and
+privileges, whose property and rank all the statutes of the realm
+and customs of his country delighted to honour and protect. This he
+repeated to himself over and over again. It as to such a pass as
+this, to this bitter disappointment that his father had brought him.
+But yet it should not be said of him that he had begun to neglect
+his father as soon as he had heard the story.
+
+So with a weary step he walked upstairs, and found Sir Thomas in
+bed, with his mother sitting by the bedside. His mother held out her
+hand to him, and he took it, leaning against the bedside. "Has Mr.
+Prendergast left you?" she asked.
+
+He told her that Mr. Prendergast had left him, and gone to his own
+room for the night. "And have you been with him all the evening?"
+she asked. She had no special motive in so asking, but both the
+father and the son shuddered at the question. "Yes," said Herbert;
+"I have been with him, and now I have come to wish my father good
+night; and you too, mother, if you intend to remain here." But Lady
+Fitzgerald got up, telling Herbert that she would leave him with Sir
+Thomas; and before either of them could hinder her from departing,
+the father and the son were alone together.
+
+Sir Thomas, when the door closed, looked furtively up into his son's
+face. Might it be that he could read there how much had been already
+told, or hew much still remained to be disclosed? That Herbert was
+to learn it all that evening, he knew; but it might be that Mr.
+Prendergast had failed to perform his task. Sir Thomas in his heart
+trusted that he had failed. He looked up furtively into Herbert's
+face, but at the moment there was nothing there that he could read.
+There was nothing there but black misery; and every face round him
+for many days past had worn that aspect.
+
+For a minute or two Herbert said nothing, for he had not made up his
+mind whether or no he would that night disturb his father's rest.
+But he could not speak in his ordinary voice, or bid his father good
+night as though nothing special to him had happened. "Father," said
+he, after a short pause, "father, I know it all now."
+
+"My boy, my poor boy, my unfortunate boy!"
+
+"Father," said Herbert, "do not be unhappy about me, I can bear it."
+And then he thought again of his bride--his bride as she was to have
+been; but nevertheless he repeated his last words, "I can bear it,
+father!"
+
+"I have meant it for the best, Herbert," said the poor man, pleading
+to his child.
+
+"I know that; all of us well know that. But what Mr. Prendergast
+says is true; it is better that it should be known. That man would
+have killed you had you kept it longer to yourself."
+
+Sir Thomas hid his face upon the pillow as the remembrance of what
+he had endured in those meetings came upon him. The blow that had
+told heaviest was that visit from the son, and the threats which the
+man had made still rung in his ears--"When that youngster was born
+Lady F. was Mrs. M., wasn't she?...My governor could take her away
+to-morrow, according to the law of the land, couldn't he now?" These
+words, and more such as these, had nearly killed him at the time,
+and now, as they recurred to him, he burst out into childish tears.
+Poor man! the days of his manhood had gone, and nothing but the
+tears of a second bitter childhood remained to him. The hot iron had
+entered into his soul, and shrivelled up the very muscles of his
+mind's strength.
+
+Herbert, without much thought of what he was doing, knelt down by
+the bedside and put his hand upon that of his father which lay out
+upon the sheet. There he knelt for one or two minutes, watching and
+listening to his father's aobs. "You will be better now, father," he
+said, "for the great weight of this terrible secret will be off your
+mind." But Sir Thomas did not answer him. With him there could never
+be any better. All things belonging to him had gone to ruin. All
+those around him whom he had loved--and he had loved those around
+him very dearly--were brought to poverty and sorrow, and disgrace.
+The power of feeling this was left to him, but the power of enduring
+this with manhood was gone. The blow had come upon him too late in
+life.
+
+And Herbert himself, as he knelt there, could hardly forbear from
+tears. Now, at such a moment as this, he could think of no one but
+his father, the author of his being, who lay there so grievously
+afflicted by sorrows which were in nowise selfish. "Father," he said
+at last, "will you pray with me?" And then when the poor sufferer
+had turned his face towards him, he poured forth his prayer to his
+Saviour that they all in that family might be enabled to bear the
+heavy sorrows which God in his mercy and wisdom had now thought fit
+to lay upon them. I will not make his words profane by repeating
+them here, but one may say confidently that they were not uttered in
+vain.
+
+"And now, dearest father, good night," he said as he rose from his
+knees, and stretching over the bed, he kissed his father's forehead.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII
+
+BEFORE BREAKFAST AT HAP HOUSE
+
+
+
+
+
+It may be imagined that Mr. Mollett's drive back to Cork after his
+last visit to Castle Richmond had not been very pleasant; and indeed
+it may be said that his present circumstances altogether were as
+unpleasant as his worst enemies could desire. I have endeavoured to
+excite the sympathy of those who are going with me through this
+story for the sufferings of that family of the Fitzgeralds, but how
+shall I succeed in exciting their sympathy for this other family of
+the Molletts? And yet why not? If we are to sympathise only with the
+good, or worse still, only with the graceful, how little will there
+be in our character that is better than terrestrial? Those Molletts
+also were human, and had strings to their hearts, at which the world
+would now probably pull with sufficient vigour. For myself I can
+truly say that my strongest feeling is for their wretchedness.
+
+The father and son had more than once boasted among themselves that
+the game they were now playing was a high one; that they were, in
+fact, gambling for mighty stakes. And in truth, as long as the money
+came in to them--flowing in as the result of their own craft in
+this game--the excitement had about it something that was very
+pleasurable. There was danger, which makes all games pleasant; there
+was money in handfuls for daily expenses--those daily wants of the
+appetite, which are to such men more important by far than the
+distant necessities of life; there was a possibility of future
+grandeur, an opening out of magnificent ideas of fortune, which
+charmed them greatly as they thought about it. What might they not
+do with forty thousand pounds divided between them, or even with a
+thousand a-year each, settled on them for life? and surely their
+secret was worth that money! Nay, was it not palpable to the meanest
+calculation that it was worth much more? Had they not the selling of
+twelve thousand a-year for ever and ever to this family of
+Fitzgerald?
+
+But for the last fortnight things had begun to go astray with them.
+Money easily come by goes easily, and money badly come by goes
+badly. Theirs had come easily and badly, and had so gone. What
+necessity could there be for economy with such a milch-cow as that
+close to their elbows? So both of them had thought, if not argued;
+and there had been no economy--no economy in the use of that very
+costly amusement, the dice-box; and now, at the present moment,
+ready money having failed to be the result of either of the two last
+visits to Castle Richmond, the family funds were running low.
+
+It may be said that ready money for the moment was the one desire
+nearest to the heart of Mollett pere, when he took that last journey
+over the Boggeragh mountains--ready money wherewith to satisfy the
+pressing claims of Miss O'Dwyer, and bring back civility, or rather
+servility, to the face and manner of Tom the waiter at the Kanturk
+Hotel. Very little of that servility can be enjoyed by persons of
+the Mollett class when money ceases to be ready in their hands and
+pocket, and there is, perhaps, nothing that they enjoy so keenly as
+servility. Mollett pere had gone down determined that that comfort
+should at any rate be forthcoming to him, whatever answer might be
+given to those other grander demands, and we know what success had
+attended his mission. He had looked to find his tame milch-cow
+trembling in her accustomed stall, and he had found a resolute bull
+there in her place--a bull whom he could by no means take by the
+horns. He had got no money, and before he had reached Cork he had
+begun to comprehend that it was not probable that he should get more
+from that source.
+
+During a part of the interview between him and Mr. Prendergast, some
+spark of mercy towards his victims had glimmered into his heart.
+When it was explained to him that the game was to be given up, that
+the family at Castle Richmond was prepared to acknowledge the truth,
+and that the effort made was with the view of proving that the poor
+lady up stairs was not entitled to the name she bore rather than
+that she was so entitled, then some slight promptings of a better
+spirit did for a while tempt him to be merciful. "Oh, what are you
+about to do?" he would have said had Mr. Prendergast admitted of
+speech from him. "Why make this terrible sacrifice? Matters have not
+come to that. There is no need for you to drag to the light this
+terrible fact. I will not divulge it--no not although you are hard
+upon me in regard to these terms of mine. I will still keep it to
+myself, and trust to you,--to you who are all so rich and able to
+pay, for what consideration you may please to give me." This was the
+state of his mind when Mrs. Jones's evidence was being slowly evoked
+from her; but it had undergone a considerable change before he
+reached Cork. By that time he had taught himself to understand that
+there was no longer a chance to him of any consideration whatever.
+Slowly he had brought it home to himself that these people had
+resolutely determined to blow up the ground on which they themselves
+stood. This he perceived was their honesty. He did not understand
+the nature of a feeling which could induce so fatal a suicide, but
+he did understand that the feeling was there, and that the suicide
+would be completed.
+
+And now what was he to do next in the way of earning his bread?
+Various thoughts ran through his brain, and different
+resolves--half-formed but still, perhaps, capable of shape--
+presented themselves to him for the future. It was still on the
+cards--on the cards, but barely so--that he might make money out of
+these people; but he must wait perhaps for weeks before he again
+commenced such an attempt. He might perhaps make money out of them,
+and be merciful to them at the same time;--not money by thousands
+and tens of thousands; that golden dream was gone for ever; but
+still money that might be comfortably luxurious as long as it could
+be made to last. But then on one special point he made a firm and
+final resolution,--whatever new scheme he might hatch he alone would
+manage. Never again would he call into his councils that son of his
+loins whose rapacious greed had, as he felt sure, brought upon him
+all this ruin. Had Aby not gone to Castle Richmond, with his cruelty
+and his greed, frightening to the very death the soul of that poor
+baronet by the enormity of his demands, Mr. Prendergast would not
+have been there. Of what further chance of Castle Richmond pickings
+there might be Aby should know nothing. He and his son would no
+longer hunt in couples. He would shake him off in that escape which
+they must both now make from Cork, and he would not care how long it
+might be before he again saw his countenance.
+
+But then that question of ready money; and that other question,
+perhaps as interesting, touching a criminal prosecution! How was he
+to escape if he could not raise the wind? And how could he raise the
+wind now that his milch-cow had run so dry? He had promised the
+O'Dwyers money that evening, and had struggled hard to make that
+promise with an easy face. He now had none to give them. His orders
+at the inn were treated almost with contempt. For the last three
+days they had given him what he wanted to eat and drink, but would
+hardly give him all that he wanted. When he called for brandy they
+brought him whisky, and it had only been by hard begging, and by
+oaths as to the promised money, that he had induced them to supply
+him with the car which had taken him on his fruitless journey to
+Castle Richmond. As he was driven up to the door in South Main
+Street, his heart was very sad on all these subjects.
+
+Aby was again sitting within the bar, but was no longer basking in
+the sunshine of Fanny's smiles. He was sitting there because Fanny
+had not yet mustered courage to turn him out. He was half-drunk, for
+it had been found impossible to keep spirits from him. And there had
+been hot words between him and Fanny, in which she had twitted him
+with his unpaid bill, and he had twitted her with her former love.
+And things had gone from bad to worse, and she had all but called in
+Tom for aid in getting quit of him; she had, however, refrained,
+thinking of the money that might be coming, and waiting also till
+her father should arrive. Fanny's love for Mr. Abraham Mollett had
+not been long lived.
+
+I will not describe another scene such as those which had of late
+been frequent in the Kanturk Hotel. The father and the son soon
+found themselves together in the small room in which they now both
+slept, at the top of the house, and Aby, tipsy as he was, understood
+the whole of what had happened at Castle Richmond. When he heard
+that Mr. Prendergast was seen in that room in lieu of Sir Thomas, he
+knew at once that the game had been abandoned. "But something may
+yet be done at 'Appy 'ouse," Aby said to himself, "only one must be
+deuced quick."
+
+The father and the son of course quarrelled frightfully, like dogs
+over the memory of a bone which had been arrested from the jaws of
+both of them. Aby said that his father had lost everything by his
+pusillanimity, and old Mollett declared that his son had destroyed
+all by his rashness. But we need not repeat their quarrels, nor
+repeat all that passed between them and Tom before food was
+forthcoming to satisfy the old man's wants. As he ate he calculated
+how much he might probably raise upon his watch towards taking him
+to London, and how best he might get off from Cork without leaving
+any scent in the nostrils of his son. His clothes he must leave
+behind him at the inn, at least all that he could not pack upon his
+person. Lately he had made himself comfortable in this respect, and
+he sorrowed over the fine linen which he had worn but once or twice
+since it had been bought with the last instalment from Sir Thomas.
+Nevertheless in this way he did make up his mind for the morrow's
+campaign.
+
+And Aby also made up his mind. Something, at any rate, he had
+learned from Fanny O'Dwyer in return for his honeyed words. When
+Herbert Fitzgerald should cease to be the heir to Castle Richmond,
+Owen Fitzgerald of Hap House would be the happy man. That knowledge
+was his own in absolute independence of his father, and there might
+still be time for him to use it. He knew well the locality of Hap
+House, and he would be there early on the following morning. These
+tidings had probably not as yet reached the owner of that blessed
+abode, and if he could be the first to tell him--! The game there
+too might be pretty enough, if it were played well, by such a
+master-hand as his own. Yes; he would be at Hap House early in the
+morning;--but then, how to get there?
+
+He left his father preparing for bed, and going down into the bar
+found Mr. O'Dwyer and his daughter there in close consultation. They
+were endeavouring to arrive, by their joint wisdom, at some
+conclusion as to what they should do with their two guests. Fanny
+was for turning them out at once. "The first loss is the least,"
+said she. "And they is so disrispectable. I niver know what they're
+afther, and always is expecting the p'lice will be down on them."
+But the father shook his head. He had done nothing wrong; the police
+could not hurt him; and thirty pounds, as he told his daughter, with
+much emphasis, was "a deuced sight of money." "The first loss is the
+least," said Fanny, perseveringly; and then Aby entered to them.
+
+"My father has made a mull of this matter again," said he, going at
+once into the middle of the subject. "'E 'as come back without a
+shiner."
+
+"I'll be bound he has," said Mr. O'Dwyer, sarcastically.
+
+"And that when 'e'd only got to go two or three miles further, and
+hall his troubles would have been over."
+
+"Troubles over, would they?" said Fanny, "I wish he'd have the
+goodness to get over his little troubles in this house, by paying us
+our bill. You'll have to walk if it's not done, and that to-morrow,
+Mr. Mollett; and so I tell you; and take nothing with you, I can
+tell you. Father'll have the police to see to that."
+
+"Don't you be so cruel now, Miss Fanny," said Aby, with a leering
+look. "I tell you what it is, Mr. O'Dwyer, I must go down again to
+them diggings very early to-morrow, starting, say, at four o'clock."
+
+"You'll not have a foot out of my stables," said Mr. O'Dwyer.
+"That's all."
+
+"Look here, Mr. O'Dwyer; there's been a sight of money due to us
+from those Fitzgerald people down there. You know 'em; and whether
+they're hable to pay or not. I won't deny but what father's 'ad the
+best of it,--'ad the best of it, and sent it trolling, bad luck to
+him. But there's no good looking hafter spilt milk; is there?"
+
+"If so be that Sir Thomas owed the likes of you money, he would have
+paid it without your tramping down there time after time to look for
+it. He's not one of that sort."
+
+"No, indeed," said Fanny; "and I don't believe anything about your
+seeing Sir Thomas."
+
+"Oh, we've seed him hoften enough. There's no mistake about that.
+But now--" and then, with a mysterious air and low voice, he
+explained to them, that this considerable balance of money still due
+to them was to be paid by the cousin, "Mr. Owen of 'Appy 'ouse." And
+to substantiate all his story, he exhibited a letter from Mr.
+Prendergast to his father, which some months since had intimated
+that a sum of money would be paid on behalf of Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald, if Mr. Mollett would call at Mr. Prendergast's office at
+a certain hour. The ultimate effect of all this was, that the car
+was granted for the morning, with certain dire threats as to any
+further breach of engagement.
+
+Very early on the following morning Aby was astir, hoping that he
+might manage to complete his not elaborate toilet without disturbing
+his father's slumbers. For, it must be known, he had been very
+urgent with the O'Dwyers as to the necessity of keeping this journey
+of his a secret from his "governor." But the governor was wide
+awake, looking at him out of the corner of his closed eye whenever
+his back was turned, and not caring much what he was about to do
+with himself. Mollett pere wished to be left alone for that morning,
+that he also might play his little game in his own solitary fashion,
+and was not at all disposed to question the movements of his son.
+
+At about five Aby started for Hap House. His toilet, I have said,
+was not elaborate; but in this I have perhaps wronged him. Up there
+in the bed-room he did not waste much time over his soap and water;
+but he was aware that first impressions are everything, and that one
+young man should appear smart and clever before another if he wished
+to carry any effect with him; so he took his brush and comb in his
+pocket, and a pot of grease with which he was wont to polish his
+long side-locks, and he hurriedly grasped up his pins, and his
+rings, and the satin stock which Fanny in her kinder mood had folded
+for him; and then, during his long journey to Hap House, he did
+perform a toilet which may, perhaps, be fairly called elaborate.
+
+There was a long, tortuous, narrow avenue, going from the Mallow and
+Kanturk road down to Hap House, which impressed Aby with the idea
+that the man on whom he was now about to call was also a big
+gentleman, and made him more uneasy than he would have been had he
+entered a place with less pretence. There is a story current, that
+in the west of England the grandeur of middle-aged maiden ladies is
+measured by the length of the tail of their cats; and Aby had a
+perhaps equally correct idea, that the length of the private drive
+up to a gentleman's house, was a fair criterion of the splendour of
+his position. If this man had about him as much grandeur as Sir
+Thomas himself, would he be so anxious as Aby had hoped to obtain
+the additional grandeur of Sir Thomas? It was in that direction that
+his mind was operating when he got down from the car and rang at the
+door-bell.
+
+Mr. Owen, as everybody called him, was at home, but not down; and so
+Aby was shown into the dining-room. It was now considerably past
+nine; and the servant told him that his master must be there soon,
+as he had to eat his breakfast and be at the hunt by eleven. The
+servant at Hap House was more unsophisticated than those at Castle
+Richmond, and Aby's personal adornments had had their effect. He
+found himself sitting in the room with the cups and saucers,--aye,
+and with the silver teaspoons; and began again to trust that his
+mission might be successful.
+
+And then the door opened, and a man appeared, clad from top to toe
+in hunting costume. This was not Owen Fitzgerald, but his friend
+Captain Donnellan. As it had happened, Captain Donnellan was the
+only guest who had graced the festivities of Hap House on the
+previous evening; and now he appeared at the breakfast table before
+his host. Aby got up from his chair when the gentleman entered, and
+was proceeding to business; but the Captain gave him to understand
+that the master of the house was not yet in presence, and so Aby sat
+down again. What was he to do when the master did arrive? His story
+was not one which would well bear telling before a third person.
+
+And then, while Captain Donnellan was scanning this visitor to his
+friend Owen, and bethinking himself whether he might not be a
+sheriff's officer, and whether if so some notice ought not to be
+conveyed upstairs to the master of the house, another car was driven
+up to the front door. In this case the arrival was from Castle
+Richmond, and the two servants knew each other well. "Thady," said
+Richard, with much authority in his voice, "this gentl'man is Mr.
+Prendergast from our place, and he must see the masther before he
+goes to the hunt." "Faix and the masther'll have something to do
+this blessed morning," said Thady, as he showed Mr. Prendergast also
+into the dining-room, and went upstairs to inform his master that
+there was yet another gentleman come upon business. "The Captain has
+got 'em both to hisself," said Thady, as he closed the door.
+
+The name of Mr. "Pendhrergrast," as the Irish servants generally
+called him, was quite unknown to the owner of Hap House, as was also
+that of Mr. Mollett, which had been brought up to him the first of
+the two; but Owen began to think that there must be something very
+unusual in a day so singularly ushered in to him. Callers at Hap
+House on business were very few, unless when tradesmen in want of
+money occasionally dropped in upon him. But now that he was so
+summoned Owen began to bestir himself with his boots and breeches. A
+gentleman's costume for a hunting morning is always a slow
+one--sometimes so slow and tedious as to make him think of
+forswearing such articles of dress for all future ages. But now he
+did bestir himself,--in a moody melancholy sort of manner; for his
+manner in all things latterly had become moody and melancholy.
+
+In the mean time Captain Donnellan and the two strangers sat almost
+in silence in the dining-room. The Captain, though he did not
+perhaps know much of things noticeable in this world, did know
+something of a gentleman, and was therefore not led away, as poor
+Thady had been, by Aby's hat and rings. He had stared Aby full in
+the face when he entered the room and having explained that he was
+not the master of the house, had not vouchsafed another word. But
+then he had also seen that Mr. Prendergast was of a different class,
+and had said a civil word or two, asking him to come near the fire,
+and suggesting that Owen would be down in less than five minutes.
+"But the old cock wouldn't crow," as he afterwards remarked to his
+friend, and so they all three sat in silence, the Captain being very
+busy about his knees, as hunting gentlemen sometimes are when they
+come down to bachelor breakfasts.
+
+And then at last Owen Fitzgerald entered the room. He has been
+described as a handsome man, but in no dress did he look so well as
+when equipped for a day's sport. And what dress that Englishmen ever
+wear is so handsome as this? Or we may perhaps say what other dress
+does English custom allow them that is in any respect not the
+reverse of handsome. We have come to be so dingy,--in our taste I
+was going to say, but it is rather in our want of taste,--so
+careless of any of the laws of beauty in the folds and lines and
+hues of our dress, so opposed to grace in the arrangement of our
+persons, that it is not permitted to the ordinary English gentleman
+to be anything else but ugly. Chimney-pot hats, swallow-tailed
+coats, and pantaloons that fit nothing, came creeping in upon us,
+one after the other, while the Georges reigned--creeping in upon us
+with such pictures as we painted under the reign of West, and such
+houses as we built under the reign of Nash, till the English eye
+required to rest on that which was constrained, dull, and graceless.
+For the last two score of years it has come to this, that if a man
+go in handsome attire he is a popinjay and a vain fool; and as it is
+better to be ugly than to be accounted vain I would not counsel a
+young friend to leave the beaten track on the strength of his own
+judgment. But not the less is the beaten track to be condemned, and
+abandoned, and abolished, if such be in any way possible. Beauty is
+good in all things; and I cannot but think that those old Venetian
+senators, and Florentine men of Council, owed somewhat of their
+country's pride and power to the manner in which they clipped their
+beards and wore their flowing garments.
+
+But an Englishman may still make himself brave when he goes forth
+into the hunting field. Custom there allows him colour, and garments
+that fit his limbs. Strength is the outward characteristic of
+manhood, and at the covert-side he may appear strong. Look at men as
+they walk along Fleet-street, and ask yourself whether any outward
+sign of manhood or strength can be seen there. And of gentle manhood
+outward dignity should be the trade mark. I will not say that such
+outward dignity is incompatible with a black hat and plaid trousers,
+for the eye instructed by habit will search out dignity for itself
+wherever it may truly exist, let it be hidden by what vile covering
+it may. But any man who can look well at his club, will look better
+as he clusters round the hounds; while many a one who is comely
+there, is mean enough as he stands on the hearth-rug before his club
+fire. In my mind men, like churches and books, and women too, should
+be brave, not mean, in their outward garniture.
+
+And Owen, as I have said, was brave as he walked into his
+dining-room. The sorrow which weighed on his heart had not wrinkled
+his brow, but had given him a set dignity of purpose. His tall
+figure, which his present dress allowed to be seen, was perfect in
+its symmetry of strength. His bright chestnut hair clustered round
+his forehead, and his eye shone like that of a hawk. They must have
+been wrong who said that he commonly spent his nights over the
+wine-cup. That pleasure always leaves its disgusting traces round
+the lips; and Owen Fitzgerald's lips were as full and lusty as
+Apollo's. Mollett, as he saw him, was stricken with envy. "If I
+could only get enough money out of this affair to look like that,"
+was his first thought, as his eye fell on the future heir; not
+understanding, poor wretch that he was, that all the gold of
+California could not bring him one inch nearer to the goal he aimed
+at. I think I have said before, that your silk purse will not get
+itself made out of that coarse material with which there are so many
+attempts to manufacture that article. And Mr. Prendergast rose from
+his chair when he saw him, with a respect that was almost
+involuntary. He had not heard men speak well of Owen
+Fitzgerald;--not that ill-natured things had been said by the family
+at Castle Richmond, but circumstances had prevented the possibility
+of their praising him. If a relative or friend be spoken of without
+praise, he is, in fact, censured. From what he had heard he had
+certainly not expected a man who would look so noble as did the
+owner of Hap House, who now came forward to ask him his business.
+
+Both Mr. Prendergast and Aby Mollett rose at the same time. Since
+the arrival of the latter gentleman, Aby had been wondering who he
+might be, but no idea that he was that lawyer from Castle Richmond
+had entered his head. That he was a stranger like himself, Aby saw;
+but he did not connect him with his own business. Indeed he had not
+yet realized the belief, though his father had done so, that the
+truth would be revealed by those at Castle Richmond to him at Hap
+House. His object now was that the old gentleman should say his say
+and begone, leaving him to dispose of the other young man in the
+top-boots as best he might. But then, as it happened, that was also
+Mr. Prendergast's line of action.
+
+"Gentlemen," said Owen, "I beg your pardon for keeping you waiting;
+but the fact is that I am so seldom honoured in this way in a
+morning, that I was hardly ready. Donnellan, there's the tea; don't
+mind waiting. These gentlemen will perhaps join us." And then he
+looked hard at Aby, as though he trusted in Providence that no such
+profanation would be done to his tablecloth.
+
+"Thank you, I have breakfasted," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"And so 'ave I," said Aby, who had eaten a penny loaf in the car,
+and would have been delighted to sit down at that rich table. But he
+was a little beside himself, and not able to pluck up courage for
+such an effort.
+
+"I don't know whether you two gentlemen have come about the same
+business," said Owen, looking from one to the other.
+
+"No," said Mr. Prendergast, very confidently, but not very
+correctly. "I wish to speak to you, Mr. Fitzgerald, for a few
+minutes. but my business with you is quite private."
+
+"So is mine," said Aby, "very private; very private indeed."
+
+"Well, gentlemen, I have just half an hour in which to eat my
+breakfast, attend to business, get on my horse and leave the house.
+Out of that twenty-five minutes are very much at your service.
+Donnellan, I beg your pardon. Do pitch into the broiled bones while
+they are hot, never mind me. And now, gentlemen, if you will walk
+with me into the other room. First come first served: that I suppose
+should be the order." And he opened the door and stood with it ajar
+in his hand.
+
+"I will wait, Mr. Fitzgerald, if you please," said Mr. Prendergast;
+and as he spoke he motioned Mollett with his hand to go to the door.
+
+"Oh! I can wait, sir, I'd rather wait, sir. I would indeed," said
+Aby. "My business is a little particular, and if you'll go on, sir,
+I'll take up with the gen'leman as soon as you've done, sir."
+
+But Mr. Prendergast was accustomed to have his own way. "I should
+prefer that you should go first, sir. And to tell the truth, Mr.
+Fitzgerald, what I have to say to you will take some time. It is of
+much importance, to yourself and to others; and I fear that you will
+probably find that it will detain you from your amusement to-day."
+
+Owen looked black as he heard this. The hounds were going to draw a
+covert of his own; and he was not in the habit of remaining away
+from the drawing of any coverts belonging to himself or others, on
+any provocation whatever. "That will be rather hard," said he,
+"considering that I do not know any more than the man in the moon
+what you've come about."
+
+"You shall be the sole judge yourself, sir, of the importance of my
+business with you," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"Well, Mr.--I forget your name," said Owen.
+
+"My name's Mollett," said Aby. Whereupon Mr. Prendergast looked up
+at him very sharply, but he said nothing.--He said nothing, but he
+looked very sharply indeed. He now knew well who this man was, and
+guessed with tolerable accuracy the cause of his visit. But,
+nevertheless, at the moment he said nothing.
+
+"Come along, then, Mr. Mollett. I hope your affair is not likely to
+be a very long one also. Perhaps you'll excuse my having a cup of
+tea sent in to me as you talk to me. There is nothing like saving
+time when such very important business is on the tapis. Donnellan,
+send Thady in with a cup of tea, like a good fellow. Now, Mr.
+Mollett."
+
+Mr. Mollett rose slowly from his chair, and followed his host. He
+would have given all he possessed in the world, and that was very
+little, to have had the coast clear. But in such an emergency, what
+was he to do? By the time he had reached the door of the
+drawing-room, he had all but made up his mind to tell Fitzgerald
+that, seeing there was so much other business on hand this morning
+at Hap House, this special piece of business of his must stand over.
+But then, how could he go back to Cork empty-handed? So he followed
+Owen into the room, and there opened his budget with what courage he
+had left to him.
+
+Captain Donnellan, as he employed himself on the broiled bones,
+twice invited Mr. Prendergast to assist him; but in vain. Donnellan
+remained there, waiting for Owen, till eleven; and then got on his
+horse. "You'll tell Fitzgerald, will you, that I've started? He'll
+see nothing of to-day's hunt; that's clear."
+
+"I don't think he will," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV
+
+AFTER BREAKFAST AT HAP HOUSE
+
+
+
+
+
+"I don't think he will," said Mr. Prendergast; and as he spoke,
+Captain Donnellan's ear could detect that there was something
+approaching to sarcasm in the tone of the old man's voice. The
+Captain was quite sure that his friend would not be even at the heel
+of the hunt that day; and without further compunction proceeded to
+fasten his buckskin gloves round his wrists. The meet was so near to
+them, that they had both intended to ride their own hunters from the
+door; and the two nags were now being led up and down upon the
+gravel.
+
+But at this moment a terrible noise was heard to take place in the
+hall. There was a rush and crushing there which made even Mr.
+Prendergast to jump from his chair, and drove Captain Donnellan to
+forget his gloves and run to the door.
+
+It was as though all the winds of heaven were being driven down the
+passage, and as though each separate wind was shod with heavy-heeled
+boots. Captain Donnellan ran to the door, and Mr. Prendergast with
+slower steps followed him. When it was opened, Owen was to be seen
+in the hall, apparently in a state of great excitement; and the
+gentleman whom he had lately asked to breakfast,--he was to be seen
+also, in a position of unmistakable discomfort. He was at that
+moment proceeding, with the utmost violence, into a large round bed
+of bushes, which stood in the middle of the great sweep before the
+door of the house, his feet just touching the ground as he went; and
+then, having reached his bourne, he penetrated face foremost into
+the thicket, and in an instant disappeared. He had been kicked out
+of the house. Owen Fitzgerald had taken him by the shoulders, with a
+run along the passage and hall, and having reached the door, had
+applied the flat of his foot violently to poor Aby's back, and sent
+him flying down the stone steps. And now, as Captain Donnellan and
+Mr. Prendergast stood looking on, Mr. Mollett junior buried himself
+altogether out of sight among the shrubs.
+
+"You have done for that fellow, at any rate, Owen," said Captain
+Donnellan, glancing for a moment at Mr. Prendergast. "I should say
+that he will never get out of that alive."
+
+"Not if he wait till I pick him out," said Owen, breathing very hard
+after his exertion. "An infernal scoundrel! And now, Mr.
+Prendergast, if you are ready, sir, I am." It was as much as he
+could do to finish these few words with that sang froid which he
+desired to assume, so violent was his attempt at breathing after his
+late exercise.
+
+It was impossible not to conceive the idea that, as one disagreeable
+visitor had been disposed of in a somewhat summary fashion, so might
+be the other also. Mr. Prendergast did not look like a man who was
+in the habit of leaving gentlemen's houses in the manner just now
+adopted by Mr. Mollett; but nevertheless, as they had come together,
+both unwished for and unwelcome, Captain Donnellan did for a moment
+bethink himself whether there might not be more of such fun, if he
+remained there on the spot. At any rate, it would not do for him to
+go to the hunt while such deeds as these were being done. It might
+be that his assistance would be wanted.
+
+Mr. Prendergast smiled, with a saturnine and somewhat bitter
+smile--the nearest approach to a laugh in which he was known to
+indulge,--for the same notion came also into his head. "He has
+disposed of him, and now he is thinking how he will dispose of me."
+Such was Mr. Prendergast's thought about the matter; and that made
+him smile. And then, too, he was pleased at what he had seen. That
+this Mollett was the son of that other Mollett, with whom he had
+been closeted at Castle Richmond, was plain enough; it was plain
+enough also to him, used as he was to trace out in his mind the
+courses of action which men would follow, that Mollett junior,
+having heard of his father's calamitous failure at Castle Richmond,
+had come down to Hap House to see what he could make out of the
+hitherto unconscious heir. It had been matter of great doubt with
+Mr. Prendergast, when he first heard young Mollett's name mentioned,
+whether or no he would allow him to make his attempt. He, Mr.
+Prendergast, could by a word have spoilt the game; but acting, as he
+was forced to act, on the spur of the moment, he resolved to permit
+Mr. Mollett junior to play out his play. He would be yet in time to
+prevent any ill result to Mr. Fitzgerald, should that gentleman be
+weak enough to succumb to any such ill results. As things had now
+turned out Mr. Prendergast rejoiced that Mr. Mollett junior had been
+permitted to play out his play. "And now, Mr. Prendergast, if you
+are ready, I am," said Owen.
+
+"Perhaps we had better first pick up the gentleman among the trees,"
+said Mr. Prendergast. And he and Captain Donnellan went down into
+the bushes.
+
+"Do as you please about that," said Owen. "I have touched him once
+and shall not touch him again." And he walked back into the
+dining-room.
+
+One of the grooms who were leading the horses had now gone to the
+assistance of the fallen hero; and as Captain Donnellan also had
+already penetrated as far as Aby's shoulders, Mr. Prendergast,
+thinking that he was not needed, returned also to the house. "I hope
+he is not seriously hurt," he said.
+
+"Not he," said Owen. "Those sort of men are as used to be kicked, as
+girls are to be kissed; and it comes as naturally to them. But
+anything short of having his bones broken will be less than he
+deserves."
+
+"May I ask what was the nature of his offence?"
+
+Owen remained silent for a moment, looking his guest full in the
+face. "Well; not exactly," said he. "He has been talking of people
+of whom he knows nothing, but it would not be well for me to repeat
+what he has said to a perfect stranger."
+
+"Quite right, Mr. Fitzgerald; it would not be well. But there can be
+no harm in my repeating it to you. He came here to get money from
+you for certain tidings which he brought; tidings which if true
+would be of great importance to you. As I take it, however, he has
+altogether failed in his object."
+
+"And how do you come to know all this, sir?"
+
+"Merely from having heard that man mention his own name. I also have
+come with the same tidings; and as I ask for no money for
+communicating them, you may believe them to be true on my telling."
+
+"What tidings?" asked Owen, with a frown, and an angry jerk in his
+voice. No remotest notion had yet come in upon his mind that there
+was any truth in the story that had been told him. He had looked
+upon it all as a lie, and had regarded Mollett as a sorry knave who
+had come to him with a poor and low attempt at raising a few pounds.
+And even now he did not believe. Mr. Prendergast's words had been
+too sudden to produce belief of so great a fact, and his first
+thought was that an endeavour was being made to fool him.
+
+"Those tidings which that man has told you," said Mr. Prendergast,
+solemnly. "That you should not have believed them from him shows
+only your discretion. But from me you may believe them. I have come
+from Castle Richmond, and am here as a messenger from Sir
+Thomas,--from Sir Thomas and from his son. When the matter became
+clear to them both, then it was felt that you also should be made
+acquainted with it."
+
+Owen Fitzgerald now sat down, and looked up into the lawyer's face,
+staring at him. I may say that the power of saying much was for the
+moment taken away from him by the words that he heard. What! was it
+really possible that that title, that property, that place of honour
+in the country was to be his when one frail old man should drop
+away? And then again was it really true that all this immeasurable
+misery was to fall--had fallen--upon that family whom he had once
+known so well? It was but yesterday that he had been threatening all
+manner of evil to his cousin Herbert; and had his threats been
+proved true so quickly? But there was no shadow of triumph in his
+feelings. Owen Fitzgerald was a man of many faults. He was reckless,
+passionate, prone to depreciate the opinion of others, extravagant
+in his thoughts and habits, ever ready to fight, both morally and
+physically, those who did not at a moment's notice agree with him.
+He was a man who would at once make up his mind that the world was
+wrong when the world condemned him, and who would not in compliance
+with any argument allow himself to be so. But he was not avaricious,
+nor cruel, nor self-seeking, nor vindictive. In his anger he could
+pronounce all manner of ill things against his enemy, as he had
+pronounced some ill things against Herbert; but it was not in him to
+keep up a sustained wish that those ill things should really come to
+pass. This news which he now heard, and which he did not yet fully
+credit, struck him with awe, but created no triumph in his bosom. He
+realized the catastrophe as it affected his cousins of Castle
+Richmond rather than as it affected himself.
+
+"Do you mean to say that Lady Fitzgerald--" and then he stopped
+himself. He had not the courage to ask the question which was in his
+mind. Could it really be the case that Lady Fitzgerald,--that she
+whom all the world had so long honoured under that name, was in
+truth the wife of that man's father,--of the father of that wretch
+whom he had just spurned from his house? The tragedy was so deep
+that he could not believe in it.
+
+"We fear that it is so, Mr. Fitzgerald," said Mr. Prendergast. "That
+it certainly is so I cannot say. And therefore, if I may take the
+liberty to give you counsel, I would advise you not to make too
+certain of this change in your prospects."
+
+"Too certain!" said he, with a bitter laugh. "Do you suppose then
+that I would wish to see all this ruin accomplished? Heavens and
+earth! Lady Fitzgerald--! I cannot believe it."
+
+And then Captain Donnellan also returned to the room. "Fitzgerald,"
+said he, "what the mischief are we to do with this fellow? He says
+that he can't walk, and he bleeds from his face like a pig."
+
+"What fellow? Oh, do what you like with him. Here: give him a pound
+note, and let him go to the d----. And Donnellan, for heaven's sake
+go to Cecilstown at once. Do not wait for me. I have business that
+will keep me here all day."
+
+"But I do not know what to do with this fellow that's bleeding,"
+said the captain, piteously, as he took the proffered note. "If he
+puts up with a pound note for what you've done to him, he's softer
+than what I take him for."
+
+"He will be very glad to be allowed to escape without being given up
+to the police," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"But I don't know what to do with him," said Captain Donnellan. "He
+says that he can't stand."
+
+"Then lay him down on the dunghill," said Owen Fitzgerald; "but for
+heaven's sake do not let him interrupt me. And, Donnellan, you will
+altogether lose the day if you stay any longer." Whereupon the
+captain, seeing that in very truth he was not wanted, did take
+himself off, casting as he went one farewell look on Aby as he lay
+groaning on the turf on the far side of the tuft of bushes.
+
+"He's kilt intirely, I'm thinking, yer honor," said Thady, who was
+standing over him on the other side.
+
+"He'll come to life again before dinner-time," said the Captain.
+
+"Oh, in course he'll do that, yer honor," said Thady; and then added
+sotto voce, to himself, as the captain rode down the avenue, "Faix,
+an' I don't know about that. Shure an' it's the masther has a heavy
+hand." And then Thady stood for a while perplexed, endeavouring to
+reanimate Aby by a sight of the pound note which he held out visibly
+between his thumb and fingers.
+
+And now Mr. Prendergast and Owen were again alone. "And what am I to
+do?" said Owen, after a pause of a minute or two; and he asked the
+question with a serious, solemn voice.
+
+"Just for the present--for the next day or two--I think that you
+should do nothing. As soon as the first agony of this time is over
+at Castle Richmond, I think that Herbert should see you. It would be
+very desirable that he and you should take in concert such
+proceedings as will certainly become necessary. The absolute proof
+of the truth of this story must be obtained. You understand, I hope,
+Mr. Fitzgerald, that the case still admits of doubt."
+
+Owen nodded his head impatiently, as though it were needless on the
+part of Mr. Prendergast to insist upon this. He did not wish to take
+it for true a moment sooner than was necessary.
+
+"It is my duty to give you this caution. Many lawyers--I presume you
+know that I am a lawyer--"
+
+"I did not know it," said Owen; "but it makes no difference."
+
+"Thank you; that's very kind," said Mr. Prendergast; but the sarcasm
+was altogether lost upon his hearer. "Some lawyers, as I was saying,
+would in such a case have advised their clients to keep all their
+suspicions, nay all their knowledge, to themselves. Why play the
+game of an adversary? they would ask. But I have thought it better
+that we should have no adversary."
+
+"And you will have none," said Owen; "none in me, at least."
+
+"I am much gratified in so perceiving, and in having such evidence
+that my advice has not been indiscreet. It occurred to me that if
+you received the first intimation of these circumstances from other
+sources, you would be bound on your own behalf to employ an agent to
+look after your own interests."
+
+"I should have done nothing of the kind," said Owen.
+
+"Ah, but, my dear young friend, in such a case it would have been
+your duty to do so."
+
+"Then I should have neglected my duty. And do you tell Herbert this
+from me, that let the truth be what it may, I shall never interrupt
+him in his title or his property. It is not there that I shall look
+either for justice or revenge. He will understand what I mean."
+
+But Mr. Prendergast did not, by any means; nor did he enter into the
+tone of Owen Fitzgerald's mind. They were both just men, but just in
+an essentially different manner. The justice of Mr. Prendergast had
+come of thought and education. As a young man, when entering on his
+profession, he was probably less just than he was now. He had
+thought about matters of law and equity, till thought had shown to
+him the beauty of equity as it should be practised,--often by the
+aid of law, and not unfrequently in spite of law. Such was the
+justice of Mr. Prendergast. That of Owen Fitzgerald had come of
+impulse and nature, and was the justice of a very young man rather
+than of a very wise one. That title and property did not, as he
+felt, of justice belong to him, but to his cousin. What difference
+could it make in the true justice of things, whether or no that
+wretched man was still alive whom all the world had regarded as
+dead? In justice he ought to be dead. Now that this calamity of the
+man's life had fallen upon Sir Thomas and Lady Fitzgerald and his
+cousin Herbert, it would not be for him to aggravate it by seizing
+upon a heritage which might possibly accrue to him under the letter
+of the world's law, but which could not accrue to him under heaven's
+law. Such was the justice of Owen Fitzgerald; and we may say this of
+it in its dispraise, as comparing it with that other justice, that
+whereas that of Mr. Prendergast would wear for ever, through ages
+and ages, that other justice of Owen's would hardly have stood the
+pull of a ten years' struggle. When children came to him, would he
+not have thought of what might have been theirs by right; and then
+have thought of what ought to be theirs by right; and so on?
+
+But in speaking of justice, he had also spoken of revenge, and Mr.
+Prendergast was altogether in the dark. What revenge? He did not
+know that poor Owen had lost a love, and that Herbert had found it.
+In the midst of all the confused thoughts which this astounding
+intelligence had brought upon him, Owen still thought of his love.
+There Herbert had robbed him--robbed him by means of his wealth; and
+in that matter he desired justice--justice or revenge. He wanted
+back his love. Let him have that and Herbert might yet be welcome to
+his title and estates.
+
+Mr. Prendergast remained there for some half-hour longer, explaining
+what ought to be done, and how it ought to be done. Of course he
+combated that idea of Owen's, that the property might be allowed to
+remain in the hands of the wrong heir. Had that been consonant with
+his ideas of justice he would not have made his visit to Hap House
+this morning. Right must have its way, and if it should be that Lady
+Fitzgerald's marriage with Sir Thomas had not been legal, Owen, on
+Sir Thomas's death, must become Sir Owen, and Herbert could not
+become Sir Herbert. So much to the mind of Mr. Prendergast was as
+clear as crystal. Let justice be done, even though these Castle
+Richmond heavens should fall in ruins.
+
+And then he took his departure, leaving Owen to his solitude, much
+perplexed. "And where is that man?" Mr. Prendergast asked, as he got
+on to his car.
+
+"Bedad thin, yer honor, he's very bad intirely. He's jist sitthing
+over the kitchen fire, moaning and croning this way and that, but
+sorrow a word he's spoke since the masther hoisted him out o' the
+big hall door. And thin for blood--why, saving yer honer's presence,
+he's one mash of gore."
+
+"You'd better wash his face for him, and give him a little tea,"
+said Mr. Prendergast, and then he drove away.
+
+And strange ideas floated across Owen Fitzgerald's brain as he sat
+there alone, in his hunting gear, leaning on the still covered
+breakfast-table. They floated across his brain backwards and
+forwards, and at last remained there, taking almost the form of a
+definite purpose. He would make a bargain with Herbert, let each of
+them keep that which was fairly his own; let Herbert have all the
+broad lands of Castle Richmond; let him have the title, the seat in
+parliament, and the county honour; but for him, Owen--let him have
+Clara Desmond. He desired nothing that was not fairly his own; but
+as his own he did regard her, and without her he did not know how to
+face the future of his life. And in suggesting this arrangement to
+himself, he did not altogether throw over her feelings; he did take
+into account her heart, though he did not take into account her
+worldly prospects. She had loved him--him--Owen; and he would not
+teach himself to believe that she did not love him still. Her mother
+had been too powerful for her, and she had weakly yielded, but as to
+her heart--Owen could not bring himself to believe that that was
+gone from him.
+
+They two would make a bargain,--he and his cousin. Honour and
+renown, and the money and the title would be everything to his
+cousin. Herbert had been brought up to expect these things, and all
+the world around him had expected them for him. It would be terrible
+to him to find himself robbed of them. But the loss of Clara Desmond
+was equally terrible to Owen Fitzgerald. He allowed his heart to
+fill itself with a romantic sense of honour, teaching him that it
+behoved him as a man not to give up his love. Without her he would
+live disgraced in his own estimation; but who would not think the
+better of him for refraining from the possession of those Castle
+Richmond acres? Yes; he would make a bargain with Herbert. Who was
+there in the world to deny his right to do so?
+
+As he sat revolving these things in his mind, he suddenly heard a
+rushing sound, as of many horsemen down the avenue, and going to the
+window, he saw two or three leading men of the hunt, accompanied by
+the grey-haired old huntsman; and through and about and under the
+horsemen were the dogs, running in and out of the laurels which
+skirted the road, with their noses down, giving every now and then
+short yelps as they caught up the uncertain scent from the leaves on
+the ground, and hurried on upon the trail of their game.
+
+"Yo ho! to him, Messenger; hark to him Maybird; good bitch,
+Merrylass. He's down here, gen'lemen, and he'll never get away
+alive. He came to a bad place when he looked out for going to ground
+anywhere near Mr. Owen."
+
+And then there came, fast trotting down through the other horsemen,
+making his way eagerly to the front, a stout heavy man, with a
+florid handsome face and eager eye. He might be some fifty years of
+age, but no lad there of three-and-twenty was so anxious and
+impetuous as he. He was riding a large-boned, fast-trotting bay
+horse, that pressed on as eagerly as his rider. As he hurried
+forward all made way for him, till he was close to the shrubs in the
+front of the house.
+
+"Bless my soul, gentlemen," he said, in an angry voice, "how, in the
+name of all that's good, are hounds to hunt if you press them down
+the road in that way? By heavens, Barry, you are enough to drive a
+man wild. Yoicks, Merrylass! there it is, Pat;"--Pat was the
+huntsman--"outside the low wall there, down towards the river." This
+was Sam O'Grady, the master of the Duhallow hounds, the god of
+Owen's idolatry. No better fellow ever lived, and no master of
+hounds, so good; such at least was the opinion common among Duhallow
+sportsmen.
+
+"Yes, yer honer,--he did skirt round there, I knows that; but he's
+been among them laurels at the bottom, and he'll be about the place
+and outhouses somewhere. There's a drain here that I knows on, and
+he knows on. But Mr. Owen, he knows on it too; and there ain't a
+chance for him." So argued Pat, the Duhallow huntsman, the
+experienced craft of whose aged mind enabled him to run counter to
+the cutest dodges of the cutest fox in that and any of the three
+neighbouring baronies.
+
+And now the sweep before the door was crowded with red coats; and
+Owen, looking from his dining-room window, felt that he must take
+some step. As an ordinary rule, had the hunt thus drifted near his
+homestead, he would have been off his horse and down among his
+bottles, sending up sherry and cherry-brandy; and there would have
+been comfortable drink in plenty, and cold meat, perhaps, not in
+plenty; and every one would have been welcome in and out of the
+house. But now there was that at his heart which forbade him to mix
+with the men who knew him so well, and among whom he was customarily
+so loudly joyous. Dressed as he was, he could not go among them
+without explaining why he had remained at home; and as to that, he
+felt that he was not able to give any explanation at the present
+moment.
+
+"What's the matter with Owen?" said one fellow to Captain Donnellan.
+
+"Upon my word I hardly know. Two chaps came to him this morning,
+before he was up; about business, they said. He nearly murdered one
+of them out of hand; and I believe that he's locked up somewhere
+with the other this minute."
+
+But in the mean time a servant came up to Mr. O'Grady, and, touching
+his hat, asked the master of the hunt to go into the house for a
+moment; and then Mr. O'Grady, dismounting, entered in through the
+front door. He was only there two minutes, for his mind was still
+outside, among the laurels, with the fox; but as he put his foot
+again into the stirrup, he said to those around him that they must
+hurry away, and not disturb Owen Fitzgerald that day. It may,
+therefore, easily be imagined that the mystery would spread quickly
+through that portion of the county of Cork.
+
+They must hurry away;--but not before they could give an account of
+their fox. Neither for gods nor men must he be left, as long as his
+skin was whole above ground. There is an importance attaching to the
+pursuit of a fox, which gives it a character quite distinct from
+that of any other amusement which men follow in these realms. It
+justifies almost anything that men can do, and that at any place and
+in any season. There is about it a sanctity which forbids
+interruption, and makes its votaries safe under any circumstances of
+trespass or intrusion. A man in a hunting county who opposes the
+county hunt must be a misanthrope, willing to live in seclusion,
+fond of being in Coventry, and in love with the enmity of his
+fellow-creatures. There are such men, but they are regarded as
+lepers by those around them. All this adds to the nobleness of the
+noble sport, and makes it worthy of a man's energies.
+
+And then the crowd of huntsmen hurried round from the front of the
+house to a paddock at the back, and then again through the stable
+yard to the front. The hounds were about--here, there, and
+everywhere, as any one ignorant of the craft would have said, but
+still always on the scent of that doomed beast. From one thicket to
+another he tried to hide himself, but the moist leaves of the
+underwood told quickly of his whereabouts. He tried every hole and
+cranny about the house, but every hole and corner had been stopped
+by Owen's jealous care. He would have lived disgraced for ever in
+his own estimation, had a fox gone to ground anywhere about his
+domicile. At last a loud whoop was heard just in front of the hall
+door. The poor fox, with his last gasp of strength, had betaken
+himself to the thicket before the door, and there the hounds had
+killed him, at the very spot on which Aby Mollett had fallen.
+
+Standing well back from the window, still thinking of Clara Desmond,
+Owen Fitzgerald saw the fate of the hunted animal; he saw the pate
+and tail severed from the carcase by old Pat, and the body thrown to
+the hounds,--a ceremony over which he had presided so many scores of
+times; and then, when the hounds had ceased to growl over the bloody
+fragments, he saw the hunt move away, back along the avenue to the
+high road. All this he saw, but still he was thinking of Clara
+Desmond.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXV
+
+A MUDDY WALK ON A WET MORNING
+
+
+
+
+
+All that day of the hunt was passed very quietly at Castle Richmond.
+Herbert did not once leave the house, having begged Mr. Somers to
+make his excuse at a Relief Committee which it would have been his
+business to attend. A great portion of the day he spent with his
+father, who lay all but motionless, in a state that was apparently
+half comatose. During all those long hours very little was said
+between them about this tragedy of their family. Why should more be
+said now; now that the worst had befallen them--all that worst, to
+hide which Sir Thomas had endured such superhuman agony? And then
+four or five times during the day he went to his mother, but with
+her he did not stay long. To her he could hardly speak upon any
+subject, for to her as yet the story had not been told.
+
+And she, when he thus came to her from time to time, with a soft
+word or two, or a softer kiss, would ask him no question. She knew
+that he had learned the whole, and knew also from the solemn cloud
+on his brow that that whole must be very dreadful. Indeed we may
+surmise that her woman's heart had by this time guessed somewhat of
+the truth. But she would inquire of no one. Jones, she was sure,
+knew it all, but she did not ask a single question of her servant.
+It would be told to her when it was fitting. Why should she move in
+the matter?
+
+Whenever Herbert entered her room she tried to receive him with
+something of a smile. It was clear enough that she was always glad
+of his coming, and that she made some little show of welcoming him.
+A book was always put away, very softly and by the slightest motion;
+but Herbert well knew what that book was, and whence his mother
+sought that strength which enabled her to live through such an
+ordeal as this.
+
+And his sisters were to be seen, moving slowly about the house like
+the very ghosts of their former selves. Their voices were hardly
+heard; no ring of customary laughter ever came from the room in
+which they sat, when they passed their brother in the house they
+hardly dared to whisper to him. As to sitting down at table now with
+Mr. Prendergast, that effort was wholly abandoned; they kept
+themselves even from the sound of his footsteps.
+
+Aunt Letty perhaps spoke more than the others, but what could she
+speak to the purpose? "Herbert," she once said, as she caught him
+close by the door of the library and almost pulled him into the
+room--"Herbert, I charge you to tell me what all this is!"
+
+"I can tell you nothing, dear aunt, nothing;--nothing as yet."
+
+"But, Herbert, tell me this; is it about my sister?" For very many
+years past Aunt Letty had always called Lady Fitzgerald her sister.
+
+"I can tell you nothing;--nothing to-day."
+
+"Then, to-morrow."
+
+"I do not know--we must let Mr. Prendergast manage this matter as he
+will. I have taken nothing on myself, Aunt Letty--nothing."
+
+"Then I tell you what, Herbert; it will kill me. It will kill us
+all, as it is killing your father and your darling mother. I tell
+you that it is killing her fast. Human nature cannot bear it. For
+myself I could endure anything if I were trusted." And sitting down
+in one of the high-backed library chairs she burst into a flood of
+tears; a sight which, as regarded Aunt Letty, Herbert had never seen
+before.
+
+What if they all died? thought Herbert to himself in the bitterness
+of the moment. There was that in store for some of them which was
+worse than death. What business had Aunt Letty to talk of her
+misery? Of course she was wretched, as they all were; but how could
+she appreciate the burden that was on his back? What was Clara
+Desmond to her?
+
+Shortly after noon Mr. Prendergast was back at the house; but he
+slunk up to his room, and no one saw anything of him. At half-past
+six he came down, and Herbert constrained himself to sit at the
+table while dinner was served; and so the day passed away. One more
+day only Mr. Prendergast was to stay at Castle Richmond; and then,
+if, as he expected, certain letters should reach him on that
+morning, he was to start for London late on the following day. It
+may well be imagined that he was not desirous of prolonging his
+visit.
+
+Early on the following morning Herbert started for a long solitary
+walk. On that day Mr. Prendergast was to tell everything to his
+mother, and it was determined between them that her son should not
+be in the house during the telling. In the evening, when he came
+home, he was to see her. So he started on his walk, resolving some
+other things also in his mind before he went. He would reach Desmond
+Court before he returned home that day, and let the two ladies there
+know the fate that was before them. Then, after that, they might let
+him know what was to be his fate;--but on this head he would not
+hurry them.
+
+So he started on his walk, resolving to go round by Gortnaclough on
+his way to Desmond Court, and then to return home from that place.
+The road would be more than twenty long Irish miles; but he felt
+that the hard work would be of service. It was instinct rather than
+thought which taught him that it would be good for him to put some
+strain on the muscles of his body, and thus relieve the muscles of
+his mind. If his limbs could become thoroughly tired,--thoroughly
+tired so that he might wish to rest--then he might hope that for a
+moment he might cease to think of all this sorrow which encompassed
+him.
+
+So he started on his walk, taking with him a thick cudgel and his
+own thoughts. He went away across the demesne and down into the road
+that led away by Gortnaclough and Boherbue towards Castleisland and
+the wilds of county Kerry. As he went, the men about the place
+refrained from speaking to him, for they all knew that bad news had
+come to the big house. They looked at him with lowered eyes and with
+tenderness in their hearts, for they loved the very name of
+Fitzgerald. The love which a poor Irishman feels for the gentleman
+whom he regards as his master--"his masther," though he has probably
+never received from him, in money, wages for a day's work, and in
+all his intercourse has been the man who has paid money and not the
+man who received it--the love which he nevertheless feels, if he has
+been occasionally looked on with a smiling face and accosted with a
+kindly word, is astonishing to an Englishman. I will not say that
+the feeling is altogether good. Love should come of love. Where
+personal love exists on one side, and not even personal regard on
+the other, there must be some mixture of servility. That unbounded
+respect for human grandeur cannot be altogether good; for human
+greatness, if the greatness be properly sifted, it may be so.
+
+He got down into the road, and went forth upon his journey at a
+rapid pace. The mud was deep upon the way, but he went through the
+thickest without a thought of it. He had not been out long before
+there came on a cold, light, drizzling rain, such a rain as
+gradually but surely makes its way into the innermost rag of a man's
+clothing, running up the inside of his waterproof coat, and
+penetrating by its perseverance the very folds of his necktie. Such
+cold, drizzling rain is the commonest phase of hard weather during
+Irish winters, and those who are out and about get used to it and
+treat it tenderly. They are euphemistical as to the weather, calling
+it hazy and soft, and never allowing themselves to carry bad
+language on such a subject beyond the word dull. And yet at such a
+time one breathes the rain and again exhales it, and become as it
+were oneself a water spirit, assuming an aqueous fishlike nature
+into one's inner fibres. It must be acknowledged that a man does
+sometimes get wet in Ireland; but then a wetting there brings no
+cold in the head, no husky voice, no need for multitudinous
+pocket-handkerchiefs, as it does here in this land of catarrhs. It
+is the east wind and not the rain that kills; and of east wind in
+the south of Ireland they know nothing.
+
+But Herbert walked on quite unmindful of the mist, swinging his
+thick stick in his hand, and ever increasing his pace as he went. He
+was usually a man careful of such things, but it was nothing to him
+now whether he were wet or dry. His mind was so full of the
+immediate circumstances of his destiny that he could not think of
+small external accidents. What was to be his future life in this
+world, and how was he to fight the battle that was now before him?
+That was the question which he continually asked himself, and yet
+never succeeded in answering. How was he to come down from the
+throne on which early circumstances had placed him, and hustle and
+struggle among the crowd for such approach to other thrones as his
+sinews and shoulders might procure for him? If he had been only born
+to the struggle, he said to himself, how easy and pleasant it would
+have been to him! But to find himself thus cast out from his place
+by an accident--cast out with the eyes of all the world upon him; to
+be talked of, and pointed at, and pitied; to have little aids
+offered him by men whom he regarded as beneath him--all this was
+terribly sore, and the burden was almost too much for his strength.
+"I do not care for the money," he said to himself a dozen times; and
+in saying so he spoke in one sense truly. But he did care for things
+which money buys; for outward respect, permission to speak with
+authority among his fellow-men, for power and place, and the feeling
+that he was prominent in his walk of life. To be in advance of other
+men, that is the desire which is strongest in the hearts of all
+strong men; and in that desire how terrible a fall had he not
+received from this catastrophe!
+
+And what were they all to do, he and his mother and his sisters? How
+were they to act--now, at once? In what way were they to carry
+themselves when this man of law and judgment should have gone from
+them? For himself, his course of action must depend much upon the
+word which might be spoken to him to-day at Desmond Court. There
+would still be a drop of comfort left at the bottom of his cup if he
+might be allowed to hope there. But in truth he feared greatly. What
+the countess would say to him he thought he could foretell; what it
+would behove him to say himself--in matter, though not in
+words--that he knew well. Would not the two sayings tally well
+together? and could it be right for him even to hope that the love
+of a girl of seventeen should stand firm against her mother's will,
+when her lover himself could not dare to press his suit? And then
+another reflection pressed on his mind sorely. Clara had already
+given up one poor lover at her mother's instance; might she not
+resume that lover, also at her mother's instance, now that he was no
+longer poor? What if Owen Fitzgerald should take from him
+everything!
+
+And so he walked on through the mud and rain, always swinging his
+big stick. Perhaps, after all, the worst of it was over with him,
+when he could argue with himself in this way. It is the first plunge
+into the cold water that gives the shock. We may almost say that
+every human misery will cease to be miserable if it be duly faced;
+and something is done towards conquering our miseries, when we face
+them in any degree, even if not with due courage. Herbert had taken
+his plunge into the deep, dark, cold, comfortless pool of
+misfortune; and he felt that the waters around him were very cold.
+But the plunge had been taken, and the worst, perhaps, was gone by.
+
+As he approached near to Gortnaclough, he came upon one of those
+gangs of road-destroyers who were now at work everywhere, earning
+their pittance of "yellow meal" with a pickaxe and a wheelbarrow. In
+some sort or other the labourers had been got to their work.
+Gangsmen there were with lists, who did see, more or less
+accurately, that the men, before they received their sixpence or
+eightpence for their day's work, did at any rate pass their day with
+some sort of tool in their hands. And consequently the surface of
+the hill began to disappear, and there were chasms in the orad,
+which caused those who travelled on wheels to sit still, staring
+across with angry eyes, and sometimes to apostrophize the doer of
+these deeds with very naughty words. The doer was the Board of
+Works, or the "Board" as it was familiarly termed; and were it not
+that those ill words must have returned to the bosoms which vented
+them, and have flown no further, no Board could ever have been so
+terribly curse-laden. To find oneself at last utterly stopped, after
+proceeding with great strain to one's horse for half a mile through
+an artificial quagmire of slush up to the wheelbox, is harassing to
+the customary traveller; and men at that crisis did not bethink
+themselves quite so frequently as they should have done, that a
+people perishing from famine is more harassing.
+
+But Herbert was not on wheels, and was proceeding through the slush
+and across the chasm, regardless of it all, when he was stopped by
+some of the men. All the land thereabouts was Castle Richmond
+property; and it was not probable that the young master of it all
+would be allowed to pass through some two score of his own tenantry
+without greetings, and petitions, and blessings, and complaints.
+
+"Faix, yer honer, thin, Mr. Herbert," said one man, standing at the
+bottom of the hill, with the half-filled wheelbarrow still hanging
+in his hands--an Englishman would have put down the barrow while he
+was speaking, making some inner calculation about the waste of his
+muscles; but an Irishman would despise himself for such low
+economy--"Faix, thin, yer honer, Mr. Herbert; an' it's yourself is a
+sight good for sore eyes. May the heavens be your bed, for it's you
+is the frind to a poor man."
+
+"How are you, Pat?" said Herbert, without intending to stop. "How
+are you, Mooney? I hope the work suits you all." And then he would
+at once have passed on, with his hat pressed down low over his brow.
+
+But this could be by no means allowed. In the first place, the
+excitement arising from the young master's presence was too valuable
+to be lost so suddenly; and then, when might again occur so
+excellent a time for some mention of their heavy grievances? Men
+whose whole amount of worldly good consists in a bare allowance of
+nauseous food, just sufficient to keep body and soul together, must
+be excused if they wish to utter their complaints to ears that can
+hear them.
+
+"Arrah, yer honer, thin, we're none on us very well, and how could
+we, with the male at a penny a pound?" said Pat.
+
+"Sorrow to it for male," said Mooney. "It's the worst vittles iver a
+man tooked into the inside of him. Saving yer honer's presence it's
+as much as I can do to raise the bare arm of me since the day I
+first began with the yally male."
+
+"It's as wake as cats we all is," said another, who from the weary
+way in which he dragged his limbs about certainly did not himself
+seem to be gifted with much animal strength.
+
+"And the childer is worse, yer honer," said a fourth. "The male is
+bad for them intirely. Saving yer honer's presence, their bellies is
+gone away most to nothing."
+
+"And there's six of us in family, yer honer," said Pat. "Six mouths
+to feed; and what's eight pennorth of yally male among such a lot as
+that, let alone the Sundays, when there's nothing?"
+
+"An' shure, Mr. Herbert," said another, a small man with a squeaking
+voice, whose rags of clothes hardly hung on to his body, "warn't I
+here with the other boys the last Friday as iver was? Ax Pat Condon
+else, yer honer; and yet when they comed to give out the wages, they
+sconced me of--." And so on. There were as many complaints to be
+made as there were men, if only he could bring himself to listen to
+them.
+
+On ordinary occasions Herbert would listen to them, and answer them,
+and give them, at any rate, the satisfaction which they derived from
+discoursing with him, if he could give them no other satisfaction.
+But now, on this day, with his own burden so heavy at his heart, he
+could not even do this. He could not think of their sorrows; his own
+sorrow seemed to him to be so much the heavier. So he passed on,
+running the gauntlet through them as best he might, and shaking them
+off from him, as they attempted to cling round his steps. Nothing is
+so powerful in making a man selfish as misfortune.
+
+And then he went on to Gortnaclough. He had not chosen his walk to
+this place with any fixed object, except this perhaps, that it
+enabled him to return home round by Desmond Court. It was one of the
+places at which a Relief Committee sat every fortnight, and there
+was a soup-kitchen here, which, however, had not been so successful
+as the one at Berryhill; and it was the place of residence selected
+by Father Barney's coadjutor. But in spite of all this, when Herbert
+found himself in the wretched, dirty, straggling, damp street of the
+village, he did not know what to do or where to betake himself. That
+every eye in Gortnaclough would be upon him was a matter of course.
+He could hardly turn round on his heel and retrace his steps through
+the village, as he would have to do in going to Desmond Court,
+without showing some pretext for his coming there; so he walked into
+the little shop which was attached to the soup-kitchen, and there he
+found the Rev. Mr. Columb Creagh, giving his orders to the little
+girl behind the counter.
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald was customarily very civil to the Roman Catholic
+priests around him,--somewhat more so, indeed, than seemed good to
+those very excellent ladies, Mrs. Townsend and Aunt Letty; but it
+always went against the grain with him to be civil to the Rev.
+Columb Creagh; and on this special day it would have gone against
+the grain with him to be civil to anybody. But the coadjutor knew
+his character, and was delighted to have an opportunity of talking
+to him, when he could do so without being snubbed either by Mr.
+Somers, the chairman, or by his own parish priest. Mr. Creagh had
+rejoiced much at the idea of forming one at the same council board
+with county magistrates and Protestant parsons; but the fruition of
+his promised delights had never quite reached his lips. He had been
+like Sancho Panza in his government; he had sat down to the grand
+table day after day, but had never yet been allowed to enjoy the
+rich dish of his own oratory. Whenever he had proposed to help
+himself, Mr. Somers or Father Barney had stopped his mouth. Now
+probably he might be able to say a word or two; and though the glory
+would not be equal to that of making a speech at the Committee,
+still it would be something to be seen talking on equal terms, and
+on affairs of state, to the young heir of Castle Richmond.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald! well, I declare! And how are you, sir?" And he took
+off his hat and bowed, and got hold of Herbert's hand, shaking it
+ruthlessly; and altogether he made him very disagreeable.
+
+Herbert, though his mind was not really intent on the subject, asked
+some question of the girl as to the amount of meal that had been
+sold, and desired to see the little passbook that they kept at the
+shop.
+
+"We are doing pretty well, Mr. Fitzgerald," said the coadjutor;
+"pretty well. I always keep my eye on, for fear things should go
+wrong, you know."
+
+"I don't think they'll do that," said Herbert.
+
+"No; I hope not. But it's always good to be on the safe side, you
+know. And to tell you the truth, I don't think we're altogether on
+the right tack about them shops. It's very hard on a poor woman--"
+
+Now, the fact was, though the Relief Committee at Gortnaclough was
+attended by magistrates, priests, and parsons, the shop there was
+Herbert Fitzgerald's own affair. It had been stocked with his or his
+father's money; the flour was sold without profit at his risk, and
+the rent of the house and wages of the woman who kept it came out of
+his own pocket-money. Under these circumstances he did not see cause
+why Mr. Creagh should interfere, and at the present moment was not
+well inclined to put up with such interference.
+
+"We do the best we can, Mr. Creagh," said he, interrupting the
+priest. "And no good will be done at such a time as this by
+unnecessary difficulties."
+
+"No, no, certainly not. But still I do think--" And Mr. Creagh was
+girding up his loins for eloquence, when he was again interrupted.
+
+"I am rather in a hurry to-day," said Herbert, "and therefore, if
+you please, we won't make any change now. Never mind the book
+to-day, Sally. Good day, Mr. Creagh." And so saying, he left the
+shop and walked rapidly back out of the village.
+
+The poor coadjutor was left alone at the shop-door, anathematizing
+in his heart the pride of all Protestants. He had been told that
+this Mr. Fitzgerald was different from others, that he was a man
+fond of priests and addicted to the "ould religion;" and so hearing,
+he had resolved to make the most of such an excellent disposition.
+But he was forced to confess to himself that they were all alike.
+Mr. Somers could not have been more imperious, nor Mr. Townsend more
+insolent.
+
+And then, through the still drizzling rain, Herbert walked on to
+Desmond Court. By the time that he reached the desolate-looking
+lodge at the demesne gate, he was nearly wet through, and was
+besmeared with mud up to his knees. But he had thought nothing of
+this as he walked along. His mind had been intent on the scene that
+was before him. In what words was he to break the news to Clara
+Desmond and her mother? and with what words would they receive the
+tidings? The former question he had by no means answered to his own
+satisfaction, when, all muddy and wet, he passed up to the house
+through that desolate gate.
+
+"Is Lady Desmond at home?" he asked of the butler. "Her ladyship is
+at home," said the grey-haired old man, with his blandest smile,
+"and so is Lady Clara." He had already learned to look on the heir
+of Castle Richmond as the coming saviour of the impoverished Desmond
+family.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVI
+
+COMFORTLESS
+
+
+
+
+
+"But, Mr. Herbert, yer honor, you're wet through and
+through--surely," said the butler, as soon as Fitzgerald was well
+inside the hall. Herbert muttered something about his being only
+damp, and that it did not signify. But it did signify,--very
+much,--in the butler's estimation. Whose being wet through could
+signify more; for was not Mr. Herbert to be a baronet, and to have
+the spending of twelve thousand a-year; and would he not be the
+future husband of Lady Clara? not signify indeed!
+
+"An' shure, Mr. Herbert, you haven't walked to Desmond Court this
+blessed morning. Tare an' ages! Well; there's no knowing what you
+young gentlemen won't do. But I'll see and get a pair of trousers of
+my Lord's ready for you in two minutes. Faix, and he's nearly as big
+as yourself, now, Mr. Herbert."
+
+But Herbert would hardly speak to him, and gave no assent whatever
+as to his proposition for borrowing the Earl's clothes. "I'll go in
+as I am," said he. And the old man looking into his face saw that
+there was something wrong. "Shure an' he ain't going to sthrike off
+now," said this Irish Caleb Balderstone to himself. He also as well
+as some others about Desmond Court had feared greatly that Lady
+Clara would throw herself away upon a poor lover.
+
+It was now past noon, and Fitzgerald pressed forward into the room
+in which Lady Clara usually sat. It was the same in which she had
+received Owen's visit, and here of a morning she was usually to be
+found alone; but on this occasion when he opened the door he found
+that her mother was with her. Since the day on which Clara had
+disposed of herself so excellently, the mother had spent more of her
+time with her daughter. Looking at Clara now through Herbert
+Fitzgerald's eyes, the Countess had began to confess to herself that
+her child did possess beauty and charm.
+
+She got up to greet her future son-in-law with a sweet smile and
+that charming quiet welcome with which a woman so well knows how to
+make her house pleasant to a man that is welcome to it. And Clara,
+not rising, but turning her head round and looking at him. greeted
+him also. He came forward and took both their hands, and it was not
+till he had held Clara's for half a minute in his own that they both
+saw that he was more than ordinarily serious. "I hope Sir Thomas is
+not worse," said Lady Desmond, with that voice of feigned interest
+which is so common. After all, if anything should happen to the poor
+old weak gentleman, might it not be as well?
+
+"My father has not been very well these last two days," he said.
+
+"I am so sorry," said Clara. "And your mother, Herbert?"
+
+"But, Herbert, how wet you are. You must have walked," said the
+Countess.
+
+Herbert, in a few dull words, said that he had walked. He had
+thought that the walk would be good for him, and he had not expected
+that it would be so wet. And then Lady Desmond, looking carefully
+into his face, saw that in truth he was very serious;--so much so
+that she knew that he had come there on account of his seriousness.
+But still his sorrow did not in any degree go to her heart. He was
+grieving doubtless for his father,--or his mother. The house at
+Castle Richmond was probably sad, because sickness and fear of death
+were there;--nay, perhaps death itself now hanging over some loved
+head. But what was this to her? She had had her own sorrows;--enough
+of them perhaps to account for her being selfish. So with a solemn
+face, but with nothing amiss about her heart, she again asked for
+tidings from Castle Richmond.
+
+"Do tell us," said Clara, getting up. "I am afraid Sir Thomas is
+very ill." The old baronet had been kind to her, and she did regard
+him. To her it was a sorrow to think that there should be any sorrow
+at Castle Richmond.
+
+"Yes; he is ill," said Herbert. "We have had a gentleman from London
+with us for the last few days--a friend of my father's. His name is
+Mr. Prendergast."
+
+"Is he a doctor?" asked the Countess.
+
+"No, not a doctor," said Herbert. "He is a lawyer."
+
+It was very hard for him to begin his story; and perhaps the more so
+in that he was wet through and covered with mud. He now felt cold
+and clammy, and began to have an idea that he should not be seated
+there in that room in such a guise. Clara, too, had instinctively
+learned from his face, and tone, and general bearirg that something
+truly was the matter. At other times when he had been there, since
+that day on which he had been accepted, he had been completely
+master of himself. Perhaps it had almost been deemed a fault in him
+that he had had none of the timidity or hesitation of a lover. He
+had seemed to feel, no doubt, that he, with his fortune and position
+at his back, need feel no scruple in accepting as his own the fair
+hand for which he had asked. But now--nothing could be more
+different from this than his manner was now.
+
+Lady Desmond was now surprised, though probably not as yet
+frightened. Why should a lawyer have come from London to visit Sir
+Thomas at a period of such illness? and why should Herbert have
+walked over to Desmond Court to tell them of this illness? There
+must be something in this lawyer's coming which was intended to bear
+in some way on her daughter's marriage. "But, Herbert," she said,
+"you are quite wet. Will you not put on some of Patrick's things?"
+
+"No, thank you," said he; "I shall not stay long. I shall soon have
+said what I have got to say."
+
+"But do, Herbert," said Clara. "I cannot bear to see you so
+uncomfortable. And then you will not be in such a hurry to go back."
+
+"Ill as my father is," said he, "I cannot stay long; but I have
+thought it my duty to come over and tell you--tell you what has
+happened at Castle Richmond."
+
+And now the countess was frightened. There was that in Herbert's
+tone of voice and the form of his countenance which was enough to
+frighten any woman. What had happened at Castle Richmond? what could
+have happened there to make necessary the presence of a lawyer, and
+at the same time thus to sadden her future son-in-law? And Clara
+also was frightened, though she knew not why. His manner was so
+different from that which was usual; he was so cold, and serious,
+and awe-struck, that she could not but be unhappy.
+
+"And what is it?" said the countess.
+
+Herbert then sat for a few minutes silent, thinking how best he
+should tell them his story. He had been all the morning resolving to
+tell it, but he had in nowise as yet fixed upon any method. It was
+all so terribly tragic, so frightful in the extent of its reality,
+that he hardly knew how it would be possible for him to get through
+his task.
+
+"I hope that no misfortune has come upon any of the family," said
+Lady Desmond, now beginning to think that there might be misfortunes
+which would affect her own daughter more nearly than the illness
+either of the baronet or of his wife.
+
+"Oh, I hope not!" said Clara, getting up and clasping her hands.
+"What is it, Herbert? why don't you speak?" And coming round to him,
+she took hold of his arm.
+
+"Dearest Clara," he said, looking at her with more tenderness than
+had ever been usual with him, "I think that you had better leave us.
+I could tell it better to your mother alone."
+
+"Do, Clara, love. Go, dearest, and we will call you by-and-by."
+
+Clara moved away very slowly toward the door, and then she turned
+round. "If it is anything that makes you unhappy, Herbert," she
+said, "I must know it before you leave me."
+
+"Yes, yes; either I or your mother--. You shall be told, certainly."
+
+"Yes, yes, you shall be told," said the countess. "And now go, my
+darling." Thus dismissed, Clara did go, and betook herself to her
+own chamber. Had Owen had sorrows to tell her, he would have told
+them to herself; of that she was quite sure. "And now, Herbert, for
+heaven's sake what is it?" said the countess, pale with terror. She
+was fully certain now that something was to be spoken which would be
+calculated to interfere with her daughter's prospects.
+
+We all know the story which Herbert had to tell, and we need not
+therefore again be present at the telling of it. Sitting there, wet
+through, in Lady Desmond's drawing-room, he did contrive to utter it
+all--the whole of it from the beginning to the end, making it
+clearly to be understood that he was no longer Fitzgerald of Castle
+Richmond, but a nameless, pennyless outcast, without the hope of
+portion or position, doomed from henceforth to earn his bread in the
+sweat of his brow--if only he could be fortunate enough to find the
+means of earning it.
+
+Nor did Lady Desmond once interrupt him in his story. She sat
+perfectly still, listening to him almost with unmoved face. She was
+too wise to let him know what the instant working of her mind might
+be before she had made her own fixed resolve; and she had conceived
+the truth much before he had completed the telling of it. We
+generally use three times the number of words which are necessary
+for the purpose which we have in hand; but had he used six times the
+number, she would not have interrupted him. It was good in him to
+give her this time to determine in what tone and with what words she
+would speak, when speaking on her part should become absolutely
+necessary. "And now," he concluded by saying--and at this time he
+was standing up on the rug--"you know it all, Lady Desmond. It will
+perhaps be best that Clara should learn it from you."
+
+He had said not a word of giving up his pretensions to Lady Clara's
+hand; but then neither had he in any way hinted that the match
+should, in his opinion, be regarded as unbroken. He had not spoken
+of his sorrow at bringing down all this poverty on his wife: and
+surely he would have so spoken had he thought their engagement was
+still valid; but then he had not himself pointed out that the
+engagement must necessarily be broken, as, in Lady Desmond's
+opinion, he certainly should have done.
+
+"Yes," said she, in a cold, low, meaningless voice--in a voice that
+told nothing by its tones--"Lady Clara had better hear it from me."
+But in the title which she gave her daughter, Herbert instantly read
+his doom. He, however, remained silent. It was for the countess now
+to speak.
+
+"But it is possible it may not be true," she said, speaking almost
+in a whisper, looking not into his face, but by him, at the fire.
+
+"It is possible, but so barely possible, that I did not think it
+right to keep the matter from you any longer."
+
+"It would have been very wrong--very wicked, I may say," said the
+countess.
+
+"It is only two days since I knew anything of it myself," said he,
+vindicating himself.
+
+"You were of course bound to let me know immediately," she said,
+harshly.
+
+"And I have let you know immediately, Lady Desmond." And then they
+were both again silent for a while.
+
+"And Mr. Prendergast thinks there is no doubt?" she asked.
+
+"None," said Herbert, very decidedly.
+
+"And he has told your cousin Owen?"
+
+"He did so yesterday, and by this time my poor mother knows it
+also." And then there was another period of silence.
+
+During the whole time Lady Desmond had uttered no one word of
+condolence--not a syllable of commiseration for all the sufferings
+that had come upon Herbert and his family; and he was beginning to
+hate her for her harshness. The tenor of her countenance had become
+hard, and she received all his words as a judge might have taken
+them, merely wanting evidence before he pronounced his verdict. The
+evidence she was beginning to think sufficient, and there could be
+no doubt as to her verdict. After what she had heard, a match
+between Herbert Fitzgerald and her daughter would be out of the
+question. "It is very dreadful," she said, thinking only of her own
+child, and absolutely shivering at the danger which had been
+incurred.
+
+"It is very dreadful," said Herbert, shivering also. It was almost
+incredible to him that his great sorrow should be received in such a
+way by one who had professed to be so dear a friend to him.
+
+"And what do you propose to do, Mr. Fitzgerald?" said the countess.
+
+"What do I propose?" he said, repeating her words. "Hitherto I have
+had neither time nor heart to propose anything. Such a misfortune as
+that which I have told you does not break upon a man without
+disturbing for a while his power of resolving. I have thought so
+much of my mother, and of Clara, since Mr. Prendergast told me all
+this, that--that--that--" And then a slight gurgling struggle fell
+upon his throat and hindered him from speaking. He did not quite sob
+out, and he determined that he would not do so. If she could be so
+harsh and strong, he would be harsh and strong also.
+
+And again Lady Desmond sat silent, still thinking how she had better
+speak and act. After all she was not so cruel nor so bad as Herbert
+Fitzgerald thought her. What had the Fitzgeralds done for her that
+she should sorrow for their sorrows? She had lived there, in that
+old ugly barrack, long desolate, full of dreary wretchedness and
+poverty, and Lady Fitzgerald in her prosperity had never come to her
+to soften the hardness of her life. She had come over to Ireland a
+countess, and a countess she had been, proud enough at first in her
+little glory--too proud, no doubt; and proud enough afterwards in
+her loneliness and poverty; and there she had lived--alone. Whether
+the fault had been her own or no, she owed little to the kindness of
+any one; for no one had done aught to relieve her bitterness. And
+then her weak puny child had grown up in the same shade, and was now
+a lovely woman, gifted with high birth, and that special priceless
+beauty which high blood so often gives. There was a prize now within
+the walls of that old barrack--something to be won--something for
+which a man would strive, and a mother smile that her son might win
+it. And now Lady Fitzgerald had come to her. She had never
+complained of this, she said to herself. The bargain between Clara
+Desmond and Herbert Fitzgerald had been good for both of them, and
+let it be made and settled as a bargain. Young Herbert Fitzgerald
+had money and position; her daughter had beauty and high blood. Let
+it be a bargain. But in all this there was nothing to make her love
+that rich prosperous family at Castle Richmond. There are those
+whose nature it is to love new-found friends at a few hours'
+warning, but the Countess of Desmond was not one of them. The
+bargain had been made, and her daughter would have been able to
+perform her part of it. She was still able to give that which she
+had stipulated to give. But Herbert Fitzgerald was now a bankrupt,
+and could give nothing! Would it not have been madness to suppose
+that the bargain should still hold good?
+
+One person and one only had come to her at Desmond Court, whose
+coming had been a solace to her weariness. Of all those among whom
+she had lived in cold desolateness for so many years, one only had
+got near her heart. There had been but one Irish voice that she had
+cared to hear; and the owner of that voice had loved her child
+instead of loving her.
+
+And she had borne that wretchedness too, if not well, at least
+bravely. True, she had separated that lover from her daughter; but
+the circumstances of both had made it right for her, as a mother, to
+do so. What mother, circumstanced as she had been, would have given
+her girl to Owen Fitzgerald? So she had banished from the house the
+only voice that sounded sweetly in her ears, and again she had been
+alone.
+
+And then, perhaps, thoughts had come to her, when Herbert Fitzgerald
+was frequent about the place, a rich and thriving wooer, that Owen
+might come again to Desmond Court, when Clara had gone to Castle
+Richmond. Years were stealing over her. Ah, yes. She knew that full
+well. All her youth and the pride of her days she had given up for
+that countess-ship which she now wore so gloomily--given up for
+pieces of gold which had turned to stone and slate and dirt within
+her grasp. Years, alas! were fast stealing over her. But
+nevertheless she had something to give. Her woman's beauty was not
+all faded; and she had a heart which was as yet virgin--which had
+hitherto loved no other man. Might not that suffice to cover a few
+years, seeing that in return she wanted nothing but love? And so she
+had thought, lingering over her hopes, while Herbert was there at
+his wooing.
+
+It may be imagined with what feelings at her heart she had seen and
+listened to the frank attempt made by Owen to get back his childish
+love. But that too she had borne, bravely, if not well. It had not
+angered her that her child was loved by the only man she had ever
+loved herself. She had stroked her daughter's hair that day, and
+kissed her cheek, and bade her be happy with her better, richer
+lover. And had she not been right in this? Nor had she been angry
+even with Owen. She could forgive him all, because she loved him.
+But might there not even yet be a chance for her when Clara should
+in very truth have gone to Castle Richmond?
+
+But now! How was she to think about all this now? And thinking of
+these things, how was it possible that she should have heart left to
+feel for the miseries of Lady Fitzgerald? With all her miseries
+would not Lady Fitzgerald still be more fortunate than she? Let come
+what might, Lady Fitzgerald had had a life of prosperity and love.
+No; she could not think of Lady Fitzgerald, nor of Herbert: she
+could only think of Owen Fitzgerald, of her daughter, and of
+herself.
+
+He, Owen, was now the heir to Castle Richmond, and would, as far as
+she could learn, soon become the actual possessor. He, who had been
+cast forth from Desmond Court as too poor and contemptible in the
+world's eye to be her daughter's suitor, would become the rich
+inheritor of all those broad acres, and that old coveted family
+honour. And this Owen still loved her daughter--loved her not as
+Herbert did, with a quiet, gentleman-like, every-day attachment, but
+with the old, true, passionate love of which she had read in books,
+and dreamed herself, before she had sold herself to be a countess.
+That Owen did so love her daughter, she was very sure. And then, as
+to her daughter; that she did not still love this new heir in her
+heart of hearts--of that the mother was by no means sure. That her
+child had chosen the better part in choosing money and a title, she
+had not doubted; and that having so chosen Clara would be happy,--of
+that also she did not doubt. Clara was young, she would say, and her
+heart in a few months would follow her hand.
+
+But now! How was she to decide, sitting here with Herbert Fitzgerald
+before her, gloomy as death, cold, shivering, and muddy, telling of
+his own disasters with no more courage than a whipped dog? As she
+looked at him she declared to herself twenty times in half a second
+that he had not about him a tithe of the manhood of his cousin Owen.
+Women love a bold front, and a voice that will never own its master
+to have been beaten in the world's fight. Had Owen came there with
+such a story, he would have claimed his right boldly to the lady's
+hand, in spite of all that the world had done to him.
+
+"Let her have him," said Lady Desmond to herself, and the struggle
+within her bosom was made and over. No wonder that Herbert, looking
+into her face for pity, should find that she was harsh and cruel.
+She had been sacrificing herself, and had completed the sacrifice.
+Owen Fitzgerald, the heir to Castle Richmond, Sir Owen as he would
+soon be, should have her daughter. They two, at any rate, should be
+happy. And she--she would live there at Desmond Court, lonely as she
+had ever lived. While all this was passing through her mind, she
+hardly thought of Herbert and his sorrows. That he must be given up
+and abandoned, and left to make what best fight he could by himself;
+as to that how was it possible that she as a mother should have any
+doubt?
+
+And yet it was a pity--a thousand pities. Herbert Fitzgerald, with
+his domestic virtues. his industry and thorough respectability,
+would so exactly have suited Clara's taste and mode of life--had he
+only continued to be the heir of Castle Richmond. She and Owen would
+not enter upon the world together with nearly the same fair chance
+of happiness. Who could prophecy to what Owen might be led with his
+passionate impulses, his strong will, his unbridled temper, and his
+love of pleasure? That he was noble-hearted, affectionate, brave,
+and tender in his inmost spirit, Lady Desmond was very sure; but
+were such the qualities which would make her daughter happy? When
+Clara should come to know her future lord as Clara's mother knew
+him, would Clara love him and worship him as her mother did? The
+mother believed that Clara had not in her bosom heart enough for
+such a love. But then, as I have said before, the mother did not
+know the daughter.
+
+"You say that you will break all this to Clara," said Herbert,
+having during this silence turned over some of his thoughts also in
+his mind. "If so I may as well leave you now. You can imagine that I
+am anxious to get back to my mother."
+
+"Yes, it will be better that I should tell her. It is very sad, very
+sad, very sad indeed."
+
+"Yes, it is a hard load for a man to bear," he answered, speaking
+very, very slowly. "But for myself I think I can bear it, if--"
+
+"If what?" asked the countess.
+
+"If Clara can bear it."
+
+And now it was necessary that Lady Desmond should speak out. She did
+not mean to be unnecessarily harsh, but she did mean to be decided,
+and as she spoke her face became stern and ill-favoured. "That Clara
+will be terribly distressed," she said, "terribly, terribly
+distressed," repeating her words with great emphasis, "of that I am
+quite sure. She is very young, and will, I hope, in time get over
+it. And then too I think she is one whose feelings, young as she is,
+have never conquered her judgment. Therefore I do believe that, with
+God's mercy, she will be able to bear it. But, Mr. Fitzgerald--"
+
+"Well?"
+
+"Of course you feel with me--and I am sure that with your excellent
+judgment it is a thing of course--that everything must be over
+between you and Lady Clara." And then she came to a full stop as
+though all had been said that could be considered necessary.
+
+Herbert did not answer at once, but stood there shivering and
+shaking in his misery. He was all but overcome by the chill of his
+wet garments; and though he struggled to throw off the dead feeling
+of utter cold which struck him to the heart, he was quite unable to
+master it. He could hardly forgive himself that on such an occasion
+he should have been so conquered by his own outer feelings, but now
+he could not help himself. He was weak with hunger too--though he
+did not know it, for he had hardly eaten food that day, and was
+nearly exhausted with the unaccustomed amount of hard exercise which
+he had taken. He was, moreover, thoroughly wet through, and heavy
+laden with the mud of the road. It was no wonder that Lady Desmond
+had said to herself that he looked like a whipped dog.
+
+"That must be as Lady Clara shall decide," he said at last, barely
+uttering the words through his chattering teeth.
+
+"It must be as I say," said the countess firmly; "whether by her
+decision or by yours--or if necessary by mine. But if your feelings
+are, as I take them to be, those of a man of honour, you will not
+leave it to me or to her. What! now that you have the world to
+struggle with, would you seek to drag her down into the struggle?"
+
+"Our union was to be for better or worse. I would have given her all
+the better, and--"
+
+"Yes; and had there been a union she would have bravely borne her
+part in sharing the worst. But who ought to be so thankful as you
+that this truth has broken upon you before you had clogged yourself
+with a wife of high birth but without fortune? Alone, a man educated
+as you are, with your talents, may face the world without fearing
+anything. But how could you make your way now if my daughter were
+your wife? When you think of it, Mr. Fitzgerald, you will cease to
+wish for it."
+
+"Never; I have given my heart to your daughter, and I cannot take
+back the gift. She has accepted it, and she cannot return it."
+
+"And what would you have her do?" Lady Desmond asked, with anger and
+almost passion in her voice.
+
+"Wait--as I must wait," said Herbert. "That will be her duty, as I
+believe it will also be her wish."
+
+"Yes, and wear out her young heart here in solitude for the next ten
+years, and then learn when her beauty and her youth are gone--. But
+no, Mr. Fitzgerald; I will not allow myself to contemplate such a
+prospect either for her or for you. Under the lamentable
+circumstances which you have now told me it is imperative that this
+match should be broken off. Ask your own mother and hear what she
+will say. And if you are a man you will not throw upon my poor child
+the hard task of declaring that it must be so. You, by your
+calamity, are unable to perform your contract with her; and it is
+for you to announce that that contract is therefore over."
+
+Herbert in his present state was unable to argue with Lady Desmond.
+He had in his brain, and mind, and heart, and soul--at least so he
+said to himself afterwards, having perhaps but a loose idea of the
+different functions of these four different properties--a thorough
+conviction that as he and Clara had sworn to each other that for
+life they would live together and love each other, no misfortune to
+either of them could justify the other in breaking that oath;--
+could even justify him in breaking it, though he was the one on whom
+misfortune had fallen. He, no doubt, had first loved Clara for her
+beauty; but would he have ceased to love her, or have cast her from
+him, if, by God's will, her beauty had perished and gone from her?
+Would he not have held her closer to his heart, and told her, with
+strong comforting vows, that his love had now gone deeper than that;
+that they were already of the same bone, of the same flesh, of the
+same family and hearthstone? He knew himself in this, and knew that
+he would have been proud so to do, and so to feel,--that he would
+have cast from him with utter indignation any who would have
+counselled him to do or to feel differently. And why should Clara's
+heart be different from his?
+
+All this, I say, was his strong conviction. But, nevertheless, her
+heart might be different. She might look on that engagement of
+theirs with altogether other thoughts and other ideas; and if so his
+voice should never reproach her;--not his voice, however his heart
+might do so. Such might be the case with her, but he did not think
+it; and therefore he would not pronounce that decision which Clara's
+mother expected from him.
+
+"When you have told her of this, I suppose I may be allowed to see
+her," he said, avoiding the direct proposition which Lady Desmond
+had made to him.
+
+"Allowed to see her?" said Lady Desmond, now also in her turn
+speaking very slowly. "I cannot answer that question as yet; not
+quite immediately, I should say. But if you will leave the matter in
+my hands, I will write to you, if not to-morrow, then the next day."
+
+"I would sooner that she should write."
+
+"I cannot promise that--I do not know how far her good sense and
+strength may support her under this affliction. That she will suffer
+terribly, on your account as well as on her own, you may be quite
+sure." And then, again, there was a pause of some moments.
+
+"I, at any rate, shall write to her," he then said, "and shall tell
+her that I expect her to see me. Her will in this matter shall be my
+will. If she thinks that her misery will be greater in being engaged
+to a poor man, than,--than in relinquishing her love, she shall
+hear no word from me to overpersuade her. But, Lady Desmond, I will
+say nothing that shall authorize her to think that she is given up
+by me, till I have in some way learned from herself what her own
+feelings are. And now I will say good-bye to you."
+
+"Good-bye," said the countess, thinking that it might be as well
+that the interview should be ended. "But, Mr. Fitzgerald, you are
+very wet; and I fear that you are very cold. You had better take
+something before you go." Countess as she was, she had no carriage
+in which she could send him home; no horse even on which he could
+ride. "Nothing, thank you, Lady Desmond," he said; and so, without
+offering her the courtesy of his hand, he walked out of the room.
+
+He was very angry with her, as he tried to make the blood run
+quicker in his veins by hurrying down the avenue into the road at
+his quickest pace. So angry with her, that for a while, in his
+indignation, he almost forgot his father and his mother and his own
+family tragedy. That she should have wished to save her daughter
+from such a marriage might have been natural; but that she should
+have treated him so coldly, so harshly--without one spark of love or
+pity,--him, who to her had been so loyal during his courtship of her
+daughter! It was almost incredible to him. Was not his story one
+that would have melted the heart of a stranger--at which men would
+weep? He himself had seen tears in the eyes of that dry, time-worn,
+world-used London lawyer, as the full depth of the calamity had
+forced itself upon his heart. Yes, Mr. Prendergast had not been able
+to repress his tears when he told the tale; but Lady Desmond had
+shed no tears when the tale had been told to her. No soft woman's
+message had been sent to the afflicted mother on whom it had pleased
+God to allow so heavy a hand to fall. No word of tenderness had been
+uttered for the sinking father. There had been no feeling for the
+household which was to have been so nearly linked with her own. No.
+Looking round with greedy eyes for wealth for her daughter, Lady
+Desmond had found a match that suited her. Now that match no longer
+suited her greed, and she could throw from her without a struggle to
+her feelings the suitor that was now poor, and the family of the
+suitor that was now neither grand nor powerful.
+
+And then too he felt angry with Clara, though he knew that as yet,
+at any rate, he had no cause. In spite of what he had said and felt,
+he would imagine to himself that she also would be cold and untrue.
+"Let her go," he said to himself. "Love is worth nothing--nothing if
+it does not believe itself to be of more worth than everything
+beside. If she does not love me now in my misery--if she would not
+choose me now for her husband--her love has never been worthy the
+name. Love that has no faith in itself, that does not value itself
+above all worldly things, is nothing. If it be not so with her, let
+her go back to him."
+
+It may easily be understood who was the him. And then Herbert walked
+on so rapidly that at length his strength almost failed him, and in
+his exhaustion he had more than once to lean against a gate on the
+road-side. With difficulty at last he got home, and dragged himself
+up the long avenue to the front door. Even yet he was not warm
+through to his heart, and he felt as he entered the house that he
+was quite unfitted for the work which he might yet have to do before
+he could go to his bed.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVII
+
+COMFORTED
+
+
+
+
+
+When Herbert Fitzgerald got back to Castle Richmond it was nearly
+dark. He opened the hall door without ringing the bell, and walking
+at once into the dining room, threw himself into a large leathern
+chair which always stood near the fire-place. There was a bright
+fire burning on the hearth, and he drew himself close to it, putting
+his wet feet up on to the fender, thinking that he would at any rate
+warm himself before he went in among any of the family. The room,
+with its deep-red curtains and ruby-embossed paper, was almost
+dark, and he knew that he might remain there unseen and unnoticed
+for the next half-hour. If he could only get a glass of wine! He
+tried the cellaret, which was as often open as locked, but now
+unfortunately it was closed. In such a case it was impossible to say
+whether the butler had the key or Aunt Letty; so he sat himself down
+without that luxury.
+
+By this time, as he well knew, all would have been told to his
+mother, and his first duty would be to go to her--to go to her and
+comfort her, if comfort might be possible, by telling her that he
+could bear it all; that as far as he was concerned title and wealth
+and a proud name were as nothing to him in comparison with his
+mother's love. In whatever guise he may have appeared before Lady
+Desmond, he would not go to his mother with a fainting heart. She
+should not hear his teeth chatter, nor see his limbs shake. So he
+sat himself down there that he might become warm, and in five
+minutes he was fast asleep.
+
+How long he slept he did not know; not very long, probably; but when
+he awoke it was quite dark. He gazed at the fire for a moment,
+bethought himself of where he was and why, shook himself to get rid
+of his slumber, and then roused himself in his chair. As he did so a
+soft sweet voice close to his shoulder spoke to him. "Herbert," it
+said, "are you awake?" And he found that his mother, seated by his
+side on a low stool, had been watching him in his sleep.
+
+"Mother!" he exclaimed.
+
+"Herbert, my child, my son!" And the mother and son were fast locked
+in each other's arms.
+
+He had sat down there thinking how he would go to his mother and
+offer her solace in her sorrow; how he would bid her be of good
+cheer, and encourage her to bear the world as the world had now
+fallen to her lot. He had pictured to himself that he would find her
+sinking in despair, and had promised himself that with his vows, his
+kisses, and his prayers, he would bring her back to her
+self-confidence, and induce her to acknowledge that God's mercy was
+yet good to her. But now, on awakening, he discovered that she had
+been tending him in his misery, and watching him while he slept,
+that she might comfort him with her caresses the moment that he
+awoke to the remembrance of his misfortunes.
+
+"Herbert, Herbert, my son, my son!" she said again, as she pressed
+him close in her arms.
+
+"Mother, has he told you?"
+
+Yes, she had learned it all; but hardly more than she had known
+before; or, at any rate, not more than she had expected. As she now
+told him, for many days past she had felt that this trouble which
+had fallen upon his father must have come from the circumstances of
+their marriage. And she would have spoken out, she said, when the
+idea became clear to her, had she not then been told that Mr.
+Prendergast had been invited to come thither from London. Then she
+knew that she had better remain silent, at any rate till his visit
+had been made.
+
+And Herbert again sat in the chair, and his mother crouched, or
+almost kneeled, on the cushion at his knee. "Dearest, dearest,
+dearest mother," he said, as he supported her head against his
+shoulder, "we must love each other now more than ever we have
+loved."
+
+"And you forgive us, Herbert, for all that we have done to you?"
+
+"Mother, if you speak in that way to me you will kill me. My
+darling, darling mother!"
+
+There was but little more said between them upon the matter--but
+little more, at least, in words; but there was an infinity of
+caresses, and deep--deep assurances of undying love and confidence.
+And then she asked him about his bride, and he told her where he had
+been, and what had happened. "You must not claim her, Herbert," she
+said to him. "God is good, and will teach you to bear even that
+also."
+
+"Must I not?" he asked, with a sadly plaintive voice.
+
+"No, my child. You invited her to share your prosperity, and would
+it be just--"
+
+"But, mother, if she wills it?"
+
+"It is for you to give her back her troth, then leave it to time and
+her own heart."
+
+"But if she love me, mother, she will not take back her troth. Would
+I take back hers because she was in sorrow?"
+
+"Men and women, Herbert, are different. The oak cares not whether
+the creeper which hangs to it be weak or strong. If it be weak the
+oak can give it strength. But the staff which has to support the
+creeper must needs have strength of its own."
+
+He made no further answer to her, but understood that he must do as
+she bade him. He understood now also, without many arguments within
+himself, that he had no right to expect from Clara Desmond that
+adherence to him and his misfortunes which he would have owed to her
+had she been unfortunate. He understood this now; but still he
+hoped. "Two hearts that have once become as one cannot be
+separated," he said to himself that night, as he resolved that it
+was his duty to write to her, unconditionally returning to her her
+pledges.
+
+"But, Herbert, what a state you are in!" said Lady Fitzgerald, as
+the flame of the coal glimmering out, threw a faint light upon his
+clothes.
+
+"Yes, mother; I have been walking."
+
+"And you are wet!"
+
+"I am nearly dry now. I was wet. But, mother, I am tired and fagged.
+It would do me good if I could get a glass of wine."
+
+She rang the bell, and gave her orders calmly--though every servant
+in the house now knew the whole truth,--and then lit a candle
+herself, and looked at him. "My child, what have you done to
+yourself? Oh, Herbert, you will be ill!" And then, with his arm round
+her waist, she took him up to her own room, and sat by him while he
+took off his muddy boots and clammy socks, and made him hot drinks,
+and tended him as she had done when he was a child. And yet she had
+that day heard of her great ruin! With truth, indeed, had Mr.
+Prendergast said that she was made of more enduring material than
+Sir Thomas.
+
+And she endeavoured to persuade him to go to his bed; but in this he
+would not listen to her. He must, he said, see his father that
+night. "You have been with him, mother, since--since--"
+
+"Oh yes; directly after Mr. Prendergast left me."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"He cried like a child, Herbert. We both sobbed together like two
+children. It was very piteous. But I think I left him better than he
+has been. He knows now that those men cannot come again to harass
+him."
+
+Herbert gnashed his teeth, and clenched his fist as he thought of
+them; but he could not speak of them, or mention their name before
+his mother. What must her thoughts be, as she remembered that elder
+man and looked back to her early childhood!
+
+"He is very weak," she went on to say: "almost helplessly weak now,
+and does not seem to think of leaving his bed. I have begged him to
+let me send to Dublin for Sir Henry; but he says that nothing ails
+him."
+
+"And who is with him now, mother?"
+
+"The girls are both there."
+
+"And Mr. Prendergast?"
+
+Lady Fitzgerald then explained to him, that Mr. Prendergast had
+returned to Dublin that afternoon, starting twenty-four hours
+earlier than he intended,--or, at any rate, than he had said that he
+intended. Having done his work there, he had felt that he would now
+only be in the way. And, moreover, though his work was done at
+Castle Richmond, other work in the same matter had still to be done
+in England. Mr. Prendengast had very little doubt as to the truth of
+Mollett's story;--indeed we may say he had no doubt; otherwise he
+would hardly have made it known to all that world round Castle
+Richmond. But nevertheless it behoved him thoroughly to sift the
+matter. He felt tolerably sure that he should find Mollett in
+London; and whether he did or no, he should be able to identify, or
+not to identify, that scoundrel with the Mr. Talbot who had hired
+Chevy-chase Lodge, in Dorsetshire, and who had undoubtedly married
+poor Mary Wainwright.
+
+"He left a kind message for you," said Lady Fitzgerald.--My readers
+must excuse me if I still call her Lady Fitzgerald, for I cannot
+bring my pen to the use of any other name. And it was so also with
+the dependents and neighbours of Castle Richmond, when the time came
+that the poor lady felt that she was bound publicly to drop her
+title. It was not in her power to drop it: no effort that she could
+make would induce those around her to call her by another name.
+
+"He bade me say," she continued, "that if your future course of life
+should take you to London, you are to go to him, and look to him as
+another father. He has no child of his own," he said, "and you shall
+be to him as a son."
+
+"I will be no one's son but yours,--yours and my father's," he said,
+again embracing her.
+
+And then, when, under his mother's eye, he had eaten and drank and
+made himself warm, he did go to his father and found both his
+sisters sitting there. They came and clustered round him, taking
+hold of his hands and looking up into his face, loving him, and
+pitying him, and caressing him with their eyes, but standing there
+by their father's bed, they said little or nothing. Nor did Sir
+Thomas say much,--except this, indeed, that, just as Herbert was
+leaving him, he declared with a faint voice, that henceforth his son
+should be master of that house, and the disposer of that
+property--"As long as I live!" he exclaimed with his weak voice; "as
+long as I live!"
+
+"No, father, not so."
+
+"Yes, yes! as long as I live. It will be little that you will have,
+even so--very little. But so it shall be as long as I live."
+
+Very little indeed, poor man, for, alas! his days were numbered.
+
+And then, when Herbert left the room, Emmeline followed him. She had
+ever been his dearest sister, and now she longed to be with him that
+she might tell him how she loved him, and comfort him with her
+tears. And Clara too--Clara whom she had welcomed as a sister!--she
+must learn now how Clara would behave, for she had already made
+herself sure that her brother had been at Desmond Court, the herald
+of his own ruin.
+
+"May I come with you, Herbert?" she asked, closing in round him and
+getting under his arm. How could he refuse her? So they went
+together and sat over a fire in a small room that was sacred to her
+and her sister, and there, with many sobs on her part and much
+would-be brave contempt of poverty on his, they talked over the
+altered world as it now showed itself before them.
+
+"And you did not see her?" she asked, when with many efforts she had
+brought the subject round to Clara Desmond and her brother's walk to
+Desmond Court.
+
+"No; she left the room at my own bidding. I could not have told it
+myself to her."
+
+"And you cannot know, then, what she would say?"
+
+"No, I cannot know what she would say; but I know now what I must
+say myself. All that is over, Emmeline. I cannot ask her to marry a
+beggar."
+
+"Ask her; no! there will be no need of asking her; she has already
+given you her promise. You do not think that she will desert you?
+you do not wish it?"
+
+Herein were contained two distinct questions, the latter of which
+Herbert did not care to answer. "I shall not call it desertion," he
+said; "indeed the proposal will come from me. I shall write to her,
+telling her that she need think about me no longer. Only that I am
+so weary I would do it now."
+
+"And how will she answer you? If she is the Clara that I take her
+for she will throw your proposal back into your face. She will tell
+you that it is not in your power to reject her now. She will swear
+to you, that let your words be what they may, she will think of
+you--more now than she has ever thought in better days. She will
+tell you of her love in words that she could not use before. I know
+she will. I know that she is good, and true, and honest, and
+generous. Oh, I should die if I thought she were false! But,
+Herbert, I am sure that she is true. You can write your letter, and
+we shall see."
+
+Herbert, with wise arguments learned from his mother, reasoned with
+his sister, explaining to her that Clara was now by no means bound
+to cling to him, but as he spoke them his arm fastened itself
+closely round his sister's waist, for the words which she uttered
+with so much energy were comfortable to him.
+
+And then, seated there, before he moved from the room, he made her
+bring him pens, ink, and paper, and he wrote his letter to Clara
+Desmond. She would fain have stayed with him while he did so,
+sitting at his feet, and looking into his face, and trying to
+encourage his hope as to what Clara's answer might be; but this he
+would not allow; so she went again to her father's room, having
+succeeded in obtaining a promise that Clara's answer should be shown
+to her. And the letter, when it was written, copied, and recopied,
+ran as follows.--
+
+"Castle Richmond,----night.
+
+"My dearest Clara,"--It was with great difficulty that he could
+satisfy himself with that, or indeed with any other mode of
+commencement. In the short little love-notes which had hitherto gone
+from him, sent from house to house, he had written to her with
+appellations of endearment of his own--as all lovers do; and as all
+lovers seem to think that no lovers have done before
+themselves--with appellations which are so sweet to those who write,
+and so musical to those who read, but which sound so ludicrous when
+barbarously made public in hideous law courts by brazen-browed
+lawyers with mercenary tongues. In this way only had he written, and
+each of these sweet silly songs of love had been as full of honey as
+words could make it. But he had never yet written to her, on a full
+sheet of paper, a sensible positive letter containing thoughts and
+facts, as men do write to women and women also to men, when the
+lollypops and candied sugar-drops of early love have passed away.
+Now he was to write his first serious letter to her,--and probably
+his last, and it was with difficulty that he could get himself over
+the first three words; but there they were decided on at last.
+
+"My dearest Clara,
+
+"Before you get this your mother will have told you all that which I
+could not bring myself to speak out yesterday, as long as you were
+in the room. I am sure you will understand now why I begged you to
+go away, and not think the worse of me for doing so. You now know
+the whole truth, and I am sure that you will feel for us all here.
+
+"Having thought a good deal upon the matter, chiefly during my walk
+home from Desmond Court, and indeed since I have been at home, I
+have come to the resolution that everything between us must be over.
+It would be unmanly in me to wish to ruin you because I myself am
+ruined. Our engagement was, of course, made on the presumption that
+I should inherit my father's estate; as it is I shall not do so, and
+therefore I beg that you will regard that engagement as at an end.
+Of my own love for you I will say nothing. But I know that you have
+loved me truly, and that all this, therefore, will cause you great
+grief. It is better, however, that it should be so, than that I
+should seek to hold you to a promise which was made under such
+different circumstances.
+
+"You will, of course, show this letter to your mother. She, at any
+rate, will approve of what I am now doing; and so will you when you
+allow yourself to consider it calmly.
+
+"We have not known each other so long that there is much for us to
+give back to each other. If you do not think it wrong I should like
+still to keep that lock of your hair, to remind me of my first
+love--and, as I think, my only one. And you, I hope, will not be
+afraid to have near you the one little present that I made you.
+
+"And now, dearest Clara, good-bye. Let us always think, each of the
+other, as of a very dear friend. May God bless you, and preserve
+you, and make you happy.
+
+"Yours, with sincere affection,
+
+"HERBERT FITZGERALD."
+
+This, when at last he had succeeded in writing it, he read over and
+over again; but on each occasion he said to himself that it was cold
+and passionless, stilted and unmeaning. It by no means pleased him,
+and seemed as though it could bring but one answer--a cold
+acquiescence in the proposal which he so coldly made. But yet he
+knew not how to improve it. And after all it was a true exposition
+of that which he had determined to say. All the world--her world and
+his world--would think it better that they should part, and let the
+struggle cost him what it would, he would teach himself to wish that
+it might be so--if not for his own sake, then for hers. So he
+fastened the letter, and taking it with him determined to send it
+over, so that it should reach Clara quite early on the following
+morning.
+
+And then having once more visited his father, and once more kissed
+his mother, he betook himself to bed. It had been with him one of
+those days which seem to pass away without reference to usual hours
+and periods. It had been long dark, and he seemed to have been
+hanging about the house, doing nothing and aiding nobody, till he
+was weary of himself. So he went off to bed, almost wondering, as he
+bethought himself of what had happened to him within the last two
+days, that he was able to bear the burden of his life so easily as
+he did. He betook himself to bed, and with the letter close at his
+hand, so that he might despatch it when he awoke, he was soon
+asleep. After all, that walk, terrible as it had been, was in the
+end serviceable to him.
+
+He slept without waking till the light of the February morning was
+beginning to dawn into his room, and then he was roused by a servant
+knocking at the door. It was grievous enough that awaking to his
+sorrow after the pleasant dreams of the night.
+
+"Here is a letter, Mr. Herbert, from Desmond Court," said Richard.
+"The boy as brought it says as how--"
+
+"A letter from Desmond Court," said Herbert, putting out his hand
+greedily.
+
+"Yes, Mr. Herbert. The boy's been here this hour and better. I
+warn't just up and about myself, or I wouldn't have let 'em keep it
+from you, not half a minute."
+
+"And where is he? I have a letter to send to Desmond Court. But
+never mind. Perhaps--"
+
+"It's no good minding, for the gossoon's gone back any ways." And
+then Richard, having drawn the blind, and placed a little table by
+the bed-head, left his young master to read the despatch from
+Desmond Court. Herbert, till he saw the writing, feared that it was
+from the countess; but the letter was from Clara. She also had
+thought good to write before she betook herself to bed, and she had
+been earlier in despatching her messenger. Here is her letter:
+
+"Dear Herbert, my own Herbert,
+
+"I have heard it all. But remember this; nothing, nothing, NOTHING
+can make any change between you and me. I will hear of no arguments
+that are to separate us. I know beforehand what you will say, but I
+will not regard it--not in the least. I love you ten times the more
+for all your unhappiness; and as I would have shared your good
+fortune, I claim my right to share your bad fortune. PRAY BELIEVE
+ME, that nothing shall turn me from this; for I will NOT BE GIVEN
+UP.
+
+"Give my kindest love to your dear, dear, dearest mother--my mother,
+as she is and must be; and to my darling girls. I do so wish I could
+be with them, and with you, my own Herbert. I cannot help writing in
+confusion, but I will explain all when I see you. I have been so
+unhappy.
+
+"Your own faithful
+
+"CLARA."
+
+Having read this, Herbert Fitzgerald, in spite of his affliction,
+was comforted.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVIII
+
+FOR A' THAT AND A' THAT
+
+
+
+
+
+Herbert as he started from his bed with this letter in his hand felt
+that he could yet hold up his head against all that the world could
+do to him. How could he be really unhappy while he possessed such an
+assurance of love as this, and while his mother was able to give him
+so glorious an example of endurance? He was not really unhappy. The
+low-spirited broken-hearted wretchedness of the preceding day seemed
+to have departed from him as he hurried on his clothes, and went off
+to his sister's room that he might show his letter to Emmeline in
+accordance with the promise he had made her.
+
+"May I come in?" he said, knocking at the door. "I must come in, for
+I have something to show you." But the two girls were dressing and
+he could not be admitted. Emmeline however, promised to come to him,
+and in about three minutes she was out in the cold little
+sitting-room which adjoined their bedroom with her slippers on, and
+her dressing gown wrapped round her, an object presentable to no
+male eyes but those of her brother.
+
+"Emmeline," said he, "I have got a letter this morning."
+
+"Not from Clara?"
+
+"Yes, from Clara. There; you may read it;" and he handed her the
+precious epistle.
+
+"But she could not have got your letter?" said Emmeline, before she
+looked at the one in her hand.
+
+"Certainly not, for I have it here. I must write another now; but in
+truth I do not know what to say. I can be as generous as she is."
+
+And then his sister read the letter. "My own Clara!" she exclaimed,
+as she saw what was the tenor of it. "Did I not tell you so,
+Herbert? I knew well what she would do and say. Love you ten times
+better!--of course she does. What honest girl would not? My own
+beautiful Clara, I knew I could depend on her. I did not doubt her
+for one moment." But in this particular it must be acknowledged that
+Miss Emmeline Fitzgerald hardly confined herself to the strictest
+veracity, for she had lain awake half the night perplexed with
+doubt. What, oh what, if Clara should be untrue! Such had been the
+burden of her doubting midnight thoughts. "'I will not be given
+up,'" she continued, quoting the letter. "No; of course not. And I
+tell you what, Herbert, you must not dare to talk of giving her up.
+Money and titles may be tossed to and fro, but not hearts. How
+beautifully she speaks of dear mamma!" and now the tears began to
+run down the young lady's cheeks. "Oh, I do wish she could be with
+us! My darling, darling, darling Clara! Unhappy? Yes: I am sure Lady
+Desmond will give her no peace. But never mind. She will be true
+through it all; and I said so from the first." And then she fell to
+crying, and embracing her brother, and declaring that nothing now
+should make her altogether unhappy.
+
+"But, Emmeline, you must not think that I shall take her at her
+word. It is very generous of her--"
+
+"Nonsense, Herbert!" And then there was another torrent of
+eloquence, in answering which Herbert found that his arguments were
+of very little efficacy.
+
+And now we must go back to Desmond Court, and see under what all but
+overwhelming difficulties poor Clara wrote her affectionate letter.
+And in the first place it should be pointed out how very wrong
+Herbert had been in going to Desmond Court on foot, through the mud
+and rain. A man can hardly bear himself nobly unless his outer
+aspect be in some degree noble. It may be very sad, this having to
+admit that the tailor does in great part make the man; but such I
+fear is undoubtedly the fact. Could the Chancellor look dignified on
+the woolsack, if he had had an accident with his wig, or allowed his
+robes to be torn or soiled? Does not half the piety of a bishop
+reside in his lawn sleeves, and all his meekness in his anti-virile
+apron? Had Herbert understood the world he would have had out the
+best pair of horses standing in the Castle Richmond stables, when
+going to Desmond Court on such an errand. He would have brushed his
+hair and anointed himself; he would have clothed himself in his rich
+Spanish cloak; he would have seen that his hat was brushed, and his
+boots spotless; and then with all due solemnity, but with head
+erect, he would have told his tale out boldly. The countess would
+still have wished to be rid of him, hearing that he was a pauper;
+but she would have lacked the courage to turn him from the house as
+she had done.
+
+But seeing how woebegone he was and wretched, how mean to look at,
+and low in his outward presence, she had been able to assume the
+mastery, and had kept it throughout the interview. And having done
+this her opinion of his prowess naturally became low, and she felt
+that he would have been unable to press his cause against her.
+
+For some time after he had departed, she sat alone in the room in
+which she had received him. She expected every minute that Clara
+would come down to her, still wishing, however, that she might be
+left for a while alone. But Clara did not come, and she was able to
+pursue her thoughts.
+
+How very terrible was this tragedy that had fallen out in her close
+neighbourhood! That was the first thought that came to her now that
+Herbert had left her. How terrible, overwhelming, and fatal! What
+calamity could fall upon a woman so calamitous as this which had now
+overtaken that poor lady at Castle Richmond? Could she live and
+support such a burden? Could she bear the eyes of people, when she
+knew the light in which she must be now regarded? To lose at one
+blow, her name, her pride of place, her woman's rank and high
+respect! Could it be possible that she would still live on? It was
+thus that Lady Desmond thought; and had any one told her that this
+degraded mother would that very day come down from her room, and sit
+watchful by her sleeping son, in order that she might comfort and
+encourage him when he awoke, she would not have found it in her
+heart to believe such a marvel. But then Lady Desmond knew but one
+solace in her sorrows--had but one comfort in her sad reflections.
+She was Countess of Desmond, and that was all. To Lady Fitzgerald
+had been vouchsafed other solace and other comforts.
+
+And then, on one point the countess made herself fixed as fate, by
+thinking and re-thinking upon it till no doubt remained upon her
+mind. The match between Clara and Herbert must be broken off, let
+the cost be what it might; and--a point on which there was more
+room for doubt, and more pain in coming to a conclusion--that other
+match with the more fortunate cousin must be encouraged and carried
+out. For herself, if her hope was small while Owen was needy and of
+poor account, what hope could there be now that he would be rich and
+great? Moreover, Owen loved Clara, and not herself; and Clara's hand
+would once more be vacant and ready for the winning. For herself her
+only chance had been in Clara's coming marriage.
+
+In all this she knew that there would be difficulty. She was sure
+enough that Clara would at first feel the imprudent generosity of
+youth, and offer to join her poverty to Herbert's poverty. That was
+a matter of course. She, Lady Desmond herself, would have done this,
+at Clara's age,--so at least to herself she said, and also to her
+daughter. But a little time, and a little patience, and a little
+care would set all this in a proper light. Herbert would go away and
+would gradually be forgotten. Owen would again come forth from
+beneath the clouds, with renewed splendour; and then, was it not
+probable that, in her very heart of hearts Owen was the man whom
+Clara had ever loved?
+
+And thus having realized to herself the facts which Herbert had told
+her, she prepared to make them known to her daughter. She got up
+from her chair, intending at first to seek her, and then, changing
+her purpose, rang the bell and sent for her. She was astonished to
+find how violently she herself was affected; not so much by the
+circumstances, as by this duty which had fallen to her of telling
+them to her child. She put one hand upon the other and felt that she
+herself was in a tremor, and was conscious that the blood was
+running quick round her heart. Clara came down, and going to her
+customary seat waited till her mother should speak to her.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald has brought very dreadful news," Lady Desmond said,
+after a minute's pause.
+
+"Oh mamma!" said Clara. She had expected bad tidings, having thought
+of all manner of miseries while she had been upstairs alone; but
+there was that in her mother's voice which seemed to be worse than
+the worst of her anticipations.
+
+"Dreadful, indeed, my child! It is my duty to tell them to you; but
+I must caution you, before I do so, to place a guard upon your
+feelings. That which I have to say must necessarily alter all your
+future prospects, and, unfortunately, make your marrying Herbert
+Fitzgerald quite impossible."
+
+"Mamma!" she exclaimed, with a loud voice, jumping from her chair.
+"Not marry him! Why; what can he have done? Is it his wish to break
+it off?"
+
+Lady Desmond had calculated that she would best effect her object by
+at once impressing her daughter with the idea that, under the
+circumstances which were about to be narrated, this marriage would
+not only be imprudent, but altogether impracticable and out of the
+question. Clara must be made to understand at once, that the
+circumstances gave her no option,--that the affair was of such a
+nature as to make it a thing manifest to everybody, that she could
+not now marry Herbert Fitzgerald. She must not be left to think
+whether she could, or whether she could not, exercise her own
+generosity. And therefore, not without discretion, the countess
+announced at once to her the conclusion at which it would be
+necessary to arrive. But Clara was not a girl to adopt such a
+conclusion on any other judgment than her own, or to be led in such
+a matter by the feelings of any other person.
+
+"Sit down, my dear, and I will explain it all. But, dearest Clara,
+grieved as I must be to grieve you, I am bound to tell you again
+that it must be as I say. For both your sakes it must be so; but
+especially, perhaps, for his. But when I have told you my story, you
+will understand that this must be so."
+
+"Tell me, then, mother." She said this, for Lady Desmond had again
+paused.
+
+"Won't you sit down, dearest?"
+
+"Well, yes; it does not matter;" and Clara, at her mother's bidding,
+sat down, and then the story was told to her.
+
+It was a difficult tale for a mother to tell to so young a child--to
+a child whom she had regarded as being so very young. There were
+various little points of law which she thought that she was obliged
+to explain; how it was necessary that the Castle Richmond property
+should go to an heir-at-law, and how it was impossible that Herbert
+should be that heir-at-law, seeing that he had not been born in
+lawful wedlock. All these things Lady Desmond attempted to explain,
+or was about to attempt such explanation, but desisted on finding
+that her daughter understood them as well as she herself did. And
+then she had to make it also intelligible to Clara that Owen would
+be called on, when Sir Thomas should die, to fill the position and
+enjoy the wealth accruing to the heir of Castle Richmond. When Owen
+Fitzgerald's name was mentioned a slight blush came upon Clara's
+cheek; it was very slight, but nevertheless her mother saw it, and
+took advantage of it to say a word in Owen's favour.
+
+"Poor Owen!" she said. "He will not be the first to triumph in this
+change of fortune."
+
+"I am sure he will not," said Clara. "He is much too generous for
+that." And then the countess began to hope that the task might not
+be so very difficult. Ignorant woman! Had she been able to read one
+page in her daughter's heart, she would have known that the task was
+impossible. After that the story was told out to the end without
+further interruption, and then Clara, hiding her face within her
+hands on the head of the sofa, uttered one long piteous moan.
+
+"It is all very dreadful," said the countess.
+
+"Oh, Lady Fitzgerald, dear Lady Fitzgerald!" sobbed forth Clara.
+
+"Yes, indeed. Poor Lady Fitzgerald! Her fate is so dreadful that I
+know not how to think of it."
+
+"But, mamma--" and as she spoke Clara pushed back from her forehead
+her hair with both her hands, showing, as she did so, the form of
+her forehead, and the firmness of purpose that was written there,
+legible to any eyes that could read. "But, mamma, you are wrong
+about my not marrying Herbert Fitzgerald. Why should I not marry
+him? Not now, as we, perhaps, might have done but for this; but at
+some future time when he may think himself able to support a wife.
+Mamma, I shall not break our engagement; certainly not."
+
+This was said in a tone of voice so very decided that Lady Desmond
+had to acknowledge to herself that there would be difficulty in her
+task. But she still did not doubt that she would have her way, if
+not by concession on the part of her daughter, then by concession on
+the part of Herbert Fitzgerald. "I can understand your generosity of
+feeling, my dear," she said; "and at your age I should probably have
+felt the same. And therefore I do not ask you to take any steps
+towards breaking your engagement. The offer must come from Mr.
+Fitzgerald, and I have no doubt that it will come. He, as a man of
+honour, will know that he cannot now offer to marry you; and he will
+also know, as a man of sense, that it would be ruin for him to think
+of--of such a marriage under his present circumstances."
+
+"Why, mamma? Why should it be ruin to him?"
+
+"Why, my dear? Do you think that a wife with a titled name can be of
+advantage to a young man who has not only got his bread to earn, but
+even to look out for a way in which he may earn it?"
+
+"If there be nothing to hurt him but the titled name, that
+difficulty shall be easily conquered."
+
+"Dearest Clara, you know what I mean. You must be aware that a girl
+of your rank, and brought up as you have been, cannot be a fitting
+wife for a man who will now have to struggle with the world at every
+turn."
+
+Clara, as this was said to her, and as she prepared to answer,
+blushed deeply, for she felt herself obliged to speak on a matter
+which had never yet been subject of speech between her and her
+mother. "Mamma," she said, "I cannot agree with you there. I may
+have what the world calls rank; but nevertheless we have been poor,
+and I have not been brought up with costly habits. Why should I not
+live with my husband as--as--as poorly as I have lived with my
+mother? You are not rich, dear mamma, and why should I be?"
+
+Lady Desmond did not answer her daughter at once; but she was not
+silent because an answer failed her. Her answer would have been
+ready enough had she dared to speak it out. "Yes, it is true; we
+have been poor. I, your mother, did by my imprudence bring down upon
+my head and on yours absolute, unrelenting, pitiless poverty. And
+because I did so, I hae never known one happy hour. I have spent my
+days in bitter remorse--in regretting the want of those things which
+it has been the more terrible to want as they are the customary
+attributes of people of my rank. I have been driven to hate those
+around me who have been rich, because I have been poor. I have been
+utterly friendless because I have been poor. I have been able to do
+none of those sweet, soft, lovely things, by doing which other women
+win the smiles of the world, because I have been poor. Poverty and
+rank together have made me wretched--have left me without
+employment, without society, and without love. And now would you
+tell me that because I have been poor you would choose to be poor
+also?" It would have been thus that she would have answered, had she
+been accustomed to speak out her thoughts. But she had ever been
+accustomed to conceal them.
+
+"I was thinking quite as much of him as of you," at last she said.
+"Such an engagement to you would be fraught with much misery, but to
+him it would be ruinous."
+
+"I do not think it, mamma."
+
+"But it is not necessary, Clara, that you should do anything. You
+will wait, of course, and see what Herbert may say himself."
+
+"Herbert--"
+
+"Wait half a moment, my love. I shall be very much surprised if we
+do not find that Mr. Fitzgerald himself will tell you that the match
+must be abandoned."
+
+"But that will make no difference, mamma."
+
+"No difference, my dear! You cannot marry him against his will. You
+do not mean to say that you would wish to bind him to his
+engagement, if he himself thought it would be to his disadvantage?"
+
+"Yes; I will bind him to it."
+
+"Clara!"
+
+"I will make him know that it is not for his disadvantage. I will
+make him understand that a friend and companion who loves him as I
+love him--as no one else will ever love him now--for I love him
+because he was so high-fortuned when he came to me, and because he
+is now so low-fortuned--that such a wife as I will be, cannot be a
+burden to him. I will cling to him whether he throws me off or no. A
+word from him might have broken our engagement before, but a
+thousand words cannot do it now."
+
+Lady Desmond stared at her daughter, for Clara, in her excitement,
+was walking up and down the room. The countess had certainly not
+expected all this, and she was beginning to think that the subject
+for the present might as well be left alone. But Clara had not done
+as yet.
+
+"Mamma." she said, "I will not do anything without telling you; but
+I cannot leave Herbert in all his misery to think that I have no
+sympathy with him. I shall write to him."
+
+"Not before he writes to you, Clara! You would not wish to be
+indelicate?"
+
+"I know but little about delicacy--what people call delicacy; but I
+will not be ungenerous or unkind. Mamma, you brought us two
+together. Was it not so? Did you not do so, fearing that I
+might--might still care for Herbert's cousin? You did it; and half
+wishing to obey you, half attracted by all his goodness, I did learn
+to love Herbert Fitzgerald; and I did learn to forget--no; but I
+learned to cease to love his cousin. You did this and rejoiced at
+it; and now what you did must remain done."
+
+"But, dearest Clara, it will not be for his good."
+
+"It shall be for his good. Mamma, I would not desert him now for all
+that the world could give me. Neither for mother nor brother could I
+do that. Without your leave I would not have given him the right to
+regard me as his own; but now I cannot take that right back again,
+even at your wish. I must write to him at once, mamma, and tell him
+this."
+
+"Clara, at any rate you must not do that, that at least I must
+forbid."
+
+"Mother, you cannot forbid it now," the daughter said, after walking
+twice the length of the room in silence. "If I be not allowed to
+send a letter, I shall leave the house and go to him."
+
+This was all very dreadful. Lady Desmond was astounded at the manner
+in which her daughter carried herself, and the voice with which she
+spoke. The form of her face was altered, and the very step with
+which she trod was unlike her usual gait. What would Lady Desmond
+do? She was not prepared to confine her daughter as a prisoner, nor
+could she publicly forbid the people about the place to go upon her
+message.
+
+"I did not expect that you would have been so undutiful," she said.
+
+"I hope I am not so," Clara answered. "But now my first duty is to
+him. Did you not sanction our loving each other? People cannot call
+back their hearts and their pledges."
+
+"You will, at any rate, wait till tomorrow, Clara."
+
+"It is dark now," said Clara, despondingly, looking out through the
+window upon the falling night; "I suppose I cannot send to-night."
+
+"And you will show me what you write, dearest?"
+
+"No, mamma. If I wrote it for your eyes it could not be the same as
+if I wrote it only for his."
+
+Very gloomy, sombre, and silent, was the Countess of Desmond all
+that night. Nothing further was said about the Fitzgeralds between
+her and her daughter, before they went to bed; and then Lady Desmond
+did speak a few futile words.
+
+"Clara," she said. "You had better think over what we have been
+saying, in bed to-night. You will be more collected to-morrow
+morning."
+
+"I shall think of it of course," said Clara; "but thinking can make
+no difference," and then just touching her mother's forehead with
+her lips she went off slowly to her room.
+
+What sort of a letter she wrote when she got there, we have already
+seen; and have seen also that she took effective steps to have her
+letter carried to Castle Richmond at an hour sufficiently early in
+the morning. There was no danger that the countess would stop the
+message, for the letter had been read twenty times by Emmeline and
+Mary, and had been carried by Herbert to his mother's room, before
+Lady Desmond had left her bed. "Do not set your heart on it too
+warmly," said Herbert's mother to him.
+
+"But is she not excellent?" said Herbert. "It is because she speaks
+of you in such a way--"
+
+"You would not wish to bring her into misery, because of her
+excellence."
+
+"But, mother, I am still a man," said Herbert. This was too much for
+the suffering woman, the one fault of whose life had brought her son
+to such a pass, and throwing her arm round his neck she wept upon
+his shoulders.
+
+There were other messengers went and came that day between Desmond
+Court and Castle Richmond. Clara and her mother saw nothing of each
+other early in the morning; they did not breakfast together, nor was
+there a word said between them on the subject of the Fitzgeralds.
+But Lady Desmond early in the morning--early for her, that is--sent
+her note also to Castle Richmond. It was addressed to Aunt Letty,
+Miss Letitia Fitzgerald, and went to say that Lady Desmond was very
+anxious to see Miss Letty. Under the present circumstances of the
+family, as described to Lady Desmond by Mr. Herbert Fitzgerald, she
+felt that she could not ask to see "his mother";--it was thus that
+she overcame the difficulty which presented itself to her as to the
+proper title now to be given to Lady Fitzgerald;--but perhaps Miss
+Letty would be good enough to see her, if she called at such and
+such an hour. Aunt Letty, much perplexed, had nothing for it, but to
+say that she would see her. The countess must now be looked on as
+closely connected with the family--at any rate, until that match
+were broken off; and therefore Aunt Letty had no alternative. And
+so, precisely at the hour named, the countess and Aunt Letty were
+seated together in the little breakfast-room of which mention has
+before been made.
+
+No two women were ever closeted together who were more unlike each
+other,--except that they had one common strong love for family rank.
+But in Aunt Letty it must be acknowledged that this passion was not
+unwholesome or malevolent in its course of action. She delighted in
+being a Fitzgerald, and in knowing that her branch of the
+Fitzgeralds had been considerable people ever since her Norman
+ancestor had come over to Ireland with Strongbow. But then she had a
+useful idea that considerable people should do a considerable deal
+of good. Her family pride operated more inwardly than
+outwardly,--inwardly as regarded her own family, and not outwardly
+as regarded the world. Her brother, and her nephew, and her
+sister-in-law, and nieces, were, she thought, among the highest
+commoners in Ireland; they were gentlefolks of the first water, and
+walked openly before the world accordingly, proving their claim to
+gentle blood by gentle deeds and honest conduct. Perhaps she did
+think too much of the Fitzgeralds of Castle Richmond; but the sin
+was one of which no recording angel could have made much in his
+entry. That she was a stupid old woman, prejudiced in the highest
+degree, and horribly ignorant of all the world beyond her own very
+narrow circle,--even of that, I do not think that the recording
+angel could, under the circumstances, have made a great deal.
+
+And now how was her family pride affected by this horrible
+catastrophe that had been made known to her? Herbert the heir, whom
+as heir she had almost idolized, was nobody. Her sister-in-law, whom
+she had learned to love with the whole of her big heart, was no
+sister-in-law. Her brother was one, who, in lieu of adding glory to
+the family, would always be regarded as the most unfortunate of the
+Fitzgerald baronets. But with her, human nature was stronger than
+family pride, and she loved them all, not better, but more tenderly
+than ever.
+
+The two ladies were closeted together for about two hours; and then,
+when the door was opened, Aunt Letty might have been seen with her
+bonnet much on one side, and her poor old eyes and cheeks red with
+weeping. The countess, too, held her handkerchief to her eyes as she
+got back into her pony-carriage. She saw no one else there but Aunt
+Letty; and from her mood when she returned to Desmond Court it might
+be surmised that from Aunt Letty she had learned little to comfort
+her.
+
+"They will be beggars!" she said to herself--"beggars!"--when the
+door of her own room had closed upon her. And there are few people
+in the world who held such beggary in less esteem than did the
+Countess of Desmond. It may almost be said that she hated herself on
+account of her own poverty.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIX
+
+ILL NEWS FLIES FAST
+
+
+
+
+
+A dull, cold, wretched week passed over their heads at Castle
+Richmond, during which they did nothing but realize the truth of
+their position; and then came a letter from Mr. Prendergast,
+addressed to Herbert, in which he stated that such inquiries as he
+had hitherto made left no doubt on his mind that the man named
+Mollett, who had lately made repeated visits at Castle Richmond, was
+he who had formerly taken the house in Dorsetshire under the name of
+Talbot. In his packet Mr. Prendergast sent copies of documents and
+of verbal evidence which he had managed to obtain; but with the
+actual details of these it is not necessary that I should trouble
+those who are following me in this story. In this letter Mr.
+Prendergast also recommended that some intercourse should be had
+with Owen Fitzgerald. It was expedient, he said, that all the
+parties concerned should recognize Owen's position as the heir
+presumptive to the title and estate; and as he, he said, had found
+Mr. Fitzgerald of Hap House to be forbearing, generous, and
+high-spirited, he thought that this intercourse might be conducted
+without enmity or ill blood. And then he suggested that Mr. Somers
+should see Owen Fitzgerald.
+
+All this Herbert explained to his father gently and without
+complaint; but it seemed now as though Sir Thomas had ceased to
+interest himself in the matter. Such battle as it had been in his
+power to make he had made to save his son's heritage and his wife's
+name and happiness, even at the expense of his own conscience. That
+battle had gone altogether against him, and now there was nothing
+left for him but to turn his face to the wall and die. Absolute
+ruin, through his fault, had come upon him and all that belonged to
+him,--ruin that would now be known to the world at large; and it was
+beyond his power to face that world again. In that the glory was
+gone from the house of his son, and of his son's mother, the glory
+was gone from his own house. He made no attempt to leave his bed,
+though strongly recommended so to do by his own family doctor. And
+then a physician came down from Dublin, who could only feel,
+whatever he might say, how impossible it is to administer to a mind
+diseased. The mind of that poor man was diseased past all curing in
+this world, and there was nothing left for him but to die.
+
+Herbert, of course, answered Clara's letter, but he did not go over
+to see her during that week, nor indeed for some little time
+afterwards. He answered it at considerable length, professing his
+ready willingness to give back to Clara her troth, and even
+recommending her, with very strong logic and unanswerable arguments
+of worldly sense, to regard their union as unwise and even
+impossible; but nevertheless there protruded through all his sense
+and all his rhetoric, evidences of love and of a desire for love
+returned, which were much more unanswerable than his arguments, and
+much stronger than his logic. Clara read his letter, not as he would
+have advised her to read it, but certainly in the manner which best
+pleased his heart, and answered it again, declaring that all that he
+said was no avail. He might be false to her if he would. If through
+fickleness of heart and purpose he chose to abandon her, she would
+never complain--never at least aloud. But she would not be false to
+him, nor were her inclinations such as to make it likely that she
+should be fickle, even though her affection might be tried by a
+delay of years. Love with her had been too serious to be thrown
+aside. All which was rather strong language on the part of a young
+lady, but was thought by those other young ladies at Castle Richmond
+to show the very essence of becoming young-ladyhood. They pronounced
+Clara to be perfect in feeling and in judgment, and Herbert could
+not find it in his heart to contradict them.
+
+And of all these doings, writings, and resolves, Clara dutifully
+told her mother. Poor Lady Desmond was at her wits' end in the
+matter. She could scold her daughter, but she had no other power of
+doing anything. Clara had so taken the bit between her teeth that it
+was no longer possible to check her with any usual rein. In these
+days young ladies are seldom deprived by force of paper, pen, and
+ink, and the absolute incarceration of such an offender would be
+still more unusual. Another countess would have taken her daughter
+away, either to London and a series of balls, or to the South of
+Italy, or to the family castle in the North of Scotland, but poor
+Lady Desmond had not the power of other countesses. Now that it was
+put to the trial, she found that she had no power, even over her own
+daughter. "Mamma, it was your own doing," Clara would say; and the
+countess would feel that this alluded not only to her daughter's
+engagement with Herbert the disinherited, but also to her
+non-engagement with Owen the heir.
+
+Under these circumstances Lady Desmond sent for her son. The earl
+was still at Eton, but was now grown to be almost a man--such a man
+as forward Eton boys are at sixteen--tall, and lathy, and handsome,
+with soft incipient whiskers, a bold brow and blushing cheeks, with
+all a boy's love for frolic still strong within him, but some touch
+of a man's pride to check it. In her difficulty Lady Desmond sent
+for the young earl, who had now not been home since the previous
+midsummer, hoping that his young manhood might have some effect in
+saving his sister from the disgrace of a marriage which would make
+her so totally bankrupt both in wealth and rank.
+
+Mr. Somers did go once to Hap House, at Herbert's instigation; but
+very little came of his visit. He had always disliked Owen,
+regarding him as an unthrift, any close connexion with whom could
+only bring contamination on the Fitzgerald property; and Owen had
+returned the feeling tenfold. His pride had been wounded by what he
+had considered to be the agent's insolence, and he had stigmatized
+Mr. Somers to his friends as a self-seeking, mercenary prig. Very
+little, therefore, came of the visit. Mr. Somers, to give him his
+due, had attempted to do his best; being anxious, for Herbert's
+sake, to conciliate Owen; perhaps having--and why not?--some eye to
+the future agency. But Owen was hard, and cold, and
+uncommunicative,--very unlike what he had before been to Mr.
+Prendergast. But then Mr. Prendergast had never offended his pride.
+
+"You may tell my cousin Herbert," he said, with some little special
+emphasis on the word cousin, "that I shall be glad to see him, as
+soon as he feels himself able to meet me. It will be for the good of
+us both that we should have some conversation together. Will you
+tell him, Mr. Somers, that I shall be happy to go to him, or to see
+him here? Perhaps my going to Castle Richmond, during the present
+illness of Sir Thomas, may be inconvenient." And this was all that
+Mr. Somers could get from him.
+
+In a very short time the whole story became known to everybody round
+the neighbourhood. And what would have been the good of keeping it
+secret? There are some secrets,--kept as secrets because they cannot
+well be discussed openly,--which may be allowed to leak out with so
+much advantage! The day must come, and that apparently at no distant
+time, when all the world would know the fate of that Fitzgerald
+family; when Sir Owen must walk into the hall of Castle Richmond,
+the undoubted owner of the mansion and demesne. Why then keep it
+secret? Herbert openly declared his wish to Mr. Somers that there
+should be no secret in the matter. "There is no disgrace," he said,
+thinking of his mother; "nothing to be ashamed of, let the world say
+what it will."
+
+Down in the servants' hall the news came to them gradually,
+whispered about from one to another. They hardly understood what it
+meant, or how it had come to pass; but they did know that their
+master's marriage had been no marriage, and that their master's son
+was no heir. Mrs. Jones said not a word in the matter to any one.
+Indeed, since that day on which she had been confronted with
+Mollett, she had not associated with the servants at all, but had
+kept herself close to her mistress. She understood what it all meant
+perfectly; and the depth of the tragedy had so cowed her spirit that
+she hardly dared to speak of it. Who told the servants,--or who does
+tell servants of such matters, it is impossible to say, but before
+Mr. Prendergast had been three days out of the house they all knew
+that the Mr. Owen of Hap House was to be the future master of Castle
+Richmond.
+
+"An' a sore day it'll be; a sore day, a sore day," said Richard,
+seated in an armchair by the fire, at the end of the servants' hall,
+shaking his head despondingly.
+
+"Faix, an' you may say that," said Corney, the footman. "That
+Misther Owen will go tatthering away to the divil, when the old
+place comes into his hans. No fear he'll make it fly."
+
+"Sorrow seize the ould lawyer for coming down here at all at all,"
+said the cook.
+
+"I never knew no good come of thim dry ould bachelors," said Biddy
+the housemaid; "specially the Englishers."
+
+"The two of yez are no better nor simpletons," said Richard,
+magisterially. "'Twarn't he that done it. The likes of him couldn't
+do the likes o' that."
+
+"And what was it as done it?" said Biddy.
+
+"Ax no questions, and may be you'll be tould no lies," replied
+Richard.
+
+"In course we all knows it's along of her ladyship's marriage which
+warn't no marriage," said the cook. "May the heavens be her bed when
+the Lord takes her! A betther lady nor a kinder-hearted niver
+stepped the floor of a kitchen."
+
+"'Deed an that's thrue for you, cook," said Biddy, with the corner
+of her apron up to her eyes. "But tell me, Richard, won't poor Mr.
+Herbert have nothing?"
+
+"Never you mind about Mr. Herbert," said Richard, who had seen Biddy
+grow up from a slip of a girl, and therefore was competent to snub
+her at every word.
+
+"Ah, but I do mind," said the girl. "I minds more about him than ere
+a one of 'em; and av' that Lady Clara won't have em a cause of
+this--"
+
+"Not a step she won't, thin," said Corney. "She'll go back to Mr.
+Owen. He was her fust love. You'll see else." And so the matter was
+discussed in the servants' hall at the great house.
+
+But perhaps the greatest surprise, the greatest curiosity, and the
+greatest consternation, were felt at the parsonage. The rumour
+reached Mr. Townsend at one of the Relief Committees;--and Mrs.
+Townsend from the mouth of one of her servants, during his absence,
+on the same day; and when Mr. Townsend returned to the parsonage,
+they met each other with blank faces.
+
+"Oh, Aeneas!" said she, before she could get his greatcoat from off
+his shoulders, "have you heard the news?"
+
+"What news?--about Castle Richmond?"
+
+"Yes; about Castle Richmond." And then she knew that he had heard
+it.
+
+Some glimmering of Lady Fitzgerald's early history had been known to
+both of them, as it had been known almost to all in the country; but
+in late years this history had been so much forgotten, that men had
+ceased to talk of it, and this calamity therefore came with all the
+weight of a new misfortune.
+
+"And, Aeneas, who told you of it?" she asked, as they sat together
+over the fire, in their dingy, dirty parlour.
+
+"Well, strange to say, I heard it first from Father Barney."
+
+"Oh, mercy! and is it all about the country in that way?"
+
+"Herbert, you know, has not been at any one of the Committees for
+the last ten days, and Mr. Somers for the last week past has been as
+silent as death; so much so, that that horrid creature, Father
+Columb, would have made a regular set speech the other day at
+Gortnaclough, if I hadn't put him down."
+
+"Dear, dear, dear!" said Mrs. Townsend.
+
+"And I was talking to Father Barney about this, to-day--about Mr.
+Somers, that is."
+
+"Yes, yes, yes!"
+
+"And then he said, 'I suppose you know what has happened at Castle
+Richmond?'"
+
+"How on earth had he learned?" asked Mrs. Townsend, jealous that a
+Roman Catholic priest should have heard such completely Protestant
+news before the Protestant parson and his wife.
+
+"Oh, they learn everything--from the servants, I suppose."
+
+"Of course, the mean creatures!" said Mrs. Townsend, forgetting,
+probably, her own little conversation with her own man-of-all-work
+that morning. "But go on, Aeneas."
+
+"'What has happened!,' said I, 'at Castle Richmond?' 'Oh, you
+haven't heard,' said he. And I was obliged to own that I had not,
+though I saw that it gave him a kind of triumph. 'Why,' said he,
+'very bad news has reached them indeed; the worst of news.' And then
+he told me about Lady Fitzgerald. To give him his due, I must say
+that he was very sorry--very sorry. 'The poor young fellow!' he
+said--'the poor young fellow!' And I saw that he turned away his
+face to hide a tear."
+
+"Crocodile tears!" said Mrs. Townsend.
+
+"No, they were not," said her reverend lord; "and Father Barney is
+not so bad as I once thought him."
+
+"I hope you are not going over too, Aeneas?" And his consort almost
+cried as such a horrid thought entered her head. In her ideas any
+feeling short of absolute enmity to a servant of the Church of Rome
+was an abandonment of some portion of the Protestant basis of the
+Church of England. "The small end of the wedge," she would call it,
+when people around her would suggest that that the heart of a Roman
+Catholic priest might possibly not be altogether black and devilish.
+
+"Well, I hope not, my dear," said Mr. Townsend, with a slight touch
+of sarcasm in his voice. "But, as I was saying, Father Barney told
+me then that this Mr. Prendergast--"
+
+"Oh, I had known of his being there from the day of his coming."
+
+"This Mr Prendergast, it seems, knew the whole affair, from
+beginning to end."
+
+"But how did he know it, Aeneas?"
+
+"That I can't tell you. He was a friend of Sir Thomas before his
+marriage, I know that. And he has told them that it is of no use
+their attempting to keep it secret. He was over at Hap House with
+Owen Fitzgerald before he went."
+
+"And has Owen Fitzgerald been told?"
+
+"Yes, he has been told--told that he is to be the next heir, so
+Father Barney says."
+
+Mrs. Townsend wished in her heart that the news could have reached
+her through a purer source, but all this, coming though it did from
+Father Barney, tallied too completely with what she herself had
+heard to leave on her mind any doubt of its truth. And then she
+began to think of Lady Fitzgerald and her condition, of Herbert and
+of his, and of the condition of them all, till by degrees her mind
+passed away from Father Barney and all his iniquities.
+
+"It is very dreadful," she said, in a low voice.
+
+"Very dreadful, very dreadful. I hardly know how to think of it. And
+I fear that Sir Thomas will not live many months to give them even
+the benefit of his life interest."
+
+"And when he dies all will be gone?"
+
+"Everything."
+
+And then tears stood in her eyes also, and in his also after a
+while. It is very easy for a clergyman in his pulpit to preach
+eloquently upon the vileness of worldly wealth, and the futility of
+worldly station; but where will you ever find one who, when the time
+of proof shall come, will give proof that he himself feels what he
+preaches? Mr. Townsend was customarily loud and eager upon this
+subject, and yet he was now shedding tears because his young friend
+Herbert was deprived of his inheritance.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXX
+
+PALLIDA MORS
+
+
+
+
+
+Mr. Somers, returning from Hap House, gave Owen's message to Herbert
+Fitzgerald, but at the same time told him that he did not think any
+good would come of such a meeting.
+
+"I went over there," he said, "because I would not willingly omit
+anything that Mr. Prendergast had suggested; but I did not expect
+any good to come of it. You know what I have always thought of Owen
+Fitzgerald."
+
+"But Mr. Prendergast said that he behaved so well."
+
+"He did not know Prendergast, and was cowed for the moment by what
+he had heard. That was natural enough. You do as you like, however;
+only do not have him over to Castle Richmond."
+
+Owen, however, did not trust solely to Mr. Somers, but on the
+following day wrote to Herbert, suggesting that they had better
+meet, and begging that the place and time of meeting might be named.
+He himself again suggested Hap House, and declared that he would be
+at home on any day and at any hour that his "cousin" might name,
+"only," as he added, "the sooner the better." Herbert wrote back by
+the same messenger, saying that he would be with him early on the
+following morning; and on the following morning he drove up to the
+door of Hap House, while Owen was still sitting with his coffee-pot
+and knife and fork before him.
+
+Captain Donnellan, whom we saw there on the occasion of our first
+morning visit, was now gone, and Owen Fitzgerald was all alone in
+his home. The captain had been an accustomed guest, spending perhaps
+half his time there during the hunting season, but since Mr.
+Prendergast had been at Hap House, he had been made to understand
+that the master would fain be alone. And since that day Owen had
+never hunted, nor been noticed in his old haunts, nor had been seen
+talking to his old friends. He had remained at home, sitting over
+the fire thinking, wandering up and down his own avenue, or standing
+about the stable, idly, almost unconscious of the grooming of his
+horses. Once and once only he had been mounted, and then as the dusk
+of evening was coming on he had trotted over quickly to Desmond
+Court, as though he had in hand some purport of great moment, but if
+so he changed his mind when he came to the gate, for he walked on
+slowly for three or four hundred yards beyond it, and then, turning
+his horse's head, slowly made his way back past the gate, and then
+trotted quickly home to Hap House. In these moments of his life he
+must make or mar himself for life, 'twas so that he felt it, and how
+should he make himself, or how avoid the marring? That was the
+question which he now strove to answer.
+
+When Herbert entered the room, he rose from his chair, and walked
+quickly up to his visitor, with extended hand, and a look of welcome
+in his face. His manner was very different from that with which he
+had turned and parted from his cousin not many days since in the
+demesne at Castle Richmond. Then he had intended absolutely to defy
+Herbert Fitzgerald; but there was no spirit of defiance now, either
+in his hand, or face, or in the tone of his voice.
+
+"I am very glad you have come," said he. "I hope you understood that
+I would have gone to you, only that I thought it might be better for
+both of us to be here."
+
+Herbert said something to the effect that he had been quite willing
+to come over to Hap House. But he was not at the moment so self-
+possessed as the other, and hardly knew how to begin the subject
+which was to be discussed between them.
+
+"Of course you know that Mr. Prendergast was here?" said Owen.
+
+"Oh yes," said Herbert.
+
+"And Mr. Somers also? I tell you fairly, Herbert, that when Mr.
+Somers came, I was not willing to say much to him. What has to be
+said must be said between you and me, and not to any third party. I
+could not open my heart, nor yet speak my thoughts, to Mr. Somers."
+
+In answer to this, Herbert again said that Owen need have no scruple
+in speaking to him. "It is all plain sailing; too plain, I fear,"
+said he. "There is no doubt whatever now as to the truth of what Mr.
+Prendergast has told you."
+
+And then having said so much, Herbert waited for Owen to speak. He,
+Herbert himself, had little or nothing to say. Castle Richmond with
+its title and acres was not to be his, but was to be the property of
+this man with whom he was now sitting. When that was actually and
+positively understood between them, there was nothing further to be
+said; nothing as far as Herbert knew. That other sorrow of his, that
+other and deeper sorrow which affected his mother's name and
+station,--as to that he did not find himself called on to speak to
+Owen Fitzgerald. Nor was it necessary that he should say anything as
+to his great consolation--the consolation which had reached him
+from Clara Desmond.
+
+"And is it true, Herbert," asked Owen at last, "that my uncle is so
+very ill?" In the time of their kindly intercourse, Owen had always
+called Sir Thomas his uncle, though latterly he had ceased to do so.
+
+"He is very ill; very ill indeed," said Herbert. This was a subject
+in which Owen had certainly a right to feel interested, seeing that
+his own investiture would follow immediately on the death of Sir
+Thomas; but Herbert almost felt that the question might as well have
+been spared. It had been asked, however, almost solely with the view
+of gaining some few moments.
+
+"Herbert," he said at last, standing up from his chair, as he made
+an effort to begin his speech, "I don't know how far you will
+believe me when I tell you that all this news has caused me great
+sorrow. I grieve for your father and your mother, and for you, from
+the very bottom of my heart."
+
+"It is very kind of you," said Herbert. "But the blow has fallen,
+and as for myself, I believe that I can bear it. I do not care so
+very much about the property."
+
+"Nor do I;" and now Owen spoke rather louder, and with his own look
+of strong impulse about his mouth and forehead. "Nor do I care so
+much about the property. You were welcome to it; and are so still. I
+have never coveted it from you, and do not covet it."
+
+"It will be yours now without coveting," replied Herbert; and then
+there was another pause, during which Herbert sat still, while Owen
+stood leaning with his back against the mantelpiece.
+
+"Herbert," said he, after they had thus remained silent for two or
+three minutes, "I have made up my mind on this matter, and I will
+tell you truly what I do desire, and what I do not. I do not desire
+your inheritance, but I do desire that Clara Desmond shall be my
+wife."
+
+"Owen," said the other, also getting up, "I did not expect when I
+came here that you would have spoken to me about this."
+
+"It was that we might speak about this that I asked you to come
+here. But listen to me. When I say that I want Clara Desmond to be
+my wife, I mean to say that I want that, and that only. It may be
+true that I am, or shall be, legally the heir to your father's
+estate. Herbert, I will relinquish all that, because I do not feel
+it to be my own. I will relinquish it in any way that may separate
+myself from it most thoroughly. But in return, do you separate
+yourself from her who was my own before you had ever known her."
+
+And thus he did make the proposition as to which he had been making
+up his mind since the morning on which Mr. Prendergast had come to
+him.
+
+Herbert for a while was struck dumb with amazement, not so much at
+the quixotic generosity of the proposal, as at the singular mind of
+the man in thinking that such a plan could be carried out. Herbert's
+best quality was no doubt his sturdy common sense, and that was
+shocked by a suggestion which presumed that all the legalities and
+ordinary bonds of life could be upset by such an agreement between
+two young men. He knew that Owen Fitzgerald could not give away his
+title to an estate of fourteen thousand a year in this off-hand
+way, and that no one could accept such a gift were it possible to be
+given. The estate and title must belong to Owen, and could not
+possibly belong to any one else, merely at his word and fancy. And
+then again, how could the love of a girl like Clara Desmond be
+bandied to and fro at the will of any suitor or suitors? That she
+had once accepted Owen's love, Herbert knew; but since that, in a
+soberer mood, and with maturer judgment, she had accepted his. How
+could he give it up to another, or how could that other take
+possession of it if so abandoned? The bargain was one quite
+impossible to be carried out; and yet Owen in proposing it had fully
+intended to be as good as his word.
+
+"That is impossible," said Herbert, in a low voice.
+
+"Why impossible? May I not do what I like with that which is my own?
+It is not impossible. I will have nothing to do with that property
+of yours. In fact, it is not my own, and I will not take it; I will
+not rob you of that which you have been born to expect. But in
+return for this--"
+
+"Owen, do not talk of it; would you abandon a girl whom you loved
+for any wealth, or any property?"
+
+"You cannot love her as I love her. I will talk to you on this
+matter openly, as I have never yet talked to any one. Since first I
+saw Clara Desmond, the only wish of my life has been that I might
+have her for my wife. I have longed for her as a child longs--if you
+know what I mean by that. When I saw that she was old enough to
+understand what love meant, I told her what was in my heart, and she
+accepted my love. She swore to me that she would be mine, let mother
+or brother say what they would. As sure as you are standing there a
+living man she loved me with all truth. And that I loved her--!
+Herbert, I have never loved aught but her; nothing else!--neither
+man nor woman, nor wealth nor title. All I ask is that I may have
+that which was my own."
+
+"But, Owen--" and Herbert touched his cousin's arm.
+
+"Well; why do you not speak? I have spoken plainly enough."
+
+"It is not easy to speak plainly on all subjects. I would not, if I
+could avoid it, say a word that would hurt your feelings."
+
+"Never mind my feelings. Speak out, and let us have the truth, in
+God's name. My feelings have never been much considered yet--either
+in this matter or in any other."
+
+"It seems to me," said Herbert, "that the giving of Lady Clara's
+hand cannot depend on your will, or on mine."
+
+"You mean her mother."
+
+"No, by no means. Her mother now would be the last to favour me. I
+mean herself. If she loves me, as I hope and believe--nay, am
+sure--"
+
+"She did love me!" shouted Owen.
+
+"But even if so--I do not now say anything of that; but even if so,
+surely you would not have her marry you if she does not love you
+still? You would not wish her to be your wife if her heart belongs
+to me?"
+
+"It has been given you at her mother's bidding."
+
+"However given it is now my own, and it cannot be returned. Look
+here, Owen. I will show you her last two letters, if you will allow
+me; not in pride, I hope, but that you may truly know what are her
+wishes." And he took from his breast, where they had been ever since
+he received them, the two letters which Clara had written to him.
+Owen read them both twice over before he spoke, first one and then
+the other, and an indescribable look of pain fell on his brow as he
+did so. They were so tenderly worded, so sweet, so generous! He
+would have given all the world to have had those letters addressed
+by her to himself. But even they did not convince him. His heart had
+never changed, and he could not believe that there had been any
+change in hers.
+
+"I might have known," he said, as he gave them back, "that she would
+be too noble to abandon you in your distress. As long as you were
+rich I might have had some chance of getting her back, despite the
+machinations of her mother. But now that she thinks you are poor--"
+And then he stopped, and hid his face between his hands.
+
+And in what he had last said there was undoubtedly something of
+truth. Clara's love for Herbert had never been passionate, till
+passion had been created by his misfortune. And in her thoughts of
+Owen there had been much of regret. Though she had resolved to
+withdraw her love, she had not wholly ceased to love him. Judgment
+had bade her to break her word to him, and she had obeyed her
+judgment. She had admitted to herself that her mother was right in
+telling her that she could not join her own bankrupt fortunes to the
+fortunes of one who was both poor and a spendthrift, and thus she
+had plucked from her heart the picture of the man she had loved,--or
+endeavoured so to pluck it. Some love for him, however, had
+unwittingly lingered there. And then Herbert had come with his suit,
+a suitor fitted for her in every way. She had not loved him as she
+had loved Owen. She had never felt that she could worship him, and
+tremble at the tones of his voice, and watch the glance of his eye,
+and gaze into his face as though he were half divine. But she
+acknowledged his worth, and valued him: she knew that it behoved her
+to choose some suitor as her husband; and now that her dream was
+gone, where could she choose better than here? And thus Herbert had
+been accepted. He had been accepted, but the dream was not wholly
+gone. Owen was in adversity, ill spoken of by those around her,
+shunned by his own relatives, living darkly, away from all that is
+soft in life; and for these reasons Clara could not wholly forget
+her dream. She had, in some sort, unconsciously clung to her old
+love, till he to whom she had plighted her new troth was in
+adversity,--and then all was changed. Then her love for Herbert did
+become a passion; and then, as Owen had become rich, she felt that
+she could think of him without remorse. He was quite right in
+perceiving that his chance was gone now that Herbert had ceased to
+be rich.
+
+"Owen," said Herbert, and his voice was full of tenderness, for at
+this moment he felt that he did love and pity his cousin, "we must
+each of us bear the weight which fortune has thrown on us. It may be
+that we are neither of us to be envied. I have lost all that men
+generally value, and you--"
+
+"I have lost all on earth that is valuable to me. But no, it is not
+lost,--not lost as yet. As long as her name is Clara Desmond, she is
+as open for me to win as she is for you. And, Herbert, think of it
+before you make me your enemy. See what I offer you,--not as a
+bargain, mind you. I give up all my title to your father's property.
+I will sign any paper that your lawyers may bring to me, which may
+serve to give you back your inheritance. As for me, I would scorn to
+take that which belongs in justice to another. I will not have your
+property. Come what may, I will not have it. I will give it up to
+you, either as to my enemy or as to my friend."
+
+"I sincerely hope that we may be friends, but what you say is
+impossible."
+
+"It is not impossible. I hereby pledge myself that I will not take
+an acre of your father's lands; but I pledge myself also that I will
+always be your enemy if Clara Desmond becomes your wife: and I mean
+what I say. I have set my heart on one thing, and on one thing only,
+and if I am ruined in that I am ruined indeed."
+
+Herbert remained silent, for he had nothing further that he knew how
+to plead; he felt as other men would feel, that each of them must
+keep that which Fate had given him. Fate had decreed that Owen
+should be the heir to Castle Richmond, and the decree thus gone
+forth must stand valid; and Fate had also decreed that Owen should
+be rejected by Clara Desmond, which other decree, as Herbert
+thought, must be held as valid also. But he had no further
+inclination to argue upon the subject: his cousin was becoming hot
+and angry; and Herbert was beginning to wish that he was on his way
+home, that he might be once more at his father's bedside, or in his
+mother's room, comforting her and being comforted.
+
+"Well," said Owen, after a while in his deep-toned voice, "what do
+you say to my offer?"
+
+"I have nothing further to say: we must each take our own course; as
+for me, I have lost everything but one thing, and it is not likely
+that I shall throw that away from me."
+
+"Nor, so help me Heaven in my need! will I let that thing be filched
+from me. I have offered you kindness and brotherly love, and wealth,
+and all that friendship could do for a man, give me my way in this,
+and I will be to you such a comrade and such a brother."
+
+"Should I be a man, Owen, were I to give up this?"
+
+"Be a man! Yes! It is pride on your part. You do not love her; you
+have never loved her as I have loved; you have not sat apart long
+months and months thinking of her, as I have done. From the time she
+was a child I marked her as my own. As God will help me when I die,
+she is all that I have coveted in this world;--all! But her I have
+coveted with such longings of the heart, that I cannot bring myself
+to live without her;--nor will I." And then again they both were
+silent.
+
+"It may be as well that we should part now," said Herbert at last.
+"I do not know that we can gain anything by further talking on this
+subject."
+
+"Well, you know that best; but I have one further question to ask
+you."
+
+"What is it, Owen?"
+
+"You still think of marrying Clara Desmond?"
+
+"Certainly; of course I think of it."
+
+"And when? I presume you are not so chicken-hearted as to be afraid
+of speaking out openly what you intend to do."
+
+"I cannot say when; I had hoped that it would have been very soon;
+but all this will of course delay it. It may be years first."
+
+These last were the only pleasant words that Owen had heard. If
+there were to be a delay of years, might not his chance still be as
+good as Herbert's? But then this delay was to be the consequence of
+his cousin's ruined prospects--and the accomplishment of that ruin
+Owen had pledged himself to prevent! Was he by his own deed to
+enable his enemy to take that very step which he was so firmly
+resolved to prevent?
+
+"You will give me your promise," said he, "that you will not marry
+her for the next three years? Make me that promise, and I will make
+you the same."
+
+Herbert felt that there could be no possibility of his now marrying
+within the time named, but nevertheless he would not bring himself
+to make such a promise as this. He would make no bargain about Clara
+Desmond, about his Clara, which could in any way admit a doubt as to
+his own right. Had Owen asked him to promise that he would not marry
+her during the next week he would have given no such pledge. "No,"
+said he, "I cannot promise that."
+
+"She is now only seventeen."
+
+"It does not matter. I will make no such promise, because on such a
+subject you have no right to ask for any. When she will consent to
+run her risk of happiness in coming to me, then I shall marry her."
+
+Owen was now walking up and down the room with rapid steps. "You
+have not the courage to fight me fairly," said he.
+
+"I do not wish to fight you at all."
+
+"Ah, but you must fight me! Shall I see the prey taken out of my
+jaws, and not struggle for it? No, by heavens! you must fight me;
+and I tell you fairly, that the fight shall be as hard as I can make
+it. I have offered you that which one living man is seldom able to
+offer to another,--money, and land, and wealth, and station; all
+these things I throw away from me, because I feel that they should
+be yours; and I ask only in return the love of a young girl. I ask
+that because I feel that it should be mine. If it has gone from
+me--which I do not believe--it has been filched and stolen by a
+thief in the night. She did love me, if a girl ever loved a man; but
+she was separated from me, and I bore that patiently because I
+trusted her. But she was young and weak, and her mother was strong
+and crafty. She has accepted you at her mother's instance; and were
+I base enough to keep from you your father's inheritance, her mother
+would no more give her to you now than she would to me then. This is
+true; and if you know it to be true--as you do know--you will be
+mean, and dastard, and a coward--you will be no Fitzgerald if you
+keep from me that which I have a right to claim as my own. Not
+fight! Ay, but you must fight. We cannot both live here in this
+country if Clara Desmond become your wife. Mark my words, if that
+take place, you and I cannot live here alongside of each other's
+houses." He paused for a moment after this, and then added, "You can
+go now if you will, for I have said out my say."
+
+And Herbert did go,--almost without uttering a word of adieu. What
+could he say in answer to such threats as these? That his cousin was
+in every way unreasonable,--as unreasonable in his generosity as he
+was in his claims, he felt convinced. But an unreasonable man,
+though he is one whom one would fain conquer by arguments were it
+possible, is the very man on whom arguments have no avail. A madman
+is mad because he is mad. Herbert had a great deal that was very
+sensible to allege in favour of his views, but what use of alleging
+anything of sense to such a mind as that of Owen Fitzgerald? So he
+went his way without further speech.
+
+When he was gone, Owen for a time went on walking his room, and then
+sank again into his chair. Abominably irrational as his method of
+arranging all these family difficulties will no doubt seem to all
+who may read it, to him it had appeared not only an easy but a happy
+mode of bringing back contentment to everybody. He was quite serious
+in his intention of giving up his position as heir to Castle
+Richmond. Mr. Prendergast had explained to him that the property was
+entailed as far as him, but no farther; and had done this,
+doubtless, with the view, not then expressed, to some friendly
+arrangement by which a small portion of the property might be saved
+and restored to the children of Sir Thomas. But Owen had looked at
+it quite in another light. He had, in justice, no right to inquire
+into all those circumstances of his old cousin's marriage. Such a
+union was a marriage in the eye of God, and should be held as such
+by him. He would take no advantage of so terrible an accident.
+
+He would take no advantage. So he said to himself over and over
+again; but yet, as he said it, he resolved that he would take
+advantage. He would not touch the estate; but surely if he abstained
+from touching it, Herbert would be generous enough to leave to him
+the solace of his love! And he had no scruple in allotting to Clara
+the poorer husband instead of the richer. He was no poorer now than
+when she had accepted him. Looking at it in that light, had he not a
+right to claim that she should abide by her first acceptance? Could
+any one be found to justify the theory that a girl may throw over a
+poor lover because a rich lover comes in the way? Owen had his own
+ideas of right and wrong--ideas which were not without a basis of
+strong, rugged justice; and nothing could be more antagonistic to
+them than such a doctrine as this. And then he still believed in his
+heart that he was dearer to Clara than that other richer suitor. He
+heard of her from time to time, and those who had spoken to him had
+spoken of her as pining for love of him. In this there had been much
+of the flattery of servants, and something of the subservience of
+those about him who wished to stand well in his graces. But he had
+believed it. He was not a conceited man, nor even a vain man. He did
+not think himself more clever than his cousin; and as for personal
+appearance, it was a matter to which his thoughts never descended;
+but he had about him a self-dependence and assurance in his own
+manhood, which forbade him to doubt the love of one who had told him
+that she loved him.
+
+And he did not believe in Herbert's love. His cousin was, as he
+thought, of a calibre too cold for love. That Clara was valued by
+him, Owen did not doubt--valued for her beauty, for her rank, for
+her grace and peerless manner; but what had such value as that to do
+with love? Would Herbert sacrifice everything for Clara Desmond?
+would he bid Pelion fall on Ossa? would he drink up Esil? All this
+would Owen do, and more; he would do more than any Laertes had ever
+dreamed. He would give up for now and for ever all title to those
+rich lands which made the Fitzgeralds of Castle Richmond the men of
+greatest mark in all their county.
+
+And thus he fanned himself into a fury as he thought of his cousin's
+want of generosity. Herbert would be the heir, and because he was
+the heir he would be the favoured lover. But there might yet be time
+and opportunity; and at any rate Clara should not marry without
+knowing what was the whole truth. Herbert was ungenerous, but Clara
+still might be just. If not,--then, as he had said before, he would
+fight out the battle to the end as with an enemy.
+
+Herbert, when he got on to his horse to ride home, was forced to
+acknowledge to himself that no good whatever had come from his visit
+to Hap House. Words had been spoken which might have been much
+better left unspoken. An angry man will often cling to his anger
+because his anger has been spoken; he will do evil because he has
+threatened evil, and is ashamed to be better than his words. And
+there was no comfort to be derived from those lavish promises made
+by Owen with regard to the property. To Herbert's mind they were
+mere moonshine--very graceful on the part of the maker, but meaning
+nothing. No one could have Castle Richmond but him who owned it
+legally. Owen Fitzgerald would become Sir Owen, and would, as a
+matter of course, be Sir Owen of Castle Richmond. There was no
+comfort on that score; and then, on that other score, there was so
+much discomfort. Of giving up his bride Herbert never for a moment
+thought; but he did think, with increasing annoyance, of the angry
+threats which had been pronounced against him.
+
+When he rode into the stable-yard as was his wont, he found Richard
+waiting for him. This was not customary; as in these latter days
+Richard, though he always drove the car, as a sort of subsidiary
+coachman to the young ladies to whom the car was supposed to belong
+in fee, did not act as general groom. He had been promoted beyond
+this, and was a sort of hanger-on about the house, half indoor
+servant and half out, doing very much what he liked, and giving
+advice to everybody, from the cook downwards. He thanked God that he
+knew his place, he would often say; but nobody else knew it.
+Nevertheless, everybody liked him; even the poor housemaid whom he
+snubbed.
+
+"Is anything the matter?" asked Herbert, looking at the man's
+sorrow-laden face.
+
+'"Deed an' there is, Mr. Herbert; Sir Thomas is--"
+
+"My father is not dead!" exclaimed Herbert.
+
+"Oh no, Mr. Herbert; it's not so bad as that; but he is very
+failing,--very failing. My lady is with him now."
+
+Herbert ran into the house, and at the bottom of the chief stairs he
+met one of his sisters, who had heard the steps of his horse.
+
+"Oh, Herbert, I am so glad you have come!" said she. Her eyes and
+cheeks were red with tears, and her hand, as her brother took it,
+was cold and numbed.
+
+"What is it, Mary? Is he worse?"
+
+"Oh, so much worse. Mamma and Emmeline are there. He has asked for
+you three or four times, and always says that he is dying. I had
+better go up and say that you are here."
+
+"And what does my mother think of it?"
+
+"She has never left him, and therefore I cannot tell; but I know
+from her face that she thinks that he is--dying. Shall I go up,
+Herbert?" and so she went; and Herbert, following softly on his
+toes, stood in the corridor outside the bedroom-door, waiting till
+his arrival should have been announced. It was but a minute, and
+then his sister, returning to the door, summoned him to enter.
+
+The room had been nearly darkened, but as there were no curtains to
+the bed, Herbert could see his mother's face as she knelt on a stool
+at the bedside. His father was turned away from him, and lay with
+his hand inside his wife's, and Emmeline was sitting on the foot of
+the bed, with her face between her hands, striving to stifle her
+sobs. "Here is Herbert now, dearest," said Lady Fitzgerald, with a
+low, soft voice, almost a whisper, yet clear enough to cause no
+effort in the hearing. "I knew that he would not be long." And
+Herbert, obeying the signal of his mother's eye, passed round to the
+other side of the bed.
+
+"Father," said he, "are you not so well to-day?"
+
+"My poor boy, my poor ruined boy!" said the dying man, hardly
+articulating the words as he dropped his wife's hand and took that
+of his son. Herbert found that it was wet, and clammy, and cold, and
+almost powerless in its feeble grasp.
+
+"Dearest father, you are wrong if you let that trouble you; all that
+will never trouble me. Is it not well that a man should earn his own
+bread? Is it not the lot of all good men?" But still the old man
+murmured with his broken voice, "My poor boy, my poor boy!"
+
+The hopes and aspirations of his eldest son are as the breath of his
+nostrils to an Englishman who has been born to land and fortune.
+What had not this poor man endured in order that his son might be
+Sir Herbert Fitzgerald of Castle Richmond? But this was no longer
+possible; and from the moment that this had been brought home to
+him, the father had felt that for him there was nothing left but to
+die. "My poor boy," he muttered, "tell me that you have forgiven
+me."
+
+And then they all knelt round the bed and prayed with him; and
+afterwards they tried to comfort him, telling him how good he had
+been to them; and his wife whispered in his ear that if there had
+been fault, the fault was hers, but that her conscience told her
+that such fault had been forgiven; and while she said this she
+motioned the children away from him, and strove to make him
+understand that human misery could never kill the soul, and should
+never utterly depress the spirit. "Dearest love," she said, still
+whispering to him in her low, sweet voice--so dear to him, but
+utterly inaudible beyond--"if you would cease to accuse yourself so
+bitterly, you might yet be better, and remain with us to comfort
+us."
+
+But the slender, half-knit man, whose arms are without muscles and
+whose back is without pith, will strive in vain to lift the weight
+which the brawny vigour of another tosses from the ground almost
+without an effort. It is with the mind and the spirit as with the
+body; only this, that the muscles of the body can be measured, but
+not so those of the spirit. Lady Fitzgerald was made of other stuff
+than Sir Thomas; and that which to her had cost an effort, but with
+an effort had been done surely, was to him as impossible as the
+labour of Hercules. "My poor boy, my poor ruined boy!" he still
+muttered, as she strove to comfort him.
+
+"Mamma has sent for Mr. Townsend," Emmeline whispered to her
+brother, as they stood together in the bow of the window.
+
+"And do you really think he is so bad as that?"
+
+"I am sure that mamma does. I believe he had some sort of a fit
+before you came. At any rate, he did not speak for two hours."
+
+"And was not Finucane here?" Finucane was the Mallow doctor.
+
+"Yes; but he had left before papa became so much worse. Mamma has
+sent for him also."
+
+But I do not know that it boots to dally longer in a dying chamber.
+It is an axiom of old that the stage curtain should be drawn before
+the inexorable one enters in upon his final work. Dr. Finucane did
+come, but his coming was all in vain. Sir Thomas had known that it
+was in vain, and so also had his patient wife. There was that mind
+diseased, towards the cure of which no Dr. Finucane could make any
+possible approach. And Mr. Townsend came also, let us hope not in
+vain; though the cure which he fain would have perfected can hardly
+be effected in such moments as those. Let us hope that it had been
+already effected. The only crying sin which we can lay to the charge
+of the dying man is that of which we have spoken; he had endeavoured
+by pensioning falsehood and fraud to preserve for his wife her name,
+and for his son that son's inheritance. Even over this, deep as it
+was, the recording angel may have dropped some cleansing tears of
+pity.
+
+That night the poor man died, and the Fitzgeralds who sat in the
+chambers of Castle Richmond were no longer the owners of the
+mansion. There was no speech of Sir Herbert among the servants as
+there would have been had these tidings not have reached them. Dr.
+Finucane had remained in the house, and even he, in speaking of the
+son, had shown that he knew the story. They were strangers there
+now, as they all knew--intruders, as they would soon be considered
+in the house of their cousin Owen; or rather not their cousin. In
+that he was above them by right of his blood, they had no right to
+claim him as their relation.
+
+It may be said that at such a moment all this should not have been
+thought of; but those who say so know little, as I imagine, of the
+true effect of sorrow. No wife and no children ever grieved more
+heartily for a father; but their grief was blacker and more gloomy
+in that they knew that they were outcasts in the world.
+
+And during that long night, as Herbert and his sisters sat up
+cowering round the fire, he told them of all that had been said at
+Hap House. "And can it not be as he says?" Mary had asked.
+
+"And that Herbert should give up his wife!" said Emmeline.
+
+"No; but the other thing."
+
+"Do not dream of it," said Herbert. "It is all, all impossible. The
+house that we are now in belongs to Sir Owen Fitzgerald."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXI
+
+THE FIRST MONTH
+
+
+
+
+
+And now I will beg my readers to suppose a month to have passed by
+since Sir Thomas Fitzgerald died. It was a busy month in Ireland. It
+may probably be said that so large a sum of money had never been
+circulated in the country in any one month since money had been
+known there; and yet it may also be said that so frightful a
+mortality had never occurred there from the want of that which money
+brings.
+
+It was well understood by all men now that the customary food of the
+country had disappeared. There was no longer any difference of
+opinion between rich and poor, between Protestant and Roman
+Catholic; as to that, no man dared now to say that the poor, if left
+to themselves, could feed themselves, or to allege that the
+sufferings of the country arose from the machinations of
+money-making speculators. The famine was an established fact, and
+all men knew that it was God's doing,--all men knew this, though few
+could recognize as yet with how much mercy God's hand was stretched
+out over the country.
+
+Or may it not perhaps be truer to say that in such matters there is
+no such thing as mercy--no special mercies--no other mercy than
+that fatherly, forbearing, all-seeing, perfect goodness by which the
+Creator is ever adapting this world to the wants of His creatures,
+and rectifying the evils arising from their faults and follies? Sed
+quo Musa tendis? Such discourses of the gods as these are not to be
+fitly handled in such small measures.
+
+At any rate, there was the famine, undoubted now by any one; and
+death, who in visiting Castle Richmond may be said to have knocked
+at the towers of a king, was busy enough also among the cabins of
+the poor. And now the great fault of those who were the most
+affected was becoming one which would not have been at first sight
+expected. One would think that starving men would become violent,
+taking food by open theft--feeling, and perhaps not without some
+truth, that the agony of their want robbed such robberies of its
+sin. But such was by no means the case. I only remember one instance
+in which the bakers' shops were attacked; and in that instance the
+work was done by those who were undergoing no real suffering. At
+Clonmel, in Tipperary, the bread was one morning stripped away from
+the bakers' shops; but at that time, and in that place, there was
+nothing approaching to famine. The fault of the people was apathy.
+It was the feeling of the multitude that the world and all that was
+good in it was passing away from them; that exertion was useless,
+and hope hopeless. "Ah, me! your honour," said a man to me,
+"there'll never be a bit and a sup again in the county Cork! The
+life of the world is fairly gone!"
+
+And it was very hard to repress this feeling. The energy of a man
+depends so much on the outward circumstances that encumber him! It
+is so hard to work when work seems hopeless--so hard to trust where
+the basis of our faith is so far removed from sight! When large
+tracts of land went out of cultivation, was it not natural to think
+that agriculture was receding from the country, leaving the green
+hills once more to be brown and barren, as hills once green have
+become in other countries? And when men were falling in the
+highways, and women would sit with their babes in their arms,
+listless till death should come to them, was it not natural to think
+that death was making a huge success--that he, the inexorable one,
+was now the inexorable indeed?
+
+There were greatly trusting hearts that could withstand the weight
+of this terrible pressure, and thinking minds which saw that good
+would come out of this great evil; but such hearts and such minds
+were not to be looked for among the suffering poor, and were not,
+perhaps, often found even among those who were not poor or
+suffering. It was very hard to be thus trusting and thoughtful while
+everything around was full of awe and agony.
+
+The people, however, were conscious of God's work, and were becoming
+dull and apathetic. They clustered about the roads, working lazily
+while their strength lasted them; and afterwards, when strength
+failed them for this, they clustered more largely in the
+poor-houses. And in every town--in every assemblage of houses which
+in England would be called a village, there was a poor-house. Any
+big barrack of a tenement that could be obtained at a moment's
+notice, whatever the rent, became a poor-house in the course of
+twelve hours,--in twelve, nay, in two hours. What was necessary but
+the bare walls, and a supply of yellow meal? Bad provision this for
+all a man's wants,--as was said often enough by irrational
+philanthropists; but better provision than no shelter and no yellow
+meal! It was bad that men should be locked up at night without any
+of the appliances of decency; bad that they should be herded
+together for day after day with no resource but the eating twice a
+day of enough unsavoury food to keep life and soul together;--very
+bad, ye philanthropical irrationalists! But is not a choice of evils
+all that is left to us in many a contingency? Was not even this
+better than that life and soul should be allowed to part, without
+any effect at preserving their union?
+
+And thus life and soul were kept together, the government of the day
+having wisely seen what, at so short a notice, was possible for them
+to do. and what was absolutely impossible. It is in such emergencies
+as these that the watching and the wisdom of a government are
+necessary; and I shall always think--as I did think then--that the
+wisdom of its action and the wisdom of its abstinence from action
+were very good. And now again the fields in Ireland are green, and
+the markets are busy, and money is chucked to and fro like a
+weathercock which the players do not wish to have abiding with them;
+and the tardy speculator going over to look for a bit of land comes
+back muttering angrily that fancy prices are demanded. "They'll run
+you up to thirty-three years' purchase," says the tardy speculator,
+thinking, as it seems, that he is specially ill used. Agricultural
+wages have been nearly doubled in Ireland during the last fifteen
+years. Think of that, Master Brook. Work for which, at six shillings
+a week, there would be a hundred hungry claimants in 1845,--in the
+good old days before the famine, when repeal was so immediately
+expected--will now fetch ten shillings, the claimants being by no
+means numerous. In 1843 and 1844, I knew men to work for fourpence a
+day--something over the dole on which we are told, being mostly
+incredulous as we hear it, that a Coolie labourer can feed himself
+with rice in India;--not one man or two men, the broken-down
+incapables of the parish, but the best labour of the country. One
+and twopence is now about the cheapest rate at which a man can be
+hired for agricultural purposes. While this is so, and while the
+prices are progressing, there is no cause for fear, let Bishops A
+and B, and Archbishops C and D fret and fume with never so great
+vexation touching the clipped honours of their father the Pope.
+
+But again, Quo Musa tendis? I could write on this subject for a week
+were it not that Rhadamanthus awaits me, Rhadamanthus the critic,
+and Rhadamanthus is, of all things, impatient of an episode.
+
+Life and soul were kept together in those terrible days,--that is,
+the Irish life and soul generally. There were many slips, in which
+the union was violently dissolved,--many cases in which the yellow
+meal allowed was not sufficient, or in which it did not reach the
+sufferer in time to prevent such dissolution,--cases which when
+numbered together amounted to thousands. And then the pestilence
+came, taking its victims by tens of thousands,--but that was after
+the time with which we shall have concern here; and immigration
+followed, taking those who were saved by hundreds of thousands. But
+the millions are still there, a thriving people, for His mercy
+endureth for ever.
+
+During this month, the month ensuing upon the death of Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald, Herbert could of course pay no outward attention to the
+wants or relief of the people. He could make no offer of assistance,
+for nothing belonged to him, nor could he aid in the councils of the
+committees, for no one could have defined the position of the
+speaker. And during that month nothing was defined about Castle
+Richmond. Lady Fitzgerald was still always called by her title. The
+people of the country, including the tradesmen of the neighbouring
+towns, addressed the owner of Hap House as Sir Owen; and gradually
+the name was working itself into common use, though he had taken no
+steps to make himself legally entitled to wear it. But no one spoke
+of Sir Herbert. The story was so generally known, that none were so
+ignorant as to suppose him to be his father's heir. The servants
+about the place still called him Mr. Herbert, orders to that effect
+having been specially given; and the peasants of the country, with
+that tact which graces them, and with that anxiety to abstain from
+giving pain which always accompanies them unless when angered,
+carefully called him by no name. They knew that he was not Sir
+Herbert, but they would not believe but what, perchance, he might be
+so yet on some future day. So they took off their old hats to him,
+and passed him silently in his sorrow, or if they spoke to him,
+addressed his honour simply, omitting all mention of that Christian
+name, which the poor Irishman is generally so fond of using. "Mister
+Blake" sounds cold and unkindly in his ears. It is the "Masther," or
+"His honour," or if possible "Misther Thady." Or if there be any
+handle, that is used with avidity. Pat is a happy man when he can
+address his landlord as "Sir Patrick."
+
+But now the "ould masther's son" could be called by no name. Men
+knew not what he was to be, though they knew well that he was not
+that which he ought to be. And there were some who attempted to
+worship Owen as the rising sun; but for such of them as had never
+worshipped him before that game was rather hopeless. In those days
+he was not much seen, neither hunting nor entertaining company; but
+when seen he was rough enough with those who made any deep attempt
+to ingratiate themselves with his coming mightiness. And during this
+month he went over to London, having been specially invited so to do
+by Mr. Prendergast; but very little came of his visit there, except
+that it was certified to him that he was beyond all doubt the
+baronet. "And there shall be no unnecessary delay, Sir Owen," said
+Mr. Prendergast, "in putting you into full possession of all your
+rights." In answer to which Owen had replied that he was not anxious
+to be put in possession of any rights. That as far as any active
+doing of his own was concerned, the title might lie in abeyance, and
+that regarding the property he would make known his wish to Mr.
+Prendergast very quickly after his return to Ireland. But he
+intimated at the same time that there could be no ground for
+disturbing Lady Fitzgerald, as he had no intention under any
+circumstances of living at Castle Richmond.
+
+"Had you not better tell Lady Fitzgerald that yourself?" said Mr.
+Prendergast, catching at the idea that his friend's widow--my
+readers will allow me so to call her--might be allowed to live
+undisturbed at the family mansion, if not for life, at any rate for
+a few years. If this young man were so generous, why should it not
+be so? He would not want the big house, at any rate, till he were
+married.
+
+"It would be better that you should say so," said Owen. "I have
+particular reasons for not wishing to go there."
+
+"But allow me to say, my dear young friend--and I hope I may call
+you so, for I greatly admire the way in which you have taken all
+these tidings--that I would venture to advise you to drop the
+remembrance of any unpleasantness that may have existed. You should
+now feel yourself to be the closest friend of that family."
+
+"So I would if--," and then Owen stopped short, though Mr.
+Prendergast gave him plenty of time to finish his sentence were he
+minded to do so.
+
+"In your present position," continued the lawyer, "your influence
+will be very great."
+
+"I can't explain it all," said Owen; "but I don't think my influence
+will be great at all. And what is more, I do not want any influence
+of that sort. I wish Lady Fitzgerald to understand that she is at
+perfect liberty to stay where she is,--as far as I am concerned. Not
+as a favour from me, mind; for I do not think that she would take a
+favour from my hands."
+
+"But, my dear sir!"
+
+"Therefore you had better write to her about remaining there."
+
+Mr. Prendergast did write to her, or rather to Herbert: but in doing
+so he thought it right to say that the permission to live at Castle
+Richmond should be regarded as a kindness granted them by their
+relative. "It is a kindness which, under the circumstances, your
+mother may, I think, accept without compunction; at any rate, for
+some time to come,--till she shall have suited herself without
+hurrying her choice; but, nevertheless, it must be regarded as a
+generous offer on his part; and I do hope, my dear Herbert, that you
+and he will be fast friends."
+
+But Mr. Prendergast did not in the least comprehend the workings of
+Owen's mind; and Herbert, who knew more of them than any one else,
+did not understand them altogether. Owen had no idea of granting any
+favour to his relatives, who, as he thought, had never granted any
+to him. What Owen wanted,--or what he told himself that he
+wanted,--was justice. It was his duty as a just man to abstain from
+taking hold of those acres, and he was prepared to do his duty. But
+it was equally Herbert's duty as a just man to abstain from taking
+hold of Clara Desmond, and he was resolved that he would never be
+Herbert's friend if Herbert did not perform that duty. And then,
+though he felt himself bound to give up the acres,--though he did
+regard this as an imperative duty, he nevertheless felt also that
+something was due to him for his readiness to perform such a
+duty,--that some reward should be conceded to him; what this reward
+was to be, or rather what he wished it to be, we all know.
+
+Herbert had utterly refused to engage in any such negotiation; but
+Owen, nevertheless, would not cease to think that something might
+yet be done. Who was so generous as Clara, and would not Clara
+herself speak out if she knew how much her old lover was prepared to
+do for this newer lover? Half a dozen times Owen made up his mind to
+explain the whole thing to Mr. Prendergast; but when he found
+himself in the presence of the lawyer, he could not talk about love.
+Young men are so apt to think that their seniors in age cannot
+understand romance, or acknowledge the force of a passion. But here
+they are wrong, for there would be as much romance after forty as
+before, I take it, were it not checked by the fear of ridicule. So
+Owen stayed a week in London, seeing Mr. Prendergast every day; and
+then he returned to Hap House.
+
+In the mean time life went on at a very sad pace at Desmond Court.
+There was no concord whatever between the two ladies residing there.
+The mother was silent, gloomy, and sometimes bitter, seldom saying a
+word about Herbert Fitzgerald or his prospects, but saying that word
+with great fixity of purpose when it was spoken. "No one," she said,
+"should attribute to her the poverty and misery of her child. That
+marriage should not take place from her house, or with her consent."
+And Clara for the most part was silent also. In answer to such words
+as the above she would say nothing; but when, as did happen once or
+twice, she was forced to speak, she declared openly enough that no
+earthly consideration should induce her to give up her engagement.
+
+And then the young earl came home, brought away from his school in
+order that his authority might have effect on his sister. To speak
+the truth, he was unwilling enough to interfere, and would have
+declined to come at all could he have dared to do so. Eton was now
+more pleasant to him than Desmond Court, which, indeed, had but
+little of pleasantness to offer to a lad such as he was now. He was
+sixteen, and manly for his age, but the question in dispute at
+Desmond Court offered little attraction even to a manly boy of
+sixteen. In that former question as to Owen he had said a word or
+two, knowing that Owen could not be looked upon as a fitting husband
+for his sister, but now he knew not how to counsel her again as to
+Herbert, seeing that it was but the other day that he had written a
+long letter, congratulating her on that connection.
+
+Towards the end of the month, however, he did arrive, making glad
+his mother's heart as she looked at his strong limbs and his
+handsome open face. And Clara, too, threw herself so warmly into his
+arms that he did feel glad that he had come to her. "Oh, Patrick, it
+is so sweet to have you here!" she said, before his mother had had
+time to speak to him.
+
+"Dearest Clara!"
+
+"But, Patrick, you must not be cruel to me. Look here, Patrick, you
+are my only brother, and I so love you that I would not offend you
+or turn you against me for worlds. You are the head of our family,
+too, and nothing should be done that you do not like. But if so much
+depends on you, you must think well before you decide on anything."
+
+He opened his young eyes and looked intently into her face, for
+there was an earnestness in her words that almost frightened him.
+"You must think well of it before you speak, Patrick; and remember
+this, you and I must be honest and honourable, whether we be poor or
+no. You remember about Owen Fitzgerald, how I gave way then because
+I could do so without dishonour. But now--"
+
+"But, Clara, I do not understand it all as yet."
+
+"No; you cannot,--not as yet--and I will let mamma tell you the
+story. All I ask is this, that you will think of my honour before
+you say a word that can favour either her or me." And then he
+promised her that he would do so; and his mother, when on the
+following morning she told him all the history, found him reserved
+and silent.
+
+"Look at his position," said the mother, pleading her cause before
+her son. "He is illegitimate, and--"
+
+"Yes, but, mother--"
+
+"I know all that, my dear; I know what you would say; and no one can
+pity Mr. Fitzgerald's position more than I do; but you would not on
+that account have your sister ruined. It is romance on her part."
+
+"But what does he say?"
+
+"He is quite willing to give up the match. He has told me so, and
+said as much to his aunt, whom I have seen three times on the
+subject."
+
+"Do you mean that he wishes to give it up?"
+
+"No;--at least, I don't know. If he does, he cannot express such a
+wish, because Clara is so headstrong. Patrick, in my heart I do not
+believe that she cares for him. I have doubted it for some time."
+
+"But you wanted her to marry him."
+
+"So I did. It was an excellent match, and in a certain way she did
+like him; and then, you know, there was that great danger about poor
+Owen. It was a great danger then. But now she is so determined about
+this, because she thinks it would be ungenerous to go back from her
+word; and in this way she will ruin the very man she wishes to
+serve. Of course he cannot break off the match if she persists in
+it. What I want you to perceive is this, that he, utterly penniless
+as he is, will have to begin the world with a clog round his neck,
+because she is so obstinate. What could possibly be worse for him
+than a titled wife without a penny?" And in this way the countess
+pleaded her side of the question before her son.
+
+It was quite true that she had been three times to Castle Richmond,
+and had thrice driven Aunt Letty into a state bordering on
+distraction. If she could only get the Castle Richmond people to
+take it up as they ought to do! It was thus she argued with
+herself,--and with Aunt Letty also, endeavouring to persuade her
+that these two young people would undoubtedly ruin each other,
+unless those who were really wise and prudent, and who understood
+the world--such as Aunt Letty, for instance--would interfere to
+prevent it.
+
+Aunt Letty on the whole did agree with her, though she greatly
+disliked her. Miss Fitzgerald had strongly planted within her bosom
+the prudent old-world notion, that young gentlefolks should not love
+each other unless they have plenty of money; and that, if
+unfortunately such did love each other, it was better that they
+should suffer all the pangs of hopeless love than marry and trust to
+God and their wits for bread and cheese. To which opinion of Aunt
+Letty's, as well as to some others entertained by that lady with
+much pertinacity, I cannot subscribe myself as an adherent.
+
+Lady Desmond had wit enough to discover that Aunt Letty did agree
+with her in the main, and on this account she was eager in seeking
+her assistance. Lady Fitzgerald of course could not be seen, and
+there was no one else at Castle Richmond who could be supposed to
+have any weight with Herbert. And therefore Lady Desmond was very
+eloquent with Aunt Letty, talking much of the future miseries of the
+two young people, till the old lady had promised to use her best
+efforts in enlisting Lady Fitzgerald on the same side. "You cannot
+wonder, Miss Fitzgerald, that I should wish to put an end to the
+cruel position in which my poor girl is placed. You know how much a
+girl suffers from that kind of thing."
+
+Aunt Letty did dislike Lady Desmond very much; but, nevertheless,
+she could not deny the truth of all this, and therefore it may be
+said that the visits of the countess to Castle Richmond were on the
+whole successful.
+
+And the month wore itself away also in that sad household, and the
+Fitzgeralds were gradually becoming used to their position. Family
+discussions were held among them as to what they should do, and
+where they should live in future. Mr. Prendergast had written,
+seeing that Owen had persisted in refusing to make the offer
+personally himself--saying that there was no hurry for any removal.
+"Sir Owen," he said,--having considered deeply whether or no he
+would call him by the title or no, and having resolved that it would
+be best to do so at once--"Sir Owen was inclined to behave very
+generously. Lady Fitzgerald could have the house and demesne at any
+rate for twelve months, and by that time the personal property left
+by Sir Thomas would be realized, and there would be enough," Mr.
+Prendergast said, "for the three ladies to live 'in decent quiet
+comfort.'" Mr. Prendergast had taken care before he left Castle
+Richmond that a will should be made and duly executed by Sir Thomas,
+leaving what money he had to his three children by name,--in trust
+for their mother's use. Till the girls should be of age that trust
+would be vested in Herbert.
+
+"Decent quiet comfort!" said Mary to her brother and sister as they
+conned the letter over; "how comfortless it sounds!"
+
+And so the first month after the death of Sir Thomas passed by, and
+the misfortunes of the Fitzgerald family ceased to be the only
+subject spoken of by the inhabitants of county Cork.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXII
+
+PREPARATIONS FOR GOING
+
+
+
+
+
+At the end of the month, Herbert began to prepare himself for facing
+the world. The first question to be answered was that one which is
+so frequently asked in most families, but which had never yet been
+necessary in this--What profession would he follow? All manners of
+ways by which an educated man can earn his bread had been turned
+over in his mind, and in the minds of those who loved him, beginning
+with the revenues of the Archbishop of Armagh, which was Aunt
+Letty's idea, and ending with a seat at a government desk, which was
+his own. Mr. Prendergast had counselled the law; not his own lower
+branch of the profession, but a barrister's full-blown wig, adding,
+in his letter to Lady Fitzgerald, that if Herbert would come to
+London, and settle in chambers, he, Mr. Prendergast, would see that
+his life was made agreeable to him. But Mr. Somers gave other
+advice. In those days Assistant Poor-Law Commissioners were being
+appointed in Ireland, almost by the score, and Mr. Somers declared
+that Herbert had only to signify his wish for such a position, and
+he would get it. The interest which he had taken in the welfare of
+the poor around him was well known, and as his own story was well
+known also, there could be no doubt that the government would be
+willing to assist one so circumstanced, and who when assisted would
+make himself so useful. Such was the advice of Mr. Somers; and he
+might have been right but for this, that both Herbert and Lady
+Fitzgerald felt that it would be well for them to move out of that
+neighbourhood,--out of Ireland altogether, if such could be
+possible.
+
+Aunt Letty was strong for the Church. A young man who had
+distinguished himself at the University so signally as her nephew
+had done, taking his degree at the very first attempt, and that in
+so high a class of honour as the fourth, would not fail to succeed
+in the Church. He might not perhaps succeed as to Armagh; that she
+admitted, but there were some thirty other bishoprics to be had, and
+it would be odd if, with his talents, he did not get one of them.
+Think what it would be if he were to return to his own country as
+Bishop of Cork, Cloyne, and Ross, as to which amalgamation of sees,
+however, Aunt Letty had her own ideas. He was slightly tainted with
+the venom of Puseyism, Aunt Letty said to herself; but nothing would
+dispel this with so much certainty as the theological studies
+necessary for ordination. And then Aunt Letty talked it over by the
+hour together with Mrs. Townsend, and both those ladies were agreed
+that Herbert should get himself ordained as quickly as
+possible;--not in England, where there might be danger even in
+ordination, but in good, wholesome, Protestant Ireland, where a
+Church of England clergyman was a clergyman of the Church of
+England, and not a priest, slipping about in the mud halfway between
+England and Rome.
+
+Herbert himself was anxious to get some employment by which he might
+immediately earn his bread, but not unnaturally wished that London
+should be the scene of his work. Anywhere in Ireland he would be
+known as the Fitzgerald who ought to have been the Fitzgerald of
+Castle Richmond. And then too, he, as other young men, had an
+undefined idea, that as he must earn his bread London should be his
+ground. He had at first been not ill inclined to that Church
+project, and had thus given a sort of ground on which Aunt Letty was
+able to stand,--had, as it were, given her some authority for
+carrying on an agitation in furtherance of her own views; but
+Herbert himself soon gave up this idea. A man, he thought, to be a
+clergyman should have a very strong predilection in favour of that
+profession; and so he gradually abandoned that idea,--actuated, as
+poor Aunt Letty feared, by the agency of the evil one, working
+through the means of Puseyism.
+
+His mother and sisters were in favour of Mr. Prendergast's views,
+and as it was gradually found by them all that there would not be
+any immediate pressure as regarded pecuniary means, that seemed at
+last to be their decision. Herbert would remain yet for three or
+four weeks at Castle Richmond, till matters there were somewhat more
+thoroughly settled, and would then put himself into the hands of Mr.
+Prendergast in London. Mr. Prendergast would select a legal tutor
+for him, and proper legal chambers; and then not long afterwards his
+mother and sisters should follow, and they would live together at
+some small villa residence near St. John's Wood Road, or perhaps out
+at Brompton.
+
+It is astonishing how quickly in this world of ours chaos will
+settle itself into decent and graceful order, when it is properly
+looked in the face, and handled with a steady hand which is not
+sparing of the broom. Some three months since, everything at Castle
+Richmond was ruin; such ruin, indeed, that the very power of living
+under it seemed to be doubtful. When first Mr. Prendergast arrived
+there, a feeling came upon them all as though they might hardly dare
+to live in a world which would look at them as so thoroughly
+degraded. As regards means, they would be beggars! and as regards
+position, so much worse than beggars! A broken world was in truth
+falling about their ears, and it was felt to be impossible that they
+should endure its convulsions and yet live.
+
+But now the world had fallen, the ruin had come, and they were
+already strong in future hopes. They had dared to look at their
+chaos, and found that it still contained the elements of order.
+There was much still that marred their happiness, and forbade the
+joyousness of other days. Their poor father had gone from them in
+their misery, and the house was still a house of mourning; and their
+mother too, though she bore up so wonderfully against her fate, and
+for their sakes hoped and planned and listened to their wishes, was
+a stricken woman. That she would never smile again with any
+heartfelt joy they were all sure. But, nevertheless, their chaos was
+conquered, and there was hope that the fields of life would again
+show themselves green and fruitful.
+
+On one subject their mother never spoke to them, nor had even
+Herbert dared to speak to her: not a word had been said in that
+house since Mr. Prendergast left it as to the future whereabouts or
+future doings of that man to whom she had once given her hand at the
+altar. But she had ventured to ask by letter a question of Mr.
+Prendergast. Her question had been this: What must I do that he may
+not come to me or to my children? In answer to this Mr. Prendergast
+had told her, after some delay, that he believed she need fear
+nothing. He had seen the man, and he thought that he might assure
+her that she would not be troubled in that respect.
+
+"It is possible," said Mr. Prendergast, "that he may apply to you by
+letter for money. If so, give him no answer whatever, but send his
+letters to me."
+
+"And are you all going?" asked Mrs. Townsend of Aunt Letty, with a
+lachrymose voice soon after the fate of the family was decided. They
+were sitting together with their knees over the fire in Mrs.
+Townsend's dining-parlour, in which the perilous state of the
+country had been discussed by them for many a pleasant hour
+together.
+
+"Well, I think we shall; you see, my sister would never be happy
+here."
+
+"No, no; the shock and the change would be too great for her. Poor
+Lady Fitzgerald! And when is that man coming into the house?"
+
+"What, Owen?"
+
+"Yes! Sir Owen I suppose he is now."
+
+"Well, I don't know; he does not seem to be in any hurry. I believe
+that he has said that my sister may continue to live there if she
+pleases. But of course she cannot do that."
+
+"They do say about the country," whispered Mrs. Townsend, "that he
+refuses to be the heir at all. He certainly has not had any cards
+printed with the title on them--I know that as a fact."
+
+"He is a very singular man, very. You know I never could bear him,"
+said Aunt Letty.
+
+"No, nor I either. He has not been to our church once these six
+months. But it's very odd, isn't it? Of course you know the story?"
+
+"What story?" asked Aunt Letty.
+
+"About Lady Clara. Owen Fitzgerald was dreadfully in love with her
+before your Herbert had ever seen her. And they do say that he has
+sworn his cousin shall never live if he marries her."
+
+"They can never marry now, you know. Only think of it. There would
+be three hundred a year between them.--Not at present, that is,"
+added Aunt Letty, looking forward to a future period after her own
+death.
+
+"That is very little, very little indeed," said Mrs. Townsend,
+remembering, however, that she herself had married on less. "But,
+Miss Fitzgerald, if Herbert does not marry her do you think this
+Owen will?"
+
+"I don't think she'd have him. I am quite sure she would not."
+
+"Not when he has all the property, and the title too?"
+
+"No, nor double as much. What would people say of her if she did?
+But, however, there is no fear, for she declares that nothing shall
+induce her to give up her engagement with our Herbert."
+
+And so they discussed it backward and forward in every way, each
+having her own theory as to that singular rumour which was going
+about the country, signifying that Owen had declined to accept the
+title. Aunt Letty, however, would not believe that any good could
+come from so polluted a source, and declared that he had his own
+reasons for the delay. "It's not for any love of us," she said, "if
+he refuses to take either that or the estate." And in this she was
+right. But she would have been more surprised still had she learned
+that Owen's forbearance arose from a strong anxiety to do what was
+just in the matter.
+
+"And so Herbert won't go into the Church?"
+
+And Letty shook her head sorrowing.
+
+"Aeneas would have been so glad to have taken him for a
+twelvemonth's reading," said Mrs. Townsend. "He could have come
+here, you know, when you went away, and been ordained at Cork, and
+got a curacy close in the neighbourhood, where he was known. It
+would have been so nice; wouldn't it?"
+
+Aunt Letty would not exactly have advised the scheme as suggested by
+Mrs. Townsend. Her ideas as to Herbert's clerical studies would have
+been higher than this. Trinity College, Dublin, was in her
+estimation the only place left for good Church of England
+ecclesiastical teaching. But as Herbert was obstinately bent on
+declining sacerdotal life, there was no use in dispelling Mrs.
+Townsend's bright vision.
+
+"It's all of no use," she said; "he is determined to go to the bar."
+
+"The bar is very respectable," said Mrs. Townsend, kindly.
+
+"And you mean to go with them, too?" said Mrs. Townsend, after
+another pause. "You'll hardly be happy, I'm thinking, so far away
+from your old home."
+
+"It is sad to change at my time of life," said Aunt Letty,
+plaintively. "I'm sixty-two now."
+
+"Nonsense," said Mrs. Townsend, who, however, knew her age to a day.
+
+"Sixty-two if I live another week, and I have never yet had any home
+but Castle Richmond. There I was born, and till the other day I had
+every reason to trust that there I might die. But what does it
+matter?"
+
+"No, that's true of course, what does it matter where we are while
+we linger in this vale of tears? But couldn't you get a little place
+for yourself somewhere near here? There's Callaghan's cottage, with
+the two-acre piece for a cow, and as nice a spot of a garden as
+there is in the county Cork."
+
+"I wouldn't separate myself from her now," said Aunt Letty, "for all
+the cottages and all the gardens in Ireland. The Lord has been
+pleased to throw us together, and together we will finish our
+pilgrimage. Whither she goes, I will go, and where she lodges, I
+will lodge; her people shall be my people, and her God my God." And
+then Mrs. Townsend said nothing further of Callaghan's pretty
+cottage, or of the two-acre piece.
+
+But one reason for her going Aunt Letty did not give, even to her
+friend Mrs. Townsend. Her income, that which belonged exclusively to
+herself, was in no way affected by these sad Castle Richmond
+revolutions. This was a comfortable,--we may say a generous
+provision for an old maiden lady, amounting to some six hundred a
+year, settled upon her for life, and this, if added to what could be
+saved and scraped together, would enable them to live comfortably,
+as far as means were concerned, in that suburban villa to which they
+were looking forward. But without Aunt Letty's income that suburban
+villa must be but a poor home. Mr. Prendergast had calculated that
+some fourteen thousand pounds would represent the remaining property
+of the family, with which it would be necessary to purchase
+government stock. Such being the case, Aunt Letty's income was very
+material to them.
+
+"I trust you will be able to find some one there who will preach the
+gospel to you," said Mrs. Townsend, in a tone that showed how
+serious were her misgivings on the subject.
+
+"I will search for such a one, at any rate," said Aunt Letty. "You
+need not be afraid that I shall be a backslider."
+
+"But they have crosses now over the communion tables in the churches
+in England," said Mrs. Townsend.
+
+"I know it is very bad," said Aunt Letty. "But there will always be
+a remnant left. The Lord will not utterly desert us." And then she
+took her departure, leaving Mrs. Townsend with the conviction that
+the land to which her friend was going was one in which the light of
+the gospel no longer shone in its purity.
+
+It was not wonderful that they should all be anxious to get away
+from Castle Richmond, for the house there was now not a pleasant one
+in which to live. Let all those who have houses and the adjuncts of
+houses think how considerable a part of their life's pleasures
+consists in their interest in the things around them. When will the
+seakale be fit to cut, and when will the crocuses come up? will the
+violets be sweeter than ever? and the geranium cuttings, are they
+thriving? we have dug, and manured, and sown, and we look forward to
+the reaping, and to see our garners full. The very furniture which
+ministers to our daily uses is loved and petted; and in decorating
+our rooms we educate ourselves in design. The place in church which
+has been our own for years,--is not that dear to us, and the voice
+that has told us of God's tidings--even though the drone become more
+evident as it waxes in years, and though it grows feeble and
+indolent? And the faces of those who have lived around us, do we not
+love them too, the servants who have worked for us, and the children
+who have first toddled beneath our eyes and prattled in our ears,
+and now run their strong races, screaming loudly, splashing us as
+they pass--very unpleasantly? Do we not love them all? Do they not
+all contribute to the great sum of our enjoyment? All men love such
+things, more or less, even though they know it not. And women love
+them even more than men.
+
+And the Fitzgeralds were about to leave them all. The early buds of
+spring were now showing themselves, but how was it possible that
+they should look to them? One loves the bud because one expects the
+flower. The seakale now was beyond their notice, and though they
+plucked the crocuses, they did so with tears upon their cheeks.
+After much consideration the church had been abandoned by all except
+Aunt Letty and Herbert. That Lady Fitzgerald should go there was
+impossible, and the girls were only too glad to be allowed to stay
+with their mother. And the schools in which they had taught since
+the first day in which teaching had been possible for them, had to
+be abandoned with such true pangs of heart-felt sorrow.
+
+From the time when their misery first came upon them, from the days
+when it first began to be understood that the world had gone wrong
+at Castle Richmond, this separation from the schools had commenced.
+The work had been dropped for a while, but the dropping had in fact
+been final, and there was nothing further to be done than the
+saddest of all leave-taking. The girls had sent word to the
+children, perhaps imprudently, that they would go down and say a
+word of adieu to their pupils. The children had of course told their
+mothers, and when the girls reached the two neat buildings which
+stood at the corner of the park, there were there to meet them, not
+unnaturally, a concourse of women and children.
+
+In former prosperous days the people about Castle Richmond had, as a
+rule, been better to do than their neighbours. Money wages had been
+more plentiful, and there had been little or no subletting of land;
+the children had been somewhat more neatly clothed, and the women
+less haggard in their faces; but this difference was hardly
+perceptible any longer. To them, the Miss Fitzgeralds, looking at
+the poverty-stricken assemblage, it almost seemed as though the
+misfortune of their house had brought down its immediate
+consequences on all who had lived within their circle; but this was
+the work of the famine. In those days one could rarely see any
+member of a peasant's family bearing in his face a look of health.
+The yellow meal was a useful food--the most useful, doubtless, which
+could at that time be found; but it was not one that was gratifying
+either to the eye or palate.
+
+The girls had almost regretted their offer before they had left the
+house. It would have been better, they said to themselves, to have
+had the children up in the hall, and there to have spoken their
+farewells, and made their little presents. The very entering those
+school-rooms again would almost be too much for them; but this
+consideration was now too late, and when they got to the corner of
+the gate, they found that there was a crowd to receive them. "Mary,
+I must go back," said Emmeline, when she first saw them; but Aunt
+Letty, who was with them, stepped forward, and they soon found
+themselves in the school-room.
+
+"We have come to say good-bye to you all," said Aunt Letty, trying
+to begin a speech.
+
+"May the heavens be yer bed then, the lot of yez, for ye war always
+good to the poor. May the Blessed Virgin guide and protect ye
+wherever ye be"--a blessing against which Aunt Letty at once entered
+a little inward protest, perturbed though she was in spirit. "May
+the heavens rain glory on yer heads, for ye war always the finest
+family that war ever in the county Cork!"
+
+"You know, I dare say, that we are going to leave you," continued
+Aunt Letty.
+
+"We knows it, we knows it; sorrow come to them as did it all. Faix,
+an' there'll niver be any good in the counthry, at all at all, when
+you're gone, Miss Emmeline; an' what'll we do at all for the want of
+yez, and when shall we see the likes of yez? Eh, Miss Letty, but
+there'll be sore eyes weeping for ye; and for her leddyship too; may
+the Lord Almighty bless her, and presarve her, and carry her sowl to
+glory when she dies; for av there war iver a good woman on God's
+'arth, that woman is Leddy Fitzgerald."
+
+And then Aunt Letty found that there was no necessity for her to
+continue her speech, and indeed no possibility of her doing so even
+if she were so minded. The children began to wail and cry, and the
+mothers also mixed loud sobbings with their loud prayers; and
+Emmeline and Mary, dissolved in tears, sat themselves down, drawing
+to them the youngest bairns and those whom they had loved the best,
+kissing their sallow, famine-stricken, unwholesome faces, and
+weeping over them with a love of which hitherto they had been hardly
+conscious.
+
+There was not much more in the way of speech possible to any of
+them, for even Aunt Letty was far gone in tender wailing; and it was
+wonderful to see the liberties that were taken even with that
+venerable bonnet. The women had first of all taken hold of her hands
+to kiss them, and had kissed her feet, and her garments, and her
+shoulders, and then behind her back they had made crosses on her,
+although they knew how dreadfully she would have raged had she
+caught them polluting her by such doings; and they grasped her arms
+and embraced them, till at last, those who were more daring, reached
+her forehead and her face, and poor old Aunt Letty, who in her
+emotion could not now utter a syllable, was almost pulled to pieces
+among them.
+
+Mary and Emmeline had altogether surrendered themselves, and were
+the centres of clusters of children who hung upon them. And the sobs
+now were no longer low and tearful, but they had grown into long,
+protracted groanings, and loud wailings, and clapping of hands, and
+tearings of the hair. O, my reader, have you ever seen a railway
+train taking its departure from an Irish station, with a freight of
+Irish emigrants? If so, you know how the hair is torn, and how the
+hands are clapped, and how the low moanings gradually swell into
+notes of loud lamentation. It means nothing, I have heard men
+say,--men and women too. But such men and women are wrong. It means
+much; it means this: that those who are separated, not only love
+each other, but are anxious to tell each other that they so love. We
+have all heard of demonstrative people. A demonstrative person, I
+take it, is he who is desirous of speaking out what is in his heart.
+For myself I am inclined to think that such speaking out has its
+good ends. "The faculty of silence! is it not of all things the most
+beautiful?" That is the doctrine preached by a great latter-day
+philosopher; for myself, I think that the faculty of speech is much
+more beautiful--of speech if it be made but by howlings, and
+wailings, and loud clappings of the hand. What is in a man, let it
+come out and be known to those around him, if it be bad it will find
+correction, if it be good it will spread and be beneficent.
+
+And then one woman made herself audible over the sobs of the
+crowding children; she was a gaunt, high-boned woman, but she would
+have been comely, if not handsome, had not the famine come upon her.
+She held a baby in her arms, and another little toddling thing had
+been hanging on her dress till Emmeline had seen it, and plucked it
+away; and it was now sitting in her lap quite composed, and sucking
+a piece of cake that had been given to it. "An' it's a bad day for
+us all," said the woman, beginning in a low voice, which became
+louder and louder as she went on, "it's a bad day for us all that
+takes away from us the only rale friends that we iver had, and the
+back of my hand to them that have come in the way, bringin' sorrow,
+an' desolation, an' misery on gentlefolks that have been good to the
+poor since iver the poor have been in the land, rale gentlefolks,
+sich as there ain't no others to be found nowadays in any of these
+parts. O'hone, o'hone! but it's a bad day for us and for the
+childer, for where shall we find the dhrop to comfort us or the bit
+to ate when the sickness comes on us, as it's likely to come now,
+when the Fitzgeralds is out of the counthry. May the Lord bless
+them, and keep them, and presarve them, and the Holy Virgin have
+them in her keepin'!"
+
+"Wh--i--s--h--h," said Aunt Letty, who could not allow such idolatry
+to pass by unobserved or unrebuked.
+
+"An' shure the blessin' of a poor woman cannot haram you," continued
+the mother, "an' I'll tell you what, neighbours, it'll be a bad day
+for him that folk call the heir when he puts his foot in that
+house."
+
+"'Deed an' that's thrue for you, Bridget Magrath," said another
+voice from among the crowd of women.
+
+"A bad day intirely," continued the woman, with the baby; "av the
+house stans over his head when he does the like o' that, there'll be
+no justice in the heavens"
+
+"But, Mrs. Magrath," said Aunt Letty, trying to interrupt her, "you
+must not speak in that way; you are mistaken in supposing that Mr.
+Owen--"
+
+"We'll all live to see," said the woman; "for the time's comin'
+quick upon us now. But it's a bad law that kills our ould masther
+over our heads, an' takes away from us our ould misthress. An' as
+for him they calls Mr. Owen--"
+
+But the ladies found it impossible to listen to her any longer, so
+with some difficulty they extricated themselves from the crowd by
+which they were surrounded, and once more shaking hands with those
+who were nearest to them escaped into the park, and made their way
+back towards the house.
+
+They had not expected so much demonstration, and were not a little
+disconcerted at the scene which had taken place. Aunt Letty had
+never been so handled in her life, and hardly knew how to make her
+bonnet sit comfortably on her head; and the two girls were
+speechless till they were half across the park.
+
+"I am glad we have been," said Emmeline at last, as soon as the
+remains of her emotion would allow her to articulate her words.
+
+"It would have been dreadful to have gone away without seeing them,"
+said Mary. "Poor creatures, poor dear creatures; we shall never
+again have any more people to be fond of us like that!"
+
+"There is no knowing," said Aunt Letty; "the Lord giveth and the
+Lord taketh away, and blessed is the name of the Lord. You are both
+young, and may come back again; but for me--"
+
+"Dear Aunt Letty, if we come back you shall come too."
+
+"If I only thought that my bones could lie here near my brother's.
+But never mind; what signifies it where our bones lie?" And then
+they were silent for a while, till Aunt Letty spoke again. "I mean
+to be quite happy over in England; I believe I shall be happiest of
+you all if I can find any clergyman who is not half perverted to
+idolatry."
+
+This took place some time before the ladies left Castle
+Richmond,--perhaps as much as three weeks; it was even before
+Herbert's departure, who started for London the day but one after
+the scene here recorded; he had gone to various places to take his
+last farewell; to see the Townsends at their parsonage; to call on
+Father Barney at Kanturk, and had even shaken hands with the Rev.
+Mr. Creagh, at Gortnaclough. But one farewell visit had been put off
+for the last. It was now arranged that he was to go over to Desmond
+Court and see Clara before he went. There had been some difficulty
+in this, for Lady Desmond had at first declared that she could not
+feel justified in asking him into her house; but the earl was now at
+home, and her ladyship had at last given her consent: he was to see
+the countess first, and was afterwards to see Clara--alone. He had
+declared that he would not go there unless he were to be allowed an
+interview with her in private. The countess, as I have said, at last
+consented, trusting that her previous eloquence might be efficacious
+in counteracting the ill effects of her daughter's imprudence. On
+the day after that interview he was to start for London; "never to
+return," as he said to Emmeline, "unless he came to seek his wife."
+
+"But you will come to seek your wife," said Emmeline, stoutly; "I
+shall think you faint-hearted if you doubt it."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIII
+
+THE LAST STAGE
+
+
+
+
+
+On the day before his departure for London, Herbert Fitzgerald once
+more got on his horse--the horse that was to be no longer his after
+that day--and rode off towards Desmond Court. He had already
+perceived how foolish he had been in walking thither through the mud
+and rain when last he went there, and how much he had lost by his
+sad appearance that day, and by his want of personal comfort. So he
+dressed himself with some care--dressing not for his love, but for
+the countess,--and taking his silver-mounted whip in his gloved
+hand, he got up on his well-groomed nag with more spirit than he had
+hitherto felt.
+
+Nothing could be better than the manner in which, at this time, the
+servants about Castle Richmond conducted themselves. Most of
+them--indeed, all but three--had been told that they must go, and in
+so telling them, the truth had been explained. It had been "found,"
+Aunt Letty said to one of the elder among them, that Mr. Herbert was
+not the heir to the property, and therefore the family was obliged
+to go away. Mrs. Jones of course accompanied her mistress. Richard
+had been told, both by Herbert and by Aunt Letty, that he had better
+remain and live on a small patch of land that should be provided for
+him. But in answer to this he stated his intention of removing
+himself to London. If the London air was fit for "my leddy and Miss
+Letty," it would be fit for him. "It's no good any more talking, Mr.
+Herbert," said Richard, "I main to go." So there was no more
+talking, and he did go.
+
+But all the other servants took their month's warning with tears and
+blessings, and strove one beyond another how they might best serve
+the ladies of the family to the end. "I'd lose the little fingers
+off me to go with you, Miss Emmeline; so I would," said one poor
+girl,--all in vain. If they could not keep a retinue of servants in
+Ireland, it was clear enough that they could not keep them in
+London.
+
+The groom who held the horse for Herbert to mount, touched his hat
+respectfully as his young master rode off slowly down the avenue,
+and then went back to the stables to meditate with awe on the
+changes which had happened in his time, and to bethink himself
+whether or no he could bring himself to serve in the stables of Owen
+the usurper.
+
+Herbert did not take the direct road to Desmond Court, but went
+round as though he were going to Gortnaclough, and then turning away
+from the Gortnaclough road, made his way by a cross lane towards
+Clady and the mountains. He hardly knew himself whether he had any
+object in this beyond one which he did not express even to
+himself,--that, namely, of not being seen on the way leading to
+Desmond Court. But this he did do, thereby riding out of the
+district with which he was most thoroughly acquainted, and passing
+by cabins and patches of now deserted land which were strange to
+him. It was a poor, bleak, damp, undrained country, lying beyond the
+confines of his father's property, which in good days had never been
+pleasant to the eye, but which now in these days--days that were so
+decidedly bad, was anything but pleasant. It was one of those tracts
+of land which had been divided and subdivided among the cottiers
+till the fields had dwindled down to parts of acres, each surrounded
+by rude low banks, which of themselves seemed to occupy a quarter of
+the surface of the land. The original landmarks, the big earthen
+banks,--banks so large that a horse might walk on the top of
+them,--were still visible enough, showing to the practised eye what
+had once been the fields into which the land had been divided; but
+these had since been bisected and crossected, and intersected by
+family arrangements, in which brothers had been jealous of brothers,
+and fathers of their children, till each little lot contained but a
+rood or two of available surface.
+
+This had been miserable enough to look at, even when those roods had
+been cropped with potatoes or oats; but now they were not cropped at
+all, nor was there preparation being made for cropping them. They
+had been let out under the con-acre system, at so much a rood, for
+the potato season, at rents amounting sometimes to ten or twelve
+pounds the acre; but nobody would take them now. There, in that
+electoral division, the whole proceeds of such land would hardly
+have paid the poor rates, and therefore the land was left
+uncultivated.
+
+The winter was over, for it was now April, and had any tillage been
+intended, it would have been commenced--even in Ireland. It was the
+beginning of April, but the weather was still stormy and cold, and
+the east wind, which, as a rule, strikes Ireland with but a light
+land, was blowing sharply. On a sudden a squall of rain came
+on,--one of those spring squalls which are so piercingly cold, but
+which are sure to pass by rapidly, if the wayfarer will have
+patience to wait for them. Herbert, remembering his former
+discomfiture, resolved that he would have such patience, and
+dismounting from his horse at a cabin on the roadside, entered it
+himself, and led his horse in after him. In England no one would
+think of taking his steed into a poor man's cottage, and would
+hardly put his beast into a cottager's shed without leave asked and
+granted, but people are more intimate with each other, and take
+greater liberties in Ireland. It is no uncommon thing on a wet
+hunting-day to see a cabin packed with horses, and the children
+moving about among them, almost as unconcernedly as though the
+animals were pigs. But then the
+
+Irish horses are so well mannered and good-natured.
+
+The cabin was one abutting as it were on the road, not standing back
+upon the land, as is most customary; and it was built in an angle at
+a spot where the road made a turn, so that two sides of it stood
+close out in the wayside. It was small and wretched to look at,
+without any sort of outside shed, or even a scrap of potato-garden
+attached to it,--a miserable, low-roofed, damp, ragged tenement, as
+wretched as any that might be seen even in the county Cork.
+
+But the nakedness of the exterior was as nothing to the nakedness of
+the interior. When Herbert entered, followed by his horse, his eye
+glanced round the dark place, and it seemed to be empty of
+everything. There was no fire on the hearth, though a fire on the
+hearth is the easiest of all luxuries for an Irishman to acquire,
+and the last which he is willing to lose. There was not an article
+of furniture in the whole place; neither chairs, nor table, nor bed,
+nor dresser; there was there neither dish, nor cup, nor plate, nor
+even the iron pot in which all the cookery of the Irish cottiers'
+menage is usually carried on. Beneath his feet was the damp earthen
+floor, and around him were damp, cracked walls, and over his head
+was the old lumpy thatch, through which the water was already
+dropping; but inside was to be seen none of those articles of daily
+use which are usually to be found in the houses even of the poorest.
+
+But, nevertheless, the place was inhabited. Squatting in the middle
+of the cabin, seated on her legs crossed under her, with nothing
+between her and the wet earth, there crouched a woman with a child
+in her arms. At first, so dark was the place, Herbert hardly thought
+that the object before him was a human being. She did not move when
+he entered, or speak to him, or in any way show sign of surprise
+that he should have come there. There was room for him and his horse
+without pushing her from her place; and, as it seemed, he might have
+stayed there and taken his departure without any sign having been
+made by her.
+
+But as his eyes became used to the light he saw her eyes gleaming
+brightly through the gloom. They were very large and bright as they
+turned round upon him while he moved--large and bright, but with a
+dull, unwholesome brightness,--a brightness that had in it none of
+the light of life.
+
+And then he looked at her more closely. She had on her some rag of
+clothing which barely sufficed to cover her nakedness, and the baby
+which she held in her arms was covered in some sort; but he could
+see, as he came to stand close over her, that these garments were
+but loose rags which were hardly fastened round her body. Her rough
+short hair hung down upon her back, clotted with dirt, and the head
+and face of the child which she held was covered with dirt and
+sores. On no more wretched object, in its desolate solitude, did the
+eye of man ever fall.
+
+In those days there was a form of face which came upon the sufferers
+when their state of misery was far advanced, and which was a sure
+sign that their last stage of misery was nearly run. The mouth would
+fall and seem to hang, the lips at the two ends of the mouth would
+be dragged down, and the lower parts of the cheeks would fall as
+though they had been dragged and pulled. There were no signs of
+acute agony when this phasis of countenance was to be seen, none of
+the horrid symptoms of gnawing hunger by which one generally
+supposes that famine is accompanied. The look is one of apathy,
+desolation, and death. When custom had made these signs easily
+legible, the poor doomed wretch was known with certainty. "It's no
+use in life meddling with him; he's gone," said a lady to me in the
+far west of the south of Ireland, while the poor boy, whose doom was
+thus spoken, stood by listening. Her delicacy did not equal her
+energy in doing good,--for she did much good; but in truth it was
+difficult to be delicate when the hands were so full. And then she
+pointed out to me the signs on the lad's face, and I found that her
+reading was correct.
+
+The famine was not old enough at the time of which we are speaking
+for Herbert to have learned all this, or he would have known that
+there was no hope left in this world for the poor creature whom he
+saw before him. The skin of her cheek had fallen, and her mouth was
+dragged, and the mark of death was upon her; but the agony of want
+was past. She sat there listless, indifferent, hardly capable of
+suffering, even for her child, waiting her doom unconsciously.
+
+As he had entered without eliciting a word from her, so might he
+have departed without any outward sign of notice; but this would
+have been impossible on his part. "I have come in out of the rain
+for shelter," said he, looking down on her.
+
+"Out o' the rain, is it?" said she, still fixing on him her glassy
+bright eyes. "Yer honour's welcome thin." But she did not attempt to
+move, nor show any of those symptoms of reverence which are habitual
+to the Irish when those of a higher rank enter their cabins.
+
+"You seem to be very poorly off here," said Herbert, looking round
+the bare walls of the cabin. "Have you no chair, and no bed to lie
+on?"
+
+"'Deed, no," said she.
+
+"And no fire?" said he, for the damp and chill of the place struck
+through to his bones.
+
+"'Deed, no," she said again; but she made no wail as to her wants,
+and uttered no complaint as to her misery.
+
+"And are you living here by yourself, without furniture or utensils
+of any kind?"
+
+"It's jist as yer honour sees it," answered she.
+
+For a while Herbert stood still, looking round him, for the woman
+was so motionless and uncommunicative that he hardly knew how to
+talk to her. That she was in the lowest depth of distress was
+evident enough, and it behoved him to administer to her immediate
+wants before he left her; but what could he do for one who seemed to
+be so indifferent to herself? He stood for a time looking round him
+till he could see through the gloom that there was a bundle of straw
+lying in the dark corner beyond the hearth, and that the straw was
+huddled up, as though there were something lying under it. Seeing
+this he left the bridle of his horse, and, stepping across the
+cabin, moved the straw with the handle of his whip. As he did so he
+turned his back from the wall in which the small window-hole had
+been pierced, so that a gleam of light fell upon the bundle at his
+feet, and he could see that the body of a child was lying there,
+stripped of every vestige of clothing.
+
+For a minute or two he said nothing--hardly indeed, knowing how to
+speak, and looking from the corpselike woman back to the lifelike
+corpse, and then from the corpse back to the woman, as though he
+expected that she would say something unasked. But she did not say a
+word, though she so turned her head that her eyes rested on him.
+
+He then knelt down and put his hand upon the body, and found that it
+was not yet stone cold. The child apparently had been about four
+years old, while that still living in her arms might perhaps be half
+that age.
+
+"Was she your own?" asked Herbert, speaking hardly above his breath.
+
+"'Deed, yes!" said the woman. "She was my own, own little Kittie."
+But there was no tear in her eye or gurgling sob audible from her
+throat.
+
+"And when did she die?" he asked.
+
+"'Deed, thin, and I don't jist know--not exactly;" and sinking lower
+down upon her haunches, she put up to her forehead the hand with
+which she had supported herself on the floor--the hand which was not
+occupied with the baby, and pushing back with it the loose hairs
+from her face, tried to make an effort at thinking.
+
+"She was alive in the night, wasn't she?" he said.
+
+"I b'lieve thin she was, yer honour. 'Twas broad day, I'm thinking,
+when she guv' over moaning. She warn't that way when he went away."
+
+"And who's he?"
+
+"Jist Mike, thin."
+
+"And is Mike your husband?" he asked. She was not very willing to
+talk; but it appeared at last that Mike was her husband, and that
+having become a cripple through rheumatism, he had not been able to
+work on the roads. In this condition he and his should of course
+have gone into a poor-house. It was easy enough to give such advice
+in such cases when one came across them, and such advice when given
+at that time was usually followed; but there were so many who had no
+advice, who could get no aid, who knew not which way to turn
+themselves! This wretched man had succeeded in finding some one who
+would give him his food--food enough to keep himself alive--for such
+work as he could do in spite of his rheumatism, and this work to the
+last he would not abandon. Even this was better to him than the
+poor-house. But then, as long as a man found work out of the
+poor-house, his wife and children would not be admitted into it.
+They would not be admitted if the fact of the working husband was
+known. The rule in itself was salutary, as without it a man could
+work, earning such wages as were adjudged to be needful for a
+family, and at the same time send his wife and children to be
+supported on the rates. But in some cases, such as this, it pressed
+very cruelly. Exceptions were of course made in such cases, if they
+were known: but then it was so hard to know them!
+
+This man Mike, the husband of that woman, and the father of those
+children, alive and dead, had now gone to his work, leaving his home
+without one morsel of food within it, and the wife of his bosom and
+children of his love without the hope of getting any. And then
+looking closely round him, Herbert could see that a small basin or
+bowl lay on the floor near her, capable of holding perhaps a pint;
+and on lifting it he saw that there still clung to it a few grains
+of uncooked Indian corn-flour--the yellow meal, as it was called.
+Her husband, she said at last, had brought home with him in his cap
+a handful of this flour, stolen from the place where he was
+working--perhaps a quarter of a pound, then worth over a farthing,
+and she had mixed this with water in a basin; and this was the food
+which had sustained her, or rather had not sustained her, since
+yesterday morning--her and her two children, the one that was
+living and the one that was dead.
+
+Such was her story, told by her in the fewest of words. And then he
+asked her as to her hopes for the future. But though she cared, as
+it seemed, but little for the past, for the future she cared less.
+"'Deed, thin, an' I don't jist know." She would say no more than
+that, and would not even raise her voice to ask for alms when he
+pitied her in her misery. But with her the agony of death was
+already over.
+
+"And the child that you have in your arms," he said, "is it not
+cold?" And he stood close over her, and put out his hand and touched
+the baby's body. As he did so, she made some motion as though to
+arrange the clothing closer round the child's limbs, but Herbert
+could see that she was making an effort to hide her own nakedness.
+It was the only effort that she made while he stood there beside
+her.
+
+"Is she not cold?" he said again, when he had turned his face away
+to relieve her from her embarrassment.
+
+"Cowld," she muttered, with a vacant face and wondering tone of
+voice, as though she did not quite understand him. "I suppose she is
+could. Why wouldn't she be could? We're could enough, if that's
+all." But still she did not stir from the spot on which she sat; and
+the child, though it gave from time to time a low moan that was
+almost inaudible, lay still in her arms, with its big eyes staring
+into vacancy.
+
+He felt that he was stricken with horror as he remained there in the
+cabin with the dying woman and the naked corpse of the poor dead
+child. But what was he to do? He could not go and leave them without
+succour. The woman had made no plaint of her suffering, and had
+asked for nothing; but he felt that it would be impossible to
+abandon her without offering her relief; nor was it possible that he
+should leave the body of the child in that horribly ghastly state.
+So he took from his pocket his silk handkerchief, and, returning to
+the corner of the cabin, spread it as a covering over the corpse. At
+first he did not like to touch the small, naked, dwindled remains of
+humanity from which life had fled; but gradually he overcame his
+disgust, and kneeling down, he straightened the limbs and closed the
+eyes, and folded the handkerchief round the slender body. The mother
+looked on him the while, shaking her head slowly, as though asking
+him with all the voice that was left to her, whether it were not
+piteous; but of words she still uttered none.
+
+And then he took from his pocket a silver coin or two, and tendered
+them to her. These she did take, muttering some word of thanks, but
+they caused in her no emotion of joy. "She was there waiting," she
+said, "till Mike should return," and there she would still wait,
+even though she should die with the silver in her hand.
+
+"I will send some one to you," he said, as he took his departure;
+"some one that shall take the poor child and bury it, and who shall
+move you and the other one into the workhouse." She thanked him once
+more with some low muttered words, but the promise brought her no
+joy. And when the succour came it was all too late, for the mother
+and the two children never left the cabin till they left it
+together, wrapped in their workhouse shrouds.
+
+Herbert, as he remounted his horse and rode quietly on, forgot for a
+while both himself and Clara Desmond. Whatever might be the extent
+of his own calamity, how could he think himself unhappy after what
+he had seen? how could he repine at aught that the world had done
+for him, having now witnessed to how low a state of misery a fellow
+human being might be brought? Could he, after that, dare to consider
+himself unfortunate?
+
+Before he reached Desmond Court he did make some arrangements for
+the poor woman, and directed that a cart might be sent for her, so
+that she might be carried to the union workhouse at Kanturk. But his
+efforts in her service were of little avail. People then did not
+think much of a dying woman, and were in no special hurry to obey
+Herbert's behest.
+
+"A woman to be carried to the union, is it? For Mr. Fitzgerald, eh?
+What Mr. Fitzgerald says must be done, in course. But sure av' it's
+done before dark, won't that be time enough for the likes of her?"
+
+But had they flown to the spot on the wings of love, it would not
+have sufficed to prolong her life one day. Her doom had been spoken
+before Herbert had entered the cabin.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIV
+
+FAREWELL
+
+
+
+
+
+He was two hours later than he had intended as he rode up the avenue
+to Lady Desmond's gate, and his chief thought at the moment was how
+he should describe to the countess the scene he had just witnessed.
+Why describe it at all? That is what we should all say. He had come
+there to talk about other things--about other things which must be
+discussed, and which would require all his wits. Let him keep that
+poor woman on his mind, but not embarrass himself with any mention
+of her for the present. This, no doubt, would have been wise if only
+it had been possible; but out of the full heart the mouth speaks.
+
+But Lady Desmond had not witnessed the scene which I have attempted
+to describe, and her heart, therefore, was not full of it, and was
+not inclined to be so filled. And so, in answer to Herbert's
+exclamation, "Oh, Lady Desmond, I have seen such a sight!" she gave
+him but little encouragement to describe it, and by her coldness,
+reserve, and dignity, soon quelled the expression of his feelings.
+
+The earl was present, and shook hands very cordially with Herbert
+when he entered the room; and he, being more susceptible as being
+younger, and not having yet become habituated to the famine as his
+mother was, did express some eager sympathy. He would immediately go
+down, or send Fahy with the car, and have her brought up and saved,
+but his mother had other work to do, and soon put a stop to all
+this.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," said she, speaking with a smile upon her face, and
+with much high-bred dignity of demeanour, "as you and Lady Clara
+both wish to see each other before you leave the country, and as you
+have known each other so intimately, and considering all the
+circumstances, I have not thought it well absolutely to forbid an
+interview. But I do doubt its expediency; I do, indeed. And Lord
+Desmond, who feels for your late misfortune as we all do, perfectly
+agrees with me. He thinks that it would be much wiser for you both
+to have parted without the pain of a meeting, seeing how impossible
+it is that you should ever be more to each other than you are now."
+And then she appealed to her son, who stood by, looking not quite so
+wise, nor even quite so decided as his mother's words would seem to
+make him.
+
+"Well, yes; upon my word I don't see how it's to be," said the young
+earl. "I am deuced sorry for it for one, and I wish I was well off,
+so that I could give Clara a pot of money, and then I should not
+care so much about your not being the baronet."
+
+"I am sure you must see, Mr. Fitzgerald, and I know that you do see
+it because you have very properly said so, that a marriage between
+you and Lady Clara is now impossible. For her such an engagement
+would be very bad--very bad indeed; but for you it would be utter
+ruin. Indeed, it would be ruin for you both. Unencumbered as you
+will be, and with the good connection which you will have, and with
+your excellent talents, it will be quite within your reach to win
+for yourself a high position. But with you, as with other gentlemen
+who have to work their way, marriage must come late in life, unless
+you marry an heiress. This I think is thoroughly understood by all
+people in our position; and I am sure that it is understood by your
+excellent mother, for whom I always had atd still have the most
+unfeigned respect. As this is so undoubtedly the case, and as I
+cannot of course consent that Lady Clara should remain hampered by
+an engagement which would in all human probability hang over the ten
+best years of her life, I thought it wise that you should not see
+each other. I have, however, allowed myself to be overruled, and now
+I must only trust to your honour, forbearance, and prudence to
+protect my child from what might possibly be the ill effects of her
+own affectionate feelings. That she is romantic,--enthusiastic to a
+fault, I should perhaps rather call it--I need not tell you. She
+thinks that your misfortune demands from her a sacrifice of herself;
+but you, I know, will feel that, even were such a sacrifice
+available to you, it would not become you to accept it. Because you
+have fallen, you will not wish to drag her down; more especially as
+you can rise again--and she could not."
+
+So spoke the countess, with much worldly wisdom, and with
+considerable tact in adjusting her words to the object which she had
+in view. Herbert, as he stood before her silent during the period of
+her oration, did feel that it would be well for him to give up his
+love, and go away in utter solitude of heart to those dingy studies
+which Mr. Prendergast was preparing for him. His love, or rather the
+assurance of Clara's love, had been his great consolation. But what
+right had he, with all the advantages of youth, and health, and
+friends, and education, to require consolation? And then from moment
+to moment he thought of the woman whom he had left in the cabin, and
+confessed that he did not dare to call himself unhappy.
+
+He had listened attentively, although he did thus think of other
+eloquence besides that of the countess--of the eloquence of that
+silent, solitary, dying woman; but when she had done he hardly knew
+what to say for himself. She did make him feel that it would be
+ungenerous in him to persist in his engagement; but then again,
+Clara's letters and his sister's arguments had made him feel that it
+was impossible to abandon it. They pleaded of heart-feelings so well
+that he could not resist them; and the countess--she pleaded so well
+as to world's prudence that he could not resist her.
+
+"I would not willingly do anything to injure Lady Clara," he said.
+
+"That's what we all knew," said the young earl. "You see, what is a
+girl to do like her? Love in a cottage is all very well, and all
+that; and as for riches, I don't care about them. It would be a pity
+if I did, for I shall be about the poorest nobleman in the three
+kingdoms, I suppose. But a chap when he marries should have
+something; shouldn't he now?"
+
+To tell the truth the earl had been very much divided in his
+opinions since he had come home, veering round a point or two this
+way or a point or two that, in obedience to the blast of eloquence
+to which he might be last subjected. But latterly the idea had grown
+upon him that Clara might possibly marry Owen Fitzgerald. There was
+about Owen a strange fascination which all felt who had once loved
+him. To the world he was rough and haughty, imperious in his
+commands, and exacting even in his fellowship; but to the few whom
+he absolutely loved, whom he had taken into his heart's core, no man
+ever was more tender or more gracious. Clara, though she had
+resolved to banish him from her heart, had found it impossible to do
+so till Herbert's misfortunes had given him a charm in her eyes
+which was not all his own. Clara's mother had loved him--had loved
+him as she never before had loved; and now she loved him still,
+though she had so strongly determined that her love should be that
+of a mother, and not that of a wife. And the young earl, now that
+Owen's name was again rife in his ears, remembered all the
+pleasantness of former days. He had never again found such a
+companion as Owen had been. He had met no other friend to whom he
+could talk of sport and a man's outward pleasures when his mind was
+that way given, and to whom he could also talk of soft inward
+things,--the heart's feelings, and aspirations, and wants. Owen
+would be as tender with him as a woman, allowing the young lad's arm
+round his body, listening to words which the outer world would have
+called bosh--and have derided as girlish. So at least thought the
+young earl to himself. And all boys long to be allowed utterance
+occasionally for these soft tender things;--as also do all men,
+unless the devil's share in the world has become altogether
+uppermost with them.
+
+And the young lad's heart hankered after his old friend. He had
+listened to his sister, and for a while had taken her part; but his
+mother had since whispered to him that Owen would now be the better
+suitor, the preferable brother-in-law; and that in fact Clara loved
+Owen the best, though she felt herself bound by honour to his
+kinsman. And then she reminded her son of Clara's former love for
+Owen--a love which he himself had witnessed; and he thought of the
+day when with so much regret he had told his friend that he was
+unsuited to wed with an earl's penniless daughter. Of the subsequent
+pleasantness which had come with Herbert's arrival, he had seen
+little or nothing. He had been told by letter that Herbert
+Fitzgerald, the prosperous heir of Castle Richmond, was to be his
+future brother-in-law, and he had been satisfied. But now, if Owen
+could return--how pleasant it would be!
+
+"But a chap when he marries should have something; shouldn't he
+now?" So spoke the young earl, re-echoing his mother's prudence.
+
+Herbert did not quite like this interference on the boy's part. Was
+he to explain to a young lad from Eton what his future intentions
+were with reference to his mode of living and period of marriage?
+"Of course," he said, addressing himself to the countess, "I shall
+not insist on an engagement made under such different
+circumstances."
+
+"Nor will you allow her to do so through a romantic feeling of
+generosity," said the countess.
+
+"You should know your own daughter, Lady Desmond, better than I do,"
+he answered; "but I cannot say what I may do at her instance till I
+shall have seen her."
+
+"Do you mean to say that you will allow a girl of her age to talk
+you into a proceeding which you know to be wrong?"
+
+"I will allow no one," he said, "to talk me into a proceeding which
+I know to be wrong; nor will I allow any one to talk me out of a
+proceeding which I believe to be right." And then, having uttered
+these somewhat grandiloquent words, he shut himself up as though
+there were no longer any need for discussing the subject.
+
+"My poor child!" said the countess, in a low tremulous voice, as
+though she did not intend him to hear them. "My poor unfortunate
+child!" Herbert as he did hear them thought of the woman in the
+cabin, and of her misfortunes and of her children. "Come, Patrick,"
+continued the countess, "it is perhaps useless for us to say
+anything further at present. If you will remain here, Mr.
+Fitzgerald, for a minute or two, I will send Lady Clara to wait upon
+you;" and then curtsying with great dignity she withdrew, and the
+young earl scuffled out after her. "Mamma," he said, as he went, "he
+is determined that he will have her."
+
+"My poor child!" answered the countess.
+
+"And if I were in his place I should be determined also. You may as
+well give it up. Not but that I like Owen a thousand times the
+best."
+
+Herbert did wait there for some five minutes, and then the door was
+opened very gently, was gently closed again, and Clara Desmond was
+in the room. He came towards her respectfully, holding out his hand
+that he might take hers; but before he had thought of how she would
+act she was in his arms. Hitherto, of all betrothed maidens, she had
+been the most retiring. Sometimes he had thought her cold when she
+had left the seat by his side to go and nestle closely by his
+sister. She had avoided the touch of his hand and the pressure of
+his arm, and had gone from him speechless, if not with anger then
+with dismay, when he had carried the warmth of his love beyond the
+touch of his hand or the pressure of his arm. But now she rushed
+into his embrace and hid her face upon his shoulder, as though she
+were over glad to return to the heart from which those around her
+had endeavoured to banish her. Was he or was he not to speak of his
+love? That had been the question which he had asked himself when
+left alone there for those five minutes, with the eloquence of the
+countess ringing in his ears. Now that question had in truth been
+answered for him.
+
+"Herbert," she said, "Herbert! I have so sorrowed for you; but I
+know that you have borne it like a man."
+
+She was thinking of what he had now half forgotten,--the position
+which he had lost, those hopes which had all been shipwrecked, his
+title surrendered to another, and his lost estates. She was thinking
+of them as the loss affected him, but he, he had reconciled himself
+to all that,--unless all that were to separate him from his promised
+bride.
+
+"Dearest Clara," he said, with his arm close round her waist, while
+neither anger nor dismay appeared to disturb the sweetness of that
+position, "the letter which you wrote me has been my chief comfort."
+Now if he had any intention of liberating Clara from trie bond of
+her engagement,--if he really had any feeling that it behoved him
+not to involve her in the worldly losses which had come upon
+him,--he was taking a very bad way of carrying out his views in that
+respect. Instead of confessing the comfort which he had received
+from that letter, and holding her close to his breast while he did
+confess it, he should have stood away from her--quite as far apart
+as he had done from the countess; and he should have argued with
+her, showing her how foolish and imprudent her letter had been,
+explaining that it behoved her now to repress her feelings, and
+teaching her that peers' daughters as well as housemaids should look
+out for situations which would suit them, guided by prudence and a
+view to the wages,--not follow the dictates of impulse and of the
+heart. This is what he should have done, according, I believe, to
+the views of most men and women. Instead of that he held her there
+as close as he could hold her, and left her to do the most of the
+speaking. I think he was right. According to my ideas woman's love
+should be regarded as fair prize of war,--as long as the war has
+been earned on with due adherence to the recognized law of nations.
+When it has been fairly won, let it be firmly held. I have no
+opinion of that theory of giving up.
+
+"You knew that I would not abandon you! Did you not know it? say
+that you knew it?" said Clara, and then she insisted on having an
+answer.
+
+"I could hardly dare to think that there was so much happiness left
+for me," said Herbert.
+
+"Then you were a traitor to your love, sir; a false traitor." But
+deep as was the offence for which she arraigned him, it was clear to
+see that the pardon came as quick as the conviction. "And was
+Emmeline so untrue to me also as to believe that?"
+
+"Emmeline said--" and then he told her what Emmeline had said.
+
+"Dearest, dearest Emmeline! give her a whole cart-load of love from
+me; now mind you do,--and to Mary, too. And remember this, sir; that
+I love Emmeline ten times better than I do you; twenty times--,
+because she knew me. Oh, if she had mistrusted me--!"
+
+"And do you think that I mistrusted you?"
+
+"Yes, you did; you know you did, sir. You wrote and told me so;--and
+now, this very day, you come here to act as though you mistrusted me
+still. You know you have, only you have not the courage to go on
+with the acting."
+
+And then he began to defend himself, showing how ill it would have
+become him to have kept her bound to her engagements had she feared
+poverty as most girls in her position would have feared it. But on
+this point she would not hear much from him, lest the very fact of
+her hearing it should make it seem that such a line of conduct were
+possible to her.
+
+"You know nothing about most girls, sir, or about any, I am afraid;
+not even about one. And if most girls were frightfully heartless,
+which they are not, what right had you to liken me to most girls?
+Emmeline knew better, and why could not you take her as a type of
+most girls? You have behaved very badly, Master Herbert, and you
+know it; and nothing on earth shall make me forgive you;
+nothing--but your promise that you will not so misjudge me any
+more." And then the tears came to his eyes, and her face was again
+hidden on his shoulder.
+
+It was not very probable that after such a commencement the
+interview would terminate in a manner favourable to the wishes of
+the countess. Clara swore to her lover that she had given him all
+that she had to give,--her heart, and will, and very self; and
+swore, also, that she could not and would not take back the gift.
+She would remain as she was now as long as he thought proper, and
+would come to him whenever he should tell her that his home was
+large enough for them both. And so that matter was settled between
+them.
+
+Then she had much to say about his mother and sisters, and a word
+too about his poor father. And now that it was settled between them
+so fixedly, that come what might they were to float together in the
+same boat down the river of life, she had a question or two also to
+ask, and her approbation to give or to withhold, as to his future
+prospects. He was not to think, she told him, of deciding on
+anything without at any rate telling her. So he had to explain to
+her all the family plans, making her know why he had decided on the
+law as his own path to fortune, and asking for and obtaining her
+consent to all his proposed measures.
+
+In this way her view of the matter became more and more firmly
+adopted as that which should be the view resolutely to be taken by
+them both. The countess had felt that that interview would be fatal
+to her; and she had been right. But how could she have prevented it?
+Twenty times she had resolved that she would prevent it; but twenty
+times she had been forced to confess that she was powerless to do
+so. In these days a mother even can only exercise such power over a
+child as public opinion permits her to use. "Mother, it was you who
+brought us together, and you cannot separate us now." That had
+always been Clara's argument, leaving the countess helpless, except
+as far as she could work on Herbert's generosity. That she had
+tried,--and, as we have seen, been foiled there also. If only she
+could have taken her daughter away while the Castle Richmond family
+were still mersed in the bitter depth of their suffering,--at that
+moment when the blows were falling on them! Then, indeed, she might
+have done something; but she was not like other titled mothers. In
+such a step as this she was absolutely without the means.
+
+Thus talking together they remained closeted fora most
+unconscionable time. Clara had had her purpose to carry out, and to
+Herbert the moments had been too precious to cause him any regret as
+they passed. But now at last a knock was heard at the door, and Lady
+Desmond, without waiting for an answer to it, entered the room.
+Clara immediately started from her seat, not as though she were
+either guilty or tremulous, but with a brave resolve to go on with
+her purposed plan.
+
+"Mamma," she said, "it is fixed now; it cannot be altered now."
+
+"What is fixed, Clara?"
+
+"Herbert and I have renewed our engagement, and nothing must now
+break it, unless we die."
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald, if this be true your conduct to my daughter has
+been unmanly as well as ungenerous."
+
+"Lady Desmond, it is true; and I think that my conduct is neither
+unmanly nor ungenerous."
+
+"Your own relations are against you, sir."
+
+"What relations?" asked Clara, sharply.
+
+"I am not speaking to you, Clara; your absurdity and romance are so
+great that I cannot speak to you."
+
+"What relations, Herbert?" again asked Clara; for she would not for
+the world have had Lady Fitzgerald against her.
+
+"Lady Desmond has, I believe, seen my Aunt Letty two or three times
+lately; I suppose she must mean her."
+
+"Oh," said Clara, turning away as though she were now satisfied. And
+then Herbert, escaping from the house as quickly as he could, rode
+home with a renewal of that feeling of triumph which he had once
+enjoyed before when returning from Desmond Court to Castle Richmond.
+
+On the next day Herbert started for London. The parting was sad
+enough, and the occasion of it was such that it could hardly be
+otherwise. "I am quite sure of one thing," he said to his sister
+Emmeline, "I shall never see Castle Richmond again." And, indeed,
+one may say that small as might be his chance of doing so, his wish
+to do so must be still less. There could be no possible inducement
+to him to come back to a place which had so nearly been his own, and
+the possession of which he had lost in so painful a manner. Every
+tree about the place, every path across the wide park, every hedge
+and ditch and hidden leafy corner, had had for him a special
+interest,--for they had all been his own. But all that was now over.
+They were not only not his own, but they belonged to one who was
+mounting into his seat of power over his head.
+
+He had spent the long evening before his last dinner in going round
+the whole demesne alone, so that no eye should witness what he felt.
+None but those who have known the charms of a country-house early in
+life can conceive the intimacy to which a man attains with all the
+various trifling objects round his own locality; how he knows the
+bark of every tree, and the bend of every bough; how he has marked
+where the rich grass grows in tufts, and where the poorer soil is
+always dry and bare; how he watches the nests of the rooks, and the
+holes of the rabbits, and has learned where the thrushes build, and
+can show the branch on which the linnet sits. All these things had
+been dear to Herbert, and they all required at his hand some last
+farewell. Every dog, too, he had to see, and to lay his hand on the
+neck of every horse. This making of his final adieu under such
+circumstances was melancholy enough.
+
+And then, too, later in the evening, after dinner, all the servants
+were called into the parlour that he might shake hands with them.
+There was not one of them who had not hoped, as lately as three
+months since, that he or she would live to call Herbert Fitzgerald
+master. Indeed, he had already been their master--their young
+master. All Irish servants especially love to pay respect to the
+"young masther;" but Herbert now was to be their master no longer,
+and the probability was that he would never see one of them again.
+
+He schooled himself to go through the ordeal with a manly gait and
+with dry eyes, and he did it; but their eyes were not dry, not even
+those of the men. Mrs. Jones and a favourite girl whom the young
+ladies patronized were not of the number, for it had been decided
+that they should follow the fortunes of their mistress; but Richard
+was there, standing a little apart from the others, as being now on
+a different footing. He was to go also, but before the scene was
+over he also had taken to sobbing violently.
+
+"I wish you all well and happy," said Herbert, making his little
+speech, "and regret deeply that the intercourse between us should be
+thus suddenly severed. You have served me and mine well and truly,
+and it is hard upon you now, that you should be bid to go and seek
+another home elsewhere."
+
+"It isn't that we mind, Mr. Herbert; it ain't that as frets us,"
+said one of the men.
+
+"It ain't that at all, at all," said Richard, doing chorus; "but
+that yer honour should be robbed of what is yer honour's own."
+
+"But you all know that we cannot help it," continued Herbert; "a
+misfortune has come upon us which nobody could have foreseen, and
+therefore we are obliged to part with our old friends and servants."
+
+At the word friends the maid-servants all sobbed. "And 'deed we is
+your frinds, and true frinds, too," wailed the cook.
+
+"I know you are, and it grieves me to feel that I shall see you no
+more. But you must not be led to think by what Richard says that
+anybody is depriving me of that which ought to be my own. I am now
+leaving Castle Richmond because it is not my own, but justly belongs
+to another,--to another who, I must in justice tell you, is in no
+hurry to claim his inheritance. We none of us have any ground for
+displeasure against the present owner of this place, my cousin, Sir
+Owen Fitzgerald."
+
+"We don't know nothing about Sir Owen," said one voice.
+
+"And don't want," said another, convulsed with sobs.
+
+"He's a very good sort of young gentleman--of his own kind, no
+doubt," said Richard.
+
+"But you can all of you understand," continued Herbert, "that as
+this place is no longer our own, we are obliged to leave it; and as
+we shall live in a very different way in the home to which we are
+going, we are obliged to part with you, though we have no reason to
+find fault with any one among you. I am going to-morrow morning
+early, and my mother and sisters will follow after me in a few
+weeks. It will be a sad thing too for them to say good-bye to you
+all, as it is for me now; but it cannot be helped. God bless you
+all, and I hope that you will find good masters and kind mistresses,
+with whom you may live comfortably, as I hope you have done here."
+
+"We can't find no other mistresses like her leddyship," sobbed out
+the senior housemaid.
+
+"There ain't niver such a one in the county Cork," said the cook;
+"in a week of Sundays you wouldn't hear the breath out of her above
+her own swait nathural voice."
+
+"I've driv' her since iver--" began Richard; but he was going to say
+since ever she was married, but he remembered that this allusion
+would be unbecoming, so he turned his face to the doorpost, and
+began to wail bitterly.
+
+And then Herbert shook hands with them all, and it was pretty to see
+how the girls wiped their hands in their aprons before they gave
+them to him, and how they afterwards left the room with their aprons
+up to their faces. The women walked out first, and then the men,
+hanging down their heads, and muttering as they went, each some
+little prayer that fortune and prosperity might return to the house
+of Fitzgerald. The property might go, but according to their views
+Herbert was always, and always would be, the head of the house. And
+then, last of all, Richard went. "There ain't one of 'em, Mr.
+Herbert, as wouldn't guv his fist to go wid yer, and think nothing
+about the wages."
+
+He was to start very early, and his packing was all completed that
+night. "I do so wish we were going with you," said Emmeline, sitting
+in his room on the top of a corded box, which was to follow him by
+some slower conveyance.
+
+"And I do so wish I was staying with you," said he.
+
+"What is the good of staying here now?" said she; "what pleasure can
+there be in it? I hardly dare to go outside the house door for fear
+I should be seen."
+
+"But why? We have done nothing that we need be ashamed of."
+
+"No; I know that. But, Herbert, do you not find that the pity of the
+people is hard to bear? It is written in their eyes, and meets one
+at every turn."
+
+"We shall get rid of that very soon. In a few months we shall be
+clean forgotten."
+
+"I do not know about being forgotten."
+
+"You will be as clean forgotten,--as though you had never existed.
+And all these servants who are now so fond of us, in three months'
+time will be just as fond of Owen Fitzgerald, if he will let them
+stay here; it's the way of the world."
+
+That Herbert should have indulged in a little morbid misanthropy on
+such an occasion was not surprising. But I take leave to think that
+he was wrong in his philosophy; we do make new friends when we lose
+our old friends, and the heart is capable of cure as is the body;
+were it not so, how terrible would be our fate in this world! But we
+are so apt to find fault with God's goodness to us in this respect,
+arguing, of others if not of ourselves, that the heart once widowed
+should remain a widow through all rime. I, for one, think that the
+heart should receive its new spouses with what alacrity it may, and
+always with thankfulness.
+
+"I suppose Lady Desmond will let us see Clara," said Emmeline.
+
+"Of course you must see her. If you knew how much she talks about
+you, you would not think of leaving Ireland without seeing her."
+
+"Dear Clara! I am sure she does not love me better than I do her.
+But suppose that Lady Desmond won't let us see her! and I know that
+it will be so. That grave old man with the bald head will come out
+and say that 'the Lady Clara is not at home,' and then we shall have
+to leave without seeing her. But it does not matter with her as it
+might with others, for I know that her heart will be with us."
+
+"If you write beforehand to say that you are coming, and explain
+that you are doing so to say good-bye, then I think they will admit
+you."
+
+"Yes; and the countess would take care to be there, so that I could
+not say one word to Clara about you. Oh, Herbert! I would give
+anything if I could have her here for one day,--only for one day."
+But when they talked it over they both of them decided that this
+would not be practicable. Clara could not stay away from her own
+house without her mother's leave, and it was not probable that her
+mother would give her permission to stay at Castle Richmond.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXV
+
+HERBERT FITZGERALD IN LONDON
+
+
+
+
+
+On the following morning the whole household was up and dressed very
+early. Lady Fitzgerald--the poor lady made many futile attempts to
+drop her title, but hitherto without any shadow of success--Lady
+Fitzgerald was down in the breakfast parlour at seven, as also were
+Aunt Letty, and Mary, and Emmeline. Herbert had begged his mother
+not to allow herself to be disturbed, alleging that there was no
+cause, seeing that they all so soon would meet in London; but she
+was determined that she would superintend his last meal at Castle
+Richmond. The servants brought in the trays with melancholy silence,
+and now that the absolute moment of parting had come the girls could
+not speak lest the tears should come and choke them. It was not that
+they were about to part with him; that parting would only be for a
+month. But he was now about to part from all that ought to have been
+his own. He sat down at the table in his accustomed place, with a
+forced smile on his face, but without a word, and his sisters put
+before him his cup of tea, and the slice of ham that had been cut
+for him, and his portion of bread. That he was making an effort they
+all saw. He bowed his head down over the tea to sip it, and took the
+knife in his hand, and then he looked up at them, for he knew that
+their eyes were on him; he looked up at them to show that he could
+still endure it. But, alas! he could not endure it. The struggle was
+too much for him; he pushed his plate violently from him into the
+middle of the table, and dropping his head upon his hands, he burst
+forth into audible lamentations.
+
+Oh, my friends! be not hard on him in that he was thus weeping like
+a woman. It was not for his lost wealth that he was wailing, nor
+even for the name or splendour that could be no longer his; nor was
+it for his father's memory, though he had truly loved his father;
+nor for his mother's sorrow, or the tragedy of her life's history.
+For none of these things were his tears flowing and his sobs coming
+so violently that it nearly choked him to repress them. Nor could he
+himself have said why he was weeping.
+
+It was the hundred small things from which he was parting for ever
+that thus disturbed him. The chair on which he sat, the carpet on
+the floor, the table on which he leaned, the dull old picture of his
+great-grandfather over the fire-place,--they were all his old
+familiar friends, they were all part of Castle Richmond,--of that
+Castle Richmond which he might never be allowed to see again.
+
+His mother and sisters came to him, hanging over him, and they
+joined their tears together. "Do not tell her that I was like this,"
+said he at last.
+
+"She will love you the better for it if she has a true woman's heart
+within her breast," said his mother.
+
+"As true a heart as ever breathed," said Emmeline, through her sobs.
+
+And then they pressed him to eat, but it was in vain. He knew that
+the food would choke him if he attempted it. So he gulped down the
+cup of tea, and with one kiss to his mother he rushed from them,
+refusing Aunt Letty's proffered embrace, passing through the line of
+servants without another word to one of them, and burying himself in
+the post-chaise which was to carry him the first stage on his
+melancholy journey.
+
+It was a melancholy journey all through. From the time that he left
+the door at Castle Richmond that was no longer his own, till he
+reached the Euston Station in London, he spoke no word to any one
+more than was absolutely necessary for the purposes of his
+travelling. Nothing could be more sad than the prospect of his
+residence in London. Not that he was without friends there, for he
+belonged to a fashionable club to which he could still adhere if it
+so pleased him, and had all his old Oxford comrades to fall back
+upon if that were of any service to him. But how is a man to walk
+into his club who yesterday was known as his father's eldest son and
+the heir to a baronetcy and twelve thousand a year, and who to-day
+is known as nobody's son and the heir to nothing? Men would feel so
+much for him and pity him so deeply! That was the worst feature of
+his present position. He could hardly dare to show himself more than
+was absolutely necessary till the newness of his tragedy was worn
+off.
+
+Mr. Prendergast had taken lodgings for him, in which he was to
+remain till he could settle himself in the same house with his
+mother. And this house, in which they were all to live, had also
+been taken,--up in that cheerful locality near Harrow-on-the-Hill,
+called St. John's Wood Road, the cab fares to which from any central
+part of London are so very ruinous. But that house was not yet
+ready, and so he went into lodgings in Lincoln's Inn Fields. Mr.
+Prendergast had chosen this locality because it was near the
+chambers of that great Chancery barrister, Mr. Die, under whose
+beneficent wing Herbert Fitzgerald was destined to learn all the
+mysteries of the Chancery bar. The sanctuary of Mr. Die's wig was in
+Stone Buildings, immediately close to that milky way of
+vice-chancellors, whose separate courts cluster about the old chapel
+of Lincoln's Inn; and here was Herbert to sit, studious, for the
+next three years,--to sit there instead of at the various relief
+committees in the vicinity of Kanturk. And why could he not be as
+happy at the one as at the other? Would not Mr. Die be as amusing as
+Mr. Townsend; and the arguments of Vice-Chancellor Stuart's court
+quite as instructive as those heard in the committee room at
+Gortnaclough?
+
+On the morning of his arrival in London he drove to his lodgings,
+and found a note there from Mr. Prendergast asking him to dinner on
+that day, and promising to take him to Mr. Die on the following
+morning. Mr. Prendergast kept a bachelor's house in Bloomsbury
+Square, not very far from Lincoln's Inn--just across Holborn, as all
+Londoners know; and there he would expect Herbert at seven o'clock.
+"I will not ask any one to meet you," he said, "because you will be
+tired after your journey, and perhaps more inclined to talk to me
+than to strangers."
+
+Mr. Prendergast was one of those old-fashioned people who think
+that a spacious substantial house in Bloomsbury Square, at a rent of
+a hundred and twenty pounds a year, is better worth having than a
+narrow, lath-and-plaster, ill-built tenement at nearly double the
+price out westward of the Parks. A quite new man is necessarily
+afraid of such a locality as Bloomsbury Square, for he has no chance
+of getting any one into his house if he do not live westward. Who
+would dine with Mr. Jones in Woburn Terrace, unless he had known Mr.
+Jones all his days, or unless Jones were known as a top sawyer in
+some walk of life? But Mr. Prendergast was well enough known to his
+old friends to be allowed to live where he pleased, and he was not
+very anxious to add to their number by any new fashionable
+allurements.
+
+Herbert sent over to Bloomsbury Square to say that he would be there
+at seven o'clock, and then sat himself down in his new lodgings. It
+was but a dingy abode, consisting of a narrow sitting-room looking
+out into the big square from over a covered archway, and a narrower
+bedroom looking backwards into a dull, dirty-looking, crooked
+street. Nothing, he thought, could be more melancholy than such a
+home. But then, what did it signify? His days would be passed in Mr.
+Die's chambers, and his evenings would be spent over his law books
+with closed windows and copious burnings of the midnight oil. For
+Herbert had wisely resolved that hard work, and hard work alone,
+could mitigate the misery of the present position.
+
+But he had no work for the present day. He could not at once unpack
+his portmanteau and begin his law studies on the moment. It was
+about noon when he had completed the former preparation, and eaten
+such breakfast as his new London landlady had gotten for him. And
+the breakfast had not of itself been bad, for Mrs. Whereas had been
+a daughter of Themis all her life, waiting upon scions of the law
+since first she had been able to run for a penn'orth of milk. She
+had been laundress on a stairs for ten years, having married a law
+stationer's apprentice, and now she owned the dingy house over the
+covered way, and let her own lodgings with her own furniture; nor
+was she often without friends who would recommend her zeal and
+honesty, and make excuse for the imperiousness of her ways and the
+too great fluency of her by no means servile tongue.
+
+"Oh, Mrs.--," said Herbert, "I beg your pardon, but might I ask your
+name?"
+
+"No offence, sir, none in life. My name's Whereas. Martha Whereas,
+and 'as been now for five-and-twenty year. There be'ant many of the
+gen'lemen about the courts here as don't know some'at of me. And I
+knew some'at of them too, before they carried their wigs so grandly.
+My husband, that's Whereas,--you'll all'ays find him at the little
+stationer's shop outside the gate in Carey Street. You'll know him
+some of these days, I'll go bail, if you're going to Mr. Die;
+anyways you'll know his handwrite. Tea to your liking, sir? I
+all'ays gets cream for gentlemen, sir, unless they tells me not.
+Milk a 'alfpenny, sir; cream tuppence; three 'alfpence difference;
+hain't it, sir? So now you can do as you pleases, and if you like
+bacon and heggs to your breakfastesses you've only to say the words.
+But then the heggs hain't heggs, that's the truth; and they hain't
+chickens, but some'at betwixt the two."
+
+And so she went on during the whole time that he was eating, moving
+about from place to place, and putting back into the places which
+she had chosen for them anything which he had chanced to move; now
+dusting a bit of furniture with her apron, and then leaning on the
+back of a chair while she asked him some question as to his habits
+and future mode of living. She also wore a bonnet, apparently as a
+customary part of her house costume, and Herbert could not help
+thinking that she looked very like his Aunt Letty.
+
+But when she had gone and taken the breakfast things with her, then
+began the tedium of the day. It seemed to him as though he had no
+means of commencing his life in London until he had been with Mr.
+Prendergast or Mr. Die. And so new did it all feel to him, so
+strange and wonderful, that he hardly dared to go out of the house
+by himself and wander about the premises of the Inn. He was not
+absolutely a stranger in London, for he had been elected at a club
+before he had left Oxford, and had been up in town twice, staying on
+each occasion some few weeks. Had he therefore been asked about the
+metropolis some four months since at Castle Richmond, he would have
+professed that he knew it well. Starting from Pall Mall he could
+have gone to any of the central theatres, or to the Parks, or to the
+houses of Parliament, or to the picture galleries in June. But now
+in that dingy big square he felt himself to be absolutely a
+stranger; and when he did venture out he watched the corners, in
+order that he might find his way back without asking questions.
+
+And then he roamed round the squares and about the little courts,
+and found out where were Stone Buildings,--so called because they
+are so dull and dead and stony-hearted; and as his courage increased
+he made his way into one of the courts, and stood up for a while on
+an uncomfortable narrow step, so that he might watch the proceedings
+as they went on, and it all seemed to him to be dull and deadly.
+There was no life and amusement such as he had seen at the Assize
+Court in county Cork, when he was sworn in as one of the Grand Jury.
+There the gentlemen in wigs--for on the Munster circuit they do wear
+wigs, or at any rate did then--laughed and winked and talked
+together joyously; and when a Roman Catholic fisherman from
+Berehaven was put into the dock for destroying the boat and nets of
+a Protestant fisherman from Dingle in county Kerry, who had chanced
+to come that way, "not fishing at all, at all, yer honour, but just
+souping," as the Papist prisoner averred with great emphasis, the
+gentlemen of the robe had gone to the fight with all the animation
+and courage of Matadors and Picadors in a bull-ring. It was
+delightful to see the way in which Roman Catholic skill combated
+Protestant fury, with a substratum below of Irish fun which showed
+to everybody that is was not all quite in earnest;--that the great
+O'Fagan and the great Fitzberesford could sit down together
+afterwards with all the pleasure in life over their modicum of
+claret in the barristers' room at the Imperial hotel. And then the
+judge had added to the life of the meeting, helping to bamboozle and
+make miserable a wretch of a witness who had been caught in the act
+of seeing the boat smashed with a fragment of rock, and was now, in
+consequence, being impaled alive by his lordship's assistance.
+
+"What do you say your name is?" demanded his lordship, angrily.
+
+"Rowland Houghton," said the miserable stray Saxon tourist who had
+so unfortunately strayed that way on the occasion.
+
+"What?" repeated the judge, whose ears were sharper to such sounds
+as O'Shaughnessy, Macgillycuddy, and O'Callaghan.
+
+"Rowland Houghton," said the offender, in his distress; quicker,
+louder, and perhaps not more distinctly than before.
+
+"What does the man say?" said the judge, turning his head down
+towards a satellite who sat on a bench beneath his cushion.
+
+The gentleman appealed to pronounced the name for the judge's
+hearing with a full rolling Irish brogue, that gave great delight
+through all the court: "R-rowland Hough-h-ton, me lor-r-d."
+
+Whereupon his lordship threw up his hands in dismay. "Oulan Outan!"
+said he. "Oulan Outan! I never heard such a name in my life!" And
+then, having thoroughly impaled the wicked witness, and added
+materially to the amusement of the day, the judge wrote down the
+name in his book; and there it is to this day, no doubt, Oulan
+Outan. And when one thinks of it, it was monstrous that an English
+witness should go into an Irish law court with such a name as
+Rowland Houghton.
+
+But here, in the dark dingy court to which Herbert had penetrated in
+Lincoln's Inn, there was no such life as this. Here, whatever skill
+there might be, was of a dark subterranean nature, quite
+unintelligible to any minds but those of experts; and as for fury or
+fun, there was no spark either of one or of the other. The judge sat
+back in his seat, a tall, handsome, speechless man, not asleep, for
+his eye from time to time moved slowly from the dingy barrister who
+was on his legs to another dingy barrister who was sitting with his
+hands in his pockets, and with his eyes fixed upon the ceiling. The
+gentleman who was in the act of pleading had a huge open paper in
+his hand, from which he droned forth certain legal quiddities of the
+dullest and most uninteresting nature. He was in earnest, for there
+was a perpetual energy in his drone, as a droning bee might drone
+who was known to drone louder than other drones. But it was a
+continuous energy supported by perseverance, and not by impulse; and
+seemed to come of a fixed determination to continue the reading of
+that paper till all the world should be asleep. A great part of the
+world around was asleep; but the judge's eye was still open, and one
+might say that the barrister was resolved to go on till that eye
+should have become closed in token of his success.
+
+Herbert remained there for an hour, thinking that he might learn
+something that would be serviceable to him in his coming legal
+career; but at the end of the hour the same thing was going on,--the
+judge's eye was still open, and the lawyer's drone was still
+sounding; and so he came away, having found himself absolutely
+dozing in the uncomfortable position in which he was standing.
+
+At last the day wore away, and at seven o'clock he found himself in
+Mr. Prendergast's hall in Bloomsbury Square; and his hat and
+umbrella were taken away from him by an old servant looking very
+much like Mr. Prendergast himself;--having about him the same look
+of the stiffness of years, and the same look also of excellent
+preservation and care.
+
+"Mr. Prendergast is in the library, sir, if you please," said the
+old servant; and so saying he ushered Herbert into the back
+down-stairs room. It was a spacious, lofty apartment, well fitted up
+for a library, and furnished for that purpose with exceeding
+care;--such a room as one does not find in the flashy new houses in
+the west, where the dining-room and drawing-room occupy all of the
+house that is visible. But then, how few of those who live in flashy
+new houses in the west require to have libraries in London!
+
+As he entered the room Mr. Prendergast came forward to meet him, and
+seemed heartily glad to see him. There was a cordiality about him
+which Herbert had never recognized at Castle Richmond, and an
+appearance of enjoyment which had seemed to be almost foreign to the
+lawyer's nature. Herbert perhaps had not calculated, as he should
+have done, that Mr. Prendergast's mission in Ireland had not
+admitted of much enjoyment. Mr. Prendergast had gone there to do a
+job of work, and that he had done, very thoroughly; but he certainly
+had not enjoyed himself.
+
+There was time for only few words before the old man again entered
+the room, announcing dinner; and those few words had no reference
+whatever to the Castle Richmond sorrow. He had spoken of Herbert's
+lodging, and of his journey, and a word or two of Mr. Die, and then
+they went in to dinner. And at dinner too the conversation wholly
+turned upon indifferent matters, upon reform at Oxford, the state of
+parties, and of the peculiar idiosyncrasies of the Irish Low Church
+clergymen, on all of which subjects Herbert found that Mr.
+Prendergast had a tolerably strong opinion of his own. The dinner
+was very good, though by no means showy,--as might have been
+expected in a house in Bloomsbury Square--and the wine excellent,
+as might have been expected in any house inhabited by Mr.
+Prendergast.
+
+And then, when the dinner was over, and the old servant had slowly
+removed his last tray, when they had each got into an arm-chair, and
+were seated at properly comfortable distances from the fire, Mr.
+Prendergast began to talk freely; not that he at once plunged into
+the middle of the old history, or began with lugubrious force to
+recapitulate the horrors that were now partly over; but gradually he
+veered round to those points as to which he thought it good that he
+should speak before setting Herbert at work on his new London life.
+
+"You drink claret, I suppose?" said Mr. Prendergast, as he adjusted
+a portion of the table for their evening symposium.
+
+"Oh yes," said Herbert, not caring very much at that moment what the
+wine was.
+
+"You'll find that pretty good; a good deal better than what you'll
+get in most houses in London nowadays. But you know a man always
+likes his own wine, and especially an old man."
+
+Herbert said something about it being very good, but did not give
+that attention to the matter which Mr. Prendergast thought that it
+deserved. Indeed, he was thinking more about Mr. Die and Stone
+Buildings than about the wine.
+
+"And how do you find my old friend Mrs. Whereas?" asked the lawyer.
+
+"She seems to be a very attentive sort of woman."
+
+"Yes; rather too much so sometimes. People do say that she never
+knows how to hold her tongue. But she won't rob you, nor yet poison
+you; and in these days that is saying a very great deal for a woman
+in London." And then there was a pause, as Mr Prendergast sipped his
+wine with slow complacency. "And we are to go to Mr. Die to-morrow,
+I suppose?" he said, beginning again. To which Herbert replied that
+he would be ready at any time in the morning that might be suitable.
+
+"The sooner you get into harness the better. It is not only that you
+have much to learn, but you have much to forget also."
+
+"Yes," said Herbert, "I have much to forget indeed; more than I can
+forget, I'm afraid, Mr. Prendergast."
+
+"There is, I fancy, no sorrow which a man cannot forget; that is, as
+far as the memory of it is likely to be painful to him. You will not
+absolutely cease to remember Castle Richmond and all its
+circumstances; you will still think of the place and all the people
+whom you knew there; but you will learn to do so without the pain
+which of course you now suffer. That is what I mean by forgetting."
+
+"Oh, I don't complain, sir."
+
+"No, I know you don't; and that is the reason why I am so anxious to
+see you happy. You have borne the whole matter so well that I am
+quite sure that you will be able to live happily in this new life.
+That is what I mean when I say that you will forget Castle
+Richmond."
+
+Herbert bethought himself of Clara Desmond, and of the woman whom he
+had seen in the cabin, and reflected that even at present he had no
+right to be unhappy.
+
+"I suppose you have no thought of going back to Ireland?" said Mr.
+Prendergast.
+
+"Oh, none in the least."
+
+"On the whole I think you are right. No doubt a family connection is
+a great assistance to a barrister, and there would be reasons which
+would make attorneys in Ireland throw business into your hands at an
+early period of your life. Your history would give you an eclat
+there, if you know what I mean."
+
+"Oh yes, perfectly; but I don't want that."
+
+"No. It is a kind of assistance which in my opinion a man should not
+desire. In the first place, it does not last. A man so buoyed up is
+apt to trust to such support, instead of his own steady exertions;
+and the firmest of friends won't stick to a lawyer long if he can
+get better law for his money elsewhere."
+
+"There should be no friendship in such matters, I think."
+
+"Well, I won't say that. But the friendship should come of the
+service, not the service of the friendship. Good, hard, steady, and
+enduring work,--work that does not demand immediate acknowledgment
+and reward, but that can afford to look forward for its results,
+--it is that, and that only, which in my opinion will insure to a
+man permanent success."
+
+"It is hard though for a poor man to work so many years without an
+income," said Herbert, thinking of Lady Clara Desmond.
+
+"Not hard if you get the price of your work at last. But you can
+have your choice. A moderate fixed income can now be had by any
+barrister early in life,--by any barrister of fair parts and sound
+acquirements. There are more barristers now filling salaried places
+than practising in the courts."
+
+"But those places are given by favour."
+
+"No; not so generally,--or if by favour, by that sort of favour
+which is as likely to come to you as to another. Such places are not
+given to incompetent young men because their fathers and mothers ask
+for them. But won't you fill your glass?"
+
+"I am doing very well, thank you."
+
+"You'll do better if you'll fill your glass, and let me have the
+bottle back. But you are thinking of the good old historical days
+when you talk of barristers having to wait for their incomes. There
+has been a great change in that respect,--for the better, as you of
+course will think. Nowadays a man is taken away from his boat-
+racing and his skittle-ground to be made a judge. A little law and a
+great fund of physical strength--that is the extent of the demand."
+And Mr. Prendergast plainly showed by the tone of his voice that he
+did not admire the wisdom of this new policy of which he spoke.
+
+"But I suppose a man must work five years before he can earn
+anything," said Herbert, still despondingly; for five years is a
+long time to an expectant lover.
+
+"Fifteen years of unpaid labour used not to be thought too great a
+price to pay for ultimate success," said Mr. Prendergast, almost
+sighing at the degeneracy of the age. "But men in those days were
+ambitious and patient."
+
+"And now they are ambitious and impatient," suggested Herbert.
+
+"Covetous and impatient might perhaps be the truer epithets," said
+Mr. Prendergast, with grim sarcasm.
+
+It is sad for a man to feel, when he knows that he is fast going
+down the hill of life, that the experience of old age is to be no
+longer valued nor its wisdom appreciated. The elderly man of this
+day thinks that he has been robbed of his chance in life. When he
+was in his full physical vigour he was not old enough for mental
+success. He was still winning his spurs at forty. But at fifty--so
+does the world change--he learns that he is past his work. By some
+unconscious and unlucky leap he has passed from the unripeness of
+youth to the decay of age, without even knowing what it was to be in
+his prime. A man should always seize his opportunity; but the
+changes of the times in which he has lived have never allowed him to
+have one. There has been no period of flood in his tide which might
+lead him on to fortune. While he has been waiting patiently for high
+water the ebb has come upon him. Mr. Prendergast himself had been a
+successful man, and his regrets, therefore, were philosophical
+rather than practical. As for Herbert, he did not look upon the
+question at all in the same light as his elderly friend, and on the
+whole was rather exhilarated by the tone of Mr. Prendergast's
+sarcasm. Perhaps Mr. Prendergast had intended that such should be
+its effect.
+
+The long evening passed away cosily enough, leaving on Herbert's
+mind an impression that in choosing to be a barrister he had
+certainly chosen the noblest walk of life in which a man could earn
+his bread. Mr. Prendergast did not promise him either fame or
+fortune, nor did he speak by any means in high enthusiastic
+language; he said much of the necessity of long hours, of tedious
+work, of Amaryllis left by herself in the shade, and of Neaera's
+locks unheeded; but nevertheless he spoke in a manner to arouse the
+ambition and satisfy the longings of the young man who listened to
+him. There were much wisdom in what he did, and much benevolence
+also.
+
+And then at about eleven o'clock, Herbert having sat out the second
+bottle of claret, betook himself to his bed at the lodgings over the
+covered way.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVI
+
+HOW THE EARL WAS WON
+
+
+
+
+
+It was not quite at first that the countess could explain to her son
+how she now wished that Owen Fitzgerald might become her son-in-law.
+She had been so steadfast in her opposition to Owen when the earl
+had last spoken of the matter, and had said so much of the wickedly
+dissipated life which Owen was leading, that she feared to shock the
+boy. But by degrees she brought the matter round, speaking of Owen's
+great good fortune, pointing out how much better he was suited for
+riches than for poverty, insisting warmly on all his good qualities
+and high feelings, and then saying at last, as it were without
+thought, "Poor Clara! She has been unfortunate, for at one time she
+loved Owen Fitzgerald much better than she will ever love his cousin
+Herbert."
+
+"Do you think so, mother?"
+
+"I am sure of it. The truth is, Patrick, you do not understand your
+sister; and indeed it is hard to do so. I have also always had an
+inward fear that she had now engaged herself to a man whom she did
+not love. Of course as things were then it was impossible that she
+should marry Owen; and I was glad to break her off from that
+feeling. But she never loved Herbert Fitzgerald."
+
+"Why, she is determined to have him, even now."
+
+"Ah, yes! That is where you do not understand her. Now, at this
+special moment, her heart is touched by his misfortune, and she
+thinks herself bound by her engagement to sacrifice herself with
+him. But that is not love. She has never loved any one but
+Owen,--and who can wonder at it? for he is a man made for a woman to
+love."
+
+The earl said nothing for a while, but sat balancing himself on the
+back legs of his chair. And then, as though a new idea had struck
+him, he exclaimed, "If I thought that, mother, I would find out what
+Owen thinks of it himself."
+
+"Poor Owen!" said the countess. "There is no doubt as to what he
+thinks;" and then she left the room, not wishing to carry the
+conversation any further.
+
+Two days after this, and without any further hint from his mother,
+he betook himself along the banks of the river to Hap House. In his
+course thither he never let his horse put a foot upon the road, but
+kept low down upon the water meadows, leaping over all the fences,
+as he had so often done with the man whom he was now going to see.
+It was here, among these banks, that he had received his earliest
+lessons in horsemanship, and they had all been given by Owen
+Fitzgerald. It had been a thousand pities, he had thought, that Owen
+had been so poor as to make it necessary for them all to discourage
+that love affair with Clara. He would have been so delighted to
+welcome Owen as his brother-in-law. And as he strode along over the
+ground, and landed himself knowingly over the crabbed fences, he
+began to think how much pleasanter the country would be for him if
+he had a downright good fellow and crack sportsman as his fast
+friend at Castle Richmond. Sir Owen Fitzgerald of Castle Richmond!
+He would be the man to whom he would be delighted to give his sister
+Clara.
+
+And then he hopped in from one of Owen's fields into a small paddock
+at the back of Owen's house, and seeing one of the stable-boys
+about the place, asked him if his master was at home.
+
+"Shure an' he's here thin, yer honour;" and Lord Desmond could hear
+the boy whispering, "It's the young lord hisself." In a moment Owen
+Fitzgerald was standing by his horse's side. It was the first time
+that Owen had seen one of the family since the news had been spread
+abroad concerning his right to the inheritance of Castle Richmond.
+
+"Desmond," said he, taking the lad's hand with one of his, and
+putting the other on the animal's neck, "this is very good of you. I
+am delighted to see you. I had heard that you were in the country."
+
+"Yes; I have been home for this week past. But things are all so at
+sixes and sevens among us all that a fellow can't go and do just
+what he would like."
+
+Owen well understood what he meant. "Indeed, they are at sixes and
+sevens; you may well say that. But get off your horse, old fellow,
+and come into the house. Why, what a lather of heat the mare's in!"
+
+"Isn't she? it's quite dreadful. That chap of ours has no more idea
+of condition than I have of--of--of--of an archbishop. I've just
+trotted along the fields, and put her over a ditch or two, and you
+see the state she's in. It's a beastly shame."
+
+"I know of old what your trottings are, Desmond; and what a ditch or
+two means. You've been at every bank between this and Banteer as
+though you were going for a steeple-chase plate."
+
+"Upon my honour, Owen--"
+
+"Look here, Patsey. Walk that mare up and down here, between this
+gate and that post, till the big sweat has all dried on her; and
+then stick to her with a whisp of straw till she's as soft as silk.
+Do you hear?"
+
+Patsey said that he did hear; and then Owen, throwing his arm over
+the earl's shoulder, walked slowly towards the house.
+
+"I can't tell you how glad I am to see you, old boy," said Owen,
+pressing his young friend with something almost like an embrace.
+"You will hardly believe how long it is since I have seen a face
+that I cared to look at."
+
+"Haven't you?" said the young lord, wondering. He knew that
+Fitzgerald had now become heir to a very large fortune, or rather
+the possessor of that fortune, and he could not understand why a man
+who had been so popular while he was poor should be deserted now
+that he was rich.
+
+"No, indeed, have I not. Things are all at sixes and sevens, as you
+say. Let me see. Donnellan was here when you last saw me; and I was
+soon tired of him when things became serious."
+
+"I don't wonder you were tired of him."
+
+"But, Desmond, how's your mother?"
+
+"Oh, she's very well. These are bad times for poor people like us,
+you know."
+
+"And your sister?"
+
+"She's pretty well too, thank you" And then there was a pause.
+"You've had a great change in your fortune since I saw you, have you
+not?" said the earl, after a minute or two. And there it occurred to
+him for the first time, that, having refused his sister to this man
+when he was poor, he had now come to offer her to him when he was
+rich. "Not that that was the reason," he said to himself. "But it
+was impossible then, and now it would be so pleasant."
+
+"It is a sad history, is it not?" said Owen.
+
+"Very sad," said the earl, remembering, however, that he had ridden
+over there with his heart full of joy,--of joy occasioned by that
+very catastrophe which now, following his friend's words like a
+parrot, he declared to be so very sad.
+
+And now they were in the dining-room in which Owen usually lived,
+and were both standing on the rug, as two men always do stand when
+they first get into a room together. And it was clear to see that
+neither of them knew how to break at once into the sort of loving,
+genial talk which each was longing to have with the other. It is so
+easy to speak when one has little or nothing to say; but often so
+difficult when there is much that must be said: and the same paradox
+is equally true of writing.
+
+Then Owen walked away to the window, looking out among the shrubs
+into which Aby Mollett had been precipitated, as though he could
+collect his thoughts there; and in a moment or two the earl followed
+him, and looked out also among the shrubs. "They killed a fox
+exactly there the other day; didn't they?" asked the earl,
+indicating the spot by a nod of his head.
+
+"Yes, they did." And then there was another pause. "I'll tell you
+what it is, Desmond," Owen said at last, going back to the rug and
+speaking with an effort. "As the people say, 'a sight of you is good
+for sore eyes.' There is a positive joy to me in seeing you. It is
+like a cup of cold water when a man is thirsty. But I cannot put the
+drink to my lips till I know on what terms we are to meet. When last
+we saw each other, we were speaking of your sister; and now that we
+meet again, we must again speak of her. Desmond, all my thoughts are
+of her; I dream of her at night, and find myself talking to her
+spirit when I wake in the morning. I have much else that I ought to
+think of; but I go about thinking of nothing but of her. I am told
+that she is engaged to my cousin Herbert. Nay, she has told me so
+herself, and I know that it is so. But if she becomes his wife--any
+man's wife but mine--I cannot live in this country."
+
+He had not said one word of that state of things in his life's
+history of which the countryside was so full. He had spoken of
+Herbert, but he had not alluded to Herbert's fall. He had spoken of
+such hope as he still might have with reference to Clara Desmond;
+but he did not make the slightest reference to that change in his
+fortunes--in his fortunes, and in those of his rival--which might
+have so strong a bias on those hopes, and which ought so to have in
+the minds of all worldly, prudent people. It was to speak of this
+specially that Lord Desmond had come thither; and then, if
+opportunity should offer, to lead away the subject to that other
+one; but now Owen had begun at the wrong end. If called upon to
+speak about his sister at once, what could the brother say, except
+that she was engaged to Herbert Fitzgerald?
+
+"Tell me this, Desmond, whom does your sister love?" said Owen,
+speaking almost fiercely in his earnestness. "I know so much of you,
+at any rate, that whatever may be your feelings you will not lie to
+me,"--thereby communicating to the young lord an accusation, which
+he very well understood, against the truth of the countess, his
+mother.
+
+"When I have spoken to her about this she declares that she is
+engaged to Herbert Fitzgerald."
+
+"Engaged to him! yes, I know that; I do not doubt that. It has been
+dinned into my ears now for the last six months till it is
+impossible to doubt it. And she will marry him too, if no one
+interferes to prevent it. I do not doubt that either. But, Desmond,
+that is not the question that I have asked. She did love me; and
+then she was ordered by her mother to abandon that love, and to give
+her heart to another. That in words she has been obedient, I know
+well; but what I doubt is this,--that she has in truth been able so
+to chuck her heart about like a shuttlecock. I can only say that I
+am not able to do it."
+
+How was the earl to answer him? The very line of argument which
+Owen's mind was taking was exactly that which the young lord himself
+desired to promote. He too was desirous that Clara should go back to
+her first love. He himself thought strongly that Owen was a man more
+fitted than Herbert for the worshipful adoration of such a girl as
+his sister Clara. But then he, Desmond, had opposed the match while
+Owen was poor, and how was he to frame words by which he might
+encourage it now that Owen was rich?
+
+"I have been so little with her, that I hardly know," he said. "But,
+Owen--"
+
+"Well?"
+
+"It is so difficult for me to talk to you about all this."
+
+"Is it?"
+
+"Why, yes. You know that I have always liked you--always. No chap
+was ever such a friend to me as you have been;" and he squeezed
+Owen's arm with strong boyish love.
+
+"I know all about it," said Owen.
+
+"Well; then all that happened about Clara. I was young then, you
+know,"--he was now sixteen--"and had not thought anything about it.
+The idea of you and Clara falling in love had never occurred to me.
+Boys are so blind, you know. But when it did happen--you remember
+that day, old fellow, when you and I met down at the gate?"
+
+"Remember it!" said Owen. He would remember it, as he thought, when
+half an eternity should have passed over his head.
+
+"And I told you then what I thought. I don't think I am a particular
+fellow myself about money and rank and that sort of thing. I am as
+poor as a church mouse, and so I shall always remain; and for myself
+I don't care about it. But for one's sister, Owen--you never had a
+sister, had you?"
+
+"Never," said Owen, hardly thinking of the question.
+
+"One is obliged to think of such things for her. We should all go to
+rack and ruin, the whole family of us, box and dice,--as indeed we
+have pretty well already--if some of us did not begin to look about
+us. I don't suppose I shall ever marry and have a family. I couldn't
+afford it, you know. And in that case Clara's son would be Earl of
+Desmond; or if I died she would be Countess of Desmond in her own
+right." And the young lord looked the personification of family
+prudence.
+
+"I know all that," said Owen; "but you do not suppose that I was
+thinking of it?"
+
+"What; as regards yourself. No; I am sure you never did. But,
+looking to all that, it would never have done for her to marry a man
+as poor as you were. It is not a comfortable thing to be a very poor
+nobleman, I can tell you."
+
+Owen again remained silent. He wanted to talk the earl over into
+favouring his views, but he wanted to do so as Owen of Hap House,
+not as Owen of Castle Richmond. He perceived at once from the tone
+of the boy's voice, and even from his words, that there was no
+longer anything to be feared from the brother's opposition; and
+perceiving this, he thought that the mother's opposition might now
+perhaps also be removed. But it was quite manifest that this had
+come from what was supposed to be his altered position. "A man as
+poor as you were," Lord Desmond had said, urging that though now the
+marriage might be well enough, in those former days it would have
+been madness. The line of argument was very clear; but as Owen was
+as poor as ever, and intended to remain so, there was nothing in it
+to comfort him.
+
+"I cannot say that I, myself, have so much worldly wisdom as you
+have," said he at last, with something like a sneer.
+
+"Ah, that is just what I knew you would say. You think that I am
+coming to you now, and offering to make up matters between you and
+Clara because you are rich!"
+
+"But can you make up matters between me and Clara?" said Owen,
+eagerly.
+
+"Well, I do not know. The countess seems to think it might be so."
+
+And then again Owen was silent, walking about the room with his
+hands behind his back. Then, after all, the one thing of this world
+which his eye regarded as desirable was within his reach. He had
+then been right in supposing that that face which had once looked up
+to his so full of love had been a true reflex of the girl's
+heart,--that it had indicated to him love which was not changeable.
+It was true that Clara, having accepted a suitor at her mother's
+order, might now be allowed to come back to him! As he thought of
+this, he wondered at the endurance and obedience of a woman's heart
+which could thus give up all that it held as sacred at the instance
+of another. But even this, though it was but little flattering to
+Clara, by no means lessened the transport which he felt. He had had
+that pride in himself, that he had never ceased to believe that she
+loved him. Full of that thought, of which he had not dared to speak,
+he had gone about, gloomily miserable since the news of her
+engagement with Herbert had reached him, and now he learned, as he
+thought with certainty, that his belief had been well grounded.
+Through all that had passed Clara Desmond did love him still!
+
+But as to this overture of reconciliation that was now made to him,
+how was he to accept it or reject it? It was made to him because he
+was believed to be Sir Owen Fitzgerald of Castle Richmond, a baronet
+of twelve thousand a year, instead of a poor squire, whose wife
+would have to look narrowly to the kitchen, in order that food in
+sufficiency might be forthcoming for the parlour. That he would
+become Sir Owen he thought probable; but that he would be Sir Owen
+of Hap House and not of Castle Richmond he had firmly resolved. He
+had thought of this for long hours and hours together, and felt that
+he could never again be happy were he to put his foot into that
+house as its owner. Every tenant would scorn him, every servant
+would hate him, every neighbour would condemn him; but this would be
+as nothing to his hatred of himself, to his own scorn and his own
+condemnation. And yet how great was the temptation to him now! If he
+would consent to call himself master of Castle Richmond, Clara's
+hand might still be his.
+
+So he thought; but those who know Clara Desmond better than he did
+will know how false were his hopes. She was hardly the girl to have
+gone back to a lover when he was rich, whom she had rejected when he
+was poor.
+
+"Desmond," said he, "come here and sit down;" and both sat leaning
+on the table together, with their arms touching. "I understand it
+all now, I think; and remember this, my boy, that whomever I may
+blame, I do not blame you; that you are true and honest I am sure;
+and, indeed, there is only one person whom I do blame." He did not
+say that this one person was the countess, but the earl knew just as
+well as though he had been told.
+
+"I understand all this now," he repeated, "and before we go any
+further, I must tell you one thing; I shall never be owner of Castle
+Richmond."
+
+"Why, I thought it was all settled!" said the earl, looking up with
+surprise.
+
+"Nothing at all is settled. To every bargain there must be two
+parties, and I have never yet become a party to the bargain which
+shall make me owner of Castle Richmond."
+
+"But is it not yours of right?"
+
+"I do not know what you call right."
+
+"Right of inheritance," said the earl, who, having succeeded to his
+own rank by the strength of the same right enduring through many
+ages, looked upon it as the one substantial palladium of the
+country.
+
+"Look here, old fellow, and I'll tell you my views about this. Sir
+Thomas Fitzgerald, when he married that poor lady who is still
+staying at Castle Richmond, did so in the face of the world with the
+full assurance that he made her his legal wife. Whether such a case
+as this ever occurred before I don't know, but I am sure of this,
+that in the eye of God she is his widow. Herbert Fitzgerald was
+brought up as the heir to all that estate, and I cannot see that he
+can fairly be robbed of that right because another man has been a
+villain. The title he cannot have, I suppose, because the law won't
+give it him; but the property can be made over to him, and as far as
+I am concerned it shall be made over. No earthly consideration shall
+induce me to put my hand upon it, for in doing so I should look upon
+myself as a thief and a scoundrel."
+
+"And you mean then that Herbert will have it all, just the same as
+it was before?"
+
+"Just the same as regards the estate."
+
+"Then why has he gone away?"
+
+"I cannot answer for him. I can only tell you what I shall do. I
+dare say it may take months before it is all settled. But now,
+Desmond, you know how I stand; I am Owen Fitzgerald of Hap House,
+now as I have ever been, that and nothing more,--for as to the
+handle to my name it is not worth talking about."
+
+They were still sitting at the table, and now they both sat silent,
+not looking at each other, but with their eyes fixed on the wood.
+Owen had in his hand a pen, which he had taken from the mantelpiece,
+and unconsciously began to trace signs on the polished surface
+before him. The earl sat with his forehead leaning on his two hands,
+thinking what he was to say next. He felt that he himself loved the
+man better than ever; but when his mother should come to hear all
+this, what would she say?
+
+"You know it all now, my boy," said Owen, looking up at last; and as
+he did so there was an expression about his face to which the young
+earl thought that he had never seen the like. There was a gleam in
+his eye which, though not of joy, was so bright; and a smile round
+his mouth which was so sweet, though full of sadness! "How can she
+not love him?" said he to himself, thinking of his sister. "And now,
+Desmond, go back to your mother and tell her all. She has sent you
+here."
+
+"No, she did not send me," said the boy, stoutly,--almost angrily;
+"she does not even know that I have come."
+
+"Go back then to your sister."
+
+"Nor does she know it."
+
+"Nevertheless, go back to them, and tell them both what I have told
+you; and tell them this also, that I, Owen Fitzgerald of Hap House,
+still love her better than all that the world else can give me;
+indeed, there is nothing else that I do love,--except you, Desmond.
+But tell them also that I am Owen of Hap House still--that and
+nothing more."
+
+"Owen," said the lad, looking up at him; and Fitzgerald as he
+glanced into the boy's face could see that there was that arising
+within his breast which almost prevented him from speaking.
+
+"And look, Desmond," continued Fitzgerald; "do not think that I
+shall blame you because you turn from me, or call you mercenary. Do
+you do what you think right. What you said just now of your
+sister's--, well, of the possibility of our marriage, you said under
+the idea that I was a rich man. You now find that I am a poor man;
+and you may consider that the words were never spoken."
+
+"Owen!" said the boy again; and now that which was before rising in
+his breast had risen to his brow and cheeks, and was telling its
+tale plainly in his eyes. And then he rose from his chair, turning
+away his face, and walking towards the window; but before he had
+gone two steps he turned again, and throwing himself on Fitzgerald's
+breast, he burst out into a passion of tears.
+
+"Come, old fellow, what is this? This will never do," said Owen. But
+his own eyes were full of tears also, and he too was nearly past
+speaking.
+
+"I know you will think--I am a boy and a--fool," said the earl,
+through his sobs, as soon as he could speak; "but I can't--help it."
+
+"I think you are the dearest, finest, best fellow that ever lived,"
+said Fitzgerald, pressing him with his arm.
+
+"And I'll tell you what, Owen, you should have her to-morrow if it
+were in my power, for, by heaven! there is not another man so worthy
+of a girl in all the world; and I'll tell her so; and I don't care
+what the countess says. And, Owen, come what come may, you shall
+always have my word;" and then he stood apart, and rubbing his eyes
+with his arm, tried to look like a man who was giving this pledge
+from his judgment, not from his impulse.
+
+"It all depends on this, Desmond; whom does she love? See her alone,
+Desmond, and talk softly to her, and find out that." This he said
+thoughtfully, for in his mind "love should still be lord of all."
+
+"By heavens! if I were her, I know whom I should love," said the
+brother.
+
+"I would not have her as a gift if she did not love me," said Owen,
+proudly; "but if she do, I have a right to claim her as my own."
+
+And then they parted, and the earl rode back home with a quieter
+pace than that which had brought him there, and in a different mood.
+He had pledged himself now to Owen,--not to Owen of Castle Richmond,
+but to Owen of Hap House--and he intended to redeem his pledge if it
+were possible. He had been so conquered by the nobleness of his
+friend, that he had forgotten his solicitude for his family and his
+sister.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVII
+
+A TALE OF A TURBOT
+
+
+
+
+
+It would have been Owen Fitzgerald's desire to disclaim the
+inheritance which chance had put in his way in absolute silence, had
+such a course been possible to him. And, indeed, not being very well
+conversant with matters of business, he had thought for a while that
+this might be done--or at any rate something not far different from
+this. To those who had hitherto spoken to him upon the subject, to
+Mr. Prendergast, Mr. Somers, and his cousin, he had disclaimed the
+inheritance, and that he had thought would have sufficed. That Sir
+Thomas should die so quickly after the discovery had not of course
+been expected by anybody; and much, therefore, had not been thought
+at the moment of these disclaimers;--neither at the moment, nor
+indeed afterwards, when Sir Thomas did die.
+
+Even Mr. Somers was prepared to admit that as the game had been
+given up,--as his branch of the Fitzgeralds, acting under the advice
+of their friend and lawyer, admitted that the property must go from
+them--even he, much as he contested within his own breast the
+propriety of Mr. Prendergast's decisions, was fain to admit now that
+it was Owen's business to walk in upon the property. Any words which
+he may have spoken on the impulse of the moment were empty words.
+When a man becomes heir to twelve thousand a year, he does not give
+it up in a freak of benevolence. And, therefore, when Sir Thomas had
+been dead some four or five weeks, and when Herbert had gone away
+from the scene which was no longer one of interest to him, it was
+necessary that something should be done.
+
+During the last two or three days of his life Sir Thomas had
+executed a new will, in which he admitted that his son was not the
+heir to his estates, and so disposed of such moneys as it was in his
+power to leave as he would have done had Herbert been a younger son.
+Early in his life he himself had added something to the property,
+some two or three hundred a year, and this, also, he left of course
+to his own family. Such having been done, there would have been no
+opposition made to Owen had he immediately claimed the inheritance;
+but as he made no claim, and took no step whatever,--as he appeared
+neither by himself, nor by letter, nor by lawyer, nor by agent,--as
+no rumour ever got about as to what he intended to do, Mr. Somers
+found it necessary to write to him. This he did on the day of
+Herbert's departure, merely asking him, perhaps with scant courtesy,
+who was his man of business, in order that he, Mr. Somers, as agent
+to the late proprietor, might confer with him. With but scant
+courtesy,--for Mr. Somers had made one visit to Hap House since the
+news had been known, with some intention of ingratiating himself
+with the future heir; but his tenders had not been graciously
+received. Mr. Somers was a proud man, and though his position in
+life depended on the income he received from the Castle Richmond
+estate, he would not make any further overture. So his letter was
+somewhat of the shortest, and merely contained the request above
+named.
+
+Owen's reply was sharp, immediate, and equally short, and was
+carried back by the messenger from Castle Richmond who had brought
+the letter, to which it was an answer. It was as follows:--
+
+"Hap House, Thursday morning, two o'clock."
+
+(There was no other date; and Owen probably was unaware that his
+letter being written at two P.M. was not written on Thursday
+morning.)
+
+"DEAR SIR,
+
+"I have got no lawyer, and no man of business; nor do I mean to
+employ any if I can help it. I intend to make no claim to Mr.
+Herbert Fitzgerald's property of Castle Richmond; and if it be
+necessary that I should sign any legal document making over to him
+any claim that I may have, I am prepared to do so at any moment. As
+he has got a lawyer, he can get this arranged, and I suppose Mr.
+Prendergast had better do it.
+
+"I am, dear sir,
+
+"Your faithful servant,
+
+"OWEN FITZGERALD of Hap House."
+
+And with those four or five lines he thought it would be practicable
+for him to close the whole affair.
+
+This happened on the day of Herbert's departure, and on the day
+preceding Lord Desmond's visit to Hap House; so that on the occasion
+of that visit, Owen looked upon the deed as fully done. He had put
+it quite beyond his own power to recede now, even had he so wished.
+And then came the tidings to him,--true tidings as he
+thought,--that Clara was still within his reach if only he were
+master of Castle Richmond. That this view of his position did for a
+moment shake him I will not deny; but it was only for a moment: and
+then it was that he had looked up at Clara's brother, and bade him
+go back to his mother and sister, and tell them that Owen of Hap
+House was Owen of Hap House still;--that and nothing more. Clara
+Desmond might be bought at a price which would be too costly even
+for such a prize as her. It was well for him that he so resolved,
+for at no price could she have been bought.
+
+Mr. Somers, when he received that letter, was much inclined to doubt
+whether or no it might not be well to take Owen at his word. After
+all, what just right had he to the estate? According to the eternal
+and unalterable laws of right and wrong ought it not to belong to
+Herbert Fitzgerald? Mr. Somers allowed his wish on this occasion to
+be father to many thoughts much at variance from that line of
+thinking which was customary to him as a man of business. In his
+ordinary moods, law with him was law, and a legal claim a legal
+claim. Had he been all his life agent to the Hap House property
+instead of to that of Castle Richmond, a thought so romantic would
+never have entered his head. He would have scouted a man as nearly a
+maniac who should suggest to him that his client ought to surrender
+an undoubted inheritance of twelve thousand a year on a point of
+feeling. He would have rejected it as a proposed crime, and talked
+much of the indefeasible rights of the coming heirs of the new heir.
+He would have been as firm as a rock, and as trenchant as a sword in
+defence of his patron's claims. But now, having in his hands that
+short, pithy letter from Owen Fitzgerald, he could not but look at
+the matter in a more Christian light. After all, was not justice,
+immutable justice, better than law? And would not the property be
+enough for both of them? Might not law and justice make a
+compromise? Let Owen be the baronet, and take a slice of four or
+five thousand, and add that to Hap House; and then if these things
+were well arranged, might not Mr. Somers still be agent to them
+both?
+
+Meditating all this in his newly tuned romantic frame of mind, Mr.
+Somers sat down and wrote a long letter to Mr. Prendergast,
+enclosing the short letter from Owen, and saying all that he, as a
+man of business with a new dash of romance, could say on such a
+subject. This letter, not having slept on the road as Herbert did in
+Dublin, and having been conveyed with that lightning rapidity for
+which the British Post-office has ever been remarkable--and
+especially that portion of it which has reference to the sister
+island,--was in Mr. Prendergast's pocket when Herbert dined with
+him. That letter, and another to which we shall have to refer more
+specially. But so much at variance were Mr. Prendergast's ideas from
+those entertained by Mr. Somers, that he would not even speak to
+Herbert on the subject. Perhaps, also, that other more important
+letter, which, if we live, we shall read at length, might also have
+had some effect in keeping him silent.
+
+But in truth Mr. Somers' mind, and that of Mr. Prendergast, did not
+work in harmony on this subject. Judging of the two men together by
+their usual deeds and ascertained character, we may say that there
+was much more romance about Mr. Prendergast than there was about Mr.
+Somers. But then it was a general romance, and not one with an
+individual object. Or perhaps we may say, without injury to Mr.
+Somers, that it was a true feeling, and not a false one. Mr.
+Prendergast, also, was much more anxious for the welfare of Herbert
+Fitzgerald than that of his cousin; but then he could feel on behalf
+of the man for whom he was interested that it did not behove him to
+take a present of an estate from the hands of the true owner.
+
+For more than a week Mr. Somers waited, but got no reply to his
+letter, and heard nothing from Mr. Prendergast; and during this time
+he was really puzzled as to what he should do. As regarded himself,
+he did not know at what moment his income might end, or how long he
+and his family might be allowed to inhabit the house which he now
+held: and then he could take no steps as to the tenants; could
+neither receive money nor pay it away, and was altogether at his
+wits' ends. Lady Fitzgerald looked to him for counsel in everything,
+and he did not know how to counsel her. Arrangements were to be made
+for an auction in the house as soon as she should be able to move;
+but would it not be a thousand pities to sell all the furniture if
+there was a prospect of the family returning? And so he waited for
+Mr. Prendergast's letter with an uneasy heart and vexation of
+spirit.
+
+But still he attended the relief committees, and worked at the
+soup-kitchens attached to the estate, as though he were still the
+agent to Castle Richmond; and still debated warmly with Father
+Barney on one side, and Mr. Townsend on the other, on that vexatious
+question of out-door relief. And now the famine was in full swing;
+and, strange to say, men had ceased to be uncomfortable about it;
+--such men, that is, as Mr. Somers and Mr. Townsend. The cutting off
+of maimed limbs, and wrenching out from their sockets of smashed
+bones, is by no means shocking to the skilled practitioner. And
+dying paupers, with "the drag" in their face--that certain sign of
+coming death of which I have spoken--no longer struck men to the
+heart. Like the skilled surgeon, they worked hard enough at what
+good they could do, and worked the better in that they could treat
+the cases without express compassion for the individuals that met
+their eyes. In administering relief one may rob five unseen
+sufferers of what would keep them in life if one is moved to bestow
+all that is comfortable on one sufferer that is seen. Was it wise to
+spend money in alleviating the last hours of those whose doom was
+already spoken, which money, if duly used, might save the lives of
+others not yet so far gone in misery? And so in one sense those who
+were the best in the county, who worked the hardest for the poor and
+spent their time most completely among them, became the hardest of
+heart, and most obdurate in their denials. It was strange to see
+devoted women neglecting the wants of the dying, so that they might
+husband their strength and time and means for the wants of those who
+might still be kept among the living.
+
+At this time there came over to the parish of Drumbarrow a young
+English clergyman who might be said to be in many respects the very
+opposite to Mr. Townsend. Two men could hardly be found in the same
+profession more opposite in their ideas, lives, purposes, and
+pursuits;--with this similarity, however, that each was a sincere,
+and on the whole an honest man. The Rev. Mr. Carter was much the
+junior, being at that time under thirty. He had now visited Ireland
+with the sole object of working among the poor, and distributing
+according to his own judgment certain funds which had been collected
+for this purpose in England.
+
+And indeed there did often exist in England at this time a
+misapprehension as to Irish wants, which led to some misuses of the
+funds which England so liberally sent. It came at that time to be
+the duty of a certain public officer to inquire into a charge made
+against a seemingly respectable man in the far west of Ireland,
+purporting that he had appropriated to his own use a sum of twelve
+pounds sent to him for the relief of the poor of his parish. It had
+been sent by three English maiden ladies to the relieving officer of
+the parish of Kilcoutymorrow, and had come to his hands, he then
+filling that position. He, so the charge said,--and unfortunately
+said so with only too much truth,--had put the twelve pounds into
+his own private pocket. The officer's duty in the matter took him to
+the chairman of the Relief Committee, a stanch old Roman Catholic
+gentleman nearly eighty years of age, with a hoary head and white
+beard, and a Milesian name that had come down to him through
+centuries of Catholic ancestors;--a man urbane in his manner, of the
+old school, an Irishman such as one does meet still here and there
+through the country, but now not often--one who, above all things,
+was true to the old religion.
+
+Then the officer of the government told his story to the old Irish
+gentleman--with many words, for there were all manner of small
+collateral proofs, to all of which the old Irish gentleman listened
+with a courtesy and patience which were admirable. And when the
+officer of the government had done, the old Irish gentleman thus
+replied:--
+
+"My neighbour Hobbs,"--such was the culprit's name--"has undoubtedly
+done this thing. He has certainly spent upon his own uses the
+generous offering made to our poor parish by those noble-minded
+ladies, the three Miss Walkers. But he has acted with perfect
+honesty in the matter."
+
+"What!" said the government officer, "robbing the poor, and at such
+a time as this!"
+
+"No robbery at all, dear sir," said the good old Irish gentleman,
+with the blandest of all possible smiles; "the excellent Miss
+Walkers sent their money for the Protestant poor of the parish of
+Kilcoutymorrow, and Mr. Hobbs is the only Protestant within it." And
+from the twinkle in the old man's eye, it was clear to see that his
+triumph consisted in this,--that not only he had but one Protestant
+in the parish, but that that Protestant should have learned so
+little from his religion.
+
+But this is an episode. And nowadays no episodes are allowed.
+
+And now Mr. Carter had come over to see that if possible certain
+English funds were distributed according to the wishes of the
+generous English hearts by whom they had been sent. For as some
+English, such as the three Miss Walkers, feared on the one hand that
+the Babylonish woman so rampant in Ireland might swallow up their
+money for Babylonish purposes; so, on the other hand, did others
+dread that the too stanch Protestantism of the church militant in
+that country might expand the funds collected for undoubted bodily
+wants in administering to the supposed wants of the soul. No such
+faults did, in truth, at that time prevail. The indomitable force of
+the famine had absolutely knocked down all that; but there had been
+things done in Ireland, before the famine came upon them, which gave
+reasonable suspicion for such fears.
+
+Mr. Townsend among others had been very active in soliciting aid
+from England, and hence had arisen a correspondence between him and
+Mr. Carter; and now Mr. Carter had arrived at Drumbarrow with a
+respectable sum to his credit at the provincial bank, and an intense
+desire to make himself useful in this time of sore need. Mr. Carter
+was a tall, thin, austere-looking man; one, seemingly, who had
+macerated himself inwardly and outwardly by hard living. He had a
+high, narrow forehead, a sparse amount of animal development, thin
+lips, and a piercing, sharp, gray eye. He was a man, too, of few
+words, and would have been altogether harsh in his appearance had
+there not been that in the twinkle of his eye which seemed to say
+that, in spite of all that his gait said to the contrary, the
+cockles of his heart might yet be reached by some play of wit--if
+only the wit were to his taste.
+
+Mr. Carter was a man of personal means, so that he not only was not
+dependent on his profession, but was able--as he also was willing
+--to aid that profession by his liberality. In one thing only was he
+personally expensive. As to his eating and drinking it was, or might
+have been for any solicitude of his own, little more than bread and
+water. As for the comforts of home, he had none, for since his
+ordination his missions had ever been migrating. But he always
+dressed with care, and consequently with expense, for careful
+dressing is ever expensive. He always wore new black gloves, and a
+very long black coat which never degenerated to rust, black cloth
+trousers, a high black silk waistcoat, and a new black hat.
+Everything about him was black except his neck, and that was always
+scrupulously white.
+
+Mr. Carter was a good man--one may say a very good man--for he gave
+up himself and his money to carry out high views of charity and
+religion, in which he was sincere with the sincerity of his whole
+heart, and from which he looked for no reward save such as the godly
+ever seek. But yet there was about him too much of the Pharisee. He
+was greatly inclined to condemn other men, and to think none
+righteous who differed from him. And now he had come to Ireland with
+a certain conviction that the clergy of his own Church there were
+men not to be trusted; that they were mere Irish, and little better
+in their habits and doctrines than under-bred dissenters. He had
+been elsewhere in the country before he visited Drumbarrow, and had
+shown this too plainly; but then Mr. Carter was a very young man,
+and it is not perhaps fair to expect zeal and discretion also from
+those who are very young.
+
+Mrs. Townsend had heard of him, and was in dismay when she found
+that he was to stay with them at Drumbarrow parsonage for three
+days. If Mr. Carter did not like clerical characters of her stamp,
+neither did she like them of the stamp of Mr. Carter. She had heard
+of him, of his austerity, of his look, of his habits, and in her
+heart she believed him to be a Jesuit. Had she possessed full sway
+herself in the parish of Drumbarrow, no bodies should have been
+saved at such terrible peril to the souls of the whole parish. But
+this Mr Carter came with such recommendation--with such assurances
+of money given and to be given, of service done and to be
+done,--that there was no refusing him. And so the husband, more
+worldly wise than his wife, had invited the Jesuit to his parsonage.
+
+"You'll find, Aeneas, he'll have mass in his room in the morning
+instead of coming to family prayers," said the wife.
+
+"But what on earth shall we give him for dinner?" said the husband,
+whose soul at the present moment was among the flesh-pots, and
+indeed Mrs. Townsend had also turned over that question in her
+prudent mind.
+
+"He'll not eat meat in Lent, you may be sure," said Mrs. Townsend,
+remembering that that was the present period of the year.
+
+"And if he would there is none for him to eat," said Mr. Townsend,
+calling to mind the way in which the larder had of late been
+emptied.
+
+Protestant clergymen in Ireland in those days had very frequently
+other reasons for fasting than those prescribed by ecclesiastical
+canons. A well-nurtured lady, the wife of a parish rector in the
+county Cork, showed me her larder one day about that time. It
+contained two large loaves of bread, and a pan full of stuff which I
+should have called paste, but which she called porridge. It was all
+that she had for herself, her husband, her children, and her
+charity. Her servants had left her before she came to that pass. And
+she was a well-nurtured, handsome, educated woman, born to such
+comforts as you and I enjoy every day,--oh, my reader! perhaps
+without much giving of thanks for them. Poor lady! the struggle was
+too much for her, and she died under it.
+
+Mr. Townsend was, as I have said, the very opposite to Mr. Carter,
+but he also was a man who could do without the comforts of life, if
+the comforts of life did not come readily in his way. He liked his
+glass of whisky punch dearly, and had an idea that it was good for
+him. Not caring much about personal debts, he would go in debt for
+whisky. But if the whisky and credit were at an end, the loss did
+not make him miserable. He was a man with a large appetite, and who
+took great advantage of a good dinner when it was before him, nay,
+he would go a long distance to insure a good dinner; but,
+nevertheless, he would leave himself without the means of getting a
+mutton chop, and then not be unhappy. Now Mr. Carter would have been
+very unhappy had he been left without his superfine long black coat.
+
+In tendering his invitation to Mr. Carter, Mr. Townsend had
+explained that with him the res angusta domi, which was always a
+prevailing disease, had been heightened by the circumstances of the
+time; but that of such crust and cup as he had, his brother English
+clergyman would be made most welcome to partake. In answer to this,
+Mr. Carter had explained that in these days good men thought but
+little of crusts and cups, and that as regarded himself, nature had
+so made him that he had but few concupiscences of that sort. And
+then, all this having been so far explained and settled, Mr. Carter
+came.
+
+The first day the two clergymen spent together at Berryhill, and
+found plenty to employ them. They were now like enough to be in want
+of funds at that Berryhill soup-kitchen, seeing that the great
+fount of supplies, the house, namely, of Castle Richmond, would soon
+have stopped running altogether. And Mr. Carter was ready to provide
+funds to some moderate extent if all his questions were answered
+satisfactorily. "There was to be no making of Protestants," he said,
+"by giving away of soup purchased with his money." Mr. Townsend
+thought that this might have been spared him. "I regret to say,"
+replied he, with some touch of sarcasm, "that we have no time for
+that now." "And so better," said Mr. Carter, with a sarcasm of a
+blunter sort. "So better. Let us not clog our alms with impossible
+conditions which will only create falsehood." "Any conditions are
+out of the question when one has to feed a whole parish," answered
+Mr. Townsend.
+
+And then Mr Carter would teach them how to boil their yellow meal,
+on which subject he had a theory totally opposite to the practice of
+the woman employed at the soup-kitchen. "Av we war to hocus it that,
+yer riverence," said Mrs. Daly, turning to Mr. Townsend, "the
+crathurs couldn't ate a bit of it; it wouldn't bile at all, at all,
+not like that."
+
+"Try it, woman," said Mr. Carter, when he had uttered his receipt
+oracularly for the third time.
+
+"'Deed, an' I won't," said Mrs. Daly, whose presence there was
+pretty nearly a labour of love, and who was therefore independent.
+"It'd be a sin an' a shame to spile Christian vittels in them times,
+an' I won't do it." And then there was some hard work that day; and
+though Mr. Townsend kept his temper with his visitor, seeing that he
+had much to get and nothing to give, he did not on this occasion
+learn to alter his general opinion of his brethren of the English
+High Church.
+
+And then, when they got home, very hungry after their toil, Mr.
+Townsend made another apology for the poorness of his table. "I am
+almost ashamed," said he, "to ask an English gentleman to sit down
+to such a dinner as Mrs. Townsend will put before you."
+
+"And indeed then it isn't much," said Mrs. Townsend; "just a bit of
+fish I found going the road."
+
+"My dear madam, anything will suffice," said Mr. Carter, somewhat
+pretentiously. And anything would have sufficed. Had they put before
+him a mess of that paste of which I have spoken he would have ate it
+and said nothing,--ate enough of it at least to sustain him till the
+morrow.
+
+But things had not come to so bad a pass as this at Drumbarrow
+parsonage; and, indeed, that day fortune had been propitious;
+fortune which ever favours the daring. Mrs. Townsend, knowing that
+she had really nothing in the house, had sent Jerry to waylay the
+Lent fishmonger, who twice a week was known to make his way from
+Kanturk to Mallow with a donkey and panniers, and Jerry had returned
+with a prize.
+
+And now they sat down to dinner, and lo and behold, to the great
+surprise of Mr. Carter, and perhaps also to the surprise of the
+host, a magnificent turbot smoked upon the board. The fins no doubt
+had been cut off to render possible the insertion of the animal into
+the largest of the Drumbarrow parsonage kitchen-pots,--an injury
+against which Mr. Townsend immediately exclaimed angrily. "My
+goodness, they have cut off the fins!" said he, holding up both
+hands in deep dismay. According to his philosophy, if he did have a
+turbot, why should he not have it with all its perfections about
+it--fins and all?
+
+"My dear Aeneas!" said Mrs. Townsend, looking at him with that agony
+of domestic distress which all wives so well know how to assume.
+
+Mr. Carter said nothing. He said not a word, but he thought much.
+This then was their pretended poorness of living; with all their
+mock humility, these false Irishmen could not resist the opportunity
+of showing off before the English stranger, and of putting on their
+table before him a dish which an English dean could afford only on
+gala days. And then this clergyman, who was so loudly anxious for
+the poor, could not repress the sorrow of his heart because the rich
+delicacy was somewhat marred in the cooking. "It was too bad,"
+thought Mr. Carter to himself, "too bad."
+
+"None, thank you," said he, drawing himself up with gloomy
+reprobation of countenance. "I will not take any fish, I am much
+obliged to you."
+
+Then the face of Mrs. Townsend was one on which neither Christian
+nor heathen could have looked without horror and grief. What, the
+man whom in her heart she believed to be a Jesuit, and for whom
+nevertheless, Jesuit though he was, she had condescended to cater
+with all her woman's wit!--this man, I say, would not eat fish in
+Lent! And it was horrible to her warm Irish heart to think that
+after that fish now upon the table there was nothing to come but two
+or three square inches of cold bacon. Not eat turbot in Lent! Had he
+been one of her own sort she might have given him credit for true
+antagonism to popery; but every inch of his coat gave the lie to
+such a supposition as that.
+
+"Do take a bit," said Mr. Townsend, hospitably. "The fins should not
+have been cut off, otherwise I never saw a finer fish in my life."
+
+"None, I am very much obliged to you," said Mr. Carter, with
+sternest reprobation of feature.
+
+It was too much for Mrs. Townsend. "Oh, Aeneas," said she, "what are
+we to do?" Mr. Townsend merely shrugged his shoulders, while he
+helped himself. His feelings were less acute, perhaps, than those of
+his wife, and he, no doubt, was much more hungry. Mr. Carter the
+while sat by, saying nothing, but looking daggers. He also was
+hungry, but under such circumstances he would rather starve than
+eat.
+
+"Don't you ever eat fish, Mr. Carter?" said Mr. Townsend, proceeding
+to help himself for a second time, and poking about round the edges
+of the delicate creature before him for some relics of the glutinous
+morsels which he loved so well. He was not, however, enjoying it as
+he should have done, for seeing that his guest ate none, and that
+his wife's appetite was thoroughly marred, he was alone in his
+occupation. No one but a glutton could have feasted well under such
+circumstances, and Mr. Townsend was not a glutton.
+
+"Thank you, I will eat none to-day," said Mr. Carter, sitting bolt
+upright, and fixing his keen gray eyes on the wall opposite.
+
+"Then you may take away, Biddy; I've done with it. But it's a
+thousand pities such a fish should have been so wasted."
+
+The female heart of Mrs. Townsend could stand these wrongs no
+longer, and with a tear in one corner of her eye, and a gleam of
+anger in the other, she at length spoke out. "I am sure then I don't
+know what you will eat, Mr. Carter, and I did think that all you
+English clergymen always ate fish in Lent,--and indeed nothing else;
+for indeed people do say that you are much the same as the papists
+in that respect."
+
+"Hush, my dear!" said Mr. Townsend.
+
+"Well, but I can't hush when there's nothing for the gentleman to
+eat."
+
+"My dear madam, such a matter does not signify in the least," said
+Mr. Carter, not unbending an inch.
+
+"But it does signify, it signifies a great deal; and so you'd know
+if you were a family man;"--"as you ought to be," Mrs. Townsend
+would have been delighted to add. "And I'm sure I sent Jerry five
+miles, and he was gone four hours to get that bit of fish from Paddy
+Magrath, as he stops always at Ballygibblin Gate; and indeed I
+thought myself so lucky, for I only gave Jerry one and sixpence. But
+they had an uncommon take of fish yesterday at Skibbereen, and--"
+
+"One and sixpence!" said Mr. Carter, now slightly relaxing his brow
+for the first time.
+
+"I'd have got it for one and three," said Mr. Townsend, upon whose
+mind an inkling of the truth was beginning to dawn.
+
+"Indeed and you wouldn't, Aeneas; and Jerry was forced to promise
+the man a glass of whisky the first time he comes this road, which
+he does sometimes. That fish weighed over nine pounds, every ounce
+of it."
+
+"Nine fiddlesticks," said Mr. Townsend.
+
+"I weighed it myself, Aeneas, with my own hands, and it was nine
+pounds four ounces before we were obliged to cut it, and as firm as
+a rock the flesh was."
+
+"For one and sixpence!" said Mr. Carter, relaxing still a little
+further, and condescending to look his hostess in the face.
+
+"Yes, for one and six, and now--"
+
+"I'm sure I'd have bought it for one and four, fins and all," said
+the parson, determined to interrupt his wife in her pathos.
+
+"I'm sure you would not then," said his wife, taking his assertion
+in earnest. "You could never market against Jerry in your life; I
+will say that for him."
+
+"If you will allow me to change my mind, I think I will have a
+little bit of it," said Mr. Carter, almost humbly.
+
+"By all means," said Mr. Townsend. "Biddy, bring that fish back. Now
+I think of it, I have not half dined myself yet."
+
+And then they all three forgot their ill humours, and enjoyed their
+dinner thoroughly,--in spite of the acknowledged fault as touching
+the lost fins of the animal.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVIII
+
+CONDEMNED
+
+
+
+
+
+I have said that Lord Desmond rode home from Hap House that day in a
+quieter mood and at a slower pace than that which had brought him
+thither, and in truth it was so. He had things to think of now much
+more serious than any that had filled his mind as he had cantered
+along, joyously hoping that after all he might have for his brother
+the man that he loved, and the owner of Castle Richmond also. This
+was now impossible; but he felt that he loved Owen better than ever
+he had done, and he was pledged to fight Owen's battle, let Owen be
+ever so poor.
+
+"And what does it signify after all?" he said to himself, as he rode
+along. "We shall all be poor together, and then we sha'n't mind it
+so much; and if I don't marry, Hap House itself will be something to
+add to the property;" and then he made up his mind that he could be
+happy enough, living at Desmond Court all his life, so long as he
+could have Owen Fitzgerald near him to make life palatable.
+
+That night he spoke to no one on the subject, at least to no one of
+his own accord. When they were alone his mother asked him where he
+had been; and when she learned that he had been at Hap House, she
+questioned him much as to what had passed between him and Owen; but
+he would tell her nothing, merely saying that Owen had spoken of
+Clara with his usual ecstasy of love, but declining to go into the
+subject at any length. The countess, however, gathered from him that
+he and Owen were on kindly terms together, and so far she felt
+satisfied.
+
+On the following morning he made up his mind "to have it out," as he
+called it, with Clara; but when the hour came his courage failed
+him: it was a difficult task--that which he was now to undertake--of
+explaining to her his wish that she should go back to her old lover,
+not because he was no longer poor, but, as it were in spite of his
+poverty, and as a reward to him for consenting to remain poor. As he
+had thought about it while riding home, it had seemed feasible
+enough. He would tell her how nobly Owen was going to behave to
+Herbert, and would put it to her whether, as he intended willingly
+to abandon the estate, he ought not to be put into possession of the
+wife. There was a romantic justice about this which he thought would
+touch Clara's heart. But on the following morning when he came to
+think what words he would use for making his little proposition, the
+picture did not seem to him to be so beautiful. If Clara really
+loved Herbert--and she had declared that she did twenty times
+over--it would be absurd to expect her to give him up merely because
+he was not a ruined man. But then, which did she love? His mother
+declared that she loved Owen. "That's the real question," said the
+earl to himself, as on the second morning he made up his mind that
+he would "have it out" with Clara without any further delay. He must
+be true to Owen; that was his first great duty at the present
+moment.
+
+"Clara, I want to talk to you," he said, breaking suddenly into the
+room where she usually sat alone o' mornings. "I was at Hap House
+the day before yesterday with Owen Fitzgerald, and to tell you the
+truth at once, we were talking about you the whole time we were
+there. And now what I want is, that something should be settled, so
+that we may all understand one another."
+
+These words he spoke to her quite abruptly. When he first said that
+he wished to speak to her, she had got up from her chair to welcome
+him, for she dearly loved to have him there. There was nothing she
+liked better than having him to herself when he was in a soft
+brotherly humour; and then she would interest herself about his
+horse, and his dogs, and his gun, and predict his life for him,
+sending him up as a peer to Parliament, and giving him a noble wife,
+and promising him that he should be such a Desmond as would redeem
+all the family from their distresses. But now as he rapidly brought
+out his words, she found that on this day her prophecies must regard
+herself chiefly.
+
+"Surely, Patrick, it is easy enough to understand me," she said.
+
+"Well, I don't know; I don't in the least mean to find fault with
+you."
+
+"I am glad of that, dearest," she said, laying her hand upon his
+arm.
+
+"But my mother says one thing, and you another, and Owen another;
+and I myself, I hardly know what to say."
+
+"Look here, Patrick, it is simply this: I became engaged to Herbert
+with my mother's sanction and yours; and now--"
+
+"Stop a moment," said the impetuous boy, "and do not pledge yourself
+to anything till you have heard me. I know that you are cut to the
+heart about Herbert Fitzgerald losing his property."
+
+"No, indeed; not at all cut to the heart; that is as regards
+myself."
+
+"I don't mean as regards yourself; I mean as regards him. I have
+heard you say over and over again that it is a piteous thing that he
+should be so treated. Have I not?"
+
+"Yes, I have said that, and I think so."
+
+"And I think that most of your great--great--great love for him, if
+you will, comes from that sort of feeling."
+
+"But, Patrick, it came long before."
+
+"Dear Clara, do listen to me, will you? You may at any rate do as
+much as that for me." And then Clara stood perfectly mute, looking
+into his handsome face as he continued to rattle out his words at
+her.
+
+"Now, if you please, Clara, you may have the means of giving back to
+him all his property, every shilling that he ever had, or expected
+to have. Owen Fitzgerald,--who certainly is the finest fellow that
+ever I came across in all my life, or ever shall, if I live to five
+hundred,--says that he will make over every acre of Castle Richmond
+back to his cousin Herbert if--" Oh, my lord, my lord, what a scheme
+is this you are concocting to entrap your sister! Owen Fitzgerald
+inserted no "if," as you are well aware! "If," he continued, with
+some little qualm of conscience, "if you will consent to be his
+wife."
+
+"Patrick!"
+
+"Listen, now listen. He thinks, and, Clara, by the heavens above me!
+I think also, that you did love him better than you ever loved
+Herbert Fitzgerald." Clara as she heard these words blushed ruby red
+up to her very hair, but she said never a word. "And I think, and he
+thinks, that you are bound now to Herbert by his misfortunes--that
+you feel that you cannot desert him because he has fallen so low. By
+George, Clara, I am proud of you for sticking to him through thick
+and thin, now that he is down! But the matter will be very difficult
+if you have the means of giving back to him all that he has lost, as
+you have. Owen will be poor, but he is a prince among men. By
+heaven, Clara, if you will only say that he is your choice, Herbert
+shall have back all Castle Richmond! and I--I shall never marry, and
+you may give to the man that I love as my brother all that there is
+left to us of Desmond."
+
+There was something grand about the lad's eager tone of voice as he
+made his wild proposal, and something grand also about his heart. He
+meant what he said, foolish as he was either to mean or to say it.
+Clara burst into tears, and threw herself into his arms. "You don't
+understand," she said, through her sobs, "my own, own brother, you
+do not understand."
+
+"But, by Jove! I think I do understand. As sure as you are a living
+girl he will give back Castle Richmond to Herbert Fitzgerald."
+
+She recovered herself, and leaving her brother's arms, walked away
+to the window, and from thence looked down to that path beneath the
+elms which was the spot in the world which she thought of the
+oftenest, but as she gazed, there was no lack of loyalty in her
+heart to the man to whom she was betrothed. It seemed to her as
+though those childish days had been in another life, as though Owen
+had been her lover in another world,--a sweet, childish, innocent,
+happy world which she remembered well, but which was now dissevered
+from her by an impassable gulf. She thought of his few words of
+love,--so few that she remembered every word that he had then
+spoken, and thought of them with a singular mixture of pain and
+pleasure. And now she heard of his noble self-denial with a thrill
+which was in no degree enhanced by the fact that she, or even
+Herbert, was to be the gainer by it. She rejoiced at his nobility,
+merely because it was a joy to her to know that he was so noble. And
+yet all through this she was true to Herbert. Another work-a-day
+world had come upon her in her womanhood, and as that came she had
+learned to love a man of another stamp, with a love that was
+quieter, more subdued, and perhaps, as she thought, more enduring.
+Whatever might be Herbert's lot in life, that lot she would share.
+Her love for Owen should never be more to her than a dream.
+
+"Did he send you to me?" she said at last, without turning her face
+away from the window.
+
+"Yes, then, he did; he did send me to you, and he told me to say
+that as Owen of Hap House he loved you still. And I, I promised to
+do his bidding; and I promised, moreover, that as far as my good
+word could go with you, he should have it. And now you know it all;
+if you care for my pleasure in the matter you will take Owen, and
+let Herbert have his property. By Jove! if he is treated in that way
+he cannot complain."
+
+"Patrick," said she, returning to him and again laying her hand on
+him. "You must now take my message also. You must go to him and bid
+him come here that I may see him."
+
+"Who? Owen?"
+
+"Yes, Owen Fitzgerald."
+
+"Very well, I have no objection in life." And the earl thought that
+the difficulty was really about to be overcome. "And about my
+mother?"
+
+"I will tell mamma."
+
+"And what shall I say to Owen?"
+
+"Say nothing to him, but bid him come here. But wait, Patrick; yes,
+he must not misunderstand me; I can never, never, never marry him."
+
+"Clara!"
+
+"Never, never; it is impossible. Dear Patrick, I am so sorry to make
+you unhappy, and I love you so very dearly,--better than ever, I
+think, for speaking as you do now. But that can never be. Let him
+come here, however, and I myself will tell him all." At last,
+disgusted and unhappy though he was, the earl did accept the
+commission, and again on that afternoon rode across the fields to
+Hap House.
+
+"I will tell him nothing but that he is to come," said the earl to
+himself as he went thither. And he did tell Owen nothing else.
+Fitzgerald questioned him much, but learned but little from him. "By
+heavens, Owen," he said, "you must settle the matter between you,
+for I don't understand it. She has bid me ask you to come to her;
+and now you must fight your own battle." Fitzgerald of course said
+that he would obey, and so Lord Desmond left him.
+
+In the evening Clara told her mother. "Owen Fitzgerald is to be here
+to-morrow," she said.
+
+"Owen Fitzgerald; is he?" said the countess. She hardly knew how to
+bear herself, or how to interfere so as to assist her own object; or
+how not to interfere, lest she should mar it.
+
+"Yes, mamma. Patrick saw him the other day, and I think it is better
+that I should see him also."
+
+"Very well, my dear. But you must be aware, Clara, that you have
+been so very--I don't wish to say headstrong exactly--so very
+entetee about your own affairs, that I hardly know how to speak of
+them. If your brother is in your confidence I shall be satisfied."
+
+"He is in my confidence, and so may you be also, mamma, if you
+please."
+
+But the countess thought it better not to have any conversation
+forced upon her at that moment; and so she asked her daughter for no
+further show of confidence then. It would probably be as well that
+Owen should come and plead his own cause.
+
+And Owen did come. All that night and on the next morning the poor
+girl remained alone in a state of terrible doubt. She had sent for
+her old lover, thinking at the moment that no one could explain to
+him in language so clear as her own what was her fixed resolve. And
+she had too been so moved by the splendour of his offer, that she
+longed to tell him what she thought of it. The grandeur of that
+offer was enhanced tenfold in her mind by the fact that it had been
+so framed as to include her in this comparative poverty with which
+Owen himself was prepared to rest contented. He had known that she
+was not to be bought by wealth, and had given her credit for a
+nobility that was akin to his own.
+
+But yet, now that the moment was coming, how was she to talk to him?
+How was she to speak the words which would rob him of his hope, and
+tell him that he did not, could not, never could possess that one
+treasure which he desired more than houses and lands, or station and
+rank? Alas, alas! If it could have been otherwise! If it could have
+been otherwise! She also was in love with poverty;--but at any rate,
+no one could accuse her now of sacrificing a poor lover for a rich
+one. Herbert Fitzgerald would be poor enough.
+
+And then he came. They had hitherto met but once since that
+afternoon, now so long ago--that afternoon to which she looked back
+as to another former world--and that meeting had been in the very
+room in which she was now prepared to receive him. But her feelings
+towards him had been very different then. Then he had almost forced
+himself upon her, and for months previously she had heard nothing of
+him but what was evil. He had come complaining loudly, and her heart
+had been somewhat hardened against him. Now he was there at her
+bidding, and her heart and very soul were full of tenderness. She
+rose rapidly, and sat down again, and then again rose as she heard
+his footsteps; but when he entered the room she was standing in the
+middle of it.
+
+"Clara," he said, taking the hand which she mechanically held out,
+"I have come here now at your brother's request."
+
+Her name sounded so sweet upon his lips. No idea occurred to her
+that she ought to be angry with him for using it. Angry with him!
+Could it be possible that she should ever be angry with him--that
+she ever had been so?
+
+"Yes," she said. "Patrick said something to me which made me think
+that it would be better that we should meet."
+
+"Well, yes; it is better. If people are honest they had always
+better say to each other's faces that which they have to say."
+
+"I mean to be honest, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"Yes, I am sure you do; and so do I also. And if this is so, why
+cannot we say each to the other that which we have to say? My tale
+will be a very short one; but it will be true if it is short."
+
+"But, Mr. Fitzgerald--"
+
+"Well, Clara?"
+
+"Will you not sit down?" And she herself sat upon the sofa; and he
+drew a chair for himself near to her; but he was too impetuous to
+remain seated on it long. During the interview between them he was
+sometimes standing, and sometimes walking quickly about the room;
+and then for a moment he would sit down, or lean down over her on
+the sofa arm.
+
+"But, Mr. Fitzgerald, it is my tale that I wish you to hear."
+
+"Well; I will listen to it." But he did not listen; for before she
+had spoken a dozen words he had interrupted her, and poured out upon
+her his own wild plans and generous schemes. She, poor girl, had
+thought to tell him that she loved Herbert, and Herbert only--as a
+lover. But that if she could love him, him Owen, as a brother and a
+friend, that love she would so willingly give him. And then she
+would have gone on to say how impossible it would have been for
+Herbert, under any circumstances, to have availed himself of such
+generosity as that which had been offered. But her eloquence was all
+cut short in the bud. How could she speak with such a storm of
+impulse raging before her as that which was now strong within Owen
+Fitzgerald's bosom?
+
+He interrupted her before she had spoken a dozen words, in order
+that he might exhibit before her eyes the project with which his
+bosom was filled. This he did, standing for the most part before
+her, looking down upon her as she sat beneath him, with her eyes
+fixed upon the floor, while his were riveted on her down-turned
+face. She knew it all before--all this that he had to say to her, or
+she would hardly have understood it from his words, they were so
+rapid and vehement. And yet they were tender, too; spoken in a
+loving tone, and containing ever and anon assurances of respect, and
+a resolve to be guided now and for ever by her wishes,--even though
+those wishes should be utterly subversive of his happiness.
+
+"And now you know it all," he said, at last. "And as for my cousin's
+property, that is safe enough. No earthly consideration would induce
+me to put a hand upon that, seeing that by all justice it is his."
+But in this she hardly yet quite understood him. "Let him have what
+luck he may in other respects, he shall still be master of Castle
+Richmond. If it were that that you wanted--as I know it is not--
+that I cannot give you. I cannot tell you with what scorn I should
+regard myself if I were to take advantage of such an accident as
+this to rob any man of his estate."
+
+Her brother had been right, so Clara felt, when he declared that
+Owen Fitzgerald was the finest fellow that ever he had come across.
+She made another such declaration within her own heart, only with
+words that were more natural to her. He was the noblest gentleman of
+whom she had ever heard, or read, or thought.
+
+"But," continued Owen, "as I will not interfere with him in that
+which should be his, neither should he interfere with me in that
+which should be mine. Clara, the only estate that I claim, is your
+heart."
+
+And that estate she could not give him. On that at any rate she was
+fixed. She could not barter herself about from one to the other
+either as a make-weight or a counterpoise. All his pleading was in
+vain; all his generosity would fail in securing to him this one
+reward that he desired. And now she had to tell him so.
+
+"Your brother seems to think," he continued, "that you still--;" but
+now it was her turn to interrupt him.
+
+"Patrick is mistaken," she said, with her eyes still fixed upon the
+ground.
+
+"What. You will tell me, then, that I am utterly indifferent to
+you?"
+
+"No, no, no; I did not say so." And now she got up and took hold of
+his arm, and looked into his face imploringly. "I did not say so.
+But, oh, Mr. Fitzgerald, be kind to me, be forbearing with me, be
+good to me," and she almost embraced his arm as she appealed to him,
+with her eyes all swimming with tears.
+
+"Good to you!" he said. And a strong passion came upon him, urging
+him to throw his arm round her slender body, and press her to his
+bosom. Good to her! would he not protect her with his life's blood
+against all the world if she would only come to him? "Good to you,
+Clara! Can you not trust me that I will be good to you if you will
+let me?"
+
+"But not so, Owen." It was the first time she had ever called him by
+his name, and she blushed again as she remembered that it was so.
+"Not good, as you mean, for now I must trust to another for that
+goodness. Herbert must be my husband, Owen; but will not you be our
+friend?"
+
+"Herbert must be your husband!"
+
+"Yes, yes, yes. It is so. Do not look at me in that way, pray do
+not; what would you have me do? You would not have me false to my
+troth, and false to my own heart, because you are generous. Be
+generous to me--to me also."
+
+He turned away from her, and walked the whole length of the long
+room; away and back, before he answered her, and even then, when he
+had returned to her, he stood looking at her before he spoke. And
+she now looked full into his face, hoping, but yet fearing; hoping
+that he might yield to her; and fearing his terrible displeasure
+should he not yield.
+
+"Clara," he said; and he spoke solemnly, slowly, and in a mood
+unlike his own,--"I cannot as yet read your heart clearly; nor do I
+know whether you can quite so read it yourself."
+
+"I can, I can," she answered quickly; "and you shall know it
+all--all, if you wish."
+
+"I want to know but one thing. Whom is it that you love? And,
+Clara,"--and this he said interrupting her as she was about to
+speak--"I do not ask you to whom you are engaged. You have engaged
+yourself both to him and to me."
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald!"
+
+"I do not blame you, not in the least. But is it not so? as to that
+I will ask no question, and say nothing; only this, that so far we
+are equal. But now ask of your own heart, and then answer me. Whom
+is it then you love?"
+
+"Herbert Fitzgerald," she said. The words hardly formed themselves
+into a whisper, but nevertheless they were audible enough to him.
+
+"Then I have no further business here," he said, and turned about as
+though to leave the room.
+
+But she ran forward and stopped him, standing between him and the
+door. "Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald, do not leave me like that. Say one word
+of kindness to me before you go. Tell me that you forgive me for the
+injury I have done you."
+
+"Yes, I forgive you."
+
+"And is that all? Oh, I will love you so, if you will let me,--as
+your friend, as your sister; you shall be our dearest, best, and
+nearest friend. You do not know how good he is. Owen, will you not
+tell me that you will love me as a brother loves?"
+
+"No!" and the sternness of his face was such that it was dreadful to
+look on it. "I will tell you nothing that is false."
+
+"And would that be false?"
+
+"Yes, false as hell! What, sit by at his hearthstone and see you
+leaning on his bosom! Sleep under his roof while you were in his
+arms! No, Lady Clara, that would not be possible. That virtue, if it
+be virtue, I cannot possess."
+
+"And you must go from me in anger? If you knew what I am suffering
+you would not speak to me so cruelly."
+
+"Cruel! I would not wish to be cruel to you; certainly not now, for
+we shall not meet again; if ever, not for many years. I do not think
+that I have been cruel to you."
+
+"Then say one word of kindness before you go!"
+
+"A word of kindness! Well; what shall I say? Every night, as I have
+lain in my bed, I have said words of kindness to you, since--
+since--since longer than you will remember; since I first knew you
+as a child. Do you ever think of the day when you walked with me
+round by the bridge?"
+
+"It is bootless thinking of that now."
+
+"Bootless! yes, and words of kindness are bootless. Between you and
+me, such words should be full of love, or they would have no
+meaning. What can I say to you that shall be both kind and true?"
+
+"Bid God bless me before you leave me."
+
+"Well. I will say that. May God bless you, in this world and in the
+next! And now, Lady Clara Desmond, good-bye!" and he tendered to her
+his hand.
+
+She took it, and pressed it between both of hers, and looked up into
+his face, and stood so while the fast tears ran down her face. He
+must have been more or less than man had he not relented then. "And,
+Owen," she said, "dear Owen, may God in His mercy bless you also,
+and make you happy, and give you some one that you can love,
+and--and--teach you in your heart to forgive the injury I have done
+you." And then she stooped down her head and pressed her lips upon
+the hand which she held within her own.
+
+"Forgive you! Well--I do forgive you. Perhaps it may be right that
+we should both forgive; though I have not wittingly brought
+unhappiness upon you. But what there is to be forgiven on my side, I
+do forgive. And--and I hope that you may be happy." They were the
+last words that he spoke; and then leading her back to her seat, he
+placed her there, and without turning to look at her again, he left
+the room.
+
+He hurried down into the court, and called for his horse. As he
+stood there, when his foot was in the stirrup, and his hand on the
+animal's neck, Lord Desmond came up to him. "Goodbye, Desmond," he
+said. "It is all over; God knows when you and I may meet again." And
+without waiting for a word of reply he rode out under the porch, and
+putting spurs to his horse, galloped fast across the park. The earl,
+when he spoke of it afterwards to his mother, said that Owen's face
+had been as it were a thunder-cloud.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIX
+
+FOX-HUNTING IN SPINNY LANE
+
+
+
+
+
+I think it will be acknowledged that Mr. Prendergast had said no
+word throughout the conversation recorded in a late chapter as
+having taken place between him and Herbert Fitzgerald over their
+wine, which could lead Herbert to think it possible that he might
+yet recover his lost inheritance; but nevertheless during the whole
+of that evening he held in his pocket a letter, received by him only
+that afternoon, which did encourage him to think that such an event
+might at any rate be possible. And, indeed, he held in his pocket
+two letters, having a tendency to the same effect, but we shall have
+nothing now to say as to that letter from Mr. Somers of which we
+have spoken before.
+
+It must be understood that up to this time certain inquiries had
+been going on with reference to the life of Mr. Matthew Mollett, and
+that these inquiries were being made by agents employed by Mr.
+Prendergast. He had found that Mollett's identity with Talbot had
+been so fully proved as to make it, in his opinion, absolutely
+necessary that Herbert and his mother should openly give up Castle
+Richmond. But, nevertheless, without a hope, and in obedience solely
+to what he felt that prudence demanded in so momentous a matter, he
+did prosecute all manner of inquiries;--but prosecuted them
+altogether in vain. And now, O thou most acute of lawyers, this new
+twinkling spark of hope has come to thee from a source whence thou
+least expectedst it!
+
+Quod minime reris Graia pandetur ab urbe.
+
+And then, as soon as Herbert was gone from him, crossing one leg
+over the other as he sat in his easy chair, he took it from his
+pocket and read it for the third time. The signature at the end of
+it was very plain and legible, being that of a scholar no less
+accomplished than Mr. Abraham Mollett. This letter we will have
+entire, though it was not perhaps as short as it might have been. It
+ran as follows:--
+
+"45 Tabernacle row London April--1847.
+
+"RESPECTIT SIR--
+
+"In hall them doings about the Fitsjerrals at Carsal Richmon I
+halways felt the most profound respict for you because you wanted to
+do the thing as was rite wich was what I halways wanted to myself
+only coodent becase of the guvnor. 'Let the right un win, guvnor,'
+said I, hover hand hover again; but no, he woodent. And what cood
+the likes of me do then seeing as ow I was obligated by the forth
+comanment to honor my father and mother, wich however if it wasent
+that she was ded leving me a horphand there woodent av been none of
+this trobbel. If she ad livd Mr. Pindargrasp Ide av been brot hup
+honest, and thats what I weps for. But she dide and my guvnor why
+hes been a gitten the rong side of the post hever sins that
+hunfortunate day. Praps you knows Mr. Pindargrasp what it is to lose
+a mother in your herly hinfantsey. But I was at the guvnor hovers
+and hovers agin, but hall of no yuse. 'He as stumpt hoff with my
+missus and now he shall stump hup the reddy.' Them was my guvnors
+hown words halways. Well, Mr. Pindargrasp; what does I do. It warnt
+no good my talking to him he was for going so confounedly the rong
+side of the post. But I new as how Appy ouse Fitsjerral was the orse
+as ort to win. Leestways I thawt I new it, and so you thawt too Mr.
+Pindargrasp only we was both running the rong cent. But what did I
+do when I was so confounedly disgusted by my guvnor ankring after
+the baronnites money wich it wasn't rite nor yet onest. Why I went
+meself to Appy ouse as you noes Mr. Pindargrasp, and was the first
+to tel the Appy ouse gent hall about it. But what dos he do. Hoh,
+Mr. Pindargrasp, I shal never forgit that faitel day and only he got
+me hunewairs by the scruf of the nek Im has good a man as he hevery
+day of the week. But you was ther Mr. Pindargrasp and noes wat I got
+for befrindin the Appy ouse side wich was agin the guvnor and he as
+brot me to the loest pich of distress in the way of rino seein the
+guvnor as cut of my halowence becase I wint agin his hinterest.
+
+"And now Mr. Pindargrasp I ave a terrible secret to hunraffel wich
+will put the sadel on the rite orse at last and as I does hall this
+agin my own guvnor wich of corse I love derely I do hope Mr.
+Pindargrasp you wont see me haltoogether left in the lerch. A litel
+something to go on with at furst wood be very agrebbel for indeed
+Mr. Pindargrasp its uncommon low water with your umbel servant at
+this presant moment. And now wat I has to say is this--Lady Fits
+warnt niver my guvnors wife hat all becase why hed a wife alivin has
+I can pruv and will and shes alivin now number 7 Spinny lane
+Centbotollfs intheheast. Now I do call that noos worse a Jews high
+Mr. Pindargrasp and I opes youll see me honestly delt with sein as
+how I coms forward and tels it hall without any haskin and cood keep
+it all to miself and no one coodent be the wiser only I chews to do
+the thing as is rite.
+
+"You may fine out hall about it hall at number 7 Spinny lane and I
+advises you to go there immejat. Missus Mary Swan thats what she
+calls herself but her richeous name his Mollett--and why not seein
+who is er usban. So no more at presence but will come foward hany
+day to pruv hall this agin my guvnor becase he arnt doing the thing
+as is rite and I looks to you Mr. Pindargrasp to see as I gits
+someat ansum sein as ow I coms forward agin the Appy ouse gent and
+for the hother party oos side you is a bakkin.
+
+"I ham respictit Sir
+
+"Your umbel servant to command,
+
+"ABM. MOLLETT."
+
+I cannot say that Mr. Prendergast believed much of this terribly
+long epistle when he first received it, or felt himself imbued with
+any great hope that his old friend's wife might be restored to her
+name and rank, and his old friend's son to his estate and fortune.
+But nevertheless he knew that it was worth inquiry. That Aby Mollett
+had been kicked out of Hap House in a manner that must have been
+mortifying to his feelings, Mr. Prendergast had himself seen; and
+that he would, therefore, do anything in his power to injure Owen
+Fitzgerald, Mr. Prendergast was quite sure. That he was a viler
+wretch even than his father, Mr. Prendergast suspected,--having
+been led to think so by words which had fallen from Sir Thomas, and
+being further confirmed in that opinion by the letter now in his
+hand. He was not, therefore, led into any strong opinion that these
+new tidings were of value. And, indeed, he was prone to disbelieve
+them, because they ran counter to a conviction which had already
+been made in his own heart, and had been extensively acted on by
+him. Nevertheless he resolved that even Aby's letter deserved
+attention, and that it should receive that attention early on the
+following morning.
+
+And thus he had sat for the three hours after dinner, chatting
+comfortably with his young friend, and holding this letter in his
+pocket. Had he shown it to Herbert, or spoken of it, he would have
+utterly disturbed the equilibrium of the embryo law student, and
+rendered his entrance in Mr. Die's chambers absolutely futile. "Ten
+will not be too early for you," he had said. "Mr. Die is always in
+his room by that hour." Herbert had of course declared that ten
+would not be at all too early for him; and Mr. Prendergast had
+observed that after leaving Mr. Die's chambers, he himself would go
+on to the City. He might have said beyond the City, for his intended
+expedition was to Spinny lane, at St. Botolph's in the East When
+Herbert was gone he sat musing over his fire with Aby's letter still
+in his hand. A lawyer has always a sort of affection for a
+scoundrel,--such affection as a hunting man has for a fox. He loves
+to watch the skill and dodges of the animal, to study the wiles by
+which he lives, and to circumvent them by wiles of his own, still
+more wily. It is his glory to run the beast down; but then he would
+not for worlds run him down, except in conformity with certain laws,
+fixed by old custom for the guidance of men in such sports. And the
+two-legged vermin is adapted for pursuit as is the fox with four
+legs. He is an unclean animal, leaving a scent upon his trail, which
+the nose of your acute law hound can pick up over almost any ground.
+And the more wily the beast is, the longer he can run, the more
+trouble he can give in the pursuit, the longer he can stand up
+before a pack of legal hounds, the better does the forensic
+sportsman love and value him. There are foxes of so excellent a
+nature, so keen in their dodges, so perfect in their cunning, so
+skilful in evasion, that a sportsman cannot find it in his heart to
+push them to their destruction unless the field be very large so
+that many eyes are looking on. And the feeling is I think the same
+with lawyers.
+
+Mr. Prendergast had always felt a tenderness towards the Molletts,
+father and son,--a tenderness which would by no means have prevented
+him from sending them both to the halter had that been necessary,
+and had they put themselves so far in his power. Much as the
+sportsman loves the fox, it is a moment to him of keen enjoyment
+when he puts his heavy boot on the beast's body,--the expectant dogs
+standing round demanding their prey--and there both beheads and
+betails him. "A grand old dog," he says to those around him. "I know
+him well. It was he who took us that day from Poulnarer, through
+Castlecor, and right away to Drumcollogher." And then he throws the
+heavy carcase to the hungry hounds. And so could Mr. Prendergast
+have delivered up either of the Molletts to be devoured by the dogs
+of the law; but he did not the less love them tenderly while they
+were yet running.
+
+And so he sat with the letter in his hand, smiling to think that the
+father and son had come to grief among themselves; smiling also at
+the dodge by which, as he thought most probable, Aby Mollett was
+striving to injure the man who had kicked him, and raise a little
+money for his own private needs. There was too much earnestness in
+that prayer for cash to leave Mr. Prendergast in any doubt as to
+Aby's trust that money would be forthcoming. There must be something
+in the dodge, or Aby would not have had such trust.
+
+And the lawyer felt that he might, perhaps, be inclined to give some
+little assistance to poor Aby in the soreness of his needs. Foxes
+will not do well in any country which is not provided with their
+natural food. Rats they eat, and if rats be plentiful it is so far
+good. But one should not begrudge them occasional geese and turkeys,
+or even break one's heart if they like a lamb in season. A fox will
+always run well when he has come far from home seeking his
+breakfast.
+
+Poor Aby, when he had been so cruelly treated by the "gent of Appy
+ouse," whose side in the family dispute he had latterly been so
+anxious to take, had remained crouching for some hour or two in
+Owen's kitchen, absolutely mute. The servants there for a while felt
+sure that he was dying; but in their master's present mood they did
+not dare to go near him with any such tidings. And then when the
+hounds were gone, and the place was again quiet, Aby gradually
+roused himself, allowed them to wash the blood from his hands and
+face, to restore him to life by whisky and scraps of food, and
+gradually got himself into his car, and so back to the Kanturk
+Hotel, in South Main Street, Cork.
+
+But, alas, his state there was more wretched by far than it had been
+in the Hap House kitchen. That his father had fled was no more than
+he expected. Each had known that the other would now play some
+separate secret game. But not the less did he complain loudly when
+he heard that "his guvnor" had not paid the bill, and had left
+neither money nor message for him. How Fanny had scorned and
+upbraided him, and ordered Tom to turn him out of the house "neck
+and crop;" how he had squared at Tom, and ultimately had been turned
+out of the house "neck and crop,"--whatever that may mean--by
+Fanny's father, needs not here to be particularly narrated. With
+much suffering and many privations--such as foxes in their solitary
+wanderings so often know--he did find his way to London; and did,
+moreover, by means of such wiles as foxes have, find out something
+as to his "guvnor's" whereabouts, and some secrets also as to his
+"guvnor" which his "guvnor" would fain have kept to himself had it
+been possible. And then, also, he again found for himself a sort of
+home--or hole rather--in his old original gorse covert of London;
+somewhere among the Jews, we may surmise, from the name of the row
+from which he dated; and here, setting to work once more with his
+usual cunning industry,--for your fox is very industrious,--he once
+more attempted to build up a slender fortune by means of the
+"Fitsjerral" family. The grand days in which he could look for the
+hand of the fair Emmeline were all gone by; but still the property
+had been too good not to leave something for which he might grasp.
+Properly worked, by himself alone, as he said to himself, it might
+still yield him some comfortable returns, especially as he should be
+able to throw over that "confounded old guvnor of his."
+
+He remained at home the whole of the day after his letter was
+written, indeed for the next three days, thinking that Mr.
+Prendergast would come to him, or send for him; but Mr. Prendergast
+did neither the one nor the other. Mr. Prendergast took his advice
+instead, and putting himself into a Hansom cab, had himself driven
+to "Centbotollfs intheheast."
+
+Spinny Lane, St. Botolph's in the East, when at last it was found,
+was not exactly the sort of place that Mr. Prendergast had expected.
+It must be known that he did not allow the cabman to drive him up to
+the very door indicated, nor even to the lane itself; but contented
+himself with leaving the cab at St. Botolph's church. The huntsman
+in looking after his game is as wily as the fox himself. Men do not
+talk at the covert side--or at any rate they ought not. And they
+should stand together discreetly at the non-running side. All manner
+of wiles and silences and discretions are necessary, though too
+often broken through by the uninstructed,--much to their own
+discomfort. And so in hunting his fox, Mr. Prendergast did not dash
+up loudly into the covert, but discreetly left his cab at the church
+of St. Botolph's.
+
+Spinny Lane, when at last found by intelligence given to him at the
+baker's,--never in such unknown regions ask a lad in the street, for
+he invariably will accompany you, talking of your whereabouts very
+loudly, so that people stare at you, and ask each other what can
+possibly be your business in those parts--Spinny Lane, I say, was
+not the sort of locality that he had expected. He knew the look of
+the half-protected, half-condemned Alsatias of the present-day
+rascals, and Spinny Lane did not at all bear their character. It was
+a street of small new tenements, built, as yet, only on one side of
+the way, with the pavement only one third finished, and the stones
+in the road as yet unbroken and untrodden. Of such streets there are
+thousands now round London. They are to be found in every suburb,
+creating wonder in all thoughtful minds as to who can be their tens
+of thousands of occupants. The houses are a little too good for
+artisans, too small and too silent to be the abode of various
+lodgers, and too mean for clerks who live on salaries. They are as
+dull-looking as Lethe itself, dull and silent, dingy and repulsive.
+But they are not discreditable in appearance, and never have that
+Mohawk look which by some unknown sympathy in bricks and mortar
+attaches itself to the residences of professional ruffians.
+
+Number seven he found to be as quiet and decent a house as any in
+the row, and having inspected it from a little distance he walked up
+briskly to the door, and rang the bell. He walked up briskly in
+order that his advance might not be seen; unless, indeed, as he
+began to think not impossible, Aby's statement was altogether a
+hoax.
+
+"Does a woman named Mrs. Mary Swan live here?" he asked of a
+decent-looking young woman of some seven or eight and twenty, who
+opened the door for him. She was decent looking, but poverty
+stricken and wan with work and care, and with that heaviness about
+her which perpetual sorrow always gives. Otherwise she would not
+have been ill featured; and even as it was she was feminine and soft
+in her gait and manner. "Does Mrs. Mary Swan live here?" asked Mr.
+Prendergast in a mild voice.
+
+She at once said Mrs. Mary Swan did live there; but she stood with
+the door in her hand by no means fully opened, as though she did not
+wish to ask him to enter; and yet there was nothing in her tone to
+repel him. Mr. Prendergast at once felt that he was on the right
+scent, and that it behoved him at any rate to make his way into that
+house; for if ever a modest-looking daughter was like an
+immodest-looking father, that young woman was like Mr. Mollett
+senior.
+
+"Then I will see her, if you please," said Mr. Prendergast, entering
+the passage without her invitation. Not that he pushed in with
+roughness, but she receded before the authority of his tone, and
+obeyed the command which she read in his eye. The poor young woman
+hesitated as though it had been her intention to declare that Mrs.
+Swan was not within; but if so, she had not strength to carry out
+her purpose, for in the next moment Mr. Prendergast found himself in
+the presence of the woman he had come to seek.
+
+"Mrs. Mary Swan?" said Mr. Prendergast, asking a question as to her
+identity.
+
+"Yes, sir, that is my name," said a sickly-looking elderly woman,
+rising from her chair.
+
+The room in which the two had been sitting was very poor; but
+nevertheless it was neat, and arranged with some attention to
+appearance. It was not carpeted, but there was a piece of drugget
+some three yards long spread before the fireplace. The wall had been
+papered from time to time with scraps of different coloured paper,
+as opportunity offered. The table on which the work of the two women
+was lying was very old and somewhat rickety, but it was of mahogany;
+and Mrs. Mary Swan herself was accommodated with a high-backed
+arm-chair, which gave some appearance of comfort to her position. It
+was now spring; but they had a small, very small fire in the small
+grate, on which a pot had been placed in hopes that it might be
+induced to boil. All these things did the eye of Mr. Prendergast
+take in; but the fact which his eye took in with its keenest glance
+was this,--that on the other side of the fire to that on which sat
+Mrs. Mary Swan, there was a second arm-chair standing close over the
+fender, an ordinary old mahogany chair, in which it was evident that
+the younger woman had not been sitting. Her place had been close to
+the table-side, where her needles and thread were still lying. But
+the arm-chair was placed idly away from any accommodation for work,
+and had, as Mr. Prendergast thought, been recently filled by some
+idle person.
+
+The woman who rose from her chair as she declared herself to be Mary
+Swan was old and sickly looking, but nevertheless there was that
+about her which was prepossessing. Her face was thin and delicate
+and pale, and not hard and coarse; her voice was low, as a woman's
+should be, and her hands were white and small. Her clothes, though
+very poor, were neat, and worn as a poor lady might have worn them.
+Though there was in her face an aspect almost of terror as she owned
+to her name in the stranger's presence, yet there was also about her
+a certain amount of female dignity, which made Mr. Prendergast feel
+that it behoved him to treat her not only with gentleness, but also
+with respect.
+
+"I want to say a few words to you," said he, "in consequence of a
+letter I have received; perhaps you will allow me to sit down for a
+minute or two."
+
+"Certainly, sir, certainly. This is my daughter, Mary Swan; do you
+wish that she should leave the room, sir?" And Mary Swan, as her
+mother spoke, got up and prepared to depart quietly.
+
+"By no means, by no means," said Mr. Prendergast, putting his hand
+out so as to detain her. "I would much rather that she should
+remain, as it may be very likely that she may assist me in my
+inquiries. You will know who I am, no doubt, when I mention my name;
+Mr. Mollett will have mentioned me to you--I am Mr. Prendergast."
+
+"No, sir, he never did," said Mrs. Swan.
+
+"Oh!" said Mr. Prendergast, having ascertained that Mr. Mollett was
+at any rate well known at No. 7, Spinny Lane. "I thought that he
+might probably have done so. He is at home at present, I believe?"
+
+"Sir?" said Mary Swan senior.
+
+"Your father is at home, I believe?" said Mr. Prendergast, turning
+to the younger woman.
+
+"Sir?" said Mary Swan junior. It was clear at any rate that the
+women were not practised liars, for they could not bring themselves
+on the spur of the moment to deny that he was in the house.
+
+Mr. Prendergast did not wish to be confronted at present with
+Matthew Mollett. Such a step might or might not be desirable before
+the termination of the interview; but at the present moment he
+thought that he might probably learn more from the two women as they
+were than he would do if Mollett were with them.
+
+It had been acknowledged to him that Mollett was living in that
+house, that he was now at home, and also that the younger woman
+present before him was the child of Mollett and of Mary Swan the
+elder. That the young woman was older than Herbert Fitzgerald, and
+that therefore the connection between Mollett and her mother must
+have been prior to that marriage down in Dorsetshire, he was sure;
+but then it might still be possible that there had been no marriage
+between Mollett and Mary Swan. If he could show that they had been
+man and wife when that child was born, then would his old friend Mr.
+Die lose his new pupil.
+
+"I have a letter in my pocket, Mrs. Swan, from Abraham Mollett--"
+Mr. Prendergast commenced, pulling out the letter in question.
+
+"He is nothing to me, sir," said the woman, almost in a tone of
+anger. "I know nothing whatever about him."
+
+"So I should have supposed from the respectability of your
+appearance, if I may be allowed to say so."
+
+"Nothing at all, sir; and as for that, we do try to keep ourselves
+respectable. But this is a very hard world for some people to live
+in. It has been very hard to me and this poor girl here."
+
+"It is a hard world to some people, and to some honest people,
+too,--which is harder still."
+
+"We've always tried to be honest," said Mary Swan the elder.
+
+"I am sure you have; and permit me to say, madam, that you will find
+it at the last to be the best policy;--at the last, even as far as
+this world is concerned. But about this letter--I can assure you
+that I have never thought of identifying you with Abraham Mollett."
+
+"His mother was dead, sir, before ever I set eyes on him or his
+father; and though I tried to do my--" and then she stopped herself
+suddenly. Honesty might be the best policy, but, nevertheless, was
+it necessary that she should tell everything to this stranger?
+
+"Ah, yes; Abraham's mother was dead before you were married," said
+Mr. Prendergast, hunting his fox ever so craftily,--his fox whom he
+knew to be lying in ambush upstairs. It was of course possible that
+old Mollett should slip away out of the back door and over a wall.
+If foxes did not do those sort of things they would not be worth
+half the attention that is paid to them. But Mr. Prendergast was
+well on the scent; all that a sportsman wants is good scent. He
+would rather not have a view till the run comes to its close. "But,"
+continued Mr. Prendergast, "it is necessary that I should say a few
+words to you about this letter. Abraham's mother was, I suppose, not
+exactly an--an educated woman?"
+
+"I never saw her, sir."
+
+"She died when he was very young?"
+
+"Four years old, sir."
+
+"And her son hardly seems to have had much education?"
+
+"It was his own fault, sir; I sent him to school when he came to me,
+though, goodness knows, sir, I was short enough of means of doing
+so. He had better opportunities than my own daughter there, and
+though I say it myself, who ought not to say it, she is a good
+scholar."
+
+"I'm sure she is,--and a very good young woman too, if I can judge
+by her appearance. But about this letter. I am afraid your husband
+has not been so particular in his way of living as he should have
+been."
+
+"What could I do, sir? a poor weak woman!"
+
+"Nothing; what you could do, I'm sure you did do."
+
+"I've always kept a house over my head, though it's very humble, as
+you see, sir. And he has had a morsel to eat and a cup to drink of
+when he has come here. It is not often that he has troubled me this
+many years past."
+
+"Mother," said Mary Swan the younger, "the gentleman won't care to
+know about, about all that between you and father."
+
+"Ah, but it is just what I do care to know."
+
+"But, sir, father perhaps mightn't choose it."
+
+The obedience of women to men--to those men to whom they are legally
+bound--is, I think, the most remarkable trait in human nature.
+Nothing equals it but the instinctive loyalty of a dog. Of course we
+hear of gray mares, and of garments worn by the wrong persons.
+Xanthippe doubtless did live, and the character from time to time is
+repeated; but the rule, I think, is as I have said.
+
+"Mrs. Swan," said Mr. Prendergast, "I should think myself dishonest
+were I to worm your secrets out of you, seeing that you are yourself
+so truthful and so respectable." Perhaps it may be thought that Mr.
+Prendergast was a little late in looking at the matter in this
+light. "But it behoves me to learn much of the early history of your
+husband, who is now living with you here, and whose name, as I take
+it, is not Swan, but Mollett. Your maiden name probably was Swan?"
+
+"But I was honestly married, sir, in the parish church at Putney,
+and that young woman was honestly born."
+
+"I am quite sure of it. I have never doubted it. But as I was
+saying, I have come here for information about your husband, and I
+do not like to ask you questions off your guard,"--oh, Mr.
+Prendergast!--"and therefore I think it right to tell you, that
+neither I nor those for whom I am concerned have any wish to bear
+more heavily than we can help upon your husband, if he will only
+come forward with willingness to do that which we can make him do
+either willingly or unwillingly."
+
+"But what was it about Abraham's letter, sir?"
+
+"Well, it does not so much signify now."
+
+"It was he sent you here, was it, sir? How has he learned where we
+are, Mary?" and the poor woman turned to her daughter. "The truth
+is, sir, he has never known anything of us for these twenty years,
+nor we of him. I have not set eyes on him for more than twenty
+years,--not that I know of. And he never knew me by any other name
+than Swan, and when he was a child he took me for his aunt."
+
+"He hasn't known then that you and his father were husband and
+wife?"
+
+"I have always thought he didn't, sir. But how--"
+
+Then after all the young fox had not been so full of craft as the
+elder one, thought Mr. Prendergast to himself. But nevertheless, he
+still liked the old fox best. There are foxes that run so uncommonly
+short that you can never get a burst after them.
+
+"I suppose, Mrs. Swan," continued Mr. Prendergast, "that you have
+heard the name of Fitzgerald?"
+
+The poor woman sat silent and amazed, but after a moment the
+daughter answered him. "My mother, sir, would rather that you should
+ask her no questions."
+
+"But, my good girl, your mother, I suppose, would wish to protect
+your father, and she would not wish to answer these questions in a
+court of law."
+
+"Heaven forbid!" said the poor woman.
+
+"Your father has behaved very badly to an unfortunate lady whose
+friend I am, and on her behalf I must learn the truth."
+
+"He has behaved badly, sir, to a great many ladies," said Mrs. Swan,
+or Mrs. Mollett as we may now call her.
+
+"You are aware, are you not, that he went through a form of marriage
+with this lady many years ago?" said Mr. Prendergast, almost
+severely.
+
+"Let him answer for himself," said the true wife. "Mary, go
+upstairs, and ask your father to come down."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XL
+
+THE FOX IN HIS EARTH
+
+
+
+
+
+Mary Swan the younger hesitated a moment before she executed her
+mother's order, not saying anything, but looking doubtfully up into
+her mother's face. "Go, my dear," said the old woman, "and ask your
+father to come down. It is no use denying him."
+
+"None in the least," said Mr. Prendergast; and then the daughter
+went.
+
+For ten minutes the lawyer and the old woman sat alone, during which
+time the ear of the former was keenly alive to any steps that might
+be heard on the stairs or above head. Not that he would himself have
+taken any active measures to prevent Mr. Mollett's escape, had such
+an attempt been made. The woman could be a better witness for him
+than the man, and there would be no fear of her running.
+Nevertheless, he was anxious that Mollett should, of his own accord,
+come into his presence.
+
+"I am sorry to keep you so long waiting, sir," said Mrs. Swan.
+
+"It does not signify. I can easily understand that your husband
+should wish to reflect a little before he speaks to me. I can
+forgive that."
+
+"And, sir--"
+
+"Well, Mrs. Mollett?"
+
+"Are you going to do anything to punish him, sir? If a poor woman
+may venture to speak a word, I would beg you on my bended knees to
+be merciful to him. If you would forgive him now I think he would
+live honest, and be sorry for what he has done."
+
+"He has worked terrible evil," said Mr. Prendergast solemnly. "Do
+you know that he has harassed a poor gentleman into his grave?"
+
+"Heaven be merciful to him!" said the poor woman. "But, sir, was not
+that his son? Was it not Abraham Mollett who did that? Oh, sir, if
+you will let a poor wife speak, it is he that has been worse than
+his father."
+
+Before Mr. Prendergast had made up his mind how he would answer her,
+he heard the sound of footsteps slowly descending upon the stairs.
+They were those of a person who stepped heavily and feebly, and it
+was still a minute before the door was opened.
+
+"Sir," said the woman. "Sir," and as she spoke she looked eagerly
+into his face--"Forgive us our trespasses as we forgive them that
+trespass against us. We should all remember that, sir."
+
+"True, Mrs. Mollett, quite true," and Mr. Prendergast rose from his
+chair as the door opened.
+
+It will be remembered that Mr. Prendergast and Matthew Mollett had
+met once before, in the room usually occupied by Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald. On that occasion Mr. Mollett had at any rate entered the
+chamber with some of the prestige of power about him. He had come to
+Castle Richmond as the man having the whip hand; and though his
+courage had certainly fallen somewhat before he left it,
+nevertheless he had not been so beaten down but what he was able to
+say a word or two for himself. He had been well in health and decent
+in appearance, and even as he left the room had hardly realized the
+absolute ruin which had fallen upon him.
+
+But now he looked as though he had realized it with sufficient
+clearness. He was lean and sick and pale, and seemed to be ten years
+older than when Mr. Prendergast had last seen him. He was wrapped in
+an old dressing-gown, and had a night-cap on his head, and coughed
+violently before he got himself into his chair. It is hard for any
+tame domestic animal to know through what fire and water a poor fox
+is driven as it is hunted from hole to hole and covert to covert. It
+is a wonderful fact, but no less a fact, that no men work so hard
+and work for so little pay as scoundrels who strive to live without
+any work at all, and to feed on the sweat of other men's brows. Poor
+Matthew Mollett had suffered dire misfortune, had encountered very
+hard lines, betwixt that day on which he stole away from the Kanturk
+Hotel in South Main Street, Cork, and that other day on which he
+presented himself, cold and hungry and almost sick to death, at the
+door of his wife's house in Spinny Lane, St. Botolph's in the East.
+
+He never showed himself there unless when hard pressed indeed, and
+then he would skulk in, seeking for shelter and food, and pleading
+with bated voice his husband right to assistance and comfort. Nor
+was his plea ever denied him.
+
+On this occasion he had arrived in very bad plight indeed: he had
+brought away from Cork nothing but what he could carry on his body,
+and had been forced to pawn what he could pawn in order that he
+might subsist. And then he had been taken with ague, and with the
+fit strong on him had crawled away to Spinny Lane, and had there
+been nursed by the mother and daughter whom he had ill used,
+deserted, and betrayed. "When the devil was sick the devil a monk
+would be;" and now his wife, credulous as all women are in such
+matters, believed the devil's protestations. A time may perhaps come
+when even--But stop!--or I may chance to tread on the corns of
+orthodoxy. What I mean to insinuate is this; that it was on the
+cards that Mr. Mollett would now at last turn over a new leaf.
+
+"How do you do, Mr. Mollett?" said Mr. Prendergast. "I am sorry to
+see you looking so poorly."
+
+"Yes, sir. I am poorly enough certainly. I have been very ill since
+I last had the pleasure of seeing you, sir."
+
+"Ah, yes, that was at Castle Richmond; was it not? Well, you have
+done the best thing that a man can do; you have come home to your
+wife and family now that you are ill and require their attendance."
+
+Mr. Mollett looked up at him with a countenance full of unutterable
+woe and weakness. What was he to say on such a subject in such a
+company? There sat his wife and daughter, his veritable wife and
+true-born daughter, on whom he was now dependent, and in whose hands
+he lay, as a sick man does lie in the hands of women: could he deny
+them? And there sat the awful Mr. Prendergast, the representative of
+all that Fitzgerald interest which he had so wronged, and who up to
+this morning had at any rate believed the story with which he,
+Mollett, had pushed his fortunes in county Cork. Could he in his
+presence acknowledge that Lady Fitzgerald had never been his wife?
+It must be confessed that he was in a sore plight. And then remember
+his ague!
+
+"You feel yourself tolerably comfortable, I suppose, now that you
+are with your wife and daughter," continued Mr. Prendergast, most
+inhumanly.
+
+Mr. Mollett continued to look at him so piteously from beneath his
+nightcap. "I am better than I was, thank you, sir," said he.
+
+"There is nothing like the bosom of one's family for restoring one
+to health; is there, Mrs. Mollett;--or for keeping one in health?"
+
+"I wish you gentlemen would think so," said she, dryly.
+
+"As for me, I never was blessed with a wife. When I am sick I have
+to trust to hired attendance. In that respect I am not so fortunate
+as your husband; I am only an old bachelor."
+
+"Oh, ain't you, sir?" said Mrs. Mollett; "and perhaps it's best so.
+It ain't all married people that are the happiest."
+
+The daughter during this time was sitting intent on her work, not
+lifting her face from the shirt she was sewing. But an observer
+might have seen from her forehead and eye that she was not only
+listening to what was said, but thinking and meditating on the scene
+before her.
+
+"Well, Mr. Mollett," said Mr. Prendergast, "you at any rate are not
+an old bachelor." Mr. Mollett still looked piteously at him, but
+said nothing. It may be thought that in all this Mr. Prendergast was
+more cruel than necessary, but it must be remembered that it was
+incumbent on him to bring the poor wretch before him down absolutely
+on his marrow-bones. Mollett must be made to confess his sin, and
+own that this woman before him was his real wife; and the time for
+mercy had not commenced till that had been done.
+
+And then his daughter spoke, seeing how things were going with him.
+"Father," said she, "this gentleman has called because he has had a
+letter from Abraham Mollett: and he was speaking about what Abraham
+has been doing in Ireland."
+
+"Oh dear, oh dear!" said poor Mollett. "The unfortunate young man;
+that wretched, unfortunate young man! He will bring me to the grave
+at last--to the grave at last."
+
+"Come, Mr. Mollett," said Mr. Prendergast, now getting up and
+standing with his back to the fire, "I do not know that you and I
+need beat about the bush much longer. I suppose I may speak openly
+before these ladies as to what has been taking place in county
+Cork."
+
+"Sir!" said Mr. Mollett, with a look of deprecation about his mouth
+that ought to have moved the lawyer's heart.
+
+"I know nothing about it," said Mrs. Mollett, very stiffly.
+
+"Yes, mother, we do know something about it; and the gentleman may
+speak out if it so pleases him. It will be better, father, for you
+that he should do so."
+
+"Very well, my dear," said Mr. Mollett, in the lowest possible
+voice; "whatever the gentleman likes--only I do hope--" and he
+uttered a deep sigh, and gave no further expression to his hopes or
+wishes.
+
+"I presume, in the first place," began Mr. Prendergast, "that this
+lady here is your legal wife, and this younger lady your legitimate
+daughter? There is no doubt, I take it, as to that?"
+
+"Not--any--doubt--in the world, sir," said the Mrs. Mollett, who
+claimed to be so de jure. "I have got my marriage lines to show,
+sir. Abraham's mother was dead just six months before we came
+together; and then we were married just six months after that."
+
+"Well, Mr. Mollett; I suppose you do not wish to contradict that?"
+
+"He can't, sir, whether he wish it or not," said Mrs. Mollett.
+
+"Could you show me that--that marriage certificate?" asked Mr.
+Prendergast.
+
+Mrs. Mollett looked rather doubtful as to this. It may be, that much
+as she trusted in her husband's reform, she did not wish to let him
+know where she kept this important palladium of her rights.
+
+"It can be forthcoming, sir, whenever it may be wanted," said Mary
+Mollett the younger; and then Mr. Prendergast, seeing what was
+passing through the minds of the two women, did not press that
+matter any further.
+
+"But I should be glad to hear from your own lips, Mr. Mollett, that
+you acknowledge the marriage, which took place at--at Fulham, I
+think you said, ma'am?"
+
+"At Putney, sir; at Putney parish church, in the year of our Lord
+eighteen hundred and fourteen."
+
+"Ah, that was the year before Mr. Mollett went into Dorsetshire."
+
+"Yes, sir. He didn't stay with me long, not at that time. He went
+away and left me: and then all that happened, that you know of--
+down in Dorsetshire, as they told me. And afterwards when he went
+away on his keeping, leaving Aby behind, I took the child, and said
+that I was his aunt. There were reasons then; and I feared--But
+never mind about that, sir; for anything that I was wrong enough to
+say then to the contrary, I am his lawful wedded wife, and before my
+face he won't deny it. And then when he was sore pressed and in
+trouble he came back to me, and after that Mary here was born; and
+one other, a boy, who, God rest him, has gone from these troubles.
+And since that it is not often that he has been with me. But now,
+now that he is here, you should have pity on us, and give him
+another chance."
+
+But still Mr. Mollett had said nothing himself. He sat during all
+this time, wearily moving his head to and fro, as though the
+conversation were anything but comfortable to him. And, indeed, it
+cannot be presumed to have been very pleasant. He moved his head
+slowly and wearily to and fro; every now and then lifting up one
+hand weakly, as though deprecating any recurrence to circumstances
+so decidedly unpleasant. But Mr. Prendergast was determined that he
+should speak.
+
+"Mr. Mollett," said he, "I must beg you to say in so many words,
+whether the statement of this lady is correct or is incorrect. Do
+you acknowledge her for your lawful wife?"
+
+"He daren't deny me, sir," said the woman, who was, perhaps, a
+little too eager in the matter.
+
+"Father, why don't you behave like a man and speak?" said his
+daughter, now turning upon him. "You have done ill to all of us;--
+to so many; but now--"
+
+"And are you going to turn against me, Mary?" he whined out, almost
+crying.
+
+"Turn against you! no, I have never done that. But look at mother.
+Would you let that gentleman think that she is--what I won't name
+before him? Will you say that I am not your honest-born child? You
+have done very wickedly, and you must now make what amends is in
+your power. If you do not answer him here he will make you answer in
+some worse place than this."
+
+"What is it I am to say, sir?" he whined out again.
+
+"Is this lady here your legal wife?"
+
+"Yes, sir," said the poor man, whimpering.
+
+"And that marriage ceremony which you went through in Dorsetshire
+with Miss Wainwright was not a legal marriage?"
+
+"I suppose not, sir."
+
+"You were well aware at the time that you were committing bigamy?"
+
+"Sir!"
+
+"You knew, I say, that you were committing bigamy; that the child
+whom you were professing to marry would not become your wife through
+that ceremony. I say that you knew all this at the time? Come, Mr.
+Mollett, answer me, if you do not wish me to have you dragged out of
+this by a policeman and taken at once before a magistrate."
+
+"Oh, sir! be merciful to us; pray be merciful to us," said Mrs.
+Mollett, holding up her apron to her eyes.
+
+"Father, why don't you speak out plainly to the gentleman? He will
+forgive you, if you do that."
+
+"Am I to criminate myself, sir?" said Mr. Mollett, still in the
+humblest voice in the world, and hardly above his breath.
+
+After all, this fox had still some running left in him, Mr.
+Prendergast thought to himself. He was not even yet so thoroughly
+beaten but what he had a dodge or two remaining at his service. "Am
+I to criminate myself, sir?" he asked, as innocently as a child
+might ask whether or no she were to stand longer in the corner.
+
+"You may do as you like about that, Mr. Mollett," said the lawyer;
+"I am neither a magistrate nor a policeman; and at the present
+moment I am not acting even as a lawyer. I am the friend of a family
+whom you have misused and defrauded most outrageously. You killed
+the father of that family--"
+
+"Oh, gracious!" said Mrs. Mollett
+
+"Yes, madam, he has done so; and nearly broken the heart of that
+poor lady, and driven her son from the house which is his own. You
+have done all this in order that you might swindle them out of money
+for your vile indulgences, while you left your own wife and your own
+child to starve at home. In the whole course of my life I never came
+across so mean a scoundrel; and now you chaffer with me as to
+whether or no you shall criminate yourself! Scoundrel and villain as
+you are--a double-dyed scoundrel, still there are reasons why I
+shall not wish to have you gibbeted, as you deserve."
+
+"Oh, sir, he has done nothing that would come to that!" said the
+poor wife.
+
+"You had better let the gentleman finish," said the daughter. "He
+doesn't mean that father will be hung."
+
+"It would be too good for him," said Mr. Prendergast, who was now
+absolutely almost out of temper. "But I do not wish to be his
+executioner. For the peace of that family which you have so brutally
+plundered and ill-used, I shall remain quiet,--if I can attain my
+object without a public prosecution. But, remember, that I guarantee
+nothing to you. For aught I know you may be in gaol before the night
+is come. All I have to tell you is this, that if by obtaining a
+confession from you I am able to restore my friends to their
+property without a prosecution, I shall do so. Now you may answer me
+or not, as you like."
+
+"Trust him, father," said the daughter. "It will be best for you."
+
+"But I have told him everything," said Mollett. "What more does he
+want of me?"
+
+"I want you to give your written acknowledgment that when you went
+through that ceremony of marriage with Miss Wainwright in
+Dorsetshire, you committed bigamy, and that you knew at that time
+that you were doing so."
+
+Mr. Mollett, as a matter of course, gave him the written document,
+and then Mr. Prendergast took his leave, bowing graciously to the
+two women, and not deigning to cast his eyes again on the abject
+wretch who crouched by the fire.
+
+"Don't be hard on a poor creature who has fallen so low," said Mrs.
+Mollett as he left the room. But Mary Mollett junior followed him to
+the door and opened it for him. "Sir," she said, addressing him with
+some hesitation as he was preparing to depart.
+
+"Well, Miss Mollett; if I could do anything for you it would gratify
+me, for I sincerely feel for you,--both for you and for your
+mother."
+
+"Thank you, sir; I don't know that there is anything you can do for
+us--except to spare him. The thief on the cross was forgiven, sir."
+
+"But the thief on the cross repented."
+
+"And who shall say that he does not repent? You cannot tell of his
+heart by scripture word, as you can of that other one. But our Lord
+has taught us that it is good to forgive the worst of sinners. Tell
+that poor lady to think of this when she remembers him in her
+prayers."
+
+"I will, Miss Mollett; indeed, indeed I will;" and then as he left
+her he gave her his hand in token of respect. And so he walked away
+out of Spinny Lane.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLI
+
+THE LOBBY OF THE HOUSE OF COMMONS
+
+
+
+
+
+Mr. Prendergast as he walked out of Spinny Lane, and back to St.
+Botolph's church, and as he returned thence again to Bloomsbury
+Square in his cab, had a good deal of which to think. In the first
+place it must be explained that he was not altogether self-satisfied
+with the manner in which things had gone. That he would have made
+almost any sacrifice to recover the property for Herbert Fitzgerald,
+is certainly true; and it is as true that he would have omitted no
+possible effort to discover all that which he had now discovered,
+almost without necessity for any effort. But nevertheless he was not
+altogether pleased; he had made up his mind a month or two ago that
+Lady Fitzgerald was not the lawful wife of her husband; and had come
+to this conclusion on, as he still thought, sufficient evidence. But
+now he was proved to have been wrong; his character for shrewdness
+and discernment would be damaged, and his great ally and chum Mr.
+Die, the Chancery barrister, would be down on him with unmitigated
+sarcasm. A man who has been right so frequently as Mr. Prendergast,
+does not like to find that he is ever in the wrong. And then, had
+his decision not have been sudden, might not the life of that old
+baronet have been saved?
+
+Mr. Prendergast could not help feeling this in some degree as he
+drove away to Bloomsbury Square; but nevertheless he had also the
+feeling of having achieved a great triumph. It was with him as with
+a man who has made a fortune when he has declared to his friends
+that he should infallibly be ruined. It piques him to think how
+wrong he has been in his prophecy; but still it is very pleasant to
+have made one's fortune.
+
+When he found himself at the top of Chancery Lane in Holborn, he
+stopped his cab and got out of it. He had by that time made up his
+mind as to what he would do; so he walked briskly down to Stone
+Buildings, and nodding to the old clerk, with whom he was very
+intimate, asked if he could see Mr. Die. It was his second visit to
+those chambers that morning, seeing that he had been there early in
+the day, introducing Herbert to his new Gamaliel. "Yes, Mr. Die is
+in," said the clerk, smiling; and so Mr. Prendergast passed on into
+the well-known dingy temple of the Chancery god himself.
+
+There he remained for full an hour, a message in the mean while
+having been sent out to Herbert Fitzgerald, begging him not to leave
+the chambers till he should have seen Mr. Die; "and your friend Mr.
+Prendergast is with him," said the clerk. "A very nice gentleman is
+Mr. Prendergast, uncommon clever too; but it seems to me that he
+never can hold his own when he comes across our Mr. Die."
+
+At the end of the hour Herbert was summoned into the sanctum, and
+there he found Mr. Die sitting in his accustomed chair, with his
+body much bent, nursing the calf of his leg, which was always
+enveloped in a black, well-fitting close pantaloon, and smiling very
+blandly. Mr. Prendergast had in his countenance not quite so sweet
+an aspect. Mr. Die had repeated to him, perhaps once too often, a
+very well-known motto of his; one by the aid of which he professed
+to have steered himself safely through the shoals of life--himself
+and perhaps some others. It was a motto which he would have loved to
+see inscribed over the great gates of the noble inn to which he
+belonged; and which, indeed, a few years since might have been
+inscribed there with much justice. "Festina lente," Mr. Die would
+say to all those who came to him in any sort of hurry. And then when
+men accused him of being dilatory by premeditation, he would say no,
+he had always recommended despatch. "Festina," he would say;
+"festina" by all means; but "festina lente." The doctrine had at any
+rate thriven with the teacher, for Mr. Die had amassed a large
+fortune.
+
+Herbert at once saw that Mr. Prendergast was a little fluttered.
+Judging from what he had seen of the lawyer in Ireland, he would
+have said that it was impossible to flutter Mr. Prendergast; but in
+truth greatness is great only till it encounters greater greatness.
+Mars and Apollo are terrible and magnificent gods till one is
+enabled to see them seated at the foot of Jove's great throne. That
+Apollo, Mr. Prendergast, though greatly in favour with the old
+Chancery Jupiter, had now been reminded that he had also on this
+occasion driven his team too fast, and been nearly as indiscreet in
+his own rash offering.
+
+"We are very sorry to keep you waiting here, Mr. Fitzgerald," said
+Mr. Die, giving his hand to the young man without, however, rising
+from his chair; "especially sorry, seeing that it is your first day
+in harness. But your friend Mr. Prendergast thinks it as well that
+we should talk over together a piece of business which does not seem
+as yet to be quite settled."
+
+Herbert of course declared that he had been in no hurry to go away;
+he was, he said, quite ready to talk over anything; but to his mind
+at that moment nothing occurred more momentous than the nature of
+the agreement between himself and Mr. Die. There was an honorarium
+which it was presumed Mr. Die would expect, and which Herbert
+Fitzgerald had ready for the occasion.
+
+"I hardly know how to describe what has taken place this morning
+since I saw you," said Mr. Prendergast, whose features told plainly
+that something more important than the honorarium was now on the
+tapis.
+
+"What has taken place?" said Herbert, whose mind now flew off to
+Castle Richmond.
+
+"Gently, gently," said Mr. Die; "in the whole course of my legal
+experience,--and that now has been a very long experience,--I have
+never come across so,--so singular a family history as this of
+yours, Mr. Fitzgerald. When our friend Mr. Prendergast here, on his
+return from Ireland, first told me the whole of it, I was inclined
+to think that he had formed a right and just decision--"
+
+"There can be no doubt about that," said Herbert.
+
+"Stop a moment, my dear sir; wait half a moment--a just decision, I
+say--regarding the evidence of the facts as conclusive. But I was
+not quite so certain that he might not have been a little--premature
+perhaps may be too strong a word--a little too assured in taking
+those facts as proved."
+
+"But they were proved," said Herbert.
+
+"I shall always maintain that there was ample ground to induce me to
+recommend your poor father so to regard them," said Mr. Prendergast,
+stoutly. "You must remember that those men would instantly have been
+at work on the other side; indeed, one of them did attempt it."
+
+"Without any signal success, I believe," said Mr. Die.
+
+"My father thought you were quite right, Mr. Prendergast," said
+Herbert, with a tear forming in his eye; "and though it may be
+possible that the affair hurried him to his death, there was no
+alternative but that he should know the whole." At this Mr.
+Prendergast seemed to wince as he sat in his chair. "And I am sure
+of this," continued Herbert, "that had he been left to the villanies
+of those two men, his last days would have been much less
+comfortable than they were, My mother feels that quite as strongly
+as I do." And then Mr. Prendergast looked as though he were somewhat
+reassured.
+
+"It was a difficult crisis in which to act," said Mr. Prendergast,
+"and I can only say that I did so to the best of my poor judgment."
+
+"It was a difficult crisis in which to act," said Mr. Die,
+assenting.
+
+"But why is all this brought up now?" asked Herbert.
+
+"Festina lente," said Mr. Die; "lente, lente, lente; always lente.
+The more haste we make in trying to understand each other, with the
+less speed shall we arrive at that object."
+
+"What is it, Mr. Prendergast?" again demanded Herbert, who was now
+too greatly excited to care much for the Chancery wisdom of the
+great barrister. "Has anything new turned up about--about those
+Molletts?"
+
+"Yes, Herbert, something has turned up--"
+
+"Remember, Prendergast, that your evidence is again incomplete."
+
+"Upon my word, sir, I do not think it is: it would be sufficient for
+any intellectual jury in a Common Law court," said Mr. Prendergast,
+who sometimes, behind his back, gave to Mr. Die the surname of
+Cunctator.
+
+"But juries in Common Law courts are not always intelligent. And you
+may be sure, Prendergast, that any gentleman taking up the case on
+the other side would have as much to say for his client as your
+counsel would have for yours. Remember, you have not even been to
+Putney yet."
+
+"Been to Putney!" said Herbert, who was becoming uneasy.
+
+"The onus probandi would lie with them," said Mr. Prendergast. "We
+take possession of that which is our own till it is proved to belong
+to others."
+
+"You have already abandoned the possession."
+
+"No; we have done nothing already: we have taken no legal step; when
+we believed--"
+
+"Having by your own act put yourself in your present position, I
+think you ought to be very careful before you take up another."
+
+"Certainly we ought to be careful. But I do maintain that we may be
+too punctilious. As a matter of course I shall go to Putney."
+
+"To Putney!" said Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+"Yes, Herbert, and now, if Mr. Die will permit, I will tell you what
+has happened. On yesterday afternoon, before you came to dine with
+me, I received that letter. No, that is from your cousin, Owen
+Fitzgerald. You must see that also by-and-by. It was this one,--
+from the younger Mollett, the man whom you saw that day in your poor
+father's room."
+
+Herbert anxiously put out his hand for the letter, but he was again
+interrupted by Mr. Die. "I beg your pardon, Mr. Fitzgerald, for a
+moment. Prendergast, let me see that letter again, will you?" And
+taking hold of it, he proceeded to read it very carefully, still
+nursing his leg with his left hand, while he held the letter with
+his right.
+
+"What's it all about?" said Herbert, appealing to Prendergast almost
+in a whisper.
+
+"Lente, lente, lente, my dear Mr. Fitzgerald," said Mr. Die, while
+his eyes were still intent upon the paper. "If you will take
+advantage of the experience of grey hairs, and bald heads,"--his own
+was as bald all round as a big white stone--"you must put up with
+some of the disadvantages of a momentary delay. Suppose now,
+Prendergast, that he is acting in concert with those people in--what
+do you call the street?"
+
+"In Spinny Lane."
+
+"Yes; with his father and the two women there."
+
+"What could they gain by that?"
+
+"Share with him whatever he might be able to get out of you."
+
+"The man would never accuse himself of bigamy for that. Besides, you
+should have seen the women, Die."
+
+"Seen the women! Tsh--tsh--tsh; I have seen enough of them, young
+and old, to know that a clean apron and a humble tone and a
+down-turned eye don't always go with a true tongue and an honest
+heart. Women are now the most successful swindlers of the age! That
+profession at any rate is not closed against them."
+
+"You will not find these women to be swindlers; at least I think
+not."
+
+"Ah! but we want to be sure, Prendergast;" and then Mr. Die finished
+the letter, very leisurely, as Herbert thought.
+
+When he had finished it, he folded it up and gave it back to Mr.
+Prendergast. "I don't think but what you've a strong prima facie
+case; so strong that perhaps you are right to explain the whole
+matter to our young friend here, who is so deeply concerned in it.
+But at the same time I should caution him that the matter is still
+enveloped in doubt."
+
+Herbert eagerly put out his hand for the letter. "You may trust me
+with it," said he: "I am not of a sanguine temperament, nor easily
+excited; and you may be sure that I will not take it for more than
+it is worth." So saying, he at last got hold of the letter, and
+managed to read it through much more quickly than Mr. Die had done.
+As he did so he became very red in the face, and too plainly showed
+that he had made a false boast in speaking of the coolness of his
+temperament. Indeed, the stakes were so high that it was difficult
+for a young man to be cool while he was playing the game: he had
+made up his mind to lose, and to that he had been reconciled; but
+now again every pulse of his heart and every nerve of his body was
+disturbed. "Was never his wife," he said out loud when he got to
+that part of the letter. "His real wife living now in Spinny Lane!
+Do you believe that, Mr. Prendergast?"
+
+"Yes, I do," said the attorney.
+
+"Lente, lente, lente," said the barrister, quite oppressed by his
+friend's unprofessional abruptness.
+
+"But I do believe it," said Mr. Prendergast: "you must always
+understand, Herbert, that this new story may possibly not be true--"
+
+"Quite possible," said Mr. Die, with something almost approaching to
+a slight laugh.
+
+"But the evidence is so strong," continued the other, "that I do
+believe it heartily. I have been to that house, and seen the man,
+old Mollett, and the woman whom I believe to be his wife, and a
+daughter who lives with them. As far as my poor judgment goes," and
+he made a bow of deference towards the barrister, whose face,
+however, seemed to say, that in his opinion the judgment of his
+friend Mr. Prendergast did not always go very far--"As far as my
+poor judgment goes, the women are honest and respectable. The man is
+as great a villain as there is unhung--unless his son be a greater
+one; but he is now so driven into a corner, that the truth may be
+more serviceable to him than a lie."
+
+"People of that sort are never driven into a corner," said Mr. Die;
+"they may sometimes be crushed to death."
+
+"Well, I believe the matter is as I tell you. There at any rate is
+Mollett's assurance that it is so. The woman has been residing in
+the same place for years, and will come forward at any time to prove
+that she was married to this man before he ever saw--before he went
+to Dorsetshire: she has her marriage certificate; and as far as I
+can learn there is no one able or willing to raise the question
+against you. Your cousin Owen certainly will not do so."
+
+"It will hardly do to depend upon that," said Mr. Die, with another
+sneer. "Twelve thousand a-year is a great provocative to
+litigation."
+
+"If he does we must fight him; that's all. Of course steps will be
+taken at once to get together in the proper legal form all evidence
+of every description which may bear on the subject, so that should
+the question ever be raised again, the whole matter may be in a
+nutshell."
+
+"You'll find it a nutshell very difficult to crack in
+five-and-twenty years' time," said Mr. Die.
+
+"And what would you advise me to do?" asked Herbert.
+
+That after all was now the main question, and it was discussed
+between them for a long time, till the shades of evening came upon
+them, and the dull dingy chambers became almost dark as they sat
+there. Mr. Die at first conceived that it would be well that Herbert
+should stick to the law. What indeed could be more conducive to
+salutary equanimity in the mind of a young man so singularly
+circumstanced, than the study of Blackstone, of Coke, and of Chitty?
+as long as he remained there, at work in those chambers, amusing
+himself occasionally with the eloquence of the neighbouring courts,
+there might be reasonable hope that he would be able to keep his
+mind equally poised, so that neither success nor failure as regarded
+his Irish inheritance should affect him injuriously. Thus at least
+argued Mr. Die. But at this point Herbert seemed to have views of
+his own: he said that in the first place he must be with his mother;
+and then, in the next place, as it was now clear that he was not to
+throw up Castle Richmond--as it would not now behove him to allow
+any one else to call himself master there,--it would be his duty to
+reassume the place of master. "The onus probandi will now rest with
+them," he said, repeating Mr. Prendergast's words; and then he was
+ultimately successful in persuading even Mr. Die to agree that it
+would be better for him to go to Ireland than to remain in London,
+sipping the delicious honey of Chancery buttercups.
+
+"And you will assume the title, I suppose?" said Mr. Die.
+
+"Not, at any rate, till I get to Castle Richmond," he said,
+blushing. He had so completely abandoned all thought of being Sir
+Herbert Fitzgerald, that he had now almost felt ashamed of saying
+that he should so far presume as to call himself by that name.
+
+And then he and Mr. Prendergast went away and dined together,
+leaving Mr. Die to complete his legal work for the day. At this he
+would often sit till nine or ten, or even eleven in the evening,
+without any apparent ill results from such effects, and then go home
+to his dinner and port wine. He was already nearly seventy, and work
+seemed to have no effect on him. In what Medea's caldron is it that
+the great lawyers so cook themselves, that they are able to achieve
+half an immortality, even while the body still clings to the soul?
+Mr. Die, though he would talk of his bald head, had no idea of
+giving way to time. Superannuated! The men who think of
+superannuation at sixty are those whose lives have been idle, not
+they who have really buckled themselves to work. It is my opinion
+that nothing seasons the mind for endurance like hard work. Port
+wine should perhaps be added.
+
+It was not till Herbert once more found himself alone that he fully
+realized this new change in his position. He had dined with Mr.
+Prendergast at that gentleman's club, and had been specially called
+upon to enjoy himself, drinking as it were to his own restoration in
+large glasses of some special claret, which Mr. Prendergast assured
+him was very extraordinary.
+
+"You may be as satisfied as that you are sitting there that that's
+34," said he; "and I hardly know anywhere else that you'll get it."
+
+This assertion Herbert was not in the least inclined to dispute. In
+the first place, he was not quite clear what 34 meant, and then any
+other number, 32 or 36, would have suited his palate as well. But he
+drank the 34, and tried to look as though he appreciated it.
+
+"Our wines here are wonderfully cheap," said Mr. Prendergast,
+becoming confidential; "but nevertheless we have raised the price of
+that to twelve shillings. We'll have another bottle."
+
+During all this Herbert could hardly think of his own fate and
+fortune, though, indeed, he could hardly think of anything else. He
+was eager to be alone, that he might think, and was nearly
+broken-hearted when the second bottle of 34 made its appearance.
+Something, however, was arranged in those intercalary moments
+between the raising of the glasses. Mr. Prendergast said that he
+would write both to Owen Fitzgerald and to Mr. Somers; and it was
+agreed that Herbert should immediately return to Castle Richmond,
+merely giving his mother time to have notice of his coming.
+
+And then at last he got away, and started by himself for a night
+walk through the streets of London. It seemed to him now to be a
+month since he had arrived there; but in truth it was only on the
+yesterday that he had got out of the train at the Euston Station. He
+had come up, looking forward to live in London all his life, and now
+his London life was over,--unless, indeed, those other hopes should
+come back to him, unless he should appear again, not as a student in
+Mr. Die's chamber, but as one of the council of the legislature
+assembled to make laws for the governance of Mr. Die and of others.
+It was singular how greatly this episode in his life had humbled him
+in his own esteem. Six months ago he had thought himself almost too
+good for Castle Richmond, and had regarded a seat in Parliament as
+the only place which he could fitly fill without violation to his
+nature. But now he felt as though he should hardly dare to show
+himself within the walls of that assembly. He had been so knocked
+about by circumstances, so rudely toppled from his high place,--he
+had found it necessary to put himself so completely into the hands
+of other people, that his self-pride had all left him. That it would
+in fact return might be held as certain, but the lesson which he had
+learned would not altogether be thrown away upon him. At this
+moment, as I was saying, he felt himself to be completely humbled. A
+lie spoken by one of the meanest of God's creatures had turned him
+away from all his pursuits, and broken all his hopes; and now
+another word from this man was to restore him,--if only that other
+word should not appear to be the greater lie! and then that there
+should be such question as to his mother's name and fame--as to the
+very name by which she should now be called! that it should depend
+on the amount of infamy of which that wretch had been guilty,
+whether or no the woman whom in the world he most honoured was
+entitled to any share of respect from the world around her! That she
+was entitled to the respect of all good men, let the truth in these
+matters be where it might, Herbert knew, and all who heard the story
+would acknowledge. But respect is of two sorts, and the outer
+respect of the world cannot be parted with conveniently.
+
+He did acknowledge himself to be a humbled man,--more so than he had
+ever yet done, or had been like to do, while conscious of the loss
+which had fallen on him. It was at this moment when he began to
+perceive that his fortune would return to him, when he became aware
+that he was knocked about like a shuttlecock from a battledore, that
+his pride came by its first fall. Mollett was in truth the great
+man,--the Warwick who was to make and unmake the kings of Castle
+Richmond. A month ago, and it had pleased Earl Mollett to say that
+Owen Fitzgerald should reign; but there had been a turn upon the
+cards, and now he, King Herbert, was to be again installed.
+
+He walked down all alone through St. James's Street, and by Pall
+Mall and Charing Cross, feeling rather than thinking of all this.
+Those doubts of Mr. Die did not trouble him much. He fully believed
+that he should regain his title and property; or rather that he
+should never lose them. But he thought that he could never show
+himself about the country again as he had done before all this was
+known. In spite of his good fortune he was sad at heart, little
+conscious of the good that all this would do him.
+
+He went on by the Horse Guards and Treasury Chambers into Parliament
+Street, and so up to the new Houses of Parliament, and sauntered
+into Westminster Hall; and there, at the privileged door between the
+lamps on his left hand, he saw busy men going in and out, some slow
+and dignified, others hot, hasty, and anxious, and he felt as though
+the regions to and from which they passed must be far out of his
+reach. Could he aspire to pass those august lamp-posts, he whose
+very name depended on what in truth might have been the early doings
+of a low scoundrel who was now skulking from the law?
+
+And then he went on, and mounting by the public stairs and anterooms
+found his way to the lobby of the house. There he stood with his
+back to the ginger-beer stall, moody and melancholy, looking on as
+men in the crowd pushed forward to speak to members whom they knew,
+or, as it sometimes appeared, to members whom they did not know.
+There was somewhat of interest going on in the house, for the throng
+was thick, and ordinary men sometimes jostled themselves on into the
+middle of the hall--with impious steps, for on those centre stones
+none but legislators should presume to stand.
+
+"Stand back, gentlemen, stand back; back a little, if you please,
+sir," said a very courteous but peremptory policeman, so moving the
+throng that Herbert, who had been behind, in no way anxious for a
+forward place, or for distinguishing nods from passing members,
+found himself suddenly in the front rank, in the immediate
+neighbourhood of a cluster of young senators who were cooling
+themselves in the lobby after the ardour of the debate.
+
+"It was as pretty a thing as ever I saw in my life," said one, "and
+beautifully ridden." Surely it must have been the Spring Meeting and
+not the debate that they were discussing.
+
+"I don't know much about that," said another, and the voice sounded
+on Herbert's ears as it might almost be the voice of a brother. "I
+know I lost the odds. But I'll have a bottle of soda-water. Hallo,
+Fitzgerald! Why--;" and then the young member stopped himself, for
+Herbert Fitzgerald's story was rife about London at this time.
+
+"How do you do, Moulsey?" said Herbert, very glumly, for he did not
+at all like being recognized. This was Lord Moulsey, the eldest son
+of the Earl of Hampton Court, who was now member for the River
+Regions, and had been one of Herbert's most intimate friends at
+Oxford.
+
+"I did not exactly expect to see you here," said Lord Moulsey,
+drawing him apart. "And upon my soul I was never so cut up in my
+life as when I heard all that. Is it true?"
+
+"True! why no;--it was true, but I don't think it is. That is to
+say--upon my word I don't know. It's all unsettled--Good evening to
+you." And again nodding his head at his old friend in a very sombre
+manner, he skulked off and made his way out of Westminster Hall.
+
+"Do you know who that was?" said Lord Moulsey, going back to his
+ally. "That was young Fitzgerald, the poor fellow who has been done
+out of his title and all his property. You have heard about his
+mother, haven't you?"
+
+"Was that young Fitzgerald?" said the other senator, apparently more
+interested in this subject than he had even been about the pretty
+riding. "I wish I'd looked at him. Poor fellow! How does he bear
+it?"
+
+"Upon my word, then, I never saw a fellow so changed in my life. He
+and I were like brothers, but he would hardly speak to me. Perhaps I
+ought to have written to him. But he says it's not settled."
+
+"Oh, that's all gammon. It's settled enough. Why, they've given up
+the place. I heard all about it the other day from Sullivan O'Leary.
+They are not even making any fight. Sullivan O'Leary says they are
+the greatest fools in the world."
+
+"Upon my word I think young Fitzgerald was mad just now. His manner
+was so very odd."
+
+"I shouldn't wonder. I know I should go mad if my mother turned out
+to be somebody else's wife." And then they both sauntered away.
+
+Herbert was doubly angry with himself as he made his way down into
+the noble old hall,--angry that he had gone where there was a
+possibility of his being recognized, and angry also that he had
+behaved himself with so little presence of mind when he was
+recognized. He felt that he had been taken aback, that he had been
+beside himself, and unable to maintain his own dignity; he had run
+away from his old intimate friend because he had been unable to bear
+being looked on as the hero of a family tragedy. "He would go back
+to Ireland," he said to himself, "and he would never leave it again.
+Perhaps he might teach himself there to endure the eyes and voices
+of men around him. Nothing at any rate should induce him to come
+again to London." And so he went home to bed in a mood by no means
+so happy as might have been expected from the result of the day's
+doings. And yet he had been cheerful enough when he went to Mr.
+Die's chambers in the morning.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLII
+
+ANOTHER JOURNEY
+
+
+
+
+
+On the following day he did go back to Ireland, stopping a night in
+Dublin on the road, so that his mother might receive his letter, and
+that his cousin and Somers might receive those written by Mr.
+Prendergast. He spent one night in Dublin, and then went on, so that
+he might arrive at Castle Richmond after dark. In his present mood
+he dreaded to be seen returning, even by his own people about the
+place.
+
+At Buttevant he was met by his own car and by Richard, as he had
+desired; but he found that he was utterly frustrated as to that
+method of seating himself in his vehicle which he had promised to
+himself. He was still glum and gloomy enough when the coach stopped,
+for he had been all alone, thinking over many things--thinking of
+his father's death and his mother's early life--of all that he had
+suffered and might yet have to suffer, and above all things dreading
+the consciousness that men were talking of him and staring at him.
+In this mood he was preparing to leave the coach when he found
+himself approaching near to that Buttevant stage; but he had more to
+go through at present than he expected.
+
+"There's his honour--Hurrah! God bless his sweet face that's come
+among us agin this day! Hurrah for Sir Herbert, boys! hurrah! The
+rail ould Fitzgerald 'll be back agin among us, glory be to God and
+the Blessed Virgin! Hurrah for Sir Herbert!" and then there was a
+shout that seemed to be repeated all down the street of Buttevant.
+
+But that was nothing to what was coming. Herbert, when he first
+heard this, retreated for a moment back into the coach. But there
+was little use in that. It was necessary that he should descend, and
+had he not done so he would have been dragged out. He put his foot
+on the steps, and then found himself seized in the arms of a man
+outside, and pressed and embraced as though he had been a baby.
+
+"Ugh, ugh, ugh!" exclaimed a voice, the owner of which intended to
+send forth notes of joy; but so overcome was he by the intensity of
+his own feelings that he was in nowise able to moderate his voice
+either for joy or sorrow.
+
+"Ugh, ugh, ugh! Eh! Sir Herbert! but it's I that am proud to see yer
+honour this day,--wid yer ouwn name, wid yer ouwn name. Glory be to
+God; oh dear! oh dear! And I knew the Lord'd niver forgit us that
+way, and let the warld go intirely wrong like that. For av you
+weren't the masther, Sir Herbert, as you are, the Lord presarve you
+to us, divil a masther'd iver be able to hould a foot in Castle
+Richmond, and that's God's ouwn thruth."
+
+"And that's thrue for you, Richard," said another, whom Herbert in
+the confusion could not recognize, though his voice was familiar to
+him. "'Deed and the boys had it all made out. But what matthers now
+Sir Herbert's back?"
+
+"And God bless the day and the hour that he came to us!" And then
+leaving his master's arm and coat to which he had still stuck, he
+began to busy himself loudly about the travelling gear. "Coachman,
+where's Sir Herbert's port-mantel? Yes; that's Sir Herbert's
+hat-box. 'Deed an' I ought to know it well. And the black bag; yes,
+that'll be Sir Herbert's, to be sure," and so on.
+
+Nor was this all. The name seemed to run like wildfire through all
+the Buttevantians there assembled; and no sound seemed to reach our
+hero's name but that of Sir Herbert, Sir Herbert. Everybody took
+hold of him, and kissed his hand, and pulled his skirts, and stroked
+his face. His hat was knocked off, and put on again amid thousands
+of blessings. It was nearly dark, and his eyes were dazed by the
+coach lanterns which were carried about, so that he could hardly see
+his friends; but the one sound which was dinned into his ears was
+that of Sir Herbert, Sir Herbert.
+
+Had he thought about it when starting from Dublin early that morning
+he would have said that it would have killed him to have heard
+himself so greeted in the public street, but as it was he found that
+he got over it very easily. Before he was well seated on his car it
+may be questioned whether he was not so used to his name, that he
+would have been startled to hear himself designated as Mr.
+Fitzgerald. For half a minute he had been wretched, and had felt a
+disgust at poor Richard which he thought at the moment would be
+insuperable; but when he was on the car, and the poor fellow came
+round to tuck the apron in under his feet, he could not help giving
+him his hand, and fraternizing with him.
+
+"And how is my mother, Richard?"
+
+"'Deed then, Sir Herbert, me lady is surprising--very quiet-like;
+but her leddyship was always that, and as sweet to them as comes
+nigh her as flowers in May; but sure that's nathural to her
+leddyship."
+
+"And, Richard--"
+
+"Yes, Sir Herbert."
+
+"Was Mr. Owen over at Castle Richmond since I left?"
+
+"Sorrow a foot, Sir Herbert. Nor no one ain't heard on him, nor seen
+him. And I will say this on him--"
+
+"Don't say anything against him, Richard."
+
+"No, surely not, seeing he is yer honour's far-away cousin, Sir
+Herbert. But what I war going to say warn't agin Mr. Owen at all, at
+all. For they do say that cart-ropes wouldn't have dragged him to
+Castle Richmond; and that only yer honour has come back to yer
+own,--and why not?--there wouldn't have been any masther in Castle
+Richmond at all, at all. That's what they do say."
+
+"There's no knowing how it will go yet, Richard."
+
+"'Deed, an' I know how it 'll go very well, Sir Herbert, and so does
+Mr. Somers, God bless him! 'Twas only this morning he tould me. An',
+faix, it's he has the right to be glad."
+
+"He is a very old friend."
+
+"So is we all ould frinds, an' we're all glad--out of our skins wid
+gladness, Sir Herbert. 'Deed an' I thought the eend of the warld had
+come when I heerd it, for my head went round and round and round as
+I stood in the stable, and only for the fork I had a hould of, I'd
+have been down among the crathur's legs."
+
+And then it struck Herbert that as they were going on he heard the
+footsteps of some one running after the car, always at an equal
+distance behind them. "Who's that running, Richard?"
+
+"Sure an' that's just Larry Carson, yer honour's own boy, that minds
+yer honour's own nag, Sir Herbert. But, faix, I suppose ye'll be
+having a dozen of 'em now."
+
+"Stop and take him up; you've room there."
+
+"Room enough, Sir Herbert, an' yer honour's so good. Here, Larry,
+yer born fool, Sir Herbert says ye're to get up. He would come over,
+Sir Herbert, just to say he'd been the first to see yer honour."
+
+"God--bless--yer honour--Sir Herbert," exclaimed the poor fellow,
+out of breath, as he took his seat. It was his voice that Sir
+Herbert had recognized among the crowd, angry enough at that moment.
+But in future days it was remembered in Larry Carson's favour, that
+he had come over to Castle Richmond to see his master, contented to
+run the whole road back to Castle Richmond behind the car. A better
+fate, however, was his, for he made one in the triumphal entry up
+the avenue.
+
+When they got to the lodge it was quite dark--so dark that even
+Richard, who was experienced in night-driving, declared that a cat
+could not see. However, they turned in at the great gates without
+any accident, the accustomed woman coming out to open them.
+
+"An' is his honour there thin?" said the woman; "and may God bless
+you, Sir Herbert, and ye're welcome back to yer own; so ye are!"
+
+And then a warm large hand was laid upon his leg, and a warm voice
+sounded greeting in his ear. "Herbert, my boy, how are you? This is
+well, is it not?" It was Mr. Somers who had been waiting there for
+him at the lodge gate.
+
+Upon the whole he could not but acknowledge to himself that it was
+well. Mr. Somers got up beside him on the car, so that by this time
+it was well laden. "And how does my mother take it?" Herbert asked.
+
+"Very quietly. Your Aunt Letty told me that she had spent most of
+her time in prayer since she heard it. But Miss Letty seems to think
+that on your account she is very full of joy."
+
+"And the girls?"
+
+"Oh! the girls--what girls? Well, they must answer for themselves; I
+left them about half an hour ago, and now you hear their voices in
+the porch."
+
+He did hear the voices in the porch plainly, though he could not
+distinguish them, as the horse's feet and the car wheels rattled
+over the gravel. But as the car stopped at the door with somewhat of
+a crash, he heard Emmeline say, "There's Herbert," and then as he
+got down they all retreated in among the lights in the hall.
+
+"God bless your honour, Sir Herbert. An' it's you that are welcome
+back this blessed night to Castle Richmond." Such and such like were
+the greetings which met him from twenty different voices as he
+essayed to enter the house. Every servant and groom about the place
+was there, and some few of the nearest tenants,--of those who had
+lived near enough to hear the glad tidings since the morning. A
+dozen, at any rate, took his hands as he strove to make his way
+through them, and though he was never quite sure about it, he
+believed that one or two had kissed him in the dark. At last he
+found himself in the hall, and even then the first person who got
+hold of him was Mrs. Jones.
+
+"And so you've come back to us after all, Mr. Herbert--Sir Herbert I
+should say, begging your pardon, sir; and it's all right about my
+lady. I never thought to be so happy again, never--never--never."
+And then she retreated with her apron up to her eyes, leaving him in
+the arms of Aunt Letty.
+
+"The Lord giveth, and the Lord taketh away. Blessed be the name of
+the Lord. Oh! Herbert, my darling boy. I hope this may be a lesson
+and a warning to you, so that you may flee from the wrath to come."
+Aunt Letty, had time been allowed to her, would certainly have shown
+that the evil had all come from tampering with papistical
+abominations; and that the returning prosperity of the house of
+Castle
+
+Richmond was due to Protestant energy and truth. But much time was
+not allowed to Aunt Letty, as Herbert hurried on after his sisters.
+
+As he had advanced they had retreated, and now he heard them in the
+drawing-room. He began to be conscious that they were not alone,--
+that they had some visitor with them, and began to be conscious also
+who that visitor was. And when he got himself at last into the room,
+sure enough there were three girls there, two running forward to
+meet him from the fireplace to which they had retreated, and the
+other lingering a little in their rear.
+
+"Oh, Herbert!" and "oh, Herbert!" and then their arms were thrown
+about his neck, and their warm kisses were on his cheeks--kisses
+not unmixed with tears; for of course they began to cry immediately
+that he was with them, though their eyes had been dry enough for the
+two or three hours before. Their arms were about his neck, and their
+kisses on his cheeks, I have said,--meaning thereby the arms and
+kisses of his sisters, for the third young lady still lingered a
+little in the rear.
+
+"Was it not lucky Clara was here when the news came to us this
+morning?" said Mary.
+
+"Such difficulty as we have had to get her," said Emmeline. "It was
+to have been her farewell visit to us; but we will have no more
+farewells now; will we, Clara?"
+
+And now at last he had his arm round her waist, or as near to that
+position as he was destined to get it on the present occasion. She
+gave him her hand, and let him hold that fast, and smiled on him
+through her soft tears, and was gracious to him with her sweet words
+and pleasant looks; but she would not come forward and kiss him
+boldly as she had done when last they had met at Desmond Court. He
+attempted it now; but he could get his lips no nearer to hers than
+her forehead; and when he tried to hold her she slipped away from
+him, and he continually found himself in the embraces of his
+sisters,--which was not the same thing at all. "Never mind," he said
+to himself; "his day would soon come round."
+
+"You did not expect to find Clara here, did you?" asked Emmeline.
+
+"I hardly know what I have expected, or not expected, for the last
+two days. No, certainly, I had no hope of seeing her to-night."
+
+"I trust I am not in the way," said Clara.
+
+Whereupon he made another attempt with his arm, but when he thought
+he had caught his prize, Emmeline was again within his grasp.
+
+"And my mother?" he then said. It must be remembered that he had
+only yet been in the room for three minutes, though his little
+efforts have taken longer than that in the telling.
+
+"She is upstairs, and you are to go to her. But I told her that we
+should keep you for a quarter of an hour, and you have not been here
+half that time yet."
+
+"And how has she borne all this?"
+
+"Why, well on the whole. When first she heard it this morning, which
+she did before any of us, you know--"
+
+"Oh yes, I wrote to her."
+
+"But your letter told her nothing. Mr. Somers came down almost as
+soon as your letter was here. He had heard also--from Mr.
+Prendergast, I think it was, and Mr. Prendergast said a great deal
+more than you did."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"We thought she was going to be ill at first, for she became so very
+pale,--flushing up sometimes for half a minute or so; but after an
+hour or two she became quite calm. She has seen nobody since but us
+and Aunt Letty."
+
+"She saw me," said Clara.
+
+"Oh yes, you; you are one of us now,--just the same as ourselves,
+isn't she, Herbert?"
+
+Not exactly the same, Herbert thought. And then he went upstairs to
+his mother.
+
+This interview I will not attempt to describe. Lady Fitzgerald had
+become a stricken woman from the first moment that she had heard
+that that man had returned to life, who in her early girlhood had
+come to her as a suitor. Nay, this had been so from the first moment
+that she had expected his return. And these misfortunes had come
+upon her so quickly that, though they had not shattered her in body
+and mind as they had shattered her husband, nevertheless they had
+told terribly on her heart. The coming of those men, the agony of
+Sir Thomas, the telling of the story as it had been told to her by
+Mr. Prendergast, the resolve to abandon everything--even a name by
+which she might be called, as far as she herself was concerned, the
+death of her husband, and then the departure of her ruined son, had,
+one may say, been enough to destroy the spirit of any woman. Her
+spirit they had not utterly destroyed. Her powers of endurance were
+great,--and she had endured, still hoping. But as the uttermost
+malice of adversity had not been able altogether to depress her, so
+neither did returning prosperity exalt her,--as far as she herself
+was concerned. She rejoiced for her children greatly, thanking God
+that she had not entailed on them an existence without a name. But
+for herself, as she now told Herbert, outside life was all over. Her
+children and the poor she might still have with her, but beyond,
+nothing in this world,--to them would be confined all her wishes on
+this side the grave.
+
+But nevertheless she could be warm in her greetings to her son. She
+could understand that though she were dead to the world he need not
+be so,--nor indeed ought to be so. Things that were now all ending
+with her were but beginning with him. She had no feeling that taught
+her to think that it was bad for him to be a man of rank and
+fortune, the head of his family, and the privileged one of his race.
+It had been perhaps her greatest misery that she, by her doing, had
+placed him in the terrible position which he had lately been called
+upon to fill.
+
+"Dearest mother, it did not make me unhappy," he said, caressing
+her.
+
+"You bore it like a man, Herbert, as I shall ever remember. But it
+did make me unhappy,--more unhappy than it should have done, when
+we remember how very short is our time here below."
+
+He remained with his mother for more than an hour, and then returned
+to the drawing-room, where the girls were waiting for him with the
+tea-things arranged before them.
+
+"I was very nearly coming up to fetch you," said Mary, "only that we
+knew how much mamma must have to say to you."
+
+"We dined early because we are all so upset," said Emmeline; "and
+Clara must be dying for her tea."
+
+"And why should Clara die for tea any more than any one else?" asked
+Lady Clara herself.
+
+I will not venture to say what hour it was before they separated for
+bed. They sat there with their feet over the fender, talking about
+things gone and things coming,--and there were so many of such
+things for them to discuss! Even yet, as one of the girls remarked,
+Lady Desmond had not heard of the last change, or if she had so
+heard, had had no time to communicate with her daughter upon the
+subject.
+
+And then Owen was spoken of with the warmest praise by them all, and
+Clara explained openly what had been the full tenor of his intended
+conduct.
+
+"That would have been impossible," said Herbert.
+
+"But it was not the less noble in him, was it?" said Clara, eagerly.
+But she did not tell how Owen Fitzgerald had prayed that her love
+might be given back to him, as his reward for what he wished to do
+on behalf of his cousin. Now, at least, at this moment it was not
+told; yet the day did come when all that was described,--a day when
+Owen in his absence was regarded by them both among the dearest of
+their friends.
+
+But even on that night Clara resolved that he should have some meed
+of praise. "Has he not been noble?" she said, appealing to him who
+was to be her husband; "has he not been very noble?"
+
+Herbert, too happy to be jealous, acknowledged that it was so.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLIII
+
+PLAYING ROUNDERS
+
+
+
+
+
+My story is nearly at its close, and all readers will now know how
+it is to end. Those difficulties raised by Mr. Die were all made to
+vanish; and though he implored Mr. Prendergast over and over again
+to go about this business with a moderated eagerness, that gentleman
+would not consent to let any grass grow under his heels till he had
+made assurance doubly sure, and had seen Herbert Fitzgerald firmly
+seated on his throne. All that the women in Spinny Lane had told him
+was quite true. The register was found in the archives of the parish
+of Putney, and Mr. Prendergast was able to prove that Mr. Matthew
+Mollett, now of Spinny Lane, and the Mr. Matthew Mollett then
+designated as of Newmarket in Cambridgeshire, were one and the same
+person; therefore Mr. Mollett's marriage with Miss Wainwright was no
+marriage, and therefore, also, the marriage between Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald and that lady was a true marriage; all which things will
+now be plain to any novel-reading capacity, mean as such capacity
+may be in respect to legal law.
+
+And I have only further to tell in respect to this part of my story,
+that the Molletts, both father and son, escaped all punishments for
+the frauds and villanies related in these pages--except such
+punishment as these frauds and villanies, acting by their own innate
+destructive forces and poisons, brought down upon their unfortunate
+heads. For so allowing them to escape I shall be held by many to
+have been deficient in sound teaching. "What!" men will say, "not
+punish your evil principle! Allow the prevailing evil genius of your
+book to escape scot free, without administering any of that condign
+punishment which it would have been so easy for you to allot to
+them! Had you not treadmills to your hand, and all manner of new
+prison disciplines? Should not Matthew have repented in the
+sackcloth of solitary confinement, and Aby have munched and crunched
+between his teeth the bitter ashes of prison bread and water? Nay,
+for such offences as those did you wot of no penal settlements? Were
+not Portland and Spike Islands gaping for them? Had you no memory of
+Dartmoor and the Bermudas?"
+
+Gentle readers, no; not in this instance shall Spike Island or the
+Bermudas be asked to give us their assistance. There is a sackcloth
+harsher to the skin than that of the penal settlement, and ashes
+more bitter in the crunching than convict rations. It would be sad
+indeed if we thought that those rascals who escape the law escape
+also the just reward of their rascality. May it not rather be
+believed that the whole life of the professional rascal is one long
+wretched punishment, to which, if he could but know it, the rations
+and comparative innocence of Bermuda would be so preferable? Is he
+not always rolling the stone of Sysiphus, gyrating on the wheel of
+Ixion, hankering after the waters of Tantalus, filling the sieves of
+the daughters of Danaus? He pours into his sieve stolen corn beyond
+measure, but no grain will stay there. He lifts to his lips rich
+cups, but Rhadamanthus the policeman allows him no moment for a
+draught. The wheel of justice is ever going, while his poor hanging
+head is in a whirl. The stone which he rolls never perches for a
+moment at the top of the hill, for the trade which he follows admits
+of no rest. Have I not said truly that he is hunted like a fox,
+driven from covert to covert with his poor empty craving belly?
+prowling about through the wet night, he returns with his prey, and
+finds that he is shut out from his lair; his bloodshot eye is ever
+over his shoulder, and his advanced foot is ever ready for a start;
+he stinks in the nostrils of the hounds of the law, and is held by
+all men to be vermin.
+
+One would say that the rascal, if he but knew the truth, would look
+forward to Spike Island and the Bermudas with impatience and
+raptures. The cold, hungry, friendless, solitary doom of unconvicted
+rascaldom has ever seemed to me to be the most wretched phase of
+human existence,--that phase of living in which the liver can trust
+no one, and be trusted by none; in which the heart is ever quailing
+at the policeman's hat, and the eye ever shrinking from the
+policeman's gaze. The convict does trust his gaoler, at any rate his
+master gaoler, and in so doing is not all wretched. It is Bill Sikes
+before conviction that I have ever pitied. Any man can endure to be
+hanged; but how can any man have taken that Bill Sikes' walk and
+have lived through it?
+
+To such punishments will we leave the Molletts, hoping of the elder
+one, that under the care of those ministering angels in Spinny Lane,
+his heart may yet be softened; hoping also for the younger one that
+some ministering angel may be appointed also for his aid. 'Tis a
+grievous piece of work though, that of a ministering angel to such a
+soul as his. And now, having seen them so far on their mortal
+career, we will take our leave of both of them.
+
+Mr. Prendergast's object in sparing them was of course that of
+saving Lady Fitzgerald from the terrible pain of having her name
+brought forward at any trial. She never spoke of this, even to
+Herbert, allowing those in whom she trusted to manage those things
+for her without an expression of anxiety on her own part; but she
+was not the less thankful when she found that no public notice was
+to be taken of the matter.
+
+Very shortly after Herbert's return to Castle Richmond, it was
+notified to him that he need have no fear as to his inheritance; and
+it was so notified with the great additional comfort of an assuring
+opinion from Mr. Die. He then openly called himself Sir Herbert,
+took upon himself the property which became his by right of the
+entail, and issued orders for the preparation of his marriage
+settlement. During this period he saw Owen Fitzgerald; but he did so
+in the presence of Mr. Somers, and not a word was then said about
+Lady Clara Desmond. Both the gentlemen, Herbert and Mr. Somers,
+cordially thanked the master of Hap House for the way in which he
+had behaved to the Castle Richmond family, and in reference to the
+Castle Richmond property during the terrible events of the last two
+months; but Owen took their thanks somewhat haughtily. He shook
+hands warmly enough with his cousin. wishing him joy on the
+arrangement of his affairs, and was at first less distant than usual
+with Mr. Somers; but when they alluded to his own conduct, and
+expressed their gratitude, he declared that he had done nothing for
+which thanks were due, and that he begged it to be understood that
+he laid claim to no gratitude. Had he acted otherwise, he said, he
+would have deserved to be kicked out of the presence of all honest
+men; and to be thanked for the ordinary conduct of a gentleman was
+almost an insult. This he said looking chiefly at Mr. Somers, and
+then turning to his cousin, he asked him if he intended to remain in
+the country.
+
+"Oh, certainly," said Herbert.
+
+"I shall not," said Owen; "and if you know any one who will take a
+lease of Hap House for ten or twelve years, I shall be glad to find
+a tenant."
+
+"And you, where are you going?"
+
+"To Africa in the first instance," said he; "there seems to be some
+good hunting there, and I think that I shall try it."
+
+The new tidings were not long in reaching Desmond Court, and the
+countess was all alone when she first heard them. With very great
+difficulty, taking as it were the bit between her teeth, Clara had
+managed to get over to Castle Richmond that she might pay a last
+visit to the Fitzgerald girls. At this time Lady Desmond's mind was
+in a terribly distracted state. The rumour was rife about the
+country that Owen had refused to accept the property; and the
+countess herself had of course been made aware that he had so
+refused. But she was too keenly awake to the affairs of the world to
+suppose that such a refusal could continue long in force; neither,
+as she knew well, could Herbert accept of that which was offered to
+him. It might be that for some years to come the property might be
+unenjoyed; the rich fruit might fall rotten from the wall; but what
+would that avail to her or to her child? Herbert would still be a
+nameless man, and could never be master of Castle Richmond.
+
+Nevertheless Clara carried her point, and went over to her friends,
+leaving the countess all alone. She had now permitted her son to
+return to Eton, finding that he was powerless to aid her. The young
+earl was quite willing that his sister should marry Owen Fitzgerald;
+but he was not willing to use any power of persuasion that he might
+have, in what his mother considered a useful or legitimate manner.
+He talked of rewarding Owen for his generosity; but Clara would have
+nothing to do either with the generosity or with the reward. And so
+Lady Desmond was left alone, hearing that even Owen, Owen himself,
+had now given up the quest, and feeling that it was useless to have
+any further hope. "She will make her own bed," the countess said to
+herself, "and she must lie on it."
+
+And then came this rumour that after all Herbert was to be the man.
+It first reached her ears about the same time that Herbert arrived
+at his own house, but it did so in such a manner as to make but
+little impression at the moment. Lady Desmond had but few gossips,
+and in a general way heard but little of what was doing in the
+country. On this occasion the Caleb Balderston of her house came in,
+making stately bows to his mistress, and with low voice, and eyes
+wide open, told her what a gossoon running over from Castle Richmond
+had reported in the kitchen of Desmond Court. "At any rate, my lady,
+Mr. Herbert is expected this evening at the house;" and then Caleb
+Balderston, bowing stately again, left the room. This did not make
+much impression, but it made some.
+
+And then on the following day Clara wrote to her: this she did after
+deep consideration and much consultation with her friends. It would
+be unkind, they argued, to leave Lady Desmond in ignorance on such a
+subject; and therefore a note was written very guardedly, the joint
+production of the three, in which, with the expression of many
+doubts, it was told that perhaps after all Herbert might yet be the
+man. But even then the countess did not believe it.
+
+But during the next week the rumour became a fact through the
+country, and everybody knew, even the Countess of Desmond, that all
+that family history was again changed. Lady Fitzgerald, whom they
+had all known, was Lady Fitzgerald still, and Herbert was once more
+on his throne. When rumours thus became a fact, there was no longer
+any doubt about the matter. The countryside did not say that,
+"perhaps after all so and so would go in such and such a way," or
+that "legal doubts having been entertained, the gentlemen of the
+long robe were about to do this and that." By the end of the first
+week the affair was as surely settled in county Cork as though the
+line of the Fitzgeralds had never been disturbed; and Sir Herbert
+was fully seated on his throne.
+
+It was well then for poor Owen that he had never assumed the regalia
+of royalty: had he done so his fall would have been very dreadful;
+as it was, not only were all those pangs spared to him, but he
+achieved at once an immense popularity through the whole country.
+Everybody called him poor Owen, and declared how well he had
+behaved. Some expressed almost a regret that his generosity should
+go unrewarded, and others went so far as to give him his reward: he
+was to marry Emmeline Fitzgerald, they said at the clubs in Cork,
+and a considerable slice of the property was destined to give
+additional charms to the young lady's hand and heart. For a month or
+so Owen Fitzgerald was the most popular man in the south of Ireland;
+that is, as far as a man can be popular who never shows himself.
+
+And the countess had to answer her daughter's letter. "If this be
+so," she said, "of course I shall be well pleased. My anxiety has
+been only for your welfare, to further which I have been willing to
+make any possible sacrifice." Clara when she read this did not know
+what sacrifice had been made, nor had the countess thought as she
+wrote the words what had been the sacrifice to which she had thus
+alluded, though her heart was ever conscious of it, unconsciously.
+And the countess sent her love to them all at Castle Richmond. "She
+did not fear," she said, "that they would misinterpret her. Lady
+Fitzgerald, she was sure, would perfectly understand that she had
+endeavoured to do her duty by her child." It was by no means a bad
+letter, and, which was better, was in the main a true letter.
+According to her light she had striven to do her duty, and her
+conduct was not misjudged, at any rate at Castle Richmond.
+
+"You must not think harshly of mamma," said Clara to her future
+mother-in-law.
+
+"Oh no," said Lady Fitzgerald. "I certainly do not think harshly of
+her. In her position I should probably have acted as she has done."
+The difference, however, between them was this, that it was all but
+impossible that Lady Fitzgerald should not sympathize with her
+children, while it was almost impossible that the Countess Desmond
+should do so.
+
+And so Lady Desmond remained all alone at Desmond Court, brooding
+over the things as they now were. For the present it was better that
+Clara should remain at Castle Richmond, and nothing therefore was
+said of her return on either side. She could not add to her mother's
+comfort at home, and why should she not remain happy where she was?
+She was already a Fitzgerald in heart rather than a Desmond; and was
+it not well that she should be so? If she could love Herbert
+Fitzgerald, that was well also. Since the day on which he had
+appeared at Desmond Court, wet and dirty and wretched, with a broken
+spirit and fortunes as draggled as his dress, he had lost all claim
+to be a hero in the estimation of Lady Desmond. To her those only
+were heroes whose pride and spirit were never draggled; and such a
+hero there still was in her close neighbourhood.
+
+Lady Desmond herself was a woman of a mercenary spirit; so at least
+it will be said and thought of her. But she was not altogether so,
+although the two facts were strong against her that she had sold
+herself for a title, and had been willing to sell her daughter for a
+fortune. Poverty she herself had endured upon the whole with
+patience; and though she hated and scorned it from her very soul,
+she would now have given herself in marriage to a poor man without
+rank or station,--she, a countess, and the mother of an earl; and
+that she would have done with all the romantic love of a girl of
+sixteen, though she was now a woman verging upon forty!
+
+Men and women only know so much of themselves and others as
+circumstances and their destiny have allowed to appear. Had it
+perchance fallen to thy lot, O my forensic friend, heavy laden with
+the wisdom of the law, to write tales such as this of mine, how
+charmingly might not thy characters have come forth upon the
+canvas--how much more charmingly than I can limn them! While, on the
+other hand, ignorant as thou now tellest me that I am of the very
+alphabet of the courts, had thy wig been allotted to me, I might
+have gathered guineas thick as daisies in summer, while to thee
+perhaps they come no faster than snow-drops in the early spring. It
+is all in our destiny. Chance had thrown that terrible earl in the
+way of the poor girl in her early youth, and she had married him.
+She had married him, and all idea of love had flown from her heart.
+All idea of love, but not all the capacity--as now within this last
+year or two she had learned, so much to her cost.
+
+Long months had passed since she had first owned this to herself,
+since she had dared to tell herself that it was possible even for
+her to begin the world again, and to play the game which women love
+to play, once at least before they die. She could have worshipped
+this man, and sat at his feet, and endowed him in her heart with
+heroism, and given him her soft brown hair to play with when it
+suited her Hercules to rest from his labours. She could have
+forgotten her years, and have forgotten too the children who had now
+grown up to seize the world from beneath her feet--to seize it
+before she herself had enjoyed it. She could have forgotten all that
+was past, and have been every whit as young as her own daughter. If
+only--!
+
+It is so, I believe, with most of us who have begun to turn the
+hill. I myself could go on to that common that is at this moment
+before me, and join that game of rounders with the most intense
+delight. "By George! you fellow, you've no eyes; didn't you see that
+he hadn't put his foot in the hole. He'll get back now that
+long-backed, hard-hitting chap, and your side is done for the next
+half-hour!" But then they would all be awestruck for a while; and
+after that, when they grew to be familiar with me, they would laugh
+at me because I loomed large in my running, and returned to my
+ground scant of breath. Alas, alas! I know that it would not do. So
+I pass by, imperious in my heavy manhood, and one of the lads
+respectfully abstains from me though the ball is under my very feet.
+
+But then I have had my game of rounders. No horrible old earl with
+gloating eyes carried me off in my childhood and robbed me of the
+pleasure of my youth. That part of my cake has been eaten, and, in
+spite of some occasional headache, has been digested not altogether
+unsatisfactorily. Lady Desmond had as yet been allowed no slice of
+her cake. She had never yet taken her side in any game of rounders.
+But she too had looked on and seen how jocund was the play; she also
+had acknowledged that that running in the ring, that stout hitting
+of the ball, that innocent craft, that bringing back by her own
+skill and with her own hand of some long-backed fellow, would be
+pleasant to her as well as to others. If only she now could be
+chosen in at that game! But what if the side that she cared for
+would not have her?
+
+But tempus edax rerum, though it had hardly nibbled at her heart or
+wishes, had been feeding on the freshness of her brow and the bloom
+of her lips. The child with whom she would have loved to play kept
+aloof from her too, and would not pick up the ball when it rolled to
+his feet. All this, if one thinks of it, is hard to bear. It is very
+hard to have had no period for rounders, not to be able even to look
+back to one's games, and to talk of them to one's old comrades! "But
+why then did she allow herself to be carried off by the wicked
+wrinkled earl with the gloating eyes?" asks of me the prettiest girl
+in the world, just turned eighteen. Oh heavens! Is it not possible
+that one should have one more game of rounders? Quite impossible, O
+my fat friend! And therefore I answer the young lady somewhat
+grimly. "Take care that thou also art not carried off by a wrinkled
+earl. Is thy heart free from all vanity? Of what nature is the
+heroism that thou worshippest?" "A nice young man!" she says,
+boldly, though in words somewhat different. "If so it will be well
+for thee; but did I not see thine eyes hankering the other day after
+the precious stones of Ophir, and thy mouth watering for the
+flesh-pots of Egypt? Was I not watching thee as thou sattest at that
+counter, so frightfully intent? Beware!"
+
+"The grumpy old fellow with the bald head!" she said shortly
+afterwards to her bosom friend, not careful that her words should be
+duly inaudible.
+
+Some idea that all was not yet over with her had come upon her poor
+heart,--upon Lady Desmond's heart, soon after Owen Fitzgerald had
+made himself familiar in her old mansion. We have read how that idea
+was banished, and how she had ultimately resolved that that man whom
+she could have loved herself should be given up to her own child
+when she thought that he was no longer poor and of low rank. She
+could not sympathize with her daughter,--love with her love, and
+rejoice with her joy; but she could do her duty by her, and
+according to her lights she endeavoured so to do.
+
+But now again all was turned and changed and altered. Owen of Hap
+House was once more Owen of Hap House only, but still in her eyes
+heroic, as it behoved a man to be. He would not creep about the
+country with moaning voice and melancholy eyes, with draggled dress
+and outward signs of wretchedness. He might be wretched, but he
+would still be manly. Could it be possible that to her should yet be
+given the privilege of soothing that noble, unbending wretchedness?
+By no means possible, poor, heart-laden countess; thy years are all
+against thee. Girls whose mouths will water unduly for the
+flesh-pots of Egypt must in after life undergo such penalties as
+these. Art thou not a countess?
+
+But not so did she answer herself. Might it not be possible? Ah,
+might it not be possible? And as the question was even then being
+asked, perhaps for the ten thousandth time, Owen Fitzgerald stood
+before her. She had not yet seen him since the new news had gone
+abroad, and had hardly yet conceived how it might be possible that
+she should do so. But now as she thought of him there he was. They
+two were together,--alone together; and the door by which he had
+entered had closed upon him before she was aware of his presence.
+
+"Owen Fitzgerald!" she said, starting up and giving him both her
+hands. This she did, not of judgment, nor yet from passion, but of
+impulse. She had been thinking of him with such kindly thoughts, and
+now he was there it became natural that her greeting should be
+kindly. It was more so than it had ever been to any but her son
+since the wrinkled, gloating earl had come and fetched her.
+
+"Yes, Owen Fitzgerald," said he, taking the two hands that were
+offered to him, and holding them awhile; not pressing them as a man
+who loved her, who could have loved her, would have done. "After all
+that has gone and passed between us, Lady Desmond, I cannot leave
+the country without saying one word of farewell to you."
+
+"Leave the country!" she exclaimed. "And where are you going?"
+
+As she looked into his face with her hands still in his,--for she
+did not on the moment withdraw them, she felt that he had never
+before looked so noble, so handsome, so grand. Leave the country!
+ah, yes; and why should not she leave it also? What was there to
+bind her to those odious walls in which she had been immolated
+during the best half of her life?
+
+"Where are you going?" she asked, looking almost wildly up at him.
+
+"Somewhere very far a-field, Lady Desmond," he said; and then the
+hands dropped from him.
+
+"You will understand, at any rate, that Hap House will not be a
+fitting residence for me."
+
+"I hate the whole country," said she, "the whole place hereabouts. I
+have never been happy here. Happy! I have never been other than
+unhappy. I have been wretched. What would I not give to leave it
+also?"
+
+"To you it cannot be intolerable as it will be to me. You have known
+so thoroughly where all my hopes were garnered, that I need not tell
+you why I must go from Hap House. I think that I have been wronged,
+but I do not desire that others should think so. And as for you and
+me, Lady Desmond, though we have been enemies, we have been friends
+also."
+
+"Enemies!" said she, "I hope not." And she spoke so softly, so
+unlike her usual self, in the tones so suited to a loving, clinging
+woman, that though he did not understand it, he was startled at her
+tenderness. "I have never felt that you were my enemy, Mr.
+Fitzgerald; and certainly I never was an enemy to you."
+
+"Well; we were opposed to each other. I thought that you were
+robbing me of all I valued in life; and you, you thought--"
+
+"I thought that Clara's happiness demanded rank and wealth and
+position. There; I tell you my sins fairly. You may say that I was
+mercenary if you will, mercenary for her. I thought that I knew what
+would be needful for her. Can you be angry with a mother for that?"
+
+"She had given me a promise! But never mind. It is all over now. I
+did not come to upbraid you, but to tell you that I now know how it
+must be, and that I am going."
+
+"Had you won her, Owen," said the countess, looking intently into
+his face, "had you won her, she would not have made you happy."
+
+"As to that it was for me to judge--for me and her. I thought it
+would, and was willing to peril all in the trial. And so was
+she--willing at one time. But never mind, it is useless to talk of
+that."
+
+"Quite useless now."
+
+"I did think--when it was, as they said, in my power to give him
+back his own,--I did think,--but no, it would have been mean to look
+for payment. It is all over, and I will say nothing further, not a
+word. I am not a girl to harp on such a thing day after day, and to
+grow sick with love. I shall be better away. And therefore I am
+going, and I have now come to say goodbye, because we were friends
+in old days, Lady Desmond."
+
+Friends in old days! They were old days to him, but they were no
+more than the other day to her. It was as yet hardly more than two
+years since she had first known him, and yet he looked on the
+acquaintance as one that had run out its time and required to be
+ended. She would so fain have been able to think that the beginning
+only had as yet come to them. But there he was, anxious to bid her
+adieu, and what was she to say to him?
+
+"Yes, we were friends. You have been my only friend here, I think.
+You will hardly believe with how much true friendship I have thought
+of you when the feud between us--if it was a feud--was at the
+strongest. Owen Fitzgerald, I have loved you through it all."
+
+Loved him? She was so handsome as she spoke, so womanly, so
+graceful, there was still about her so much of the charm of beauty,
+that he could hardly take the word when coming from her mouth as
+applicable to ordinary friendship. And yet he did so take it. They
+had all loved each other--as friends should love-and now that he was
+going she had chosen to say as much. He felt the blood tingle his
+cheek at the sound of her words; but he was not vain enough to take
+it in its usual sense. "Then we will part as friends," said
+he--tamely enough.
+
+"Yes, we will part," she said. And as she spoke the blood mantled
+deep on her neck and cheek and forehead, and a spirit came out of
+her eye, such as never had shone there before in his presence. "Yes,
+we will part," and she took up his right hand, and held it closely,
+pressed between both her own. "And as we must part I will tell you
+all. Owen Fitzgerald, I have loved you with all my heart,--with all
+the love that a woman has to give. I have loved you, and have never
+loved any other. Stop, stop," for he was going to interrupt her.
+"You shall hear me now to the last,--and for the last time. I have
+loved you with such love--such love as you perhaps felt for her, but
+as she will never feel. But you shall not say, nay you shall not
+think that I have been selfish. I would have kept you from her when
+you were poor as you are now,--not because I loved you. No; you will
+never think that of me. And when I thought that you were rich, and
+the head of your family, I did all that I could to bring her back
+for you. Did I not, Owen?"
+
+"Yes, I think you did," he muttered between his teeth, hardly
+knowing how to speak.
+
+"Indeed, indeed I did so. Others may say that I was selfish for my
+child, but you shall not think that I was selfish for myself. I sent
+for Patrick, and bade him go to you. I strove as mothers do strive
+for their children. I taught myself,--I strove to teach myself to
+forget that I had loved you. I swore on my knees that I would love
+you only as my son,--as my dear, dear son. Nay, Owen, I did; on my
+knees before my God."
+
+He turned away from her to rub the tears from his eyes, and in doing
+so he dragged his hand away from her. But she followed him, and
+again took it. "You will hear me to the end now," she said; "will
+you not? you will not begrudge me that? And then came these other
+tidings, and all that scheme was dashed to the ground. It was better
+so, Owen; you would not have been happy with the property--"
+
+"I should never have taken it."
+
+"And she, she would have clung closer to him as a poor man than ever
+she had done when he was rich. She is her mother's daughter there.
+And then--then--But I need not tell you more. You will know it all
+now. If you had become rich, I would have ceased to love you; but I
+shall never cease now that you are again poor,--now that you are
+Owen of Hap House again, as you sent us word yourself that day."
+
+And then she ceased, and bending down her head bathed his hand with
+her tears. Had any one asked him that morning, he would have said
+that it was impossible that the Countess of Desmond should weep. And
+now the tears were streaming from her eyes as though she were a
+broken-hearted girl. And so she was. Her girlhood had been postponed
+and marred,--not destroyed and made away with, by the wrinkled earl
+with the gloating eyes.
+
+She had said all now, and she stood there, still holding his hand in
+hers, but with her head turned from him. It was his turn to speak
+now, and how was he to answer her. I know how most men would have
+answered;--by the pressure of an arm, by a warm kiss, by a promise
+of love, and by a feeling that such love was possible. And then most
+men would have gone home, leaving the woman triumphant, and have
+repented bitterly as they sat moody over their own fires, with their
+wine-bottles before them. But it was not so with Owen Fitzgerald.
+His heart was to him a reality. He had loved with all his power and
+strength, with all the vigour of his soul,--having chosen to love.
+But he would not now be enticed by pity into a bastard feeling,
+which would die away when the tenderness of the moment was no longer
+present to his eye and touch. His love for Clara had been such that
+he could not even say that he loved another.
+
+"Dear Lady Desmond," he began.
+
+"Ah, Owen; we are to part now, part for ever," she said; "speak to
+me once in your life as though we were equal friends. Cannot you
+forget for one minute that I am Countess of Desmond?"
+
+Mary, Countess of Desmond; such was her name and title. But so
+little familiar had he been with the name by which he had never
+heard her called, that in his confusion he could not remember it.
+And had he done so, he could not have brought himself to use it.
+"Yes," he said; "we must part. It is impossible for me to remain
+here."
+
+"Doubly impossible now," she replied, half reproaching him.
+
+"Yes; doubly impossible now. Is it not better that the truth should
+be spoken?"
+
+"Oh yes. I have spoken it--too plainly."
+
+"And so will I speak it plainly. We cannot control our own hearts,
+Lady Desmond. It is, as you say, doubly impossible now. All the love
+I have had to give she has had,--and has. Such being so, why should
+I stay here? or could you wish that I should do so?"
+
+"I do not wish it." That was true enough. The wish would have been
+to wander away with him.
+
+"I must go, and shall start at once. My very things are packed for
+my going. I will not be here to have the sound of their marriage
+bells jangling in my ears. I will not be pointed at as the man who
+has been duped on every side."
+
+"Ah me, that I was a man too,--that I could go away and make for
+myself a life!"
+
+"You have Desmond with you."
+
+"No, no. He will go too; of course he will go. He will go, and I
+shall be utterly alone. What a fool I am,--what an ass, that by this
+time I have not learned to bear it!"
+
+"They will always be near you at Castle Richmond."
+
+"Ah, Owen, how little you understand! Have we been friends while we
+lived under the same roof? And now that she is there, do you think
+that she will heed me? I tell you that you do not know her. She is
+excellent, good, devoted; but cold as ice. She will live among the
+poor, and grace his table; and he will have all that he wants. In
+twelve months, Owen, she would have turned your heart to a stone."
+
+"It is that already, I think," said he. "At any rate, it will be so
+to all others. Good-bye, Lady Desmond."
+
+"Good-bye, Owen; and God bless you. My secret will be safe with
+you."
+
+"Safe! yes, it will be safe." And then, as she put her cheek up to
+him, he kissed it and left her.
+
+He had been very stern. She had laid bare to him her whole heart,
+and he had answered her love by never a word. He had made no reply
+in any shape,--given her no thanks for her heart's treasure. He had
+responded to her affection by no tenderness. He had not even said
+that this might have been so, had that other not have come to pass.
+By no word had he alluded to her confession,--but had regarded her
+delusion as monstrous, a thing of which no word was to be spoken.
+
+So at least said the countess to herself, sitting there all alone
+where he had left her. "He regards me as old and worn. In his eyes I
+am wrinkled and ugly." 'Twas thus that her thoughts expressed
+themselves; and then she walked across the room towards the mirror,
+but when there she could not look in it: she turned her back upon it
+without a glance, and returned to her seat by the window. What
+mattered it now? It was her doom to live there alone for the term of
+life with which it might still please God to afflict her.
+
+And then looking out from the window her eyes fell upon Owen as he
+rode slowly down across the park. His horse was walking very slowly,
+and it seemed as though he himself were unconscious of the pace. As
+long as he remained in sight she did not take her eyes from his
+figure, gazing at him painfully as he grew dimmer and more dim in
+the distance. Then at last he turned behind the bushes near the
+lodge, and she felt that she was all alone. It was the last that she
+ever saw of Owen Fitzgerald.
+
+Unfortunate girl, marred in thy childhood by that wrinkled earl with
+the gloating eyes; or marred rather by thine own vanity! Those
+flesh-pots of Egypt! Are they not always thus bitter in the eating?
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLIV
+
+CONCLUSION
+
+
+
+
+
+And now my story is told; and were it not for the fashion of the
+thing, this last short chapter might be spared. It shall at any rate
+be very short.
+
+Were it not that I eschew the fashion of double names for a book,
+thinking that no amount of ingenuity in this respect will make a bad
+book pass muster, whereas a good book will turn out as such though
+no such ingenuity be displayed, I might have called this "A Tale of
+the Famine Year in Ireland." At the period of the year to which the
+story has brought us--and at which it will leave us--the famine was
+at its very worst. People were beginning to believe that there would
+never be a bit more to eat in the land, and that the time for hope
+and energy was gone. Land was becoming of no value, and the only
+thing regarded was a sufficiency of food to keep body and soul
+together. Under such circumstances it was difficult to hope.
+
+But energy without hope is impossible, and therefore was there such
+an apathy and deadness through the country. It was not that they did
+not work who were most concerned to work. The amount of
+conscientious work then done was most praiseworthy. But it was done
+almost without hope of success, and done chiefly as a matter of
+conscience. There was a feeling, which was not often expressed but
+which seemed to prevail everywhere, that ginger would not again be
+hot in the mouth, and that in very truth the time for cakes and ale
+in this world was all over. It was this feeling that made a
+residence in Ireland at that period so very sad.
+
+Ah me! how little do we know what is coming to us! Irish cakes and
+ale were done and over for this world, we all thought. But in truth
+the Irish cakes were only then a-baking, and the Irish ale was being
+brewed. I am not sure that these good things are yet quite fit for
+the palates of the guest;--not as fit as a little more time will
+make them. The cake is still too new,--cakes often are; and the ale
+is not sufficiently mellowed. But of this I am sure, that the cakes
+and ale are there;--and the ginger, too, very hot in the mouth. Let
+a committee of Irish landlords say how the rents are paid now, and
+what amount of arrears was due through the country when the famine
+came among them. Rents paid to the day: that is the ginger hot in
+the mouth which best pleases the palate of a country gentleman.
+
+But if one did in truth write a tale of the famine, after that it
+would behove the author to write a tale of the pestilence; and then
+another, a tale of the exodus. These three wonderful events,
+following each other, were the blessings coming from Omniscience and
+Omnipotence by which the black clouds were driven from the Irish
+firmament. If one through it all could have dared to hope, and have
+had from the first that wisdom which has learned to acknowledge that
+His mercy endureth for ever! And then the same author going on with
+his series would give in his last set,--Ireland in her prosperity.
+
+Of all those who did true good conscientious work at this time, none
+exceeded in energy our friend Herbert Fitzgerald after his return to
+Castle Richmond. It seemed to him as though some thank-offering were
+due from him for all the good things that Providence had showered
+upon him, and the best thank-offering that he could give was a
+devoted attention to the interest of the poor around him. Mr. Somers
+soon resigned to him the chair at those committee meetings at
+Berryhill and Gortnaclough, and it was acknowledged that the Castle
+Richmond arrangements for soup-kitchens, out-door relief, and
+labour-gangs, might be taken as a model for the south of Ireland.
+Few other men were able to go to the work with means so ample and
+with hands so perfectly free. Mr. Carter even, who by this time had
+become cemented in a warm trilateral friendship with Father Barney
+and the Rev. Aeneas Townsend, was obliged to own that many a young
+English country gentleman might take a lesson from Sir Herbert
+Fitzgerald in the duties peculiar to his position.
+
+His marriage did not take place till full six months after the
+period to which our story has brought us. Baronets with twelve
+thousand a-year cannot be married off the hooks, as may be done
+with ordinary mortals. Settlements of a grandiose nature were
+required, and were duly concocted. Perhaps Mr. Die had something to
+say to them, so that the great maxim of the law was brought into
+play. Perhaps also, though of this Herbert heard no word, it was
+thought inexpedient to hurry matters while any further inquiry was
+possible in that affair of the Mollett connection. Mr. Die and Mr.
+Prendergast were certainly going about, still drawing all coverts
+far and near, lest their fox might not have been fairly run to his
+last earth. But, as I have said, no tidings as to this reached
+Castle Richmond. There, in Ireland, no man troubled himself further
+with any doubt upon the subject; and Sir Herbert took his title and
+received his rents, by the hands of Mr. Somers, exactly as though
+the Molletts, father and son, had never appeared in those parts.
+
+It was six months before the marriage was celebrated, but during a
+considerable part of that time Clara remained a visitor at Castle
+Richmond. To Lady Fitzgerald she was now the same as a daughter, and
+to Aunt Letty the same as a niece. By the girls she had for months
+been regarded as a sister. So she remained in the house of which she
+was to be the mistress, learning to know their ways, and
+ingratiating herself with those who were to be dependent on her.
+
+"But I had rather stay with you, mamma, if you will allow me," Clara
+had said to her mother when the countess was making some arrangement
+with her that she should return to Castle Richmond. "I shall be
+leaving you altogether so soon now!" And she got up close to her
+mother's side caressingly, and would fain have pressed into her arms
+and kissed her, and have talked to her of what was coming, as a
+daughter loves to talk to a loving mother. But Lady Desmond's heart
+was sore and sad and harsh, and she preferred to be alone.
+
+"You will be better at Castle Richmond, my dear: you will be much
+happier there, of course. There can be no reason why you should come
+again into the gloom of this prison."
+
+"But I should be with you, dearest mamma."
+
+"It is better that you should be with the Fitzgeralds now; and as
+for me--I must learn to live alone. Indeed I have learned it, so you
+need not mind for me." Clara was rebuffed by the tone rather than
+the words, but she still looked up into her mother's face wistfully.
+"Go, my dear," said the countess--"I would sooner be alone at
+present." And so Clara went. It was hard upon her that even now her
+mother would not accept her love.
+
+But Lady Desmond could not be cordial with her daughter. She made
+more than one struggle to do so, but always failed. She could,--she
+thought that she could, have watched her child's happiness with
+contentment had Clara married Owen Fitzgerald--Sir Owen, as he would
+then have been. But now she could only remember that Owen was lost
+to them both, lost through her child's fault. She did not hate
+Clara: nay, she would have made any sacrifice for her daughter's
+welfare; but she could not take her lovingly to her bosom. So she
+shut herself up alone, in her prison as she called it, and then
+looked back upon the errors of her life. It was as well for her to
+look back as to look forward, for what joy was there for which she
+could dare to hope?
+
+In the days that were coming, however, she did relax something of
+her sternness. Clara was of course married from Desmond Court, and
+the very necessity of making some preparations for this festivity
+was in itself salutary. But indeed it could hardly be called a
+festivity,--it was so quiet and sombre. Clara had but two
+bridesmaids, and they were Mary and Emmeline Fitzgerald. The young
+earl gave away his sister, and Aunt Letty was there, and Mr.
+Prendergast, who had come over about the settlements; Mr. Somers
+also attended, and the ceremony was performed by our old friend Mr.
+Townsend. Beyond these there were no guests at the wedding of Sir
+Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+The young earl was there, and at the last the wedding had been
+postponed a week for his coming. He had left Eton at Midsummer in
+order that he might travel for a couple of years with Owen
+Fitzgerald before he went to Oxford. It had been the lad's own
+request, and had been for a while refused by Owen. But Fitzgerald
+had at last given way to the earl's love, and they had started
+together for Norway.
+
+"They want me to be home," he had said one morning to his friend.
+
+"Ah, yes; I suppose so."
+
+"Do you know why?" They had never spoken a word about Clara since
+they had left England together, and the earl now dreaded to mention
+her name.
+
+"Know why!" replied Owen; "of course I do. It is to give away your
+sister. Go home, Desmond, my boy; when you have returned we will
+talk about her. I shall bear it better when I know that she is his
+wife."
+
+And so it was with them. For two years Lord Desmond travelled with
+him, and after that Owen Fitzgerald went on upon his wanderings
+alone. Many a long year has run by since that, and yet he has never
+come back to Hap House. Men of the county Cork now talk of him as
+one whom they knew long since. He who took his house as a stranger
+is a stranger no longer in the country, and the place that Owen left
+vacant has been filled. The hounds of Duhallow would not recognize
+his voice, nor would the steed in the stable follow gently at his
+heels. But there is yet one left who thinks of him, hoping that she
+may yet see him before she dies.
+
+THE END
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Castle Richmond, by Anthony Trollope
+
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CASTLE RICHMOND ***
+
+This file should be named cslrc10.txt or cslrc10.zip
+Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks get a new NUMBER, cslrc11.txt
+VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, cslrc10a.txt
+
+Produced by Charles Aldarondo, Charles Franks
+and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team
+
+Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance
+of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.
+Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections,
+even years after the official publication date.
+
+Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til
+midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
+The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at
+Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
+preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
+and editing by those who wish to do so.
+
+Most people start at our Web sites at:
+http://gutenberg.net or
+http://promo.net/pg
+
+These Web sites include award-winning information about Project
+Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new
+eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).
+
+
+Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement
+can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is
+also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the
+indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an
+announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter.
+
+http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext03 or
+ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext03
+
+Or /etext02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90
+
+Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want,
+as it appears in our Newsletters.
+
+
+Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
+
+We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
+time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
+to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
+searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our
+projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value
+per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
+million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text
+files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+
+We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002
+If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total
+will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end.
+
+The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks!
+This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
+which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users.
+
+Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated):
+
+eBooks Year Month
+
+ 1 1971 July
+ 10 1991 January
+ 100 1994 January
+ 1000 1997 August
+ 1500 1998 October
+ 2000 1999 December
+ 2500 2000 December
+ 3000 2001 November
+ 4000 2001 October/November
+ 6000 2002 December*
+ 9000 2003 November*
+10000 2004 January*
+
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created
+to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people
+and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut,
+Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois,
+Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts,
+Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New
+Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio,
+Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South
+Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West
+Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming.
+
+We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones
+that have responded.
+
+As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list
+will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states.
+Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state.
+
+In answer to various questions we have received on this:
+
+We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally
+request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and
+you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have,
+just ask.
+
+While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are
+not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting
+donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to
+donate.
+
+International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about
+how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made
+deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are
+ways.
+
+Donations by check or money order may be sent to:
+
+Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+PMB 113
+1739 University Ave.
+Oxford, MS 38655-4109
+
+Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment
+method other than by check or money order.
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by
+the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN
+[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are
+tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising
+requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be
+made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+You can get up to date donation information online at:
+
+http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html
+
+
+***
+
+If you can't reach Project Gutenberg,
+you can always email directly to:
+
+Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
+
+Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.
+
+We would prefer to send you information by email.
+
+
+**The Legal Small Print**
+
+
+(Three Pages)
+
+***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START***
+Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
+They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
+your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from
+someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
+fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
+disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
+you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to.
+
+*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK
+By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
+eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
+this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
+a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by
+sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
+you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical
+medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
+
+ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS
+This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks,
+is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
+through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project").
+Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
+on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
+distribute it in the United States without permission and
+without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
+below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook
+under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
+
+Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market
+any commercial products without permission.
+
+To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable
+efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
+works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any
+medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
+things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
+disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer
+codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
+But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
+[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may
+receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims
+all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
+legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
+UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
+INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
+OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
+POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
+
+If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of
+receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
+you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
+time to the person you received it from. If you received it
+on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
+such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
+copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
+choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
+receive it electronically.
+
+THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
+TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
+PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
+
+Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
+the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
+above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
+may have other legal rights.
+
+INDEMNITY
+You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation,
+and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated
+with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
+texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including
+legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
+following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook,
+[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook,
+or [3] any Defect.
+
+DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
+You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by
+disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
+"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
+or:
+
+[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
+ requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
+ eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
+ if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable
+ binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
+ including any form resulting from conversion by word
+ processing or hypertext software, but only so long as
+ *EITHER*:
+
+ [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
+ does *not* contain characters other than those
+ intended by the author of the work, although tilde
+ (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
+ be used to convey punctuation intended by the
+ author, and additional characters may be used to
+ indicate hypertext links; OR
+
+ [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at
+ no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
+ form by the program that displays the eBook (as is
+ the case, for instance, with most word processors);
+ OR
+
+ [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
+ no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
+ eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
+ or other equivalent proprietary form).
+
+[2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this
+ "Small Print!" statement.
+
+[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the
+ gross profits you derive calculated using the method you
+ already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
+ don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
+ payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation"
+ the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
+ legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
+ periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to
+ let us know your plans and to work out the details.
+
+WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
+Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of
+public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed
+in machine readable form.
+
+The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time,
+public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses.
+Money should be paid to the:
+"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or
+software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at:
+hart@pobox.com
+
+[Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only
+when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by
+Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be
+used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be
+they hardware or software or any other related product without
+express permission.]
+
+*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*
+
diff --git a/old/cslrc10.txt.20081027 b/old/cslrc10.txt.20081027
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..41cf2a0
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/cslrc10.txt.20081027
@@ -0,0 +1,22742 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of Castle Richmond, by Anthony Trollope
+#39 in our series by Anthony Trollope
+
+Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
+copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing
+this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook.
+
+This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project
+Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the
+header without written permission.
+
+Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the
+eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is
+important information about your specific rights and restrictions in
+how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a
+donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved.
+
+
+**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
+
+**eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
+
+*****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****
+
+
+Title: Castle Richmond
+
+Author: Anthony Trollope
+
+Release Date: June, 2004 [EBook #5897]
+This file was first posted on September 18, 2002
+Most recently updated: Octobeer 27, 2008
+
+Edition: 10
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CASTLE RICHMOND ***
+
+
+
+
+E-text prepared by Charles Aldarondo, Charles Franks, and the
+Project Gutenberg Online Distributed Proofreading Team,
+with additional proof-reading and corrections by Rita Bailey
+
+
+
+
+
+CASTLE RICHMOND
+
+by
+
+ANTHONY TROLLOPE
+
+With an Introduction by Algar Thorold
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+London & New York: MCMVI
+
+
+
+
+
+
+INTRODUCTION
+
+
+"Castle Richmond" was written in 1861, long after Trollope had left
+Ireland. The characterization is weak, and the plot, although the
+author himself thought well of it, mechanical.
+
+The value of the story is rather documentary than literary. It
+contains several graphic scenes descriptive of the great Irish
+famine. Trollope observed carefully, and on the whole impartially,
+though his powers of discrimination were not quite fine enough to
+make him an ideal annalist.
+
+Still, such as they were, he has used them here with no
+inconsiderable effect. His desire to be fair has led him to lay
+stress in an inverse ratio to his prepossessions, and his Priest is
+a better man than his parson.
+
+The best, indeed the only piece of real characterization in the book
+is the delineation of Abe Mollett. This unscrupulous blackmailer is
+put before us with real art, with something of the loving
+preoccupation of the hunter for his quarry. Trollope loved a rogue,
+and in his long portrait gallery there are several really charming
+ones. He did not, indeed, perceive the aesthetic value of sin--he
+did not perceive the esthetic value of anything,--and his analysis
+of human nature was not profound enough to reach the conception of
+sin, crime being to him the nadir of downward possibility--but he had
+a professional, a sort of half Scotland Yard, half master of hounds
+interest in a criminal. "See," he would muse, "how cunningly the
+creature works, now back to his earth, anon stealing an unsuspected
+run across country, the clever rascal;" and his ethical disapproval
+ever, as usual, with English critics of life, in the foreground,
+clearly enhanced a primitive predatory instinct not obscurely akin,
+a cynic might say, to those dark impulses he holds up to our
+reprobation. This self-realization in his fiction is one of
+Trollope's principal charms. Never was there a more subjective
+writer. Unlike Flaubert, who laid down the canon that the author
+should exist in his work as God in creation, to be, here or there,
+dimly divined but never recognized, though everywhere latent,
+Trollope was never weary of writing himself large in every man,
+woman, or child he described.
+
+The illusion of objectivity which he so successfully achieves is due
+to the fact that his mind was so perfectly contented with its
+hereditary and circumstantial conditions, was itself so perfectly
+the mental equivalent of those conditions. Thus the perfection of
+his egotism, tight as a drum, saved him. Had it been a little less
+complete, he would have faltered and bungled; as it was, he had the
+naive certainty of a child, to whose innocent apprehension the world
+and self are one, and who therefore I cannot err.
+
+ALGAR THOROLD.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+CONTENTS
+
+ I. The Barony of Desmond
+ II. Owen Fitzgerald
+ III. Clara Desmond
+ IV. The Countess
+ V. The Fitzgeralds of Castle Richmond
+ VI. The Kanturk Hotel, South Main Street, Cork
+ VII. The Famine Year
+ VIII. Gortnaclough and Berryhill
+ IX. Family Councils
+ X. The Rector of Drumbarrow and his Wife
+ XI. Second Love
+ XII. Doubts
+ XIII. Mr. Mollett returns to South Main Street
+ XIV. The Rejected Suitor
+ XV. Diplomacy
+ XVI. The Path beneath the Elms
+ XVII. Father Barney
+ XVIII. The Relief Committee
+ XIX. The Friend of the Family
+ XX. Two Witnesses
+ XXI. Fair Arguments
+ XXII. The Telling of the Tale
+ XXIII. Before Breakfast at Hap House
+ XXIV. After Breakfast at Hap House
+ XXV. A Muddy Walk on a Wet Morning
+ XXVI. Comfortless
+ XXVII. Comforted
+ XXVIII. For a' that and a' that
+ XXIX. Ill News flies Fast
+ XXX. Pallida Mors
+ XXXI. The First Month
+ XXXII. Preparations for Going
+ XXXIII. The Last Stage
+ XXXIV. Farewell
+ XXXV. Herbert Fitzgerald in London
+ XXXVI. How the Earl was won
+ XXXVII. A Tale of a Turbot
+ XXXVIII. Condemned
+ XXXIX. Fox-hunting in Spinny Lane
+ XL. The Fox in his Earth
+ XLI. The Lobby of the House of Commons
+ XLII. Another Journey
+ XLIII. Playing Rounders
+ XLIV. Conclusion
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+THE BARONY OF DESMOND
+
+
+I wonder whether the novel-reading world--that part of it, at
+least, which may honour my pages-will be offended if I lay the plot
+of this story in Ireland! That there is a strong feeling against
+things Irish it is impossible to deny. Irish servants need not
+apply; Irish acquaintances are treated with limited confidence;
+Irish cousins are regarded as being decidedly dangerous; and Irish
+stories are not popular with the booksellers.
+
+For myself, I may say that if I ought to know anything about any
+place, I ought to know something about Ireland; and I do strongly
+protest against the injustice of the above conclusions. Irish
+cousins I have none. Irish acquaintances I have by dozens; and
+Irish friends, also, by twos and threes, whom I can love and
+cherish--almost as well, perhaps, as though they had been born in
+Middlesex. Irish servants I have had some in my house for years, and
+never had one that was faithless, dishonest, or intemperate. I have
+travelled all over Ireland, closely as few other men can have done,
+and have never had my portmanteau robbed or my pocket picked. At
+hotels I have seldom locked up my belongings, and my carelessness
+has never been punished. I doubt whether as much can be said for
+English inns.
+
+Irish novels were once popular enough. But there is a fashion in
+novels, as there is in colours and petticoats; and now I fear they
+are drugs in the market. It is hard to say why a good story should
+not have a fair chance of success whatever may be its bent; why it
+should not be reckoned to be good by its own intrinsic merits alone;
+but such is by no means the case. I was waiting once, when I was
+young at the work, in the back parlour of an eminent publisher,
+hoping to see his eminence on a small matter of business touching a
+three--volumed manuscript which I held in my hand. The eminent
+publisher, having probably larger fish to fry, could not see me, but
+sent his clerk or foreman to arrange the business.
+
+"A novel, is it, sir?" said the foreman.
+
+"Yes," I answered; "a novel."
+
+"It depends very much on the subject," said the foreman, with a
+thoughtful and judicious frown--"upon the name, sir, and the
+subject;--daily life, sir; that's what suits us; daily English
+life. Now, your historical novel, sir, is not worth the paper it's
+written on."
+
+I fear that Irish character is in these days considered almost as
+unattractive as historical incident; but, nevertheless, I will make
+the attempt. I am now leaving the Green Isle and my old friends, and
+would fain say a word of them as I do so. If I do not say that word
+now it will never be said.
+
+The readability of a story should depend, one would say, on its
+intrinsic merit rather than on the site of its adventures. No one
+will think that Hampshire is better for such a purpose than
+Cumberland, or Essex than Leicestershire. What abstract objection
+can there then be to the county Cork?
+
+Perhaps the most interesting, and certainly the most beautiful part
+of Ireland is that which lies down in the extreme south-west, with
+fingers stretching far out into the Atlantic Ocean. This consists of
+the counties Cork and Kerry, or a portion, rather, of those
+counties. It contains Killarney, Glengarriffe, Bantry, and
+Inchigeela; and is watered by the Lee, the Blackwater, and the
+Flesk. I know not where is to be found a land more rich in all that
+constitutes the loveliness of scenery.
+
+Within this district, but hardly within that portion of it which is
+most attractive to tourists, is situated the house and domain of
+Castle Richmond. The river Blackwater rises in the county Kerry, and
+running from west to east through the northern part of the county
+Cork, enters the county Waterford beyond Fermoy. In its course it
+passes near the little town of Kanturk, and through the town of
+Mallow: Castle Richmond stands close upon its banks, within the
+barony of Desmond, and in that Kanturk region through which the
+Mallow and Killarney railway now passes, but which some thirteen
+years since knew nothing of the navvy's spade, or even of the
+engineer's theodolite.
+
+Castle Richmond was at this period the abode of Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald, who resided there, ever and always, with his wife, Lady
+Fitzgerald, his two daughters, Mary and Emmeline Fitzgerald, and, as
+often as purposes of education and pleasure suited, with his son
+Herbert Fitzgerald. Neither Sir Thomas nor Sir Thomas's house had
+about them any of those interesting picturesque faults which are so
+generally attributed to Irish landlords, and Irish castles. He was
+not out of elbows, nor was he an absentee Castle Richmond had no
+appearance of having been thrown out of its own windows. It was a
+good, substantial, modern family residence, built not more than
+thirty years since by the late baronet, with a lawn sloping down to
+the river, with kitchen gardens and walls for fruit, with ample
+stables, and a clock over the entrance to the stable yard. It stood
+in a well timbered park duly stocked with deer,--and with foxes
+also, which are agricultural animals much more valuable in an Irish
+county than deer. So that as regards its appearance Castle Richmond
+might have been in Hampshire or Essex, and as regards his property,
+Sir Thomas Fitzgerald might have been a Leicestershire baronet.
+
+Here, at Castle Richmond, lived Sir Thomas with his wife and
+daughters, and here, taking the period of our story as being exactly
+thirteen years since, his son Herbert was staying also in those hard
+winter months, his Oxford degree having been taken, and his English
+pursuits admitting of a temporary sojourn in Ireland.
+
+But Sir Thomas Fitzgerald was not the great man of that part of the
+country--at least, not the greatest man; nor was Lady Fitzgerald by
+any means the greatest lady. As this greatest lady, and the greatest
+man also, will, with their belongings, be among the most prominent
+of our dramatis personae, it may be well that I should not even say
+a word of them.
+
+All the world must have heard of Desmond Court. It is the largest
+inhabited residence known in that part of the world, where rumours
+are afloat of how it covers ten acres of ground; how in hewing the
+stones for it a whole mountain was cut away; how it should have cost
+hundreds of thousands of pounds, only that the money was never paid
+by the rapacious, wicked, bloodthirsty old earl who caused it to be
+erected;--and how the cement was thickened with human blood. So
+goes rumour with the more romantic of the Celtic tale-bearers.
+
+It is a huge place--huge, ungainly, and uselessly extensive; built
+at a time when, at any rate in Ireland, men considered neither
+beauty, aptitude, nor economy. It is three stories high, and stands
+round a quadrangle, in which there are two entrances opposite to
+each other. Nothing can be well uglier than that great paved court,
+in which there is not a spot of anything green, except where the
+damp has produced an unwholesome growth upon the stones; nothing can
+well be more desolate. And on the outside of the building matters
+are not much better. There are no gardens close up to the house, no
+flower-beds in the nooks and corners, no sweet shrubs peeping in at
+the square windows. Gardens there are, but they are away, half a
+mile off; and the great hall door opens out upon a flat, bleak park,
+with hardly a scrap around it which courtesy can call a lawn.
+
+Here, at this period of ours, lived Clara, Countess of Desmond,
+widow of Patrick, once Earl of Desmond, and father of Patrick, now
+Earl of Desmond. These Desmonds had once been mighty men in their
+country, ruling the people around them as serfs, and ruling them
+with hot iron rods. But those days were now long gone, and tradition
+told little of them that was true. How it had truly fared either
+with the earl, or with their serfs, men did not well know; but
+stories were ever being told of walls built with human blood, and of
+the devil bearing off upon his shoulder a certain earl who was in
+any other way quite unbearable, and depositing some small unburnt
+portion of his remains fathoms deep below the soil in an old burying
+ground near Kanturk. And there had been a good earl, as is always
+the case with such families; but even his virtues, according to
+tradition, had been of a useless namby-pamby sort. He had walked to
+the shrine of St. Finbar, up in the little island of the Gougane
+Barra, with unboiled peas in his shoes; had forgiven his tenants
+five years' rent all round, and never drank wine or washed himself
+after the death of his lady wife.
+
+At the present moment the Desmonds were not so potent either for
+good or ill. The late earl had chosen to live in London all his
+life, and had sunk down to be the toadying friend, or perhaps I
+should more properly say the bullied flunky, of a sensual,
+wine-bibbing, gluttonous----king. Late in life when he was broken in
+means and character, he had married. The lady of his choice had been
+chosen as an heiress; but there had been some slip between that cup
+of fortune and his lip; and she, proud and beautiful, for such she
+had been--had neither relieved nor softened the poverty of her
+profligate old lord.
+
+She was left at his death with two children, of whom the eldest,
+Lady Clara Desmond, will be the heroine of this story. The youngest,
+Patrick, now Earl of Desmond, was two years younger than his sister,
+and will make our acquaintance as a lad fresh from Eton.
+
+In these days money was not plentiful with the Desmonds. Not but
+that their estates were as wide almost as their renown, and that the
+Desmonds were still great people in the country's estimation.
+Desmond Court stood in a bleak, unadorned region, almost among the
+mountains, halfway between Kanturk and Maccoom, and the family had
+some claim to possession of the land for miles around. The earl of
+the day was still the head landlord of a huge district extending
+over the whole barony of Desmond, and half the adjacent baronies of
+Muskerry and Duhallow; but the head landlord's rent in many cases
+hardly amounted to sixpence an acre, and even those sixpences did
+not always find their way into the earl's pocket. When the late earl
+had attained his sceptre, he might probably have been entitled to
+spend some ten thousand a-year; but when he died, and during the
+years just previous to that, he had hardly been entitled to spend
+anything.
+
+But, nevertheless, the Desmonds were great people, and owned a great
+name. They had been kings once over those wild mountains; and would
+be still, some said, if every one had his own. Their grandeur was
+shown by the prevalence of their name. The barony in which they
+lived was the barony of Desmond. The river which gave water to their
+cattle was the river Desmond. The wretched, ragged, poverty-stricken
+village near their own dismantled gate was the town of Desmond. The
+earl was Earl of Desmond--not Earl Desmond, mark you; and the family
+name was Desmond. The grandfather of the present earl, who had
+repaired his fortune by selling himself at the time of the Union,
+had been Desmond Desmond, Earl of Desmond.
+
+The late earl, the friend of the most illustrious person in the
+kingdom, had not been utterly able to rob his heir of everything, or
+he would undoubtedly have done so. At the age of twenty-one the
+young earl would come into possession of the property, damaged
+certainly, as far as an actively evil father could damage it by long
+leases, bad management, lack of outlay, and rack renting;--but still
+into the possession of a considerable property. In the mean time it
+did not fare very well, in a pecuniary way, with Clara, the widowed
+countess, or with the Lady Clara, her daughter. The means at the
+widow's disposal were only those which the family trustees would
+allow her as the earl's mother: on his coming of age she would have
+almost no means of her own; and for her daughter no provision
+whatever had been made.
+
+As this first chapter is devoted wholly to the locale of my story, I
+will not stop to say a word as to the persons or characters of
+either of these two ladies, leaving them, as I did the Castle
+Richmond family, to come forth upon the canvas as opportunity may
+offer. But there is another homestead in this same barony of
+Desmond, of which and of its owner--as being its owner--I will say a
+word.
+
+Hap House was also the property of a Fitzgerald. It had originally
+been built by an old Sir Simon Fitzgerald, for the use and behoof of
+a second son, and the present owner of it was the grandson of that
+man for whom it had been built. And old Sir Simon had given his
+offspring not only a house--he had endowed the house with a
+comfortable little slice of land, either out from the large
+patrimonial loaf, or else, as was more probable, collected together
+and separately baked for this younger branch of the family. Be that
+as it may, Hap House had of late years been always regarded as
+conferring some seven or eight hundred a-year upon its possessor,
+and when young Owen Fitzgerald succeeded to this property, on the
+death of an uncle in the year 1843, he was regarded as a rich man to
+that extent.
+
+At that time he was some twenty-two years of age, and he came down
+from Dublin, where his friends had intended that he should practise
+as a barrister, to set up for himself as a country gentleman. Hap
+House was distant from Castle Richmond about four miles, standing
+also on the river Blackwater, but nearer to Mallow. It was a
+pleasant, comfortable residence, too large no doubt for such a
+property, as is so often the case in Ireland; surrounded by pleasant
+grounds and pleasant gardens, with a gorse fox covert belonging to
+the place within a mile of it, with a slated lodge, and a pretty
+drive along the river. At the age of twenty-two, Owen Fitzgerald
+came into all this; and as he at once resided upon the place, he
+came in also for the good graces of all the mothers with unmarried
+daughters in the county, and for the smiles also of many of the
+daughters themselves.
+
+Sir Thomas and Lady Fitzgerald were not his uncle and aunt, but
+nevertheless they took kindly to him;--very kindly at first, though
+that kindness after a while became less warm. He was the nearest
+relation of the name; and should anything happen--as the fatal
+death-foretelling phrase goes--to young Herbert Fitzgerald, he
+would become the heir of the family title and of the family place.
+
+When I hear of a young man sitting down by himself as the master of
+a household, without a wife, or even without a mother or sister to
+guide him, I always anticipate danger. If he does not go astray in
+any other way, he will probably mismanage his money matters. And
+then there are so many other ways. A house, if it be not made
+pleasant by domestic pleasant things, must be made pleasant by
+pleasure. And a bachelor's pleasures in his own house are always
+dangerous. There is too much wine drunk at his dinner parties. His
+guests sit too long over their cards. The servants know that they
+want a mistress; and, in the absence of that mistress, the language
+of the household becomes loud and harsh--and sometimes improper.
+Young men among us seldom go quite straight in their course, unless
+they are, at any rate occasionally, brought under the influence of
+tea and small talk.
+
+There was no tea and small talk at Hap House, but there were
+hunting-dinners. Owen Fitzgerald was soon known for his horses and
+his riding. He lived in the very centre of the Duhallow hunt; and
+before he had been six months owner of his property had built
+additional stables, with half a dozen loose boxes for his friends'
+nags. He had an eye, too, for a pretty girl--not always in the way
+that is approved of by mothers with marriageable daughters; but in
+the way of which they so decidedly disapprove.
+
+And thus old ladies began to say bad things. Those pleasant
+hunting-dinners were spoken of as the Hap House orgies. It was
+declared that men slept there half the day, having played cards all
+the night; and dreadful tales were told. Of these tales one-half was
+doubtless false. But, alas, alas! what if one-half were also true?
+
+It is undoubtedly a very dangerous thing for a young man of
+twenty-two to keep house by himself, either in town or country.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER II
+
+OWEN FITZGERALD
+
+
+I have tied myself down to thirteen years ago as the time of my
+story; but I must go back a little beyond this for its first scenes,
+and work my way up as quickly as may be to the period indicated. I
+have spoken of a winter in which Herbert Fitzgerald was at home at
+Castle Richmond, having then completed his Oxford doings; but I must
+say something of two years previous to that, of a time when Herbert
+was not so well known in the country as was his cousin of Hap House.
+
+It was a thousand pities that a bad word should ever have been
+spoken of Owen Fitzgerald; ten thousand pities that he should ever
+have given occasion for such bad word. He was a fine, high-spirited,
+handsome fellow, with a loving heart within his breast, and bright
+thoughts within his brain. It was utterly wrong that a man
+constituted as he was should commence life by living alone in a
+large country-house. But those who spoke ill of him should have
+remembered that this was his misfortune rather than his fault. Some
+greater endeavour might perhaps have been made to rescue him from
+evil ways. Very little such endeavour was made at all. Sir Thomas
+once or twice spoke to him; but Sir Thomas was not an energetic man;
+and as for Lady Fitzgerald, though she was in many things all that
+was excellent, she was far too diffident to attempt the reformation
+of a headstrong young man, who after all was only distantly
+connected with her.
+
+And thus there was no such attempt, and poor Owen became the subject
+of ill report without any substantial effort having been made to
+save him. He was a very handsome man--tall, being somewhat over six
+feet in height--athletic, almost more than in proportion--with
+short, light chestnut-tinted hair, blue eyes, and a mouth perfect as
+that of Phoebus. He was clever, too, though perhaps not educated as
+carefully as might have been: his speech was usually rapid, hearty,
+and short, and not seldom caustic and pointed. Had he fallen among
+good hands, he might have done very well in the world's fight; but
+with such a character, and lacking such advantages, it was quite as
+open to him to do ill. Alas! the latter chance seemed to have fallen
+to him.
+
+For the first year of his residence at Hap House, he was popular
+enough among his neighbours. The Hap House orgies were not
+commenced at once, nor when commenced did they immediately become
+a subject of scandal; and even during the second year he was
+tolerated;--tolerated by all, and still flattered by some.
+
+Among the different houses in the country at which he had become
+intimate was that of the Countess of Desmond. The Countess of
+Desmond did not receive much company at Desmond Court. She had not
+the means, nor perhaps the will, to fill the huge old house with
+parties of her Irish neighbours--for she herself was English to the
+backbone. Ladies of course made morning calls, and gentlemen too,
+occasionally; but society at Desmond Court was for some years pretty
+much confined to this cold formal mode of visiting. Owen Fitzgerald,
+however, did obtain admittance into the precincts of the Desmond
+barracks.
+
+He went there first with the young earl, who, then quite a boy, had
+had an ugly tumble from his pony in the hunting-field. The countess
+had expressed herself as very grateful for young Fitzgerald's care,
+and thus an intimacy had sprung up. Owen had gone there once or
+twice to see the lad, and on those occasions had dined there; and on
+one occasion, at the young earl's urgent request, had stayed and
+slept.
+
+And then the good-natured people of Muskerry, Duhallow, and Desmond
+began, of course, to say that the widow was going to marry the young
+man. And why not? she was still a beautiful woman; not yet forty by
+a good deal, said the few who took her part; or at any rate, not
+much over, as was admitted by the many who condemned her. We, who
+have been admitted to her secrets, know that she was then in truth
+only thirty-eight. She was beautiful, proud, and clever; and if it
+would suit her to marry a handsome young fellow with a good house
+and an unembarrassed income of eight hundred a-year, why should she
+not do so? As for him, would it not be a great thing for him to have
+a countess for his wife, and an earl for his stepson?
+
+What ideas the countess had on this subject we will not just now
+trouble ourselves to inquire. But as to young Owen Fitzgerald, we
+may declare at once that no thought of such a wretched alliance ever
+entered his head. He was sinful in many things, and foolish in many
+things. But he had not that vile sin, that unmanly folly, which
+would have made a marriage with a widowed countess eligible in his
+eyes, merely because she was a countess, and not more than fifteen
+years his senior. In a matter of love he would as soon have thought
+of paying his devotions to his far-away cousin, old Miss Barbara
+Beamish, of Ballyclahassan, of whom it was said that she had set her
+cap at every unmarried man that had come into the west riding of the
+county for the last forty years. No; it may at any rate be said of
+Owen Fitzgerald, that he was not the man to make up to a widowed
+countess for the sake of the reflected glitter which might fall on
+him from her coronet.
+
+But the Countess of Desmond was not the only lady at Desmond Court.
+I have before said that she had a daughter, the Lady Clara, the
+heroine of this coming story; and it may be now right that I should
+attempt some short description of her; her virtues and faults, her
+merits and defects. It shall be very short; for let an author
+describe as he will, he cannot by such course paint the characters
+of his personages on the minds of his readers. It is by gradual,
+earnest efforts that this must be done--if it be done. Ten, nay,
+twenty pages of the finest descriptive writing that ever fell from
+the pen of a novelist will not do it.
+
+Clara Desmond, when young Fitzgerald first saw her, had hardly
+attained that incipient stage of womanhood which justifies a mother
+in taking her out into the gaieties of the world. She was then only
+sixteen; and had not in her manner and appearance so much of the
+woman as is the case with many girls of that age. She was shy and
+diffident in manner, thin and tall in person. If I were to say that
+she was angular and bony, I should disgust my readers, who,
+disliking the term, would not stop to consider how many sweetest
+girls are at that age truly subject to those epithets. Their
+undeveloped but active limbs are long and fleshless, the contour of
+their face is the same, their elbows and shoulders are pointed,
+their feet and hands seem to possess length without breadth. Birth
+and breeding have given them the frame of beauty, to which coming
+years will add the soft roundness of form, and the rich glory of
+colour. The plump, rosy girl of fourteen, though she also is very
+sweet, never rises to such celestial power of feminine grace as she
+who is angular and bony, whose limbs are long, and whose joints are
+sharp.
+
+Such was Clara Desmond at sixteen. But still, even then, to those
+who were gifted with the power of seeing, she gave promise of great
+loveliness. Her eyes were long and large, and wonderfully clear.
+There was a liquid depth in them which enabled the gazer to look
+down into them as he would into the green, pellucid transparency of
+still ocean water. And then they said so much--those young eyes of
+hers: from her mouth in those early years words came but scantily,
+but from her eyes questions rained quicker than any other eyes could
+answer them. Questions of wonder at what the world contained,--of
+wonder as to what men thought and did; questions as to the inmost
+heart, and truth, and purpose of the person questioned. And all this
+was asked by a glance now and again; by a glance of those long, shy,
+liquid eyes, which were ever falling on the face of him she
+questioned, and then ever as quickly falling from it.
+
+Her face, as I have said, was long and thin, but it was the longness
+and thinness of growing youth. The natural lines of it were full of
+beauty, of pale silent beauty, too proud in itself to boast itself
+much before the world, to make itself common among many. Her hair
+was already long and rich, but was light in colour, much lighter
+than it grew to be when some four or five more years had passed over
+her head. At the time of which I speak she wore it in simple braids
+brushed back from her forehead, not having as yet learned that
+majestic mode of sweeping it from her face which has in subsequent
+years so generally prevailed.
+
+And what then of her virtues and her faults--of her merits and
+defects? Will it not be better to leave them all to time and the
+coming pages? That she was proud of her birth, proud of being an
+Irish Desmond, proud even of her poverty, so much I may say of her,
+even at that early age. In that she was careless of the world's
+esteem, fond to a fault of romance, poetic in her temperament, and
+tender in her heart, she shared the ordinary--shall I say foibles or
+virtues?--of so many of her sex. She was passionately fond of her
+brother, but not nearly equally so of her mother, of whom the
+brother was too evidently the favoured child.
+
+She had lived much alone; alone, that is, with her governess and
+with servants at Desmond Court. Not that she had been neglected by
+her mother, but she had hardly found herself to be her mother's
+companion; and other companions there she had had none. When she was
+sixteen her governess was still with her; but a year later than that
+she was left quite alone, except inasmuch as she was with her
+mother.
+
+She was sixteen when she first began to ask questions of Owen
+Fitzgerald's face with those large eyes of hers; and she saw much of
+him and he of her, for the twelve months immediately after that.
+Much of him, that is, as much goes in this country of ours, where
+four or five interviews in as many months between friends is
+supposed to signify that they are often together. But this
+much-seeing occurred chiefly during the young earl's holidays. Now
+and again he did ride over in the long intervals, and when he did do
+so was not frowned upon by the countess; and so, at the end of the
+winter holidays subsequent to that former winter in which the earl
+had had his tumble, people through the county began to say that he
+and the countess were about to become man and wife.
+
+It was just then that people in the county were also beginning to
+talk of the Hay House orgies; and the double scandal reached Owen's
+ears, one shortly after the other. That orgies scandal did not hurt
+him much. It is, alas! too true that consciousness of such a
+reputation does not often hurt a young man's feelings. But the other
+rumour did wound him. What! he sell himself to a widowed countess
+almost old enough to be his mother; or bestow himself rather--for
+what was there in return that could be reckoned as a price? At any
+rate, he had given no one cause to utter such falsehood, such
+calumny as that. No; it certainly was not probable that he should
+marry the countess.
+
+But this set him to ask himself whether it might or might not be
+possible that he should marry some one else. Might it not be well
+for him if he could find a younger bride at Desmond Court? Not for
+nothing had he ridden over there through those bleak mountains; not
+for nothing, nor yet solely with the view of tying flies for the
+young earl's summer fishing, or preparing the new nag for his
+winter's hunting. Those large bright eyes had asked him many
+questions. Would it not be well that he should answer them?
+
+For many months of that year Clara Desmond had hardly spoken to him.
+Then, in the summer evening, as he and her brother would lie
+sprawling together on the banks of the little Desmond river, while
+the lad was talking of his fish, and his school, and his cricket
+club, she would stand by and listen, and so gradually she learned to
+speak.
+
+And the mother also would sometimes be there; or else she would
+welcome Fitzgerald in to tea, and let him stay there talking as
+though they were all at home, till he would have to make a midnight
+ride of it before he reached Hap House. It seemed that no fear as to
+her daughter had ever crossed the mother's mind; that no idea had
+ever come upon her that her favoured visitor might learn to love the
+young girl with whom he was allowed to associate on so intimate a
+footing. Once or twice he had caught himself calling her Clara, and
+had done so even before her mother; but no notice had been taken of
+it. In truth, Lady Desmond did not know her daughter, for the mother
+took her absolutely to be a child, when in fact she was a child no
+longer.
+
+"You take Clara round by the bridge," said the earl to his friend
+one August evening, as they were standing together on the banks of
+the river, about a quarter of a mile distant from the sombre old
+pile in which the family lived. "You take Clara round by the bridge,
+and I will get over the stepping-stones." And so the lad, with his
+rod in his hand, began to descend the steep bank.
+
+"I can get over the stepping-stones, too, Patrick," said she.
+
+"Can you though, my gay young woman? You'll be over your ankles if
+you do. That rain didn't come down yesterday for nothing."
+
+Clara as she spoke had come up to the bank, and now looked wistfully
+down at the stepping-stones. She had crossed them scores of times,
+sometimes with her brother, and often by herself. Why was it that
+she was so anxious to cross them now?
+
+"It's no use your trying," said her brother who was now half across,
+and who spoke from the middle of the river. "Don't you let her,
+Owen. She'll slip in, and then there will be no end of a row up at
+the house."
+
+"You had better come round by the bridge," said Fitzgerald. "It is
+not only that the stones are nearly under water, but they are wet,
+and you would slip."
+
+So cautioned, Lady Clara allowed herself to be persuaded, and turned
+upwards along the river by a little path that led to a foot bridge.
+It was some quarter of a mile thither, and it would be the same
+distance down the river again before she regained her brother.
+
+"I needn't bring you with me, you know," she said to Fitzgerald.
+"You can get over the stones easily, and I can go very well by
+myself."
+
+But it was not probable that he would let her do so. "Why should I
+not go with you?" he said. "When I get there I have nothing to do
+but see him fish. Only if we were to leave him by himself he would
+not be happy."
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald, how very kind you are are! I do so often think
+of it. How dull his holidays would be in this place if it were not
+for you!"
+
+"And what a godsend his holidays are to me!" said Owen. "When they
+come round I can ride over here and see him, and you--and your
+mother. Do you think that I am not dull also, living alone at Hap
+House, and that this is not an infinite blessing to me?"
+
+He had named them all--son, daughter, and mother; but there had been
+a something in his voice, an almost inappreciable something in his
+tone, which had seemed to mark to Clara's hearing that she herself
+was not the least prized of the three attractions. She had felt this
+rather than realized it, and the feeling was not unpleasant.
+
+"I only know that you are very goodnatured," she continued, "and
+that Patrick is very fond of you. Sometimes I think he almost takes
+you for a brother." And then a sudden thought flashed across her
+mind, and she said hardly a word more to him that evening.
+
+This had been at the close of the summer holidays. After that he had
+been once or twice at Desmond Court, before the return of the boy
+from Eton; but on these occasions he had been more with the countess
+than with her daughter On the last of these visits, just before the
+holidays commenced, he had gone over respective a hunter he had
+bought for Lord Desmond, and on this occasion he did not even see
+Clara.
+
+The countess, when she had thanked him for his trouble in the matter
+of the purchase, hesitated a moment, and then went on to speak of
+other matters.
+
+"I understand, Mr. Fitzgerald," said she, "that you have been very
+gay at Hap House since the hunting commenced."
+
+"Oh, I don't know," said Owen, half laughing and half blushing.
+"It's a convenient place for some of the men, and one must be
+sociable."
+
+"Sociable! yes, one ought to be sociable certainly. But I am always
+afraid of the sociability of young men without ladies. Do not be
+angry with me if I venture as a friend to ask you not to be too
+sociable."
+
+"I know what you mean, Lady Desmond. People have been accusing us
+of--of being rakes. Isn't that it?"
+
+"Yes, Mr. Fitzgerald, that is it. But then I know that I have no
+right to speak to you on such a--such a subject."
+
+"Yes, yes; you have every right," said he, warmly; "more right than
+any one else."
+
+"Oh no; Sir Thomas, you know----"
+
+"Well, yes, Sir Thomas. Sir Thomas is very ill, and so also is Lady
+Fitzgerald; but I do not feel the same interest about them that I do
+about you. And they are such humdrum, quiet-going people. As for
+Herbert, I'm afraid he'll turn out a prig."
+
+"Well, Mr. Fitzgerald, if you give me the right I shall use it." And
+getting up from her chair, and coming to him where he stood, she
+looked kindly into his face. It was a bonny, handsome face for a
+woman to gaze on, and there was much kindness in hers as she smiled
+on him. Nay, there was almost more than kindness, he thought, as he
+caught her eye. It was like,--almost like the sweetness of motherly
+love. "And I shall scold you," she continued. "People say that for
+two or three nights running men have been playing cards at Hap House
+till morning."
+
+"Yes, I had some men there for a week. I could not take their
+candles away, and put them to bed; could I, Lady Desmond?"
+
+"And there were late suppers, and drinking of toasts, and headaches
+in the morning, and breakfast at three o'clock, and gentlemen with
+very pale faces when they appeared rather late at the meet--eh, Mr.
+Fitzgerald?" And she held up one finger at him, as she upbraided him
+with a smile. The smile was so sweet, so unlike her usual look;
+that, to tell the truth, was often too sad and careworn for her age.
+
+"Such things do happen, Lady Desmond."
+
+"Ah, yes; they do happen. And with such a one as you, heaven knows I
+do not begrudge the pleasure, if it were but now and then,--once
+again and then done with. But you are too bright and too good for
+such things to continue." And she took his hand and pressed it, as a
+mother or a mother's dearest friend might have done. "It would so
+grieve me to think that you should be even in danger of shipwreck.
+
+"You will not be angry with me for taking this liberty?" she
+continued.
+
+"Angry! how could any man be angry for such kindness?"
+
+"And you will think of what I say. I would not have you unsociable,
+or morose, or inhospitable; but--"
+
+"I understand, Lady Desmond; but when young men are together, one
+cannot always control them."
+
+"But you will try. Say that you will try because I have asked you."
+
+He promised that he would, and then went his way, proud in his heart
+at this solicitude. And how could he not be proud? was she not high
+in rank, proud in character, beautiful withal, and the mother of
+Clara Desmond? What sweeter friend could a man have; what counsellor
+more potent to avert those dangers which now hovered round his head?
+
+And as he rode home he was half in love with the countess. Where is
+the young man who has not in his early years been half in love with
+some woman older, much older than himself, who has half conquered
+his heart by her solicitude for his welfare?--with some woman who
+has whispered to him while others were talking, who has told him in
+such gentle, loving tones of his boyish follies, whose tenderness
+and experience together have educated him and made him manly? Young
+men are so proud, proud in their inmost hearts, of such tenderness
+and solicitude, as long as it remains secret and wrapt, as it were,
+in a certain mystery. Such liaisons have the interests of intrigue,
+without--I was going to say without its dangers. Alas! it may be
+that it is not always so.
+
+Owen Fitzgerald as he rode home was half in love with the countess.
+Not that his love was of a kind which made him in any way desirous
+of marrying her, or of kneeling at her feet and devoting himself to
+her for ever; not that it in any way interfered with the other love
+which he was beginning to feel for her daughter. But he thought with
+pleasure of the tone of her voice, of the pressure of her hand, of
+the tenderness which he had found in her eye.
+
+It was after that time, as will be understood, that some goodnatured
+friend had told him that he was regarded in the county as the future
+husband of Lady Desmond. At first he laughed at this as being--as he
+himself said to himself--too good a joke. When the report first
+reached him, it seemed to be a joke which he could share so
+pleasantly with the countess. For men of three and twenty, though
+they are so fond of the society of women older than themselves,
+understand so little the hearts and feelings of such women. In his
+ideas there was an interval as of another generation between him and
+the countess. In her thoughts the interval was probably much less
+striking.
+
+But the accusation was made to him again and again till it wounded
+him, and he gave up that notion of a mutual joke with his kind
+friend at Desmond Court. It did not occur to him that she could ever
+think of loving him as her lord and master; but it was brought home
+to him that other people thought so.
+
+A year had now passed by since those winter holidays in which Clara
+Desmond had been sixteen, and during which she was described by
+epithets which will not, I fear, have pleased my readers. Those
+epithets were now somewhat less deserved, but still the necessity of
+them had not entirely passed away. Her limbs were still thin and
+long, and her shoulders pointed; but the growth of beauty had
+commenced, and in Owen's eyes she was already very lovely.
+
+At Christmas-time during that winter a ball was given at Castle
+Richmond, to celebrate the coming of age of the young heir. It was
+not a very gay affair, for the Castle Richmond folk, even in those
+days, were not very gay people. Sir Thomas, though only fifty, was
+an old man for his age; and Lady Fitzgerald, though known intimately
+by the poor all round her, was not known intimately by any but the
+poor. Mary and Emmeline Fitzgerald, with whom we shall become better
+acquainted as we advance in our story, were nice, good girls, and
+handsome withal; but they had not that special gift which enables
+some girls to make a party in their own house bright in spite of all
+obstacles.
+
+We should have but little to do with this ball, were it not that
+Clara Desmond was here first brought out, as the term goes. It was
+the first large party to which she had been taken, and it was to her
+a matter of much wonder and inquiry with those wondering, speaking
+eyes.
+
+And Owen Fitzgerald was there;--as a matter of course, the reader
+will say. By no means so. Previous to that ball Owen's sins had been
+commented upon at Castle Richmond, and Sir Thomas had expostulated
+with him. These expostulations had not been received quite so
+graciously as those of the handsome countess, and there had been
+anger at Castle Richmond.
+
+Now there was living in the house of Castle Richmond one Miss Letty
+Fitzgerald, a maiden sister of the baronet's, older than her brother
+by full ten years. In her character there was more of energy, and
+also much more of harsh judgment, and of consequent ill-nature, than
+in that of her brother. When the letters of invitation were being
+sent out by the two girls, she had given a decided opinion that the
+reprobate should not be asked. But the reprobate's cousins, with
+that partiality for a rake which is so common to young ladies, would
+not abide by their aunt's command, and referred the matter both to
+mamma and papa. Mamma thought it very hard that their own cousin
+should be refused admittance to their house, and very dreadful that
+his sins should be considered to be of so deep a dye as to require
+so severe a sentence; and then papa, much balancing the matter, gave
+final orders that the prodigal cousin should be admitted.
+
+He was admitted, and dangerously he used the privilege. The
+countess, who was there, stood up to dance twice, and twice only.
+She opened the ball with young Herbert Fitzgerald the heir; and in
+about an hour afterwards she danced again with Owen. He did not ask
+her twice; but he asked her daughter three or four times, and three
+or four times he asked her successfully.
+
+"Clara," whispered the mother to her child, after the last of these
+occasions, giving some little pull or twist to her girl's frock as
+she did so, "you had better not dance with Owen Fitzgerald again
+to-night. People will remark about it."
+
+"Will they?" said Clara, and immediately sat down, checked in her
+young happiness.
+
+Not many minutes afterwards, Owen came up to her again. "May we have
+another waltz together, I wonder?" he said.
+
+"Not to-night, I think. I am rather tired already." And so she did
+not waltz again all the evening, for fear she should offend him.
+
+But the countess, though she had thus interdicted her daughter's
+dancing with the master of Hap House, had not done so through
+absolute fear. To her, her girl was still a child; a child without a
+woman's thoughts, or any of a woman's charms. And then it was so
+natural that Clara should like to dance with almost the only
+gentleman who was not absolutely a stranger to her. Lady Desmond had
+been actuated rather by a feeling that it would be well that Clara
+should begin to know other persons.
+
+By that feeling,--and perhaps unconsciously by another, that it
+would be well that Owen Fitzgerald should be relieved from his
+attendance on the child, and enabled to give it to the mother.
+Whether Lady Desmond had at that time realized any ideas as to her
+own interest in this young man, it was at any rate true that she
+loved to have him near her. She had refused to dance a second time
+with Herbert Fitzgerald; she had refused to stand up with any other
+person who had asked her; but with Owen she would either have danced
+again, or have kept him by her side, while she explained to him with
+flattering frankness that she could not do so lest others should be
+offended.
+
+And Owen was with her frequently through the evening. She was taken
+to and from supper by Sir Thomas, but any other takings that were
+incurred were done by him. He led her from one drawing-room to
+another; he took her empty coffee-cup; he stood behind her chair,
+and talked to her; and he brought her the scarf which she had left
+elsewhere; and finally, he put a shawl round her neck while old Sir
+Thomas was waiting to hand her to her carriage. Reader,
+good-natured, middle-aged reader, remember that she was only
+thirty-eight, and that hitherto she had known nothing of the
+delights of love. By the young, any such hallucination on her part,
+at her years, will be regarded as lunacy, or at least frenzy.
+
+Owen Fitzgerald drove home from that ball in a state of mind that
+was hardly satisfactory. In the first place, Miss Letty had made a
+direct attack upon his morals, which he had not answered in the most
+courteous manner.
+
+"I have heard a great deal of your doings. Master Owen," she said to
+him. "A fine house you're keeping."
+
+"Why don't you come and join us, Aunt Letty?" he replied. "It would
+be just the thing for you."
+
+"God forbid!" said the old maid, turning up her eyes to heaven.
+
+"Oh, you might do worse, you know. With us you'd only drink and play
+cards, and perhaps hear a little strong language now and again. But
+what's that to slander, and calumny, and bearing false witness
+against one's neighbour?" and so saying he ended that interview--not
+in a manner to ingratiate himself with his relative, Miss Letty
+Fitzgerald.
+
+After that, in the supper-room, more than one wag of a fellow had
+congratulated him on his success with the widow. "She's got some
+some sort of a jointure, I suppose," said one. "She's very
+young-looking, certainly, to be the mother of that girl," declared
+another. "Upon my word, she's a handsome woman still," said a third.
+"And what title will you get when you marry her, Fitz?" asked a
+fourth, who was rather ignorant as to the phases under which the
+British peerage develops itself.
+
+Fitzgerald pshawed, and pished, and poohed; and then, breaking away
+from them, rode home. He felt that he must at any rate put an end to
+this annoyance about the countess, and that he must put an end also
+to his state of doubt about the countess's daughter. Clara had been
+kind and gracious to him in the first part of the evening; nay,
+almost more than gracious. Why had she been so cold when he went up
+to her on that last occasion? why had she gathered herself like a
+snail into its shell for the rest of the evening?
+
+The young earl had also been at the party, and had exacted a promise
+from Owen that he would be over at Desmond Court on the next day. It
+had almost been on Owen's lips to tell his friend, not only that he
+would be there, but what would be his intention when he got there.
+He knew that the lad loved him well; and almost fancied that, earl
+as he was, he would favour his friend's suit. But a feeling that
+Lord Desmond was only a boy, restrained him. It would not be well to
+induce one so young to agree to an arrangement of which in after and
+more mature years he would so probably disapprove.
+
+But not the less did Fitzgerald, as he drove home, determine that on
+the next day he would know something of his fate: and with this
+resolve he endeavoured to comfort himself as he drove up into his
+own avenue, and betook himself to his own solitary home.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+CLARA DESMOND
+
+
+It had been Clara Desmond's first ball, and on the following morning
+she had much to occupy her thoughts. In the first place, had she
+been pleased or had she not? Had she been most gratified or most
+pained?
+
+Girls when they ask themselves such questions seldom give themselves
+fair answers. She had liked dancing with Owen Fitzgerald; oh, so
+much! She had liked dancing with others too, though she had not
+known them, and had hardly spoken to them. The mere act of dancing,
+with the loud music in the room, and the gay dresses and bright
+lights around her, had been delightful. But then it had pained
+her--she knew not why, but it had pained her--when her mother told
+her that people would make remarks about her. Had she done anything
+improper on this her first entry into the world? Was her conduct to
+be scanned, and judged, and condemned, while she was flattering
+herself that no one had noticed her but him who was speaking to her?
+
+Their breakfast was late, and the countess sat, as was her wont,
+with her book beside her teacup, speaking a word every now and again
+to her son.
+
+"Owen will be over here to-day," said he. "We are going to have a
+schooling match down on the Callows." Now in Ireland a schooling
+match means the amusement of teaching your horses to jump.
+
+"Will he?" said Lady Desmond, looking up from her book for a moment.
+"Mind you bring him in to lunch; I want to speak to him."
+
+"He doesn't care much about lunch, I fancy," said he; "and, maybe,
+we shall be halfway to Millstreet by that time."
+
+"Never mind, but do as I tell you. You expect everybody to be as
+wild and wayward as yourself." And the countess smiled on her son in
+a manner which showed that she was proud even of his wildness and
+his waywardness.
+
+Clara had felt that she blushed when she heard that Mr. Fitzgerald
+was to be there that morning. She felt that her own manner became
+constrained, and was afraid that her mother should look at her. Owen
+had said nothing to her about love; and she, child as she was, had
+thought nothing about love. But she was conscious of something, she
+knew not what. He had touched her hand during those dances as it had
+never been touched before; he had looked into her eyes, and her eyes
+had fallen before his glance; he had pressed her waist, and she had
+felt that there was tenderness in the pressure. So she blushed, and
+almost trembled, when she heard that he was coming, and was glad in
+her heart when she found that there was neither anger nor sunshine
+in her mother's face.
+
+Not long after breakfast, the earl went out on his horse, and met
+Owen at some gate or back entrance. In his opinion the old house was
+stupid, and the women in it were stupid companions in the morning.
+His heart for the moment was engaged on the thought of making his
+animal take the most impracticable leaps which he could find, and it
+did not occur to him at first to give his mother's message to his
+companion. As for lunch, they would get a biscuit and glass of
+cherry-brandy at Wat M'Carthy's, of Drumban; and as for his mother
+having anything to say, that of course went for nothing.
+
+Owen would have been glad to have gone up to the house, but in that
+he was frustrated by the earl's sharpness in catching him. His next
+hope was to get through the promised lesson in horse-leaping as
+quickly as possible, so that he might return to Desmond Court, and
+take his chance of meeting Clara. But in this he found the earl very
+difficult to manage.
+
+"Oh, Owen, we won't go there," he said, when Fitzgerald proposed a
+canter through some meadows down by the river-side. "There are only
+a few gripes"--Irish for small ditches--"and I have ridden Fireball
+over them a score of times. I want you to come away towards
+Drumban."
+
+"Drumban! why, Drumban's seven miles from here."
+
+"What matter? Besides, it's not six the way I'll take you. I want to
+see Wat M'Carthy especially. He has a litter of puppies there out of
+that black bitch of his, and I mean to make him give me one of
+them."
+
+But on that morning, Owen Fitzgerald would not allow himself to be
+taken so far a-field as Drumban, even on a mission so important as
+this. The young lord fought the matter stoutly; but it ended by his
+being forced to content himself with picking out all the most
+dangerous parts of the fences in the river meadows.
+
+"Why, you've hardly tried your own mare at all," said the lad,
+reproachfully.
+
+"I'm going to hunt her on Saturday," said Owen; "and she'll have
+quite enough to do then."
+
+"Well, you're very slow to-day. You're done up with the dancing, I
+think. And what do you mean to do now?"
+
+"I'll go home with you, I think, and pay my respects to the
+countess."
+
+"By-the-by, I was to bring you in to lunch. She said she wanted to
+see you. By jingo, I forgot all about it! But you've all become very
+stupid among you, I know that." And so they rode back to Desmond
+Court, entering the demesne by one of the straight, dull, level
+roads which led up to the house.
+
+But it did not suit the earl to ride on the road while the grass was
+so near him; so they turned off with a curve across what was called
+the park, thus prolonging their return by about double the necessary
+distance.
+
+As they were cantering on, Owen saw her of whom he was in quest
+walking in the road which they had left. His best chance of seeing
+her alone had been that of finding her outside the house. He knew
+that the countess rarely or never walked with her daughter, and
+that, as the governess was gone, Clara was driven to walk by
+herself.
+
+"Desmond," he said, pulling up his horse, "do you go on and tell
+your mother that I will be with her almost immediately."
+
+"Why, where are you off to now?"
+
+"There is your sister, and I must ask her how she is after the
+ball;" and so saying he trotted back in the direction of the road.
+
+Lady Clara had seen them; and though she had hardly turned her head,
+she had seen also how suddenly Mr. Fitzgerald had stopped his horse,
+and turned his course when he perceived her. At the first moment she
+had been almost angry with him for riding away from her, and now she
+felt almost angry with him because he did not do so.
+
+He slackened his pace as he came near her, and approached her at a
+walk. There was very little of the faint heart about Owen Fitzgerald
+at any time, or in anything that he attempted. He had now made up
+his mind fairly to tell Clara Desmond that he loved her, and to ask
+for her love in return. He had resolved to do so, and there was very
+little doubt but that he would carry out his resolution. But he had
+in nowise made up his mind how he should do it, or what his words
+should be. And now that he saw her so near him he wanted a moment to
+collect his thoughts.
+
+He took off his hat as he rode up, and asked her whether she was
+tired after the ball; and then dismounting, he left his mare to
+follow as she pleased.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald, won't she run away?" said Clara, as she gave
+him her hand.
+
+"Oh no; she has been taught better than that. But you don't tell me
+how you are. I thought you were tired last night when I saw that you
+had altogether given over dancing." And then he walked on beside
+her, and the docile mare followed them like a dog.
+
+"No, I was not tired; at least, not exactly," said Clara, blushing
+again and again, being conscious that she blushed. "But--but--you
+know it was the first ball I was ever at."
+
+"That is just the reason why you should have enjoyed it the more,
+instead of sitting down as you did, and being dull and unhappy. For
+I know you were unhappy; I could see it."
+
+"Was I?" said Clara, not knowing what else to say.
+
+"Yes; and I'll tell you what. I could see more than that; it was I
+that made you unhappy."
+
+"You, Mr. Fitzgerald!"
+
+"Yes, I. You will not deny it, because you are so true. I asked you
+to dance with me too often. And because you refused me, you did not
+like to dance with any one else. I saw it all. Will you deny that it
+was so?"
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald!" Poor girl! She did not know what to say; how
+to shape her speech into indifference; how to assure him that he
+made himself out to be of too much consequence by far; how to make
+it plain that she had not danced because there was no one there
+worth dancing with. Had she been out for a year or two, instead of
+being such a novice, she would have accomplished all this in half a
+dozen words. As it was, her tell-tale face confessed it all, and she
+was only able to ejaculate, "Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald!"
+
+"When I went there last night," he continued, "I had only one
+wish--one hope. That was, to see you pleased and happy. I knew it
+was your first ball, and I did so long to see you enjoy it."
+
+"And so I did, till--"
+
+"Till what? Will you not let me ask?"
+
+"Mamma said something to me, and that stopped me from dancing."
+
+"She told you not to dance with me. Was that it?"
+
+How was it possible that she should have had a chance with him;
+innocent, young, and ignorant as she was? She did not tell him in
+words that so it had been; but she looked into his face with a
+glance of doubt and pain that answered his question as plainly as
+any words could have done.
+
+"Of course she did; and it was I that destroyed it all. I that
+should have been satisfied to stand still and see you happy. How you
+must have hated me!"
+
+"Oh no; indeed I did not. I was not at all angry with you. Indeed,
+why should I have been? It was so kind of you, wishing to dance with
+me."
+
+"No; it was selfish--selfish in the extreme. Nothing but one thing
+could excuse me, and that excuse--"
+
+"I'm sure you don't want any excuse, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"And that excuse, Clara, was this: that I love you with all my
+heart. I had not strength to see you there, and not long to have you
+near me--not begrudge that you should dance with another. I love you
+with all my heart and soul. There, Lady Clara, now you know it all."
+
+The manner in which he made his declaration to her was almost fierce
+in its energy. He had stopped in the pathway, and she, unconscious
+of what she was doing, almost unconscious of what she was hearing,
+had stopped also. The mare, taking advantage of the occasion, was
+cropping the grass close to them. And so, for a few seconds, they
+stood in silence.
+
+"Am I so bold, Lady Clara," said he, when those few seconds had gone
+by--"Am I so bold that I may hope for no answer?" But still she said
+nothing. In lieu of speaking she uttered a long sigh; and then
+Fitzgerald could bear that she was sobbing.
+
+"Oh, Clara, I love you so fondly, so dearly, so truly!" said he in
+an altered voice and with sweet tenderness. "I know my own
+presumption in thus speaking. I know and feel bitterly the
+difference in our rank."
+
+"I--care--nothing--for rank," said the poor girl, sobbing through
+her tears. He was generous, and she at any rate would not be less
+so. No; at that moment, with her scanty seventeen years of
+experience, with her ignorance of all that the world had in it of
+grand and great, of high and rich, she did care nothing for rank.
+That Owen Fitzgerald was a gentleman of good lineage, fit to mate
+with a lady, that she did know; for her mother, who was a proud
+woman, delighted to have him in her presence. Beyond this she cared
+for none of the conventionalities of life. Rank! If she waited for
+rank, where was she to look for friends who would love her? Earls
+and countesses, barons and their baronesses, were scarce there where
+fate had placed her, under the shadow of the bleak mountains of
+Muskerry. Her want, her undefined want, was that some one should
+love her. Of all men and women whom she had hitherto known, this
+Owen Fitzgerald was the brightest, the kindest, the gentlest in his
+manner, the most pleasant to look on. And now he was there at her
+feet, swearing that he loved her;--and then drawing back as it were
+in dread of her rank. What did she care for rank?
+
+"Clara, Clara, my Clara! Can you learn to love me?"
+
+She had made her one little effort at speaking when she attempted to
+repudiate the pedestal on which he affected to place her; but after
+that she could for a while say no more. But she still sobbed, and
+still kept her eyes fixed upon the ground.
+
+"Clara, say one word to me. Say that you do not hate me." But just
+at that moment she had not one word to say.
+
+"If you will bid me do so, I will leave this country altogether. I
+will go away, and I shall not much care whither. I can only stay now
+on condition of your loving me. I have thought of this day for the
+last year past, and now it has come."
+
+Every word that he now spoke was gospel to her. Is it not always
+so,--should it not be so always, when love first speaks to loving
+ears? What! he had loved her for that whole twelve-month that she
+had known him; loved her in those days when she had been wont to
+look up into his face, wondering why he was so nice, so much nicer
+than any one else that came near her! A year was a great deal to
+her; and had he loved her through all those days? and after that
+should she banish him from her house, turn him away from his home,
+and drive him forth unhappy and wretched? Ah, no! She could not be
+so unkind to him;--she could not be so unkind to her own heart. But
+still she sobbed; and still she said nothing.
+
+In the mean time they had turned, and were now walking back towards
+the house, the gentle-natured mare still following at their heels.
+They were walking slowly--very slowly back--just creeping along the
+path, when they saw Lady Desmond and her son coming to meet them on
+the road.
+
+"There is your mother, Clara. Say one word to me before we meet
+them."
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald; I am so frightened. What will mamma say?"
+
+"Say about what? As yet I do not know what she may have to say. But
+before we meet her, may I not hope to know what her daughter will
+say? Answer me this, Clara. Can you, will you love me?"
+
+There was still a pause, a moment's pause, and then some sound did
+fall from her lips. But yet it was so soft, so gentle, so slight,
+that it could hardly be said to reach even a lover's ear.
+Fitzgerald, however, made the most of it. Whether it were Yes, or
+whether it were No, he took it as being favourable, and Lady Clara
+Desmond gave him no sign to show that he was mistaken.
+
+"My own, own, only loved one," he said, embracing her, as it were,
+with his words, since the presence of her approaching mother forbade
+him even to take her hand in his, "I am happy now, whatever may
+occur; whatever others may say; for I know that you will be true to
+me. And remember this--whatever others may say, I also will be true
+to you. You will think of that, will you not, love?"
+
+This time she did answer him, almost audibly. "Yes," she said. And
+then she devoted herself to a vain endeavour to remove the traces of
+her tears before her mother should be close to them.
+
+Fitzgerald at once saw that such endeavour must be vain. At one time
+he had thought of turning away, and pretending that they had not
+seen the countess. But he knew that Clara would not be able to carry
+out any such pretence; and he reflected also that it might be just
+as well that Lady Desmond should know the whole at once. That she
+would know it, and know it soon, he was quite sure. She could learn
+it not only from Clara, but from himself. He could not now be there
+at the house without showing that he both loved and knew that he was
+beloved. And then why should Lady Desmond not know it? Why should he
+think that she would set herself against the match? He had certainly
+spoken to Clara of the difference in their rank; but, after all, it
+was no uncommon thing for an earl's daughter to marry a commoner.
+And in this case the earl's daughter was portionless, and the lover
+desired no portion. Owen Fitzgerald at any rate might boast that he
+was true and generous in his love.
+
+So he plucked up his courage, and walked on with a smiling face to
+meet Lady Desmond and her son; while poor Clara crept beside him
+with eyes downcast, and in an agony of terror.
+
+Lady Desmond had not left the house with any apprehension that there
+was aught amiss. Her son had told her that Owen had gone off "to do
+the civil to Clara;" and as he did not come to the house within some
+twenty minutes after this, she had proposed that they would go and
+meet him.
+
+"Did you tell him that I wanted him?" said the countess.
+
+"Oh yes, I did; and he is coming, only he would go away to Clara."
+
+"Then I shall scold him for his want of gallantry," said Lady
+Desmond, laughing, as they walked out together from beneath the huge
+portal.
+
+But as soon as she was near enough to see the manner of their gait,
+as they slowly came towards her, her woman's tact told her that
+something was wrong;--and whispered to her also what might too
+probably be the nature of that something. Could it be possible, she
+asked herself, that such a man as Owen Fitzgerald should fall in
+love with such a girl as her daughter Clara?
+
+"What shall I say to mamma?" whispered Clara to him, as they all
+drew near together.
+
+"Tell her everything."
+
+"But, Patrick--"
+
+"I will take him off with me if I can." And then they were all
+together, standing in the road.
+
+"I was coming to obey your behests, Lady Desmond," said Fitzgerald,
+trying to look and speak as though he were at his ease.
+
+"Coming rather tardily, I think," said her ladyship, not altogether
+playfully.
+
+"I told him you wanted him, as we were crossing to the house," said
+the earl. "Didn't I, Owen?"
+
+"Is anything the matter with Clara?" said Lady Desmond, looking at
+her daughter.
+
+"No, mamma," said Clara; and she instantly began to sob and cry.
+
+"What is it, sir?" And as she asked she turned to Fitzgerald; and
+her manner now at least had in it nothing playful.
+
+"Lady Clara is nervous and hysterical. The excitement of the ball
+has perhaps been too much for her. I think, Lady Desmond, if you
+were to take her in with you it would be well."
+
+Lady Desmond looked up at him; and he then saw, for the first time,
+that she could if she pleased look very stern. Hitherto her face had
+always worn smiles, had at any rate always been pleasing when he had
+seen it. He had never been intimate with her, never intimate enough
+to care what her face was like, till that day when he had carried
+her son up from the hall door to his room. Then her countenance had
+been all anxiety for her darling; and afterwards it had been all
+sweetness for her darling's friend. From that day to this present
+one, Lady Desmond had ever given him her sweetest smiles.
+
+But Fitzgerald was not a man to be cowed by any woman's looks. He
+met hers by a full, front face in return. He did not allow his eye
+for a moment to fall before hers. And yet he did not look at her
+haughtily, or with defiance, but with an aspect which showed that he
+was ashamed of nothing that he had done,--whether he had done
+anything that he ought to be ashamed of or no.
+
+"Clara," said the countess, in a voice which fell with awful
+severity on the poor girl's ears, "you had better return to the
+house with me."
+
+"Yes, mamma."
+
+"And shall I wait on you to-morrow, Lady Desmond?" said Fitzgerald,
+in a tone which seemed to the countess to be, in the present state
+of affairs, almost impertinent. The man had certainly been
+misbehaving himself, and yet there was not about him the slightest
+symptom of shame.
+
+"Yes; no," said the countess. "That is, I will write a note to you
+if it be necessary. Good morning."
+
+"Good-bye, Lady Desmond," said Owen. And as he took off his hat with
+his left hand, he put out his right to shake hands with her, as was
+customary with him. Lady Desmond was at first inclined to refuse the
+courtesy; but she either thought better of such intention, or else
+she had not courage to maintain it; for at parting she did give him
+her hand.
+
+"Good-bye, Lady Clara;" and he also shook hands with her, and it
+need hardly be said that there was a lover's pressure in the grasp.
+
+"Good-bye," said Clara, through her tears, in the saddest, soberest
+tone. He was going away, happy, light-hearted, with nothing to
+trouble him. But she had to encounter that fearful task of telling
+her own crime. She had to depart with her mother;--her mother, who,
+though never absolutely unkind, had so rarely been tender with her.
+And then her brother--!
+
+"Desmond," said Fitzgerald, "walk as far as the lodge with me like a
+good fellow. I have something that I want to say to you."
+
+The mother thought for a moment that she would call her son back;
+but then she bethought herself that she also might as well be
+without him. So the young earl, showing plainly by his eyes that he
+knew that much was the matter, went back with Fitzgerald towards the
+lodge.
+
+"What is it you have done now?" said the earl. The boy had some sort
+of an idea that the offence committed was with reference to his
+sister; and his tone was hardly as gracious as was usual with him.
+
+This want of kindliness at the present moment grated on Owen's ears;
+but he resolved at once to tell the whole story out, and then leave
+it to the earl to take it in dudgeon or in brotherly friendship as
+he might please.
+
+"Desmond," said he, "can you not guess what has passed between me
+and your sister?"
+
+"I am not good at guessing," he answered, brusquely.
+
+"I have told her that I loved her, and would have her for my wife;
+and I have asked her to love me in return."
+
+There was an open manliness about this which almost disarmed the
+earl's anger. He had felt a strong attachment to Fitzgerald, and was
+very unwilling to give up his friendship; but, nevertheless, he had
+an idea that it was presumption on the part of Mr. Fitzgerald of Hap
+House to look up to his sister. Between himself and Owen the earl's
+coronet never weighed a feather; he could not have abandoned his
+boy's heart to the man's fellowship more thoroughly had that man
+been an earl as well as himself. But he could not get over the
+feeling that Fitzgerald's worldly position was beneath that of his
+sister;--that such a marriage on his sister's part would be a
+mesalliance. Doubting, therefore, and in some sort dismayed--and in
+some sort also angry--he did not at once give any reply.
+
+"Well, Desmond, what have you to say to it? You are the head of her
+family, and young as you are, it is right that I should tell you."
+
+"Tell me! of course you ought to tell me. I don't see what youngness
+has to do with it. What did she say?"
+
+"Well, she said but little; and a man should never boast that a lady
+has favoured him. But she did not reject me." He paused a moment,
+and then added, "After all, honesty and truth are the best. I have
+reason to think that she loves me."
+
+The poor young lord felt that he had a double duty, and hardly knew
+how to perform it. He owed a duty to his sister which was paramount
+to all others; but then he owed a duty also to the friend who had
+been so kind to him. He did not know how to turn round upon him and
+tell him that he was not fit to marry his sister.
+
+"And what do you say to it, Desmond?"
+
+"I hardly know what to say. It would be a very bad match for her.
+You, you know, are a capital fellow; the best fellow going. There is
+nobody about anywhere that I like so much."
+
+"In thinking of your sister, you should put that out of the
+question."
+
+"Yes; that's just it. I like you for a friend better than any one
+else. But Clara ought--ought--ought--"
+
+"Ought to look higher, you would say."
+
+"Yes; that's just what I mean. I don't want to offend you, you
+know."
+
+"Desmond, my boy, I like you the better for it. You are a fine
+fellow, and I thoroughly respect you. But let us talk sensibly about
+this. Though your sister's rank is high--"
+
+"Oh, I don't want to talk about rank. That's all bosh, and I don't
+care about it. But Hap House is a small place, and Clara wouldn't be
+doing well; and what's more, I am quite sure the countess will not
+hear of it."
+
+"You won't approve, then?"
+
+"No, I can't say I will."
+
+"Well, that is honest of you. I am very glad that I have told you at
+once. Clara will tell her mother, and at any rate there will be no
+secrets. Good-bye, old fellow."
+
+"Good-bye," said the earl. Then they shook hands, and Fitzgerald
+rode off towards Hap House. Lord Desmond pondered over the matter
+some time, standing alone near the lodge; and then walked slowly
+back towards the mansion. He had said that rank was all bosh; and in
+so saying had at the moment spoken out generously the feelings of
+his heart. But that feeling regarded himself rather than his sister;
+and if properly analyzed would merely have signified that, though
+proud enough of his own rank, he did not require that his friends
+should be of the same standing. But as regarded his sister, he
+certainly would not be well pleased to see her marry a small squire
+with a small income.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+THE COUNTESS
+
+
+The countess, as she walked back with her daughter towards the
+house, had to bethink herself for a minute or two as to how she
+should act, and what she would say. She knew, she felt that she
+knew, what had occurred. If her daughter's manner had not told her,
+the downcast eyes, the repressed sobs, the mingled look of shame and
+fear;--if she had not read the truth from these, she would have
+learned it from the tone of Fitzgerald's voice, and the look of
+triumph which sat upon his countenance.
+
+And then she wondered that this should be so, seeing that she had
+still regarded Clara as being in all things a child; and as she
+thought further, she wondered at her own fatuity, in that she had
+allowed herself to be so grossly deceived.
+
+"Clara," said she, "what is all this?"
+
+"Oh, mamma!"
+
+"You had better come on to the house, my dear, and speak to me
+there. In the mean time, collect your thoughts, and remember this,
+Clara, that you have the honour of a great family to maintain."
+
+Poor Clara! what had the great family done for her, or how had she
+been taught to maintain its honour? She knew that she was an earl's
+daughter, and that people called her Lady Clara; whereas other young
+ladies were only called Miss So-and-So. But she had not been taught
+to separate herself from the ordinary throng of young ladies by any
+other distinction. Her great family had done nothing special for
+her, nor placed before her for example any grandly noble deeds. At
+that old house at Desmond Court company was scarce, money was
+scarce, servants were scarce. She had been confided to the care of a
+very ordinary governess; and if there was about her anything that
+was great or good, it was intrinsically her own, and by no means due
+to intrinsic advantages derived from her grand family. Why should
+she not give what was so entirely her own to one whom she loved, to
+one by whom it so pleased her to be loved?
+
+And then they entered the house, and Clara followed her mother to
+the countess's own small upstairs sitting-room. The daughter did not
+ordinarily share this room with her mother, and when she entered it,
+she seldom did so with pleasurable emotion. At the present moment
+she had hardly strength to close the door after her.
+
+"And now, Clara, what is all this?" said the countess, sitting down
+in her accustomed chair.
+
+"All which, mamma?" Can any one blame her in that she so far
+equivocated?
+
+"Clara, you know very well what I mean. What has there been between
+you and Mr. Fitzgerald?"
+
+The guilt-stricken wretch sat silent for a while, sustaining the
+scrutiny of her mother's gaze; and then falling from her chair on to
+her knees, she hid her face in her mother's lap, exclaiming, "Oh,
+mamma, mamma, do not look at me like that!"
+
+Lady Desmond's heart was somewhat softened by this appeal; nor would
+I have it thought that she was a cruel woman, or an unnatural
+mother. It had not been her lot to make an absolute, dearest,
+heartiest friend of her daughter, as some mothers do; a friend
+between whom and herself there should be, nay could be, no secrets.
+She could not become young again in sharing the romance of her
+daughter's love, in enjoying the gaieties of her daughter's balls,
+in planning dresses, amusements, and triumphs with her child. Some
+mothers can do this; and they, I think, are the mothers who enjoy
+most fully the delights of maternity. This was not the case with
+Lady Desmond; but yet she loved her child, and would have made any
+reasonable sacrifice for what she regarded as that child's welfare.
+
+"But, my dear," she said, in a softened tone, "you must tell me what
+has occurred. Do you not know that it is my duty to ask, and yours
+to tell me? It cannot be right that there should be any secret
+understanding between yourself and Mr. Fitzgerald. You know that,
+Clara, do you not?"
+
+"Yes, mamma," said Clara, remembering that her lover had bade her
+tell her mother everything.
+
+"Well, my love?"
+
+Clara's story was very simple, and did not, in fact, want any
+telling. It was merely the old well-worn tale, so common through all
+the world. "He had laughed on the lass with his bonny black eye!"
+and she,--she was ready to go "to the mountain to hear a love-tale!"
+One may say that an occurrence so very common could not want much
+telling.
+
+"Mamma; he says--"
+
+"Well, my dear?"
+
+"He says--. Oh, mamma! I could not help it."
+
+"No, Clara; you certainly could not help what he might say to you.
+You could not refuse to listen to him. A lady in such case, when she
+is on terms of intimacy with a gentleman, as you were with Mr.
+Fitzgerald, is bound to listen to him, and to give him an answer.
+You could not help what he might say, Clara. The question now is,
+what answer did you give to what he said?"
+
+Clara, who was still kneeling, looked up piteously into her mother's
+face, sighed bitterly, but said nothing.
+
+"He told you that he loved you, I suppose?"
+
+"Yes, mamma."
+
+"And I suppose you gave him some answer? Eh! my dear?"
+
+The answer to this was another long sigh.
+
+"But, Clara, you must tell me. It is absolutely necessary that I
+should know whether you have given him any hope, and if so, how
+much. Of course the whole thing must be stopped at once. Young as
+you are, you cannot think that a marriage with Mr. Owen Fitzgerald
+would be a proper match for you to make. Of course the whole thing
+must cease at once--at once." Here there was another piteous sigh.
+"But before I take any steps, I must know what you have said to him.
+Surely you have not told him that you have any feeling for him
+warmer than ordinary regard?"
+
+Lady Desmond knew what she was doing very well. She was perfectly
+sure that her daughter had pledged her troth to Owen Fitzgerald.
+Indeed, if she made any mistake in the matter, it was in thinking
+that Clara had given a more absolute assurance of love than had in
+truth been extracted from her. But she calculated, and calculated
+wisely, that the surest way of talking her daughter out of all hope,
+was to express herself as unable to believe that a child of hers
+would own to love for one so much beneath her, and to speak of such
+a marriage as a thing absolutely impossible. Her method of acting in
+this manner had the effect which she desired. The poor girl was
+utterly frightened, and began to fear that she had disgraced
+herself, though she knew that she dearly loved the man of whom her
+mother spoke so slightingly.
+
+"Have you given him any promise, Clara?"
+
+"Not a promise, mamma."
+
+"Not a promise! What then? Have you professed any regard for him?"
+But upon this Clara was again silent.
+
+"Then I suppose I must believe that you have professed a regard for
+him--that you have promised to love him?"
+
+"No, mamma; I have not promised anything. But when he asked me, I--I
+didn't--I didn't refuse him."
+
+It will be observed that Lady Desmond never once asked her daughter
+what were her feelings. It never occurred to her to inquire, even
+within her own heart, as to what might be most conducive to her
+child's happiness. She meant to do her duty by Clara, and therefore
+resolved at once to put a stop to the whole affair. She now desisted
+from her interrogatories, and sitting silent for a while, looked out
+into the extent of flat ground before the house. Poor Clara the
+while sat silent also, awaiting her doom.
+
+"Clara," said the mother at last, "all this must of course be made
+to cease. You are very young, very young indeed, and therefore I do
+not blame you. The fault is with him--with him entirely."
+
+"No, mamma."
+
+"But I say it is. He has behaved very badly, and has betrayed the
+trust which was placed in him when he was admitted here so
+intimately as Patrick's friend."
+
+"I am sure he has not intended to betray any trust," said Clara,
+through her sobs. The conviction was beginning to come upon her that
+she would be forced to give up her lover; but she could not bring
+herself to hear so much evil spoken of him.
+
+"He has not behaved like a gentleman," continued the countess,
+looking very stern. "And his visits here must of course be
+altogether discontinued. I am sorry on your brother's account, for
+Patrick was very fond of him--"
+
+"Not half so fond as I am," thought Clara to herself. But she did
+not dare to speak her thoughts out loud.
+
+"But I am quite sure that your brother, young as he is, will not
+continue to associate with a friend who has thought so slightly of
+his sister's honour. Of course I shall let Mr. Fitzgerald know that
+he can come here no more; and all I want from you is a promise that
+you will on no account see him again, or hold any correspondence
+with him."
+
+That was all she wanted. But Clara, timid as she was, hesitated
+before she could give a promise so totally at variance with the
+pledge which she felt that she had given, hardly an hour since, to
+Fitzgerald. She knew and acknowledged to herself that she had given
+him a pledge, although she had given it in silence. How then was she
+to give this other pledge to her mother?
+
+"You do not mean to say that you hesitate?" said Lady Desmond,
+looking as though she were thunderstruck at the existence of such
+hesitation. "You do not wish me to suppose that you intend to
+persevere in such insanity? Clara, I must have from you a distinct
+promise,--or--"
+
+What might be the dreadful alternative the countess did not at that
+minute say. She perhaps thought that her countenance might be more
+effective than her speech, and in thinking so she was probably
+right.
+
+It must be remembered that Clara Desmond was as yet only seventeen,
+and that she was young even for that age. It must be remembered
+also, that she knew nothing of the world's ways, of her own
+privileges as a creature with a soul and heart of her own, or of
+what might be the true extent of her mother's rights over her. She
+had not in her enough of matured thought to teach her to say that
+she would make no promise that should bind her for ever; but that
+for the present, in her present state, she would obey her mother's
+orders. And thus the promise was exacted and given.
+
+"If I find you deceiving me, Clara," said the countess, "I will
+never forgive you."
+
+Hitherto, Lady Desmond may probably have played her part
+well;--well, considering her object. But she played it very badly in
+showing that she thought it possible that her daughter should play
+her false. It was now Clara's turn to be proud and indignant.
+
+"Mamma!" she said, holding her head high, and looking at her mother
+boldly through her tears, "I have never deceived you yet."
+
+"Very well, my dear. I will take steps to prevent his intruding on
+you any further. There may be an end of the matter now. I have no
+doubt that he has endeavoured to use his influence with Patrick; but
+I will tell your brother not to speak of the matter further." And so
+saying, she dismissed her daughter.
+
+Shortly afterwards the earl came in, and there was a conference
+between him and his mother. Though they were both agreed on the
+subject, though both were decided that it would not do for Clara to
+throw herself away on a county Cork squire with eight hundred
+a-year, a cadet in his family, and a man likely to rise to nothing,
+still the earl would not hear him abused.
+
+"But, Patrick, he must not come here any more," said the countess.
+
+"Well, I suppose not. But it will be very dull, I know that. I wish
+Clara hadn't made herself such an ass;" and then the boy went away,
+and talked kindly over the matter to his poor sister.
+
+But the countess had another task still before her. She must make
+known the family resolution to Owen Fitzgerald. When her children
+had left her, one after the other, she sat at the window for an
+hour, looking at nothing, but turning over her own thoughts in her
+mind. Hitherto she had expressed herself as being very angry with
+her daughter's lover; so angry that she had said that he was
+faithless, a traitor, and no gentleman. She had called him a
+dissipated spendthrift, and had threatened his future wife, if ever
+he should have one, with every kind of misery that could fall to a
+woman's lot; but now she began to think of him perhaps more kindly.
+
+She had been very angry with him;--and the more so because she had
+such cause to be angry with herself;--with her own lack of judgment,
+her own ignorance of the man's character, her own folly with
+reference to her daughter. She had never asked herself whether she
+loved Fitzgerald--had never done so till now. But now she knew that
+the sharpest blow she had received that day was the assurance that
+he was indifferent to herself.
+
+She had never thought herself too old to be on an equality with
+him,--on such an equality in point of age as men and women feel when
+they learn to love each other; and therefore it had not occurred to
+her that he could regard her daughter as other than a child. To Lady
+Desmond, Clara was a child; how then could she be more to him? And
+yet now it was too plain that he had looked on Clara as a woman. In
+what light then must he have thought of that woman's mother? And so,
+with saddened heart, but subdued anger, she continued to gaze
+through the window till all without was dusk and dark.
+
+There can be to a woman no remembrance of age so strong as that of
+seeing a daughter go forth to the world a married woman. If that
+does not tell the mother that the time of her own youth has passed
+away, nothing will ever bring the tale home. It had not quite come
+to this with Lady Desmond;--Clara was not going forth to the world
+as a married woman. But here was one now who had judged her as fit
+to be so taken; and this one was the very man of all others in whose
+estimation Lady Desmond would have wished to drop a few of the years
+that encumbered her.
+
+She was not, however, a weak woman, and so she performed her task.
+She had candles brought to her, and sitting down, she wrote a note
+to Owen Fitzgerald, saying that she herself would call at Hap House
+at an hour named on the following day.
+
+She had written three or four letters before she had made up her
+mind exactly as to the one she would send. At first she had desired
+him to come to her there at Desmond Court; but then she thought of
+the danger there might be of Clara seeing him;--of the danger, also,
+of her own feelings towards him when he should be there with her, in
+her own house, in the accustomed way. And she tried to say by letter
+all that it behoved her to say, so that there need be no meeting.
+But in this she failed. One letter was stern and arrogant, and the
+next was soft-hearted, so that it might teach him to think that his
+love for Clara might yet be successful. At last she resolved to go
+herself to Hap House; and accordingly she wrote her letter and
+despatched it.
+
+Fitzgerald was of course aware of the subject of the threatened
+visit. When he determined to make his proposal to Clara, the matter
+did not seem to him to be one in which all chances of success were
+desperate. If, he thought, he could induce the girl to love him,
+other smaller difficulties might be made to vanish from his path. He
+had now induced the girl to own that she did love him; but not the
+less did he begin to see that the difficulties were far from
+vanishing. Lady Desmond would never have taken upon herself to make
+a journey to Hap House, had not a sentence of absolute banishment
+from Desmond Court been passed against him.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," she began, as soon as she found herself alone with
+him, "you will understand what has induced me to seek you here.
+After your imprudence with Lady Clara Desmond, I could not of course
+ask you to come to Desmond Court."
+
+"I may have been presumptuous, Lady Desmond, but I do not think that
+I have been imprudent. I love your daughter dearly and I told her
+so. Immediately afterwards I told the same to her brother; and she,
+no doubt, has told the same to you."
+
+"Yes, she has, Mr. Fitzgerald. Clara, as you are well aware, is a
+child, absolutely a child; much more so than is usual with girls of
+her age. The knowledge of this should, I think, have protected her
+from your advances."
+
+"But I absolutely deny any such knowledge. And more than that, I
+think that you are greatly mistaken as to her character."
+
+"Mistaken, sir, as to my own daughter?"
+
+"Yes, Lady Desmond; I think you are. I think--"
+
+"On such a matter, Mr. Fitzgerald, I need not trouble you for an
+expression of your thoughts. Nor need we argue that subject any
+further. You must of course be aware that all ideas of any such
+marriage as this must be laid aside."
+
+"On what grounds, Lady Desmond?"
+
+Now this appeared to the countess to be rather impudent on the part
+of the young squire. The reasons why he, Owen Fitzgerald of Hap
+House, should not marry a daughter of an Earl of Desmond, seemed to
+her to be so conspicuous and conclusive, that it could hardly be
+necessary to enumerate them. And such as they were, it might not be
+pleasant to announce them in his hearing. But though Owen Fitzgerald
+was so evidently an unfit suitor for an earl's daughter, it might
+still be possible that he should be acceptable to an earl's widow.
+Ah! if it might be possible to teach him the two lessons at the same
+time!
+
+"On what grounds, Mr. Fitzgerald!" she said, repeating his question;
+"surely I need hardly tell you. Did not my son say the same thing to
+you yesterday, as he walked with you down the avenue?"
+
+"Yes; he told me candidly that he looked higher for his sister; and
+I liked him for his candour, But that is no reason that I should
+agree with him; or, which is much more important, that his sister
+should do so. If she thinks that she can be happy in such a home as
+I can give her, I do not know why he or why you should object."
+
+"You think, then, that I might give her to a blacksmith, if she
+herself were mad enough to wish it?"
+
+"I thank you for the compliment, Lady Desmond."
+
+"You have driven me to it, sir."
+
+"I believe it is considered in the world," said he,--"that is, in
+our country, that the one great difference is between gentlemen and
+ladies, and those who are not gentlemen or ladies. A lady does not
+degrade herself if she marry a gentleman, even though that
+gentleman's rank be less high than her own."
+
+"It is not a question of degradation, but of prudence;--of the
+ordinary caution which I, as a mother, am bound to use as regards my
+daughter. Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald!" and she now altered her tone as she
+spoke to him; "we have all been so pleased to know you, so happy to
+have you there; why have you destroyed all this by one half-hour's
+folly?"
+
+"The folly, as you call it, Lady Desmond, has been premeditated for
+the last twelve months."
+
+"For twelve months!" said she, taken absolutely by surprise, and in
+her surprise believing him.
+
+"Yes, for twelve months. Ever since I began to know your daughter, I
+have loved her. You say that your daughter is a child. I also
+thought so this time last year, in our last winter holidays. I
+thought so then; and though I loved her as a child, I kept it to
+myself. Now she is a woman, and so thinking I have spoken to her as
+one. I have told her that I loved her, as I now tell you that come
+what may I must continue to do so. Had she made me believe that I
+was indifferent to her, absence, perhaps, and distance might have
+taught me to forget her. But such, I think, is not the case."
+
+"And you must forget her now."
+
+"Never, Lady Desmond."
+
+"Nonsense, sir. A child that does not know her own mind, that thinks
+of a lover as she does of some new toy, whose first appearance in
+the world was only made the other night at your cousin's house! you
+ought to feel ashamed of such a passion, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"I am very far from being ashamed of it, Lady Desmond."
+
+"At any rate, let me tell you this. My daughter has promised me most
+solemnly that she will neither see you again, nor have any
+correspondence with you. And this I know of her, that her word is
+sacred. I can excuse her on account of her youth; and, young as she
+is, she already sees her own folly in having allowed you so to
+address her. But for you, Mr. Fitzgerald, under all the
+circumstances I can make no excuse for you. Is yours, do you think,
+the sort of house to which a young girl should be brought as a
+bride? Is your life, are your companions of that kind which could
+most profit her? I am sorry that you drive me to remind you of these
+things."
+
+His face became very dark and his brow stern as his sins were thus
+cast into his teeth.
+
+"And from what you know of me, Lady Desmond," he said,--and as he
+spoke he assumed a dignity of demeanour which made her more inclined
+to love him than ever she had been before,--"do you think that I
+should be the man to introduce a young wife to such companions as
+those to whom you allude? Do you not know, are you not sure in your
+own heart, that my marriage with your daughter would instantly put
+an end to all that?"
+
+"Whatever may be my own thoughts, and they are not likely to be
+unfavourable to you--for Patrick's sake, I mean; but whatever may
+be my own thoughts, I will not subject my daughter to such a risk.
+And, Mr. Fitzgerald, you must allow me to say, that your income is
+altogether insufficient for her wants and your own. She has no
+fortune--"
+
+"I want none with her."
+
+"And--but I will not argue the matter with you. I did not come to
+argue it, but to tell you, with as little offence as may be
+possible, that such a marriage is absolutely impossible. My daughter
+herself has already abandoned all thoughts of it."
+
+"Her thoughts then must be wonderfully under her own control. Much
+more so than mine are."
+
+"Lord Desmond, you may be sure, will not hear of it."
+
+"Lord Desmond cannot at present be less of a child than his sister."
+
+"I don't know that, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"At any rate, Lady Desmond, I will not put my happiness, nor as far
+as I am concerned in it, his sister's happiness, at his disposal.
+When I told her that I loved her, I did not speak, as you seem to
+think, from an impulse of the moment. I spoke because I loved her;
+and as I love her, I shall of course try to win her. Nothing can
+absolve me from my engagement to her but her marriage with another
+person."
+
+The countess had once or twice made small efforts to come to terms
+of peace with him; or rather to a truce, under which there might
+still be some friendship between them,--accompanied, however, by a
+positive condition that Clara should be omitted from any
+participation in it. She would have been willing to say, "Let all
+this be forgotten, only for some time to come you and Clara cannot
+meet each other." But Fitzgerald would by no means agree to such
+terms; and the countess was obliged to leave his house, having in
+effect only thrown down a gauntlet of battle; having in vain
+attempted to extend over it an olive-branch of peace.
+
+He helped her, however, into her little pony carriage, and at
+parting she gave him her hand. He just touched it, and then, taking
+off his hat, bowed courteously to her as she drove from his door.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+THE FITZGERALDS OF CASTLE RICHMOND
+
+
+What idea of carrying out his plans may have been prevalent in
+Fitzgerald's mind when he was so defiant of the countess, it may be
+difficult to say. Probably he had no idea, but felt at the spur of
+the moment that it would be weak to yield. The consequence was, that
+when Lady Desmond left Hap House, he was obliged to consider himself
+as being at feud with the family.
+
+The young lord he did see once again during the holidays, and even
+entertained him at Hap House; but the earl's pride would not give
+way an inch.
+
+"Much as I like you, Owen, I cannot do anything but oppose it. It
+would be a bad match for my sister, and so you'd feel if you were in
+my place." And then Lord Desmond went back to Eton.
+
+After that they none of them met for many months. During this time
+life went on in a very triste manner at Desmond Court. Lady Desmond
+felt that she had done her duty by her daughter; but her tenderness
+to Clara was not increased by the fact that her foolish attachment
+had driven Fitzgerald from the place. As for Clara herself, she not
+only kept her word, but rigidly resolved to keep it. Twice she
+returned unopened, and without a word of notice, letters which Owen
+had caused to be conveyed to her hand. It was not that she had
+ceased to love him, but she had high ideas of truth and honour, and
+would not break her word. Perhaps she was sustained in her misery by
+the remembrance that heroines are always miserable.
+
+And then the orgies at Hap House became hotter and faster. Hitherto
+there had perhaps been more smoke than fire, more calumny than sin.
+And Fitzgerald, when he had intimated that the presence of a young
+wife would save him from it all, had not boasted falsely. But now
+that his friends had turned their backs upon him, that he was
+banished from Desmond Court, and twitted with his iniquities at
+Castle Richmond, he threw off all restraint, and endeavoured to
+enjoy himself in his own way. So the orgies became fast and furious;
+all which of course reached the ears of poor Clara Desmond.
+
+During the summer holidays, Lord Desmond was not at home, but Owen
+Fitzgerald was also away. He had gone abroad, perhaps with the
+conviction that it would be well that he and the Desmonds should not
+meet; and he remained abroad till the hunting season again
+commenced. Then the winter came again, and he and Lord Desmond used
+to meet in the field. There they would exchange courtesies, and, to
+a certain degree, show that they were intimate. But all the world
+knew that the old friendship was over. And, indeed, all the
+world--all the county Cork world--soon knew the reason. And so we
+are brought down to the period at which our story was to begin.
+
+We have hitherto said little or nothing of Castle Richmond and its
+inhabitants; but it is now time that we should do so, and we will
+begin with the heir of the family. At the period of which we are
+speaking, Herbert Fitzgerald had just returned from Oxford, having
+completed his affairs there in a manner very much to the
+satisfaction of his father, mother, and sisters; and to the
+unqualified admiration of his aunt, Miss Letty. I am not aware that
+the heads of colleges and supreme synod of Dons had signified by any
+general expression of sentiment, that Herbert Fitzgerald had so
+conducted himself as to be a standing honour and perpetual glory to
+the University; but at Castle Richmond it was all the same as though
+they had done so. There are some kindly-hearted, soft-minded
+parents, in whose estimation not to have fallen into disgrace shows
+the highest merit on the part of their children. Herbert had not
+been rusticated; had not got into debt, at least not to an extent
+that had been offensive to his father's pocket; he had not been
+plucked. Indeed, he had taken honours, in some low unnoticed
+degree;--unnoticed, that is, at Oxford; but noticed at Castle
+Richmond by an ovation--almost by a triumph.
+
+But Herbert Fitzgerald was a son to gladden a father's heart and a
+mother's eye. He was not handsome, as was his cousin Owen; not tall
+and stalwart and godlike in his proportions, as was the reveller of
+Hap House; but nevertheless, and perhaps not the less, was he
+pleasant to look on. He was smaller and darker than his cousin; but
+his eyes were bright and full of good humour. He was clean looking
+and clean made; pleasant and courteous in all his habits; attached
+to books in a moderate, easy way, but no bookworm; he had a gentle
+affection for bindings and title-pages; was fond of pictures, of
+which it might be probable that he would some day know more than he
+did at present; addicted to Gothic architecture, and already
+proprietor of the germ of what was to be a collection of coins.
+
+Owen Fitzgerald had called him a prig; but Herbert was no prig. Nor
+yet was he a pedant; which word might, perhaps, more nearly have
+expressed his cousin's meaning. He liked little bits of learning,
+the easy outsides and tags of classical acquirements, which come so
+easily within the scope of the memory when a man has passed some ten
+years between a public school and a university. But though he did
+love to chew the cud of these morsels of Attic grass which he had
+cropped, certainly without any great or sustained effort, he had no
+desire to be ostentatious in doing so, or to show off more than he
+knew. Indeed, now that he was away from his college friends, he was
+rather ashamed of himself than otherwise when scraps of quotations
+would break forth from him in his own despite. Looking at his true
+character, it was certainly unjust to call him either a prig or a
+pedant.
+
+He was fond of the society of ladies, and was a great favourite with
+his sisters, who thought that every girl who saw him must instantly
+fall in love with him. He was goodnatured, and, as the only son of a
+rich man, was generally well provided with money. Such a brother is
+usually a favourite with his sisters. He was a great favourite too
+with his aunt, whose heart, however, was daily sinking into her
+shoes through the effect of one great terror which harassed her
+respecting him. She feared that he had become a Puseyite. Now that
+means much with some ladies in England; but with most ladies of the
+Protestant religion in Ireland, it means, one may almost say, the
+very Father of Mischief himself. In their minds, the pope, with his
+lady of Babylon, his college of cardinals, and all his community of
+pinchbeck saints, holds a sort of second head-quarters of his own at
+Oxford. And there his high priest is supposed to be one wicked
+infamous Pusey, and his worshippers are wicked infamous Puseyites.
+Now, Miss Letty Fitzgerald was strong on this subject, and little
+inklings had fallen from her nephew which robbed her of much of her
+peace of mind.
+
+It is impossible that these volumes should be graced by any hero,
+for the story does not admit of one. But if there were to be a hero,
+Herbert Fitzgerald would be the man.
+
+Sir Thomas Fitzgerald at this period was an old man in appearance,
+though by no means an old man in years, being hardly more than
+fifty. Why he should have withered away, as it were, into premature
+greyness, and loss of the muscle and energy of life, none knew;
+unless, indeed, his wife did know. But so it was. He had, one may
+say, all that a kind fortune could give him. He had a wife who was
+devoted to him; he had a son on whom he doted, and of whom all men
+said all good things; he had two sweet, happy daughters; he had a
+pleasant house, a fine estate, position and rank in the world. Had
+it so pleased him, he might have sat in Parliament without any of
+the trouble, and with very little of the expense, which usually
+attends aspirants for that honour. And, as it was, he might hope to
+see his son in Parliament within a year or two. For among other
+possessions of the Fitzgerald family was the land on which stands
+the borough of Kilcommon, a borough to which the old Reform Bill was
+merciful, as it was to so many others in the south of Ireland.
+
+Why, then, should Sir Thomas Fitzgerald be a silent, melancholy man,
+confining himself for the last year or two almost entirely to his
+own study; giving up to his steward the care even of his own demesne
+and farm; never going to the houses of his friends, and rarely
+welcoming them to his; rarely as it was, and never as it would have
+been, had he been always allowed to have his own way?
+
+People in the surrounding neighbourhood had begun to say that Sir
+Thomas's sorrow had sprung from shortness of cash, and that money
+was not so easily to be had at Castle Richmond now-a-days as was the
+case some ten years since. If this were so, the dearth of that very
+useful article could not have in any degree arisen from
+extravagance. It was well known that Sir Thomas's estate was large,
+being of a value, according to that public and well-authenticated
+rent-roll which the neighbours of a rich man always carry in their
+heads, amounting to twelve or fourteen thousand a-year. Now Sir
+Thomas had come into the unencumbered possession of this at an early
+age, and had never been extravagant himself or in his family. His
+estates were strictly entailed, and therefore, as he had only a life
+interest in them, it of course was necessary that he should save
+money and insure his life, to make provision for his daughters. But
+by a man of his habits and his property, such a burden as this could
+hardly have been accounted any burden at all. That he did, however,
+in this mental privacy of his carry some heavy burden, was made
+plain enough to all who knew him.
+
+And Lady Fitzgerald was in many things a counterpart of her husband,
+not in health so much as in spirits. She, also, was old for her age,
+and woebegone, not only in appearance, but also in the inner
+workings of her heart. But then it was known of her that she had
+undergone deep sorrows in her early youth, which had left their mark
+upon her brow, and their trace upon her inmost thoughts. Sir Thomas
+had not been her first husband. When very young, she had been
+married, or rather, given in marriage, to a man who in a very few
+weeks after that ill-fated union had shown himself to be perfectly
+unworthy of her.
+
+Her story, or so much of it as was known to her friends, was this.
+Her father had been a clergyman in Dorsetshire, burdened with a
+small income, and blessed with a large family. She who afterwards
+became Lady Fitzgerald was his eldest child; and, as Miss Wainwright
+--Mary Wainwright--had grown up to be the possessor of almost
+perfect female loveliness. While she was yet very young, a widower
+with an only boy, a man who at that time was considerably less than
+thirty, had come into her father's parish, having rented there a
+small hunting-box. This gentleman--we will so call him, in lack of
+some other term--immediately became possessed of an establishment,
+at any rate eminently respectable. He had three hunters, two grooms,
+and a gig; and on Sundays went to church with a prayer-book in his
+hand, and a black coat on his back. What more could be desired to
+prove his respectability?
+
+He had not been there a month before he was intimate in the parson's
+house. Before two months had passed he was engaged to the parson's
+daughter. Before the full quarter had flown by, he and the parson's
+daughter were man and wife; and in five months from the time of his
+first appearance in the Dorsetshire parish, he had flown from his
+creditors, leaving behind him his three horses, his two grooms, his
+gig, his wife, and his little boy.
+
+The Dorsetshire neighbours, and especially the Dorsetshire ladies,
+had at first been loud in their envious exclamations as to Miss
+Wainwright's luck. The parson and the parson's wife, and poor Mary
+Wainwright herself, had, according to the sayings of that moment
+prevalent in the county, used most unjustifiable wiles in trapping
+this poor rich stranger. Miss Wainwright, as they all declared, had
+not clothes to her back when she went to him. The matter had been
+got up and managed in most indecent hurry, so as to rob the poor
+fellow of any chance of escape. And thus all manner of evil things
+were said, in which envy of the bride and pity of the bridegroom
+were equally commingled.
+
+But when the sudden news came that Mr Talbot had bolted, and when
+after a week's inquiry no one could tell whither Mr. Talbot had
+gone, the objurgations of the neighbours were expressed in a
+different tone. Then it was declared that Mr. Wainwright had
+sacrificed his beautiful child without making any inquiry as to the
+character of the stranger to whom he had so recklessly given her.
+The pity of the county fell to the share of the poor beautiful girl,
+whose welfare and happiness were absolutely ruined; and the parson
+was pulled to pieces for his sordid parsimony in having endeavoured
+to rid himself in so disgraceful a manner of the charge of one of
+his children.
+
+It would be beyond the scope of my story to tell here of the anxious
+family councils which were held in that parsonage parlour, during
+the time of that daughter's courtship. There had been misgivings as
+to the stability of the wooer; there had been an anxious wish not to
+lose for the penniless daughter the advantage of a wealthy match;
+the poor girl herself had been much cross-questioned as to her own
+feelings. But let them have been right, or let them have been wrong
+at that parsonage, the matter was settled, very speedily as we have
+seen; and Mary Wainwright became Mrs Talbot when she was still
+almost a child.
+
+And then Mr. Talbot bolted; and it became known to the Dorsetshire
+world that he had not paid a shilling for rent, or for butcher's
+meat for his human family, or for oats for his equine family, during
+the whole period of his sojourn at Chevychase Lodge. Grand
+references had been made to a London banker, which had been answered
+by assurances that Mr. Talbot was as good as the Bank of England.
+But it turned out that the assurances were forged, and that the
+letter of inquiry addressed to the London banker had been
+intercepted. In short, it was all ruin, roguery, and wretchedness.
+
+And very wretched they all were, the old father, the young bride,
+and all that parsonage household. After much inquiry something at
+last was discovered. The man had a sister whose whereabouts was made
+out; and she consented to receive the child--on condition that the
+bairn should not come to her empty-handed. In order to get rid of
+this burden, Mr. Wainwright with great difficulty made up thirty
+pounds.
+
+And then it was discovered that the man's name was not Talbot. What
+it was did not become known in Dorsetshire, for the poor wife
+resumed her maiden name--with very little right to do so, as her
+kind neighbours observed--till fortune so kindly gave her the
+privilege of bearing another honourably before the world.
+
+And then other inquiries, and almost endless search was made with
+reference to that miscreant--not quite immediately--for at the
+moment of the blow such search seemed to be but of little use; but
+after some months, when the first stupor arising from their grief
+had passed away, and when they once more began to find that the
+fields were still green, and the sun warm, and that God's goodness
+was not at an end.
+
+And the search was made not so much with reference to him as to his
+fate, for tidings had reached the parsonage that he was no more. The
+period was that in which Paris was occupied by the allied forces,
+when our general, the Duke of Wellington, was paramount in the
+French capital, and the Tuileries and Champs Elysees were swarming
+with Englishmen.
+
+Report at the time was brought home that the soidisant Talbot,
+fighting his battles under the name of Chichester, had been seen and
+noted in the gambling-houses of Paris; that he had been forcibly
+extruded from some such chamber for non-payment of a gambling debt;
+that he had made one in a violent fracas which had subsequently
+taken place in the French streets; and that his body had afterwards
+been identified in the Morgue.
+
+Such was the story which bit by bit reached Mr. Wainwright's ears,
+and at last induced him to go over to Paris, so that the absolute
+and proof-sustained truth of the matter might be ascertained, and
+made known to all men. The poor man's search was difficult and
+weary. The ways of Paris were not then so easy to an Englishman as
+they have since become, and Mr. Wainwright could not himself speak a
+word of French. But nevertheless he did learn much; so much as to
+justify him, as he thought, in instructing his daughter to wear a
+widow's cap. That Talbot had been kicked out of a gambling-house in
+the Rue Richelieu was absolutely proved. An acquaintance who had
+been with him in Dorsetshire on his first arrival there had seen
+this done; and bore testimony of the fact that the man so treated
+was the man who had taken the hunting-lodge in England. This same
+acquaintance had been one of the party adverse to Talbot in the row
+which had followed, and he could not, therefore, be got to say that
+he had seen him dead. But other evidence had gone to show that the
+man who had been so extruded was the man who had perished; and the
+French lawyer whom Mr. Wainwright had employed, at last assured the
+poor broken-hearted clergyman that he might look upon it as proved.
+"Had he not been dead," said the lawyer, "the inquiry which has been
+made would have traced him out alive." And thus his daughter was
+instructed to put on her widow's cap, and her mother again called
+her Mrs. Talbot.
+
+Indeed, at that time they hardly knew what to call her, or how to
+act in the wisest and most befitting manner. Among those who had
+truly felt for them in their misfortunes, who had really pitied them
+and encountered them with loving sympathy, the kindest and most
+valued friend had been the vicar of a neighbouring parish. He
+himself was a widower without children; but living with him at that
+time, and reading with him, was a young gentleman whose father was
+just dead, a baronet of large property, and an Irishman. This was
+Sir Thomas Fitzgerald.
+
+It need not now be told how this young man's sympathies were also
+excited, or how sympathy had grown into love. In telling our tale we
+fain would not dwell much on the cradledom of our Meleager. The
+young widow in her widow's cap grew to be more lovely than she had
+ever been before her miscreant husband had seen her. They who
+remembered her in those days told wondrous tales of her surprising
+loveliness;--how men from London would come down to see her in the
+parish church; how she was talked of as the Dorsetshire Venus, only
+that unlike Venus she would give a hearing to no man; how sad she
+was as well as lovely; and how impossible it was found to win a
+smile from her.
+
+But though she could not smile, she could love; and at last she
+accepted the love of the young baronet. And then the father, who had
+so grossly neglected his duty when he gave her in marriage to an
+unknown rascally adventurer, endeavoured to atone for such neglect
+by the severest caution with reference to this new suitor. Further
+inquiries were made. Sir Thomas went over to Paris himself with that
+other clergyman. Lawyers were employed in England to sift out the
+truth; and at last, by the united agreement of some dozen men, all
+of whom were known to be worthy, it was decided that Talbot was
+dead, and that his widow was free to choose another mate. Another
+mate she had already chosen, and immediately after this she was
+married to Sir Thomas Fitzgerald.
+
+Such was the early life-story of Lady Fitzgerald; and as this was
+widely known to those who lived around her--for how could such a
+life-story as that remain untold?--no one wondered why she should
+be gentle and silent in her life's course. That she had been an
+excellent wife, a kind and careful mother, a loving neighbour to the
+poor, and courteous neighbour to the rich, all the county Cork
+admitted. She had lived down envy by her gentleness and soft
+humility, and every one spoke of her and her retiring habits with
+sympathy and reverence.
+
+But why should her husband also be so sad--nay, so much sadder? For
+Lady Fitzgerald, though she was gentle and silent, was not a
+sorrowful woman--otherwise than she was made so by seeing her
+husband's sorrow. She had been to him a loving partner, and no man
+could more tenderly have returned a wife's love than he had done.
+One would say that all had run smoothly at Castle Richmond since the
+house had been made happy, after some years of waiting, by the birth
+of an eldest child and heir. But, nevertheless, those who knew most
+of Sir Thomas saw that there was a peacock on the wall.
+
+It is only necessary to say further a word or two as to the other
+ladies of the family, and hardly necessary to say that. Mary and
+Emmeline Fitzgerald were both cheerful girls. I do not mean that
+they were boisterous laughers, that in waltzing they would tear
+round a room like human steam-engines, that they rode well to hounds
+as some young ladies now-a-days do--and some young ladies do ride
+very well to hounds; nor that they affected slang, and decked their
+persons with odds and ends of masculine costume. In saying that they
+were cheerful, I by no means wish it to be understood that they were
+loud.
+
+They were pretty, too, but neither of them lovely, as their mother
+had been--hardly, indeed, so lovely as that pale mother was now,
+even in these latter days. Ah, how very lovely that pale mother was,
+as she sat still and silent in her own place on the small sofa by
+the slight, small table which she used! Her hair was grey, and her
+eyes sunken, and her lips thin and bloodless; but yet never shall I
+see her equal for pure feminine beauty, for form and outline, for
+passionless grace, and sweet, gentle, womanly softness. All her sad
+tale was written upon her brow; and its sadness and all its poetry.
+One could read there the fearful, all but fatal danger to which her
+childhood has been exposed, and the daily thanks with which she
+praised her God for having spared and saved her.
+
+But I am running back to the mother in attempting to say a word
+about her children. Of the two, Emmeline, the younger, was the more
+like her; but no one who was a judge of outline could imagine that
+Emmeline, at her mother's age, would ever have her mother's beauty.
+Nevertheless, they were fine, handsome girls, more popular in the
+neighbourhood than any of their neighbours, well educated, sensible,
+feminine, and useful; fitted to be the wives of good men.
+
+And what shall I say of Miss Letty? She was ten years older than her
+brother, and as strong as a horse. She was great at walking, and
+recommended that exercise strongly to all young ladies as an
+antidote to every ill, from love to chilblains. She was short and
+dapper in person; not ugly, excepting that her nose was long, and
+had a little bump or excrescence at the end of it. She always wore a
+bonnet, even at meal times; and was supposed by those who were not
+intimately acquainted with the mysteries of her toilet, to sleep in
+it; often, indeed, she did sleep in it, and gave unmusical evidence
+of her doing so. She was not ill-natured; but so strongly
+prejudiced on many points as to be equally disagreeable as though
+she were so. With her, as with the world in general, religion was
+the point on which those prejudices were the strongest; and the
+peculiar bent they took was horror and hatred of popery. As she
+lived in a country in which the Roman Catholic was the religion of
+all the poorer classes, and of very many persons who were not poor,
+there was ample scope in which her horror and hatred could work. She
+was charitable to a fault, and would exercise that charity for the
+good of Papists as willingly as for the good of Protestants; but in
+doing so she always remembered the good cause. She always clogged
+the flannel petticoat with some Protestant teaching, or burdened the
+little coat and trousers with the pains and penalties of idolatry.
+
+When her brother had married the widow Talbot, her anger with him
+and her hatred towards her sister-in-law had been extreme. But time
+and conviction had worked in her so thorough a change, that she now
+almost worshipped the very spot in which Lady Fitzgerald habitually
+sat. She had the faculty to know and recognize goodness when she saw
+it, and she had known and recognized it in her brother's wife.
+
+Him also, her brother himself, she warmly loved and greatly
+reverenced. She deeply grieved over his state of body and mind, and
+would have given all she ever had, even her very self, to restore
+him to health and happiness.
+
+The three children of course she loved, and petted, and scolded; and
+as children bothered them out of all their peace and quietness. To
+the girls she was still almost as great a torment as in their
+childish days. Nevertheless, they still loved, and sometimes obeyed
+her. Of Herbert she stood somewhat more in awe. He was the future
+head of the family, and already a Bachelor of Arts. In a very few
+years he would probably assume the higher title of a married man of
+arts, she thought; and perhaps the less formidable one of a member
+of Parliament also. Him, therefore, she treated with deference But,
+alas! what if he should become a Puseyite!
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+THE KANTURK HOTEL, SOUTH MAIN STREET, CORK
+
+
+All the world no doubt knows South Main Street in the city of Cork.
+In the "ould" ancient days, South and North Main Streets formed the
+chief thoroughfare through the city, and hence of course they
+derived their names. But now, since Patrick Street, and Grand
+Parade, and the South Mall have grown up, Main Street has but little
+honour. It is crowded with second-rate tobacconists and third-rate
+grocers; the houses are dirty, and the street is narrow; fashionable
+ladies never visit it for their shopping, nor would any respectable
+commercial gent stop at an inn within its purlieus.
+
+But here in South Main Street, at the time, of which I am writing,
+there was an inn, or public-house, called the Kanturk Hotel. In dear
+old Ireland they have some foibles, and one of them is a passion for
+high nomenclature. Those who are accustomed to the sort of
+establishments which are met with in England, and much more in
+Germany and Switzerland, under the name of hotels, might be
+surprised to see the place in South Main Street which had been
+dignified with the same appellation. It was a small, dingy house of
+three stories, the front door of which was always open, and the
+passage strewed with damp, dirty straw. On the left-hand side as you
+entered was a sitting-room, or coffee-room as it was announced to be
+by an appellation painted on the door. There was but one window to
+the room, which looked into the street, and was always clouded by a
+dingy-red curtain. The floor was uncarpeted, nearly black with dirt,
+and usually half covered with fragments of damp straw brought into
+it by the feet of customers. A strong smell of hot whisky and water
+always prevailed, and the straggling mahogany table in the centre of
+the room, whose rickety legs gave way and came off whenever an
+attempt was made to move it, was covered by small greasy circles,
+the impressions of the bottoms of tumblers which had been made by
+the overflowing tipple. Over the chimney there was a round mirror,
+the framework of which was bedizened with all manner of would-be
+gilt ornaments, which had been cracked, and twisted, and mended till
+it was impossible to know what they had been intended to represent;
+and the whole affair had become a huge receptacle of dust, which
+fell in flakes upon the chimney-piece when it was invaded. There was
+a second table opposite the window, more rickety than that in the
+centre; and against the wall opposite to the fireplace there was an
+old sideboard, in the drawers of which Tom, the one-eyed waiter,
+kept knives and forks, and candle-ends, and bits of bread, and
+dusters. There was a sour smell, as of old rancid butter, about the
+place, to which the guests sometimes objected, little inclined as
+they generally were to be fastidious. But this was a tender subject,
+and not often alluded to by those who wished to stand well in the
+good graces of Tom. Many things much annoyed Tom; but nothing
+annoyed him so fearfully as any assertion that the air of the
+Kanturk Hotel was not perfectly sweet and wholesome.
+
+Behind the coffee-room was the bar, from which Fanny O'Dwyer
+dispensed dandies of punch and goes of brandy to her father's
+customers from Kanturk. For at this, as at other similar
+public-houses in Irish towns, the greater part of the custom on
+which the publican depends came to him from the inhabitants of one
+particular country district. A large four-wheeled vehicle, called a
+long car, which was drawn by three horses, and travelled over a
+mountain road at the rate of four Irish miles an hour, came daily
+from Kanturk to Cork, and daily returned. This public conveyance
+stopped in Cork at the Kanturk Hotel, and was owned by the owner of
+that house, in partnership with a brother in the same trade located
+in Kanturk. It was Mr. O'Dwyer's business to look after this
+concern, to see to the passengers and the booking, the oats, and
+hay, and stabling, while his well-known daughter, the charming Fanny
+O'Dwyer, took care of the house, and dispensed brandy and whisky to
+the customers from Kanturk.
+
+To tell the truth, the bar was a much more alluring place than the
+coffee-room, and Fanny O'Dwyer a more alluring personage than Tom,
+the one-eyed waiter. This Elysium, however, was not open to all
+comers--not even to all comers from Kanturk. Those who had the right
+of entry well knew their privilege; and so also did they who had
+not. This sanctum was screened off from the passage by a window,
+which opened upwards conveniently, as is customary with bar-windows;
+but the window was blinded inside by a red curtain, so that Fanny's
+stool near the counter, her father's wooden armchair, and the old
+horsehair sofa on which favoured guests were wont to sit, were not
+visible to the public at large.
+
+Of the upstair portion of this establishment it is not necessary to
+say much. It professed to be an hotel, and accommodation for
+sleeping was to be obtained there; but the well-being of the house
+depended but little on custom of this class.
+
+Nor need I say much of the kitchen, a graphic description of which
+would not be pleasing. Here lived a cook, who, together with Tom the
+waiter, did all that servants had to do at the Kanturk Hotel. From
+this kitchen lumps of beef, mutton chops, and potatoes did
+occasionally emanate, all perfumed with plenteous onions; as also
+did fried eggs, with bacon an inch thick, and other culinary messes
+too horrible to be thought of. But drinking rather than eating was
+the staple of this establishment. Such was the Kanturk Hotel in
+South Main Street, Cork.
+
+It was on a disagreeable, cold, sloppy, raw, winter evening--an
+evening drizzling sometimes with rain, and sometimes with
+sleet--that an elderly man was driven up to the door of the hotel on
+a one-horse car--or jingle, as such conveniences were then called in
+the south of Ireland. He seemed to know the house, for with his
+outside coat all dripping as it was he went direct to the
+bar-window, and as Fanny O'Dwyer opened the door he walked into that
+warm precinct. There he encountered a gentleman, dressed one would
+say rather beyond the merits of the establishment, who was taking
+his ease at full length on Fanny's sofa, and drinking some hot
+compound which was to be seen in a tumbler on the chimney-shelf just
+above his head. It was now six o'clock in the evening, and the
+gentleman no doubt had dined.
+
+"Well, Aby; here I am, as large as life, but as cold as death. Ugh!
+what an affair that coach is! Fanny, my best of darlings, give me a
+drop of something that's best for warming the cockles of an old
+man's heart."
+
+"A young wife then is the best thing in life to do that, Mr.
+Mollett," said Fanny, sharply, preparing, however, at the same time
+some mixture which might be taken more instantaneously.
+
+"The governor's had enough of that receipt already," said the man on
+the sofa; or rather the man now off the sofa, for he had slowly
+arisen to shake hands with the new comer.
+
+This latter person proceeded to divest himself of his dripping
+greatcoat. "Here, Tom," said he, "bring your old Cyclops eye to bear
+this way, will you. Go and hang that up in the kitchen; not too near
+the fire, now; and get me something to eat: none of your mutton
+chops; but a beefsteak, if there is such a thing in this benighted
+place. Well, Aby, how goes on the war?"
+
+It was clear that the elderly gentleman was quite at home in his
+present quarters; for Tom, far from resenting such impertinence, as
+he would immediately have done had it proceeded from an ordinary
+Kanturk customer, declared "that he would do his honour's bidding av
+there was such a thing as a beefsteak to be had anywheres in the
+city of Cork."
+
+And indeed the elderly gentleman was a person of whom one might
+premise, judging by his voice and appearance, that he would probably
+make himself at home anywhere. He was a hale hearty man, of perhaps
+sixty years of age, who had certainly been handsome, and was even
+now not the reverse. Or rather, one may say, that he would have been
+so were it not that there was a low, restless, cunning legible in
+his mouth and eyes, which robbed his countenance of all manliness.
+He was a hale man, and well preserved for his time of life; but
+nevertheless, the extra rubicundity of his face, and certain
+incipient pimply excrescences about his nose, gave tokens that he
+lived too freely. He had lived freely; and were it not that his
+constitution had been more than ordinarily strong, and that constant
+exercise and exposure to air had much befriended him, those pimply
+excrescences would have shown themselves in a more advanced stage.
+Such was Mr. Mollett senior--Mr. Matthew Mollett, with whom it will
+be soon our fate to be better acquainted.
+
+The gentleman who had slowly risen from the sofa was his son, Mr.
+Mollett junior--Mr. Abraham Mollett, with whom also we shall become
+better acquainted. The father has been represented as not being
+exactly prepossessing; but the son, according to my ideas, was much
+less so. He also would be considered handsome by some persons--by
+women chiefly of the Fanny O'Dwyer class, whose eyes are capable of
+recognizing what is good in shape and form, but cannot recognize
+what is good in tone and character. Mr. Abraham Mollett was perhaps
+some thirty years of age, or rather more. He was a very smart man,
+with a profusion of dark, much-oiled hair, with dark, copious
+mustachoes--and mustachoes being then not common as they are now,
+added to his otherwise rakish, vulgar appearance--with various rings
+on his not well-washed hands, with a frilled front to his not lately
+washed shirt, with a velvet collar to his coat, and patent-leather
+boots upon his feet.
+
+Free living had told more upon him, young as he was, than upon his
+father. His face was not yet pimply, but it was red and bloated; his
+eyes were bloodshot and protruding; his hand on a morning was
+unsteady; and his passion for brandy was stronger than that for
+beefsteaks; whereas his father's appetite for solid food had never
+flagged. Those who were intimate with the family, and were observant
+of men, were wont to remark that the son would never fill the
+father's shoes. These family friends, I may perhaps add, were
+generally markers at billiard-tables, head grooms at race-courses,
+or other men of that sharp, discerning class. Seeing that I
+introduce these gentlemen to my readers at the Kanturk Hotel, in
+South Main Street, Cork, it may be perhaps as well to add that they
+were both Englishmen; so that mistakes on that matter may be
+avoided.
+
+The father, as soon as he had rid himself of his upper coat, his
+dripping hat, and his goloshes, stood up with his back to the
+bar-room fire, with his hands in his trousers-pockets, and the tails
+of his coat stuck inside his arms.
+
+"I tell you, Aby, it was cold enough outside that infernal coach.
+I'm blessed if I've a morsel of feeling in my toes yet. Why the
+d--don't they continue the railway on to Cork? It's as much as a
+man's life is worth to travel in that sort of way at this time of
+the year."
+
+"You'll have more of it, then, if you intend going out of town
+to-morrow," said the son.
+
+"Well; I don't know that I shall. I shall take a day to consider of
+it, I think."
+
+"Consideration be bothered," said Mollett, junior; "strike when the
+iron's hot, that's my motto."
+
+The father here turned half round to his son and winked at him,
+nodding his head slightly towards the girl, thereby giving token
+that, according to his ideas, the conversation could not be
+discreetly carried on before a third person.
+
+"All right," said the son, lifting his joram of brandy and water to
+his mouth; an action in which he was immediately imitated by his
+father, who had now received the means of doing so from the hands of
+the fair Fanny.
+
+"And how about a bed, my dear?" said Mollett senior; "that's a
+matter of importance too; or will be when we are getting on to the
+little hours."
+
+"Oh, we won't turn you out, Mr. Mollett," said Fanny; "we'll find a
+bed for you, never fear."
+
+"That's all right, then, my little Venus. And now if I had some
+dinner I'd sit down and make myself comfortable for the evening."
+
+As he said this Fanny slipped out of the room, and ran down into the
+kitchen to see what Tom and the cook were doing. The Molletts,
+father and son, were rather more than ordinary good customers at the
+Kanturk Hotel, and it was politic therefore to treat them well. Mr.
+Mollett junior, moreover, was almost more than a customer; and for
+the sake of the son Fanny was anxious that the father should be well
+treated.
+
+"Well, governor, and what have you done?" said the younger man in a
+low voice, jumping up from his seat as soon as the girl had left
+them alone.
+
+"Well, I've got the usual remittance from the man in Bucklersbury.
+That was all as right as a trivet."
+
+"And no more than that? Then I tell you what it is; we must be down
+on him at once."
+
+"But you forget that I got as much more last month, out of the usual
+course. Come, Aby, don't you be unreasonable."
+
+"Bother--I tell you, governor, if he don't----" And then Miss
+O'Dwyer returned to her sanctum, and the rest of the conversation
+was necessarily postponed.
+
+"He's managed to get you a lovely steak, Mr. Mollett," said Fanny,
+pronouncing the word as though it were written "steek." "And we've
+beautiful pickled walnuts; haven't we, Mr. Aby? and there'll be
+kidneys biled" (meaning potatoes) "by the time the 'steek's' ready.
+You like it with the gravy in, don't you, Mr. Mollett?" And as she
+spoke she drew a quartern of whisky for two of Beamish and
+Crawford's draymen, who stood outside in the passage and drank it at
+the bar.
+
+The lovely "steek" with the gravy in it--that is to say, nearly
+raw--was now ready, and father and son adjourned to the next room.
+"Well, Tom, my lad of wax; and how's the world using you?" said Mr.
+Mollett senior.
+
+"There ain't much difference, then," said Tom; "I ain't no younger,
+nor yet no richer than when yer honour left us--and what is't to be,
+sir?--a pint of stout, sir?"
+
+As soon as Mr. Mollett senior had finished his dinner, and Tom had
+brought the father and son materials for making whisky-punch, they
+both got their knees together over the fire, and commenced the
+confidential conversation which Miss O'Dwyer had interrupted on her
+return to the bar-room. They spoke now almost in a whisper, with
+their heads together over the fender, knowing from experience that
+what Tom wanted in eyes he made up in ears.
+
+"And what did Prendergast say when he paid you the rhino?" asked the
+son.
+
+"Not a word," said the other. "After all, I don't think he knows any
+more than a ghost what he pays it for: I think he gets fresh
+instructions every time. But, any ways, there it was, all right."
+
+"Hall right, indeed! I do believe you'd be satisfied to go on
+getting a few dribblets now and then like that. And then if anything
+'appened to you, why I might go fish."
+
+"How, Aby, look here--"
+
+"It's hall very well, governor; but I'll tell you what. Since you
+started off I've been thinking a good deal about it, and I've made
+up my mind that this shilly-shallying won't do any good: we must
+strike a blow that'll do something for us."
+
+"Well, I don't think we've done so bad already, taking it
+all-in-all."
+
+"Ah, that's because you haven't the pluck to strike a good blow.
+Now, I'll just let you know what I propose--and I tell you fairly,
+governor, if you'll not hear reason, I'll take the game into my own
+hands."
+
+The father looked up from his drink and scowled at his son, but said
+nothing in answer to this threat.
+
+"By G--I will!" continued Aby. "It's no use 'umbugging, and I mean
+to make myself understood. While you've been gone I've been down to
+that place."
+
+"You 'aven't seen the old man?"
+
+"No; I 'aven't taken that step yet; but I think it's very likely I
+may before long if you won't hear reason."
+
+"I was a d---fool, Aby, ever to let you into the affair at all.
+It's been going on quiet enough for the last ten years, till I let
+you into the secret."
+
+"Well, never mind about that. That mischief's done. But I think
+you'll find I'll pull you through a deal better than hever you'd
+have pulled through yourself. You're already making twice more out
+of it than you did before I knew it. As I was saying, I went down
+there; and in my quiet way I did just venture on a few hinquiries."
+
+"I'll be bound you did. You'll blow it all in about another month,
+and then it'll be up with the lot of us."
+
+"It's a beautiful place: a lovely spot; and hall in prime horder.
+They say it's fifteen thousand a-year, and that there's not a
+shilling howing on the whole property. Even in these times the
+tenants are paying the rent, when no one else, far and near, is
+getting a penny out of them. I went by another place on the road
+--Castle Desmond they call it, and I wish you'd seen the difference.
+The old boy must be rolling in money."
+
+"I don't believe it. There's one as I can trust has told me he's
+hard up enough sometimes. Why, we've had twelve hundred in the last
+eight months."
+
+"Twelve hundred! and what's that? But, dickens, governor, where has
+the twelve hundred gone? I've only seen three of it, and part of
+that--. Well; what do you want there, you long-eared shark, you?"
+These last words were addressed to Tom, who had crept into the room,
+certainly without much preparatory noise.
+
+"I was only wanting the thingumbob, yer honour," said Tom,
+pretending to search diligently in the drawer for some required
+article.
+
+"Then take your thingumbob quickly out of that, and be d---to you.
+And look here; if you don't knock at the door when next you come in,
+by heavens I'll throw this tumbler at your yead."
+
+"Sure and I will, yer honour," said Tom, withdrawing.
+
+"And where on hearth has the twelve hundred pounds gone?" asked the
+son, looking severely at the father.
+
+Old Mr. Mollett made no immediate answer in words, but putting his
+left hand to his right elbow, began to shake it.
+
+"I do wonder that you keep hon at that work," said Mollett junior,
+reproachfully. "You never by any chance have a stroke of luck."
+
+"Well, I have been unfortunate lately; but who knows what's coming?
+And I was deucedly sold by those fellows at the October meeting. If
+any chap ever was safe, I ought to have been safe then; but hang me
+if I didn't drop four hundred of Sir Thomas's shiners coolly on the
+spot. That was the only big haul I've had out of him all at once;
+and the most of it went like water through a sieve within
+forty-eight hours after I touched it." And then, having finished
+this pathetical little story of his misfortune, Mr. Mollett senior
+finished his glass of toddy.
+
+"It's the way of the world, governor; and it's no use sighing after
+spilt milk. But I'll tell you what I propose; and if you don't like
+the task yourself, I have no hobjection in life to take it into my
+own hands. You see the game's so much our own that there's nothing
+on hearth for us to fear."
+
+"I don't know that. If we were all blown, where should we be--"
+
+"Why, she's your own--"
+
+"H-h-sh, Aby. There's that confounded long-eared fellow at the
+keyhole, as sure as my name's Matthew; and if he hears you, the
+game's all up with a vengeance."
+
+"Lord bless you, what could he hear? Besides, talking as we are now,
+he wouldn't catch a word even if he were in the room itself. And now
+I'll tell you what it is; do you go down yourself, and make your way
+into the hold gentleman's room. Just send your own name in boldly.
+Nobody will know what that means, except himself."
+
+"I did that once before; and I never shall forget it."
+
+"Yes, you did it once before, and you have had a steady income to
+live on ever since; not such an income as you might have had. Not
+such an income as will do for you and me, now that we both know so
+well what a fine property we have under our thumbs. But,
+nevertheless, that little visit has been worth something to you."
+
+"Upon my word, Aby, I never suffered so much as I did that day. I
+didn't know till then that I had a soft heart."
+
+"Soft heart! Oh, bother. Such stuff as that always makes me sick. If
+I 'ate anything, it's maudlin. Your former visit down there did very
+well, and now you must make another, or else, by the holy poker!
+I'll make it for you."
+
+"And what would you have me say to him if I did manage to see him?"
+
+"Perhaps I'd better go--"
+
+"That's out of the question. He wouldn't see you, or understand who
+you were. And then you'd make a row, and it would all come out, and
+the fat would be in the fire."
+
+"Well, I guess I should not take it quite quiet if they didn't treat
+me as a gentleman should be treated. I ain't always over-quiet if
+I'm put upon."
+
+"If you go near that house at all I'll have done with it. I'll give
+up the game."
+
+"Well, do you go, at any rate first. Perhaps it may be well that I
+should follow after with a reminder. Do you go down, and just tell
+him this, quite coolly, remember--"
+
+"Oh, I shall be cool enough."
+
+"That, considering hall things, you think he and you ought to--"
+
+"Well?"
+
+"Just divide it between you; share and share alike. Say it's
+fourteen thousand--and it's more than that--that would be seven for
+him and seven for you. Tell him you'll agree to that, but you won't
+take one farthing less."
+
+"Aby!" said the father, almost overcome by the grandeur of his son's
+ideas.
+
+"Well; and what of Haby? What's the matter now?"
+
+"Expect him to shell out seven thousand pounds a-year!"
+
+"And why not? He'll do a deal more than that, I expect, if he were
+quite sure that it would make all things serene. But it won't; and
+therefore you must make him another hoffer."
+
+"Another offer!"
+
+"Yes. He'll know well enough that you'll be thinking of his death.
+And for all they do say he might pop off any day."
+
+"He's a younger man than me, Aby, by full ten years."
+
+"What of that? You may pop off any day too, mayn't you? I believe
+you old fellows don't think of dying nigh as hoften as we young
+ones."
+
+"You young ones are always looking for us old ones to go. We all
+know that well enough."
+
+"That's when you've got anything to leave behind you, which hain't
+the case with you, governor, just at present. But what I was saying
+is this. He'll know well enough that you can split upon his son
+hafter he's gone, every bit as well as you can split on him now."
+
+"Oh, I always looked to make the young gentleman pay up handsome, if
+so be the old gentleman went off the hooks. And if so be he and I
+should go off together like, why you'd carry on, of course. You'll
+have the proofs, you know."
+
+"Oh, I should, should I? Well, we'll look to them by-and-by. But
+I'll tell you what, governor, the best way is to make all that safe.
+We'll make him another hoffer--for a regular substantial family
+harrangement--"
+
+"A family arrangement, eh?"
+
+"Yes; that's the way they always manage things when great family
+hinterests is at stake. Let him give us a cool seven thousand a-year
+between us while he's alive; let him put you down for twenty
+thousand when he's dead--that'd come out of the young gentleman's
+share of the property, of course--and then let him give me his
+daughter Hemmeline, with another twenty thousand tacked on to her
+skirt-tail. I should be mum then for hever for the honour of the
+family."
+
+The father for a moment or two was struck dumb by the magnitude of
+his son's proposition. "That's what I call playing the game firm,"
+continued the son. "Do you lay down your terms before him,
+substantial, and then stick to 'em. 'Them's my terms, Sir Thomas,'
+you'll say. 'If you don't like 'em, as I can't halter, why in course
+I'll go elsewhere.' Do you be firm to that, and you'll see how the
+game'll go."
+
+"And you think he'll give you his daughter in marriage?"
+
+"Why not? I'm honest born, hain't I? And she's a bastard."
+
+"But, Aby, you don't know what sort of people these are. You don't
+know what her breeding has been."
+
+"D---her breeding. I know this: she'd get a deuced pretty fellow
+for her husband, and one that girls as good as her has hankered
+hafter long enough. It won't do, governor, to let people as is in
+their position pick and choose like. We've the hupper hand, and we
+must do the picking and choosing."
+
+"She'd never have you, Aby; not if her father went down on his knees
+to her to ask her."
+
+"Oh, wouldn't she? By heaven, then, she shall, and that without any
+kneeling at all. She shall have me, and be deuced glad to take me.
+What! she'd refuse a fellow like me when she knows that she and all
+belonging to her'd be turned into the streets if she don't have me!
+I'm clear of another way of thinking, then. My opinion is she'd come
+to me jumping. I'll tell you what, governor, you don't know the
+sex."
+
+Mr. Mollett senior upon this merely shook his head. Perhaps the fact
+was that he knew the sex somewhat better than his son. It had been
+his fate during a portion of his life to live among people who were,
+or ought to have been, gentlemen. He might have been such himself
+had he not gone wrong in life from the very starting-post. But his
+son had had no such opportunities. He did know and could know
+nothing about ladies and gentlemen.
+
+"You're mistaken, Aby," said the old man. "They'd never suffer you
+to come among them on such a footing as that. They'd sooner go forth
+to the world as beggars."
+
+"Then, by G--! they shall go forth as beggars. I've said it now,
+father, and I'll stick to it. You know the stuff I'm made of." As he
+finished speaking, he swallowed down the last half of a third glass
+of hot spirits and water, and then glared on his father with angry,
+blood-shot eyes, and a red, almost lurid face. The unfortunate
+father was beginning to know the son, and to feel that his son would
+become his master.
+
+Shortly after this they were interrupted; and what further
+conversation they had on the matter that night took place in their
+joint bedroom; to which uninviting retreat it is not now necessary
+that we should follow them.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+THE FAMINE YEAR
+
+
+They who were in the south of Ireland during the winter of 1846-47
+will not readily forget the agony of that period. For many, many
+years preceding and up to that time, the increasing swarms of the
+country had been fed upon the potato, and upon the potato only; and
+now all at once the potato failed them, and the greater part of
+eight million human beings were left without food.
+
+The destruction of the potato was the work of God; and it was
+natural to attribute the sufferings which at once overwhelmed the
+unfortunate country to God's anger--to his wrath for the misdeeds of
+which that country had been guilty. For myself, I do not believe in
+such exhibitions of God's anger. When wars come, and pestilence, and
+famine; when the people of a land are worse than decimated, and the
+living hardly able to bury the dead, I cannot coincide with those
+who would deprecate God's wrath by prayers. I do not believe that
+our God stalks darkly along the clouds, laying thousands low with
+the arrows of death, and those thousands the most ignorant, because
+men who are not ignorant have displeased Him. Nor, if in his wisdom
+He did do so, can I think that men's prayers would hinder that which
+his wisdom had seen to be good and right.
+
+But though I do not believe in exhibitions of God's anger, I do
+believe in exhibitions of his mercy. When men by their folly and by
+the shortness of their vision have brought upon themselves penalties
+which seem to be overwhelming, to which no end can be seen, which
+would be overwhelming were no aid coming to us but our own, then God
+raises his hand, not in anger, but in mercy, and by his wisdom does
+for us that for which our own wisdom has been insufficient.
+
+But on no Christian basis can I understand the justice or
+acknowledge the propriety of asking our Lord to abate his wrath in
+detail, or to alter his settled purpose. If He be wise, would we
+change his wisdom? If He be merciful, would we limit his mercy?
+There comes upon us some strange disease, and we bid Him to stay his
+hand. But the disease, when it has passed by, has taught us lessons
+of cleanliness, which no master less stern would have made
+acceptable. A famine strikes us, and we again beg that that hand may
+be stayed;--beg as the Greeks were said to beg when they thought
+that the anger of Phoebus was hot against them because his priest
+had been dishonoured. We so beg, thinking that God's anger is hot
+also against us. But, lo! the famine passes by, and a land that had
+been brought to the dust by man's folly is once more prosperous and
+happy.
+
+If this was ever so in the world's history, it was so in Ireland at
+the time of which I am speaking. The country, especially in the
+south and west, had been brought to a terrible pass;--not, as so
+many said and do say, by the idolatry of popery, or by the sedition
+of demagogues, or even mainly by the idleness of the people. The
+idolatry of popery, to my way of thinking, is bad; though not so bad
+in Ireland as in most other Papist countries that I have visited.
+Sedition also is bad; but in Ireland, in late years, it has not been
+deep-seated--as may have been noted at Ballingarry and other
+places, where endeavour was made to bring sedition to its proof. And
+as for the idleness of Ireland's people, I am inclined to think they
+will work under the same compulsion and same persuasion which
+produce work in other countries.
+
+The fault had been the lowness of education and consequent want of
+principle among the middle classes; and this fault had been found as
+strongly marked among the Protestants as it had been among the Roman
+Catholics. Young men were brought up to do nothing. Property was
+regarded as having no duties attached to it. Men became rapacious,
+and determined to extract the uttermost farthing out of the land
+within their power, let the consequences to the people on that land
+be what they might.
+
+We used to hear much of absentees. It was not the absence of the
+absentees that did the damage, but the presence of those they left
+behind them on the soil. The scourge of Ireland was the existence of
+a class who looked to be gentlemen living on their property, but who
+should have earned their bread by the work of their brain, or,
+failing that, by the sweat of their brow. There were men to be found
+in shoals through the country speaking of their properties and
+boasting of their places, but who owned no properties and had no
+places when the matter came to be properly sifted.
+
+Most Englishmen have heard of profit-rent. In Ireland the term is so
+common that no man cannot have heard of it. It may, of course,
+designate a very becoming sort of income. A man may, for instance,
+take a plot of land for one hundred pounds a-year, improve and build
+on it till it be fairly worth one thousand pounds a-year, and thus
+enjoy a profit-rent of nine hundred pounds. Nothing can be better or
+fairer. But in Ireland the management was very different. Men there
+held tracts of ground, very often at their full value, paying for
+them such proportion of rent as a farmer could afford to pay in
+England and live. But the Irish tenant would by no means consent to
+be a farmer. It was needful to him that he should be a gentleman,
+and that his sons should be taught to live and amuse themselves as
+the sons of gentlemen--barring any such small trifle as education.
+They did live in this way; and to enable them to do so, they
+underlet their land in small patches, and at an amount of rent to
+collect which took the whole labour of their tenants, and the whole
+produce of the small patch, over and above the quantity of potatoes
+absolutely necessary to keep that tenant's body and soul together.
+
+And thus a state of things was engendered in Ireland which
+discouraged labour, which discouraged improvements in farming, which
+discouraged any produce from the land except the potato crop; which
+maintained one class of men in what they considered to be the
+gentility of idleness, and another class, the people of the country,
+in the abjectness of poverty.
+
+It is with thorough rejoicing, almost with triumph, that I declare
+that the idle, genteel class has been cut up root and branch, has
+been driven forth out of its holding into the wide world, and has
+been punished with the penalty of extermination. The poor cotter
+suffered sorely under the famine, and under the pestilence which
+followed the famine; but he, as a class, has risen from his bed of
+suffering a better man. He is thriving as a labourer either in his
+own country or in some newer--for him better--land to which he has
+emigrated. He, even in Ireland, can now get eight and nine shillings
+a-week easier and with more constancy than he could get four some
+fifteen years since. But the other man has gone, and his place is
+left happily vacant.
+
+There are an infinite number of smaller bearings in which this
+question of the famine, and of agricultural distress in Ireland, may
+be regarded, and should be regarded by those who wish to understand
+it. The manner in which the Poor Law was first rejected and then
+accepted, and then, if one may say so, swallowed whole by the
+people; the way in which emigration has affected them; the
+difference in the system of labour there from that here, which in
+former days was so strong that an agricultural labourer living on
+his wages and buying food with them, was a person hardly to be
+found: all these things must be regarded by one who would understand
+the matter. But seeing that this book of mine is a novel, I have
+perhaps already written more on a dry subject than many will read.
+
+Such having been the state of the country, such its wretchedness, a
+merciful God sent the remedy which might avail to arrest it; and
+we--we deprecated his wrath. But all this will soon be known and
+acknowledged; acknowledged as it is acknowledged that new cities
+rise up in splendour from the ashes into which old cities have been
+consumed by fire. If this beneficent agency did not from time to
+time disencumber our crowded places, we should ever be living in
+narrow alleys with stinking gutters, and supply of water at the
+minimum.
+
+But very frightful are the flames as they rush through the chambers
+of the poor, and very frightful was the course of that violent
+remedy which brought Ireland out of its misfortunes. Those who saw
+its course, and watched its victims, will not readily forget what
+they saw.
+
+Slowly, gradually, and with a voice that was for a long time
+discredited, the news spread itself through the country that the
+food of the people was gone. That his own crop was rotten and
+useless each cotter quickly knew, and realized the idea that he must
+work for wages if he could get them, or else go to the poorhouse.
+That the crop of his parish or district was gone became evident to
+the priest, and the parson, and the squire; and they realized the
+idea that they must fall on other parishes or other districts for
+support. But it was long before the fact made itself known that
+there was no food in any parish, in any district.
+
+When this was understood, men certainly did put their shoulders to
+the wheel with a great effort. Much abuse at the time was thrown
+upon the government; and they who took upon themselves the
+management of the relief of the poor in the south-west were taken
+most severely to task. I was in the country, travelling always
+through it, during the whole period, and I have to say--as I did say
+at the time with a voice that was not very audible--that in my
+opinion the measures of the government were prompt, wise, and
+beneficent; and I have to say also that the efforts of those who
+managed the poor were, as a rule, unremitting, honest, impartial,
+and successful.
+
+The feeding of four million starving people with food, to be brought
+from foreign lands, is not an easy job. No government could bring
+the food itself; but by striving to do so it might effectually
+prevent such bringing on the part of others. Nor when the food was
+there, on the quays, was it easy to put it, in due proportions, into
+the four million mouths. Some mouths, and they, alas! the weaker
+ones, would remain unfed. But the opportunity was a good one for
+slashing philanthropical censure; and then the business of the
+slashing, censorious philanthropist is so easy, so exciting, and so
+pleasant!
+
+I think that no portion of Ireland suffered more severely during the
+famine than the counties Cork and Kerry. The poorest parts were
+perhaps the parishes lying back from the sea and near to the
+mountains; and in the midst of such a district Desmond Court was
+situated. The region immediately round Castle Richmond was perhaps
+better. The tenants there had more means at their disposal, and did
+not depend so absolutely on the potato crop; but even round Castle
+Richmond the distress was very severe.
+
+Early in the year relief committees were formed, on one of which
+young Herbert Fitzgerald agreed to act. His father promised, and was
+prepared to give his best assistance, both by money and countenance;
+but he pleaded that the state of his health hindered him from active
+exertion, and therefore his son came forward in his stead on this
+occasion, as it appeared probable that he would do on all others
+having reference to the family property.
+
+This work brought people together who would hardly have met but for
+such necessity. The priest and the parson of a parish, men who had
+hitherto never been in a room together, and between whom neither had
+known anything of the other but the errors of his doctrine, found
+themselves fighting for the same object at the same board, and each
+for the moment laid aside his religious ferocity. Gentlemen, whose
+ancestors had come over with Strongbow, or maybe even with Milesius,
+sat cheek by jowl with retired haberdashers, concerting new soup
+kitchens, and learning on what smallest modicum of pudding made from
+Indian corn a family of seven might be kept alive, and in such
+condition that the father at least might be able to stand upright.
+
+The town of Kanturk was the headquarters of that circle to which
+Herbert Fitzgerald was attached, in which also would have been
+included the owner of Desmond Court, had there been an owner of an
+age to undertake such work. But the young earl was still under
+sixteen, and the property was represented, as far as any
+representation was made, by the countess.
+
+But even in such a work as this, a work which so strongly brought
+out what there was of good among the upper classes, there was food
+for jealousy and ill will. The name of Owen Fitzgerald at this time
+did not stand high in the locality of which we are speaking. Men had
+presumed to talk both to him and of him, and he replied to their
+censures by scorn. He would not change his mode of living for them,
+or allow them to believe that their interference could in any way
+operate upon his conduct. He had therefore affected a worse
+character for morals than he had perhaps truly deserved, and had
+thus thrown off from him all intimacy with many of the families
+among whom he lived.
+
+When, therefore, he had come forward as others had done, offering to
+join his brother-magistrates and the clergyman of the district in
+their efforts, they had, or he had thought that they had, looked
+coldly on him. His property was halfway between Kanturk and Mallow;
+and when this occurred he turned his shoulder upon the former place,
+and professed to act with those whose meetings were held at the
+latter town. Thus he became altogether divided from that Castle
+Richmond neighbourhood to which he was naturally attached by old
+intimacies and family ties.
+
+It was a hard time this for the poor countess. I have endeavoured to
+explain that the position in which she had been left with regard to
+money was not at any time a very easy one. She possessed high rank
+and the name of a countess, but very little of that wealth which
+usually constitutes the chief advantage of such rank and name. But
+now such means as had been at her disposal were terribly crippled.
+There was no poorer district than that immediately around her, and
+none, therefore, in which the poor rates rose to a more fearful
+proportion of the rent. The country was, and for that matter still
+is, divided, for purposes of poor-law rating, into electoral
+districts. In ordinary times a man, or at any rate a lady, may live
+and die in his or her own house without much noticing the limits or
+peculiarities of each district. In one the rate may be one and a
+penny in the pound, in another only a shilling. But the difference
+is not large enough to create inquiry. It is divided between the
+landlord and the tenant, and neither perhaps thinks much about it.
+But when the demand made rises to seventeen or eighteen shillings in
+the pound--as was the case in some districts in those days,--when
+out of every pound of rent that he paid the tenant claimed to deduct
+nine shillings for poor rates, that is, half the amount levied--then
+a landlord becomes anxious enough as to the peculiarities of his own
+electoral division.
+
+In the case of Protestant clergymen, the whole rate had to be paid
+by the incumbent. A gentleman whose half-yearly rent-charge amounted
+to perhaps two hundred pounds might have nine tenths of that sum
+deducted from him for poor rates. I have known a case in which the
+proportion has been higher than this.
+
+And then the tenants in such districts began to decline to pay any
+rent at all--in very many cases could pay no rent at all. They, too,
+depended on the potatoes which were gone; they, too, had been
+subject to those dreadful demands for poor rates; and thus a
+landlord whose property was in any way embarrassed had but a bad
+time of it. The property from which Lady Desmond drew her income had
+been very much embarrassed; and for her the times were very bad.
+
+In such periods of misfortune, a woman has always some friend. Let
+her be who she may, some pair of broad shoulders is forthcoming on
+which may be laid so much of the burden as is by herself unbearable.
+It is the great privilege of womanhood, that which compensates them
+for the want of those other privileges which belong exclusively to
+manhood--sitting in Parliament, for instance, preaching sermons, and
+going on 'Change.
+
+At this time Lady Desmond would doubtless have chosen the shoulders
+of Owen Fitzgerald for the bearing of her burden, had he not turned
+against her, as he had done. But now there was no hope of that.
+Those broad shoulders had burdens of their own to bear of another
+sort, and it was at any rate impossible that he should come to share
+those of Desmond Court.
+
+But a champion was forthcoming; one, indeed, whose shoulders were
+less broad; on looking at whose head and brow Lady Desmond could not
+forget her years as she had done while Owen Fitzgerald had been near
+her;--but a champion, nevertheless, whom she greatly prized. This
+was Owen's cousin, Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+"Mamma," her daughter said to her one evening, as they were sitting
+together in the only room which they now inhabited. "Herbert wants
+us to go to that place near Kilcommon to-morrow, and says he will
+send the car at two. I suppose I can go?"
+
+There were two things that Lady Desmond noticed in this: first, that
+her daughter should have called young Mr. Fitzgerald by his
+Christian name; and secondly, that it should have come to that with
+them, that a Fitzgerald should send a vehicle for a Desmond, seeing
+that the Desmond could no longer provide a vehicle for herself.
+
+"You could have had the pony-chair, my dear."
+
+"Oh no, mamma; I would not do that." The pony was now the only
+quadruped kept for the countess's own behoof; and the young earl's
+hunter was the only other horse in the Desmond Court stables. "I
+wouldn't do that, mamma; Mary and Emmeline will not mind coming
+round."
+
+"But they will have to come round again to bring you back."
+
+"Yes, mamma. Herbert said they wouldn't mind it. We want to see how
+they are managing at the new soup kitchen they have there. That one
+at Clady is very bad. The boiler won't boil at all."
+
+"Very well, my dear; only mind you wrap yourself up."
+
+"Oh yes; I always do."
+
+"But, Clara--" and Lady Desmond put on her sweetest, smoothest smile
+as she spoke to her daughter.
+
+"Yes, mamma."
+
+"How long have you taken to call young Mr. Fitzgerald by his
+Christian name?"
+
+"Oh, I never do, mamma," said Clara, with a blush all over her face;
+"not to himself, I mean. You see, Mary and Emmeline are always
+talking about him."
+
+"And therefore you mean always to talk about him also."
+
+"No, mamma. But one can't help talking about him; he is doing so
+much for these poor people. I don't think he ever thinks about
+anything else from morning to night. Emmeline says he always goes to
+it again after dinner. Don't you think he is very good about it,
+mamma?"
+
+"Yes, my dear; very good indeed; almost good enough to be called
+Herbert."
+
+"But I don't call him so; you know I don't," protested Clara, very
+energetically.
+
+"He is very good," continued the countess; "very good indeed. I
+don't know what on earth we should do without him. If he were my own
+son, he could hardly be more attentive to me."
+
+"Then I may go with the girls to that place? I always forget the
+name."
+
+"Gortnaclough, you mean."
+
+"Yes, mamma. It is all Sir Thomas's property there; and they have
+got a regular kitchen, beautifully built, Her--Mr. Fitzgerald says,
+with a regular cook. I do wish we could have one at Clady."
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald will be here to-morrow morning, and I will talk to
+him about it. I fear we have not sufficient funds there."
+
+"No; that's just it. I do wish I had some money now. You won't mind
+if I am not home quite early? We all mean to dine there at the
+kitchen. The girls will bring something, and then we can stay out
+the whole afternoon."
+
+"It won't do for you to be out after nightfall, Clara."
+
+"No, I won't, mamma. They did want me to go home with them to Castle
+Richmond for to-morrow night; but I declined that," and Clara
+uttered a slight sigh, as though she had declined something that
+would have been very pleasant to her.
+
+"And why did you decline it?"
+
+"Oh, I don't know. I didn't know whether you would like it; and
+besides--"
+
+"Besides what?"
+
+"You'd be here all alone, mamma."
+
+The countess got up from her chair and coming over to the place
+where her daughter was sitting, kissed her on her forehead. "In such
+a matter as that, I don't want you to think of me, my dear. I would
+rather you went out. I must remain here in this horrid, dull,
+wretched place; but that is no reason why you should be buried
+alive. I would much rather that you went out sometimes."
+
+"No, mamma; I will remain with you."
+
+"It will be quite right that you should go to Castle Richmond
+to-morrow. If they send their carriage round here for you--"
+
+"It'll only be the car."
+
+"Well, the car; and if the girls come all that way out of their road
+in the morning to pick you up, it will be only civil that you should
+go back by Castle Richmond, and you would enjoy an evening there
+with the girls very much."
+
+"But I said decidedly that I would not go."
+
+"Tell them to-morrow as decidedly that you have changed your mind,
+and will be delighted to accept their invitation. They will
+understand that it is because you have spoken to me."
+
+"But, mamma--"
+
+"You will like going; will you not?"
+
+"Yes; I shall like it."
+
+And so that matter was settled. On the whole, Lady Desmond was
+inclined to admit within her own heart that her daughter had behaved
+very well in that matter of the banishment of Owen Fitzgerald. She
+knew that Clara had never seen him, and had refused to open his
+letters. Very little had been said upon the subject between the
+mother and daughter. Once or twice Owen's name had been mentioned;
+and once, when it had been mentioned, with heavy blame on account of
+his alleged sins, Clara had ventured to take his part.
+
+"People delight to say ill-natured things," she had said; "but one
+is not obliged to believe them all."
+
+From that time Lady Desmond had never mentioned his name, rightly
+judging that Clara would be more likely to condemn him in her own
+heart if she did not hear him condemned by others: and so the mother
+and daughter had gone on, as though the former had lost no friend,
+and the latter had lost no lover.
+
+For some time after the love adventure, Clara had been pale and
+drooping, and the countess had been frightened about her; but
+latterly she had got over this. The misfortune which had fallen so
+heavily upon them all seemed to have done her good. She had devoted
+herself from the first to do her little quota of work towards
+lessening the suffering around her, and the effort had been salutary
+to her.
+
+Whether or no in her heart of hearts she did still think of Owen
+Fitzgerald, her mother was unable to surmise. From the fire which
+had flashed from her eyes on that day when she accused the world of
+saying ill-natured things of him, Lady Desmond had been sure that
+such was the case. But she had never ventured to probe her child's
+heart. She had given very little confidence to Clara, and could not,
+therefore, and did not expect confidence in return.
+
+Nor was Clara a girl likely in such a matter to bestow confidence on
+any one. She was one who could hold her heart full, and yet not
+speak of her heart's fulness. Her mother had called her a child, and
+in some respects she then was so; but this childishness had been
+caused, not by lack of mental power, but want of that conversation
+with others which is customary to girls of her age. This want had in
+some respects made her childish; for it hindered her from expressing
+herself in firm tones, and caused her to blush and hesitate when she
+spoke. But in some respects it had the opposite effect, and made her
+older than her age, for she was thoughtful, silent, and patient of
+endurance.
+
+Latterly, since this dreary famine-time had come upon them, an
+intimacy had sprung up between Clara and the Castle Richmond girls,
+and in a measure, too, between Clara and Herbert Fitzgerald. Lady
+Desmond had seen this with great pleasure. Though she had objected
+to Owen Fitzgerald for her daughter, she had no objection to the
+Fitzgerald name. Herbert was his father's only son, and heir to the
+finest property in the county--at any rate, to the property which at
+present was the best circumstanced. Owen Fitzgerald could never be
+more than a little squire, but Herbert would be a baronet. Owen's
+utmost ambition would be to live at Hap House all his life, and die
+the oracle of the Duhallow hunt; but Herbert would be a member of
+Parliament, with a house in London. A daughter of the house of
+Desmond might marry the heir of Sir Thomas Fitzgerald, and be
+thought to have done well; whereas, she would disgrace herself by
+becoming the mistress of Hap House. Lady Desmond, therefore, had
+been delighted to see this intimacy.
+
+It had been in no spirit of fault-finding that she had remarked to
+her daughter as to her use of that Christian name. What would be
+better than that they should be to each other as Herbert and Clara?
+But the cautious mother had known how easy it would be to frighten
+her timid fawnlike child. It was no time, no time as yet, to
+question her heart about this second lover--if lover he might be.
+The countess was much too subtle in her way to frighten her child's
+heart back to its old passion. That passion doubtless would die from
+want of food. Let it be starved and die; and then this other new
+passion might spring up.
+
+The Countess of Desmond had no idea that her daughter, with severe
+self-questioning, had taken her own heart to task about this former
+lover; had argued with herself that the man who could so sin, could
+live such a life, and so live in these fearful times, was unworthy
+of her love, and must be torn out of her heart, let the cost be what
+it might. Of such high resolves on her daughter's part, nay, on the
+part of any young girl, Lady Desmond had no knowledge.
+
+Clara Desmond had determined, slowly determined, to give up the man
+whom she had owned to love. She had determined that duty and female
+dignity required her to do so. And in this manner it had been done;
+not by the childlike forgetfulness which her mother attributed to
+her.
+
+And so it was arranged that she should stay the following night at
+Castle Richmond.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+GORTNACLOUGH AND BERRYHILL
+
+
+And now at last we will get to Castle Richmond, at which place,
+seeing that it gives the title to our novel, we ought to have
+arrived long since.
+
+As had been before arranged, the two Miss Fitzgeralds did call at
+Desmond Court early on the following day, and were delighted at
+being informed by Lady Desmond that Clara had changed her mind, and
+would, if they would now allow her, stay the night at Castle
+Richmond.
+
+"The truth was, she did not like to leave me," said the countess,
+whispering prettily into the ear of the eldest of the two girls;
+"but I am delighted that she should have an opportunity of getting
+out of this dull place for a few hours. It was so good of you to
+think of her."
+
+Miss Fitzgerald made some civil answer, and away they all went.
+Herbert was on horseback, and remained some minutes after them to
+discuss her own difficulties with the countess, and to say a few
+words about that Clady boiler that would not boil. Clara on this
+subject had opened her heart to him, and he had resolved that the
+boiler should be made to boil. So he said that he would go over and
+look at it, resolving also to send that which would be much more
+efficacious than himself, namely, the necessary means and workmen
+for bringing about so desirable a result. And then he rode after the
+girls, and caught the car just as it reached Gortnaclough.
+
+How they all spent their day at the soup kitchen, which however,
+though so called, partook quite as much of the character of a
+bake-house; how they studied the art of making yellow Indian meal
+into puddings; how the girls wanted to add milk and sugar, not
+understanding at first the deep principles of political economy,
+which soon taught them not to waste on the comforts of a few that
+which was so necessary for the life of many; how the poor women
+brought in their sick ailing children, accepting the proffered food,
+but bitterly complaining of it as they took it,--complaining of it
+because they wanted money, with which they still thought that they
+could buy potatoes--all this need not here or now be described. Our
+present business is to get them all back to Castle Richmond.
+
+There had been some talk of their dining at Gortnaclough, because it
+was known that the ladies at Desmond Court dined early; but now that
+Clara was to return to Castle Richmond, that idea was given up, and
+they all got back to the house in time for the family dinner.
+
+"Mamma," said Emmeline, walking first into the drawing-room, "Lady
+Clara has come back with us after all, and is going to stay here
+to-night; we are so glad."
+
+Lady Fitzgerald got up from her sofa, and welcomed her young guest
+with a kiss.
+
+"It is very good of you to come," she said; "very good indeed. You
+won't find it dull, I hope, because I know you are thinking about
+the same thing as these children."
+
+Lady Clara muttered some sort of indistinct little protest as to the
+impossibility of being dull with her present friends.
+
+"Oh, she's as full of corn meal and pints of soup as any one," said
+Emmeline; "and knows exactly how much turf it takes to boil fifteen
+stone of pudding; don't you, Clara? But come upstairs, for we
+haven't long, and I know you are frozen. You must dress with us,
+dear; for there will be no fire in your own room, as we didn't
+expect you."
+
+"I wish we could get them to like it," said Clara, standing with one
+foot on the fender, in the middle of the process of dressing, so as
+to warm her toes; and her friend Emmeline was standing by her, with
+her arm round her waist.
+
+"I don't think we shall ever do that," said Mary, who was sitting at
+the glass brushing her hair; "it's so cold, and heavy, and
+uncomfortable when they get it."
+
+"You see," said Emmeline, "though they did only have potatoes
+before, they always had them quite warm; and though a dinner of
+potatoes seems very poor, they did have it altogether, in their own
+houses, you know; and I think the very cooking it was some comfort
+to them."
+
+"And I suppose they couldn't be taught to cook this themselves, so
+as to make it comfortable in their own cabins?" said Clara,
+despondingly.
+
+"Herbert says it's impossible," said Mary.
+
+"And I'm sure he knows," said Clara.
+
+"They would waste more than they would eat," said Emmeline.
+"Besides, it is so hard to cook it as it should be cooked; sometimes
+it seem impossible to make it soft."
+
+"So it does," said Clara, sadly; "but if we could only have it hot
+for them when they come for it, wouldn't that be better?"
+
+"The great thing is to have it for them at all," said Mary the wise
+(for she had been studying the matter more deeply than her friend);
+"there are so many who as yet get none."
+
+"Herbert says that the millers will grind up the husks and all at
+the mills, so as to make the most of it, that's what makes it so
+hard to cook," said Emmeline.
+
+"How very wrong of them!" protested Clara; "but isn't Herbert going
+to have a mill put up of his own?"
+
+And so they went on, till I fear they kept the Castle Richmond
+dinner waiting for full fifteen minutes.
+
+Castle Richmond, too, would have been a dull house, as Lady
+Fitzgerald had intimated, had it not been that there was a common
+subject of such vital interest to the whole party. On that subject
+they were all intent, and on that subject they talked the whole
+evening, planning, preparing, and laying out schemes; devising how
+their money might be made to go furthest; discussing deep questions
+of political economy, and making, no doubt, many errors in their
+discussions.
+
+Lady Fitzgerald took a part in all this, and so occasionally did Sir
+Thomas. Indeed, on this evening he was more active than was usual
+with him. He got up from his armchair, and came to the table, in
+order that he might pore over the map of the estate with them; for
+they were dividing the property into districts, and seeing how best
+the poor might be visited in their own localities.
+
+And then, as he did so, he became liberal. Liberal, indeed, he
+always was; but now he made offers of assistance more than his son
+had dared to ask; and they were all busy, contented, and in a great
+degree joyous--joyous, though their work arose from the contiguity
+of such infinite misery. But what can ever be more joyous than
+efforts made for lessening misery?
+
+During all this time Miss Letty was fast asleep in her own armchair.
+But let no one on that account accuse her of a hard heart; for she
+had nearly walked her old legs off that day in going about from
+cabin to cabin round the demesne.
+
+"But we must consult Somers about that mill," said Sir Thomas.
+
+"Oh, of course," said Herbert; "I know how to talk Somers over."
+
+This was added sotto voce to his mother and the girls. Now, Mr.
+Somers was the agent on the estate.
+
+This mill was to be at Berryhill, a spot also on Sir Thomas's
+property, but in a different direction from Gortnaclough. There was
+there what the Americans would call a water privilege, a stream to
+which some fall of land just there gave power enough to turn a mill;
+and was now a question how they might utilize that power.
+
+During the day just past Clara had been with them, but they were now
+talking of what they would do when she would have left them. This
+created some little feeling of awkwardness, for Clara had put her
+whole heart into the work at Gortnaclough, and it was evident that
+she would have been so delighted to continue with them.
+
+"But why on earth need you go home to-morrow, Lady Clara?" said
+Herbert.
+
+"Oh, I must; mamma expects me, you know."
+
+"Of course we should send word. Indeed, I must send to Clady
+to-morrow, and the man must pass by Desmond Court gate."
+
+"Oh yes, Clara; and you can write a line. It would be such a pity
+that you should not see all about the mill, now that we have talked
+it over together. Do tell her to stay, mamma."
+
+"I am sure I wish she would," said Lady Fitzgerald. "Could not Lady
+Desmond manage to spare you for one day?"
+
+"She is all alone, you know," said Clara, whose heart, however, was
+bent on accepting the invitation.
+
+"Perhaps she would come over and join us," said Lady Fitzgerald,
+feeling, however, that the subject was not without danger. Sending a
+carriage for a young girl like Lady Clara did very well, but it
+might not answer if she were to offer to send for the Countess of
+Desmond.
+
+"Oh, mamma never goes out."
+
+"I'm quite sure she'd like you to stay," said Herbert. "After you
+were all gone yesterday, she said how delighted she was to have you
+go away for a little time. And she did say she thought you could not
+go to a better place than Castle Richmond."
+
+"I am sure that was very kind of her," said Lady Fitzgerald.
+
+"Did she?" said Clara, longingly.
+
+And so after a while it was settled that she should send a line to
+her mother, saying that she had been persuaded to stay over one
+other night, and that she should accompany them to inspect the site
+of this embryo mill at Berryhill.
+
+"And I will write a line to the countess," said Lady Fitzgerald,
+"telling her how impossible it was for you to hold your own
+intention when we were all attacking you on the other side."
+
+And so the matter was settled.
+
+On the following day they were to leave home almost immediately
+after breakfast; and on this occasion Miss Letty insisted on going
+with them.
+
+"There's a seat on the car, I know, Herbert," she said; "for you
+mean to ride; and I'm just as much interested about the mill as any
+of you."
+
+"I'm afraid the day would be too long for you, Aunt Letty," said
+Mary: "we shall stay there, you know, till after four."
+
+"Not a bit too long. When I'm tired I shall go into Mrs. Townsend's;
+the glebe is not ten minutes' drive from Berryhill."
+
+The Rev. Aeneas Townsend was the rector of the parish, and he, as
+well as his wife, were fast friends of Aunt Letty. As we get on in
+the story we shall, I trust, become acquainted with the Rev. Aeneas
+Townsend and his wife. It was ultimately found that there was no
+getting rid of Aunt Letty, and so the party was made up.
+
+They were all standing about the hall after breakfast, looking up
+their shawls and cloaks and coats, and Herbert was in the act of
+taking special and very suspicious care of Lady Clara's throat, when
+there came a ring at the door. The visitor, whoever he might be, was
+not kept long waiting, for one servant was in the hall, and another
+just outside the front door with the car, and a third holding
+Herbert's horse.
+
+"I wish to see Sir Thomas," said a man's voice as soon as the door
+was opened; and the man entered the hall, and then, seeing that it
+was full of ladies, retreated again into the door-way. He was an
+elderly man, dressed almost more than well, for there was about him
+a slight affectation of dandyism; and though he had for the moment
+been abashed, there was about him also a slight swagger. "Good
+morning, ladies," he said, re-entering again, and bowing to young
+Herbert, who stood looking at him; "I believe Sir Thomas is at home;
+would you send your servant in to say that a gentleman wants to see
+him for a minute or so, on very particular business? I am a little
+in a hurry like."
+
+The door of the drawing-room was ajar, so that Lady Fitzgerald, who
+was sitting there tranquilly in her own seat, could hear the voice.
+And she did hear it, and knew that some stranger had come to trouble
+her husband. But she did not come forth; why should she? was not
+Herbert there--if, indeed, even Herbert could be of any service?
+
+"Shall I take your card in to Sir Thomas, sir?" said one of the
+servants, coming forward.
+
+"Card!" said Mollett senior out loud; "well, if it is necessary, I
+believe I have a card." And he took from his pocket a greasy
+pocket-book, and extracted from it a piece of pasteboard on which
+his name was written. "There; give that to Sir Thomas. I don't think
+there's much doubt but that he'll see me." And then, uninvited, he
+sat himself down in one of the hall chairs.
+
+Sir Thomas's study, the room in which he himself sat, and in which
+indeed he might almost be said to live at present,--for on many days
+he only came out to dine, and then again to go to bed,--was at some
+little distance to the back of the house, and was approached by a
+passage from the hall. While the servant was gone, the ladies
+finished their wrapping, and got up on the car.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald," said Clara, laughing, "I shan't be able to
+breathe with all that on me."
+
+"Look at Mary and Emmeline," said he; "they have got twice as much.
+You don't know how cold it is."
+
+"You had better have the fur close to your body," said Aunt Letty;
+"look here;" and she showed that her gloves were lined with fur, and
+her boots, and that she had gotten some nondescript furry article of
+attire stuck in underneath the body of her dress.
+
+"But you must let me have them a little looser, Mr. Fitzgerald,"
+said Clara; "there, that will do," and then they all got upon the
+car and started. Herbert was perhaps two minutes after them before
+he mounted; but when he left the hall the man was still sitting
+there; for the servant had not yet come back from his father's room.
+
+But the clatter of his horse's hoofs was still distinct enough at
+the hall door when the servant did come back, and in a serious tone
+desired the stranger to follow him. "Sir Thomas will see you," said
+the servant, putting some stress on the word will.
+
+"Oh, I did not doubt that the least in the world," said Mr. Mollett,
+as he followed the man along the passage.
+
+The morning was very cold. There had been rainy weather, but it now
+appeared to be a settled frost. The roads were rough and hard, and
+the man who was driving them said a word now and again to his young
+master as to the expediency of getting frost nails put into the
+horse's shoes. "I'd better go gently, Mr. Herbert; it may be he
+might come down at some of these pitches." So they did go gently,
+and at last arrived safely at Berryhill.
+
+And very busy they were there all day. The inspection of the site
+for the mill was not their only employment. Here also was an
+establishment for distributing food, and a crowd of poor half-fed
+wretches were there to meet them. Not that at that time things were
+so bad as they became afterwards. Men were not dying on the
+road-side, nor as yet had the apathy of want produced its terrible
+cure for the agony of hunger. The time had not yet come when the
+famished living skeletons might be seen to reject the food which
+could no longer serve to prolong their lives.
+
+Though this had not come as yet, the complaints of the women with
+their throngs of children were bitter enough; and it was
+heart-breaking too to hear the men declare that they had worked like
+horses, and that it was hard upon them now to see their children
+starve like dogs. For in this earlier part of the famine the people
+did not seem to realize the fact that this scarcity and want had
+come from God. Though they saw the potatoes rotting in their own
+gardens, under their own eyes, they still seemed to think that the
+rich men of the land could stay the famine if they would; that the
+fault was with them; that the famine could be put down if the rich
+would but stir themselves to do it. Before it was over they were
+well aware that no human power could suffice to put it down. Nay,
+more than that; they had almost begun to doubt the power of God to
+bring back better days.
+
+They strove, and toiled, and planned, and hoped at Berryhill that
+day. And infinite was the good that was done by such efforts as
+these. That they could not hinder God's work we all know; but much
+they did do to lessen the sufferings around, and many were the lives
+that were thus saved.
+
+They were all standing behind the counter of a small store that had
+been hired in the village--the three girls at least, for Aunt Letty
+had already gone to the glebe, and Herbert was still down at the
+"water privilege," talking to a millwright and a carpenter. This was
+a place at which Indian corn flour, that which after a while was
+generally termed "meal" in those famine days, was sold to the poor.
+At this period much of it was absolutely given away. This plan,
+however, was soon found to be injurious, for hundreds would get it
+who were not absolutely in want, and would then sell it;--for the
+famine by no means improved the morals of the people.
+
+And therefore it was found better to sell the flour; to sell it at a
+cheap rate, considerably less sometimes than the cost price, and to
+put the means of buying it into the hands of the people by giving
+them work, and paying them wages. Towards the end of these times,
+when the full weight of the blow was understood, and the subject had
+been in some sort studied, the general rule was thus to sell the
+meal at its true price, hindering the exorbitant profit of hucksters
+by the use of large stores, and to require that all those who could
+not buy it should seek the means of living within the walls of
+workhouses. The regular established workhouses,--unions as they were
+called,--were not as yet numerous, but supernumerary houses were
+provided in every town, and were crowded from the cellars to the
+roofs.
+
+It need hardly be explained that no general rule could be
+established and acted upon at once. The numbers to be dealt with
+were so great, that the exceptions to all rules were overwhelming.
+But such and such like were the efforts made, and these efforts
+ultimately were successful.
+
+The three girls were standing behind the counter of a little store
+which Sir Thomas had hired at Berryhill, when a woman came into the
+place with two children in her arms and followed by four others of
+different ages. She was a gaunt tall creature, with sunken cheeks
+and hollow eyes, and her clothes hung about her in unintelligible
+rags. There was a crowd before the counter, for those who had been
+answered or served stood staring at the three ladies, and could
+hardly be got to go away; but this woman pressed her way through,
+pushing some and using harsh language to others, till she stood
+immediately opposite to Clara.
+
+"Look at that, madam," she cried, undoing an old handkerchief which
+she held in her hand, and displaying the contents on the counter;
+"is that what the likes of you calls food for poor people? is that
+fit 'ating to give to children? Would any av ye put such stuff as
+that into the stomachs of your own bairns?" and she pointed to the
+mess which lay revealed upon the handkerchief.
+
+The food, as food, was not nice to look at; and could not have been
+nice to eat, or probably easy of digestion when eaten.
+
+"Feel of that." And the woman rubbed her forefinger among it to show
+that it was rough and hard, and that the particles were as sharp as
+though sand had been mixed with it. The stuff was half-boiled Indian
+meal, which had been improperly subjected at first to the full heat
+of boiling water; and in its present state was bad food either for
+children or grown people. "Feel of that," said the woman; "would you
+like to be 'ating that yourself now?"
+
+"I don't think you have cooked it quite enough," said Clara, looking
+into the woman's face, half with fear and half with pity, and
+putting, as she spoke, her pretty delicate finger down into the
+nasty daubed mess of parboiled yellow flour.
+
+"Cooked it!" said the woman scornfully. "All the cooking on 'arth
+wouldn't make food of that fit for a Christian--feel of the
+roughness of it"--and she turned to another woman who stood near
+her; "would you like to be putting sharp points like that into your
+children's bellies?"
+
+It was quite true that the grains of it were hard and sharp, so as
+to give one an idea that it would make good eating neither for women
+nor children. The millers and dealers, who of course made their
+profits in these times, did frequently grind up the whole corn
+without separating the grain from the husks, and the shell of a
+grain of Indian corn does not, when ground, become soft flour. This
+woman had reason for her complaints, as had many thousands reason
+for similar complaints.
+
+"Don't be throubling the ladies, Kitty," said an old man standing
+by; "sure and weren't you glad enough to be getting it."
+
+"She'd be axing the ladies to go home wid her and cook it for her
+after giving it her," said another.
+
+"Who says it war guv' me?" said the angry mother. "Didn't I buy it,
+here at this counter, with Mike's own hard-'arned money? and it's
+chaiting us they are. Give me back my money." And she looked at
+Clara as though she meant to attack her across the counter.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald is going to put up a mill of his own, and then the
+corn will be better ground," said Emmeline Fitzgerald, deprecating
+the woman's wrath.
+
+"Put up a mill!" said the woman, still in scorn. "Are you going to
+give me back my money; or food that my poor bairns can ate?"
+
+This individual little difficulty was ended by a donation to the
+angry woman of another lot of meal, in taking away which she was
+careful not to leave behind her the mess which she had brought in
+her handkerchief. But she expressed no thanks on being so treated.
+
+The hardest burden which had to be borne by those who exerted
+themselves at this period was the ingratitude of the poor for whom
+they worked;--or rather I should say thanklessness. To call them
+ungrateful would imply too deep a reproach, for their convictions
+were that they were being ill used by the upper classes. When they
+received bad meal which they could not cook, and even in their
+extreme hunger could hardly eat half-cooked; when they were desired
+to leave their cabins and gardens, and flock into the wretched
+barracks which were prepared for them; when they saw their children
+wasting away under a suddenly altered system of diet, it would have
+been unreasonable to expect that they should have been grateful.
+Grateful for what? Had they not at any rate a right to claim life,
+to demand food that should keep them and their young ones alive? But
+not the less was it a hard task for delicate women to work hard, and
+to feel that all their work was unappreciated by those whom they so
+thoroughly commiserated, whose sufferings they were so anxious to
+relieve.
+
+It was almost dark before they left Berryhill, and then they had to
+go out of their way to pick up Aunt Letty at Mr. Townsend's house.
+
+"Don't go in whatever you do, girls," said Herbert; "we should never
+get away."
+
+"Indeed we won't unpack ourselves again before we get home; will we,
+Clara?"
+
+"Oh, I hope not. I'm very nice now, and so warm. But, Mr.
+Fitzgerald, is not Mrs. Townsend very queer?"
+
+"Very queer indeed. But you mustn't say a word about her before Aunt
+Letty. They are sworn brothers-in-arms."
+
+"I won't of course. But, Mr. Fitzgerald, she's very good, is she
+not?"
+
+"Yes, in her way. Only it's a pity she's so prejudiced."
+
+"You mean about religion?"
+
+"I mean about everything. If she wears a bonnet on her head, she'll
+think you very wicked because you wear a hat."
+
+"Will she? what a very funny woman! But, Mr. Fitzgerald, I shan't
+give up my hat, let her say what she will."
+
+"I should rather think not."
+
+"And Mr. Townsend? we know him a little; he's very good too, isn't
+he?"
+
+"Do you mean me to answer you truly, or to answer you according to
+the good-natured idea of never saying any ill of one's neighbour?"
+
+"Oh, both; if you can."
+
+"Oh, both; must I? Well, then, I think him good as a man, but bad as
+a clergyman."
+
+"But I thought he worked so very hard as a clergyman?"
+
+"So he does. But if he works evil rather than good, you can't call
+him a good clergyman. Mind, you would have my opinion; and if I talk
+treason and heterodoxy and infidelity and papistry, you must only
+take it for what it's worth."
+
+"I'm sure you won't talk infidelity."
+
+"Nor yet treason; and then, moreover, Mr. Townsend would be so much
+better a clergyman, to my way of thinking, if he would sometimes
+brush his hair, and occasionally put on a clean surplice. But,
+remember, not a word of all this to Aunt Letty."
+
+"Oh dear, no; of course not."
+
+Mr. Townsend did come out of the house on the little sweep before
+the door to help Miss Letty up on the car, though it was dark and
+piercingly cold.
+
+"Well, young ladies, and won't you come in now and warm yourselves?"
+
+They all of course deprecated any such idea, and declared that they
+were already much too late.
+
+"Richard, mind you take care going down Ballydahan Hill," said the
+parson, giving a not unnecessary caution to the servant. "I came up
+it just now, and it was one sheet of ice."
+
+"Now, Richard, do be careful," said Miss Letty. "Never fear, miss,"
+said Richard.
+
+"We'll take care of you," said Herbert. "You're not frightened, Lady
+Clara, are you?"
+
+"Oh no," said Clara; and so they started.
+
+It was quite dark and very cold, and there was a sharp hard frost.
+But the lamps of the car were lighted, and the horse seemed to be on
+his mettle, for he did his work well. Ballydahan Hill was not above
+a mile from the glebe, and descending that, Richard, by his young
+master's orders, got down from his seat and went to the animal's
+head. Herbert also himself got off, and led his horse down the hill.
+At first the girls were a little inclined to be frightened, and Miss
+Letty found herself obliged to remind them that they couldn't melt
+the frost by screaming. But they all got safely down, and were soon
+chattering as fast as though they were already safe in the
+drawing-room of Castle Richmond.
+
+They went on without any accident, till they reached a turn in the
+road, about two miles from home; and there, all in a moment, quite
+suddenly, when nobody was thinking about the frost or the danger,
+down came the poor horse on his side, his feet having gone quite
+from under him, and a dreadful cracking sound of broken timber gave
+notice that a shaft was smashed. A shaft at least was smashed; if
+only no other harm was done!
+
+It can hardly be that Herbert Fitzgerald cared more for such a
+stranger as Lady Clara Desmond than he did for his own sisters and
+aunt; but nevertheless, it was to Lady Clara's assistance that he
+first betook himself. Perhaps he had seen, or fancied that he saw,
+that she had fallen with the greatest violence.
+
+"Speak, speak," said he, as he jumped from his horse close to her
+side. "Are you hurt? do speak to me." And going down on his knees on
+the hard ground, he essayed to lift her in his arms.
+
+"Oh dear, oh dear!" said she. "No; I am not hurt; at least I think
+not--only just my arm a very little. Where is Emmeline? Is Emmeline
+hurt?"
+
+"No," said Emmeline, picking herself up. "But, oh dear, dear, I've
+lost my muff, and I've spoiled my hat! Where are Mary and Aunt
+Letty?"
+
+After some considerable confusion it was found that nothing was much
+damaged except the car, one shaft of which was broken altogether in
+two. Lady Clara's arm was bruised and rather sore, but the three
+other ladies had altogether escaped. The quantity of clothes that
+had been wrapped round them had no doubt enabled them to fall
+softly.
+
+"And what about the horse, Richard?" asked young Fitzgerald.
+
+"He didn't come upon his knees at all at all, Master Herbert," said
+Richard, scrutinizing the animal's legs with the car lamp in his
+hand. "I don't think he's a taste the worse. But the car, Master
+Herbert, is clane smashed."
+
+Such being found to be undoubtedly the fact, there was nothing for
+it but that the ladies should walk home. Herbert again forgot that
+the age of his aunt imperatively demanded all the assistance that he
+could lend her, and with many lamentations that fortune and the
+frost should have used her so cruelly, he gave his arm to Clara.
+
+"But do think of Miss Fitzgerald," said Clara, speaking gently into
+his ear.
+
+"Who? oh, my aunt. Aunt Letty never cares for anybody's arm; she
+always prefers walking alone."
+
+"Fie, Mr. Fitzgerald, fie! It is impossible to believe such an
+assertion as that." And yet Clara did seem to believe it; for she
+took his proffered arm without further objection.
+
+It was half-past seven when they reached the hall door, and at that
+time they had all forgotten the misfortune of the car in the fun of
+the dark frosty walk home. Herbert had found a boy to lead his
+horse, and Richard was of course left with the ruins in the road.
+
+"And how's your arm now?" asked Herbert, tenderly, as they entered
+in under the porch.
+
+"Oh, it does not hurt me hardly at all. I don't mind it in the
+least." And then the door was opened for them.
+
+They all flocked into the hall, and there they were met by Lady
+Fitzgerald.
+
+"Oh, mamma," said Mary, "I know you're quite frightened out of your
+life! But there's nothing the matter. The horse tumbled down; but
+there's nobody hurt."
+
+"And we had to walk home from the turn to Ballyclough," said
+Emmeline. "But, oh mamma, what's the matter?" They all now looked up
+at Lady Fitzgerald, and it was evident enough that something was the
+matter; something to be thought of infinitely more than that
+accident on the road.
+
+"Oh, Mary, Mary, what is it?" said Aunt Letty, coming forward and
+taking hold of her sister-in-law's hand. "Is my brother ill?"
+
+"Sir Thomas is not very well, and I've been waiting for you so long.
+Where's Herbert? I must speak to Herbert." And then the mother and
+son left the hall together.
+
+There was then a silence among the four ladies that were left there
+standing. At first they followed each other into the drawing-room,
+all wrapped up as they were and sat on chairs apart, saying nothing
+to each other. At last Aunt Letty got up.
+
+"You had better go upstairs with Lady Clara," said she; "I will go
+to your mamma."
+
+"Oh, Aunt Letty, do send us word; pray send us word," said Emmeline.
+
+Mary now began to cry. "I know he's very ill. I'm sure he's very
+ill. Oh, what shall we do?"
+
+"You had better go upstairs with Lady Clara," said Aunt Letty. "I
+will send you up word immediately."
+
+"Oh, don't mind me; pray don't mind me," said Clara. "Pray, pray,
+don't take notice of me;" and she rushed forward, and throwing
+herself on her knees before Emmeline, began to kiss her.
+
+They remained here, heedless of Aunt Letty's advice, for some ten
+minutes, and then Herbert came to them. The two girls flew at him
+with questions; while Lady Clara stood by the window, anxious to
+learn, but unwilling to thrust herself into their family matters.
+
+"My father has been much troubled to-day, and is not well," said
+Herbert. "But I do not think there is anything to frighten us. Come;
+let us go to dinner."
+
+The going to dinner was but a sorry farce with any of them; but
+nevertheless, they went through the ceremony, each for the sake of
+the others.
+
+"Mayn't we see him?" said the girls to their mother, who did come
+down into the drawing-room for one moment to speak to Clara.
+
+"Not to-night, loves. He should not be disturbed." And so that day
+came to an end; not satisfactorily.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+Family Councils
+
+
+When the girls and Aunt Letty went to their chambers that night,
+Herbert returned to his mother's own dressing-room, and there,
+seated over the fire with her, discussed the matter of his father's
+sudden attack. He had been again with his father, and Sir Thomas had
+seemed glad to have him there; but now he had left him for the night.
+
+"He will sleep now, mother," said the son; "he has taken laudanum."
+
+"I fear he takes that too often now."
+
+"It was good for him to have it to-night. He did not get too much,
+for I dropped it for him." And then they sat silent for a few
+moments together.
+
+"Mother," said Herbert, "who can this man have been?"
+
+"I have no knowledge--no idea--no guess even," said Lady Fitzgerald.
+
+"It is that man's visit that has upset him."
+
+"Oh, certainly. I think there is no doubt of that. I was waiting for
+the man to go, and went in almost before he was out of the house."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"And I found your father quite prostrated."
+
+"Not on the floor?"
+
+"No, not exactly on the floor. He was still seated on his chair, but
+his head was on the table, over his arms."
+
+"I have often found him in that way, mother."
+
+"But you never saw him looking as he looked this morning, Herbert.
+When I went in he was speechless, and he remained so, I should say,
+for some minutes."
+
+"Was he senseless?"
+
+"No; he knew me well enough, and grasped me by the hand; and when I
+would have gone to the bell to ring for assistance, he would not let
+me. I thought he would have gone into a fit when I attempted it."
+
+"And what did you do?"
+
+"I sat there by him, with his hand in mine, quite quietly. And then
+he uttered a long, deep sigh, and--oh, Herbert!"
+
+"Well, mother?"
+
+"At last, he burst into a flood of tears, and sobbed and cried like
+a child."
+
+"Mother!"
+
+"He did, so that it was piteous to see him. But it did him good, for
+he was better after it. And all the time he never let go my hand,
+but held it and kissed it. And then he took me by the waist, and
+kissed me, oh, so often. And all the while his tears were running
+like the tears of a girl." And Lady Fitzgerald, as she told the
+story, could not herself refrain from weeping.
+
+"And did he say anything afterwards about this man?"
+
+"Yes; not at first, that is. Of course I asked him who he was as
+soon as I thought he could bear the question. But he turned away,
+and merely said that he was a stupid man about some old London
+business, and that he should have gone to Prendergast. But when,
+after a while, I pressed him, he said that the man's name was
+Mollett, and that he had, or pretended to have, some claim upon the
+city property."
+
+"A claim on the city property! Why, it's not seven hundred a-year
+altogether. If any Mollett could run away with it all, that loss
+would not affect him like that."
+
+"So I said, Herbert; not exactly in those words, but trying to
+comfort him. He then put it off by declaring that it was the
+consciousness of his inability to see any one on business which
+affected him so grievously."
+
+"It was that he said to me."
+
+"And there may be something in that, Herbert."
+
+"Yes; but then what should make him so weak, to begin with? If you
+remember, mother, he was very well,--more like himself than usual
+last night."
+
+"Oh, I observed it. He seemed to like having Clara Desmond there."
+
+"Didn't he, mother? I observed that too. But then Clara Desmond is
+such a sweet creature." The mother looked at her son as he said
+this, but the son did not notice the look. "I do wonder what the
+real truth can be," he continued. "Do you think there is anything
+wrong about the property in general? About this estate, here?"
+
+"No, I don't think that," said the mother, sadly.
+
+"What can it be, then?" But Lady Fitzgerald sat there, and did not
+answer the question. "I'll tell you what I will do, mother; I'll go
+up to London, and see Prendergast, and consult him."
+
+"Oh no; you mustn't do that. I am wrong to tell you all this, for he
+told me to talk to no one. But it would kill me if I didn't speak of
+it to you."
+
+"All the same, mother, I think it would be best to consult
+Prendergast."
+
+"Not yet, Herbert. I daresay Mr. Prendergast may be a very good sort
+of man, but we none of us know him. And if, as is very probable,
+this is only an affair of health, it would be wrong in you to go to
+a stranger. It might look--"
+
+"Look what, mother?"
+
+"People might think--he, I mean--that you wanted to interfere."
+
+"But who ought to interfere on his behalf if I don't?"
+
+"Quite true, dearest; I understand what you mean, and know how good
+you are. But perhaps Mr. Prendergast might not. He might think you
+wanted---"
+
+"Wanted what, mother? I don't understand you."
+
+"Wanted to take the things out of your father's hands."
+
+"Oh, mother!"
+
+"He doesn't know you. And, what is more, I don't think he knows much
+of your father. Don't go to him yet." And Herbert promised that he
+would not.
+
+"And you don't think that this man was ever here before?" he asked.
+
+"Well, I rather think he was here once before; many years ago--soon
+after you went to school."
+
+"So long ago as that?"
+
+"Yes; not that I remember him, or, indeed, ever knew of his coming
+then, if he did come. But Jones says that she thinks she remembers
+him."
+
+"Did Jones see him now?"
+
+"Yes; she was in the hall as he passed through on his way out. And
+it so happened that she let him in and out too when he came before.
+That is, if it is the same man."
+
+"That's very odd."
+
+"It did not happen here. We were at Tenby for a few weeks in the
+summer."
+
+"I remember; you went there with the girls just when I went back to
+school."
+
+"Jones was with us, and Richard. We had none other of our own
+servants. And Jones says that the same man did come then; that he
+stayed with your father for an hour or two; and that when he left,
+your father was depressed--almost as he was yesterday. I well
+remember that. I know that a man did come to him at Tenby; and--oh,
+Herbert!"
+
+"What is it, mother? Speak out, at any rate, to me."
+
+"Since that man came to him at Tenby he has never been like what he
+was before."
+
+And then there was more questioning between them about Jones and her
+remembrances. It must be explained that Jones was a very old and
+very valued servant. She had originally been brought up as a child
+by Mrs. Wainwright, in that Dorsetshire parsonage, and had since
+remained firm to the fortunes of the young lady, whose maid she had
+become on her first marriage. As her mistress had been promoted, so
+had Jones. At first she had been Kitty to all the world now she was
+Mrs. Jones to the world at large, Jones to Sir Thomas and her
+mistress and of late years to Herbert, and known by all manner of
+affectionate sobriquets to the young ladies. Sometimes they would
+call her Johnny, and sometimes the Duchess; but doubtless they and
+Mrs. Jones thoroughly understood each other. By the whole
+establishment Mrs. Jones was held in great respect, and by the
+younger portion in extreme awe. Her breakfast and tea she had in a
+little sitting-room by herself; but the solitude of this was too
+tremendous for her to endure at dinner-time. At that meal she sat at
+the head of the table in the servants' hall, though she never
+troubled herself to carve anything except puddings and pies, for
+which she had a great partiality, and of which she was supposed to
+be the most undoubted and severe judge known of anywhere in that
+part of the country.
+
+She was supposed by all her brother and sister servants to be a very
+Croesus for wealth; and wondrous tales were told of the money she
+had put by. But as she was certainly honest, and supposed to be very
+generous to certain poor relations in Dorsetshire, some of these
+stories were probably mythic. It was known, however, as a fact, that
+two Castle Richmond butlers, one outdoor steward, three neighbouring
+farmers, and one wickedly ambitious coachman, had endeavoured to
+tempt her to matrimony--in vain. "She didn't want none of them," she
+told her mistress. "And, what was more, she wouldn't have none of
+them." And therefore she remained Mrs. Jones, with brevet rank.
+
+It seemed, from what Lady Fitzgerald said, that Mrs. Jones's manner
+had been somewhat mysterious about this man, Mollett. She had
+endeavoured to reassure and comfort her mistress, saying that
+nothing would come of it as nothing had come of that other Tenby
+visit, and giving it as her counsel that the ladies should allow the
+whole matter to pass by without further notice. But at the same time
+Lady Fitzgerald had remarked that her manner had been very serious
+when she first said that she had seen the man before.
+
+"Jones," Lady Fitzgerald had said to her, very earnestly, "if you
+know more about this man than you are telling me, you are bound to
+speak out, and let me know everything."
+
+"Who--I, my lady? what could I know? Only he do look to me like the
+same man, and so I thought it right to say to your ladyship."
+
+Lady Fitzgerald had seen that there was nothing more to be gained by
+cross-questioning, and so she had allowed the matter to drop. But
+she was by no means satisfied that this servant whom she so trusted
+did not know more than she had told. And then Mrs. Jones had been
+with her in those dreadful Dorsetshire days, and an undefined fear
+began to creep over her very soul.
+
+"God bless you, my child!" said Lady Fitzgerald, as her son got up
+to leave her. And then she embraced him with more warmth even than
+was her wont. "All that we can do at present is to be gentle with
+him, and not to encourage people around him to talk of his illness."
+
+On the next morning Lady Fitzgerald did not come down to breakfast,
+but sent her love to Clara, and begged her guest to excuse her on
+account of headache. Sir Thomas rarely came in to breakfast, and
+therefore his absence was not remarkable. His daughters, however,
+went up to see him, as did also his sister; and they all declared
+that he was very much better.
+
+"It was some sudden attack, I suppose?" said Clara.
+
+"Yes, very sudden; he has had the same before," said Herbert. "But
+they do not at all affect his intellect or bodily powers. Depression
+is, I suppose, the name that the doctors would call it."
+
+And then at last it became noticeable by them that Lady Clara did
+not use her left arm. "Oh, Clara!" said Emmeline, "I see now that
+you are hurt. How selfish we have been! Oh dear, oh dear!" And both
+Emmeline and Mary immediately surrounded her, examining her arm, and
+almost carrying her to the sofa.
+
+"I don't think it will be much," said Clara. "It's only a little
+stiff."
+
+"Oh, Herbert, what shall we do? Do look here; the inside of her arm
+is quite black."
+
+Herbert, gently touching her hand, did examine the arm, and declared
+his opinion that she had received a dreadfully violent blow.
+Emmeline proposed to send for a doctor to pronounce whether or no it
+were broken. Mary said that she didn't think it was broken, but that
+she was sure the patient ought not to be moved that day, or probably
+for a week. Aunt Letty, in the mean time, prescribed a cold-water
+bandage with great authority, and bounced out of the room to fetch
+the necessary linen and basin of water.
+
+"It's nothing at all," continued Clara. "And indeed I shall go home
+to-day; indeed I shall."
+
+"It might be very bad for your arm that you should be moved." said
+Herbert.
+
+"And your staying here will not be the least trouble to us. We shall
+all be so happy to have you; shall we not, Mary?"
+
+"Of course we shall; and so will mamma."
+
+"I am so sorry to be here now," said Clara, "when I know you are all
+in such trouble about Sir Thomas. But as for going, I shall go as
+soon as ever you can make it convenient to send me. Indeed I shall."
+And so the matter was discussed between them, Aunt Letty in the mean
+time binding up the bruised arm with cold-water appliances.
+
+Lady Clara was quite firm about going, and, therefore, at about
+twelve she was sent. I should say taken, for Emmeline insisted on
+going with her in the carriage. Herbert would have gone also, but he
+felt that he ought not to leave Castle Richmond that day, on account
+of his father. But he would certainly ride over, he said, and learn
+how her arm was the next morning.
+
+"And about Clady, you know," said Clara.
+
+"I will go on to Clady also. I did send a man there yesterday to see
+about the flue. It's the flue that's wrong, I know."
+
+"Oh, thank you; I am so much obliged to you," said Clara. And then
+the carriage drove off, and Herbert returned into the morning
+sitting-room with his sister Mary.
+
+"I'll tell you what it is, Master Herbert," said Mary.
+
+"Well--what is it?"
+
+"You are going to fall in love with her young ladyship."
+
+"Am I? Is that all you know about it? And who are you going to fall
+in love with, pray?"
+
+"Oh! his young lordship, perhaps; only he ought to be about ten
+years older, so that I'm afraid that wouldn't do. But Clara is just
+the age for you. It really seems as though it were all prepared
+ready to your hand."
+
+"You girls always do think that those things are ready prepared;"
+and so saying, Herbert walked off with great manly dignity to some
+retreat among his own books and papers, there to meditate whether
+this thing were in truth prepared for him. It certainly was the fact
+that the house did seem very blank to him now that Clara was gone;
+and that he looked forward with impatience to the visit which it was
+so necessary that he should make on the following day to Clady.
+
+The house at Castle Richmond was very silent and quiet that day.
+When Emmeline came back, she and her sister remained together.
+Nothing had been said to them about Mollett's visit, and they had no
+other idea than that this lowness of spirits on their father's part,
+to which they had gradually become accustomed, had become worse and
+more dangerous to his health than ever.
+
+Aunt Letty talked much about it to Herbert, to Lady Fitzgerald, to
+Jones, and to her brother, and was quite certain that she had
+penetrated to the depth of the whole matter. That nasty city
+property, she said, which had come with her grandmother, had always
+given the family more trouble than it was worth. Indeed, her
+grandmother had been a very troublesome woman altogether; and no
+wonder, for though she was a Protestant herself, she had had Papist
+relations in Lancashire. She distinctly remembered to have heard
+that there was some flaw in the title of that property, and she knew
+that it was very hard to get some of the tenants to pay any rent.
+That she had always heard. She was quite sure that this man was some
+person laying a claim to it, and threatening to prosecute his claim
+at law. It was a thousand pities that her brother should allow such
+a trifle as this,--for after all it was but a trifle, to fret his
+spirits and worry him in this way. But it was the wretched state of
+his health: were he once himself again, all such annoyances as that
+would pass him by like the wind.
+
+It must be acknowledged that Aunt Letty's memory in this respect was
+not exactly correct; for, as it happened, Sir Thomas held his little
+property in the city of London by as firm a tenure as the laws and
+customs of his country could give him; and seeing that his income
+thence arising came from ground rents near the river, on which
+property stood worth some hundreds of thousands, it was not very
+probable that his tenants should be in arrear. But what she said had
+some effect upon Herbert. He was not quite sure whether this might
+not be the cause of his father's grief; and if the story did not
+have much effect upon Lady Fitzgerald, at any rate it did as well as
+any other to exercise the ingenuity and affection of Aunt Letty.
+
+Sir Thomas passed the whole of that day in his own room; but during
+a great portion of the day either his wife, or sister, or son was
+with him. They endeavoured not to leave him alone with his own
+thoughts, feeling conscious that something preyed upon his mind,
+though ignorant as to what that something might be.
+
+He was quite aware of the nature of their thoughts; perfectly
+conscious of the judgment they had formed respecting him. He knew
+that he was subjecting himself, in the eyes not only of his own
+family but of all those around him, to suspicions which must be
+injurious to him, and yet he could not shake off the feeling that
+depressed him.
+
+But at last he did resolve to make an attempt at doing so. For some
+time in the evening he was altogether alone, and he then strove to
+force his mind to work upon the matter which occupied it,--to
+arrange his ideas, and bring himself into a state in which he could
+make a resolution. For hours he had sat,--not thinking upon this
+subject, for thought is an exertion which requires a combination of
+ideas and results in the deducing of conclusions from premises; and
+no such effort as that had he hitherto made,--but endeavouring to
+think while he allowed the matter of his grief to lie ever before
+his mind's eye.
+
+He had said to himself over and over again, that it behoved him to
+make some great effort to shake off this incubus that depressed him;
+but yet no such effort had hitherto been even attempted. Now at last
+he arose and shook himself, and promised to himself that he would be
+a man. It might be that the misfortune under which he groaned was
+heavy, but let one's sorrow be what it may, there is always a better
+and a worse way of meeting it. Let what trouble may fall on a man's
+shoulders, a man may always bear it manfully. And are not troubles
+when so borne half cured? It is the flinching from pain which makes
+pain so painful.
+
+This truth came home to him as he sat there that day, thinking what
+he should do, endeavouring to think in what way he might best turn
+himself. But there was this that was especially grievous to him,
+that he had no friend whom he might consult in this matter. It was a
+sorrow, the cause of which he could not explain to his own family,
+and in all other troubles he had sought assistance and looked for
+counsel there and there only. He had had one best, steadiest,
+dearest, truest counsellor, and now it had come to pass that things
+were so placed that in this great trouble he could not go to her.
+
+And now a friend was so necessary to him! He felt that he was not
+fit to judge how he himself should act in this terrible emergency;
+that it was absolutely necessary for him that he should allow
+himself to be guided by some one else. But to whom should he appeal?
+
+"He is a cold man," said he to himself, as one name did occur to
+him, "very cold, almost unfeeling; but he is honest and just." And
+then again he sat and thought. "Yes, he is honest and just; and what
+should I want better than honesty and justice?" And then, shuddering
+as he resolved, he did resolve that he would send for this honest
+and just man. He would send for him; or, perhaps better still, go to
+him. At any rate, he would tell him the whole truth of his grief,
+and then act as the cold, just man should bid him.
+
+But he need not do this yet--not quite yet. So at least he said to
+himself, falsely. If a man decide with a fixed decision that his
+tooth should come out, or his leg be cut off, let the tooth come out
+or the leg be cut off on the earliest possible opportunity. It is
+the flinching from such pain that is so grievously painful.
+
+But it was something to have brought his mind to bear with a fixed
+purpose upon these things, and to have resolved upon what he would
+do, though he still lacked strength to put his resolution
+immediately to the proof.
+
+Then, later in the evening, his son came and sat with him, and he
+was able in some sort to declare that the worst of that evil day had
+passed from him. "I shall breakfast with you all to-morrow," he
+said, and as he spoke a faint smile passed across his face.
+
+"Oh! I hope you will," said Herbert; "we shall be so delighted: but,
+father, do not exert yourself too soon."
+
+"It will do me good, I think."
+
+"I am sure it will, if the fatigue be not too much."
+
+"The truth is, Herbert, I have allowed this feeling to grow upon me
+till I have become weak under it. I know that I ought to make an
+exertion to throw it off, and it is possible that I may succeed."
+
+Herbert muttered some few hopeful words, but he found it very
+difficult to know what he ought to say. That his father had some
+secret he was quite sure; and it is hard to talk to a man about his
+secret, without knowing what that secret is.
+
+"I have allowed myself to fall into a weak state," continued Sir
+Thomas, speaking slowly, "while by proper exertion I might have
+avoided it."
+
+"You have been very ill, father," said Herbert.
+
+"Yes, I have been ill, very ill, certainly. But I do not know that
+any doctor could have helped me."
+
+"Father--"
+
+"No, Herbert; do not ask me questions; do not inquire; at any rate,
+not at present. I will endeavour--now at least I will endeavour--to
+do my duty. But do not urge me by questions, or appear to notice me
+if I am infirm."
+
+"But, father,--if we could comfort you?"
+
+"Ah! if you could. But, never mind, I will endeavour to shake off
+this depression. And, Herbert, comfort your mother; do not let her
+think much of all this, if it can be helped."
+
+"But how can it be helped?"
+
+"And tell her this: there is a matter that troubles my mind."
+
+"Is it about the property, father?"
+
+"No--yes; it certainly is about the property in one sense."
+
+"Then do not heed it; we shall none of us heed it. Who has so good a
+right to say so as I?"
+
+"Bless you, my darling boy! But, Herbert, such things must be
+heeded--more or less, you know: but you may tell your mother this,
+and perhaps it may comfort her. I have made up my mind to go to
+London and to see Prendergast; I will explain the whole of this
+thing to him, and as he bids me so will I act."
+
+This was thought to be satisfactory to a certain extent both by the
+mother and son. They would have been better pleased had he opened
+his heart to them and told them everything; but that it was clear he
+could not bring himself to do. This Mr. Prendergast they had heard
+was a good man; and in his present state it was better that he
+should seek counsel of any man than allow his sorrow to feed upon
+himself alone.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+THE RECTOR OF DRUMBARROW AND HIS WIFE
+
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald, in speaking of the Rev. Aeneas Townsend to Lady
+Clara Desmond, had said that in his opinion the reverend gentleman
+was a good man, but a bad clergyman. But there were not a few in the
+county Cork who would have said just the reverse, and declared him
+to be a bad man, but a good clergyman. There were others, indeed,
+who knew him well, who would have declared him to be perfect in both
+respects, and others again who thought him in both respects to be
+very bad. Amidst these great diversities of opinion I will venture
+on none of my own, but will attempt to describe him.
+
+In Ireland stanch Protestantism consists too much in a hatred of
+Papistry--in that rather than in a hatred of those errors against
+which we Protestants are supposed to protest. Hence the cross--which
+should, I presume, be the emblem of salvation to us all--creates a
+feeling of dismay and often of disgust instead of love and
+reverence; and the very name of a saint savours in Irish Protestant
+ears of idolatry, although Irish Protestants on every Sunday profess
+to believe in a communion of such. These are the feelings rather
+than the opinions of the most Protestant of Irish Protestants, and
+it is intelligible that they should have been produced by the close
+vicinity of Roman Catholic worship in the minds of men who are
+energetic and excitable, but not always discreet or argumentative.
+
+One of such was Mr. Townsend, and few men carried their Protestant
+fervour further than he did. A cross was to him what a red cloth is
+supposed to be to a bull; and so averse was he to the intercession
+of saints, that he always regarded as a wolf in sheep's clothing a
+certain English clergyman who had written to him a letter dated from
+the feast of St. Michael and All Angels. On this account Herbert
+Fitzgerald took upon himself to say that he regarded him as a bad
+clergyman: whereas, most of his Protestant neighbours looked upon
+this enthusiasm as his chief excellence.
+
+And this admiration for him induced his friends to overlook what
+they must have acknowledged to be defects in his character. Though
+he had a good living--at least, what the laity in speaking of
+clerical incomes is generally inclined to call a good living, we
+will say amounting in value to four hundred pounds a-year--he was
+always in debt. This was the more inexcusable as he had no children,
+and had some small private means.
+
+And nobody knew why he was in debt--in which word nobody he himself
+must certainly be included. He had no personal expenses of his own;
+his wife, though she was a very queer woman, as Lady Clara had said,
+could hardly be called an extravagant woman; there was nothing large
+or splendid about the way of living at the glebe; anybody who came
+there, both he and she were willing to feed as long as they chose to
+stay, and a good many in this way they did feed; but they never
+invited guests; and as for giving regular fixed dinner-parties, as
+parish rectors do in England, no such idea ever crossed the brain of
+either Mr. or Mrs. Townsend.
+
+That they were both charitable all the world admitted; and their
+admirers professed that hence arose all their difficulties. But
+their charities were of a most indiscreet kind. Money they rarely
+had to give, and therefore they would give promises to pay. While
+their credit with the butcher and baker was good they would give
+meat and bread; and both these functionaries had by this time
+learned that, though Mr. Townsend might not be able to pay such
+bills himself, his friends would do so, sooner or later, if duly
+pressed. And therefore the larder at Drumbarrow Glebe--that was the
+name of the parish--was never long empty, and then again it was
+never long full.
+
+But neither Mr. nor Mrs. Townsend were content to bestow their
+charities without some other object than that of relieving material
+wants by their alms. Many infidels, Mr. Townsend argued, had been
+made believers by the miracle of the loaves and fishes; and
+therefore it was permissible for him to make use of the same means
+for drawing over proselytes to the true church. If he could find
+hungry Papists and convert them into well-fed Protestants by one and
+the same process, he must be doing a double good, he argued;--could
+by no possibility be doing an evil.
+
+Such being the character of Mr. Townsend, it will not be thought
+surprising that he should have his warm admirers and his hot
+detractors. And they who were inclined to be among the latter were
+not slow to add up certain little disagreeable eccentricities among
+the list of his faults,--as young Fitzgerald had done in the matter
+of the dirty surplices.
+
+Mr. Townsend's most uncompromising foe for many years had been the
+Rev. Bernard M'Carthy, the parish priest for the same parish of
+Drumbarrow. Father Bernard, as he was called by his own flock, or
+Father Barney, as the Protestants in derision were delighted to name
+him, was much more a man of the world than his Protestant colleague.
+He did not do half so many absurd things as did Mr. Townsend, and
+professed to laugh at what he called the Protestant madness of the
+rector. But he also had been an eager, I may also say, a malicious
+antagonist. What he called the "souping" system of the Protestant
+clergyman stank in his nostrils--that system by which, as he stated,
+the most ignorant of men were to be induced to leave their faith by
+the hope of soup, or other food. He was as firmly convinced of the
+inward, heart-destroying iniquity of the parson as the parson was of
+that of the priest. And so these two men had learned to hate each
+other. And yet neither of them were bad men.
+
+I do not wish it to be understood that this sort of feeling always
+prevailed in Irish parishes between the priest and the parson even
+before the days of the famine. I myself have met a priest at a
+parson's table, and have known more than one parish in which the
+Protestant and Roman Catholic clergymen lived together on amicable
+terms. But such a feeling as that above represented was common, and
+was by no means held as proof that the parties themselves were
+quarrelsome or malicious. It was a part of their religious
+convictions, and who dares to interfere with the religious
+convictions of a clergyman?
+
+On the day but one after that on which the Castle Richmond ladies
+had been thrown from their car on the frosty road, Mr. Townsend and
+Father Bernard were brought together in an amicable way, or in a way
+that was intended to be amicable, for the first time in their lives.
+The relief committee for the district in which they both lived was
+one and the same, and it was of course well that both should act on
+it. When the matter was first arranged, Father Bernard took the bull
+by the horns and went there; but Mr. Townsend, hearing this, did not
+do so. But now that it had become evident that much work, and for a
+long time, would have to be performed at these committees, it was
+clear that Mr. Townsend, as a Protestant clergyman, could not remain
+away without neglecting his duty. And so, after many mental
+struggles and questions of conscience, the parson agreed to meet the
+priest.
+
+The point had been very deeply discussed between the rector and his
+wife. She had given it as her opinion that priest M'Carthy was
+pitch, pitch itself in its blackest turpitude, and as such could not
+be touched without defilement. Had not all the Protestant clergymen
+of Ireland in a body, or, at any rate, all those who were worth
+anything, who could with truth be called Protestant clergymen, had
+they not all refused to enter the doors of the National schools
+because they could not do so without sharing their ministration
+there with papist priests; with priests of the altar of Baal, as
+Mrs. Townsend called them? And should they now yield, when, after
+all, the assistance needed was only for the body--not for the soul?
+
+It may be seen from this that the lady's mind was not in its nature
+logical; but the extreme absurdity of her arguments, though they did
+not ultimately have the desired effect, by no means came home to the
+understanding of her husband. He thought that there was a great deal
+in what she said, and almost felt that he was yielding to
+instigations from the evil one; but public opinion was too strong
+for him; public opinion and the innate kindness of his own heart. He
+felt that at this very moment he ought to labour specially for the
+bodies of these poor people, as at other times he would labour
+specially for their souls; and so he yielded.
+
+"Well," said his wife to him as he got off his car at his own door
+after the meeting, "what have you done?" One might have imagined
+from her tone of voice and her manner that she expected, or at least
+hoped to hear that the priest had been absolutely exterminated and
+made away with in the good fight.
+
+Mr. Townsend made no immediate answer, but proceeded to divest
+himself of his rusty outside coat, and to rub up his stiff,
+grizzled, bristly, uncombed hair with both his hands, as was his
+wont when he was not quite satisfied with the state of things.
+
+"I suppose he was there?" said Mrs. Townsend.
+
+"Oh yes, he was there. He is never away, I take it, when there is
+any talking to be done." Now Mr. Townsend dearly loved to hear
+himself talk, but no man was louder against the sins of other
+orators. And then he began to ask how many minutes it wanted to
+dinner-time.
+
+Mrs. Townsend knew his ways. She would not have a ghost of a chance
+of getting from him a true and substantial account of what had
+really passed if she persevered in direct questions to the effect.
+So she pretended to drop the matter, and went and fetched her lord's
+slippers, the putting on of which constituted his evening toilet;
+and then, after some little hurrying inquiry in the kitchen,
+promised him his dinner in fifteen minutes.
+
+"Was Herbert Fitzgerald there?"
+
+"Oh yes; he is always there. He's a nice young fellow; a very fine
+young fellow; but--"
+
+"But what?"
+
+"He thinks he understands the Irish Roman Catholics, but he
+understands them no more than--than--than this slipper," he said,
+having in vain cudgelled his brain for a better comparison.
+
+"You know what Aunt Letty says about him. She doubts he isn't quite
+right, you know."
+
+Mrs. Townsend by this did not mean to insinuate that Herbert was at
+all afflicted in that way which we attempt to designate, when we say
+that one of our friends is not all right, and at the same time touch
+our heads with our forefinger. She had intended to convey an
+impression that the young man's religious ideas were not exactly of
+that stanch, true-blue description which she admired.
+
+"Well, he has just come from Oxford, you know," said Mr. Townsend:
+"and at the present moment Oxford is the most dangerous place to
+which a young man can be sent."
+
+"And Sir Thomas would send him there, though I remember telling his
+aunt over and over again how it would be." And Mrs. Townsend as she
+spoke shook her head sorrowfully.
+
+"I don't mean to say, you know, that he's absolutely bitten."
+
+"Oh, I know--I understand. When they come to crosses and
+candlesticks, the next step to the glory of Mary is a very easy one.
+I would sooner send a young man to Rome than to Oxford. At the one
+he might be shocked and disgusted; but at the other he is cajoled,
+and cheated, and ruined." And then Mrs. Townsend threw herself back
+in her chair, and threw her eyes up towards the ceiling.
+
+But there was no hypocrisy or pretence in this expression of her
+feelings. She did in her heart of hearts believe that there was some
+college or club of papists at Oxford, emissaries of the Pope or of
+the Jesuits. In her moments of sterner thought the latter were the
+enemies she most feared; whereas, when she was simply pervaded by
+her usual chronic hatred of the Irish Roman Catholic hierarchy, she
+was wont to inveigh most against the Pope. And this college, she
+maintained, was fearfully successful in drawing away the souls of
+young English students. Indeed, at Oxford a man had no chance
+against the devi. Things were better at Cambridge; though even
+there there was great danger. Look at A--and Z--; and she would name
+two perverts to the Church of Rome, of whom she had learned that
+they were Cambridge men. But, thank God, Trinity College still stood
+firm. Her idea was, that if there were left any real Protestant
+truth in the Church of England, that Church should look to feed her
+lambs by the hands of shepherds chosen from that seminary, and from
+that seminary only.
+
+"But isn't dinner nearly ready?" said Mr. Townsend, whose ideas were
+not so exclusively Protestant as were those of his wife. "I haven't
+had a morsel since breakfast." And then his wife, who was peculiarly
+anxious to keep him in a good humour that all might come out about
+Father Barney, made another little visit to the kitchen.
+
+At last the dinner was served. The weather was very cold, and the
+rector and his wife considered it more cosy to use only the parlour,
+and not to migrate into the cold air of a second room. Indeed,
+during the winter months the drawing-room of Drumbarrow Glebe was
+only used for visitors, and for visitors who were not intimate
+enough in the house to be placed upon the worn chairs and threadbare
+carpet of the dining-parlour. And very cold was that drawing-room
+found to be by each visitor.
+
+But the parlour was warm enough; warm and cosy, though perhaps at
+times a little close; and of evenings there would pervade it a smell
+of whisky punch, not altogether acceptable to unaccustomed nostrils.
+Not that the rector of Drumbarrow was by any means an intemperate
+man. His single tumbler of whisky toddy, repeated only on Sundays
+and some other rare occasions, would by no means equal, in point of
+drinking, the ordinary port of an ordinary English clergyman. But
+whisky punch does leave behind a savour of its intrinsic virtues,
+delightful no doubt to those who have imbibed its grosser elements,
+but not equally acceptable to others who may have been less
+fortunate.
+
+During dinner there was no conversation about Herbert Fitzgerald, or
+the committee, or Father Barney. The old gardener, who waited at
+table with all his garden clothes on him, and whom the neighbours,
+with respectful deference, called Mr. Townsend's butler, was a Roman
+Catholic, as, indeed, were all the servants at the glebe, and as
+are, necessarily, all the native servants in that part of the
+country. And though Mr. and Mrs. Townsend put great trust in their
+servant Jerry as to the ordinary duties of gardening, driving, and
+butlering, they would not knowingly trust him with a word of their
+habitual conversation about the things around them. Their idea was,
+that every word so heard was carried to the priest, and that the
+priest kept a book in which every word so uttered was written down.
+If this were so through the parish, the priest must in truth have
+had something to do, both for himself and his private secretary,
+for, in spite of all precautions that were taken, Jerry and Jerry's
+brethren no doubt did hear much of what was said. The repetitions to
+the priest, however, I must take leave to doubt.
+
+But after dinner, when the hot water and whisky were on the table,
+when the two old armchairs were drawn cozily up on the rug, each
+with an old footstool before it, when the faithful wife had mixed
+that glass of punch--or jug rather, for, after the old fashion, it
+was brewed in such a receptacle; and when, to inspire increased
+confidence, she had put into it a small extra modicum of the
+eloquent spirit, then the mouth of the rector was opened, and Mrs.
+Townsend was made happy.
+
+"And so Father Barney and I have met at last," said he, rather
+cheerily, as the hot fumes of the toddy regaled his nostrils.
+
+"And how did he behave, now?"
+
+"Well, he was decent enough--that is, as far as absolute behaviour
+went. You can't have a silk purse from off a sow's ear, you know."
+
+"No, indeed; and goodness knows there's plenty of the sow's ear
+about him. But now, Aeneas, dear, do tell me how it all was, just
+from the beginning."
+
+"He was there before me," said the husband.
+
+"Catch a weasel asleep!" said the wife.
+
+"I didn't catch him asleep, at any rate," continued he. "He was
+there before me; but when I went into the little room where they
+hold the meeting--"
+
+"It's at Berryhill, isn't it?"
+
+"Yes, at the Widow Casey's. To see that woman bowing and scraping
+and curtsying to Father Barney, and she his own mother's brother's
+daughter, was the best thing in the world."
+
+"That was just to do him honour before the quality, you know."
+
+"Exactly. When I went in, there was nobody there but his reverence
+and Master Herbert."
+
+"As thick as possible, I suppose. Dear, dear; isn't it
+dreadful!--Did I put sugar enough in it, Aeneas?"
+
+"Well, I don't know; perhaps you may give me another small lump. At
+any rate, you didn't forget the whisky."
+
+"I'm sure it isn't a taste too strong--and after such work as you've
+had to-day.--And so young Fitzgerald and Father Barney--"
+
+"Yes, there they were with their heads together. It was something
+about a mill they were saying."
+
+"Oh, it's perfectly dreadful!"
+
+"But Herbert stopped, and introduced me at once to Father Barney."
+
+"What! a regular introduction? I like that, indeed."
+
+"He didn't do it altogether badly. He said something about being
+glad to see two gentlemen together--"
+
+"A gentleman, indeed!"
+
+"--who were both so anxious to do the best they could in the parish,
+and whose influence was so great--or something to that effect. And
+then we shook hands."
+
+"You did shake hands?"
+
+"Oh yes; if I went there at all, it was necessary that I should do
+that."
+
+"I am very glad it was not me, that's all. I don't think I could
+shake hands with Father Barney."
+
+"There's no knowing what you can do, my dear, till you try."
+
+"H--m," said Mrs. Townsend, meaning to signify thereby that she was
+still strong in the strength of her own impossibilities.
+
+"And then there was a little general conversation about the potato,
+for no one came in for a quarter of an hour or so. The priest said
+that they were as badly off in Limerick and Clare as we are here.
+Now, I don't believe that; and when I asked him how he knew, he
+quoted the 'Freeman.'"
+
+"The 'Freeman,' indeed! Just like him. I wonder it wasn't the
+'Nation.'" In Mrs. Townsend's estimation, the parish priest was much
+to blame because he did not draw his public information from some
+newspaper specially addicted to the support of the Protestant cause.
+
+"And then Somers came in, and he took the chair. I was very much
+afraid at one time that Father Barney was going to seat himself
+there."
+
+"You couldn't possibly have stood that?"
+
+"I had made up my mind what to do. I should have walked about the
+room, and looked on the whole affair as altogether irregular,--as
+though there was no chairman. But Somers was of course the proper
+man."
+
+"And who else came?"
+
+"There was O'Leary, from Boherbue."
+
+"He was another Papist?"
+
+"Oh yes; there was a majority of them. There was Greilly, the man
+who has got that large take of land over beyond Banteer; and then
+Father Barney's coadjutor came in."
+
+"What! that wretched-looking man from Gortnaclough?"
+
+"Yes; he's the curate of the parish, you know."
+
+"And did you shake hands with him too?"
+
+"Indeed I did; and you never saw a fellow look so ashamed of himself
+in your life."
+
+"Well, there isn't much shame about them generally."
+
+"And there wasn't much about him by-and-by. You never heard a man
+talk such trash in your life, till Somers put him down."
+
+"Oh, he was put down? I'm glad of that."
+
+"And to do Father Barney justice, he did tell him to hold his
+tongue. The fool began to make a regular set speech."
+
+"Father Barney, I suppose, didn't choose that anybody should do that
+but himself."
+
+"He did enough for the two, certainly. I never heard a man so fond
+of his own voice. What he wants is to rule it all just his own way."
+
+"Of course he does; and that's just what you won't let him do. What
+other reason can there be for your going there?"
+
+And so the matter was discussed. What absolute steps were taken by
+the committee; how they agreed to buy so much meal of such a
+merchant, at such a price, and with such funds; how it was to be
+resold, and never given away on any pretext; how Mr. Somers had
+explained that giving away their means was killing the goose that
+laid the golden eggs, when the young priest, in an attitude for
+oratory, declared that the poor had no money with which to make the
+purchase; and how in a few weeks' time they would be able to grind
+their own flour at Herbert Fitzgerald's mill;--all this was also
+told. But the telling did not give so much gratification to Mrs.
+Townsend as the sly hits against the two priests.
+
+And then, while they were still in the middle of all this; when the
+punch-jug had given way to the teapot, and the rector was beginning
+to bethink himself that a nap in his armchair would be very
+refreshing, Jerry came into the room to announce that Richard had
+come over from Castle Richmond with a note for "his riverence." And
+so Richard was shown in.
+
+Now, Richard might very well have sent in his note by Jerry, which
+after all contained only some information with reference to a list
+of old women which Herbert Fitzgerald had promised to send over to
+the glebe. But Richard knew that the minister would wish to chat
+with him, and Richard himself had no indisposition for a little
+conversation.
+
+"I hope yer riverences is quite well, then," said Richard, as he
+tendered his note, making a double bow, so as to include them both.
+
+"Pretty well, thank you," said Mrs. Townsend. "And how's all the
+family?"
+
+"Well, then, they're all rightly, considhering. The Masther's no
+just what he war, you know, ma'am."
+
+"I'm afraid not--I'm afraid not," said the rector. "You'll not take
+a glass of spirits, Richard?"
+
+"Yer riverence knows I never does that," said Richard, with somewhat
+of a conscious look of high morality, for he was a rigid
+teetotaller.
+
+"And do you mean to say that you stick to that always?" said Mrs.
+Townsend, who firmly believed that no good could come out of
+Nazareth, and that even abstinence from whisky must be bad if
+accompanied by anything in the shape of a Roman Catholic ceremony.
+
+"I do mean to say, ma'am, that I never touched a dhrop of anything
+sthronger than wather, barring tay, since the time I got the pledge
+from the blessed apostle." And Richard boldly crossed himself in the
+presence of them both. They knew well whom he meant by the blessed
+apostle: it was Father Mathew.
+
+"Temperance is a very good thing, however we may come by it," said
+Mr. Townsend, who meant to imply by this that Richard's temperance
+had been come by in the worst way possible.
+
+"That's thrue for you, sir," said Richard; "but I never knew any
+pledge kept, only the blessed apostle's." By which he meant to imply
+that no sanctity inherent in Mr. Townsend's sacerdotal proceedings
+could be of any such efficacy.
+
+And then Mr. Townsend read the note. "Ah, yes," said he; "tell Mr.
+Herbert that I'm very much obliged to him. There will be no other
+answer necessary."
+
+"Very well, yer riverence, I'll be sure to give Mr. Herbert the
+message." And Richard made a sign as though he were going.
+
+"But tell me, Richard," said Mrs. Townsend, "is Sir Thomas any
+better? for we have been really very uneasy about him."
+
+"Indeed and he is, ma'am; a dail betther this morning, the Lord be
+praised."
+
+"It was a kind of a fit, wasn't it, Richard?" asked the parson.
+
+"A sort of a fit of illness of some kind, I'm thinking," said
+Richard, who had no mind to speak of his family's secrets out of
+doors. Whatever he might be called upon to tell the priest, at any
+rate he was not called on to tell anything to the parson.
+
+"But it was very sudden this time, wasn't it, Richard?" asked the
+lady; "immediately after that strange man was shown into his room
+--eh?"
+
+"I'm sure, ma'am, I can't say; but I don't think he was a ha'porth
+worse than ordinar, till after the gentleman went away. I did hear
+that he did his business with the gentleman, just as usual like."
+
+"And then he fell into a fit, didn't he, Richard?"
+
+"Not that I heard of, ma'am. He did a dail of talking about some law
+business, I did hear our Mrs. Jones say; and then afther he warn't
+just the betther of it."
+
+"Was that all?"
+
+"And I don't think he's none the worse for it neither, ma'am; for
+the masther do seem to have more life in him this day than I'se seen
+this many a month. Why, he's been out and about with her ladyship in
+the pony-carriage all the morning."
+
+"Has he now? Well, I'm delighted to hear that. It is some trouble
+about the English estates, I believe, that vexes him?"
+
+"Faix, then, ma'am, I don't just know what it is that ails him,
+unless it be just that he has too much money for to know what to do
+wid it. That'd be the sore vexation to me, I know."
+
+"Well; ah, yes; I suppose I shall see Mrs. Jones to-morrow, or at
+latest the day after," said Mrs. Townsend, resolving to pique the
+man by making him understand that she could easily learn all that
+she wished to learn from the woman: "a great comfort Mrs. Jones must
+be to her ladyship."
+
+"Oh yes, ma'am; 'deed an' she is," said Richard; "'specially in the
+matter of puddins and pies, and such like."
+
+He was not going to admit Mrs. Jones's superiority, seeing that he
+had lived in the family long before his present mistress's marriage.
+
+"And in a great many other things too, Richard. She's quite a
+confidential servant. That's because she's a Protestant, you know."
+
+Now of all men, women, and creatures living, Richard the coachman of
+Castle Richmond was the most good tempered. No amount of anger or
+scolding, no professional misfortune--such as the falling down of
+his horse upon the ice, no hardship--such as three hours' perpetual
+rain when he was upon the box--would make him cross. To him it was a
+matter of perfect indifference if he were sent off with his car just
+before breakfast, or called away to some stable work as the dinner
+was about to smoke in the servants' hall. He was a great eater, but
+what he didn't eat one day he could eat the next. Such things never
+ruffled him, nor was he ever known to say that such a job wasn't his
+work. He was always willing to nurse a baby, or dig potatoes, or
+cook a dinner, to the best of his ability, when asked to do so; but
+he could not endure to be made less of than a Protestant; and of all
+Protestants he could not endure to be made less of than Mrs. Jones.
+
+"'Cause she's a Protestant, is it, ma'am?"
+
+"Of course, Richard; you can't but see that Protestants are more
+trusted, more respected, more thought about than Romanists, can
+you?"
+
+"'Deed then I don't know, ma'am."
+
+"But look at Mrs. Jones."
+
+"Oh, I looks at her often enough; and she's well enough too for a
+woman. But we all know her weakness."
+
+"What's that, Richard?" asked Mrs. Townsend, with some interest
+expressed in her tone; for she was not above listening to a little
+scandal, even about the servants of her great neighbours.
+
+"Why, she do often talk about things she don't understand. But she's
+a great hand at puddins and pies, and that's what one mostly looks
+for in a woman."
+
+This was enough for Mrs. Townsend for the present, and so Richard
+was allowed to take his departure, in full self-confidence that he
+had been one too many for the parson's wife.
+
+"Jerry," said Richard, as they walked out into the yard together to
+get the Castle Richmond pony, "does they often thry to make a
+Prothestant of you now?"
+
+"Prothestants be d----," said Jerry, who by no means shared in
+Richard's good gifts as to temper.
+
+"Well, I wouldn't say that; at laist, not of all of 'em."
+
+"The likes of them's used to it," said Jerry.
+
+And then Richard, not waiting to do further battle on behalf of his
+Protestant friends, trotted out of the yard.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XI
+
+SECOND LOVE
+
+
+On the day after Clara's departure, Herbert did, as a matter of
+course, make his promised visit at Desmond Court. It was on that day
+that Sir Thomas had been driving about in the pony-carriage with
+Lady Fitzgerald, as Richard had reported. Herbert had been with his
+father in the morning, and then having seen him and his mother well
+packed up in their shawls and cloaks, had mounted his horse and
+ridden off.
+
+"I may be kept some time," said he, "as I have promised to go on to
+Clady, and see after that soup kitchen."
+
+"I shouldn't wonder if Herbert became attached to Clara Desmond,"
+said the mother to Sir Thomas, soon after they had begun their
+excursion.
+
+"Do you think so?" said the baronet; and his tone was certainly not
+exactly that of approbation.
+
+"Well, yes; I certainly do think it probable. I am sure he admires
+her, and I think it very likely to come to more. Would there be any
+objection?"
+
+"They are both very young," said Sir Thomas.
+
+"But in Herbert's position will not a young marriage be the best
+thing for him?"
+
+"And she has no fortune; not a shilling. If he does marry young,
+quite young you know, it might be prudent that his wife should have
+something of her own."
+
+"They'd live here," said Lady Fitzgerald, who knew that of all men
+her husband was usually most free from mercenary feelings and an
+over-anxiety as to increased wealth, either for himself or for his
+children; "and I think it would be such a comfort to you. Herbert,
+you see, is so fond of county business, and so little anxious for
+what young men generally consider pleasure."
+
+There was nothing more said about it at that moment; for the
+question in some measure touched upon money matters and
+considerations as to property, from all of which Lady Fitzgerald at
+present wished to keep her husband's mind free. But towards the end
+of the drive he himself again referred to it.
+
+"She is a nice girl, isn't she?"
+
+"Very nice, I think; as far as I've seen her."
+
+"She is pretty, certainly."
+
+"Very pretty; more than pretty; much more. She will be beautiful."
+
+"But she is such a mere child. You do not think that anything will
+come of it immediately;--not quite immediately?"
+
+"Oh no; certainly not quite immediately. I think Herbert is not
+calculated to be very sudden in any such feelings, or in the
+expression of them: but I do think such an event very probable
+before the winter is over."
+
+In the mean time Herbert spent the whole day over at Desmond Court,
+or at Clady. He found the countess delighted to see him, and both
+she and Lady Clara went on with him to Clady. It was past five and
+quite dark before he reached Castle Richmond, so that he barely got
+home in time to dress for dinner.
+
+The dinner-party that evening was more pleasant than usual. Sir
+Thomas not only dined with them, but came into the drawing-room
+after dinner, and to a certain extent joined in their conversation.
+Lady Fitzgerald could see that this was done by a great effort; but
+it was not remarked by Aunt Letty and the others, who were delighted
+to have him with them, and to see him once more interested about
+their interests.
+
+And now the building of the mill had been settled, and the final
+orders were to be given by Herbert at the spot on the following
+morning.
+
+"We can go with you to Berryhill, I suppose, can't we?" said Mary.
+
+"I shall be in a great hurry," said Herbert, who clearly did not
+wish to be encumbered by his sisters on this special expedition.
+
+"And why are you to be in such a hurry to-morrow?" asked Aunt Letty.
+
+"Well, I shall be hurried; I have promised to go to Clady again, and
+I must be back here early, and must get another horse."
+
+"Why, Herbert, you are becoming a Hercules of energy," said his
+father, smiling: "you will have enough to do if you look to all the
+soup kitchens on the Desmond property as well as our own."
+
+"I made a sort of promise about this particular affair at Clady, and
+I must carry it out," said Herbert.
+
+"And you'll pay your devoirs to the fair Lady Clara on your way home
+of course," said Mary.
+
+"More than probable," he replied.
+
+"And stay so late again that you'll hardly be here in time for
+dinner," continued Mary: to which little sally her brother
+vouchsafed no answer.
+
+But Emmeline said nothing. Lady Clara was specially her friend, and
+she was too anxious to secure such a sister-in-law to make any joke
+upon such a subject.
+
+On that occasion nothing more was said about it; but Sir Thomas
+hoped within his heart that his wife was right in prophesying that
+his son would do nothing sudden in this matter.
+
+On the following morning young Fitzgerald gave the necessary orders
+at Berryhill very quickly, and then coming back remounted another
+horse without going into the house. Then he trotted off to Clady,
+passing the gate of Desmond Court without calling; did what he had
+promised to do at Clady, or rather that which he had made to stand
+as an excuse for again visiting that part of the world so quickly;
+and after that, with a conscience let us hope quite clear, rode up
+the avenue at Desmond Court. It was still early in the day when he
+got there, probably not much after two o'clock; and yet Mary had
+been quite correct in foretelling that he would only be home just in
+time for dinner.
+
+But, nevertheless, he had not seen Lady Desmond. Why or how it had
+occurred that she had been absent from the drawing-room the whole of
+the two hours which he had passed in the house, it may be
+unnecessary to explain. Such, however, had been the fact. The first
+five minutes had been passed in inquiries after the bruise, and, it
+must be owned, in a surgical inspection of the still discoloured
+arm. "It must be very painful," he had said, looking into her face,
+as though by doing so he could swear that he would so willingly bear
+all the pain himself, if it were only possible to make such an
+exchange.
+
+"Not very," she had answered, smiling. "It is only a little stiff. I
+can't quite move it easily."
+
+And then she lifted it up, and afterwards dropped it with a little
+look of pain that ran through his heart.
+
+The next five minutes were taken up in discussing the case of the
+recusant boiler, and then Clara discovered that she had better go
+and fetch her mother. But against the immediate taking of this step
+he had alleged some valid reason, and so they had gone on, till the
+dark night admonished him that he could do no more than save the
+dinner hour at Castle Richmond.
+
+The room was nearly dark when he left her, and she got up and stood
+at the front window, so that, unseen, she might see his figure as he
+rode off from the house. He mounted his horse within the quadrangle,
+and coming out at the great old-fashioned ugly portal, galloped off
+across the green park with a loose rein and a happy heart. What is
+it the song says?
+
+"Oh, ladies, beware of a gay young knight Who loves and who rides
+away."
+
+There was at Clara's heart, as she stood there at the window, some
+feeling of the expediency of being beware, some shadow of doubt as
+to the wisdom of what she had done. He rode away gaily, with a happy
+spirit, for he had won that on the winning of which he had been
+intent. No necessity for caution presented itself to him. He had
+seen and loved; had then asked, and had not asked in vain.
+
+She stood gazing after him, as long as her straining eye could catch
+any outline of his figure as it disappeared through the gloom of the
+evening. As long as she could see him, or even fancy that she still
+saw him, she thought only of his excellence; of his high character,
+his kind heart, his talents--which in her estimation were ranked
+perhaps above their real value--his tastes, which coincided so well
+with her own, his quiet yet manly bearing, his useful pursuits, his
+gait, appearance, and demeanour. All these were of a nature to win
+the heart of such a girl as Clara Desmond; and then, probably, in
+some indistinct way, she remembered the broad acres to which he was
+the heir, and comforted herself by reflecting that this at least was
+a match which none would think disgraceful for a daughter even of an
+Earl of Desmond.
+
+But sadder thoughts did come when that figure had wholly
+disappeared. Her eye, looking out into the darkness, could not but
+see another figure on which it had often in past times delighted
+almost unconsciously to dwell. There, walking on that very road,
+another lover, another Fitzgerald, had sworn that he loved her; and
+had truly sworn so, as she well knew. She had never doubted his
+truth to her, and did not doubt it now;--and yet she had given
+herself away to another.
+
+And in many things he too, that other lover, had been noble and
+gracious, and fit for a woman to love. In person he exceeded all
+that she had ever seen or dreamed of, and why should we think that
+personal excellence is to count for nothing in female judgment, when
+in that of men it ranks so immeasurably above all other excellences?
+His bearing, too, was chivalrous and bold, his language full of
+poetry, and his manner of loving eager, impetuous, and of a kin to
+worship. Then, too, he was now in misfortune, and when has that
+failed to soften even the softness of a woman's heart?
+
+It was impossible that she should not make comparisons, comparisons
+that were so distasteful to her; impossible, also, that she should
+not accuse herself of some falseness to that first lover. The time
+to us, my friends, seems short enough since she was walking there,
+and listening with childish delight to Owen's protestations of love.
+It was but little more than one year since: but to her those months
+had been very long. And, reader, if thou hast arrived at any period
+of life which enables thee to count thy past years by lustrums; if
+thou art at a time of life, past thirty we will say, hast thou not
+found that thy years, which are now short enough, were long in those
+bygone days?
+
+Those fourteen months were to her the space almost of a second life,
+as she now looked back upon them. When those earlier vows were made,
+what had she cared for prudence, for the world's esteem, or an
+alliance that might be becoming to her? That Owen Fitzgerald was a
+gentleman of high blood and ancient family, so much she had cared to
+know; for the rest, she had only cared to feel this, that her heart
+beat high with pleasure when he was with her.
+
+Did her heart beat as high now, when his cousin was beside her? No;
+she felt that it did not. And sometimes she felt, or feared to feel,
+that it might beat high again when she should again see the lover
+whom her judgment had rejected.
+
+Her judgment had rejected him altogether long before an idea had at
+all presented itself to her that Herbert Fitzgerald could become her
+suitor. Nor had this been done wholly in obedience to her mother's
+mandate. She had realized in her own mind the conviction that Owen
+Fitzgerald was not a man with whom any girl could at present safely
+link her fortune. She knew well that he was idle, dissipated, and
+extravagant; and she could not believe that these vices had arisen
+only from his banishment from her, and that they would cease and
+vanish whenever that banishment might cease.
+
+Messages came to her, in underhand ways--ways well understood in
+Ireland, and not always ignored in England--to the effect that all
+his misdoings arose from his unhappiness; that he drank and gambled
+only because the gates of Desmond Court were no longer open to him.
+There was that in Clara's heart which did for a while predispose her
+to believe somewhat of this, to hope that it might not be altogether
+false. Could any girl loving such a man not have had some such hope?
+But then the stories of these revelries became worse and worse, and
+it was dinned into her ears that these doings had been running on in
+all their enormity before that day of his banishment. And so,
+silently and sadly, with no outspoken word either to mother or
+brother, she had resolved to give him up.
+
+There was no necessity to her for any outspoken word. She had
+promised her mother to hold no intercourse with the man; and she had
+kept and would keep her promise. Why say more about it? How she
+might have reconciled her promise to her mother with an enduring
+engagement, had Owen Fitzgerald's conduct allowed her to regard her
+engagement as enduring,--that had been a sore trouble to her while
+hope had remained; but now no hope remained, and that trouble was
+over.
+
+And then Herbert Fitzgerald had come across her path, and those
+sweet, loving, kind Fitzgerald girls, who were always ready to cover
+her with such sweet caresses, with whom she had known more of the
+happiness of friendliness than ever she had felt before. They threw
+themselves upon her like sisters, and she had never before enjoyed
+sisterly treatment. He had come across her path; and from the first
+moment she had become conscious of his admiration.
+
+She knew herself to be penniless, and dreaded that she should be
+looked upon as wishing to catch the rich heir. But every one had
+conspired to throw them together. Lady Fitzgerald had welcomed her
+like a mother, with more caressing soft tenderness than her own
+mother usually vouchsafed to her; and even Sir Thomas had gone out
+of his usual way to be kind to her.
+
+That her mother would approve of such a marriage she could not
+doubt. Lady Desmond in these latter days had not said much to her
+about Owen; but she had said very much of the horrors of poverty.
+And she had been too subtle to praise the virtues of Herbert with
+open plain words; but she had praised the comforts of a handsome
+income and well-established family mansion. Clara at these times had
+understood more than had been intended, and had, therefore, put
+herself on her guard against her mother's worldly wisdom; but,
+nevertheless, the dropping of the water had in some little measure
+hollowed the stone beneath.
+
+And thus, thinking of these things, she stood at the window for some
+half-hour after the form of her accepted lover had become invisible
+in the gathering gloom of the evening.
+
+And then her mother entered the room, and candles were brought. Lady
+Desmond was all smiles and benignity, as she had been for this last
+week past, while Herbert Fitzgerald had been coming and going almost
+daily at Desmond Court. But Clara understood this benignity, and
+disliked it.
+
+It was, however, now necessary that everything should be told.
+Herbert had declared that he should at once inform his father and
+mother, and obtain their permission for his marriage. He spoke of it
+as a matter on which there was no occasion for any doubt or
+misgiving. He was an only son, he said, and trusted and loved in
+everything. His father never opposed him on any subject whatever;
+and would, he was sure, consent to any match he might propose. "But
+as to you," he added, with a lover's flattering fervour, "they are
+all so fond of you, they all think so much of you, that my only fear
+is that I shall be jealous. They'll all make love to you, Aunt Letty
+included."
+
+It was therefore essential that she should at once tell her mother,
+and ask her mother's leave. She had once before confessed a tale of
+love, and had done so with palpitation of the heart, with trembling
+of the limbs, and floods of tears. Then her tale had been received
+with harsh sternness. Now she could tell her story without any
+trembling, with no tears; but it was almost indifferent to her
+whether her mother was harsh or tender.
+
+"What! has Mr. Fitzgerald gone?" said the countess, on entering the
+room.
+
+"Yes, mamma; this half-hour," said Clara, not as yet coming away
+from the window.
+
+"I did not hear his horse, and imagined he was here still. I hope he
+has not thought me terribly uncivil, but I could not well leave what
+I was doing."
+
+To this little make-believe speech Clara did not think it necessary
+to return any answer. She was thinking how she would begin to say
+that for saying which there was so strong a necessity, and she could
+not take a part in small false badinage on a subject which was so
+near her heart.
+
+"And what about that stupid mason at Clady?" asked the countess,
+still making believe.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald was there again to-day, mamma; and I think it will
+be all right now; but he did not say much about it."
+
+"Why not? you were all so full of it yesterday."
+
+Clara, who had half turned round towards the light, now again turned
+herself towards the window. This task must be done; but the doing of
+it was so disagreeable! How was she to tell her mother that she
+loved this man, seeing that so short a time since she had declared
+that she loved another?
+
+"And what was he talking about, love?" said the countess, ever so
+graciously. "Or, perhaps, no questioning on the matter can be
+allowed. May I ask questions, or may I not? eh, Clara?" and then the
+mother, walking up towards the window, put her fair white hands upon
+her daughter's two shoulders.
+
+"Of course you may inquire," said Clara.
+
+"Then I do inquire--immediately. What has this preux chevalier been
+saying to my Clara, that makes her stand thus solemn and silent,
+gazing out into the dark night?"
+
+"Mamma!"
+
+"Well, love?"
+
+"Herbert Fitzgerald has--has asked me to be his wife. He has
+proposed to me."
+
+The mother's arm now encircled the daughter lovingly, and the
+mother's lips were pressed to the daughter's forehead. "Herbert
+Fitzgerald has asked you to be his wife, has he? And what answer has
+my bonny bird deigned to make to so audacious a request?"
+
+Lady Desmond had never before spoken to her daughter in tones so
+gracious, in a manner so flattering, so caressing, so affectionate.
+But Clara would not open her heart to her mother's tenderness. She
+could not look into her mother's face, and welcome her mother's
+consent with unutterable joy, as she would have done had that
+consent been given a year since to a less prudent proposition. That
+marriage for which she was now to ask her mother's sanction would of
+course be sanctioned. She had no favour to beg; nothing for which to
+be grateful. With a slight motion, unconsciously, unwillingly, but
+not the less positively, she repulsed her mother's caress as she
+answered her question.
+
+"I have accepted him, mamma; that is, of course, if you do not
+object."
+
+"My own, own child!" said the countess, seizing her daughter in her
+arms, and pressing her to her bosom. And in truth Clara was, now
+probably for the first time, her own heart's daughter. Her son,
+though he was but a poor earl, was Earl of Desmond. He too, though
+in truth but a poor earl, was not absolutely destitute,--would in
+truth be blessed with a fair future. But Lady Clara had hitherto
+been felt only as a weight. She had been born poor as poverty
+itself, and hitherto had shown so little disposition to find for
+herself a remedy for this crushing evil! But now--now matters were
+indeed changed. She had obtained for herself the best match in the
+whole country round, and, in doing so, had sacrificed her heart's
+young love. Was she not entitled to all a mother's tenderness? Who
+knew, who could know the miseries of poverty so well as the Countess
+of Desmond? Who then could feel so much gratitude to a child for
+prudently escaping from them? Lady Desmond did feel grateful to her
+daughter.
+
+"My own, own child; my happy girl," she repeated. "He is a man to
+whom any mother in all the land would be proud to see her daughter
+married. Never, never did I see a young man so perfectly worthy of a
+girl's love. He is so thoroughly well educated, so thoroughly well
+conducted, so good-looking, so warm-hearted, so advantageously
+situated in all his circumstances. Of course he will go into
+Parliament, and then any course is open to him. The property is, I
+believe, wholly unembarrassed, and there are no younger brothers.
+You may say that the place is his own already, for old Sir Thomas is
+almost nobody. I do wish you joy, my own dearest, dearest Clara!"
+After which burst of maternal eloquence, the countess pressed her
+lips to those of her child, and gave her a mother's warmest kiss.
+
+Clara was conscious that she was thoroughly dissatisfied with her
+mother, but she could not exactly say why it was so. She did return
+her mother's kiss, but she did it coldly, and with lips that were
+not eager.
+
+"I'm glad you think that I have done right, mamma."
+
+"Right, my love! Of course I think that you have done right: only I
+give you no credit, dearest; none in the least; for how could you
+help loving one so lovable in every way as dear Herbert?"
+
+"Credit! no, there is no credit," she said, not choosing to share
+her mother's pleasantry.
+
+"But there is this credit. Had you not been one of the sweetest
+girls that ever was born, he would not have loved you."
+
+"He has loved me because there was no one else here," said Clara.
+
+"Nonsense! No one else here, indeed! Has he not the power if he
+pleases to go and choose whomever he will in all London. Had he been
+mercenary, and wanted money," said the countess, in a tone which
+showed how thoroughly she despised any such vice, "he might have had
+what he would. But then he could not have had my Clara. But he has
+looked for beauty and manners and high-bred tastes, and an
+affectionate heart; and, in my opinion, he could not have been more
+successful in his search." After which second burst of eloquence,
+she again kissed her daughter.
+
+'Twas thus, at that moment, that she congratulated the wife of the
+future Sir Herbert Fitzgerald; and then she allowed Clara to go up
+to her own room, there to meditate quietly on what she had done, and
+on that which she was about to do. But late in the evening, Lady
+Desmond, whose mind was thoroughly full of the subject, again broke
+out into triumph.
+
+"You must write to Patrick to-morrow, Clara. He must hear the good
+news from no one but yourself."
+
+"Had we not better wait a little, mamma?"
+
+"Why, my love? You hardly know how anxious your brother is for your
+welfare."
+
+"I knew it was right to tell you, mamma--"
+
+"Right to tell me! of course it was. You could not have had the
+heart to keep it from me for half a day."
+
+"But perhaps it may be better not to mention it further till we
+know--"
+
+"Till we know what?" said the countess, with a look of fear about
+her brow.
+
+"Whether Sir Thomas and Lady Fitzgerald will wish it. If they
+object--"
+
+"Object! why should they object? how can they object? They are not
+mercenary people; and you are an earl's daughter. And Herbert is not
+like a girl. The property is his own, entailed on him, and he may do
+as he pleases."
+
+"In such a matter I am sure he would not wish to displease either
+his father or his mother."
+
+"Nonsense, my dear; quite nonsense; you do not at all see the
+difference between a young man and a girl. He has a right to do
+exactly as he likes in such a matter. But I am quite sure that they
+will not object. Why should they? How can they?"
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald says that they will not," Clara admitted, almost
+grudgingly.
+
+"Of course they will not. I don't suppose they could bring
+themselves to object to anything he might suggest. I never knew a
+young man so happily situated in this respect. He is quite a free
+agent. I don't think they would say much to him if he insisted on
+marrying the cook-maid. Indeed, it seems to me that his word is
+quite paramount at Castle Richmond."
+
+"All the same, mamma, I would rather not write to Patrick till
+something more has been settled."
+
+"You are wrong there, Clara. If anything disagreeable should happen,
+which is quite impossible, it would be absolutely necessary that
+your brother should know. Believe me, my love, I only advise you for
+your own good."
+
+"But Mr. Fitzgerald will probably be here to-morrow; or if not
+to-morrow, next day."
+
+"I have no doubt he will, love. But why do you call him Mr.
+Fitzgerald? You were calling him Herbert the other day. Don't you
+remember how I scolded you? I should not scold you now."
+
+Clara made no answer to this, and then the subject was allowed to
+rest for that night. She would call him Herbert, she said to
+herself; but not to her mother. She would keep the use of that name
+till she could talk with Emmeline as a sister. Of all her
+anticipated pleasures, that of having now a real sister was perhaps
+the greatest; or, rather, that of being able to talk about Herbert
+with one whom she could love and treat as a sister. But Herbert
+himself would exact the use of his own Christian name, for the
+delight of his own ears; that was a matter of course; that,
+doubtless, had been already done.
+
+And then mother and daughter went to bed. The countess, as she did
+so, was certainly happy to her heart's core. Could it be that she
+had some hope, unrecognized by herself, that Owen Fitzgerald might
+now once more be welcomed at Desmond Court? that something might now
+be done to rescue him from that slough of despond?
+
+And Clara too was happy, though her happiness was mixed. She did
+love Herbert Fitzgerald. She was sure of that. She said so to
+herself over and over again. Love him! of course she loved him, and
+would cherish him as her lord and husband to the last day of her
+life, the last gasp of her breath.
+
+But still, as sleep came upon her eyelids, she saw in her memory the
+bright flash of that other lover's countenance, when he first
+astonished her with the avowal of his love, as he walked beside her
+under the elms, with his horse following at his heels.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XII
+
+DOUBTS
+
+
+I believe there is no period of life so happy as that in which a
+thriving lover leaves his mistress after his first success. His joy
+is more perfect then than at the absolute moment of his own eager
+vow, and her half-assenting blushes. Then he is thinking mostly of
+her, and is to a certain degree embarrassed by the effort necessary
+for success. But when the promise has once been given to him, and he
+is able to escape into the domain of his own heart, he is as a
+conqueror who has mastered half a continent by his own strategy.
+
+It never occurs to him, he hardly believes, that his success is no
+more than that which is the ordinary lot of mortal man. He never
+reflects that all the old married fogies whom he knows and despises,
+have just as much ground for pride, if such pride were enduring;
+that every fat, silent, dull, somnolent old lady whom he sees and
+quizzes, has at some period been deemed as worthy a prize as his
+priceless galleon; and so deemed by as bold a captor as himself.
+
+Some one has said that every young mother, when her first child is
+born, regards the babe as the most wonderful production of that
+description which the world has yet seen. And this too is true. But
+I doubt even whether that conviction is so strong as the conviction
+of the young successful lover, that he has achieved a triumph which
+should ennoble him down to late generations. As he goes along he has
+a contempt for other men; for they know nothing of such glory as
+his. As he pores over his "Blackstone," he remembers that he does
+so, not so much that he may acquire law, as that he may acquire
+Fanny; and then all other porers over "Blackstone" are low and mean
+in his sight--are mercenary in their views and unfortunate in their
+ideas, for they have no Fanny in view.
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald had this proud feeling strong within his heart as
+he galloped away across the greensward, and trotted fast along the
+road, home to Castle Richmond. She was compounded of all
+excellences--so he swore to himself over and over again--and being
+so compounded, she had consented to bestow all these excellences
+upon him. Being herself goddess-like, she had promised to take him
+as the object of her world's worship. So he trotted on fast and
+faster, as though conscious of the half-continent which he had won
+by his skill and valour.
+
+She had told him about his cousin Owen. Indeed, the greater number
+of the soft musical words which she had spoken in that long three
+hours' colloquy had been spoken on this special point. It had
+behoved her to tell him all; and she thought that she had done so.
+Nay, she had done so with absolute truth--to the best of her heart's
+power.
+
+"You were so young then," he had argued; "so very young."
+
+"Yes, very young. I am not very old now, you know," and she smiled
+sweetly on him.
+
+"No, no; but a year makes so much difference. You were all but a
+child then. You do not love him now, Clara?"
+
+"No; I do not love him now," she had answered.
+
+And then he exacted a second, a third, a fourth assurance, that she
+did absolutely, actually, and with her whole heart love him, him
+Herbert, in lieu of that other him, poor Owen; and with this he,
+Herbert, was contented. Content; nay, but proud, elated with
+triumph, and conscious of victory. In this spirit he rode home as
+fast as his horse could carry him.
+
+He too had to tell his tale to those to whom he owed obedience, and
+to beg that they would look upon his intended bride with eyes of
+love and with parental affection. But in this respect he was hardly
+troubled with more doubt than Clara had felt. How could any one
+object to his Clara?
+
+There are young men who, from their positions in life, are obliged
+to abstain from early marriage, or to look for dowries with their
+wives. But he, luckily, was not fettered in this way. He could marry
+as he pleased, so long as she whom he might choose brought with her
+gentle blood, a good heart, a sweet temper, and such attraction of
+person and manners as might make the establishment at Castle
+Richmond proud of his young bride. And of whom could that
+establishment be more proud than of Lady Clara Desmond? So he rode
+home without any doubt to clog his happiness.
+
+But he had a source of joy which Clara wanted. She was almost
+indifferent to her mother's satisfaction; but Herbert looked forward
+with the liveliest, keenest anticipation to his mother's gratified
+caresses and unqualified approval--to his father's kind smile and
+warm assurance of consent. Clara had made herself known at Castle
+Richmond; and he had no doubt but that all this would be added to
+his cup of happiness. There was therefore no alloy to debase his
+virgin gold as he trotted quickly into the stable-yard.
+
+But he resolved that he would say nothing about the matter that
+night. He could not well tell them all in full conclave together.
+Early after breakfast he would go to his father's room; and after
+that, he would find his mother. There would then be no doubt that
+the news would duly leak out among his sisters and Aunt Letty.
+
+"Again only just barely in time, Herbert," said Mary, as they
+clustered round the fire before dinner.
+
+"You can't say I ever keep you waiting; and I really think that's
+some praise for a man who has got a good many things on his hand."
+
+"So it is, Herbert," said Emmeline. "But we have done something too.
+We have been over to Berryhill; and the people have already begun
+there: they were at work with their pickaxes among the rocks by the
+river-side."
+
+"So much the better. Was Mr. Somers there?"
+
+"We did not see him: but he had been there," said Aunt Letty. "But
+Mrs. Townsend found us. And who do you think came up to us in the
+most courteous, affable, condescending way?"
+
+"Who? I don't know. Brady, the builder, I suppose."
+
+"No, indeed: Brady was not half so civil, for he kept himself to his
+own work. It was the Rev. Mr. M'Carthy, if you please."
+
+"I only hope you were civil to him," said Herbert, with some slight
+suffusion of colour over his face; for he rather doubted the conduct
+of his aunt to the priest, especially as her great Protestant ally,
+Mrs. Townsend, was of the party.
+
+"Civil! I don't know what you would have, unless you wanted me to
+embrace him. He shook hands with us all round. I really thought Mrs.
+Townsend would have looked him into the river when he came to her."
+
+"She always was the quintessence of absurdity and prejudice," said
+he.
+
+"Oh, Herbert!" exclaimed Aunt Letty.
+
+"Well; and what of 'Oh, Herbert?' I say she is so. If you and Mary
+and Emmeline did not look him into the river when he shook hands
+with you, why should she do so? He is an ordained priest even
+according to her own tenets,--only she knows nothing of what her own
+tenets are."
+
+"I'll tell you what they are. They are the substantial, true, and
+holy doctrines of the Protestant religion, founded on the gospel.
+Mrs. Townsend is a thoroughly Protestant woman; one who cannot abide
+the sorceries of popery."
+
+"Hates them as a mad dog hates water; and with the same amount of
+judgment. We none of us wish to be drowned; but nevertheless there
+are some good qualities in water."
+
+"But there are no good qualities in popery," said Aunt Letty, with
+her most extreme energy.
+
+"Are there not?" said Herbert. "I should have thought that belief in
+Christ, belief in the Bible, belief in the doctrine of a Saviour's
+atonement, were good qualities. Even the Mahommedan's religion has
+some qualities that are good."
+
+"I would sooner be a Mahommedan than a Papist," said Aunt Letty,
+somewhat thoughtlessly, but very stoutly.
+
+"You would alter your opinion after the first week in a harem," said
+Herbert. And then there was a burst of laughter, in which Aunt Letty
+herself joined. "I would sooner go there than go to confession," she
+whispered to Mary, as they all walked off to dinner.
+
+"And how is the Lady Clara's arm?" asked Mary, as soon as they were
+again once more round the fire.
+
+"The Lady Clara's arm is still very blue," said Herbert.
+
+"And I suppose it took you half an hour to weep over it?" continued
+his sister.
+
+"Exactly, by Shrewsbury clock."
+
+"And while you were weeping over the arm, what happened to the hand?
+She did not surrender it, did she, in return for so much tenderness
+on your part?"
+
+Emmeline thought that Mary was very pertinacious in her badinage,
+and was going to bid her hold her tongue; but she observed that
+Herbert blushed, and walked away without further answer. He went to
+the further end of the long room, and there threw himself on to a
+sofa. "Could it be that it was all settled?" thought Emmeline to
+herself.
+
+She followed him to the sofa, and sitting beside him, took hold of
+his arm. "Oh, Herbert! if there is anything to tell, do tell me."
+
+"Anything to tell!" said he. "What do you mean?"
+
+"Oh! you know. I do love her so dearly. I shall never be contented
+to love any one else as your wife--not to love her really, really
+with all my heart."
+
+"What geese you girls are!--you are always thinking of love, and
+weddings, and orange-blossoms."
+
+"It is only for you I think about them," said Emmeline. "I know
+there is something to tell. Dear Herbert, do tell me."
+
+"There is a young bachelor duke coming here to-morrow. He has a
+million a-year, and three counties all his own; he has blue eyes,
+and is the handsomest man that ever was seen. Is that news enough?"
+
+"Very well, Herbert. I would tell you anything."
+
+"Well; tell me anything."
+
+"I'll tell you this. I know you're in love with Clara Desmond, and
+I'm sure she's in love with you; and I believe you are both engaged,
+and you're not nice at all to have a secret from me. I never tease
+you, as Mary does, and it would make me so happy to know it."
+
+Upon this he put his arm round her waist and whispered one word into
+her ear. She gave an exclamation of delight; and as the tears came
+into her eyes congratulated him with a kiss. "Oh dear, oh dear! I am
+so happy!" she exclaimed.
+
+"Hush--sh," he whispered. "I knew how it would be if I told you."
+
+"But they will all know to-morrow, will they not?"
+
+"Leave that to me. You have coaxed me out of my secret, and you are
+bound to keep it. And then he went away well pleased. This
+description of delight on his sister's part was the first instalment
+of that joy which he had promised himself from the satisfaction of
+his family."
+
+Lady Fitzgerald had watched all that had passed, and had already
+learned her mistake--her mistake in that she had prophesied that no
+immediate proposal was likely to be made by her son. She now knew
+well enough that he had made such a proposal, and that he had been
+accepted.
+
+And this greatly grieved her. She had felt certain from the few
+slight words which Sir Thomas had spoken that there were valid
+reasons why her son should not marry a penniless girl. That
+conversation, joined to other things, to the man's visit, and her
+husband's deep dejection, had convinced her that all was not right.
+Some misfortune was impending over them, and there had been that in
+her own early history which filled her with dismay as she thought of
+this.
+
+She had ardently desired to caution her son in this respect,--to
+guard him, if possible, against future disappointment and future
+sorrow. But she could not do so without obtaining in some sort her
+husband's assent to her doing so. She resolved that she would talk
+it over with Sir Thomas. But the subject was one so full of pain,
+and he was so ill, and therefore she had put it off.
+
+And now she saw that the injury was done.
+
+Nevertheless, she said nothing either to Emmeline or to Herbert. If
+the injury were done, what good could now result from talking? She
+doubtless would hear it all soon enough. So she sat still, watching
+them.
+
+On the following morning Sir Thomas did not come out to breakfast.
+Herbert went into his room quite early, as was always his custom;
+and as he left it for the breakfast-parlour he said, "Father, I
+should like to speak to you just now about something of importance."
+
+"Something of importance, Herbert; what is it? Anything wrong?" For
+Sir Thomas was nervous, and easily frightened.
+
+"Oh dear, no; nothing is wrong. It is nothing that will annoy you;
+at least, I think not. But it will keep till after breakfast. I will
+come in again the moment breakfast is over." And so saying he left
+the room with a light step.
+
+In the breakfast-parlour it seemed to him as though everybody was
+conscious of some important fact. His mother's kiss was peculiarly
+solemn and full of solicitude; Aunt Letty smirked as though she was
+aware of something--something over and above the great Protestant
+tenets which usually supported her; and Mary had no joke to fling at
+him.
+
+"Emmeline," he whispered, "you have told."
+
+"No, indeed," she replied. But what mattered it? Everybody would
+know now in a few minutes. So he ate his breakfast, and then
+returned to Sir Thomas.
+
+"Father," said he, as soon as he had got into the armchair, in which
+it was his custom to sit when talking with Sir Thomas, "I hope what
+I am going to tell you will give you pleasure. I have proposed to a
+young lady, and she has--accepted me."
+
+"You have proposed, and have been accepted!"
+
+"Yes, father."
+
+"And the young lady--?"
+
+"Is Lady Clara Desmond. I hope you will say that you approve of it.
+She has no fortune, as we all know, but that will hardly matter to
+me; and I think you will allow that in every other respect she is--"
+
+Perfect, Herbert would have said, had he dared to express his true
+meaning. But he paused for a moment to look for a less triumphant
+word; and then paused again, and left his sentence incomplete, when
+he saw the expression of his father's face.
+
+"Oh, father! you do not mean to say that you do not like her?"
+
+But it was not dislike that was expressed in his father's face, as
+Herbert felt the moment after he had spoken. There was pain there,
+and solicitude, and disappointment; a look of sorrow at the tidings
+thus conveyed to him; but nothing that seemed to betoken dislike of
+any person.
+
+"What is it, sir? Why do you not speak to me? Can it be that you
+disapprove of my marrying?"
+
+Sir Thomas certainly did disapprove of his son's marrying, but he
+lacked the courage to say so. Much misery that had hitherto come
+upon him, and that was about to come on all those whom he loved so
+well, arose from this lack of courage. He did not dare to tell his
+son that he advised him for the present to put aside all such hopes.
+It would have been terrible for him to do so; but he knew that in
+not doing so he was occasioning sorrow that would be more terrible.
+
+And yet he did not do it. Herbert saw clearly that the project was
+distasteful to his father,--that project which he had hoped to have
+seen received with so much delight; but nothing was said to him
+which tended to make him alter his purpose.
+
+"Do you not like her?" he asked his father, almost piteously.
+
+"Yes, yes; I do like her, we all like her, very much indeed,
+Herbert."
+
+"Then why--"
+
+"You are so young, my boy, and she is so very young, and--"
+
+"And what?"
+
+"Why, Herbert, it is not always practicable for the son even of a
+man of property to marry so early in life as this. She has nothing,
+you know."
+
+"So," said the young man, proudly; "I never thought of looking for
+money."
+
+"But in your position it is so essential if a young man wishes to
+marry."
+
+Herbert had always regarded his father as the most liberal man
+breathing,--as open-hearted and open-handed almost to a fault. To
+him, his only son, he had ever been so, refusing him nothing, and
+latterly allowing him to do almost as he would with the management
+of the estate. He could not understand that this liberality should
+be turned to parsimony on such an occasion as that of his son's
+marriage.
+
+"You think then, sir, that I ought not to marry Lady Clara?" said
+Herbert very bitterly.
+
+"I like her excessively," said Sir Thomas. "I think she is a sweet
+girl, a very sweet girl, all that I or your mother could desire to
+see in your wife; but--"
+
+"But she is not rich."
+
+"Do not speak to me in that tone, my boy," said Sir Thomas, with an
+expression that would have moved his enemy to pity, let alone his
+son. His son did pity him, and ceased to wear the angry expression
+of face which had so wounded his father.
+
+"But, father, I do not understand you," he said. "Is there any real
+objection why I should not marry? I am more than twenty-two, and
+you, I think, married earlier than that."
+
+In answer to this Sir Thomas only sighed meekly and piteously.
+
+"If you mean to say," continued the son, "that it will be
+inconvenient to you to make me any allowance--"
+
+"No, no, no; you are of course entitled to what you want, and as
+long as I can give it, you shall have it."
+
+"As long as you can give it, father!"
+
+"As long as it is in my power, I mean. What can I want of anything
+but for you--for you and them?"
+
+After this Herbert sat silent for a while, leaning on his arm. He
+knew that there existed some mischief, but he could not fathom it.
+Had he been prudent, he would have felt that there was some
+impediment to his love; some evil which it behoved him to fathom
+before he allowed his love to share it; but when was a lover
+prudent?
+
+"We should live here, should we not, father? No second establishment
+would be necessary."
+
+"Of course you would live here," said Sir Thomas, glad to be able to
+look at the subject on any side that was not painful. "Of course you
+would live here. For the matter of that, Herbert, the house should
+be considered as your own if you so wished it."
+
+Against this the son put in his most violent protest. Nothing on
+earth should make him consider himself master of Castle Richmond as
+long as his father lived. Nor would Clara,--his Clara, wish it. He
+knew her well, he boasted. It would amply suffice to her to live
+there with them all. Was not the house large enough? And, indeed,
+where else could he live, seeing that all his interests were
+naturally centred upon the property?
+
+And then Sir Thomas did give his consent. It would be wrong to say
+that it was wrung from him. He gave it willingly enough, as far as
+the present moment was concerned. When it was once settled, he
+assured his son that he would love Clara as his daughter. But,
+nevertheless--
+
+The father knew that he had done wrong; and Herbert knew that he
+also, he himself, had done wrongly. He was aware that there was
+something which he did not understand. But he had promised to see
+Clara either that day or the next, and he could not bring himself to
+unsay all that he had said to her. He left his father's room
+sorrowful at heart, and discontented. He had expected that his
+tidings would have been received in so far other a manner; that he
+would have been able to go from his father's study upstairs to his
+mother's room with so exulting a step; that his news, when once the
+matter was ratified by his father's approval, would have flown about
+the house with so loud a note of triumph. And now it was so
+different! His father had consented; but it was too plain that there
+was no room for any triumph.
+
+"Well, Herbert!" said Emmeline, jumping up to meet him as he
+returned to a small back drawing-room, through which he had gone to
+his father's dressing-room. She had calculated that he would come
+there, and that she might thus get the first word from him after the
+interview was over.
+
+But there was a frown upon his brow, and displeasure in his eyes.
+There was none of that bright smile of gratified pride with which
+she had expected that her greeting would have been met. "Is there
+anything wrong?" she said. "He does not disapprove, does he?"
+
+"Never mind; and do leave me now. I never can make you understand
+that one is not always in a humour for joking." And so saying, he
+put her aside, and passed on.
+
+Joking! That was indeed hard upon poor Emmeline, seeing that her
+thoughts were so full of him, that her heart beat so warmly for his
+promised bride. But she said nothing, shrinking back abashed, and
+vanishing out of the way. Could it be possible that her father
+should have refused to receive Lady Clara Desmond as his
+daughter-in-law?
+
+He then betook himself to a private territory of his own, where he
+might be sure that he would remain undisturbed for some half-hour or
+so. He would go to his mother, of course, but not quite immediately.
+He would think over the matter, endeavouring to ascertain what it
+was that had made his father's manner and words so painful to him.
+
+But he could not get his thoughts to work rightly;--which getting of
+the thoughts to work rightly is, by-the-by, as I take it, the
+hardest work which a man is called upon to do. Not that the subject
+to be thought about need in itself be difficult. Were one to say
+that thoughts about hydrostatics and pneumatics are difficult to the
+multitude, or that mental efforts in regions of political economy or
+ethical philosophy are beyond ordinary reach, one would only
+pronounce an evident truism, an absurd platitude. But let any man
+take any subject fully within his own mind's scope, and strive to
+think about it steadily, with some attempt at calculation as to
+results. The chances are his mind will fly off, will-he-nill-he, to
+some utterly different matter. When he wishes to debate within
+himself that question of his wife's temper, he will find himself
+considering whether he may not judiciously give away half a dozen
+pairs of those old boots; or when it behoves him to decide whether
+it shall be manure and a green crop, or a fallow season and then
+grass seeds, he cannot keep himself from inward inquiry as to the
+meaning of that peculiar smile on Mrs. Walker's face when he shook
+hands with her last night.
+
+Lord Brougham and Professor Faraday can, no doubt, command their
+thoughts. If many men could do so, there would be many Lord
+Broughams and many Professor Faradays.
+
+At the present moment Herbert Fitzgerald had no right to consider
+himself as following in the steps of either one or other of these
+great men. He wished to think about his father's circumstances, but
+his mind would fly off to Clara Desmond and her perfections. And
+thus, though he remained there for half an hour, with his back to
+the fire and his hands in his pockets, his deliberations had done
+him no good whatever,--had rather done him harm, seeing that he had
+only warmed himself into a firmer determination to go on with what
+he was doing. And then he went to his mother.
+
+She kissed him, and spoke very tenderly, nay affectionately, about
+Clara; but even she, even his mother, did not speak joyously; and
+she also said something about the difficulty of providing a
+maintenance for a married son. Then to her he burst forth, and spoke
+somewhat loudly.
+
+"I cannot understand all this, mother. If either you or my father
+know any reason why I should be treated differently from other sons,
+you ought to tell me; not leave me to grope about in the dark."
+
+"But, my boy, we both think that no son was ever entitled to more
+consideration, or to kinder or more liberal treatment."
+
+"Why do I hear all this, then, about the difficulty of my marrying?
+Or if I hear so much, why do I not hear more? I know pretty well, I
+believe, what is my father's income."
+
+"If you do not, he would tell you for the asking."
+
+"And I know that I must be the heir to it, whatever it is,--not that
+that feeling would make any difference in my dealings with him, not
+the least. And, under these circumstances, I cannot conceive why he
+and you should look coldly upon my marriage."
+
+"I look coldly on it, Herbert!"
+
+"Do you not? Do you not tell me that there will be no income for me?
+If that is to be so; if that really is the case; if the property has
+so dwindled away, or become embarrassed--"
+
+"Oh, Herbert! there never was a man less likely to injure his son's
+property than your father."
+
+"I do not mean that, mother. Let him do what he likes with it, I
+should not upbraid him, even in my thoughts. But if it be
+embarrassed; if it has dwindled away; if there be any reason why I
+should not regard myself as altogether untrammelled with regard to
+money, he ought to tell me. I cannot accuse myself of expensive
+tastes."
+
+"Dearest Herbert, nobody accuses you of anything."
+
+"But I do desire to marry; and now I have engaged myself, and will
+not break from my engagement, unless it be shown to me that I am
+bound in honour to do so. Then, indeed--"
+
+"Oh, Herbert! I do not know what you mean."
+
+"I mean this: that I expect that Clara shall be received as my wife
+with open arms--"
+
+"And so she shall be if she comes."
+
+"Or else that some reason should be given me why she should not
+come. As to income, something must be done, I suppose. If the means
+at our disposal are less than I have been taught to believe, I at
+any rate will not complain. But they cannot, I think, be so small as
+to afford any just reason why I should not marry."
+
+"Your father, you see, is ill, and one can hardly talk to him fully
+upon such matters at present."
+
+"Then I will speak to Somers. He, at any rate, must know how the
+property is circumstanced, and I suppose he will not hesitate to
+tell me."
+
+"I don't think Somers can tell you anything."
+
+"Then what is it? As for the London estate, mother, that is all
+moonshine. What if it were gone altogether? It may be that it is
+that which vexes my father; but if so, it is a monomania."
+
+"Oh, my boy, do not use such a word!"
+
+"You know what I mean. If any doubt as to that is creating this
+despondency, it only shows that though we are bound to respect and
+relieve my father's state of mind, we are not at all bound to share
+it. What would it really matter, mother, if that place in London
+were washed away by the Thames? There is more than enough left for
+us all, unless--"
+
+"Ah, Herbert, that is it."
+
+"Then I will go to Somers, and he shall tell me. My father's
+interest in this property cannot have been involved without his
+knowledge; and circumstanced as we and my father are, he is bound to
+tell me."
+
+"If there be anything within his knowledge to tell, he will tell
+it."
+
+"And if there be nothing within his knowledge, then I can only look
+upon all this as a disease on my poor father's part. I will do all I
+can to comfort him in it; but it would be madness to destroy my
+whole happiness because he labours under delusions."
+
+Lady Fitzgerald did not know what further to say. She half believed
+that Sir Thomas did labour under some delusion; but then she half
+believed also that he had upon his mind a sorrow, terribly real,
+which was in no sort delusive. Under such circumstances, how could
+she advise her son? Instead of advising him, she caressed him.
+
+"But I may claim this from you, mother, that if Somers tells me
+nothing which ought to make me break my word to Clara, you will
+receive her as your daughter. You will promise me that, will you
+not?"
+
+Lady Fitzgerald did promise, warmly; assuring him that she already
+dearly loved Clara Desmond, that she would delight in having such a
+daughter-in-law, and that she would go to her to welcome her as such
+as soon as ever he should bid her do so. With this Herbert was
+somewhat comforted, and immediately started on his search after Mr.
+Somers.
+
+I do not think that any person is to be found, as a rule, attached
+to English estates whose position is analogous to that of an Irish
+agent. And there is a wide misunderstanding in England as to these
+Irish functionaries. I have attempted, some pages back, to describe
+the national delinquencies of a middleman, or profit-renter. In
+England we are apt to think that the agents on Irish properties are
+to be charged with similar shortcomings. This I can assert to be a
+great mistake; and I believe that, as a class, the agents on Irish
+properties do their duty in a manner beneficial to the people.
+
+That there are, or were, many agents who were also middlemen, or
+profit-renters, and that in this second position they were a
+nuisance to the country, is no doubt true. But they were no nuisance
+in their working capacity as agents. That there are some bad agents
+there can be no doubt, as there are also some bad shoemakers.
+
+The duties towards an estate which an agent performs in Ireland are,
+I believe, generally shared in England between three or four
+different persons. The family lawyer performs part, the estate
+steward performs part, and the landlord himself performs part;--as
+to small estates, by far the greater part.
+
+In Ireland, let the estate be ever so small--eight hundred a-year,
+we will say--all the working of the property is managed by the
+agent. It is he who knows the tenants, and the limits of their
+holdings; it is he who arranges leases, and allows--or much more
+generally does not allow--for improvements. He takes the rent, and
+gives the order for the ejection of tenants if he cannot get it.
+
+I am far from saying that it would not be well that much of this
+should be done by the landlord himself; that all of it should be so
+done on a small property. But it is done by agents; and, as a rule,
+is, I think, done honestly.
+
+Mr. Somers was agent to the Castle Richmond property, and as he took
+to himself as such five per cent, on all rents paid, and as he was
+agent also to sundry other small properties in the neighbourhood, he
+succeeded in making a very snug income. He had also an excellent
+house on the estate, and was altogether very much thought of; on the
+whole, perhaps, more than was Sir Thomas. But in this respect it was
+probable that Herbert might soon take the lead.
+
+He was a large, heavy, consequential man, always very busy, as
+though aware of being one of the most important wheels that kept the
+Irish clock agoing; but he was honest, kind-hearted in the main,
+true as steel to his employers, and good-humoured--as long as he was
+allowed to have his own way. In these latter days he had been a
+little soured by Herbert's interference, and had even gone so far as
+to say that, "in his humble judgment, Mr. Fitzgerald was wrong in
+doing"--so and so. But he generally called him Herbert, was always
+kind to him, and in his heart of hearts loved him dearly. But that
+was a matter of course, for had he not been agent to the estate
+before Herbert was born?
+
+Immediately after his interview with his mother, Mr. Herbert rode
+over to Mr. Somers's house, and there found him sitting alone in his
+office. He dashed immediately into the subject that had brought him
+there. "I have come, Mr. Somers," said he, "to ask you a question
+about the property."
+
+"About the Castle Richmond property?" said Mr. Somers, rather
+surprised by his visitor's manner.
+
+"Yes; you know in what a state my poor father now is."
+
+"I know that Sir Thomas is not very well. I am sorry to say that it
+is long since he has been quite himself."
+
+"There is something that is preying upon his spirits."
+
+"I am afraid so, Herbert."
+
+"Then tell me fairly, Mr. Somers, do you know what it is?"
+
+"Not--in--the least. I have no conception whatever, and never have
+had any. I know no cause for trouble that should disquiet him."
+
+"There is nothing wrong about the property?"
+
+"Not to my knowledge."
+
+"Who has the title-deeds?"
+
+"They are at Coutts's."
+
+"You are sure of that?"
+
+"Well; as sure as a man can be of a thing that he does not see. I
+have never seen them there; indeed, have never seen them at all; but
+I feel no doubt in my own mind as to their being at the bankers."
+
+"Is there much due on the estate?"
+
+"Very little. No estate in county Cork has less on it. Miss Letty
+has her income, and when Poulnasherry was bought,--that townland
+lying just under Berryhill, where the gorse cover is, part of the
+purchase money was left on mortgage. That is still due; but the
+interest is less than a hundred a-year."
+
+"And that is all?"
+
+"All that I know of."
+
+"Could there be encumbrances without your knowing it?"
+
+"I think not. I think it is impossible. Of all men your father is
+the last to encumber his estates in a manner unknown to his agent,
+and to pay off the interest in secret."
+
+"What is it, then, Mr. Somers?"
+
+"I do not know." And then Mr. Somers paused. "Of course you have
+heard of a visit he received the other day from a stranger?"
+
+"Yes; I heard of it."
+
+"People about here are talking of it. And he--that man, with a
+younger man--they are still living in Cork, at a little
+drinking-house in South Main Street. The younger man has been seen
+down here twice."
+
+"But what can that mean?"
+
+"I do not know. I tell you everything that I do know."
+
+Herbert exacted a promise from him that he would continue to tell
+him everything which he might learn, and then rode back to Castle
+Richmond.
+
+"The whole thing must be a delusion," he said to himself; and
+resolved that there was no valid reason why he should make Clara
+unhappy by any reference to the circumstance.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIII
+
+MR. MOLLETT RETURNS TO SOUTH MAIN STREET
+
+
+I must now take my readers back to that very unsavoury public-house
+in South Main Street, Cork, in which, for the present, lived Mr.
+Matthew Mollett and his son Abraham.
+
+I need hardly explain to a discerning public that Mr. Matthew
+Mollett was the gentleman who made that momentous call at Castle
+Richmond, and flurried all that household.
+
+"Drat it!" said Mrs. Jones to herself on that day, as soon as she
+had regained the solitude of her own private apartment, after having
+taken a long look at Mr. Mollett in the hall. On that occasion she
+sat down on a low chair in the middle of the room, put her two hands
+down substantially on her two knees, gave a long sigh, and then made
+the above exclamation,--"Drat it!"
+
+Mrs. Jones was still thoroughly a Saxon, although she had lived for
+so many years among the Celts. But it was only when she was quite
+alone that she allowed herself the indulgence of so peculiarly Saxon
+a mode of expressing either her surprise or indignation.
+
+"It's the same man," she said to herself, "as come that day, as sure
+as eggs;" and then for five minutes she maintained her position,
+cogitating. "And he's like the other fellow too," she continued.
+"Only, somehow he's not like him." And then another pause. "And yet
+he is; only it can't be; and he ain't just so tall, and he's older
+like." And then, still meditating, Mrs. Jones kept her position for
+full ten minutes longer; at the end of which time she got up and
+shook herself. She deserved to be bracketed with Lord Brougham and
+Professor Faraday, for she had kept her mind intent on her subject,
+and had come to a resolution. "I won't say nothing to nobody,
+noways," was the expression of her mind's purpose. "Only I'll tell
+missus as how he was the man as come to Wales." And she did tell so
+much to her mistress--as we have before learned.
+
+Mr. Mollett had gone down from Cork to Castle Richmond in one
+of those delightful Irish vehicles called a covered car. An
+inside-covered car is an equipage much given to shaking, seeing that
+it has a heavy top like a London cab, and that it runs on a pair of
+wheels. It is entered from behind, and slopes backwards. The sitter
+sits sideways, between a cracked window on one side and a cracked
+doorway on the other; and as a draught is always going in at the ear
+next the window, and out at the ear next the door, it is about as
+cold and comfortless a vehicle for winter as may be well imagined.
+Now the journey from Castle Richmond to Cork has to be made right
+across the Boggeragh Mountains. It is over twenty miles Irish; and
+the road is never very good. Mr. Mollett, therefore, was five hours
+in the covered car on his return journey; and as he had stopped for
+lunch at Kanturk, and had not hurried himself at that meal, it was
+very dark and very cold when he reached the house in South Main
+Street.
+
+I think I have explained that Mr. Mollett senior was not absolutely
+a drunkard; but nevertheless, he was not averse to spirits in cold
+weather, and on this journey had warmed himself with whiskey once or
+twice on the road. He had found a shebeen house when he crossed the
+Nad river, and another on the mountaintop, and a third at the point
+where the road passes near the village of Blarney, and at all these
+convenient resting-spots Mr. Mollett had endeavoured to warm
+himself.
+
+There are men who do not become absolutely drunk, but who do become
+absolutely cross when they drink more than is good for them; and of
+such men Mr. Mollett was one. What with the cold air, and what with
+the whisky, and what with the jolting, Mr. Mollett was very cross
+when he reached the Kanturk Hotel so that he only cursed the driver
+instead of giving him the expected gratuity.
+
+"I'll come to yer honour in the morning," said the driver.
+
+"You may go to the devil in the morning," answered Mr. Mollett; and
+this was the first intimation of his return which reached the ears
+of his expectant son.
+
+"There's the governor," said Aby, who was then flirting with Miss
+O'Dwyer in the bar. "Somebody's been stroking him the wrong way of
+the 'air."
+
+The charms of Miss O'Dwyer in these idle days had been too much for
+the prudence of Mr. Abraham Mollett; by far too much, considering
+that in his sterner moments his ambition led him to contemplate a
+match, with a young lady of much higher rank in life. But wine,
+which "inspires us" and fires us
+
+ "With courage, love, and joy,"
+
+had inspired him with courage to forget his prudence, and with
+love for the lovely Fanny.
+
+"Now, nonsense, Mr. Aby," she had said to him a few minutes before
+the wheels of the covered car were heard in South Main Street. "You
+know you main nothing of the sort."
+
+"By 'eavens, Fanny, I mean every word of it; may this drop be my
+poison if I don't. This piece of business here keeps me and the
+governor hon and hoff like, and will do for some weeks perhaps; but
+when that's done, honly say the word, and I'll make you Mrs. M.
+Isn't that fair, now?"
+
+"But, Mr. Aby--"
+
+"Never mind the mister, Fan, between friends."
+
+"La! I couldn't call you Aby without it; could I?"
+
+"Try, my darling."
+
+"Well--Aby--there now. It does sound so uppish, don't it? But tell
+me this now; what is the business that you and the old gentleman is
+about down at Kanturk?"
+
+Abraham Mollett hereupon had put one finger to his nose, and then
+winked his eye.
+
+"If you care about me, as you say you do, you wouldn't be shy of
+just telling me as much as that."
+
+"That's business, Fan; and business and love don't hamalgamate like
+whisky and sugar."
+
+"Then I'll tell you what it is, Mr. Aby; I don't want to have
+anything to do with a man who won't show his rispect by telling me
+his sacrets."
+
+"That's it, is it, Fan?"
+
+"I suppose you think I can't keep a sacret. You think I'd be telling
+father, I suppose."
+
+"Well, it's about some money that's due to him down there."
+
+"Who from?"
+
+"He expects to get it from some of those Fitzgerald people."
+
+In saying so much Mr. Mollett the younger had not utterly abandoned
+all prudence. He knew very well that the car-driver and others would
+be aware that his father had been to Castle Richmond; and that it
+was more than probable that either he or his father would have to
+make further visits there. Indeed, he had almost determined that he
+would go down to the baronet himself. Under these circumstances it
+might be well that some pretext for these visits should be given.
+
+"Which Fitzgerald, Mr. Aby? Is it the Hap House young man?"
+
+"Hap House. I never heard of such a place. These people live at
+Castle Richmond."
+
+"Oh--h--h! If Mr. Mollett have money due there, sure he have a good
+mark to go upon. Why, Sir Thomas is about the richest man in these
+parts."
+
+"And who is this other man; at 'Appy--what is it you call his
+place?"
+
+"Hap House. Oh, it's he is the thorough-going young gentleman. Only
+they say he's a leetle too fast. To my mind, Mr. Owen is the
+finest-looking man to be seen anywheres in the county Cork."
+
+"He's a flame of yours, is he, Fan?"
+
+"I don't know what you main by a flame. But there's not a girl in
+Cork but what likes the glance of his eye. They do say that he'd
+have Lady Clara Desmond; only there ain't no money."
+
+"And what's he to these other people?"
+
+"Cousin, I believe; or hardly so much as that, I'm thinking. But all
+the same if anything was to happen to young Mr. Herbert, it would
+all go to him."
+
+"It would, would it?"
+
+"So people say."
+
+"Mr. 'Erbert is the son of the old cock at Castle Richmond, isn't
+he?"
+
+"Just so. He's the young cock; he, he, he!"
+
+"And if he was to be--nowhere like; not his father's son at all, for
+instance, it would all go to this 'andsome 'Appy 'Ouse man; would
+it?"
+
+"Every shilling, they say; house, title, and all."
+
+"Hum," said Mr. Abraham Mollett; and he began again to calculate his
+family chances. Perhaps, after all, this handsome young man who was
+at present too poor to marry his noble lady love might be the more
+liberal man to deal with. But then any dealings with him would kill
+the golden goose at once. All would depend on the size of the one
+egg which might be extracted.
+
+He certainly felt, however, that this Fitzgerald family arrangement
+was one which it was beneficial that he should know; but he felt
+also that it would be by no means necessary at present to
+communicate the information to his father. He put it by in his mind,
+regarding it as a fund on which he might draw if occasion should
+require. It might perhaps be pleasant for him to make the
+acquaintance of this 'andsome young Fitzgerald of 'Appy 'Ouse.
+
+"And now, Fan, my darling, give us a kiss," said he, getting up from
+his seat.
+
+"'Deed and I won't," said Fan, withdrawing herself among the bottles
+and glasses.
+
+"'Deed and you shall, my love," said Aby, pertinaciously, as he
+prepared to follow her through the brittle ware.
+
+"Hu--sh--be aisy now. There's Tom. He's ears for everything, and
+eyes like a cat."
+
+"What do I care for Tom?"
+
+"And father'll be coming in. Be aisy, I tell you. I won't now, Mr.
+Aby; and that's enough. You'll break the bottle."
+
+"D---the bottle. That's smashed hany way. Come, Fan, what's a kiss
+among friends?"
+
+"Cock you up with kisses, indeed! how bad you are for dainties!
+There; do you hear that? That's the old gentleman;" and then, as the
+voice of Mr. Mollett senior was heard abusing the car-driver, Miss
+O'Dwyer smoothed her apron, put her hands to her side hair, and
+removed the debris of the broken bottle.
+
+"Well, governor," said Aby, "how goes it?"
+
+"How goes it, indeed! It goes pretty well, I dare say, in here,
+where you can sit drinking toddy all the evening, and doing
+nothing."
+
+"Why, what on hearth would you have me be doing? Better here than
+paddling about in the streets, isn't it?"
+
+"If you could do a stroke of work now and then to earn your bread,
+it might be better." Now Aby knew from experience that whenever his
+father talked to him about earning his bread, he was half drunk and
+whole cross. So he made no immediate reply on that point.
+
+"You are cold, I suppose, governor, and had better get a bit of
+something to eat, and a little tea."
+
+"And put my feet in hot water, and tallow my nose, and go to bed,
+hadn't I? Miss O'Dwyer, I'll trouble you to mix me a glass of
+brandy-punch. Of all the roads I ever travelled, that's the longest
+and hardest to get over. Dashed, if I didn't begin to think I'd
+never be here." And so saying he flung himself into a chair, and put
+up his feet on the two hobs.
+
+There was a kettle on one of them, which the young lady pushed a
+little nearer to the hot coals, in order to show that the water
+should be boiling; and as she did so Aby gave her a wink over his
+father's shoulder, by way of conveying to her an intimation that
+"the governor was a little cut," or in other language tipsy, and
+that the brandy-punch should be brewed with a discreet view to past
+events of the same description. All which Miss O'Dwyer perfectly
+understood.
+
+It may easily be conceived that Aby was especially anxious to
+receive tidings of what had been done this day down in the Kanturk
+neighbourhood. He had given his views to his father, as will be
+remembered; and though Mr. Mollett senior had not professed himself
+as absolutely agreeing with them, he had nevertheless owned that he
+was imbued with the necessity of taking some great step. He had gone
+down to take this great step, and Aby was very anxious to know how
+it had been taken.
+
+When the father and son were both sober, or when the son was tipsy,
+or when the father was absolutely drunk--an accident which would
+occur occasionally, the spirit and pluck of the son was in the
+ascendant. He at such times was the more masterful of the two, and
+generally contrived, either by persuasion or bullying, to govern his
+governor. But when it did happen that Mollett pere was half drunk
+and cross with drink, then, at such moments, Mollett fils had to
+acknowledge to himself that his governor was not to be governed.
+
+And, indeed, at such moments his governor could be very
+disagreeable--could say nasty, bitter things, showing very little
+parental affection, and make himself altogether bad society, not
+only to his son, but to his son's companions also. Now it appeared
+to Aby that his father was at present in this condition.
+
+He had only to egg him on to further drinking, and the respectable
+gentleman would become stupid, noisy, soft, and affectionate. But
+then, when in that state, he would blab terribly. It was much with
+the view of keeping him from that state, that under the present
+circumstances the son remained with the father. To do the father
+justice, it may be asserted that he knew his own weakness, and that,
+knowing it, he had abstained from heavy drinking since he had taken
+in hand this great piece of diplomacy.
+
+"But you must be hungry, governor; won't you take a bit of
+something?"
+
+"Shall we get you a steek, Mr. Mollett?" asked Miss O'Dwyer,
+hospitably, "or just a bit of bacon with a couple of eggs or so? It
+wouldn't be a minute, you know?"
+
+"Your eggs are all addled and bad," said Mr. Mollett; "and as for a
+beef-steak, it's my belief there isn't such a thing in all Ireland."
+After which civil speech, Miss O'Dwyer winked at Aby, as much as to
+say, "You see what a state he's in."
+
+"Have a bit of buttered toast and a cup of tea, governor," suggested
+the son.
+
+"I'm d---if I do," replied the father. "You're become uncommon fond
+of tea of late--that is, for other people. I don't see you take
+much of it yourself."
+
+"A cup of tay is the thing to warm one afther such a journey as
+you've had; that's certain, Mr. Mollett," said Fanny.
+
+"Them's your ideas about warming, are they, my dear?" said the
+elderly gentleman. "Do you come and sit down on my knee here for a
+few minutes or so, and that'd warm me better than all the 'tay' in
+the world."
+
+Aby showed by his face that he was immeasurably disgusted by the
+iniquitous coarseness of this overture. Miss O'Dwyer, however,
+looking at the gentleman's age, and his state as regarded liquor,
+passed it over as of no moment whatsoever. So that when, in the
+later part of the evening, Aby expressed to that young lady his deep
+disgust, she merely said, "Oh, bother; what matters an old man like
+that?"
+
+And then, when they were at this pass, Mr. Dwyer came in. He did not
+interfere much with his daughter in the bar room, but he would
+occasionally take a dandy of punch there, and ask how things were
+going on indoors. He was a fat, thickset man, with a good-humoured
+face, a flattened nose, and a great aptitude for stable occupations.
+He was part owner of the Kanturk car, as has been before said, and
+was the proprietor of sundry other cars, open cars and covered cars,
+plying for hire in the streets of Cork.
+
+"I hope the mare took your honour well down Kanturk and back again,"
+said he, addressing his elder customer with a chuck of his head
+intended for a bow.
+
+"I don't know what you call well," said Mr. Mollett "She hadn't a
+leg to stand upon for the last three hours."
+
+"Not a leg to stand upon! Faix, then, and it's she'd have the four
+good legs if she travelled every inch of the way from Donagh-a-Dee
+to Ti-vora," to which distance Mr. O'Dwyer specially referred as
+being supposed to be the longest known in Ireland.
+
+"She may be able to do that; but I'm blessed if she's fit to go to
+Kanturk and back."
+
+"She's done the work, anyhow," said Mr. O'Dwyer, who evidently
+thought that this last argument was conclusive.
+
+"And a precious time she's been about it. Why, my goodness, it would
+have been better for me to have walked it. As Sir Thomas said to
+me--"
+
+"What! did you see Sir Thomas Fitzgerald?"
+
+Hereupon Aby gave his father a nudge; but the father either did not
+appreciate the nudge, or did not choose to obey it.
+
+"Yes; I did see him. Why shouldn't I?"
+
+"Only they do say he's hard to get to speak to now-a-days. He's not
+over well, you know, these years back."
+
+"Well or ill he'll see me, I take it, when I go that distance to ask
+him. There's no doubt about that; is there, Aby?"
+
+"Can't say, I'm sure, not knowing the gentleman," said Aby.
+
+"We holds land from Sir Thomas, we do; that is, me and my brother
+Mick, and a better landlord ain't nowhere," said Mr. O'Dwyer.
+
+"Oh, you're one of the tenants, are you? The rents are paid pretty
+well, ain't they?"
+
+"To the day," said Mr. O'Dwyer, proudly.
+
+"What would you think, now--" Mr. Mollett was continuing; but Aby
+interrupted him somewhat violently.
+
+"Hold your confounded stupid tongue, will you, you old jolterhead;"
+and on this occasion he put his hand on his father's shoulder and
+shook him.
+
+"Who are you calling jolterhead? Who do you dare to speak to in that
+way? you impudent young cub you. Am I to ask your leave when I want
+to open my mouth?"
+
+Aby had well known that his father in his present mood would not
+stand the manner in which the interruption was attempted. Nor did he
+wish to quarrel before the publican and his daughter. But anything
+was better than allowing his father to continue in the strain in
+which he was talking.
+
+"You are talking of things which you don't hunderstand, and about
+people you don't know," said Aby. "You've had a drop too much on the
+road too, and you 'ad better go to bed."
+
+Old Mollett turned round to strike at his son; but even in his
+present state he was somewhat quelled by Aby's eye. Aby was keenly
+alive to the necessity for prudence on his father's part, though he
+was by no means able to be prudent himself.
+
+"Talking of things which I don't understand, am I?" said the old
+man. "That's all you know about it. Give me another glass of that
+brandy toddy, my dear."
+
+But Aby's look had quelled, or at any rate silenced him; and though
+he did advance another stage in tipsiness before they succeeded in
+getting him off to bed, he said no more about Sir Thomas Fitzgerald
+or his Castle Richmond secrets.
+
+Nevertheless, he had said enough to cause suspicion. One would not
+have imagined, on looking at Mr. O'Dwyer, that he was a very crafty
+person, or one of whose finesse in affairs of the world it would be
+necessary to stand much in awe. He seemed to be thick, and stolid,
+and incapable of deep inquiry; but, nevertheless, he was as fond of
+his neighbour's affairs as another, and knew as much about the
+affairs of his neighbours at Kanturk as any man in the county Cork.
+
+He himself was a Kanturk man, and his wife had been a Kanturk woman;
+no less a person, indeed, than the sister of Father Bernard
+M'Carthy, rest her soul;--for it was now at peace, let us all hope.
+She had been dead these ten years; but he did not the less keep up
+his connection with the old town, or with his brother-in-law the
+priest, or with the affairs of the persons there adjacent;
+especially, we may say, those of his landlord, Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald, under whom he still held a small farm, in conjunction
+with his brother Mick, the publican at Kanturk.
+
+"What's all that about Sir Thomas?" said he to his daughter in a low
+voice as soon as the Molletts had left the bar.
+
+"Well, I don't just know," said Fanny. She was a good daughter, and
+loved her father, whose indoor affairs she kept tight enough for
+him. But she had hardly made up her mind as yet whether or no it
+would suit her to be Mrs. Abraham Mollett. Should such be her
+destiny, it might be as well for her not to talk about her husband's
+matters.
+
+"Is it true that the old man did see Sir Thomas to-day?"
+
+"You heard what passed, father; but I suppose it is true."
+
+"And the young 'un has been down to Kanturk two or three times. What
+can the like of them have to do with Sir Thomas?"
+
+To this Fanny could only say that she knew nothing about it, which
+in the main was true. Aby, indeed, had said that his father had gone
+down to collect money that was due to him; but then Fanny did not
+believe all that Aby said.
+
+"I don't like that young 'un at all," continued Mr. O'Dwyer. "He's a
+nasty, sneaking fellow, as cares for no one but his own belly. I'm
+not over fond of the old 'un neither."
+
+"They is both free enough with their money, father," said the
+prudent daughter.
+
+"Oh, they is welcome in the way of business, in course. But look
+here, Fan; don't you have nothing to say to that Aby; do you hear
+me?"
+
+"Who? I? ha, ha, ha!"
+
+"It's all very well laughing; but mind what I says, for I won't have
+it. He is a nasty, sneaking, good-for-nothing fellow, besides being
+a heretic. What'd your uncle Bernard say?"
+
+"Oh! for the matter of that, if I took a liking to a fellow I
+shouldn't ask Uncle Bernard what he had to say. If he didn't like
+it, I suppose he might do the other thing."
+
+"Well, I won't have it. Do you hear that?"
+
+"Laws, father, what nonsense you do talk. Who's thinking about the
+man? He comes here for what he wants to ate and dhrink, and I
+suppose the house is free to him as another. If not we'd betther
+just shut up the front door." After which she tossed herself up and
+began to wipe her glasses in a rather dignified manner.
+
+Mr. O'Dwyer sat smoking his pipe and chewing the cud of his
+reflections. "They ain't afther no good, I'm sure of that." In
+saying which, however, he referred to the doings of the Molletts
+down at Kanturk, rather than to any amatory proceedings which might
+have taken place between the young man and his daughter.
+
+On the following morning Mr. Mollett senior awoke with a racking
+headache. My belief is, that when men pay this penalty for drinking,
+they are partly absolved from other penalties. The penalties on
+drink are various. I mean those which affect the body, exclusive of
+those which affect the mind. There are great red swollen noses, very
+disagreeable both to the wearer and his acquaintances; there are
+morning headaches, awful to be thought of; there are sick stomachs,
+by which means the offender escapes through a speedy purgatory;
+there are sallow cheeks, sunken eyes, and shaking shoulders; there
+are very big bellies, and no bellies at all; and there is delirium
+tremens. For the most part a man escapes with one of these
+penalties. If he have a racking headache, his general health does
+not usually suffer so much as though he had endured no such
+immediate vengeance from violated nature. Young Aby when he drank
+had no headaches; but his eye was bloodshot, his cheek bloated, and
+his hand shook. His father, on the other hand, could not raise his
+head after a debauch; but when that was gone, all ill results of his
+imprudence seemed to have vanished.
+
+At about noon on that day Aby was sitting by his father's bedside.
+Up to that time it had been quite impossible to induce him to speak
+a word. He could only groan, swallow soda-water with "hairs of the
+dog that bit him" in it and lay with his head between his arms. But
+soon after noon Aby did induce him to say a word or two. The door of
+the room was closely shut, the little table was strewed with
+soda-water bottles and last drops of small goes of brandy. Aby
+himself had a cigar in his mouth, and on the floor near the bed-foot
+was a plate with a cold, greasy mutton chop, Aby having endeavoured
+in vain to induce his father to fortify exhausted nature by eating.
+The appearance of the room and the air within it would not have been
+pleasant to fastidious people. But then the Molletts were not
+fastidious.
+
+"You did see Sir Thomas, then?"
+
+"Yes, I did see him. I wish, Aby, you'd let me lie just for another
+hour or so. I'd be all right then. The jolting of that confounded
+car has nearly shaken my head to pieces."
+
+But Aby was by no means inclined to be so merciful. The probability
+was that he would be able to pump his father more thoroughly in his
+present weak state than he might do in a later part of the
+afternoon; so he persevered.
+
+"But, governor, it's so important we should know what we're about.
+Did you see any one else except himself?"
+
+"I saw them all, I believe, except her. I was told she never showed
+in the morning; but I'm blessed if I don't think I saw the skirt of
+her dress through an open door. I'll tell you what, Aby, I could not
+stand that."
+
+"Perhaps, father, after hall it'll be better I should manage the
+business down there."
+
+"I believe there won't be much more to manage. But, Aby, do leave me
+now, there's a good fellow; then in another hour or so I'll get up,
+and we'll have it all out."
+
+"When you're out in the open air and comfortable, it won't be fair
+to be bothering you with business. Come, governor, ten minutes will
+tell the whole of it if you'll only mind your eye. How did you begin
+with Sir Thomas?" And then Aby went to the door, opened it very
+gently, and satisfied himself that there was nobody listening on the
+landing-place.
+
+Mr. Mollett sighed wearily, but he knew that his only hope was to
+get this job of talking over. "What was it you were saying, Aby?"
+
+"How did you begin with Sir Thomas?"
+
+"How did I begin with him? Let me see. Oh! I just told him who I
+was; and then he turned away and looked down under the fire like,
+and I thought he was going to make a faint of it."
+
+"I didn't suppose he would be very glad to see you, governor."
+
+"When I saw how badly he took it, and how wretched he seemed, I
+almost made up my mind to go away and never trouble him any more."
+
+"You did, did you?"
+
+"And just to take what he'd choose to give me."
+
+"Oh, them's your hideas, hare they? Then I tell you what; I shall
+just take the matter into my own hands hentirely. You have no more
+'eart than a chicken."
+
+"Ah, that's very well, Aby; but you did not see him."
+
+"Do you think that would make hany difference? When a man's a job of
+work to do, 'e should do it. Them's my notions. Do you think a man
+like that is to go and hact in that way, and then not pay for it?
+Whose wife is she, I'd like to know?"
+
+There was a tone of injured justice about Aby which almost roused
+the father to participate in the son's indignation. "Well; I did my
+best, though the old gentleman was in such a taking," said he.
+
+"And what was your best? Come, out with it at once."
+
+"I--m-m. I--just told him who I was, you know."
+
+"I guess he understood that quite well."
+
+"And then I said things weren't going exactly well with me."
+
+"You shouldn't have said that at all. What matters that to him? What
+you hask for you hask for because you're able to demand it. That's
+the ground for hus to take, and by---I'll take it too. There shall
+be no 'alf-measures with me."
+
+"And then I told him--just what we were agreed, you know."
+
+"That we'd go snacks in the whole concern?"
+
+"I didn't exactly say that."
+
+"Then what the devil did you say?"
+
+"Why, I told him that, looking at what the property was, twelve
+hundred pounds wasn't much."
+
+"I should think not either."
+
+"And that if his son was to be allowed to have it all--"
+
+"A bastard, you know, keeping it away from the proper heir." It may
+almost be doubted whether, in so speaking, Aby did not almost think
+that he himself had a legitimate right to inherit the property at
+Castle Richmond.
+
+"He must look to pay up handsome."
+
+"But did you say what 'andsome meant?"
+
+"Well, I didn't--not then. He fell about upon the table like, and I
+wasn't quite sure he wouldn't make a die of it; and then heaven
+knows what might have happened to me."
+
+"Psha; you 'as no pluck, governor."
+
+"I'll tell you what it is, Aby, I ain't so sure you'd have such an
+uncommon deal of pluck yourself."
+
+"Well, I'll try, at any rate."
+
+"It isn't such a pleasant thing to see an old gentleman in that
+state. And what would happen if he chose to ring the bell and order
+the police to take me? Have you ever thought of that?"
+
+"Gammon."
+
+"But it isn't gammon. A word from him would put me into quod, and
+there I should be for the rest of my days. But what would you care
+for that?" And poor Mr. Mollett senior shook under the bedclothes as
+his attention became turned to this very dreary aspect of his
+affairs. "Pluck, indeed! I'll tell you what it is, Aby, I often
+wonder at my own pluck."
+
+"Psha! Would'nt a word from you split upon him, and upon her, and
+upon the young 'un, and ruin 'em? Or a word from me either, for the
+matter of that?"
+
+Mr. Mollett senior shook again. He repented now, as he had already
+done twenty times, that he had taken that son of his into his
+confidence.
+
+"And what on hearth did you say to him?" continued Aby.
+
+"Well, not much more then; at least, not very much more. There was a
+good deal of words, but they didn't seem to lead to much, except
+this, just to make him understand that he must come down handsome."
+
+"And there was nothing done about Hemmiline?"
+
+"No," said the father, rather shortly.
+
+"If that was settled, that would be the clincher. There would be no
+further trouble to nobody then. It would be all smooth sailing for
+your life, governor, and lots of tin."
+
+"I tell you what it is, Aby, you may just drop that, for I won't
+have the young lady bothered about it, nor yet the young lady's
+father."
+
+"You won't, won't you?"
+
+"No, I won't; so there's an end of it."
+
+"I suppose I may pay my distresses to any young lady if I think
+fitting."
+
+"And have yourself kicked into the ditch."
+
+"I know too much for kicking, governor."
+
+"They shall know as much as you do, and more too, if you go on with
+that. There's a measure in all things. I won't have it done, so I
+tell you." And the father turned his face round to the wall.
+
+This was by no means the end of the conversation, though we need not
+verbatim go through any more of it. It appeared that old Mollett had
+told Sir Thomas that his permanent silence could be purchased by
+nothing short of a settled "genteel" income for himself and his son,
+no absolute sum having been mentioned; and that Sir Thomas had
+required a fortnight for his answer, which answer was to be conveyed
+to Mr. Mollett verbally at the end of that time. It was agreed that
+Mr. Mollett should repeat his visit to Castle Richmond on that day
+fortnight.
+
+"In the mean time I'll go down and freshen the old gentleman up a
+bit," said Aby, as he left his father's bedroom.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIV
+
+THE REJECTED SUITOR
+
+
+After the interview between Herbert and his mother, it became an
+understood thing at Castle Richmond that he was engaged to Lady
+Clara. Sir Thomas raised no further objection, although it was clear
+to all the immediate family that he was by no means gratified at his
+son's engagement. Very little more passed between Sir Thomas and
+Lady Fitzgerald on the subject. He merely said that he would
+consider the question of his son's income, and expressed a hope, or
+perhaps an opinion rather than a hope, that the marriage would not
+take place quite immediately.
+
+Under these circumstances, Herbert hardly spoke further to his
+father upon the matter. He certainly did feel sore that he should be
+so treated--that he should be made to understand that there was a
+difficulty, but that the difficulty could not be explained to him.
+No absolute position was however made, and he would not therefore
+complain. As to money, he would say nothing till something should be
+said to him.
+
+With his mother, however, the matter was different. She had said
+that she would welcome Clara; and she did so. Immediately after
+speaking to Sir Thomas she drove over to Desmond Court, and said
+soft, sweet things to Clara in her most winning way;--said soft
+things also to the countess, who received them very graciously; took
+Clara home to Castle Richmond for that night, somewhat to the
+surprise and much to the gratification of Herbert, who found her
+sitting slily with the other girls when he came in before dinner;
+and arranged for her to make a longer visit after the interval of a
+week or two. Herbert, therefore, was on thoroughly good terms with
+his mother, and did enjoy some of the delights which he had promised
+himself.
+
+With his sisters, also, and especially with Emmeline, he was once
+more in a good humour. To her he made ample apology for his former
+crossness, and received ample absolution. "I was so harassed," he
+said, "by my father's manner that I hardly knew what I was doing.
+And even now, when I think of his evident dislike to the marriage,
+it nearly drives me wild." The truth of all which Emmeline sadly
+acknowledged. How could any of them talk of their father except in a
+strain of sadness?
+
+All these things did not happen in the drawing-room at Castle
+Richmond without also being discussed in the kitchen. It was soon
+known over the house that Master Herbert was to marry Lady Clara,
+and, indeed, there was no great pretence of keeping it secret. The
+girls told the duchess, as they called Mrs. Jones--of course in
+confidence--but Mrs. Jones knew what such confidence meant,
+especially as the matter was more than once distinctly alluded to by
+her ladyship; and thus the story was told, in confidence, to
+everybody in the establishment, and then repeated by them, in
+confidence also, to nearly everybody out of it.
+
+Ill news, they say, flies fast; and this news, which, going in that
+direction, became ill, soon flew to Hap House.
+
+"So young Fitzgerald and the divine Clara are to hit it off, are
+they?" said Captain Donnellan, who had driven over from Buttevant
+barracks to breakfast at Hap House on a hunting-morning.
+
+There were other men present, more intimate friends of Owen than
+this captain, who had known of Owen's misfortune in that quarter;
+and a sign was made to Donnellan to bid him drop the subject; but it
+was too late.
+
+"Who? my cousin Herbert," said Owen, sharply. "Have you heard of
+this, Barry?"
+
+"Well," said Barry, "those sort of things are always being said, you
+know. I did hear something of it somewhere. But I can't say I
+thought much about it." And then the subject was dropped during that
+morning's breakfast. They all went to the hunt, and in the course of
+the day Owen contrived to learn that the report was well founded.
+
+That evening, as the countess and her daughter were sitting together
+over the fire, the grey-headed old butler brought in a letter upon
+an old silver salver, saying, "For Lady Clara, if you please, my
+lady."
+
+The countess not unnaturally thought that the despatch had come from
+Castle Richmond, and smiled graciously as Clara put out her hand for
+the missive. Lady Desmond again let her eyes drop upon the book
+which she was reading, as though to show that she was by far too
+confiding a mamma to interfere in any correspondence between her
+daughter and her daughter's lover. At the moment Lady Clara had been
+doing nothing. Her work was, indeed, on her lap, and her workbox was
+at her elbow; but her thoughts had been far away; far away as
+regards idea, though not so as to absolute locality; for in her mind
+she was walking beneath those elm-trees, and a man was near her,
+with a horse following at his heels.
+
+"The messenger is to wait for an answer, my lady," said the old
+butler, with a second nod, which on this occasion was addressed to
+Clara; and then the man withdrew.
+
+Lady Clara blushed ruby red up to the roots of her hair when her
+eyes fell on the address of the letter, for she knew it to be in the
+handwriting of Owen Fitzgerald. Perhaps the countess from the corner
+of her eye may have observed some portion of her daughter's blushes;
+but if so, she said nothing, attributing them to Clara's natural
+bashfulness in her present position. "She will get over it soon,"
+the countess may probably have said to herself.
+
+Clara was indecisive, disturbed in her mind, and wretched. Owen had
+sent her other letters; but they had been brought to her
+surreptitiously, had been tendered to her in secret, and had always
+been returned by her unopened. She had not told her mother of these;
+at least, not purposely or at the moment: but she had been at no
+trouble to conceal the facts; and when the countess had once asked,
+she freely told her what had happened with an absence of any
+confusion which had quite put Lady Desmond at her ease. But this
+letter was brought to her in the most open manner, and an answer to
+it openly demanded.
+
+She turned it round slowly in her hand, and then looking up, said,
+"Mamma, this is from Owen Fitzgerald; what had I better do with it?"
+
+"From Owen Fitzgerald! Are you sure?"
+
+"Yes, mamma." And then the countess had also to consider what steps
+under such circumstances had better be taken. In the mean time Clara
+held out her hand, tendering the letter to her mother.
+
+"You had better open it, my dear, and read it. No doubt it must be
+answered." Lady Desmond felt that now there could be no danger from
+Owen Fitzgerald. Indeed she thought that there was not a remembrance
+of him left in her daughter's bosom; that the old love, such
+baby-love as there had been, had vanished, quite swept out of that
+little heart by this new love of a brighter sort. But then Lady
+Desmond knew nothing of her daughter.
+
+So instructed, Clara broke the seal, and read the letter, which ran
+thus:--
+
+"Hap House, February, 184-.
+
+"My promised Love,
+
+"For let what will happen, such you are; I have this morning heard
+tidings which, if true, will go far to drive me to despair. But I
+will not believe them from any lips save your own. I have heard that
+you are engaged to marry Herbert Fitzgerald. At once, however, I
+declare that I do not believe the statement. I have known you too
+well to think that you can be false.
+
+"But, at any rate, I beg the favour of an interview with you. After
+what has passed I think that under any circumstances I have a right
+to demand it. I have pledged myself to you; and as that pledge has
+been accepted, I am entitled to some consideration.
+
+"I write this letter to you openly, being quite willing that you
+should show it to your mother if you think fit. My messenger will
+wait, and I do implore you to send me an answer. And remember, Lady
+Clara, that, having accepted my love, you cannot whistle me down the
+wind as though I were of no account. After what has passed between
+us, you cannot surely refuse to see me once more.
+
+"Ever your own--if you will have it so,
+
+"OWEN FITZGERALD."
+
+She read the letter very slowly, ever and anon looking up at her
+mother's face, and seeing that her mother was--not reading her book,
+but pretending to read it. When she had finished it, she held it for
+a moment, and then said, "Mamma, will you not look at it?"
+
+"Certainly, my dear, if you wish me to do so." And she took the
+letter from her daughter's hand, and read it.
+
+"Just what one would expect from him, my dear; eager, impetuous, and
+thoughtless. One should not blame him much, for he does not mean to
+do harm. But if he had any sense, he would know that he was taking
+trouble for nothing."
+
+"And what shall I do, mamma?"
+
+"Well, I really think that I should answer him." It was delightful
+to see the perfect confidence which the mother had in her daughter.
+"And I think I should see him, if he will insist upon it. It is
+foolish in him to persist in remembering two words which you spoke
+to him as a child; but perhaps it will be well that you should tell
+him yourself that you were a child when you spoke those two words."
+
+And then Clara sent off the following reply, written under her
+mother's dictation; though the countess strove very hard to convince
+her daughter that she was wording it out of her own head:--
+
+"Lady Clara Desmond presents her compliments to Mr. Owen Fitzgerald,
+and will see Mr. Owen Fitzgerald at Desmond Court at two o'clock
+to-morrow, if Mr. Owen Fitzgerald persists in demanding such an
+interview. Lady Clara Desmond, however, wishes to express her
+opinion that it would be better avoided.
+
+"Desmond Court,
+
+"Thursday evening."
+
+The countess thought that this note was very cold and formal, and
+would be altogether conclusive; but, nevertheless, at about eleven
+o'clock that night there came another messenger from Hap House with
+another letter, saying that Owen would be at Desmond Court at two
+o'clock on the following day.
+
+"He is very foolish; that is all I can say," said the countess.
+
+All that night and all the next morning poor Clara was very
+wretched. That she had been right to give up a suitor who lived such
+a life as Owen Fitzgerald lived she could not doubt. But,
+nevertheless, was she true in giving him up? Had she made any
+stipulation as to his life when she accepted his love? If he called
+her false, as doubtless he would call her, how would she defend
+herself? Had she any defence to offer? It was not only that she had
+rejected him, a poor lover; but she had accepted a rich lover! What
+could she say to him when he upbraided her for such sordid conduct?
+
+And then as to her whistling him down the wind. Did she wish to do
+that? In what state did her heart stand towards him? Might it not be
+that, let her be ever so much on her guard, she would show him some
+tenderness,--tenderness which would be treason to her present
+affianced suitor? Oh, why had her mother desired her to go through
+such an interview as this!
+
+When two o'clock came Clara was in the drawing-room. She had said
+nothing to her mother as to the manner in which this meeting should
+take place. But then at first she had had an idea that Lady Desmond
+would be present. But as the time came near Clara was still alone.
+When her watch told her that it was already two, she was still by
+herself; and when the old servant, opening the door, announced that
+Mr. Fitzgerald was there, she was still unsupported by the presence
+of any companion. It was very surprising that on such an occasion
+her mother should have kept herself away.
+
+She had not seen Owen Fitzgerald since that day when they had walked
+together under the elm-trees, and it can hardly be said that she saw
+him now. She had a feeling that she had injured him--had deceived,
+and in a manner betrayed him; and that feeling became so powerful
+with her that she hardly dared to look him in the face.
+
+He, when he entered the room, walked straight up to her, and offered
+her his hand. He, too, looked round the room to see whether Lady
+Desmond was there, and not finding her, was surprised. He had hardly
+hoped that such an opportunity would be allowed to him for declaring
+the strength of his passion.
+
+She got up, and taking his hand, muttered something; it certainly
+did not matter what, for it was inaudible; but such as the words
+were, they were the first spoken between them.
+
+"Lady Clara," he began; and then stopped himself; and, considering,
+recommenced--"Clara, a report has reached my ears which I will
+believe from no lips but your own."
+
+She now sat down on a sofa, and pointed to a chair for him, but he
+remained standing, and did so during the whole interview; or rather,
+walking; for when he became energetic and impetuous, he moved about
+from place to place in the room, as though incapable of fixing
+himself in one position.
+
+Clara was ignorant whether or no it behoved her to rebuke him for
+calling her simply by her Christian name. She thought that she ought
+to do so, but she did not do it.
+
+"I have been told," he continued, "that you have engaged yourself to
+marry Herbert Fitzgerald; and I have now come to hear a
+contradiction of this from yourself."
+
+"But, Mr. Fitzgerald, it is true."
+
+"It is true that Herbert Fitzgerald is your accepted lover?"
+
+"Yes," she said, looking down upon the ground, and blushing deeply
+as she said it.
+
+There was a pause of a few moments, during which she felt that the
+full fire of his glance was fixed upon her, and then he spoke.
+
+"You may well be ashamed to confess it," he said; "you may well feel
+that you dare not look me in the face as you pronounce the words. I
+would have believed it, Clara, from no other mouth than your own."
+
+It appeared to Clara herself now as though she were greatly a
+culprit. She had not a word to say in her own defence. All those
+arguments as to Owen's ill course of life were forgotten; and she
+could only remember that she had acknowledged that she loved him,
+and that she was now acknowledging that she loved another.
+
+But now Owen had made his accusation; and as it was not answered, he
+hardly knew how to proceed. He walked about the room, endeavouring
+to think what he had better say next.
+
+"I know this, Clara; it is your mother's doing, and not your own.
+You could not bring yourself to be false, unless by her
+instigation."
+
+"No," said she; "you are wrong there. It is not my mother's doing:
+what I have done, I have done myself."
+
+"Is it not true," he asked, "that your word was pledged to me? Had
+you not promised me that you would be my wife?"
+
+"I was very young," she said, falling back upon the only excuse
+which occurred to her at the moment as being possible to be used
+without incriminating him.
+
+"Young! Is not that your mother's teaching? Why, those were her very
+words when she came to me at my house. I did not know that youth was
+any excuse for falsehood."
+
+"But it may be an excuse for folly," said Clara.
+
+"Folly! what folly? The folly of loving a poor suitor; the folly of
+being willing to marry a man who has not a large estate! Clara, I
+did not think that you could have learned so much in so short a
+time."
+
+All this was very hard upon her. She felt that it was hard, for she
+knew that he had done that which entitled her to regard her pledge
+to him as at an end; but the circumstances were such that she could
+not excuse herself.
+
+"Am I to understand," said Owen Fitzgerald, "that all that has
+passed between us is to go for nothing? that such promises as we
+have made to each other are to be of no account? To me they are
+sacred pledges, from which I would not escape even if I could."
+
+As he then paused for a reply, she was obliged to say something.
+
+"I hope you have not come here to upbraid me, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"Clara," he continued, "I have passed the last year with perfect
+reliance upon your faith. I need hardly tell you that it has not
+been passed happily, for it has been passed without seeing you. But
+though you have been absent from me, I have never doubted you. I
+have known that it was necessary that we should wait--wait perhaps
+till years should make you mistress of your own actions: but
+nevertheless I was not unhappy, for I was sure of your love."
+
+Now it was undoubtedly the case that Fitzgerald was treating her
+unfairly; and though she had not her wits enough about her to
+ascertain this by process of argument, nevertheless the idea did
+come home to her. It was true that she had promised her love to this
+man, as far as such promise could be conveyed by one word of assent;
+but it was true also that she had been almost a child when she
+pronounced that word, and that things which had since occurred had
+entitled her to annul any amount of contract to which she might have
+been supposed to bind herself by that one word. She bethought
+herself, therefore, that as she was so hard pressed she was forced
+to defend herself.
+
+"I was very young then, Mr. Fitzgerald, and hardly knew what I was
+saying: afterwards, when mamma spoke to me, I felt that I was bound
+to obey her."
+
+"What, to obey her by forgetting me?"
+
+"No; I have never forgotten you, and never shall. I remember too
+well your kindness to my brother; your kindness to us all."
+
+"Psha! you know I do not speak of that. Are you bound to obey your
+mother by forgetting that you have loved me?"
+
+She paused a moment before she answered him, looking now full before
+her,--hardly yet bold enough to look him in the face.
+
+"No," she said; "I have not forgotten that I loved you. I shall
+never forget it. Child as I was, it shall never be forgotten. But I
+cannot love you now--not in the manner you would have me."
+
+"And why not, Lady Clara? Why is love to cease on your part--to be
+thrown aside so easily by you, while with me it remains so stern a
+fact, and so deep a necessity? Is that just? When the bargain has
+once been made, should it not be equally binding on us both?"
+
+"I do not think you are fair to me, Mr. Fitzgerald," she said; and
+some spirit was now rising in her bosom.
+
+"Not fair to you? Do you say that I am unfair to you? Speak but one
+word to say that the troth which you pledged me a year since shall
+still remain unbroken, and I will at once leave you till you
+yourself shall name the time when my suit may be renewed."
+
+"You know that I cannot do that."
+
+"And why not? I know that you ought to do it."
+
+"No, Mr. Fitzgerald, I ought not. I am now engaged to your cousin,
+with the consent of mamma and of his friends. I can say nothing to
+you now which I cannot repeat to him; nor can I say anything which
+shall oppose his wishes."
+
+"He is, then, so much more to you now than I am?"
+
+"He is everything to me now."
+
+"That is all the reply I am to get, then! You acknowledge your
+falseness, and throw me off without vouchsafing me any answer beyond
+this."
+
+"What would you have me say? I did do that which was wrong and
+foolish, when--when we were walking there on the avenue. I did give
+a promise which I cannot now keep. It was all so hurried that I
+hardly remember what I said. But of this I am sure, that if I have
+caused you unhappiness, I am very sorry to have done so. I cannot
+alter it all now; I cannot unsay what I said then, nor can I offer
+yon that which I have now absolutely given to another."
+
+And then, as she finished speaking, she did pluck up courage to look
+him in the face. She was now standing as well as he; but she was so
+standing that the table, which was placed near the sofa, was still
+between him and her. As she finished speaking the door opened, and
+the Countess of Desmond walked slowly into the room.
+
+Owen Fitzgerald, when he saw her, bowed low before her, and then
+frankly offered her his hand. There was something in his manner to
+ladies devoid of all bashfulness, and yet never too bold. He seemed
+to be aware that in speaking to any lady, be she who she might, he
+was only exercising his undoubted privilege as a man. He never
+hummed and hawed and shook in his shoes as though the majesty of
+womanhood were too great for his encounter. There are such men, and
+many of them, who carry this dread to the last day of their long
+lives. I have often wondered what women think of men who regard
+women as too awful for the free exercise of open speech.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," she said accepting the hand which he offered to
+her, but resuming her own very quickly, and then standing before him
+in all the dignity which she was able to assume, "I quite concurred
+with my daughter that it was right that she should see you, as you
+insisted on such an interview, but you must excuse me if I interrupt
+it. I must protect her from the embarrassment which your--your
+vehemence may occasion her."
+
+"Lady Desmond," he replied, "you are quite at liberty, as far as I
+am concerned, to hear all that passes between us. Your daughter is
+betrothed to me, and I have come to claim from her the fulfilment of
+her promise."
+
+"For shame, Mr. Fitzgerald, for shame! When she was a child you
+extracted from her one word of folly; and now you would take
+advantage of that foolish word; now, when you know that she is
+engaged to a man she loves with the full consent of all her friends.
+I thought I knew you well enough to feel sure that you were not so
+ungenerous."
+
+"Ungenerous! no; I have not that generosity which would enable me to
+give up my very heart's blood, the only joy of my soul, to such a
+one as my cousin Herbert."
+
+"You have nothing to give up, Mr. Fitzgerald: you must have known
+from the very first that my daughter could not marry you--"
+
+"Not marry me! And why not, Lady Desmond? Is not my blood as good as
+his?--unless, indeed, you are prepared to sell your child to the
+highest bidder!"
+
+"Clara, my dear, I think you had better leave the room," said the
+countess; "no doubt you have assured Mr. Fitzgerald that you are
+engaged to his cousin Herbert."
+
+"Yes, mamma."
+
+"Then he can have no further claim on your attendance, and his
+vehemence will terrify you."
+
+"Vehement! how can I help being vehement when, like a ruined
+gambler, I am throwing my last chance for such a stake?"
+
+And then he intercepted Clara as she stepped towards the
+drawing-room door. She stopped in her course, and stood still,
+looking down upon the ground.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," said the countess, "I will thank you to let Lady
+Clara leave the room. She has given you the answer for which you
+have asked, and it would not be right in me to permit her to be
+subjected to further embarrassment."
+
+"I will only ask her to listen to one word. Clara--"
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald, you have no right to address my daughter with that
+freedom," said the countess; but Owen hardly seemed to hear her.
+
+"I here, in your hearing, protest against your marriage with Herbert
+Fitzgerald. I claim your love as my own. I bid you think of the
+promise which you gave me; and I tell you that as I loved you then
+with all my heart, so do I love you at this moment; so shall I love
+you always. Now I will not hinder you any longer."
+
+And then he opened the door for her, and she passed on, bowing to
+him, and muttering some word of farewell that was inaudible.
+
+He stood for a moment with the door in his hand, meditating whether
+he might not say good morning to the countess without returning into
+the room; but as he so stood she called him. "Mr. Fitzgerald," she
+said; and so he therefore came back, and once more closed the door.
+
+And then he saw that the countenance of Lady Desmond was much
+changed. Hitherto she had been every inch the countess, stern and
+cold and haughty; but now she looked at him as she used to look in
+those old winter evenings when they were accustomed to talk together
+over the evening fire in close friendliness, while she, Lady
+Desmond, would speak to him in the intimacy of her heart of her
+children, Patrick ad Clara.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," she said, and the tone of her voice also was
+changed. "You are hardly fair to us; are you?"
+
+"Not fair, Lady Desmond?"
+
+"No, not fair. Sit down now, and listen to me for a moment. If you
+had a child, a penniless girl like Clara, would you be glad to see
+her married to such a one as you are yourself?"
+
+"In what way do you mean? Speak out, Lady Desmond."
+
+"No; I will not speak out, for I would not hurt you. I myself am too
+fond of you--as an old friend, to wish to do so. That you may marry
+and live happily, live near us here, so that we may know you, I most
+heartily desire. But you cannot marry that child."
+
+"And why not, if she loves me?"
+
+"Nay, not even if she did. Wealth and position are necessary to the
+station in which she has been born. She is an earl's daughter,
+penniless as she is. I will have no secrets from you. As a mother, I
+could not give her to one whose career is such as yours. As the
+widow of an earl, I could not give her to one whose means of
+maintaining her are so small. If you will think of this, you will
+hardly be angry with me."
+
+"Love is nothing, then?"
+
+"Is all to be sacrificed to your love? Think of it, Mr. Fitzgerald,
+and let me have the happiness of knowing that you consent to this
+match."
+
+"Never!" said he. "Never!" And so he left the room, without wishing
+her further farewell.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XV
+
+DIPLOMACY
+
+
+About a week after the last conversation that has been related as
+having taken place at the Kanturk Hotel, Mr. Mollett junior was on
+his way to Castle Richmond. He had on that occasion stated his
+intention of making such a journey with the view of "freshening the
+old gentleman up a bit;" and although his father did all in his
+power to prevent the journey, going so far on one occasion as to
+swear that if it was made he would throw over the game altogether,
+nevertheless Aby persevered.
+
+"You may leave the boards whenever you like, governor," said Aby. "I
+know quite enough of the part to carry on the play."
+
+"You think you do," said the father in his anger; "but you'll find
+yourself in the dark yet before you've done."
+
+And then again he expostulated in a different tone. "You'll ruin it
+all, Aby; you will indeed; you don't know all the circumstances;
+indeed you don't."
+
+"Don't I?" said Aby. "Then I'll not be long learning them."
+
+The father did what he could; but he had no means of keeping his son
+at home, and so Aby went. Aby doubtless entertained an idea that his
+father was deficient in pluck for the management of so difficult a
+matter, and that he could supply what his father wanted. So he
+dressed himself in his best, and having hired a gig and a man who he
+flattered himself would look like a private servant, he started from
+Cork, and drove himself to Castle Richmond.
+
+He had on different occasions been down in the neighbourhood,
+prowling about like a thief in the night, picking up information, as
+he called it, and seeing how the land lay; but he had never yet
+presented himself to any one within the precincts of the Castle
+Richmond demesne. His present intention was to drive up to the front
+door, and ask at once for Sir Thomas Fitzgerald, sending in his card
+if need be, on which were printed the words:--
+
+MR. ABRAHAM MOLLETT, Junior.
+
+With the additional words, "Piccadilly, London," written in the
+left-hand lower corner.
+
+"I'll take the bull by the horns," said he to himself. "It's better
+to make the spoon at once, even if we do run some small chance of
+spoiling the horn." And that he might be well enabled to carry out
+his purpose with reference to this bull, he lifted his flask to his
+mouth as soon as he had passed through the great demesne gate, and
+took a long pull at it. "There's nothing like a little jumping
+powder," he said, speaking to himself again, and then he drove
+boldly up the avenue.
+
+He had not yet come in sight of the house when he met two gentlemen
+walking on the road. They, as he approached, stood a little on one
+side, not only so as to allow him to pass, but to watch him as he
+did so. They were Mr. Somers and Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+"It is the younger of those two men. I'm nearly certain of it," said
+Somers as the gig approached. "I saw him as he walked by me in
+Kanturk Street, and I don't think I can mistake the horrid impudence
+of his face. I beg your pardon, sir,"--and now he addressed Mollett
+in the gig--"but are you going up to the house?"
+
+"Yes, sir; that's my notion just at present. Any commands that way?"
+
+"This is Mr. Fitzgerald--Mr. Herbert Fitzgerald; and I am Mr.
+Somers, the agent. Can we do anything for you?"
+
+Aby Mollett raised his hat, and the two gentlemen touched theirs.
+"Thank'ee, sir," said Aby; "but I believe my business must be with
+the worthy baro-nett himself; more particularly as I 'appen to know
+that he's at home."
+
+"My father is not very well," said Herbert, "and I do not think that
+he will be able to see you."
+
+"I'll take the liberty of hasking and of sending in my card," said
+Aby; and he gave his horse a flick as intending thus to cut short
+the conversation. But Mr. Somers had put his hand upon the bridle,
+and the beast was contented to stand still.
+
+"If you'll have the kindness to wait a moment," said Mr. Somers; and
+he put on a look of severity, which he well knew how to assume, and
+which somewhat cowed poor Aby. "You have been down here before, I
+think," continued Mr. Somers.
+
+"What, at Castle Richmond? No, I haven't. And if I had, what's that
+to you if Sir Thomas chooses to see me? I hain't hintruding, I
+suppose."
+
+"You've been down at Kanturk before--once or twice; for I have seen
+you."
+
+"And supposing I've been there ten or twelve times,--what is there
+in that?" said Aby.
+
+Mr. Somers still held the horse's head, and stood a moment
+considering.
+
+"I'll thank you to let go my 'oss," said Aby, raising his whip and
+shaking the reins.
+
+"What do you say your name is?" asked Mr. Somers.
+
+"I didn't say my name was anything yet. I hain't ashamed of it,
+however, nor hasn't hany cause to be. That's my name, and if you'll
+send my card in to Sir Thomas, with my compliments, and say that
+hi've three words to say to him very particular; why, hi'll be
+obliged to you." And then Mr. Mollett handed Mr. Somers his card.
+
+"Mollett!" said Mr. Somers very unceremoniously. "Mollett, Mollett.
+Do you know the name, Herbert?"
+
+Herbert said that he did not.
+
+"It's about business, I suppose?" asked Mr. Somers.
+
+"Yes," said Aby; "private business; very particular."
+
+"The same that brought your father here;" and Mr. Somers again
+looked into his face with a close scrutiny.
+
+Aby was abashed, and for a moment or two he did not answer. "Well,
+then; it is the same business," he said at last. "And I'll thank you
+to let me go on. I'm not used to be stopped in this way."
+
+"You can follow us up to the house," said Mr. Somers to him. "Come
+here, Herbert." And then they walked along the road in such a way
+that Aby was forced to allow his horse to walk after them.
+
+"These are the men who are doing it," said Mr. Somers in a whisper
+to his companion. "Whatever is in the wind, whatever may be the
+cause of your father's trouble, they are concerned in it. They are
+probably getting money from him in some way."
+
+"Do you think so?"
+
+"I do. We must not force ourselves upon your father's confidence,
+but we must endeavour to save him from this misery. Do you go in to
+him with this card. Do not show it to him too suddenly; and then
+find out whether he really wishes to see the man. I will stay about
+the place; for it may be possible that a magistrate will be wanted,
+and in such a matter you had better not act."
+
+They were now at the hall door, and Somers, turning to Mollett, told
+him that Mr. Herbert Fitzgerald would carry the card to his father.
+And then he added, seeing that Mollett was going to come down, "You
+had better stay in the gig till Mr. Fitzgerald comes back; just sit
+where you are; you'll get an answer all in good time."
+
+Sir Thomas was crouching over the fire in his study when his son
+entered, with his eyes fixed upon a letter which he held in his
+hand, and which, when he saw Herbert, he closed up and put away.
+
+"Father," said Herbert, in a cheerful everyday voice, as though he
+had nothing special to communicate, "there is a man in a gig out
+there. He says he wants to see you."
+
+"A man in a gig!" and Herbert could see that his father had already
+begun to tremble. But every sound made him tremble now.
+
+"Yes; a man in a gig. What is it he says his name is? I have his
+card here. A young man."
+
+"Oh, a young man?" said Sir Thomas.
+
+"Yes, here it is. Abraham Mollett. I can't say that your friend
+seems to be very respectable, in spite of his gig," and Herbert
+handed the card to his father.
+
+The son purposely looked away as he mentioned the name, as his great
+anxiety was not to occasion distress. But he felt that the sound of
+the word had been terrible in his father's ears. Sir Thomas had
+risen from his chair; but he now sat down again, or rather fell into
+it. But nevertheless he took the card, and said that he would see
+the man.
+
+"A young man, do you say, Herbert?"
+
+"Yes, father, a young man. And, father, if you are not well, tell me
+what the business is and let me see him."
+
+But Sir Thomas persisted, shaking his head, and saying that he would
+see the man himself.
+
+"Somers is out there. Will you let him do it?"
+
+"No. I wonder, Herbert, that you can tease me so. Let the man be
+sent in here. But, oh, Herbert--Herbert--!"
+
+The young man rushed round and kneeled at his father's knee. "What
+is it, father? Why will you not tell me? I know you have some grief,
+and cannot you trust me? Do you not know that you can trust me?"
+
+"My poor boy, my poor boy!"
+
+"What is it, father? If this man here is concerned in it, let me see
+him."
+
+"No, no, no."
+
+"Or at any rate let me be with you when he is here. Let me share
+your trouble if I can do nothing to cure it."
+
+"Herbert, my darling, leave me and send him in. If it be necessary
+that you should bear this calamity, it will come upon you soon
+enough."
+
+"But I am afraid of this man--for your sake, father."
+
+"He will do me no harm; let him come to me. But, Herbert, say
+nothing to Somers about this. Somers has not seen the man; has he?"
+
+"Yes; we both spoke to him together as he drove up the avenue."
+
+"And what did he say? Did he say anything?
+
+"Nothing but that he wanted to see you, and then he gave his card to
+Mr. Somers. Mr. Somers wished to save you from the annoyance."
+
+"Why should it annoy me to see any man? Let Mr. Somers mind his own
+business. Surely I can have business of my own without his
+interference." With this Herbert left his father, and returned to
+the hall door to usher in Mr. Mollett junior.
+
+"Well?" said Mr. Somers, who was standing by the hall fire, and who
+joined Herbert at the front door.
+
+"My father will see the man."
+
+"And have you learned who he is?"
+
+"I have learned nothing but this--that Sir Thomas does not wish that
+we should inquire. Now, Mr. Mollett, Sir Thomas will see you; so you
+can come down. Make haste now, and remember that you are not to stay
+long, for my father is ill." And then leading Aby through the hall
+and along a passage, he introduced him into Sir Thomas's room.
+
+"And, Herbert--" said the father; whereupon Herbert again turned
+round. His father was endeavouring to stand, but supporting himself
+by the back of his chair. "Do not disturb me for half an hour; but
+come to me then, and knock at the door. This gentleman will have
+done by that time."
+
+"If we do not put a stop to this, your father will be in a mad-house
+or on his death-bed before long." So spoke Mr. Somers in a low,
+solemn whisper when Herbert again joined him at the hall door.
+
+"Sit down, sir; sit down," said Sir Thomas, endeavouring to be civil
+and to seem at his ease at the same time. Aby was himself so much
+bewildered for the moment, that he hardly perceived the
+embarrassment under which the baronet was labouring.
+
+Aby sat down, in the way usual to such men in such places, on the
+corner of his chair, and put his hat on the ground between his feet.
+Then he took out his handkerchief and blew his nose, and after that
+he expressed an opinion that he was in the presence of Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald.
+
+"And you are Mr. Abraham Mollett," said Sir Thomas.
+
+"Yes, Sir Thomas, that's my name. I believe, Sir Thomas, that you
+have the pleasure of some slight acquaintance with my father, Mr.
+Matthew Mollett?"
+
+What a pleasure under such circumstances! Sir Thomas, however,
+nodded his head, and Aby went on.
+
+"Well, now, Sir Thomas, business is business; and my father, 'e
+ain't a good man of business. A gen'leman like you, Sir Thomas, has
+seen that with 'alf an eye, I know." And then he waited a moment for
+an answer; but as he got none he proceeded.
+
+"My governor's one of the best of fellows going, but 'e ain't sharp
+and decisive. Sharp's the word now a days, Sir Thomas; ain't it?"
+and he spoke this in a manner so suited to the doctrine which he
+intended to inculcate, that the poor old gentleman almost jumped up
+in his chair.
+
+And Aby, seeing this, seated himself more comfortably in his own.
+The awe which the gilt bindings of the books and the thorough
+comfort of the room had at first inspired was already beginning to
+fade away. He had come there to bully, and though his courage had
+failed him for a moment under the stern eye of Mr. Somers, it
+quickly returned to him now that he was able to see how weak was his
+actual victim.
+
+"Sharp's the word, Sir Thomas; and my governor, 'e ain't sharp--not
+sharp as he ought to be in such a matter as this. This is what I
+calls a real bit of cheese. Now it's no good going on piddling and
+peddling in such a case as this; is it now, Sir Thomas?"
+
+Sir Thomas muttered something, but it was no more than a groan.
+
+"Not the least use," continued Aby. "Now the question, as I takes
+it, is this. There's your son there as fetched me in 'ere; a fine
+young gen'leman 'e is, as ever I saw; I will say that. Well, now;
+who's to have this 'ere property when you walk the plank--as walk it
+you must some day, in course? Is it to be this son of yours, or is
+it to be this other Fitzgerald of 'Appy 'Ouse? Now, if you ask me,
+I'm all for your son, though maybe he mayn't be all right as regards
+the dam."
+
+There was certainly some truth in what Aby had said with reference
+to his father. Mr. Mollett senior had never debated the matter in
+terms so sharp and decisive as these were. Think who they were of
+whom this brute was talking to that wretched gentleman; the wife of
+his bosom, than whom no wife was ever more dearly prized; the son of
+his love, the centre of all his hopes, the heir of his wealth--if
+that might still be so. And yet he listened to such words as these,
+and did not call in his servants to turn the speaker of them out of
+his doors.
+
+"I've no wish for that 'Appy 'Ouse man, Sir Thomas; not the least.
+And as for your good lady, she's nothing to me one way or the other
+whatever she may be to my governor--" and here there fell a spasm
+upon the poor man's heart, which nearly brought him from the chair
+to the ground; but nevertheless, he still contained himself--"my
+governor's former lady, my own mother," continued Aby, "whom I never
+see'd, she'd gone to kingdom come, you know, before that time, Sir
+Thomas. There hain't no doubt about that. So you see--" and hereupon
+he dropped his voice from the tone which he had hitherto been using
+to an absolute whisper, and drawing his chair close to that of the
+baronet, and putting his hands upon his knees, brought his mouth
+close to his companion's ear--"So you see," he said, "when that
+youngster was born, Lady F. was Mrs. M.--wasn't she? and for the
+matter of that, Lady F. is Mrs. M. to this very hour. That's the
+real chat; ain't it, Sir Thomas? My stepmother, you know. The
+governor could take her away with him to-morrow if he chose,
+according to the law of the land--couldn't he now?"
+
+There was no piddling or peddling about this at any rate. Old
+Mollett in discussing the matter with his victim had done so by
+hints and inuendos, through long windings, by signs and the dropping
+of a few dark words. He had never once mentioned in full terms the
+name of Lady Fitzgerald; had never absolutely stated that he did
+possess or ever had possessed a wife. It had been sufficient for him
+to imbue Sir Thomas with the knowledge that his son Herbert was in
+great danger as to his heritage. Doubtless the two had understood
+each other; but the absolute naked horror of the surmised facts had
+been kept delicately out of sight. But such delicacy was not to
+Aby's taste. Sharp, short, and decisive; that was his motto. No
+"longae ambages" for him. The whip was in his hand, as he thought,
+and he could best master the team by using it.
+
+And yet Sir Thomas lived and bore it. As he sat there half
+stupefied, numbed as it were by the intensity of his grief, he
+wondered at his own power of endurance. "She is Mrs. M., you know;
+ain't she now?" He could sit there and hear that, and yet live
+through it. So much he could do, and did do; but as for speaking,
+that was beyond him.
+
+Young Mollett thought that this "freshening up of the old gentleman"
+seemed to answer; so he continued. "Yes, Sir Thomas, your son's my
+favourite, I tell you fairly. But then, you know, if I backs the
+favourite, in course I likes to win upon him. How is it to be, now?"
+and then he paused for an answer, which, however, was not
+forthcoming.
+
+"You see you haven't been dealing quite on the square with the
+governor. You two is, has it were, in a boat together. We'll call
+that boat the Lady F., or the Mrs. M., which ever you like; "--and
+then Aby laughed, for the conceit pleased him--"but the hearnings of
+that boat should be divided hequally. Ain't that about the ticket?
+heh, Sir Thomas? Come, don't be down on your luck. A little quiet
+talkee-talkee between you and me'll soon put this small matter on a
+right footing."
+
+"What is it you want? tell me at once," at last groaned the poor
+man.
+
+"Well now, that's something like; and I'll tell you what we want.
+There are only two of us you know, the governor and I; and very
+lonely we are, for it's a sad thing for a man to have the wife of
+his bosom taken from him."
+
+Then there was a groan which struck even Aby's ear; but Sir Thomas
+was still alive and listening, and so he went on.
+
+"This property here, Sir Thomas, is a good twelve thousand a year. I
+know hall about it as though I'd been 'andling it myself for the
+last ten years. And a great deal of cutting there is in twelve
+thousand a year. You've 'ad your whack out of it, and now we wants
+to have hourn. That's Henglish, hain't it?"
+
+"Did your father send you here, Mr. Mollett?"
+
+"Never you mind who sent me, Sir Thomas. Perhaps he did, and perhaps
+he didn't. Perhaps I came without hany sending. Perhaps I'm more hup
+to this sort of work than he is. At any rate, I've got the part
+pretty well by 'eart--you see that, don't you? Well hour hultimatum
+about the business is this. Forty thousand pounds paid down on the
+nail, half to the governor, and half to your 'umble servant, before
+the end of this year; a couple of thousand more in hand for the
+year's hexpenses--and--and--a couple of hundred or so now at once
+before I leave you; for to tell the truth we're run huncommonly dry
+just at the present moment." And then Aby drew his breath and paused
+for an answer.
+
+Poor Sir Thomas was now almost broken down. His head swam round and
+round, and he felt that he was in a whirlpool from which there was
+no escape. He had heard the sum named, and knew that he had no power
+of raising it. His interest in the estate was but for his life, and
+that life was now all but run out. He had already begun to feel that
+his son must be sacrificed, but he had struggled and endured in
+order that he might save his wife. But what could he do now? What
+further struggle could he make? His present most eager desire was
+that that horrid man should be removed from his hearing and his
+eyesight.
+
+But Aby had not yet done: he had hitherto omitted to mention one not
+inconsiderable portion of the amicable arrangement which, according
+to him, would have the effect of once more placing the two families
+comfortably on their feet. "There's one other pint, Sir Thomas," he
+continued, "and hif I can bring you and your good lady to my way of
+thinking on that, why, we may all be comfortable for all that is
+come and gone. You've a daughter Hemmeline."
+
+"What!" said Sir Thomas, turning upon him; for there was still so
+much of life left in him that he could turn upon his foe when he
+heard his daughter's name thus polluted.
+
+"Has lovely a gal to my way of thinking as my heyes ever rested on;
+and I'm not haccounted a bad judge of such cattle, I can tell you,
+Sir Thomas."
+
+"That will do, that will do," said Sir Thomas, attempting to rise,
+but still holding on by the back of his chair. "You can go now, sir;
+I cannot hear more from you."
+
+"Go!"
+
+"Yes, sir; go."
+
+"I know a trick worth two of that, Sir Thomas. If you like to give
+me your daughter Hemmeline for my wife, whatever her fortin's to be,
+I'll take it as part of my half of the forty thousand pounds. There
+now." And then Aby again waited for a reply.
+
+But now there came a knock at the door, and following quick upon the
+knock Herbert entered the room. "Well, father," said the son.
+
+"Herbert!"
+
+"Yes, father;" and he went round and supported his father on his
+arm.
+
+"Herbert, will you tell that man to go?"
+
+"Come, sir, you have disturbed my father enough; will you have the
+kindness to leave him now?"
+
+"I may chance to disturb him more, and you too, sir, if you treat me
+in that way. Let go my arm, sir. Am I to have any answer from you,
+Sir Thomas?"
+
+But Sir Thomas could make no further attempt at speaking. He was now
+once more seated in his chair, holding his son's hand, and when he
+again heard Mollett's voice he merely made a sign for him to go.
+
+"You see the state my father is in, Mr. Mollett," said Herbert; "I
+do not know what is the nature of your business, but whatever it may
+be, you must leave him now." And he made a slight attempt to push
+the visitor towards the door.
+
+"You'd better take care what you're doing, Mr. Fitzgerald," said
+Mollett. "By---you had! If you anger me, I might say a word that I
+couldn't unsay again, which would put you into queer street, I can
+tell you."
+
+"Don't quarrel with him, my boy; pray don't quarrel with him, but
+let him leave me," said Sir Thomas.
+
+"Mr. Mollett, you see my father's state; you must be aware that it
+is imperative that he should be left alone."
+
+"I don't know nothing about that, young gen'leman; business is
+business, and I hain't got hany answer to my proposals. Sir Thomas,
+do you say 'Yes' to them proposals." But Sir Thomas was still dumb.
+"To all but the last? Come," continued Aby, "that was put in quite
+as much for your good as it was for mine." But not a word came from
+the baronet.
+
+"Then I shan't stir," said Aby, again seating himself.
+
+"Then I shall have the servants in," said Herbert, "and a magistrate
+who is in the hall," and he put his hand towards the handle of the
+bell.
+
+"Well, as the old gen'leman's hill, I'll go now and come again. But
+look you here, Sir Thomas, you have got my proposals, and if I don't
+get an answer to them in three days' time,--why you'll hear from me
+in another way, that's all. And so will her ladyship." And with this
+threat Mr Abraham Mollett allowed himself to be conducted through
+the passage into the hall, and from thence to his gig.
+
+"See that he drives away, see that he goes," said Herbert to Mr.
+Somers, who was still staying about the place.
+
+"Oh, I'll drive away fast enough," said Aby, as he stepped into the
+gig, "and come back fast enough too," he muttered to himself. In the
+mean time Herbert had run back to his father's room.
+
+"Has he gone?" murmured Sir Thomas.
+
+"Yes, he has gone. There; you can hear the wheels of his gig on the
+gravel."
+
+"Oh, my boy, my poor boy!"
+
+"What is it, father? Why do you not tell me? Why do you allow such
+men as that to come and harass you, when a word would keep them from
+you? Father, good cannot come of it."
+
+"No, Herbert, no, good will not come of it. There is no good to come
+at all."
+
+"Then why will you not tell us?"
+
+"You will know it all soon enough. But, Herbert, do not say a word
+to your mother. Not a word as you value my love. Let us save her
+while we can. You promise me that."
+
+Herbert gave him the required promise.
+
+"Look here," and he took up the letter which he had before crumpled
+in his hand. "Mr. Prendergast will be here next week. I shall tell
+everything to him."
+
+Soon afterwards Sir Thomas went to his bed, and there by his bedside
+his wife sat for the rest of the evening. But he said no word to her
+of his sorrow.
+
+"Mr. Prendergast is coming here," said Herbert to Mr. Somers.
+
+"I am glad of it, though I do not know him," said Mr. Somers. "For,
+my dear boy, it is necessary that there should be some one here."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVI
+
+THE PATH BENEATH THE ELMS
+
+
+It will be remembered that in the last chapter but one Owen
+Fitzgerald left Lady Desmond in the drawing-room at Desmond Court
+somewhat abruptly, having absolutely refused to make peace with the
+Desmond faction by giving his consent to the marriage between Clara
+and his cousin Herbert. And it will perhaps be remembered also, that
+Lady Desmond had asked for this consent in a manner that was almost
+humble. She had shown herself most anxious to keep on friendly terms
+with the rake of Hap House,--rake and roue, gambler and spendthrift,
+as he was reputed to be,--if only he would abandon his insane claim
+to the hand of Clara Desmond. But this feeling she had shown when
+they two were alone together, after Clara had left them. As long as
+her daughter had been present, Lady Desmond had maintained her tone
+of indignation and defiance; but, when the door was closed and they
+two were alone, she had become kind in her language and almost
+tender.
+
+My readers will probably conceive that she had so acted, overcome by
+her affection for Owen Fitzgerald and with a fixed resolve to win
+him for herself. Men and women when they are written about are
+always supposed to have fixed resolves, though in life they are so
+seldom found to be thus armed. To speak the truth, the countess had
+had no fixed resolve in the matter, either when she had thought
+about Owen's coming, or when, subsequently, she had found herself
+alone with him in her drawing-room. That Clara should not marry
+him,--on so much she had resolved long ago. But all danger on that
+head was, it may be said, over. Clara, like a good child, had
+behaved in the best possible manner; had abandoned her first lover,
+a lover that was poor and unfitted for her, as soon as told to do
+so; and had found for herself a second lover, who was rich, and
+proper, and in every way desirable. As regards Clara, the countess
+felt herself to be safe; and, to give her her due, she had been
+satisfied that the matter should so rest. She had not sought any
+further interview with Fitzgerald. He had come there against her
+advice, and she had gone to meet him prompted by the necessity of
+supporting her daughter, and without any other views of her own.
+
+But when she found herself alone with him; when she looked into his
+face, and saw how handsome, how noble, how good it was--good in its
+inherent manliness and bravery--she could not but long that this
+feud should be over, and that she might be able once more to welcome
+him as her friend. If only he would give up this frantic passion,
+this futile, wicked, senseless attempt to make them all wretched by
+an insane marriage, would it not be sweet again to make some effort
+to rescue him from the evil ways into which he had fallen?
+
+But Owen himself would make no response to this feeling. Clara
+Desmond was his love, and he would, of his own consent, yield her to
+no one. In truth, he was, in a certain degree, mad on this subject.
+He did think that because the young girl had given him a
+promise--had said to him a word or two which he called a
+promise--she was now of right his bride; that there belonged to him
+an indefeasible property in her heart, in her loveliness, in the
+inexpressible tenderness of her young springing beauty, of which no
+subsequent renouncing on her part could fairly and honestly deprive
+him. That others should oppose the match was intelligible to him;
+but it was hardly intelligible that she should betray him. And, as
+yet, he did not believe that she herself was the mainspring of this
+renouncing. Others, the countess and the Castle Richmond people, had
+frightened her into falseness; and, therefore, it became him to
+maintain his right by any means--almost by any means, within his
+power. Give her up of his own free will and voice! Say that Herbert
+Fitzgerald should take her with his consent! that she should go as a
+bride to Castle Richmond, while he stood by and smiled, and wished
+them joy! Never! And so he rode away with a stern heart, leaving her
+standing there with something of sternness about her heart also.
+
+In the meantime, Clara, when she was sure that her rejected suitor
+was well away from the place, put on her bonnet and walked out. It
+was her wont at this time to do so; and she was becoming almost a
+creature of habit, shut up as she was in that old dreary barrack.
+Her mother very rarely went with her; and she habitually performed
+the same journey over the same ground, at the same hour, day after
+day. So it had been, and so it was still,--unless Herbert
+Fitzgerald were with her.
+
+On the present occasion she saw no more of her mother before she
+left the house. She passed the drawing-room door, and seeing that it
+was ajar, knew that the countess was there: but she had nothing to
+say to her mother as to the late interview, unless her mother had
+aught to say to her. So she passed on. In truth her mother had
+nothing to say to her. She was sitting there alone, with her head
+resting on her hand, with that sternness at her heart and a cloud
+upon her brow, but she was not thinking of her daughter. Had she
+not, with her skill and motherly care, provided well for Clara? Had
+she not saved her daughter from all the perils which beset the path
+of a young girl? Had she not so brought her child up and put her
+forth into the world, that, portionless as that child was, all the
+best things of the world had been showered into her lap? Why should
+the countess think more of her daughter? It was of herself she was
+thinking; and of what her life would be all alone, absolutely alone,
+in that huge frightful home of hers, without a friend, almost
+without an acquaintance, without one soul near her whom she could
+love or who would love her. She had put out her hand to Owen
+Fitzgerald, and he had rejected it. Her he had regarded merely as
+the mother of the woman he loved. And then the Countess of Desmond
+began to ask herself if she were old and wrinkled and ugly, only fit
+to be a dowager in mind, body, and in name!
+
+Over the same ground! Yes, always over the same ground. Lady Clara
+never varied her walk. It went from the front entrance of the court,
+with one great curve, down to the old ruined lodge which opened on
+to the road running from Kanturk to Cork. It was here that the row
+of elm trees stood, and it was here that she had once walked with a
+hot, eager lover beside her, while a docile horse followed behind
+their feet. It was here that she walked daily; and was it possible
+that she should walk here without thinking of him?
+
+It was always on the little well-worn path by the road-side, not on
+the road itself, that she took her measured exercise; and now, as
+she went along, she saw on the moist earth the fresh prints of a
+horse's hoofs. He also had ridden down the same way, choosing to
+pass over the absolute spot in which those words had been uttered,
+thinking of that moment, as she also was thinking of it. She felt
+sure that such had been the case. She knew that it was this that had
+brought him there--there on to the foot-traces which they had made
+together.
+
+And did he then love her so truly,--with a love so hot, so eager, so
+deeply planted in his very soul? Was it really true that a passion
+for her had so filled his heart, that his whole life must by that be
+made or marred? Had she done this thing to him? Had she so impressed
+her image on his mind that he must be wretched without her? Was she
+so much to him, so completely all in all as regarded his future
+worldly happiness? Those words of his, asserting that love--her
+love--was to him a stern fact, a deep necessity--recurred over and
+over again to her mind. Could it really be that in doing as she had
+done, in giving herself to another after she had promised herself to
+him, she had committed an injustice which would constantly be
+brought up against her by him and by her own conscience? Had she in
+truth deceived and betrayed him,--deserted him because he was poor,
+and given herself over to a rich lover because of his riches?
+
+As she thought of this she forgot again that fact--which, indeed,
+she had never more than half realized in her mind--that he had
+justified her in separating herself from him by his reckless course
+of living; that his conduct must be held to have so justified her,
+let the pledge between them have been of what nature it might. Now,
+as she walked up and down that path, she thought nothing of his
+wickedness and his sins; she thought only of the vows to which she
+had once listened, and the renewal of those vows to which it was now
+so necessary that her ear should be deaf.
+
+But was her heart deaf to them? She swore to herself, over and over
+again, scores and scores of oaths, that it was so; but each time
+that she swore, some lowest corner in the depth of her conscience
+seemed to charge her with a falsehood. Why was it that in all her
+hours of thinking she so much oftener saw his face, Owen's, than she
+did that other face of which in duty she was bound to think and
+dream? It was in vain that she told herself that she was afraid of
+Owen, and therefore thought of him. The tone of his voice that rang
+in her ears the oftenest was not that of his anger and sternness,
+but the tone of his first assurance of love--that tone which had
+been so inexpressibly sweet to her--that to which she had listened
+on this very spot where she now walked slowly, thinking of him. The
+look of his which was ever present to her eyes was not that on which
+she had almost feared to gaze but an hour ago; but the form and
+spirit which his countenance had worn when they were together on
+that well-remembered day.
+
+And then she would think, or try to think, of Herbert, and of all
+his virtues and of all his goodness. He too loved her well. She
+never doubted that. He had come to her with soft words, and pleasant
+smiles, and sweet honeyed compliments--compliments which had been
+sweet to her as they are to all girls; but his soft words, and
+pleasant smiles, and honeyed love-making had never given her so
+strong a thrill of strange delight as had those few words from Owen.
+Her very heart's core had been affected by the vigour of his
+affection. There had been in it a mysterious grandeur which had half
+charmed and half frightened her. It had made her feel that he, were
+it fated that she should belong to him, would indeed be her lord and
+ruler; that his was a spirit before which hers would bend and feel
+itself subdued. With him she could realize all that she had dreamed
+of woman's love, and that dream which is so sweet to some women--of
+woman's subjugation. But could it be the same with him to whom she
+was now positively affianced, with him to whom she knew that she did
+now owe all her duty? She feared that it was not the same.
+
+And then again she swore that she loved him. She thought over all
+his excellences; how good he was as a son--how fondly his sisters
+loved him--how inimitable was his conduct in these hard trying
+times. And she remembered also that it was right in every way that
+she should love him. Her mother and brother approved of it. Those
+who were to be her new relatives approved of it. It was in every way
+fitting. Pecuniary considerations were so favourable! But when she
+thought of that her heart sank low within her breast. Was it true
+that she had sold herself at her mother's bidding? Should not the
+remembrance of Owen's poverty have made her true to him had nothing
+else done so?
+
+But be all that as it might, one thing, at any rate, was clear to
+her, that it was now her fate, her duty--and, as she repeated again
+and again, her wish to marry Herbert. No thought of rebellion
+against him and her mother ever occurred to her as desirable or
+possible. She would be to him a true and loving wife, a wife in very
+heart and soul. But, nevertheless, walking thus beneath those trees,
+she could not but think of Owen Fitzgerald.
+
+In this mood she had gone twice down from the house to the lodge and
+back again, and now again she had reached the lodge the third time,
+making thus her last journey for in these solitary walks her work
+was measured. The exercise was needful, but there was little in the
+task to make her prolong it beyond what was necessary. But now, as
+she was turning for the last time, she heard the sound of a horse's
+hoof coming fast along the road, and looking from the gate, she saw
+that Herbert was coming to her. She had not expected him, but now
+she waited at the gate to meet him.
+
+It had been arranged that she was to go over in a few days to Castle
+Richmond, and stay there for a fortnight. This had been settled
+shortly before the visit made by Mr. Mollett, junior, at that place,
+and had not as yet been unsettled. But as soon as it was known that
+Sir Thomas had summoned Mr. Prendergast from London, it was felt by
+them all that it would be as well that Clara's visit should be
+postponed. Herbert had been especially cautioned by his father, at
+the time of Mollett's visit, not to tell his mother anything of what
+had occurred, and to a certain extent he had kept his promise. But
+it was of course necessary that Lady Fitzgerald should know that Mr.
+Prendergast was coming to the house, and it was of course impossible
+to keep from her the fact that his visit was connected with the
+lamentable state of her husband's health and spirits. Indeed, she
+knew as much as that without any telling. It was not probable that
+Mr. Prendergast should come there now on a visit of pleasure.
+
+"Whatever this may be that weighs upon his mind," Herbert had said,
+"he will be better for talking it over with a man whom he trusts."
+
+"And why not with Somers?" said Lady Fitzgerald.
+
+"Somers is too often with him, too near to him in all the affairs of
+his life. I really think he is wise to send for Mr. Prendergast. We
+do not know him, but I believe him to be a good man."
+
+Then Lady Fitzgerald had expressed herself as satisfied--as
+satisfied as she could be, seeing that her husband would not take
+her into his confidence; and after this it was settled that Herbert
+should at once ride over to Desmond Court, and explain that Clara's
+visit had better be postponed.
+
+Herbert got off his horse at the gate, and gave it to one of the
+children at the lodge to lead after him. His horse would not follow
+him, Clara said to herself as they walked back together towards the
+house. She could not prevent her mind running off in that direction.
+She would fain not have thought of Owen as she thus hung upon
+Herbert's arm, but as yet she had not learned to control her
+thoughts. His horse had followed him lovingly-the dogs about the
+place had always loved him-the men and women of the whole country
+round, old and young, all spoke of him with a sort of love:
+everybody admired him. As all this passed through her brain, she was
+hanging on her accepted lover's arm, and listening to his soft sweet
+words.
+
+"Oh, yes! it will be much better," she said, answering his proposal
+that she should put off her visit to Castle Richmond. "But I am so
+sorry that Sir Thomas should be ill. Mr. Prendergast is not a
+doctor, is he?"
+
+And then Herbert explained that Mr. Prendergast was not a doctor,
+that he was a physician for the mind rather than for the body.
+Regarding Clara as already one of his own family, he told her as
+much as he had told his mother. He explained that there was some
+deep sorrow weighing on his father's heart of which they none of
+them knew anything save its existence; that there might be some
+misfortune coming on Sir Thomas of which he, Herbert, could not even
+guess the nature; but that everything would be told to this Mr.
+Prendergast.
+
+"It is very sad," said Herbert.
+
+"Very sad; very sad," said Clara, with tears in her eyes. "Poor
+gentleman! I wish that we could comfort him."
+
+"And I do hope that we may," said Herbert.
+
+"Somers seems to think that his mind is partly affected, and that
+this misfortune, whatever it be, may not improbably be less serious
+than we anticipate;-that it weighs heavier on him than it would do,
+were he altogether well."
+
+"And your mother, Herbert?"
+
+"Oh, yes; she also is to be pitied. Sometimes, for moments, she
+seems to dread some terrible misfortune; but I believe that in her
+calm judgment she thinks that our worst calamity is the state of my
+father's health."
+
+Neither in discussing the matter with his mother or Clara, nor in
+thinking it over when alone, did it ever occur to Herbert that he
+himself might be individually subject to the misfortune over which
+his father brooded. Sir Thomas had spoken piteously to him, and
+called him poor, and had seemed to grieve over what might happen to
+him; but this had been taken by the son as a part of his father's
+malady.
+
+Everything around him was now melancholy, and therefore these terms
+had not seemed to have any special force of their own. He did not
+think it necessary to warn Clara that bad days might be in store for
+both of them, or to caution her that their path of love might yet be
+made rough.
+
+"And whom do you think I met, just now, on horseback?" he asked, as
+soon as this question of her visit had been decided.
+
+"Mr. Owen Fitzgerald, probably," said Clara. "He went from hence
+about an hour since."
+
+"Owen Fitzgerald here!" he repeated, as though the tidings of such a
+visit having been made were not exactly pleasant to him. "I thought
+that Lady Desmond did not even see him now."
+
+"His visit was to me, Herbert, and I will explain it to you. I was
+just going to tell you when you first came in, only you began about
+Castle Richmond."
+
+"And have you seen him?"
+
+"Oh yes, I saw him. Mamma thought it best. Yesterday he wrote a note
+to me which I will show you." And then she gave him such an account
+of the interview as was possible to her, making it, at any rate,
+intelligible to him that Owen had come thither to claim her for
+himself, having heard the rumour of her engagement to his cousin.
+
+"It was inexcusable on his part--unpardonable!" said Herbert,
+speaking with an angry spot on his face, and with more energy than
+was usual with him.
+
+"Was it? why?" said Clara, innocently. She felt unconsciously that
+it was painful to her to hear Owen ill spoken of by her lover, and
+that she would fain excuse him if she could.
+
+"Why, dearest? Think what motives he could have had; what other
+object than to place you in a painful position, and to cause trouble
+and vexation to us all. Did he not know that we were engaged?"
+
+"Oh yes; he knew that;--at least, no; I am not quite sure--I think
+he said that he had heard it but did not---"
+
+"Did not what, love?"
+
+"I think he said he did not quite believe it;" and then she was
+forced, much against her will, to describe to her betrothed how Owen
+had boldly claimed her as his own.
+
+"His conduct has been unpardonable," said Herbert, again. "Nay, it
+has been ungentleman-like. He has intruded himself where he well
+knew that he was not wanted; and he has done so taking advantage of
+a few words which, under the present circumstances, he should force
+himself to forget."
+
+"But, Herbert, it is I that have been to blame."
+
+"No; you have not been in blame. I tell you honestly that I can lay
+no blame at your door. At the age you were then, it was impossible
+that you should know your own mind. And even had your promise to him
+been of a much more binding nature, his subsequent conduct, and your
+mother's remonstrance, as well as your own age, would have released
+you from it without any taint of falsehood. He knew all this as well
+as I do; and I am surprised that he should have forced his way into
+your mother's house with the mere object of causing you
+embarrassment."
+
+It was marvellous how well Herbert Fitzgerald could lay down the law
+on the subject of Clara's conduct, and on all that was due to her,
+and all that was not due to Owen. He was the victor; he had gained
+the prize; and therefore it was so easy for him to acquit his
+promised bride, and heap reproaches on the head of his rejected
+rival. Owen had been told that he was not wanted, and of course
+should have been satisfied with his answer. Why should he intrude
+himself among happy people with his absurd aspirations? For were
+they not absurd? Was it not monstrous on his part to suppose that he
+could marry Clara Desmond?
+
+It was in this way that Herbert regarded the matter. But it was not
+exactly in that way that Clara looked at it. "He did not force his
+way in." she said. "He wrote to ask if we would see him; and mamma
+said that she thought it better."
+
+"That is forcing his way in the sense that I meant it; and if I find
+that he gives further annoyance I shall tell him what I think about
+it. I will not have you persecuted."
+
+"Herbert, if you quarrel with him you will make me wretched. I think
+it would kill me."
+
+"I shall not do it if I can help it, Clara. But it is my duty to
+protect you, and if it becomes necessary I must do so; you have no
+father, and no brother of an age to speak to him, and that
+consideration alone should have saved you from such an attack."
+
+Clara said nothing more, for she knew that she could not speak out
+to him the feelings of her heart. She could not plead to him that
+she had injured Owen, that she had loved him and then given him up;
+that she had been false to him: she could not confess that, after
+all, the tribute of such a man's love could not be regarded by her
+as an offence. So she said nothing further, but walked on in
+silence, leaning on his arm.
+
+They were now close to the house, and as they drew near to it Lady
+Desmond met them on the door-step. "I dare say you have heard that
+we had a visitor here this morning," she said, taking Herbert's hand
+in an affectionate motherly way, and smiling on him with all her
+sweetness.
+
+Herbert said that he had heard it, and expressed an opinion that Mr.
+Owen Fitzgerald would have been acting far more wisely to have
+remained at home at Hap House.
+
+"Yes, perhaps so; certainly so," said Lady Desmond, putting her arm
+within that of her future son, and walking back with him through the
+great hall. "He would have been wiser: he would have saved dear
+Clara from a painful half-hour, and he would have saved himself from
+perhaps years of sorrow. He has been very foolish to remember
+Clara's childhood as he does remember it. But, my dear Herbert, what
+can we do? You lords of creation sometimes will be foolish even
+about such trifling things as women's hearts."
+
+And then, when Herbert still persisted that Owen's conduct had been
+inexcusable and ungentlemanlike, she softly flattered him into
+quiescence. "You must not forget," she said, "that he perhaps has
+loved Clara almost as truly as you do. And then what harm can he do?
+It is not very probable that he should succeed in winning Clara away
+from you!"
+
+"Oh no, it is not that I mean. It is for Clara's sake."
+
+"And she, probably, will never see him again till she is your wife.
+That event will, I suppose, take place at no very remote period."
+
+"As soon as ever my father's health will admit. That is if I can
+persuade Clara to be so merciful."
+
+"To tell the truth, Herbert, I think you could persuade her to
+anything. Of course we must not hurry her too much. As for me, my
+losing her will be very sad; you can understand that; but I would
+not allow any feeling of my own to stand in her way for
+half-an-hour."
+
+"She will be very near you, you know."
+
+"Yes, she will; and therefore, as I was saying, it would be absurd
+for you to quarrel with Mr. Owen Fitzgerald. For myself, I am sorry
+for him--very sorry for him. You know the whole story of what
+occurred between him and Clara, and of course you will understand
+that my duty at that time was plain. Clara behaved admirably, and if
+only he would not be so foolish, the whole matter might be
+forgotten. As far as you and I are concerned I think it may be
+forgotten."
+
+"But then his coming here?"
+
+"That will not be repeated. I thought it better to show him that we
+were not afraid of him, and therefore I permitted it. Had I
+conceived that you would have objected--"
+
+"Oh no!" said Herbert.
+
+"Well, there was not much for you to be afraid of, certainly," said
+the countess. And so he was appeased, and left the house promising
+that he, at any rate, would do nothing that might lead to a quarrel
+with his cousin Owen.
+
+Clara, who had still kept on her bonnet, again walked down with him
+to the lodge, and encountered his first earnest supplication that an
+early day should be named for their marriage. She had many reasons,
+excellent good reasons, to allege why this should not be the case.
+When was a girl of seventeen without such reasons? And it is so
+reasonable that she should have such reasons. That period of having
+love made to her must be by far the brightest in her life. Is it not
+always a pity that it should be abridged?
+
+"But your father's illness, Herbert, you know."
+
+Herbert acknowledged that, to a certain extent, his father's illness
+was a reason--only to a certain extent. It would be worse than
+useless to think of waiting till his father's health should be
+altogether strong. Just for the present, till Mr. Prendergast should
+have gone, and perhaps for a fortnight longer, it might be well to
+wait. But after that--and then he pressed very closely the hand
+which rested on his arm. And so the matter was discussed between
+them with language and arguments which were by no means original.
+
+At the gate, just as Herbert was about to remount his horse, they
+were encountered by a sight which for years past had not been
+uncommon in the south of Ireland, but which had become frightfully
+common during the last two or three months. A woman was standing
+there of whom you could hardly say that she was clothed, though she
+was involved in a mass of rags which covered her nakedness. Her head
+was all uncovered, and her wild black hair was streaming round her
+face. Behind her back hung two children enveloped among the rags in
+some mysterious way; and round about her on the road stood three
+others, of whom the two younger were almost absolutely naked. The
+eldest of the five was not above seven. They all had the same wild
+black eyes, and wild elfish straggling locks; but neither the mother
+nor the children were comely. She was short ad broad in the
+shoulders, though wretchedly thin; her bare legs seemed to be of
+nearly the same thickness up to the knee, and the naked limbs of the
+children were like yellow sticks. It is strange how various are the
+kinds of physical development among the Celtic peasantry in Ireland.
+In many places they are singularly beautiful, especially as
+children; and even after labour and sickness shall have told on them
+as labour and sickness will tell, they still retain a certain
+softness and grace which is very nearly akin to beauty. But then
+again in a neighbouring district they will be found to be squat,
+uncouth, and in no way attractive to the eye. The tint of the
+complexion, the nature of the hair, the colour of the eyes, shall be
+the same. But in one place it will seem as though noble blood had
+produced delicate limbs and elegant stature, whereas in the other a
+want of noble blood had produced the reverse. The peasants of Clare,
+Limerick, and Tipperary are, in this way, much more comely than
+those of Cork and Kerry.
+
+When Herbert and Clara reached the gate they found this mother with
+her five children crouching at the ditch-side, although it was still
+mid-winter. They had seen him enter the demesne, and were now
+waiting with the patience of poverty for his return.
+
+"An' the holy Virgin guide an' save you, my lady," said the woman,
+almost frightening Clara by the sudden way in which she came
+forward, "an' you too, Misther Herbert; and for the love of heaven
+do something for a poor crathur whose five starving childher have
+not had wholesome food within their lips for the last week past."
+
+Clara looked at them piteously and put her hand towards her pocket.
+Her purse was never well furnished, and now in these bad days was
+usually empty. At the present moment it was wholly so. "I have
+nothing to give her; not a penny," she said, whispering to her
+lover.
+
+But Herbert had learned deep lessons of political economy, and was
+by no means disposed to give promiscuous charity on the road-side.
+"What is your name," said he; "and from where do you come?"
+
+"Shure, an' it's yer honor knows me well enough; and her ladyship
+too; may the heavens be her bed. And don't I come from Clady; that
+is two long miles the fur side of it? And my name is Bridget Sheehy.
+Shure, an' yer ladyship remembers me at Clady the first day ye war
+over there about the biler."
+
+Clara looked at her, and thought that she did remember her, but she
+said nothing. "And who is your husband?" said Herbert.
+
+"Murty Brien, plaze yer honor;" and the woman ducked a curtsey with
+the heavy load of two children on her back. It must be understood
+that among the poorer classes in the south and west of Ireland it is
+almost rare for a married woman to call herself or to be called by
+her husband's name.
+
+"And is he not at work?"
+
+"Shure, an' he is, yer honor--down beyant Kinsale by the say. But
+what's four shilling a week for a man's diet, let alone a woman and
+five bairns?"
+
+"And so he has deserted you?"
+
+"No, yer honor; he's not dasarted me thin. He's a good man and a
+kind, av' he had the mains. But we've a cabin up here, on her
+ladyship's ground that is; and he has sent me up among my own
+people, hoping that times would come round; but faix, yer honor, I'm
+thinking that they'll never come round, no more."
+
+"And what do you want now, Bridget?"
+
+"What is it I'm wanting? just a thrifle of money then to get a sup
+of milk for thim five childher as is starving and dying for the want
+of it." And she pointed to the wretched, naked brood around her with
+a gesture which in spite of her ugliness had in it something of
+tragic grandeur.
+
+"But you know that we will not give money. They will take you in at
+the poorhouse at Kanturk."
+
+"Is it the poorhouse, yer honor?"
+
+"Or, if you get a ticket from your priest they will give you meal
+twice a week at Clady. You know that. Why do you not go to Father
+Connellan?"
+
+"Is it the mail? An' shure an' haven't I had it the last month past;
+nothin' else; not a taste of a piaty or a dhrop of milk for nigh a
+month, and now look at the childher. Look at them, my lady. They are
+dyin' by the very road-side." And she undid the bundle at her back,
+and laying the two babes down on the road, showed that the elder of
+them was in truth in a fearful state. It was a child nearly two
+years of age, but its little legs seemed to have withered away; its
+cheeks were wan, and yellow and sunken, and the two teeth which it
+had already cut were seen with terrible plainness through its
+emaciated lips. Its head and forehead were covered with sores; and
+then the mother, moving aside the rags, showed that its back and
+legs were in the same state. "Look to that," she said, almost with
+scorn. "That's what the mail has done--my black curses be upon it,
+and the day that it first come nigh the counthry." And then again
+she covered the child and began to resume her load.
+
+"Do give her something, Herbert, pray do," said Clara, with her
+whole face suffused with tears.
+
+"You know that we cannot give away money," said Herbert, arguing
+with Bridget Sheehy, and not answering Clara at the moment. "You
+understand enough of what is being done to know that. Why do you not
+go into the Union?"
+
+"Shure thin an' I'll jist tramp on as fur as Hap House, I and my
+childher; that is av' they do not die by the road-side. Come on,
+bairns. Mr. Owen won't be afther sending me to the Kanturk union
+when I tell him that I've travelled all thim miles to get a dhrink
+of milk for a sick babe; more by token when I tells him also that
+I'm one of the Desmond tinantry. It's he that loves the Desmonds,
+Lady Clara,--loves them as his own heart's blood. And it's I that
+wish him good luck with his love, in spite of all that's come and
+gone yet. Come on, bairns, come along; we have seven weary miles to
+walk."
+
+And then, having rearranged her burden on her back, she prepared
+again to start.
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald, from the first moment of his interrogating the
+woman, had of course known that he would give her somewhat. In spite
+of all his political economy, there were but few days in which he
+did not empty his pocket of his loose silver, with these culpable
+deviations from his theoretical philosophy. But yet he felt that it
+was his duty to insist on his rules, as far as his heart would allow
+him to do so. It was a settled thing at their relief committee that
+there should be no giving away of money to chance applicants for
+alms. What money each had to bestow would go twice further by being
+brought to the general fund--by being expended with forethought and
+discrimination. This was the system which all attempted, which all
+resolved to adopt who were then living in the south of Ireland. But
+the system was impracticable, for it required frames of iron and
+hearts of adamant. It was impossible not to waste money in
+almsgiving.
+
+"Oh, Herbert!" said Clara, imploringly, as the woman prepared to
+start.
+
+"Bridget, come here," said Herbert, and he spoke very seriously, for
+the woman's allusion to Owen Fitzgerald had driven a cloud across
+his brow. "Your child is very ill, and therefore I will give you
+something to help you," and he gave her a shilling and two
+sixpences.
+
+"May the God in heaven bless you thin, and make you happy, whoever
+wins the bright darling by your side; and may the good days come
+back to yer house and all that belongs to it. May yer wife clave to
+you all her days, and be a good mother to your childher." And she
+would have gone on further with her blessing had not he interrupted
+her.
+
+"Go on now, my good woman," said he, "and take your children where
+they may be warm. If you will be advised by me, you will go to the
+Union at Kanturk." And so the woman passed on still blessing them.
+Very shortly after this none of them required pressing to go to the
+workhouse. Every building that could be arranged for the purpose was
+filled to overflowing as soon as it was ready. But the worst of the
+famine had not come upon them as yet. And then Herbert rode back to
+Castle Richmond.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVII
+
+FATHER BARNEY
+
+
+Mick O'Dwyer's public-house at Kanturk was by no means so
+pretentious an establishment as that kept by his brother in South
+Main Street, Cork, but it was on the whole much less nasty. It was a
+drinking-shop and a public car office, and such places in Ireland
+are seldom very nice; but there was no attempt at hotel grandeur,
+and the little room in which the family lived behind the bar was
+never invaded by customers.
+
+On one evening just at this time--at the time, that is, with which
+we have been lately concerned--three persons were sitting in this
+room over a cup of tea. There was a gentleman, midddle-aged, but
+none the worse on that account, who has already been introduced in
+these pages as Father Bernard M'Carthy. He was the parish priest of
+Drumbarrow; and as his parish comprised a portion of the town of
+Kanturk, he lived, not exactly in the town, but within a mile of it.
+His sister had married Mr. O'Dwyer of South Main Street, and
+therefore he was quite at home in the little back parlour of Mick
+O'Dwyer's house in Kanturk. Indeed Father Bernard was a man who made
+himself at home in the houses of most of his parishioners,--and of
+some who were not his parishioners.
+
+His companions on the present occasion were two ladies who seemed to
+be emulous in supplying his wants. The younger and more attractive
+of the two was also an old friend of ours, being no other than Fanny
+O'Dwyer from South Main Street. Actuated, doubtless, by some
+important motive she had left her bar at home for one night, having
+come down to Kanturk by her father's car, with the intention of
+returning by it in the morning. She was seated as a guest here on
+the corner of the sofa near the fire, but nevertheless she was
+neither too proud nor too strange in her position to administer as
+best she might to the comfort of her uncle.
+
+The other lady was Mistress O'Dwyer, the lady of the mansion. She
+was fat, very; by no means fair, and perhaps something over forty.
+But nevertheless there were those who thought that she had her
+charms. A better hand at curing a side of bacon there was not in the
+county Cork, nor a woman who was more knowing in keeping a house
+straight and snug over her husband's head. That she had been worth
+more than a fortune to Mick O'Dwyer was admitted by all in Kanturk;
+for it was known to all that Mick O'Dwyer was not himself a good
+hand at keeping a house straight and snug.
+
+"Another cup of tay, Father Bernard," said this lady. "It'll be more
+to your liking now than the first, you'll find." Father Barney,
+perfectly reliant on her word, handed in his cup.
+
+"And the muffin is quite hot," said Fanny, stooping down to a tray
+which stood before the peat fire, holding the muffin dish. "But
+perhaps you'd like a morsel of buttered toast; say the word, uncle,
+and I'll make it in a brace of seconds."
+
+"In course she will," said Mrs. O'Dwyer: "and happy too, av you'll
+only say that you have a fancy, Father Bernard."
+
+But Father Bernard would not own to any such fancy. The muffin, he
+said, was quite to his liking, and so was the tea; and from the
+manner in which he disposed of these delicacies, even Mrs. Townsend
+might have admitted that this assertion was true, though she was
+wont to express her belief that nothing but lies could, by any
+possibility, fall from his mouth.
+
+"And they have been staying with you now for some weeks, haven't
+they?" said Father Barney.
+
+"Off and on," said Fanny.
+
+"But there's one of them mostly there, isn't he?" added the priest.
+
+"The two of them is mostly there, just now. Sometimes one goes away
+for a day or two, and sometimes the other."
+
+"And they have no business which keeps them in Cork?" continued the
+priest, who seemed to be very curious on the matter.
+
+"Well, they do have business, I suppose," said Fanny, "but av so I
+never sees it."
+
+Fanny O'Dwyer had a great respect for her uncle, seeing that he
+filled an exalted position, and was a connexion of whom she could be
+justly proud; but, though she had now come down to Kanturk with the
+view of having a good talk with her aunt and uncle about the
+Molletts, she would only tell as much as she liked to tell, even to
+the parish priest of Drumbarrow. And we may as well explain here
+that Fanny had now permanently made up her mind to reject the suit
+of Mr. Abraham Mollett. As she had allowed herself to see more and
+more of the little domestic ways of that gentleman, and to become
+intimate with him as a girl should become with the man she intends
+to marry, she had gradually learned to think that he hardly came up
+to her beau ideal of a lover. That he was crafty and false did not
+perhaps offend her as it should have done. Dear Fanny, excellent and
+gracious as she was, could herself be crafty on occasions. He drank
+too, but that came in the way of her profession. It is hard,
+perhaps, for a barmaid to feel much severity against that offence.
+But in addition to this Aby was selfish and cruel and insolent, and
+seldom altogether good tempered. He was bad to his father, and bad
+to those below him whom he employed. Old Mollett would give away his
+sixpences with a fairly liberal hand, unless when he was exasperated
+by drink and fatigue. But Aby seldom gave away a penny. Fanny had
+sharp eyes, and soon felt that her English lover was not a man to be
+loved, though he had two rings, a gold chain, and half a dozen fine
+waistcoats.
+
+And then another offence had come to light in which the Molletts
+were both concerned. Since their arrival in South Main Street they
+had been excellent customers--indeed quite a godsend, in this
+light, to Fanny, who had her own peculiar profit out of such
+house-customers as they were. They had paid their money like true
+Britons,--not regularly indeed, for regularity had not been
+desired, but by a five pound now, and another in a day or two, just
+as they were wanted. Nothing indeed could be better than this, for
+bills so paid are seldom rigidly scrutinized. But of late, within
+the last week, Fanny's requests for funds had not been so promptly
+met, and only on the day before her visit to Kanturk she had been
+forced to get her father to take a bill from Mr. Mollett senior for
+20_l._ at two months' date. This was a great come-down, as both Fanny
+and her father felt, and they had begun to think that it might be
+well to bring their connexion with the Molletts to a close. What if
+an end had come to the money of these people, and their bills should
+be dishonoured when due? It was all very well for a man to have
+claims against Sir Thomas Fitzgerald, but Fanny O'Dwyer had already
+learnt that nothing goes so far in this world as ready cash.
+
+"They do have business, I suppose," said Fanny.
+
+"It won't be worth much, I'm thinking," said Mrs. O'Dwyer,
+"when they can't pay their weekly bills at a house of public
+entertainment, without flying their names at two months' date."
+
+Mrs. O'Dwyer hated any such payments herself, and looked on them as
+certain signs of immorality. That every man should take his drop of
+drink, consume it noiselessly, and pay for it immediately--that was
+her idea of propriety in its highest form.
+
+"And they've been down here three or four times, each of them," said
+Father Barney, thinking deeply on the subject.
+
+"I believe they have," said Fanny. "But of course I don't know much
+of where they've been to."
+
+Father Barney knew very well that his dear niece had been on much
+more intimate terms with her guest than she pretended. The rumours
+had reached his ears some time since that the younger of the two
+strangers in South Main Street was making himself agreeable to the
+heiress of the hotel, and he had intended to come down upon her with
+all the might of an uncle, and, if necessary, with all the authority
+of the Church. But now that Fanny had discarded her lover, he wisely
+felt that it would be well for him to know nothing about it. Both
+uncles and priests may know too much--very foolishly.
+
+"I have seen them here myself," said he, "and they have both been up
+at Castle Richmond."
+
+"They do say as poor Sir Thomas is in a bad way," said Mrs. O'Dwyer,
+shaking her head piteously.
+
+"And yet he sees these men," said Father Barney. "I know that for
+certain. He has seen them, though he will rarely see anybody
+now-a-days."
+
+"Young Mr. Herbert is a-doing most of the business up about the
+place," said Mrs. O'Dwyer. "And people do say as how he is going to
+make a match of it with Lady Clara Desmond. And it's the lucky girl
+she'll be, for he's a nice young fellow entirely."
+
+"Not half equal to her other Joe, Mr. Owen that is," said Fanny.
+
+"Well, I don't know that, my dear. Such a house and property as
+Castle Richmond is not likely to go a-begging among the young women.
+And then Mr. Herbert is not so rampageous like as him of Hap house,
+by all accounts."
+
+But Father Barney still kept to his subject. "And they are both at
+your place at the present moment, eh, Fanny?"
+
+"They was to dine there, after I left."
+
+"And the old man said he'd be down here again next Thursday,"
+continued the priest. "I heard that for certain. I'll tell you what
+it is, they're not after any good here. They are Protestants, ain't
+they?"
+
+"Oh, black Protestants," said Mrs. O'Dwyer. "But you are not taking
+your tay, Father Bernard," and she again filled his cup for him.
+
+"If you'll take my advice, Fanny, you'll give them nothing more
+without seeing their money. They'll come to no good here, I'm sure
+of that. They're afther some mischief with that poor old gentleman
+at Castle Richmond, and it's my belief the police will have them
+before they've done."
+
+"Like enough," said Mrs. O'Dwyer.
+
+"They may have them to-morrow, for what I care," said Fanny, who
+could not help feeling that Aby Mollett had at one time been not
+altogether left without hope as her suitor.
+
+"But you wouldn't like anything like that to happen in your father's
+house," said Father Barney.
+
+"Bringing throuble and disgrace on an honest name," said Mrs.
+O'Dwyer.
+
+"There'd be no disgrace as I knows of," said Fanny, stoutly. "Father
+makes his money by the public, and in course he takes in any that
+comes the way with money in their pockets to pay the shot."
+
+"But these Molletts ain't got the money to pay the shot," said Mrs.
+O'Dwyer, causticly. "You've about sucked 'em dhry, I'm thinking, and
+they owes you more now than you're like to get from 'em."
+
+"I suppose father'll have to take that bill up," said Fanny,
+assenting. And so it was settled down there among them that the
+Molletts were to have the cold shoulder, and that they should in
+fact be turned out of the Kanturk Hotel as quickly as this could be
+done. "Better a small loss at first, than a big one at last," said
+Mrs. O'Dwyer, with much wisdom. "They'll come to mischief down here,
+as sure as my name's M'Carthy," said the priest. "And I'd be sorry
+your father should be mixed up in it."
+
+And then by degrees the conversation was changed, but not till the
+tea-things had been taken away, and a square small bottle of very
+particular whisky put on the table in its place. And the sugar also
+was brought, and boiling water in an immense jug, as though Father
+Barney were going to make a deep potation indeed, and a lemon in a
+wine-glass; and then the priest was invited, with much hospitality,
+to make himself comfortable. Nor did the luxuries prepared for him
+end here; but Fanny, the pretty Fan herself, filled a pipe for him,
+and pretended that she would light it, for such priests are merry
+enough sometimes, and can joke as well as other men with their
+pretty nieces.
+
+"But you're not mixing your punch, Father Bernard," said Mrs.
+O'Dwyer, with a plaintive melancholy voice, "and the wather getting
+cowld and all! Faix then, Father Bernard, I'll mix it for ye, so I
+will." And so she did, and well she knew how. And then she made
+another for herself and her niece, urging that "a thimbleful would
+do Fanny all the good in life afther her ride acrass them cowld
+mountains," and the priest looked on assenting, blowing the
+comfortable streams of smoke from his nostrils.
+
+"And so, Father Bernard, you and Parson Townsend is to meet again
+to-morrow at Gortnaclough." Whereupon Father Bernard owned that such
+was the case, with a nod, not caring to disturb the pipe which lay
+comfortably on his lower lip.
+
+"Well, well; only to think on it," continued Mrs. O'Dwyer. "That the
+same room should hould the two of ye." And she lifted up her hands
+and shook her head.
+
+"It houlds us both very comfortable, I can assure you, Mrs.
+O'Dwyer."
+
+"And he ain't rampageous and highty-tighty? He don't give hisself no
+airs?"
+
+"Well, no; nothing in particular. Why should the man be such a fool
+as that?"
+
+"Why, in course? But they are such fools, Father Bernard. They does
+think theyselves such grand folks. Now don't they? I'd give a dandy
+of punch all round to the company just to hear you put him down
+once; I would. But he isn't upsetting at all, then?"
+
+"Not the last time we met, he wasn't; and I don't think he intends
+it. Things have come to that now that the parsons know where they
+are and what they have to look to. They're getting a lesson they'll
+not forget in a hurry. Where are their rent charges to come from--
+can you tell me that, Mrs. O'Dwyer?"
+
+Mrs. O'Dwyer could not, but she remarked that pride would always
+have a fall. "And there's no pride like Protesthant pride," said
+Fanny. "It is so upsetting, I can't abide it." All which tended to
+show that she had given up her Protestant lover.
+
+"And is it getthing worse than iver with the poor crathurs?" said
+Mrs. O'Dwyer, referring, not to the Protestants, but to the victims
+of the famine.
+
+"Indeed it's getting no betther," said the priest, "and I'm fearing
+it will be worse before it is over. I haven't married one couple in
+Drumbarrow since November last."
+
+"And that's a heavy sign, Father Bernard."
+
+"The surest sign in the world that they have no money among them at
+all, at all. And it is bad with thim, Mrs. O'Dwyer,--very bad, very
+bad indeed."
+
+"Glory be to God, the poor cratures!" said the soft-hearted lady.
+"It isn't much the like of us have to give away, Father Bernard; I
+needn't be telling you that. But we'll help, you know,--we'll help."
+
+"And so will father, uncle Bernard. If you're so bad off about here
+I know he'll give you a thrifle for the asking." In a short time,
+however, it came to pass that those in the cities could spare no aid
+to the country. Indeed it may be a question whether the city poverty
+was not the harder of the two.
+
+"God bless you both--you've soft hearts, I know." And Father Barney
+put his punch to his lips. "Whatever you can do for me shall not be
+thrown away. And I'll tell you what, Mrs. O'Dwyer, it does behove us
+all to put our best foot out now. We will not let them say that the
+Papists would do nothing for their own poor."
+
+"'Deed then an' they'll say anything of us, Father Bernard. There's
+nothing too hot or too heavy for them."
+
+"At any rate let us not deserve it, Mrs. O'Dwyer. There will be a
+lot of them at Gortnaclough to-morrow, and I shall tell them that
+we, on our side, won't be wanting. To give them their due, I must
+say that they are working well. That young Herbert Fitzgerald's a
+trump, whether he's Protestant or Catholic."
+
+"An' they do say he's a strong bearing towards the ould religion,"
+said Mrs. O'Dwyer.
+
+"God bless his sweet young face av' he'd come back to us. That's
+what I say."
+
+"God bless his face any way, say I," said Father Barney, with a
+wider philanthropy. "He is doing his best for the people, and the
+time has come now when we must hang together, if it be any way
+possible." And with this the priest finished his pipe, and wishing
+the ladies good night, walked away to his own house.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XVIII
+
+THE RELIEF COMMITTEE
+
+
+At this time the famine was beginning to be systematised. The
+sternest among landlords and masters were driven to acknowledge that
+the people had not got food, or the means of earning it. The people
+themselves were learning that a great national calamity had
+happened, and that the work was God's work; and the Government had
+fully recognized the necessity of taking the whole matter into its
+own hands. They were responsible for the preservation of the people,
+and they acknowledged their responsibility.
+
+And then two great rules seemed to get themselves laid down--not by
+general consent, for there were many who greatly contested their
+wisdom--but by some force strong enough to make itself dominant. The
+first was, that the food to be provided should be earned and not
+given away. And the second was, that the providing of that food
+should be left to private competition, and not in any way be
+undertaken by the Government. I make bold to say that both these
+rules were wise and good.
+
+But how should the people work? That Government should supply the
+wages was of course an understood necessity; and it was also
+necessary that on all such work the amount of wages should be
+regulated by the price at which provisions might fix themselves.
+These points produced questions which were hotly debated by the
+Relief Committees of the different districts; but at last it got
+itself decided, again by the hands of Government, that all hills
+along the country roads should be cut away, and that the people
+should be employed on this work. They were so employed,--very little
+to the advantage of the roads for that or some following years.
+
+"So you have begun, my men," said Herbert to a gang of labourers
+whom he found collected at a certain point on Ballydahan Hill, which
+lay on his road from Castle Richmond to Gortnaclough. In saying this
+he had certainly paid them an unmerited compliment, for they had
+hitherto begun nothing. Some thirty or forty wretched-looking men
+were clustered together in the dirt and slop and mud, on the brow of
+the hill, armed with such various tools as each was able to
+find--with tools, for the most part, which would go but a little way
+in making Ballydahan Hill level or accessible. This question of
+tools also came to a sort of understood settlement before long; and
+within three months of the time of which I am writing legions of
+wheelbarrows were to be seen lying near every hill; wheelbarrows in
+hundreds and thousands. The fate of those myriads of wheelbarrows
+has always been a mystery to me.
+
+"So you have begun, my men," said Herbert, addressing them in a
+kindly voice. There was a couple of gangsmen with them, men a little
+above the others in appearance, but apparently incapable of
+commencing the work in hand, for they also were standing idle,
+leaning against a bit of wooden paling. It had, however, been
+decided that the works at Ballydahan Hill should begin on this day,
+and there were the men assembled. One fact admitted of no doubt,
+namely, this, that the wages would begin from this day.
+
+And then the men came and clustered round Herbert's horse. They were
+wretched-looking creatures, half-clad, discontented, with hungry
+eyes, each having at his heart's core a deep sense of injustice done
+personally upon him. They hated this work of cutting hills from the
+commencement to the end,--hated it, though it was to bring them
+wages and save them and theirs from actual famine and death. They
+had not been accustomed to the discomfort of being taken far from
+their homes to their daily work. Very many of them had never worked
+regularly for wages, day after day, and week after week. Up to this
+time such was not the habit of Irish cottiers. They held their own
+land, and laboured there for a spell; and then they would work for a
+spell, as men do in England, taking wages; and then they would be
+idle for a spell. It was not exactly a profitable mode of life, but
+it had its comforts; and now these unfortunates who felt themselves
+to be driven forth like cattle in droves for the first time,
+suffered the full wretchedness of their position. They were not
+rough and unruly, or inclined to be troublesome and perhaps violent,
+as men similarly circumstanced so often are in England;--as Irishmen
+are when collected in gangs out of Ireland. They had no aptitudes
+for such roughness, and no spirits for such violence. But they were
+melancholy, given to complaint, apathetic, and utterly without
+interest in that they were doing.
+
+"Yz, yer honer," said one man who was standing, shaking himself,
+with his hands enveloped in the rags of his pockets. He had on no
+coat, and the keen north wind seemed to be blowing through his
+bones; cold, however, as he was, he would do nothing towards warming
+himself, unless that occasional shake can be considered as a doing
+of something. "Yz, yer honer; we've begun thin since before daylight
+this blessed morning."
+
+It was now eleven o'clock, and a pick-axe had not been put into the
+ground, nor the work marked.
+
+"Been here before daylight!" said Herbert. "And has there been
+nobody to set you to work?"
+
+"Divil a sowl, yer honer," said another, who was sitting on a
+hedge-bank leaning with both his hands on a hoe, which he held
+between his legs, "barring Thady Molloy and Shawn Brady; they two do
+be over us, but they knows nothin' o' such jobs as this."
+
+Thady Molloy and Shawn Brady had with others moved up so as to be
+close to Herbert's horse, but they said not a word towards
+vindicating their own fitness for command.
+
+"And it's mortial cowld standing here thin," said another, "without
+a bit to ate or a sup to dhrink since last night, and then only a
+lump of the yally mail." And the speaker moved about on his toes and
+heels, desirous of keeping his blood in circulation with the
+smallest possible amount of trouble.
+
+"I'm telling the boys it's home we'd betther be going," said a
+fourth.
+
+"And lose the tizzy they've promised us," said he of the hoe.
+
+"Sorrow a tizzy they'll pay any of yez for standing here all day,"
+said an ill-looking little wretch of a fellow, with a black muzzle
+and a squinting eye; "ye may all die in the road first." And the man
+turned away among the crowd, as an Irishman does who has made his
+speech and does not want to be answered.
+
+"You need have no fear about that, my men," said Herbert. "Whether
+you be put to work or no you'll receive your wages; you may take my
+word for that."
+
+"I've been telling 'em that for the last half-hour," said the man
+with the hoe, now rising to his feet. "'Shure an' didn't Mr. Somers
+be telling us that we'd have saxpence each day as long we war here
+afore daylight?' said I, yer honer; 'an' shure an' wasn't it black
+night when we war here this blessed morning, and devil a fear of the
+tizzy?' said I. But it's mortial cowld, an' it'd be asier fur uz to
+be doing a spell of work than crouching about on our hunkers down on
+the wet ground."
+
+All this was true. It had been specially enjoined upon them to be
+early at their work. An Irishman as a rule will not come regularly
+to his task. It is a very difficult thing to secure his services
+every morning at six o'clock: but make a special point,--tell him
+that you want him very early, and he will come to you in the middle
+of the night. Breakfast every morning punctually at eight o'clock is
+almost impossible in Ireland; but if you want one special breakfast,
+so that you may start by a train at 4 A.M., you are sure to be
+served. No irregular effort is distasteful to an Irishman of the
+lower classes, not if it entails on him the loss of a day's food and
+the loss of a night's rest; the actual pleasure of the irregularity
+repays him for all this, and he never tells you that this or that is
+not his work. He prefers work that is not his own. Your coachman
+will have no objection to turn the mangle, but heaven and earth put
+together won't persuade him to take the horses out to exercise every
+morning at the same hour. These men had been told to come early, and
+they had been there on the road-side since five o'clock. It was not
+surprising that they were cold and hungry, listless and unhappy.
+
+And then, as young Fitzgerald was questioning the so-named gangmen
+as to the instructions they had received, a jaunting car came up to
+the foot of the hill. "We war to wait for the ongineer," Shawn Brady
+had said, "an' shure an' we have waited." "An' here's one of Misther
+Carroll's cars from Mallow," said Thady Molloy, "and that's the
+ongineer hisself." Thady Molloy was right; this was the engineer
+himself, who had now arrived from Mallow. From this time forth, and
+for the next twelve months, the country was full of engineers, or of
+men who were so called. I do not say this in disparagement; but the
+engineers were like the yellow meal. When there is an immense
+demand, and that a suddenly immense demand, for any article, it is
+seldom easy to get it very good. In those days men became engineers
+with a short amount of apprenticeship, but, as a rule, they did not
+do their work badly. In such days as those, men, if they be men at
+all, will put their shoulders to the wheel.
+
+The engineer was driven up to where they were standing, and he
+jumped off the car among the men who were to work under him with
+rather a pretentious air. He had not observed, or probably had not
+known, Herbert Fitzgerald. He was a very young fellow, still under
+one-and-twenty, beardless, light-haired, blue-eyed, and fresh from
+England. "And what hill is this?" said he to the driver.
+
+"Ballydahan, shure, yer honer. That last war Connick-a-coppul, and
+that other, the big un intirely, where the crass road takes away to
+Buttevant, that was Glounthauneroughtymore. Faix and that's been the
+murthering hill for cattle since first I knew it. Bedad yer honer
+'ll make it smooth as a bowling-green."
+
+"Ballydahan," said the young man, taking a paper out of his pocket
+and looking up the names in his list, "I've got it. There should be
+thirty-seven of them here."
+
+"Shure an' here we are these siven hours," said our friend of the
+hoe, "and mighty cowld we are."
+
+"Thady Molloy and Shawn Brady," called out the engineer, managing
+thoroughly to Anglicise the pronunciation of the names, though they
+were not Celtically composite to any great degree.
+
+"Yez, we's here," said Thady, coming forward. And then Herbert came
+up and introduced himself, and the young engineer took off his hat.
+"I came away from Mallow before eight," said he apologetically; "but
+I have four of these places to look after, and when one gets to one
+of them it is impossible to get away again. There was one place
+where I was kept two hours before I could get one of the men to
+understand what they were to do. What is it you call that big hill?"
+
+"Glounthauneroughtymore, yer honer," said the driver, to whom the
+name was as easy and familiar as his own.
+
+"And you are going to set these men to work now?" said Herbert.
+
+"Well, I don't suppose they'll do much to-day, Mr. Fitzgerald. But
+I must try and explain to the head men how they are to begin. They
+have none of them any tools, you see." And then he called out again.
+"Thady Molloy and Shawn Brady."
+
+"We's here," said Thady again; "we did not exactly know whether yer
+honer'd be afther beginning at the top or the botthom. That's all
+that war staying us."
+
+"Never fear," said Shawn, "but we'll have ould Ballydahan level in
+less than no time. We're the boys that can do it, fair and aisy."
+
+It appeared to Herbert that the young engineer seemed to be rather
+bewildered by the job of work before him, and therefore he rode on,
+not stopping to embarrass him by any inspection of his work. In
+process of time no doubt so much of the top of Ballydahan Hill was
+carried to the bottom as made the whole road altogether impassable
+for many months. But the great object was gained; the men were fed,
+and were not fed by charity. What did it matter, that the springs of
+every conveyance in the county Cork were shattered by the process,
+and that the works resulted in myriads of wheelbarrows?
+
+And then, as he rode on towards Gortnaclough, Herbert was overtaken
+by his friend the parson, who was also going to the meeting of the
+relief committee. "You have not seen the men at Ballydahan Hill,
+have you?" said Herbert.
+
+Mr. Townsend explained that he had not seen them. His road had
+struck on to that on which they now were not far from the top of the
+hill. "But I knew they were to be there this morning," said Mr.
+Townsend.
+
+"They have sent quite a lad of a fellow to show them how to work,"
+said Herbert. "I fear we shall all come to grief with these
+road-cuttings."
+
+"For heaven's sake don't say that at the meeting," said Mr.
+Townsend, "or you'll be playing the priests' game out and out.
+Father Barney has done all in his power to prevent the works."
+
+"But what if Father Barney be right?" said Herbert.
+
+"But he's not right," said the parson, energetically. "He's
+altogether wrong. I never knew one of them right in my life yet in
+anything. How can they be right?"
+
+"But I think you are mixing up road-making and Church doctrine, Mr.
+Townsend."
+
+"I hope I may never be in danger of mixing up God and the devil. You
+cannot touch pitch and not be defiled. Remember that, Herbert
+Fitzgerald."
+
+"I will remember nothing of the kind," said Herbert. "Am I to set
+myself up as a judge and say that this is pitch and that is pitch?
+Do you remember St. Peter on the housetop? Was not he afraid of what
+was unclean?"
+
+"The meaning of that was that he was to convert the Gentiles, and
+not give way to their errors. He was to contend with them and not
+give way an inch till he had driven them from their idolatry." Mr.
+Townsend had been specially primed by his wife that morning with
+vigorous hostility against Father Barney, and was grieved to his
+heart at finding that his young friend was prepared to take the
+priest's part in anything. In this matter of the roads Mr. Townsend
+was doubtless right, but hardly on the score of the arguments
+assigned by him.
+
+"I don't mean to say that there should be no road-making," said
+Herbert, after a pause. "The general opinion seems to be that we
+can't do better. I only say that we shall come to grief about it.
+Those poor fellows there have as much idea of cutting down a hill as
+I have; and it seems to me that the young lad whom I left with them
+has not much more."
+
+"They'll learn all in good time."
+
+"Let us hope it will be in good time."
+
+"If we once let them have the idea that we are to feed them in
+idleness," said Mr. Townsend, "they will want to go on for ever in
+the same way. And then, when they receive such immense sums in money
+wages, the priests will be sure to get their share. If the matter
+had been left to me, I would have paid the men in meal. I would
+never have given them money. They should have worked and got their
+food. The priest will get a penny out of every shilling; you'll see
+else." And so the matter was discussed between them as they went
+along to Gortnaclough.
+
+When they reached the room in which the committee was held they
+found Mr. Somers already in the chair. Priest M'Carthy was there
+also, with his coadjutor, the Rev. Columb Creagh--Father Columb as
+he was always called; and there was a Mr. O'Leary from Boherbuy, one
+of the middlemen as they were formerly named--though, by the way, I
+never knew that word to be current in Ireland; it is familiar to
+all, and was I suppose common some few years since, but I never
+heard the peasants calling such persons by that title. He was one of
+those with whom the present times were likely to go very hard. He
+was not a bad man, unless in so far as this, that he had no idea of
+owing any duty to others beyond himself and his family. His doctrine
+at present amounted to this, that if you left the people alone and
+gave them no false hopes, they would contrive to live somehow. He
+believed in a good deal, but he had no belief whatever in
+starvation,--none as yet. It was probable enough that some belief in
+this might come to him now before long. There were also one or two
+others; men who had some stake in the country, but men who hadn't a
+tithe of the interest possessed by Sir Thomas Fitzgerald.
+
+Mr. Townsend again went through the ceremony of shaking hands with
+his reverend brethren, and, on this occasion, did not seem to be
+much the worse for it. Indeed, in looking at the two men cursorily,
+a stranger might have said that the condescension was all on the
+other side. Mr. M'Carthy was dressed quite smartly. His black
+clothes were spruce and glossy; his gloves, of which he still kept
+on one and showed the other, were quite new; he was clean shaven,
+and altogether he had a shiny, bright, ebon appearance about him
+that quite did a credit to his side of the Church. But our friend
+the parson was discreditably shabby. His clothes were all brown, his
+white neck-tie could hardly have been clean during the last
+forty-eight hours, and was tied in a knot, which had worked itself
+nearly round to his ear as he had sat sideways on the car; his boots
+were ugly and badly brushed, and his hat was very little better than
+some of those worn by the workmen--so called--at Ballydahan Hill.
+But nevertheless, on looking accurately into the faces of both, one
+might see which man was the better nurtured and the better born.
+That operation with the sow's ear is, one may say, seldom successful
+with the first generation.
+
+"A beautiful morning, this," said the coadjutor, addressing Herbert
+Fitzgerald, with a very mild voice and an unutterable look of
+friendship; as though he might have said, "Here we are in a boat
+together, and of course we are all very fond of each other." To tell
+the truth, Father Columb was not a nice-looking young man. He was
+red-haired, slightly marked with the small-pox, and had a low
+forehead and cunning eyes.
+
+"Yes, it is a nice morning," said Herbert. "We don't expect anybody
+else here, do we, Somers?"
+
+"At any rate we won't wait," said Somers. So he sat down in the
+arm-chair, and they all went to work.
+
+"I am afraid, Mr. Somers," said Mr. M'Carthy from the other end of
+the table, where he had constituted himself a sort of deputy
+chairman, "I am afraid we are going on a wrong tack." The priest had
+shuffled away his chair as he began to speak, and was now standing
+with his hands upon the table. It is singular how strong a
+propensity some men have to get upon their legs in this way.
+
+"How so, Mr. M'Carthy?" said Somers. "But shan't we be all more
+comfortable if we keep our chairs? There'll be less ceremony, won't
+there, Mr. Townsend?"
+
+"Oh! certainly," said Townsend.
+
+"Less liable to interruption, perhaps, on our legs," said Father
+Columb, smiling blandly.
+
+But Mr. M'Carthy was far too wise to fight the question, so he sat
+down. "Just as you like," said he; "I can talk any way, sitting or
+standing, walking or riding; it's all one to me. But I'll tell you
+how we are on the wrong tack. We shall never get these men to work
+in gangs on the road. Never. They have not been accustomed to be
+driven like droves of sheep."
+
+"But droves of sheep don't work on the road," said Mr. Townsend.
+
+"I know that, Mr. Townsend," continued Mr. M'Carthy. "I am quite
+well aware of that. But droves of sheep are driven, and these men
+won't bear it."
+
+"'Deed an' they won't," said Father Columb, having altogether laid
+aside his bland smile now that the time had come, as he thought, to
+speak up for the people. "They may bear it in England, but they
+won't here." And the sternness of his eye was almost invincible.
+
+"If they are so foolish, they must be taught better manners," said
+Mr. Townsend. "But you'll find they'll work just as other men do--
+look at the navvies."
+
+"And look at the navvies' wages," said Father Columb.
+
+"Besides, the navvies only go if they like it," said the parish
+priest.
+
+"And these men need not go unless they like it," said Mr. Somers.
+"Only with this proviso, that if they cannot manage for themselves
+they must fall into our way of managing for them."
+
+"What I say, is this," said Mr. O'Leary. "Let 'em manage for
+'emselves. God bless my sowl! Why, we shall be skinned alive if we
+have to pay all this money back to Government. If Government chooses
+to squander thousands in this way, Government should bear the brunt.
+That's what I say." Eventually, Government, that is, the whole
+nation, did bear the brunt. But it would not have been very wise to
+promise this at the time.
+
+"But we need hardly debate all that at the present moment," said Mr.
+Somers. "That matter of the roads has already been decided for us,
+and we can't alter it if we would."
+
+"Then we may as well shut up shop," said Mr. O'Leary.
+
+"It's all very aisy to talk in that way," said Father Columb; "but
+the Government, as you call it, can't make men work. It can't force
+eight millions of the finest pisantry on God's earth--," and Father
+Columb was, by degrees, pushing away the seat from under him, when
+he was cruelly and ruthlessly stopped by his own parish priest.
+
+"I beg your pardon for a moment, Creagh," said he; "but perhaps we
+are getting a little out of the track. What Mr. Somers says is very
+true. If these men won't work on the road--and I don't think they
+will--the responsibility is not on us. That matter has been decided
+for us."
+
+"Men will sooner work anywhere than starve," said Mr. Townsend.
+
+"Some men will," said Father Columb, with a great deal of meaning in
+his tone. What he intended to convey was this--that Protestants, no
+doubt, would do so, under the dominion of the flesh; but that Roman
+Catholics, being under the dominion of the Spirit, would perish
+first.
+
+"At any rate we must try," said Father M'Carthy.
+
+"Exactly," said Mr. Somers; "and what we have now to do is to see
+how we may best enable these workers to live on their wages, and how
+those others are to live, who, when all is done, will get no wages."
+
+"I think we had better turn shopkeepers ourselves, and open stores
+for them everywhere," said Herbert. "That is what we are doing
+already at Berryhill."
+
+"And import our own corn," said the parson.
+
+"And where are we to get the money?" said the priest.
+
+"And why are we to ruin the merchants?" said O'Leary, whose brother
+was in the flour-trade, in Cork.
+
+"And shut up all the small shopkeepers," said Father Columb, whose
+mother was established in that line in the neighbourhood of
+Castleisland.
+
+"We could not do it," said Somers. "The demand upon us would be so
+great, that we should certainly break down. And then where would we
+be?"
+
+"But for a time, Somers," pleaded Herbert.
+
+"For a time we may do something in that way, till other means
+present themselves. But we must refuse all out-door relief. They who
+cannot or do not bring money must go into the workhouses."
+
+"You will not get houses in county Cork sufficient to hold
+them," said Father Bernard. And so the debate went on, not
+altogether without some sparks of wisdom, with many sparks also
+of eager benevolence, and some few passing clouds of fuliginous
+self-interest. And then lists were produced, with the names on
+them of all who were supposed to be in want--which were about to
+become, before long, lists of the whole population of the country.
+And at last it was decided among them, that in their district
+nothing should be absolutely given away, except to old women and
+widows,--which kind-hearted clause was speedily neutralised by
+women becoming widows while their husbands were still living; and
+it was decided also, that as long as their money lasted, the
+soup-kitchen at Berryhill should be kept open, and mill kept going,
+and the little shop maintained, so that to some extent a check might
+be maintained on the prices of the hucksters. And in this way they
+got through their work, not perhaps with the sagacity of Solomon,
+but as I have said, with an average amount of wisdom, as will always
+be the case when men set about their tasks with true hearts and
+honest minds.
+
+And then, when they parted, the two clergy-men of the parish shook
+hands with each other again, having perhaps less animosity against
+each other than they had ever felt before. There had been a joke or
+two over the table, at which both had laughed. The priest had wisely
+shown some deference to the parson, and the parson had immediately
+returned it, by referring some question to the priest. How often
+does it not happen that when we come across those whom we have hated
+and avoided all our lives, we find that they are not quite so bad as
+we had thought? That old gentleman of whom we wot is never so black
+as he has been painted.
+
+The work of the committee took them nearly the whole day, so that
+they did not separate till it was nearly dark. When they did so,
+Somers and Herbert Fitzgerald rode home together.
+
+"I always live in mortal fear," said Herbert, "that Townsend and the
+priests will break out into warfare."
+
+"As they haven't done it yet, they won't do it now," said Somers.
+"M'Carthy is not without sense, and Townsend, queer and intolerant
+as he is, has good feeling. If he and Father Columb were left
+together, I don't know what might happen. Mr. Prendergast is to be
+with you the day after to-morrow, is he not?"
+
+"So I understood my father to say."
+
+"Will you let me give you a bit of advice. Herbert?"
+
+"Certainly."
+
+"Then don't be in the house much on the day after he comes. He'll
+arrive, probably, to dinner."
+
+"I suppose he will."
+
+"If so, leave Castle Richmond after breakfast the next morning, and
+do not return till near dinner-time. It may be that your father will
+not wish you to be near him. Whatever this matter may be, you may be
+sure that you will know it before Mr. Prendergast leaves the
+country. I am very glad that he is coming."
+
+Herbert promised that he would take this advice, and he thought
+himself that among other things he might go over to inspect that
+Clady boiler, and of course call at Desmond Court on his way. And
+then, when they got near to Castle Richmond, they parted company,
+Mr. Somers stopping at his own place, and Herbert riding home alone.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XIX
+
+THE FRIEND OF THE FAMILY
+
+
+On the day named by Herbert, and only an hour before dinner, Mr.
+Prendergast did arrive at Castle Richmond. The Great Southern and
+Western Railway was not then open as far as Mallow, and the journey
+from Dublin was long and tedious. "I'll see him of course," said Sir
+Thomas to Lady Fitzgerald; "but I'll put off this business till
+to-morrow." This he said in a tone of distress and agony, which
+showed too plainly how he dreaded the work which he had before him.
+"But you'll come in to dinner," Lady Fitzgerald had said. "No," he
+answered, "not to day, love; I have to think about this." And he put
+his hand up to his head, as though this thinking about it had
+already been too much for him.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was a man over sixty years of age, being, in fact,
+considerably senior to Sir Thomas himself. But no one would have
+dreamed of calling Mr. Prendergast an old man. He was short of
+stature, well made, and in good proportion; he was wiry, strong, and
+almost robust. He walked as though in putting his foot to the earth
+he always wished to proclaim that he was afraid of no man and no
+thing. His hair was grizzled, and his whiskers were grey, and round
+about his mouth his face was wrinkled; but with him even these
+things hardly seemed to be signs of old age. He was said by many who
+knew him to be a stern man, and there was that in his face which
+seemed to warrant such a character. But he had also the reputation
+of being a very just man; and those who knew him best could tell
+tales of him which proved that his sternness was at any rate
+compatible with a wide benevolence. He was a man who himself had
+known but little mental suffering, and who owned no mental weakness;
+and it might be, therefore, that he was impatient of such weakness
+in others. To chance acquaintances his manners were not soft, or
+perhaps palatable; but to his old friends his very brusqueness was
+pleasing. He was a bachelor, well off in the world, and, to a
+certain extent, fond of society. He was a solicitor by profession,
+having his office somewhere in the purlieus of Lincoln's Inn, and
+living in an old-fashioned house not far distant from that classic
+spot. I have said that he owned no mental weakness. When I say
+further that he was slightly afflicted with personal vanity, and
+thought a good deal about the set of his hair, the shape of his
+coat, the fit of his boots, the whiteness of his hands, and the
+external trim of his umbrella, perhaps I may be considered to have
+contradicted myself. But such was the case. He was a handsome man
+too, with clear, bright, gray eyes, a well-defined nose, and
+expressive mouth--of which the lips, however, were somewhat too
+thin. No man with thin lips ever seems to me to be genially human at
+all points.
+
+Such was Mr. Prendergast; and my readers will, I trust, feel for Sir
+Thomas, and pity him, in that he was about to place his wounds in
+the hands of so ruthless a surgeon. But a surgeon, to be of use,
+should be ruthless in one sense. He should have the power of cutting
+and cauterizing, of phlebotomy and bone-handling without effect on
+his own nerves. This power Mr. Prendergast possessed, and therefore
+it may be said that Sir Thomas had chosen his surgeon judiciously.
+None of the Castle Richmond family, except Sir Thomas himself, had
+ever seen this gentleman, nor had Sir Thomas often come across him
+of late years. But he was what we in England call an old family
+friend; and I doubt whether we in England have any more valuable
+English characteristic than that of having old family friends. Old
+family feuds are not common with us now-a-days--not so common as
+with some other people. Sons who now hated their father's enemies
+would have but a bad chance before a commission of lunacy; but an
+old family friend is supposed to stick to one from generation to
+generation.
+
+On his arrival at Castle Richmond he was taken in to Sir Thomas
+before dinner. "You find me but in a poor state," said Sir Thomas,
+shaking in his fear of what was before him, as the poor wretch does
+before an iron-wristed dentist who is about to operate. "You will be
+better soon," Mr. Prendergast had said, as a man always does say
+under such circumstances. What other remark was possible to him?
+"Sir Thomas thinks that he had better not trouble you with business
+to-night," said Lady Fitzgerald. To this also Mr. Prendergast agreed
+willingly. "We shall both of us be fresher to-morrow, after
+breakfast," he remarked, as if any time made any difference to
+him,--as though he were not always fresh, and ready for any work
+that might turn up.
+
+That evening was not passed very pleasantly by the family at Castle
+Richmond. To all of them Mr. Prendergast was absolutely a stranger,
+and was hardly the man to ingratiate himself with strangers at the
+first interview. And then, too, they were all somewhat afraid of
+him. He had come down thither on some business which was to them
+altogether mysterious, and, as far as they knew, he, and he alone,
+was to be intrusted with the mystery. He of course said nothing to
+them on the subject, but he looked in their eyes as though he were
+conscious of being replete with secret importance; and on this very
+account they were afraid of him. And then poor Lady Fitzgerald,
+though she bore up against the weight of her misery better than did
+her husband, was herself very wretched. She could not bring herself
+to believe that all this would end in nothing; that Mr. Prendergast
+would put everything right, and that after his departure they would
+go on as happily as ever. This was the doctrine of the younger part
+of the family, who would not think that anything was radically
+wrong. But Lady Fitzgerald had always at her heart the memory of her
+early marriage troubles, and she feared greatly, though she feared
+she knew not what.
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald and Aunt Letty did endeavour to keep up some
+conversation with Mr. Prendergast; and the Irish famine was, of
+course, the subject. But this did not go on pleasantly. Mr.
+Prendergast was desirous of information; but the statements which
+were made to him one moment by young Fitzgerald were contradicted in
+the next by his aunt. He would declare that the better educated of
+the Roman Catholics were prepared to do their duty by their country,
+whereas Aunt Letty would consider herself bound both by party
+feeling and religious duty, to prove that the Roman Catholics were
+bad in everything.
+
+"Oh, Herbert, to hear you say so!" she exclaimed at one time, "it
+makes me tremble in my shoes. It is dreadful to think that those
+people should have got such a hold over you."
+
+"I really think that the Roman Catholic priests are liberal in their
+ideas and moral in their conduct." This was the speech which had
+made Aunt Letty tremble in her shoes, and it may, therefore, be
+conceived that Mr. Prendergast did not find himself able to form any
+firm opinion from the statements then made to him. Instead of doing
+so, he set them both down as "Wild Irish," whom it would be insane
+to trust, and of whom it was absurd to make inquiries. It may,
+however, be possibly the case that Mr. Prendergast himself had his
+own prejudices as well as Aunt Letty and Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+On the following morning they were still more mute at breakfast. The
+time was coming in which Mr. Prendergast was to go to work and even
+he, gifted though he was with iron nerves, began to feel somewhat
+unpleasantly the nature of the task which he had undertaken. Lady
+Fitzgerald did not appear at all. Indeed during the whole of
+breakfast-time and up to the moment at which Mr. Prendergast was
+summoned, she was sitting with her husband, holding his hand in
+hers, and looking tenderly but painfully into his face. She so sat
+with him for above an hour, but he spoke to her no word of this
+revelation he was about to make. Herbert and the girls, and even
+Aunt Letty, sat solemn and silent, as though it was known by them
+all that something dreadful was to be said and done. At last
+Herbert, who had left the room, returned to it. "My father will see
+you now, Mr. Prendergast, if you will step up to him," said he; and
+then he ran to his mother and told her that he should leave the
+house till dinner-time.
+
+"But if he sends for you, Herbert, should you not be in the way?"
+
+"It is more likely that he should send for you; and, were I to
+remain here, I should be going into his room when he did not want
+me." And then he mounted his horse and rode off.
+
+Mr. Prendergast, with serious air and slow steps, and solemn resolve
+to do what he had to do at any rate with justice, walked away from
+the dining-room to the baronet's study. The task of an old friend is
+not always a pleasant one, and Mr. Prendergast felt that it was not
+so at the present moment. "Be gentle with him," said Aunt Letty,
+catching hold of his arm as he went through the passage. He merely
+moved his head twice, in token of assent, and then passed on into
+the room.
+
+The reader will have learnt by this time, with tolerable accuracy,
+what was the nature of the revelation which Sir Thomas was called
+upon to make, and he will be tolerably certain as to the advice
+which Mr. Prendergast, as an honest man, would give. In that respect
+there was no difficulty. The laws of meum and tuum are sufficiently
+clear if a man will open his eyes to look at them. In this case they
+were altogether clear. These broad acres of Castle Richmond did
+belong to Sir Thomas--for his life. But after his death they could
+not belong to his son Herbert. It was a matter which admitted of no
+doubt. No question as to whether the Molletts would or would not
+hold their tongue could bear upon it in the least. Justice in this
+case must be done, even though the heavens should fall. It was sad
+and piteous. Stern and hard as was the man who pronounced this doom,
+nevertheless the salt tear collected in his eyes and blinded him as
+he looked upon the anguish which his judgment had occasioned.
+
+Yes, Herbert must be told that he in the world was nobody; that he
+must earn his bread, and set about doing so right soon. Who could
+say that his father's life was worth a twelve-month's purchase? He
+must be told that he was nobody in the world, and instructed also to
+tell her whom he loved, an Earl's daughter, the same tidings; that
+he was nobody, that he would come to possess no property, and that
+in the law's eyes did not possess even a name. How would his young
+heart suffice for the endurance of so terrible a calamity? And those
+pretty girls, so softly brought up--so tenderly nurtured; it must be
+explained to them too that they must no longer be proud of their
+father's lineage and their mother's fame. And that other Fitzgerald
+must be summoned and told of all this; he on whom they had looked
+down, whom the young heir had robbed of his love, whom they had cast
+out from among them as unworthy. Notice must be sent to him that he
+was the heir to Castle Richmond, that he would reign as the future
+baronet in those gracious chambers. It was he who could now make a
+great county lady of the daughter of the countess.
+
+"It will be very soon, very soon," sobbed forth the poor victim. And
+indeed, to look at him one might say that it would be soon. There
+were moments when Mr. Prendergast hardly thought that he would live
+through that frightful day.
+
+But all of which we have yet spoken hardly operated upon the
+baronet's mind in creating that stupor of sorrow which now weighed
+him to the earth. It was none of these things that utterly broke him
+down and crushed him like a mangled reed. He had hardly mind left to
+remember his children. It was for the wife of his bosom that he
+sorrowed.
+
+The wife of his bosom! He persisted in so calling her through the
+whole interview, and, even in his weakness, obliged the strong man
+before him so to name her also. She was his wife before God, and
+should be his to the end. Ah! for how short a time was that! "Is she
+to leave me?" he once said, turning to his friend, with his hands
+clasped together, praying that some mercy might be shown to his
+wretchedness. "Is she to leave me?" he repeated, and then sank on
+his knees upon the floor.
+
+And how was Mr. Prendergast to answer this question? How was he to
+decide whether or no this man and woman might still live together as
+husband and wife? Oh, my reader, think of it if you can, and put
+yourself for a moment in the place of that old family friend! "Tell
+me, tell me; is she to leave me?" repeated the poor victim of all
+this misery.
+
+The sternness and justice of the man at last gave way. "No," said
+he, "that cannot, I should think, be necessary. They cannot demand
+that." "But you won't desert me?" said Sir Thomas, when this crumb
+of comfort was handed to him. And he remembered as he spoke, the
+bloodshot eyes of the miscreant who had dared to tell him that the
+wife of his bosom might be legally torn from him by the hands of
+another man. "You won't desert me?" said Sir Thomas; meaning by
+that, to bind his friend to an obligation that, at any rate, his
+wife should not be taken from him.
+
+"No," said Mr. Prendergast, "I will not desert you; certainly not
+that; certainly not that." Just then it was in his heart to promise
+almost anything that he was asked. Who could have refused such
+solace as this to a man so terribly overburthened?
+
+But there was another point of view at which Mr. Prendergast had
+looked from the commencement, but at which he could not get Sir
+Thomas to look at all. It certainly was necessary that the whole
+truth in this matter should be made known and declared openly. This
+fair inheritance must go to the right owner and not to the wrong.
+Though the affliction on Sir Thomas was very heavy, and would be
+equally so on all the family, he would not on that account, for the
+sake of saving him and them from that affliction, be justified in
+robbing another person of what was legally and actually that other
+person's property. It was a matter of astonishment to Mr.
+Prendergast that a conscientious man, as Sir Thomas certainly was,
+should have been able to look at the matter in any other light; that
+he should ever have brought himself to have dealings in the matter
+with Mr. Mollett. Justice in the case was clear, and the truth must
+be declared. But then they must take good care to find out
+absolutely what the truth was. Having heard all that Sir Thomas had
+to say, and having sifted all that he did hear, Mr. Prendergast
+thoroughly believed, in his heart of hearts, that that wretched
+miscreant was the actual and true husband of the poor lady whom he
+would have to see. But it was necessary that this should be proved.
+Castle Richmond for the family, and all earthly peace of mind for
+that unfortunate lady and gentleman, were not to be given up on the
+bare word of a scheming scoundrel, for whom no crime would be too
+black, and no cruelty too monstrous. The proofs must be looked into
+before anything was done, and they must be looked into before
+anything was said--to Lady Fitzgerald. We surely may give her that
+name as yet.
+
+But then, how were they to get at the proofs--at the proofs one way
+or the other? That Mollett himself had his marriage certificate Sir
+Thomas declared. That evidence had been brought home to his own mind
+of the identity of the man--though what was the nature of that
+evidence he could not now describe--as to that he was quite
+explicit. Indeed, as I have said above, he almost refused to
+consider the question as admitting of a doubt. That Mollett was the
+man to whom his wife had been married he thoroughly believed; and,
+to tell the truth, Mr. Prendergast was afraid to urge him to look
+for much comfort in this direction. The whole manner of the man,
+Mollett, had been such as to show that he himself was sure of his
+ground. Mr. Prendergast could hardly doubt that he was the man,
+although he felt himself bound to remark that nothing should be said
+to Lady Fitzgerald till inquiry had been made. Mr. Mollett himself
+would be at Castle Richmond on the next day but one, in accordance
+with the appointment made by himself; and, if necessary, he could be
+kept in custody till he had been identified as being the man, or as
+not being the man, who had married Miss Wainwright.
+
+"There is nobody living with you now who knew Lady Fitzgerald at
+----?" asked Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"Yes," said Sir Thomas, "there is one maid servant." And then he
+explained how Mrs. Jones had lived with his wife before her first
+marriage, during those few months in which she had been called Mrs.
+Talbot, and from that day even up to the present hour.
+
+"Then she must have known this man," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+But Sir Thomas was not in a frame of mind at all suited to the
+sifting of evidence. He did not care to say anything about Mrs.
+Jones; he got no crumb of comfort out of that view of the matter.
+Things had come out, unwittingly for the most part, in his
+conversations with Mollett, which made him quite certain as to the
+truth of the main part of the story. All those Dorsetshire
+localities were well known to the man, the bearings of the house,
+the circumstances of Mr. Wainwright's parsonage, the whole history
+of those months; so that on this subject Sir Thomas had no doubt;
+and we may as well know at once that there was no room for doubt.
+Our friend of the Kanturk Hotel, South Main Street, Cork, was the
+man who, thirty years before, had married the child-daughter of the
+Dorsetshire parson.
+
+Mr. Prendergast, however, stood awhile before the fire balancing the
+evidence. "The woman must have known him," he said to himself, "and
+surely she could tell us whether he be like the man. And Lady
+Fitzgerald herself would know; but then, who would have the hardness
+of heart to ask Lady Fitzgerald to confront that man?"
+
+He remained with Sir Thomas that day for hours. The long winter
+evening had begun to make itself felt by its increasing gloom before
+he left him. Wine and biscuits were sent in to them, but neither of
+them even noticed the man who brought them. Twice in the day,
+however, Mr. Prendergast gave the baronet a glass of sherry, which
+the latter swallowed unconsciously; and then, at about four, the
+lawyer prepared to take his leave. "I will see you early to-morrow,"
+said he, "immediately after breakfast."
+
+"You are going then?" said Sir Thomas, who greatly dreaded being
+left alone.
+
+"Not away, you know," said Mr. Prendergast. "I am not going to leave
+the house."
+
+"No," said Sir Thomas; "no, of course not, but--" and then he
+paused.
+
+"Eh!" said Mr. Prendergast, "you were saying something."
+
+"They will be coming in to me now," said Sir Thomas, wailing like a
+child; "now, when you are gone; and what am I to say to them?"
+
+"I would say nothing at present; nothing to-day."
+
+"And my wife?" he asked, again. Through this interview he studiously
+called her his wife. "Is--is she to know it?"
+
+"When we are assured that this man's story is true, Sir Thomas, she
+must know it. That will probably be very soon,--in a day or two.
+Till then I think you had better tell her nothing."
+
+"And what shall I say to her?"
+
+"Say nothing. I think it probable that she will not ask any
+questions. If she does, tell her that the business between you and
+me is not yet over. I will tell your son that at present he had
+better not speak to you on the subject of my visit here." And then
+he again took the hand of the unfortunate gentleman, and having
+pressed it with more tenderness than seemed to belong to him, he
+left the room.
+
+He left the room, and hurried into the hall and out of the house;
+but as he did so he could see that he was watched by Lady
+Fitzgerald. She was on the alert to go to her husband as soon as she
+should know that he was alone. Of what then took place between those
+two we need say nothing, but will wander forth for a while with Mr.
+Prendergast into the wide-spreading park.
+
+Mr. Prendergast had been used to hard work all his life, but he had
+never undergone a day of severer toil than that through which he had
+just passed. Nor was it yet over. He had laid it down in a broad way
+as his opinion that the whole truth in this matter should be
+declared to the world, let the consequences be what they might; and
+to this opinion Sir Thomas had acceded without a word of
+expostulation. But in this was by no means included all that portion
+of the burden which now fell upon Mr. Prendergast's shoulders. It
+would be for him to look into the evidence, and then it would be for
+him also--heavy and worst task of all--to break the matter to Lady
+Fitzgerald.
+
+As he sauntered out into the park, to wander about for half an hour
+in the dusk of the evening, his head was throbbing with pain. The
+family friend in this instance had certainly been severely taxed in
+the exercise of his friendship. And what was he to do next? How was
+he to conduct himself that evening in the family circle, knowing, as
+he so well did, that his coming there was to bring destruction upon
+them all? "Be tender to him," Aunt Letty had said, little knowing
+how great a call there would be on his tenderness of heart, and how
+little scope for any tenderness of purpose.
+
+And was it absolutely necessary that that blow should fall in all
+its severity? He asked himself this question over and over again,
+and always had to acknowledge that it was necessary. There could be
+no possible mitigation. The son must be told that he was no son--no
+son in the eye of the law; the wife must be told that she was no
+wife, and the distant relative must be made acquainted with his
+golden prospects. The position of Herbert and Clara, and of their
+promised marriage, had been explained to him,--and all that too
+must be shivered into fragments. How was it possible that the
+penniless daughter of an earl should give herself in marriage to a
+youth, who was not only penniless also, but illegitimate and without
+a profession? Look at it in which way he would, it was all misery
+and ruin, and it had fallen upon him to pronounce the doom!
+
+He could not himself believe that there was any doubt as to the
+general truth of Mollett's statement. He would of course inquire. He
+would hear what the man had to say and see what he had to adduce. He
+would also examine that old servant, and, if necessary--and if
+possible also--he would induce Lady Fitzgerald to see the man. But
+he did feel convinced that on this point there was no doubt. And
+then he lifted up his hands in astonishment at the folly which had
+been committed by a marriage under such circumstances--as wise men
+will do in the decline of years, when young people in the heyday of
+youth have not been wise. "If they had waited for a term of years,"
+he said, "and if he then had not presented himself!" A term of
+years, such as Jacob served for Rachel, seems so light an affair to
+old bachelors looking back at the loves of their young friends.
+
+And so he walked about in the dusk by no means a happy man, nor in
+any way satisfied with the work which was still before him. How was
+he to face Lady Fitzgerald, or tell her of her fate? In what words
+must he describe to Herbert Fitzgerald the position which in future
+he must fill? The past had been dreadful to him, and the future
+would be no less so, in spite of his character as a hard, stern man.
+
+When he returned to the house he met young Fitzgerald in the hall.
+"Have you been to your father?" he asked immediately. Herbert, in a
+low voice, and with a saddened face, said that he had just come from
+his father's room, but Mr. Prendergast at once knew that nothing of
+the truth had been told to him. "You found him very weak," said Mr.
+Prendergast. "Oh, very weak," said Herbert. "More than weak, utterly
+prostrate. He was lying on the sofa almost unable to speak. My
+mother was with him, and is still there."
+
+"And she?" He was painfully anxious to know whether Sir Thomas had
+been weak enough--or strong enough--to tell his wife any of the
+story which that morning had been told to him.
+
+"She is doing what she can to comfort him," said Herbert; "but it is
+very hard for her to be left so utterly in the dark."
+
+Mr. Prendergast was passing on to his room, but at the foot of the
+stairs Herbert stopped him again, going up the stairs with him, and
+almost whispering into his ear--
+
+"I trust, Mr. Prendergast," said he, "that things are not to go on
+in this way."
+
+"No, no," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"Because it is unbearable--unbearable for my mother and for me, and
+for us all. My mother thinks that some terrible thing has happened
+to the property; but if so, why should I not be told?"
+
+"Of anything that really has happened, or does happen, you will be
+told."
+
+"I don't know whether you are aware of it, Mr. Prendergast, but I am
+engaged to be married. And I have been given to understand--that
+is, I thought that this might take place very soon. My mother seems
+to think that your coming here may--may defer it. If so, I think I
+have a right to expect that something shall be told to me."
+
+"Certainly you have a right, my dear young friend. But, Mr.
+Fitzgerald, for your own sake, for all our sakes, wait patiently for
+a few hours."
+
+"I have waited patiently."
+
+"Yes, I know it. You have behaved admirably. But I cannot speak to
+you now. This time the day after to-morrow, I will tell you
+everything that I know. But do not speak of this to your mother. I
+make this promise only to you." And then he passed on into his
+bedroom.
+
+With this Herbert was obliged to be content. That evening he again
+saw his father and mother, but he told them nothing of what had
+passed between him and Mr. Prendergast. Lady Fitzgerald remained in
+the study with Sir Thomas the whole evening, nay, almost the whole
+night, and the slow hours as they passed there were very dreadful.
+No one came to table but Aunt Letty, Mr. Prendergast, and Herbert,
+and between them hardly a word was spoken. The poor girls had found
+themselves utterly unable to appear. They were dissolved in tears,
+and crouching over the fire in their own room. And the moment that
+Aunt Letty left the table Mr. Prendergast arose also. He was
+suffering, he said, cruelly from headache, and would ask permission
+to go to his chamber. It would have been impossible for him to have
+sat there pretending to sip his wine with Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+After this Herbert again went to his father, and then, in the gloom
+of the evening, he found Mr. Somers in the office, a little
+magistrate's room, that was used both by him and by Sir Thomas. But
+nothing passed between them. Herbert had nothing to tell. And then
+at about nine he also went up to his bedroom. A more melancholy day
+than that had never shed its gloom upon Castle Richmond.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XX
+
+TWO WITNESSES
+
+
+Mr. Prendergast had given himself two days to do all that was to be
+done, before he told Herbert Fitzgerald the whole of the family
+history. He had promised that he would then let him know all that
+there was to be known; and he had done so advisedly, considering
+that it would be manifestly unjust to leave him in the dark an hour
+longer than was absolutely necessary. To expect that Sir Thomas
+himself should, with his own breath and his own words, make the
+revelation either to his son or to his wife, was to expect a
+manifest impossibility. He would, altogether, have sank under such
+an effort, as he had already sank under the effort of telling it to
+Mr. Prendergast; nor could it be left to the judgment of Sir Thomas
+to say when the story should be told. He had now absolutely
+abandoned all judgment in the matter. He had placed himself in the
+hands of a friend, and he now expected that that friend should do
+all that there was to be done. Mr. Prendergast had therefore felt
+himself justified in making this promise.
+
+But how was he to set about the necessary intervening work, and how
+pass the intervening hours? It had already been decided that Mr.
+Abraham Mollett, when he called, should be shown, as usual, into the
+study, but that he should there find himself confronted, not with
+Sir Thomas, but with Mr. Prendergast. But there was some doubt
+whether or no Mr. Mollett would come. It might be that he had means
+of ascertaining what strangers arrived at Castle Richmond; and it
+might be that he would, under the present circumstances, think it
+expedient to stay away. This visit, however, was not to take place
+till the second day after that on which Mr. Prendergast had heard
+the story; and, in the meantime, he had that examination of Mrs.
+Jones to arrange and conduct.
+
+The breakfast was again very sad. The girls suggested to their
+brother that he and Mr. Prendergast should sit together by
+themselves in a small breakfast parlour, but to this he would not
+assent. Nothing could be more difficult or embarrassing than a
+conversation between himself and that gentleman, and he moreover was
+unwilling to let it be thought in the household that affairs were
+going utterly wrong in the family. On this matter he need hardly
+have disturbed himself, for the household was fully convinced that
+things were going very wrong. Maid-servants and men-servants can
+read the meaning of heavy brows and sad faces, of long meetings and
+whispered consultations, as well as their betters. The two girls,
+therefore, and Aunt Letty, appeared at the breakfast-table, but it
+was as though so many ghosts had assembled round the urn.
+
+Immediately after breakfast, Mr. Prendergast applied to Aunt Letty.
+"Miss Fitzgerald," said he, "I think you have an old servant of the
+name of Jones living here."
+
+"Yes, sure," said Aunt Letty. "She was living with my sister-in-law
+before her marriage."
+
+"Exactly,--and ever since too, I believe," said Mr. Prendergast,
+with a lawyer's instinctive desire to divert suspicion from the true
+point.
+
+"Oh yes, always; Mrs. Jones is quite one of ourselves."
+
+"Then would you do me the favour to beg Mrs. Jones to oblige me with
+her company for half an hour or so? There is an excellent fire in my
+room, and perhaps Mrs. Jones would not object to step there."
+
+Aunt Letty promised that Mrs. Jones should be sent, merely
+suggesting the breakfast-parlour, instead of the bed-room; and to
+the breakfast-parlour Mr. Prendergast at once betook himself, "What
+can she know about the London property, or about the Irish
+property?" thought Aunt Letty, to herself; and then it occurred to
+her that, perhaps, all these troubles arose from some source
+altogether distinct from the property.
+
+In about a quarter of an hour, a knock came to the breakfast-parlour
+door, and Mrs. Jones, having been duly summoned, entered the room
+with a very clean cap and apron, and with a very low curtsey. "Good
+morning, Mrs. Jones," said Mr. Prendergast; "pray take a seat;" and
+he pointed to an armchair that was comfortably placed near the fire,
+on the further side of the hearth-rug. Mrs. Jones sat herself down,
+crossed her hands on her lap, and looked the very personification of
+meek obedience.
+
+And yet there was something about her which seemed to justify the
+soubriquet of duchess, which the girls had given to her. She had a
+certain grandeur about her cap, and a majestical set about the skirt
+of her dress, and a rigour in the lines of her mouth, which
+indicated a habit of command, and a confidence in her own dignity,
+which might be supposed to be the very clearest attribute of
+duchessdom.
+
+"You have been in this family a long time. I am told, Mrs. Jones,"
+said Mr. Prendergast, using his pleasantest voice.
+
+"A very long time indeed," said Mrs. Jones.
+
+"And in a very confidential situation, too. I am told by Sir Thomas
+that pretty nearly the whole management of the house is left in your
+hands?"
+
+"Sir Thomas is very kind, sir; Sir Thomas always was very
+kind,--poor gentleman!"
+
+"Poor gentleman, indeed! you may well say that, Mrs. Jones. This
+family is in great affliction; you are no doubt aware of that." And
+Mr. Prendergast as he spoke got up, went to the door, and saw that
+it was firmly closed.
+
+Mrs. Jones acknowledged that she was aware of it. "It was
+impossible," she said, "for servants to shut their eyes to things,
+if they tried ever so."
+
+"Of course, of course," said Mr. Prendergast; "and particularly for
+a person so attached to them all as you are."
+
+"Well, Mr. Pendrergrass, I am attached to them, certainly. I have
+seed 'em all born, sir--that is, the young ladies and Mr. Herbert.
+And as for her ladyship, I didn't see her born, in course, for we're
+both of an age. But it comes much to the same thing, like."
+
+"Exactly, exactly; you are quite one of themselves, as Sir Thomas's
+sister said to me just now. 'Mrs. Jones is quite one of ourselves.'
+Those were her very words."
+
+"I'm sure I'm much obliged to Miss Letty."
+
+"Well, as I was saying, a great sorrow has come upon them all, Mrs.
+Jones. Now, will you tell me this--do you know what it is? Can you
+guess at all? Do the servants know, down-stairs?"
+
+"I'd rather not be guessing on any such matters, Mr. Pendrergrass.
+And as for them, if they were impudent enough for the like, they'd
+never dare to tell me. Them Irish servants is very impudent betimes,
+only they're good at the heart too, and there isn't one'd hurt a dog
+belonging to the family."
+
+"I am sure they would not," said Mr. Prendergast. "But you yourself,
+you don't know what this trouble is?"
+
+"Not a know," said Mrs. Jones, looking down and smoothing her apron.
+
+"Well, now. Of course you understand, Mrs. Jones--and I must explain
+this to you to account for my questions. Of course you understand
+that I am here as Sir Thomas's friend, to set certain matters right
+for him if I can."
+
+"I supposed as much as that, if you please, sir."
+
+"And any questions that I may ask you, I ask altogether on his
+behalf--on his behalf and on that of his wife, Lady Fitzgerald. I
+tell you, that you may have no scruples as to answering me."
+
+"Oh, sir, I have no scruples as to that. But of course, sir, in
+anything I say I must be guided by--by--"
+
+"By your own judgment, you were going to say."
+
+"Yes, sir; begging pardon for mentioning such a thing to the likes
+of you, sir."
+
+"Quite right; quite right. Everybody should use their own judgment
+in everything they do or say, more or less. But now, Mrs. Jones, I
+want to know this: you remember her ladyship's first marriage, I
+dare say."
+
+"Yes, sir, I remember it," said Mrs. Jones, shaking her head.
+
+"It was a sad affair, wasn't it? I remember it well, though I was
+very young then. So were you too, Mrs. Jones."
+
+"Young enough, surely, sir; and foolish enough too. We were the most
+of us that, then, sir."
+
+"True, true; so we were. But you remember the man, don't you--her
+ladyship's husband? Mr. Talbot, he called himself." And Mr.
+Prendergast took some trouble to look as though he did not at all
+wish to frighten her.
+
+"Yes, I do remember him." This she said after a considerable pause.
+"But it is a very long time ago, you know, Mr. Pendrergrass."
+
+"A very long time. But I am sure you do remember. You lived in the
+house, you know, for some months."
+
+"Yes, I did. He was my master for three months, or thereabouts; and
+to tell the truth, I never got my wages for those three months yet.
+But that's neither here nor there."
+
+"Do you believe now, Mrs. Jones, that that Mr. Talbot is still
+alive?" He asked the question in a very soft voice, and endeavoured
+not to startle her by his look as he did so. But it was necessary to
+his purpose that he should keep his eye upon her. Half the answer to
+his question was to be conveyed by the effect on the muscles of her
+face which that question would produce. She might perhaps command
+her voice to tell a falsehood, but be unable to command her face to
+support it.
+
+"Believe what, sir?" said she, and the lawyer could immediately
+perceive that she did believe and probably knew that that man who
+had called himself Talbot was still alive.
+
+"Do you believe, Mrs. Jones, that he is alive--her ladyship's
+former husband, you know?"
+
+The question was so terrible in its nature, that Mrs. Jones
+absolutely shook under it. Did she think that that man was still
+alive? Why, if she thought that what was she to think of her
+ladyship? It was in that manner that she would have answered the
+question, had she known how; but she did not know; she had therefore
+to look about her for some other words which might be equally
+evasive. Those which she selected served her turn just as well.
+"Lord bless you, sir!" she said. It was not that the words were
+expressive, but the tone was decidedly so. It was as though she
+said, "How can that man be alive, who has been dead these twenty
+years and more?" But nevertheless, she was giving evidence all the
+time against the cause of her poor mistress.
+
+"You think, then, that he is dead?"
+
+"Dead, sir! Oh, laws! why shouldn't he be dead?" And then there was
+a pause between them for a couple of minutes.
+
+"Mrs. Jones," said Mr. Prendergast, when he had well considered the
+matter, "my belief is that your only object and wish is to do good
+to your master and mistress."
+
+"Surely, sir, surely; it would be my bounden duty to do them good,
+if I knew how."
+
+"I will tell you how. Speak out to me the whole truth openly and
+freely. I am here as the friend of Sir Thomas and of her ladyship.
+He has sent to me that I may advise him what to do in a great
+trouble that has befallen him, and I cannot give him good advice
+till I know the truth."
+
+"What good could it do him, poor gentleman, to know that that man is
+alive?"
+
+"It will do him good to know the truth; to know whether he be alive
+or no. Until he knows that he cannot act properly."
+
+"Poor gentleman! poor gentleman!" said Mrs. Jones, putting her
+handkerchief up to her eyes.
+
+"If you have any information in this matter--and I think you have,
+Mrs. Jones--or even any suspicion, it is your duty to tell me."
+
+"Well, sir, I'm sure I don't say against that. You are Sir Thomas's
+friend to be sure, and no doubt you know best. And I'm a poor
+ignorant woman. But to speak candidly, sir, I don't feel myself free
+to talk on this matter. I haven't never made nor marred since I've
+been in this family, not in such matters as them. What I've seed,
+I've kep' to myself, and when I've had my suspecs, as a woman can't
+but have 'em, I've kep' them to myself also. And saving your
+presence, sir, and meaning no offence to a gentleman like you," and
+here she got up from her chair and made another curtsey, "I think
+I'd liefer hold my tongue than say anything more on this matter."
+And then she remained standing as though she expected permission to
+retire.
+
+But there was still another pause, and Mr. Pendergast sat looking at
+the fire. "Don't you know, ma'am," at last he said, with almost an
+angry voice, "that the man was here, in this house, last week?" And
+now he turned round at her and looked her full in the face. He did
+not, however, know Mrs. Jones. It might be difficult to coax her
+into free communication, but it was altogether out of his power to
+frighten her into it.
+
+"What I knows, sir, I knows," said she, "and what I don't know, I
+don't know. And if you please, sir, Lady Fitzgerald--she's my
+missus; and if I'm to be said anything more to about this here
+matter, why, I'd choose that her ladyship should be by." And then
+she made a little motion as though to walk towards the door, but Mr.
+Prendergast managed to stop her.
+
+"But we want to spare Lady Fitzgerald, if we can--at any rate, for a
+while," said he. "You would not wish to bring more sorrow upon her,
+would you?"
+
+"God forbid, Mr. Pendrergrass; and if I could take the sorrow from
+her heart, I would willingly, and bear it myself to the grave; for
+her ladyship has been a good lady to me. But no good never did come,
+and never will, of servants talking of their missusses. And so if
+you please, sir, I'll make bold to"--and again she made an attempt
+to reach the door.
+
+But Mr. Prendergast was not yet persuaded that he could not get from
+the good old woman the information that he wanted, and he was
+persuaded that she had the information if only she could be
+prevailed upon to impart it. So he again stopped her, though on this
+occasion she made some slight attempt to pass him by as she did so.
+"I don't think," said she, "that there will be much use in my
+staying here longer."
+
+"Wait half a minute, Mrs. Jones, just half a minute. If I could only
+make you understand how we are all circumstanced here. And I tell
+you what; though you will trust me with nothing, I will trust you
+with everything."
+
+"I don't want no trust, sir; not about all this."
+
+"But listen to me. Sir Thomas has reason to believe--nay, he feels
+quite sure--that this man is alive."
+
+"Poor gentleman! poor gentleman!"
+
+"And has been here in this house two or three times within the last
+month. Sir Thomas is full sure of this. Now, can you tell me whether
+the man who did come was this Talbot, or was not? If you can answer
+that positively, either one way or the other, you will do a service
+to the whole family,--which shall not go unrewarded."
+
+"I don't want no reward sir. Ask me to tattle of them for rewards,
+after thirty years!" And she put her apron up to her eyes.
+
+"Well, then, for the good of the family. Can you say positively that
+the man who came here to your master was Talbot, or that he was
+not?"
+
+"Indeed then, sir, I can't say anything positively, nor for that
+matter, not impositively either." And then she shut herself up
+doggedly, and sat with compressed lips, determined to resist all the
+lawyer's arts.
+
+Mr. Prendergast did not immediately give up the game, but he failed
+in learning from her any more than what she had already told him. He
+felt confident that she did know the secret of this man's existence
+and presence in the south of Ireland, but he was forced to satisfy
+himself with that conviction. So he let her go, giving her his hand
+as she went in token of respect, and receiving her demure curtsey
+with his kindest smile. "It may be," thought he to himself, "that I
+have not done with her yet."
+
+And then he passed another tedious day,--a day that was terribly
+tedious to them all. He paid a visit to Sir Thomas; but as that
+arrangement about Mollett's visit had been made between them, it was
+not necessary that anything should be done or said about the
+business on hand. It was understood that further action was to be
+stayed till that visit was over, and therefore for the present he
+had nothing to say to Sir Thomas. He did not see Lady Fitzgerald
+throughout the whole day, and it appeared to him, not unnaturally,
+that she purposely kept out of his way, anticipating evil from his
+coming. He took a walk with Herbert and Mr. Somers, and was driven
+as far as the soup-kitchen and mill at Berry Hill, inquiring into
+the state of the poor, or rather pretending to inquire. It was a
+pretence with them all, for at the present moment their minds were
+intent on other things. And then there was that terrible dinner,
+that mockery of a meal, at which the three ladies were constrained
+to appear, but at which they found it impossible to eat or to speak.
+Mr. Somers had been asked to join the party, so that the scene after
+dinner might be less painful; but even he felt that he could not
+talk as was his ordinary wont. Horrible suspicions of the truth had
+gradually come upon him; and with a suspicion of such a truth--of
+such a tragedy in the very household--how could he, or how could any
+one hold a conversation? and then at about half-past nine, Mr.
+Prendergast was again in his bed-room.
+
+On the next morning he was early with Sir Thomas, persuading him to
+relinquish altogether the use of his study for that day. On that
+evening they were to have another interview there, in which Mr.
+Prendergast was to tell his friend the result of what had been done.
+And then he had to arrange certain manoeuvring with the servants in
+which he was forced to obtain the assistance of Herbert. Mollett was
+to be introduced into the study immediately on his arrival, and this
+was to be done in such a manner that Mrs. Jones might assuredly be
+ignorant of his arrival. On this duty our old friend Richard was
+employed, and it was contrived that Mrs. Jones should be kept
+upstairs with her mistress. All this was difficult enough, but he
+could not explain even to Herbert the reason why such scheming was
+necessary. Herbert, however, obeyed in silence, knowing that
+something dreadful was about to fall on them.
+
+Immediately after breakfast Mr. Prendergast betook himself to the
+study, and there remained with his London newspaper in his hand. A
+dozen times he began a leading article, in which the law was laid
+down with great perspicuity and certainty as to the present state of
+Ireland; but had the writer been treating of the Sandwich Islands he
+could not have attracted less of his attention. He found it
+impossible to read. On that evening he would have to reveal to
+Herbert Fitzgerald what was to be his fate!
+
+Matthew Mollett at his last interview with Sir Thomas had promised
+to call on this day, and had been counting the days till that one
+should arrive on which he might keep his promise. He was terribly in
+want of cash, and as we all know Aby had entirely failed in raising
+the wind--any immediate fund of wind--on the occasion of his visit
+to the baronet; and now, when this morning came, old Mollett was
+early on the road. Aby had talked of going with him, but Aby had
+failed so signally on the occasion of the visit which he did make to
+Castle Richmond, that he had been without the moral strength to
+persist in his purpose.
+
+"Then I shall write to the baronet and go alone to London," said
+Mollett, pere.
+
+"Bother!" replied Mollett, fils. "You hain't got the cash,
+governor."
+
+"I've got what'll take me there, my boy, whether you know it or not.
+And Sir Thomas'll be ready enough to send me a remittance when I'm
+once out of this country."
+
+And so Aby had given way,--partly perhaps in terror of Mr. Somers'
+countenance; and Matthew Mollett started again in a covered car on
+that cold journey over the Boggeragh mountains. It was still
+mid-winter, being now about the end of February, and the country was
+colder, and wetter, and more wretched, and the people in that
+desolate district more ragged and more starved than when he had last
+crossed it. But what were their rags and starvation to him? He was
+worse off than they were. They were merely dying, as all men must
+do. But he was inhabiting a hell on earth, which no man need do.
+They came out to him in shoals begging; but they came in vain,
+getting nothing from him but a curse through his chattering teeth.
+What right had they to torment with their misery one so much more
+wretched than themselves?
+
+At a little before twelve the covered car was at the front door of
+Castle Richmond house, and there was Richard under the porch. On
+former occasions Mr. Mollett had experienced some little delay in
+making his way into the baronet's presence. The servants had looked
+cold upon him, and he had felt as though there might be hot
+ploughshares under his feet at any step which he took. But now
+everything seemed to be made easy. Richard took him in tow without a
+moment's delay, told him confidentially that Sir Thomas was waiting
+for him, bade the covered car to be driven round into the yard with
+a voice that was uncommonly civil, seeing that it was addressed to a
+Cork carman, and then ushered Mr. Mollett through the hall and down
+the passage without one moment's delay. Wretched as he had been
+during his journey--wretched as an infernal spirit--his hopes were
+now again elated, and he dreamed of a golden paradise. There was
+something pleasant in feeling his mastery over that poor old
+shattered baronet.
+
+"The gentleman to wait upon Sir Thomas," said Richard, opening the
+study door; and then Mr. Mollett senior found himself in the
+presence of Mr. Prendergast.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was sitting in a high-backed easy-chair, facing the
+fire, when the announcement was made, and therefore Mollett still
+fancied that he was in the presence of Sir Thomas until he was well
+into the room and the door was closed upon him; otherwise he might
+probably have turned on his heels and bolted. He had had three or
+four interviews with Mr. Prendergast, having received different sums
+of money from that gentleman's hands, and had felt on all such
+occasions that he was being looked through and through. Mr.
+Prendergast had asked but few questions, never going into the matter
+of his, Mollett's, pecuniary connexion with Sir Thomas; but there
+had always been that in the lawyer's eye which had frightened the
+miscreant, which had quelled his bluster as soon as it was assumed,
+and had told him that he was known for a blackguard and a scoundrel.
+And now when this man, with the terrible grey eye, got up from Sir
+Thomas's chair, and wheeling round confronted him, looking him full
+in the face, and frowning on him as an honest man does frown on an
+unconvicted rascal--when, I say, this happened to Mr. Mollett
+senior, he thoroughly at that moment wished himself back in London.
+He turned his eye round to the door, but that was closed behind him.
+He looked around to see whether Sir Thomas was there, but no one was
+in the room with him but Mr. Prendergast. Then he stood still, and
+as that gentleman did not address him, he was obliged to speak; the
+silence was too awful for him--"Oh, Mr. Prendergast!" said he. "Is
+that you?"
+
+"Yes, Mr. Mollett, it is I."
+
+"Oh, ah--I suppose you are here about business of your own. I was
+wishing to see Sir Thomas about a little business of my own; maybe
+he's not in the way."
+
+"No, he is not; not exactly. But perhaps, Mr. Mollett, I can do as
+well. You have known me before, you know, and you may say to me
+openly anything you have to say to Sir Thomas."
+
+"Well; I don't know about that, sir; my business is with the
+baronet--particular." Mr. Mollett, as he spoke, strained every nerve
+to do so without appearance of dismay; but his efforts were
+altogether ineffectual. He could not bring himself to look Mr.
+Prendergast in the face for a moment, or avoid feeling like a dog
+that dreads being kicked. All manner of fears came upon him, and he
+would at the moment have given up all his hopes of money from the
+Castle Richmond people to have been free from Mr. Prendergast and
+his influence. And yet Mollett was not a coward in the ordinary
+sense of the word. Indeed he had been very daring in the whole
+management of this affair. But then a course of crime makes such
+violent demands on a man's courage. Let any one think of the
+difference of attacking a thief, and being attacked as a thief! We
+are apt to call bad men cowards without much consideration. Mr.
+Mollett was not without pluck, but his pluck was now quelled. The
+circumstances were too strong against him.
+
+"Listen to me, Mr. Mollett--; and, look here, sir; never mind
+turning to the door; you can't go now till you and I have had some
+conversation. You may make up your mind to this: you will never see
+Sir Thomas Fitzgerald again--unless indeed he should be in the
+witness-box when you are standing in the dock."
+
+"Mr. Prendergast; sir!"
+
+"Well. Have you any reason to give why you should not be put in the
+dock? How much money have you got from Sir Thomas during the last
+two years by means of those threats which you have been using? You
+were well aware when you set about this business that you were
+committing felony; and have probably felt tolerably sure at times
+that you would some day be brought up short. That day has come."
+
+Mr. Prendergast had made up his mind that nothing could be gained by
+soft usage with Mr. Mollett. Indeed nothing could be gained in any
+way, by any usage, unless it could be shown that Mollett and Talbot
+were not the same person. He could afford therefore to tell the
+scoundrel that he was a scoundrel, and to declare against him--war
+to the knife. The more that Mollett trembled, the more abject he
+became, the easier would be the task Mr. Prendergast now had in
+hand. "Well, sir," he continued, "are you going to tell me what
+business has brought you here to-day?"
+
+But Mr. Mollett, though he did shake in his shoes, did not look at
+the matter exactly in the same light. He could not believe that Sir
+Thomas would himself throw up the game on any consideration, or that
+Mr. Prendergast as his friend would throw it up on his behalf. He,
+Mollett, had a strong feeling that he could have continued to deal
+easily with Sir Thomas, and that it might be very hard to deal at
+all with Mr. Prendergast; but nevertheless the game was still open.
+Mr. Prendergast would probably distrust the fact of his being the
+lady's husband, and it would be for him therefore to use the
+indubitable proofs of the facts that were in his possession.
+
+"Sir Thomas knows very well what I've come about," he began, slowly;
+"and if he's told you, why you know too; and in that case--"
+
+But what might or might not happen in that case Mr. Mollett had not
+now an opportunity of explaining, for the door opened and Mrs. Jones
+entered the room.
+
+"When that man comes this morning," Mr. Prendergast had said to
+Herbert, "I must get you to induce Mrs. Jones to come to us in the
+study as soon as may be." He had not at all explained to Herbert why
+this was necessary, nor had he been at any pains to prevent the
+young heir from thinking and feeling that some terrible mystery hung
+over the house. There was a terrible mystery--which indeed would be
+more terrible still when it ceased to be mysterious. He therefore
+quietly explained to Herbert what he desired to have done, and
+Herbert, awaiting the promised communication of that evening,
+quietly did as he was bid.
+
+"You must go down to him, Jones," he had said.
+
+"But I'd rather not, sir. I was with him yesterday for two mortal
+hours; and, oh, Mr. Herbert! it ain't for no good."
+
+But Herbert was inexorable; and Mrs. Jones, feeling herself overcome
+by the weight of the misfortune that was oppressing them all,
+obeyed, and descending to her master's study, knocked at the door.
+She knew that Mr. Prendergast was there, and she knew that Sir
+Thomas was not; but she did not know that any stranger was in the
+room with Mr. Prendergast. Mr. Mollett had not heard the knock, nor,
+indeed, had Mr. Prendergast; but Mrs. Jones having gone through this
+ceremony, opened the door and entered.
+
+"Sir Thomas knows; does he?" said Mr. Prendergast, when Mollett
+ceased to speak on the woman's entrance. "Oh, Mrs. Jones, good
+morning. Here is your old master, Mr. Talbot."
+
+Mollett of course turned round, and found himself confronted with
+the woman. They stared at each other for some moments, and then
+Mollett said, in a low dull voice, "Yes, she knows me; it was she
+that lived with her at Tallyho Lodge."
+
+"You remember him now, Mrs. Jones; don't you?" said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+For another moment or two Mrs. Jones stood silent; and then she
+acknowledged herself overcome, and felt that the world around her
+had become too much for her. "Yes," said she, slowly; "I remembers
+him," and then sinking into a chair near the door, she put her apron
+up to her eyes, and burst into tears.
+
+"No doubt about that; she remembers me well enough," said Mollett,
+thinking that this was so much gained on his side. "But there ain't
+a doubt about the matter at all, Mr. Prendergast. You look here, and
+you'll see it all as plain as black and white." And Mr. Mollett
+dragged a large pocket-book from his coat, and took out of it
+certain documents, which he held before Mr. Prendergast's eyes,
+still keeping them in his own hand. "Oh, I'm all right; I am," said
+Mollett.
+
+"Oh, you are, are you?" said the lawyer, just glancing at the paper,
+which he would not appear to heed. "I am glad you think so."
+
+"If there were any doubt about it, she'd know," said he, pointing
+away up towards the body of the house. Both Mr. Prendergast and Mrs.
+Jones understood well who was that she to whom he alluded.
+
+"You are satisfied, at any rate, Mrs. Jones," said the lawyer. But
+Mrs. Jones had hidden her face in her apron, and would not look up.
+She could not understand why this friend of the family should push
+the matter so dreadfully against them. If he would rise from his
+chair and destroy that wretch who stood before them, then indeed he
+might be called a friend!
+
+Mr. Prendergast had now betaken himself to the door, and was
+standing with his back to it, and with his hands in his
+trousers-pockets, close to the chair on which Mrs. Jones was
+sitting. He had resolved that he would get that woman's spoken
+evidence out of her; and he had gotten it. But now, what was he to
+do with her next?--with her or with the late Mr. Talbot of Tallyho
+Lodge? And having satisfied himself of that fact, which from the
+commencement he had never doubted, what could he best do to spare
+the poor lady who was so terribly implicated in this man's presence?
+
+"Mrs. Jones," said he, standing over her, and gently touching her
+shoulder, "I am sorry to have pained you in this way; but it was
+necessary that we should know, without a doubt, who this man
+is,--and who he was. Truth is always the best, you know. So good a
+woman as you cannot but understand that."
+
+"I suppose it is, sir,--I suppose it is," said Mrs. Jones, through
+her tears, now thoroughly humbled. The world was pretty nearly at an
+end, as far as she was concerned. Here, in this very house of Castle
+Richmond, in Sir Thomas's own room, was her ladyship's former
+husband, acknowledged as such! What further fall of the planet into
+broken fragments could terrify or drive her from her course more
+thoroughly than this? Truth! yes, truth in the abstract, might be
+very good. But such a truth as this! how could any one ever say that
+that was good? Such was the working of her mind; but she took no
+trouble to express her thoughts.
+
+"Yes," continued Mr. Prendergast, speaking still in a low voice,
+with a tone that was almost tender, "truth is always best.
+Look at this wretched man here! He would have killed the whole
+family--destroyed them one by one--had they consented to assist him
+in concealing the fact of his existence. The whole truth will now be
+known; and it is very dreadful; but it will not be so dreadful as
+the want of truth."
+
+"My poor lady! my poor lady!" almost screamed Mrs. Jones from under
+her apron, wagging her head, and becoming almost convulsive in her
+grief.
+
+"Yes, it is very sad. But you will live to acknowledge that even
+this is better than living in that man's power."
+
+"I don't know that," said Mollett. "I am not so bad as you'd make
+me. I don't want to distress the lady."
+
+"No, not if you are allowed to rob the gentleman till there's not a
+guinea left for you to suck at. I know pretty well the extent of the
+evil that's in you. If we were to kick you from here to Cork, you'd
+forgive all that, so that we still allowed you to go on with your
+trade. I wonder how much money you've had from him altogether?"
+
+"What does the money signify? What does the money signify?" said
+Mrs. Jones, still wagging her head beneath her apron. "Why didn't
+Sir Thomas go on paying it, and then my lady need know nothing about
+it?"
+
+It was clear that Mrs. Jones would not look at the matter in a
+proper light. As far as she could see, there was no reason why a
+fair bargain should not have been made between Mollett and Sir
+Thomas,--made and kept on both sides, with mutual convenience. That
+doing of justice at the cost of falling heavens was not intelligible
+to her limited philosophy. Nor did she bethink herself, that a leech
+will not give over sucking until it be gorged with blood. Mr.
+Prendergast knew that such leeches as Mr. Mollett never leave the
+skin as long as there is a drop of blood left within the veins.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was still standing against the door, where he had
+placed himself to prevent the unauthorized departure of either Mrs.
+Jones or Mr. Mollett; but now he was bethinking himself that he
+might as well bring this interview to an end. "Mr. Mollett," said
+he, "you are probably beginning to understand that you will not get
+much more money from the Castle Richmond family?"
+
+"I don't want to do any harm to any of them," said Mollett, humbly;
+"and if I don't make myself troublesome, I hope Sir Thomas will
+consider me."
+
+"It is out of your power, sir, to do any further harm to any of
+them. You don't pretend to think that after what has passed, you can
+have any personal authority over that unfortunate lady?"
+
+"My poor mistress! my poor mistress!" sobbed Mrs. Jones.
+
+"You cannot do more injury than you at present have done. No one is
+now afraid of you; no one here will ever give you another shilling.
+When and in what form you will be prosecuted for inducing Sir Thomas
+to give you money, I cannot yet tell. Now, you may go: and I
+strongly advise you never to show your face here again. If the
+people about here knew who you are, and what you are, they would not
+let you off the property with a whole bone in your skin. Now go,
+sir. Do you hear me?"
+
+"Upon my word, Mr. Prendergast, I have not intended any harm!"
+
+"Go, sir!"
+
+"And even now, Mr. Prendergast, it can all be made straight, and I
+will leave the country altogether, if you wish it--"
+
+"Go, sir!" shouted Mr. Prendergast. "If you do not move at once, I
+will ring the bell for the servants!"
+
+"Then, if misfortune comes upon them, it is your doing, and not
+mine," said Mollett.
+
+"Oh, Mr. Pendrergrass, if it can be hushed up--" said Mrs. Jones,
+rising from her chair and coming up to him with her hands clasped
+together. "Don't send him away in your anger; don't'ee now, sir.
+Think of her ladyship. Do, do, do;" and the woman took hold of his
+arm, and looked up into his face with her eyes swimming with tears.
+Then going to the door she closed it, and returning again, touched
+his arm, and again appealed to him. "Think of Mr. Herbert, sir, and
+the young ladies! What are they to be called, sir, if this man is to
+be my lady's husband? Oh, Mr. Pendrergrass, let him go away, out of
+the kingdom; do let him go away."
+
+"I'll be off to Australia by the next boat, if you'll only say the
+word," said Mollett. To give him his due, he was not at that moment
+thinking altogether of himself and of what he might get. The idea of
+the misery which he had brought on these people did, to a certain
+measure, come home to him. And it certainly did come home to him
+also, that his own position was very perilous.
+
+"Mrs. Jones," said the lawyer, seeming to pay no attention whatever
+to Mollett's words, "you know nothing of such men as that. If I were
+to take him at his word now, he would turn upon Sir Thomas again
+before three weeks were over."
+
+"By---, I would not! By all that is holy, I would not. Mr.
+Prendergast, do--."
+
+"Mr. Mollett, I will trouble you to walk out of this house. I have
+nothing further to say to you."
+
+"Oh, very well, sir." And then slowly Mollett took his departure,
+and finding his covered car at the door, got into it without saying
+another word to any of the Castle Richmond family.
+
+"Mrs. Jones," said Mr. Prendergast, as soon as Mollett was gone, "I
+believe I need not trouble you any further. Your conduct has done
+you great honour, and I respect you greatly as an honest woman and
+an affectionate friend."
+
+Mrs. Jones could only acknowledge this by loud sobs.
+
+"For the present, if you will take my advice, you will say nothing
+of this to your mistress."
+
+"No, sir, no; I shall say nothing. Oh dear! oh dear!"
+
+"The whole matter will be known soon, but in the mean time, we may
+as well remain silent. Good day to you." And then Mrs. Jones also
+left the room, and Mr. Prendergast was alone.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXI
+
+FAIR ARGUMENTS
+
+
+As Mollett left the house he saw two men walking down the road away
+from the sweep before the hall door, and as he passed them he
+recognized one as the young gentleman of the house. He also saw that
+a horse followed behind them, on the grass by the roadside, not led
+by the hand, but following with the reins laid loose upon his neck.
+They took no notice of him or his car, but allowed him to pass as
+though he had no concern whatever with the destinies of either of
+them. They were Herbert and Owen Fitzgerald.
+
+The reader will perhaps remember the way in which Owen left Desmond
+Court on the occasion of his last visit there. It cannot be said
+that what he had heard had in any way humbled him, nor indeed had it
+taught him to think that Clara Desmond looked at him altogether with
+indifference. Greatly as she had injured him, he could not bring
+himself to look upon her as the chief sinner. It was Lady Desmond
+who had done it all. It was she who had turned against him because
+of his poverty, who had sold her daughter to his rich cousin, and
+robbed him of the love which he had won for himself. Or perhaps not
+of the love--it might be that this was yet his; and if so, was it
+not possible that he might beat the countess at her own weapons?
+Thinking over this, he felt that it was necessary for him to do
+something, to take some step; and therefore he resolved to go boldly
+to his cousin, and tell him that he regarded Lady Clara Desmond as
+still his own.
+
+On this morning, therefore, he had ridden up to the Castle Richmond
+door. It was now many months since he had been there, and he was no
+longer entitled to enter the house on the acknowledged intimate
+footing of a cousin. He rode up, and asked the servant with grave
+ceremony whether Mr. Herbert Fitzgerald were at home. He would not
+go in, he said, but if Mr. Herbert were there he would wait for him
+at the porch. Herbert at the time was standing in the dining-room,
+all alone, gloomily leaning against the mantelpiece. There was
+nothing for him to do during the whole of that day but wait for the
+evening, when the promised revelation would be made to him. He knew
+that Mollett and Mrs. Jones were with Mr. Prendergast in the study,
+but what was the matter now being investigated between them--that he
+did not know. And till he knew that, closely as he was himself
+concerned, he could meddle with nothing. But it was already past
+noon and the evening would soon be there.
+
+In this mood he was interrupted by being told that his cousin Owen
+was at the door. "He won't come in at all, Mr. Herbert," Richard had
+said; for Richard, according to order, was still waiting about the
+porch; "but he says that you are to go to him there." And then
+Herbert, after considering the matter for a moment, joined his
+cousin at the front entrance.
+
+"I want to speak to you a few words," said Owen; "but as I hear that
+Sir Thomas is not well, I will not go into the house; perhaps you
+will walk with me as far as the lodge. Never mind the mare, she will
+not go astray." And so Herbert got his hat and accompanied him. For
+the first hundred yards neither of them said anything. Owen would
+not speak of Clara till he was well out of hearing from the house,
+and at the present moment Herbert had not much inclination to
+commence a conversation on any subject.
+
+Owen was the first to speak. "Herbert," said he, "I have been told
+that you are engaged to marry Lady Clara Desmond."
+
+"And so I am," said Herbert, feeling very little inclined to admit
+of any question as to his privilege in that respect. Things were
+happening around him which might have--Heaven only knows what
+consequence. He did fear--fear with a terrible dread that something
+might occur which would shatter the cup of his happiness, and rob
+him of the fruition of his hopes. But nothing had occurred as yet.
+
+"And so I am," he said; "it is no wonder that you should have heard
+it, for it has been kept no secret. And I also have heard of your
+visit to Desmond Court. It might have been as well, I think, if you
+had stayed away."
+
+"I thought differently," said Owen, frowning blackly. "I thought
+that the most straight-forward thing for me was to go there openly,
+having announced my intention, and tell them both, mother and
+daughter, that I hold myself as engaged to Lady Clara, and that I
+hold her as engaged to me."
+
+"That is absurd nonsense. She cannot be engaged to two persons."
+
+"Anything that interferes with you, you will of course think absurd.
+I think otherwise. It is hardly more than twelve months since she
+and I were walking there together, and then she promised me her
+love. I had known her long and well, when you had hardly seen her. I
+knew her and loved her; and what is more, she loved me. Remember, it
+is not I only that say so. She said it herself, and swore that
+nothing should change her. I do not believe that anything has
+changed her."
+
+"Do you mean to say that at present she cares nothing for me? Owen,
+you must be mad on this matter."
+
+"Mad; yes, of course; if I think that any girl can care for me while
+you are in the way. Strange as it may appear, I am as mad even as
+that. There are people who will not sell themselves even for money
+and titles. I say again, that I do not believe her to be changed.
+She has been weak, and her mother has persuaded her. To her mother,
+rank and money, titles and property, are everything. She has sold
+her daughter, and I have come to ask you, whether, under such
+circumstances, you intend to accept the purchase."
+
+In his ordinary mood Herbert Fitzgerald was by no means a
+quarrelsome man. Indeed we may go further than that, and say that he
+was very much the reverse. His mind was argumentative rather than
+impulsive, and in all matters he was readier to persuade than
+overcome. But his ordinary nature had been changed. It was quite new
+with him to be nervous and fretful but he was so at the present
+moment. He was deeply concerned in the circumstances around him, but
+yet had been allowed no voice in them. In this affair that was so
+peculiarly his own,--this of his promised bride, he was determined
+that no voice should be heard but his own; and now, contrary to his
+wont, he was ready enough to quarrel with his cousin.
+
+Of Owen we may say, that he was a man prone to fighting of all
+sorts, and on all occasions. By fighting I do not mean the
+old-fashioned resource of putting an end to fighting by the aid of
+two pistols, which were harmless in nineteen cases out of twenty. In
+saying that Owen Fitzgerald was prone to fight, I do not allude to
+fighting of that sort; I mean that he was impulsive, and ever
+anxious to contend and conquer. To yield was to him ignoble, even
+though he might know that he was yielding to the right. To strive
+for mastery was to him noble, even though he strove against those
+who had a right to rule, and strove on behalf of the wrong. Such was
+the nature of his mind and spirit; and this nature had impelled him
+to his present enterprise at Castle Richmond. But he had gone
+thither with an unwonted resolve not to be passionate. He had, he
+had said to himself, right on his side, and he had purposed to argue
+it out fairly with his more cold-blooded cousin. The reader may
+probably guess the result of these fair arguments on such a subject.
+"And I have come to ask you," he said, "whether under such
+circumstances you intend to accept the purchase?"
+
+"I will not allow you to speak of Lady Desmond in such language; nor
+of her daughter," said Herbert, angrily.
+
+"Ah! but, Herbert, you must allow me; I have been ill used in this
+matter, and I have a right to make myself heard."
+
+"Is it I that have ill used you? I did not know before that
+gentlemen made loud complaints of such ill usage from the hands of
+ladies."
+
+"If the ill usage, as you please to call it--"
+
+"It is your own word."
+
+"Very well. If this ill usage came from Clara Desmond herself, I
+should be the last person to complain of it; and you would be the
+last person to whom I should make complaint. But I feel sure that it
+is not so. She is acting under the influence of her mother, who has
+frightened her into this thing which she is doing. I do not believe
+that she is false herself."
+
+"I am sure that she is not false. We are quite agreed there, but it
+is not likely that we should agree further. To tell you the truth
+frankly I think you are ill-judged to speak to me on such a topic."
+
+"Perhaps in that respect you will allow me to think for myself. But
+I have not yet said that which I came to say. My belief is that
+unfair and improper restraint is put upon Clara Desmond, that she
+has been induced by her mother to accept your offer in opposition to
+her own wishes, and that therefore it is my duty to look upon her as
+still betrothed to me. I do so regard her, and shall act under such
+conviction. The first thing that I do therefore is to call upon you
+to relinquish your claim."
+
+"What, to give her up?"
+
+"Yes, to give her up;--to acknowledge that you cannot honestly call
+upon her to fulfil her pledge to you."
+
+"The man must be raving," Herbert said.
+
+"Very probably; but remember this, it may be that he will rave to
+some purpose, when such insolence will be but of little avail to
+you. Raving! Yes, I suppose that a man poor as I am must be mad
+indeed to set his heart upon anything you may choose to fancy."
+
+"All that is nonsense; Owen, I ask for nothing but my own. I won her
+love fairly, and I mean to keep it firmly."
+
+"You may possibly have won her hand, but never her heart. You are
+rich, and it may be that even she will condescend to barter her
+hand; but I doubt it; I altogether doubt it. It is her mother's
+doing, as it was plain enough for me to see the other day at Desmond
+Court; but much as she may fear her mother, I cannot think that she
+will go to the altar with a lie in her mouth."
+
+And then they walked on in silence for a few yards. Herbert was
+anxious to get back to the house, and was by no means desirous of
+continuing this conversation with his cousin. He, at any rate, could
+get nothing by talking about Lady Clara Desmond to Owen Fitzgerald.
+He stopped therefore on the path, and said, that if Owen had nothing
+further to say, he, Herbert, would go back to the house.
+
+"Nothing further! Nothing further, if you understand me; but you do
+not. You are not honest enough in this matter to understand any
+purpose but your own."
+
+"I tell you what, Owen: I did not come out here to hear myself
+abused; and I will not stand it. According to my idea you had no
+right whatever to speak to me about Lady Clara Desmond. But you are
+my cousin; and therefore I have borne it. It may be as well that we
+should both understand that it is once for all. I will not listen to
+you again on the same subject."
+
+"Oh, you won't. Upon my word you are a very great man! You will tell
+me next, I suppose, that this is your demesne, and will warn me
+off!"
+
+"Even if I did that, I should not be wrong, under such provocation."
+
+"Very well, sir; then I will go off. But remember this, Herbert
+Fitzgerald, you shall live to rue the day when you treated me with
+such insolence. And remember this also, Clara Desmond is not your
+wife as yet. Everything now seems happy with you, and fortunate; you
+have wealth and a fine house, and a family round you, while I am
+there all alone, left like a dog, as far as my own relatives are
+concerned. But yet it may come to pass that the Earl of Desmond's
+daughter will prefer my hand to yours, and my house to your house.
+They who mount high may chance to get a fall." And then, having
+uttered this caution, he turned to his mare, and putting his hand
+upon the saddle, jumped into his seat, and pressing her into a
+gallop, darted off across the grass.
+
+He had not meant anything specially by his threat; but his heart was
+sore within him. During some weeks past, he had become sick of the
+life that he was leading. He had begun to hate his own solitary
+house--his house that was either solitary, or filled with riot
+and noise. He sighed for the quiet hours that were once his at
+Desmond Court, and the privilege of constant entrance there,
+which was now denied him. His cousin Herbert had everything at
+his command--wealth, station, family ties, society, and all the
+consideration of high place. Every blessing was at the feet of the
+young heir; but every blessing was not enough, unless Clara Desmond
+was also added. All this seemed so cruel to him, as he sat alone in
+his parlour at Hap House, meditating on his future course of life!
+And then he would think of Clara's promise, of her assurance that
+nothing should frighten her from her pledge. He thought of this as
+though the words had been spoken to him only yesterday. He pondered
+over these things till he hated his cousin Herbert; and hating him,
+he vowed that Clara Desmond should not be his wife. "Is he to have
+everything?" he would say to himself. "No, by leavens! not
+everything. He has enough, and may be contented; but he shall not
+have all." And now, with similar thoughts running through his mind,
+he rode back to Hap House.
+
+And Herbert turned back to Castle Richmond. As he approached the
+front door, he met Mr. Prendergast, who was leaving the house; but
+they had no conversation with each other. Herbert was in hopes that
+he might now, at once, be put out of suspense. Mollett was gone; and
+would it not be better that the tale should be told? But it was
+clear that Mr. Prendergast had no intention of lessening by an hour
+the interval he had given himself. He merely muttered a few words
+passing on, and Herbert went into the house.
+
+And then there was another long, tedious, dull afternoon. Herbert
+sat with his sisters, but they had not the heart to talk to each
+other. At about four a note was brought to him. It was from Mr.
+Prendergast, begging Herbert to meet him in Sir Thomas's study at
+eight. Sir Thomas had not been there during the day; and now did not
+intend to leave his own room. They dined at half-past six; and the
+appointment was therefore to take place almost immediately after
+dinner.
+
+"Tell Mr. Prendergast that I will be there," he said to the servant.
+And so that afternoon passed away, and the dinner also, very slowly
+and very sadly.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXII
+
+THE TELLING OF THE TALE
+
+
+The dinner passed away as the former dinners had done; and as soon
+as Aunt Letty got up Mr. Prendergast also rose, and touching Herbert
+on his shoulder, whispered into his ear, "You'll come to me at
+eight, then." Herbert nodded his head; and when he was alone he
+looked at his watch. These slow dinners were not actually very long,
+and there still remained to him some three-quarters of an hour for
+anticipation.
+
+What was to be the nature of this history? That it would affect
+himself personally in the closest manner he could not but know.
+There seemed to be no doubt on the minds of any of them that the
+affair was one of money, and his father's money questions were his
+money questions. Mr. Prendergast would not have been sent for with
+reference to any trifle; nor would any pecuniary difficulty that was
+not very serious have thrown his father into such a state of misery.
+Could it be that the fair inheritance was absolutely in danger?
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald was by no means a selfish man. As regarded
+himself, he could have met ruin in the face with more equanimity
+than most young men so circumstanced. The gilt of the world had not
+eaten into his soul; his heart was not as yet wedded to the
+splendour of pinchbeck. This is saying much for him; for how seldom
+is it that the hearts and souls of the young are able to withstand
+pinchbeck and gilding? He was free from this pusillanimity; free as
+yet as regarded himself; but he was hardly free as regarded his
+betrothed. He had promised her, not in spoken words but in his
+thoughts, rank, wealth, and all the luxuries of his promised high
+position; and now, on her behalf, it nearly broke his heart to think
+that they might be endangered.
+
+Of his mother's history, he can hardly be said to have known
+anything. That there had been something tragic in her early life;
+that something had occurred before his father's marriage; and that
+his mother had been married twice, he had learned,--he hardly knew
+when or from whom. But on such matters there had never been
+conversation between him and any of his own family; and it never
+occurred to him that this sorrow arose in any way from this subject.
+That his father had taken some fatal step with regard to the
+property--had done some foolish thing for which he could not forgive
+himself, that was the idea with which his mind was filled.
+
+He waited, with his watch in his hand, till the dial showed him that
+it was exactly eight; and then, with a sinking heart, he walked
+slowly out of the dining-room along the passage, and into his
+father's study. For an instant he stood with the handle in his hand.
+He had been terribly anxious for the arrival of this moment, but now
+that it had come, he would almost fain have had it again postponed.
+His heart sank very low as he turned the lock, and entering, found
+himself in the presence of Mr. Prendergast.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was standing with his back to the fire. For him,
+too, the last hour had been full of bitterness; his heart also had
+sunk low within him; his blood had run cold within his veins: he
+too, had it been possible, would have put off this wretched hour.
+
+Mr. Prendergast, it may be, was not much given to poetry; but the
+feeling, if not the words, were there within him. The work which a
+friend has to perform for a friend is so much heavier than that
+which comes in the way of any profession!
+
+When Herbert entered the room, Mr. Prendergast came forward from
+where he was standing, and took him by the hand. "This is a very sad
+affair," he said; "very sad."
+
+"At present I know nothing about it," said Herbert. "As I see people
+about me so unhappy, I suppose it is sad. If there be anything that
+I hate, it is a mystery."
+
+"Sit down, Mr. Fitzgerald," said the other; "sit down." And Mr.
+Prendergast himself sat down in the chair that was ordinarily
+occupied by Sir Thomas. Although he had been thinking about it all
+the day, he had not even yet made up his mind how he was to begin
+his story. Even now he could not help thinking whether it might be
+possible for him to leave it untold.
+
+But it was not possible.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," said he, "you must prepare yourself for tidings
+which are very grievous indeed--very grievous."
+
+"Whatever it is I must bear it," said he.
+
+"I hope you have that moral strength which enables a man to bear
+misfortune. I have not known you in happy days, and therefore
+perhaps can hardly judge; but it seems to me that you do possess
+such courage. Did I not think so, I could hardly go through the task
+that is before me."
+
+Here he paused as though he expected some reply, some assurance that
+his young friend did possess this strength of which he spoke; but
+Herbert said nothing--nothing out loud. "If it were only for myself!
+if it were only for myself!" It was thus that he spoke to his own
+heart.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," continued the lawyer, "I do not know how far you
+may be acquainted with the history of your mother's first marriage."
+
+Herbert said that he was hardly acquainted with it in any degree;
+and explained that he merely knew the fact that his mother had been
+married before she met Sir Thomas.
+
+"I do not know that I need recount all the circumstances to you now,
+though doubtless you will learn them. Your mother's conduct
+throughout was, I believe, admirable."
+
+"I am quite sure of that. No amount of evidence could make me
+believe the contrary."
+
+"And there is no tittle of evidence to make any one think so. But in
+her early youth, when she was quite a child, she was given in
+marriage to a man--to a man of whom it is impossible to speak in
+terms too black, or in language too strong. And now, this day--"
+
+But here he paused. It had been his intention to say that that very
+man, the first husband of this loved mother now looked upon as dead
+for so many years, this miscreant of whom he had spoken--that this
+man had been in that room that very day. But he hardly knew how to
+frame the words.
+
+"Well," said Herbert, "well;" and he spoke in a hoarse voice that
+was scarcely audible.
+
+Mr. Prendergast was afraid to bring out the very pith of his story
+in so abrupt a manner. He wished to have the work over, to feel,
+that as regarded Herbert it was done,--but his heart failed him when
+he came to it.
+
+"Yes," he said, going back as it were to his former thoughts. "A
+heartless, cruel, debauched, unscrupulous man; one in whose bosom no
+good thing seemed to have been implanted. Your father, when he first
+knew your mother, had every reason to believe that this man was
+dead."
+
+"And he was not dead?" Mr. Prendergast could see that the young
+man's face became perfectly pale as he uttered these words. He
+became pale, and clutched hold of the table with his hand, and there
+sat with mouth open and staring eyes.
+
+"I am afraid not," said Mr. Prendergast; "I am afraid not."
+
+"And--"
+
+"I must go further than that, and tell you that he is still living."
+
+"Mr. Prendergast, Mr. Prendergast!" exclaimed the poor fellow,
+rising up from his chair and shouting out as though for mercy. Mr.
+Prendergast also rose from his seat, and coming up to him took him
+by the arm. "My dear boy, my dear boy, I am obliged to tell you. It
+is necessary that you should know it. The fact is as I say, and it
+is now for you to show that you are a man."
+
+Who was ever called upon for a stronger proof of manhood than this?
+In nine cases out of ten it is not for oneself that one has to be
+brave. A man, we may almost say, is no man, whose own individual
+sufferings call for the exercise of much courage. But we are all so
+mixed up and conjoined with others--with others who are weaker and
+dearer than ourselves, that great sorrows do require great powers of
+endurance.
+
+By degrees, as he stood there in silence, the whole truth made its
+way into his mind,--as he stood there with his arm still tenderly
+pressed by that old man. No one now would have called the lawyer
+stern in looking at him, for the tears were coursing down his
+cheeks. But no tears came to the relief of young Fitzgerald as the
+truth slowly came upon him, fold by fold, black cloud upon cloud,
+till the whole horizon of his life's prospect was dark as death. He
+stood there silent for some few minutes hardly conscious that he was
+not alone, as he saw all his joys disappearing from before his
+mind's eye, one by one; his family pride, the pleasant high-toned
+duties of his station, his promised seat in Parliament and
+prosperous ambition, the full respect of all the world around him,
+his wealth and pride of place--for let no man be credited who boasts
+that he can part with these without regret. All these were gone. But
+there were losses more bitter than these. How could he think of his
+affianced bride? and how could he think of his mother?
+
+No tears came to his relief while the truth, with all its bearings,
+burnt itself into his very soul, but his face expressed such agony
+that it was terrible to be seen. Mr. Prendergast could stand that
+silence no longer, so at last he spoke. He spoke,--for the sake of
+words; for all his tale had been told.
+
+"You saw the man that was here yesterday? That was he, who then
+called himself Talbot."
+
+"What! the man that went away in the car? Mollett!"
+
+"Yes; that was the man."
+
+Herbert had said that no evidence could be sufficient to make him
+believe that his mother had been in any way culpable: and such
+probably was the case. He had that reliance on his mother--that
+assurance in his mind that everything coming from her must be
+good--that he could not believe her capable of ill. But,
+nevertheless, he could not prevent himself from asking within his
+own breast, how it had been possible that his mother should ever
+have been concerned with such a wretch as that. It was a question
+which could not fail to make itself audible. What being on earth was
+sweeter than his mother, more excellent, more noble, more fitted for
+the world's high places, more absolutely entitled to that universal
+respect which seemed to be given to her as her own by right? And
+what being could be more loathsome, more contemptible than he, who
+was, as he was now told, his mother's husband? There was in it a
+want of verisimilitude which almost gave him comfort, one--which
+almost taught him to think that he might disbelieve the story that
+was told to him. Poor fellow! he had yet to learn the difference
+that years may make in men and women--for better as well as for
+worse. Circumstances had given to the poor half-educated village
+girl the simple dignity of high station; as circumstances had also
+brought to the lowest dregs of human existence the man, whose
+personal bearing and apparent worldly standing had been held
+sufficient to give warrant that he was of gentle breeding and of
+honest standing; nay, her good fortune in such a marriage had once
+been almost begrudged her by all her maiden neighbours.
+
+But Herbert, as he thought of this, was almost discouraged to
+disbelieve the story. To him, with his knowledge of what his mother
+was, and with knowledge as he also had of that man, it did not seem
+possible. "But how is all this known?" he muttered forth at last.
+
+"I fear there is no doubt of its truth," said Mr. Prendergast. "Your
+father has no doubt whatever; has had none--I must tell you this
+plainly--for some months."
+
+"For some months! And why have I not been told?"
+
+"Do not be hard upon your father."
+
+"Hard! no; of course I would not be hard upon him."
+
+"The burden he has had to bear has been very terrible. He has
+thought that by payments of money to this man the whole thing might
+be concealed. As is always the case when such payments are made, the
+insatiable love of money grew by what it fed on. He would have
+poured out every shilling into that man's hands, and would have
+died, himself a beggar--have died speedily too under such
+torments--and yet no good would have been done. The harpy would have
+come upon you; and you--after you had innocently assumed a title
+that was not your own and taken a property to which you have no
+right, you then would have had to own--that which your father must
+own now."
+
+"If it be so," said Herbert, slowly, "it must be acknowledged."
+
+"Just so, Mr. Fitzgerald; just so. I know you will feel that--in
+such matters we can only sail safely by the truth. There is no other
+compass worth a man's while to look at."
+
+"Of course not," said Herbert, with hoarse voice. "One does not wish
+to be a robber and a thief. My cousin shall have what is his own."
+And then he involuntarily thought of the interview they had had on
+that very day. "But why did he not tell me when I spoke to him of
+her?" he said, with something approaching to bitterness in his voice
+and a slight struggle in his throat that was almost premonitory of a
+sob.
+
+"Ah! it is there that I fear for you. I know what your feelings are;
+but think of his sorrows, and do not be hard on him."
+
+"Ah me, ah me!" exclaimed Herbert
+
+"I fear that he will not be with you long. He has already endured
+till he is now almost past the power of suffering more. And yet
+there is so much more that he must suffer!"
+
+"My poor father!"
+
+"Think what such as he must have gone through in bringing himself
+into contact with that man; and all this has been done that he might
+spare you and your mother. Think of the wound to his conscience
+before he would have lowered himself to an unworthy bargain with a
+swindler. But this has been done that you might have that which you
+have been taught to look on as your own. He has been wrong. No other
+verdict can be given. But you, at any rate, can be tender to such a
+fault; you and your mother."
+
+"I will--I will," said Herbert. "But if it had happened a month
+since I could have borne it." And then he thought of his mother, and
+hated himself for what he had said. How could he have borne that
+with patience? "And there is no doubt, you say?"
+
+"I think none. The man carries his proofs with him. An old servant
+here in the house, too, knows him."
+
+"What, Mrs. Jones?"
+
+"Yes; Mrs. Jones. And the burden of further proof must now, of
+course, be thrown on us,--not on him. Directly that we believe the
+statement, it is for us to ascertain its truth. You and your father
+must not be seen to hold a false position before the world."
+
+"And what are we to do now?"
+
+"I fear that your mother must be told, and Mr. Owen Fitzgerald;
+and then we must together openly prove the facts, either in one
+way or in the other. It will be better that we should do this
+together;--that is, you and your cousin Owen conjointly. Do it
+openly, before the world,--so that the world may know that each of
+you desires only what is honestly his own. For myself I tell you
+fairly that I have no doubt of the truth of what I have told you;
+but further proof is certainly needed. Had I any doubt I would not
+propose to tell your mother. As it is I think it will be wrong to
+keep her longer in the dark."
+
+"Does she suspect nothing?"
+
+"I do not know. She has more power of self-control than your father.
+She has not spoken to me ten words since I have been in the house,
+and in not doing so I have thought that she was right."
+
+"My own mother; my dear mother!"
+
+"If you ask me my opinion, I think that she does suspect the
+truth,--very vaguely, with an indefinite feeling that the calamity
+which weighs so heavily on your father has come from this source.
+She, dear lady, is greatly to be pitied. But God has made her of
+firmer material than your father, and I think that she will bear her
+sorrow with a higher courage."
+
+"And she is to be told also?"
+
+"Yes, I think so. I do not see how we can avoid it. If we do not
+tell her we must attempt to conceal it, and that attempt must needs
+be futile when we are engaged in making open inquiry on the subject.
+Your cousin, when he hears of this, will of course be anxious to
+know what his real prospects are."
+
+"Yes, yes. He will be anxious, and determined too."
+
+"And then, when all the world will know it, how is your mother to be
+kept in the dark? And that which she fears and anticipates is as
+bad, probably, as the actual truth. If my advice be followed nothing
+will be kept from her."
+
+"We are in your hands, I suppose, Mr. Prendergast?"
+
+"I can only act as my judgment directs me."
+
+"And who is to tell her?" This he asked with a shudder, and almost
+in a whisper. The very idea of undertaking such a duty seemed almost
+too much for him. And yet he must undertake a duty almost as
+terrible, he himself--no one but him--must endure the anguish of
+repeating this story to Clara Desmond and to the countess. But now
+the question had reference to his own mother. "And who is to tell
+her?" he asked.
+
+For a moment or two Mr. Prendergast stood silent. He had not
+hitherto, in so many words, undertaken this task--this that would be
+the most dreadful of all. But if he did not undertake it, who would?
+"I suppose that I must do it," at last he said, very gently.
+
+"And when?"
+
+"As soon as I have told your cousin. I will go down to him to-morrow
+after breakfast. Is it probable that I shall find him at home?"
+
+"Yes, if you are there before ten. The hounds meet to-morrow at
+Cecilstown, within three miles of him, and he will not leave home
+till near eleven. But it is possible that he may have a house full
+of men with him."
+
+"At any rate, I will try. On such an occasion as this he may surely
+let his friends go to the hunt without him."
+
+And then between nine and ten this interview came to an end. "Mr.
+Fitzgerald," said Mr. Prendergast, as he pressed Herbert's hand,
+"you have borne all this as a man should do. No loss of fortune can
+ruin one who is so well able to endure misfortune." But in this Mr.
+Prendergast was perhaps mistaken. His knowledge of human nature had
+not carried him sufficiently far. A man's courage under calamity is
+only tested when he is left in solitude. The meanest among us can
+bear up while strange eyes are looking at us. And then Mr.
+Prendergast went away, and he was alone.
+
+It had been his habit during the whole of this period of his
+father's illness to go to Sir Thomas at or before bedtime. These
+visits had usually been made to the study, the room in which he was
+now standing; but when his father had gone to his bedroom at an
+earlier hour, Herbert had always seen him there. Was he to go to him
+now--now that he had heard all this? And if so, how was he to bear
+himself there, in his father's presence? He stood still, thinking of
+this, till the hand of the clock showed him that it was past ten,
+and then it struck him that his father might be waiting for him. It
+would not do for him now, at such a moment, to appear wanting in
+that attention which he had always shown. He was still his father's
+son, though he had lost the light to bear his father's name. He was
+nameless now, a man utterly without respect or standing-place in the
+world, a being whom the law ignored except as the possessor of a
+mere life; such was he now, instead of one whose rights and
+privileges, whose property and rank all the statutes of the realm
+and customs of his country delighted to honour and protect. This he
+repeated to himself over and over again. It as to such a pass as
+this, to this bitter disappointment that his father had brought him.
+But yet it should not be said of him that he had begun to neglect
+his father as soon as he had heard the story.
+
+So with a weary step he walked upstairs, and found Sir Thomas in
+bed, with his mother sitting by the bedside. His mother held out her
+hand to him, and he took it, leaning against the bedside. "Has Mr.
+Prendergast left you?" she asked.
+
+He told her that Mr. Prendergast had left him, and gone to his own
+room for the night. "And have you been with him all the evening?"
+she asked. She had no special motive in so asking, but both the
+father and the son shuddered at the question. "Yes," said Herbert;
+"I have been with him, and now I have come to wish my father good
+night; and you too, mother, if you intend to remain here." But Lady
+Fitzgerald got up, telling Herbert that she would leave him with Sir
+Thomas; and before either of them could hinder her from departing,
+the father and the son were alone together.
+
+Sir Thomas, when the door closed, looked furtively up into his son's
+face. Might it be that he could read there how much had been already
+told, or hew much still remained to be disclosed? That Herbert was
+to learn it all that evening, he knew; but it might be that Mr.
+Prendergast had failed to perform his task. Sir Thomas in his heart
+trusted that he had failed. He looked up furtively into Herbert's
+face, but at the moment there was nothing there that he could read.
+There was nothing there but black misery; and every face round him
+for many days past had worn that aspect.
+
+For a minute or two Herbert said nothing, for he had not made up his
+mind whether or no he would that night disturb his father's rest.
+But he could not speak in his ordinary voice, or bid his father good
+night as though nothing special to him had happened. "Father," said
+he, after a short pause, "father, I know it all now."
+
+"My boy, my poor boy, my unfortunate boy!"
+
+"Father," said Herbert, "do not be unhappy about me, I can bear it."
+And then he thought again of his bride--his bride as she was to have
+been; but nevertheless he repeated his last words, "I can bear it,
+father!"
+
+"I have meant it for the best, Herbert," said the poor man, pleading
+to his child.
+
+"I know that; all of us well know that. But what Mr. Prendergast
+says is true; it is better that it should be known. That man would
+have killed you had you kept it longer to yourself."
+
+Sir Thomas hid his face upon the pillow as the remembrance of what
+he had endured in those meetings came upon him. The blow that had
+told heaviest was that visit from the son, and the threats which the
+man had made still rung in his ears--"When that youngster was born
+Lady F. was Mrs. M., wasn't she?...My governor could take her away
+to-morrow, according to the law of the land, couldn't he now?" These
+words, and more such as these, had nearly killed him at the time,
+and now, as they recurred to him, he burst out into childish tears.
+Poor man! the days of his manhood had gone, and nothing but the
+tears of a second bitter childhood remained to him. The hot iron had
+entered into his soul, and shrivelled up the very muscles of his
+mind's strength.
+
+Herbert, without much thought of what he was doing, knelt down by
+the bedside and put his hand upon that of his father which lay out
+upon the sheet. There he knelt for one or two minutes, watching and
+listening to his father's sobs. "You will be better now, father," he
+said, "for the great weight of this terrible secret will be off your
+mind." But Sir Thomas did not answer him. With him there could never
+be any better. All things belonging to him had gone to ruin. All
+those around him whom he had loved--and he had loved those around
+him very dearly--were brought to poverty and sorrow, and disgrace.
+The power of feeling this was left to him, but the power of enduring
+this with manhood was gone. The blow had come upon him too late in
+life.
+
+And Herbert himself, as he knelt there, could hardly forbear from
+tears. Now, at such a moment as this, he could think of no one but
+his father, the author of his being, who lay there so grievously
+afflicted by sorrows which were in nowise selfish. "Father," he said
+at last, "will you pray with me?" And then when the poor sufferer
+had turned his face towards him, he poured forth his prayer to his
+Saviour that they all in that family might be enabled to bear the
+heavy sorrows which God in his mercy and wisdom had now thought fit
+to lay upon them. I will not make his words profane by repeating
+them here, but one may say confidently that they were not uttered in
+vain.
+
+"And now, dearest father, good night," he said as he rose from his
+knees, and stretching over the bed, he kissed his father's forehead.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIII
+
+BEFORE BREAKFAST AT HAP HOUSE
+
+
+It may be imagined that Mr. Mollett's drive back to Cork after his
+last visit to Castle Richmond had not been very pleasant; and indeed
+it may be said that his present circumstances altogether were as
+unpleasant as his worst enemies could desire. I have endeavoured to
+excite the sympathy of those who are going with me through this
+story for the sufferings of that family of the Fitzgeralds, but how
+shall I succeed in exciting their sympathy for this other family of
+the Molletts? And yet why not? If we are to sympathise only with the
+good, or worse still, only with the graceful, how little will there
+be in our character that is better than terrestrial? Those Molletts
+also were human, and had strings to their hearts, at which the world
+would now probably pull with sufficient vigour. For myself I can
+truly say that my strongest feeling is for their wretchedness.
+
+The father and son had more than once boasted among themselves that
+the game they were now playing was a high one; that they were, in
+fact, gambling for mighty stakes. And in truth, as long as the money
+came in to them--flowing in as the result of their own craft in
+this game--the excitement had about it something that was very
+pleasurable. There was danger, which makes all games pleasant; there
+was money in handfuls for daily expenses--those daily wants of the
+appetite, which are to such men more important by far than the
+distant necessities of life; there was a possibility of future
+grandeur, an opening out of magnificent ideas of fortune, which
+charmed them greatly as they thought about it. What might they not
+do with forty thousand pounds divided between them, or even with a
+thousand a-year each, settled on them for life? and surely their
+secret was worth that money! Nay, was it not palpable to the meanest
+calculation that it was worth much more? Had they not the selling of
+twelve thousand a-year for ever and ever to this family of
+Fitzgerald?
+
+But for the last fortnight things had begun to go astray with them.
+Money easily come by goes easily, and money badly come by goes
+badly. Theirs had come easily and badly, and had so gone. What
+necessity could there be for economy with such a milch-cow as that
+close to their elbows? So both of them had thought, if not argued;
+and there had been no economy--no economy in the use of that very
+costly amusement, the dice-box; and now, at the present moment,
+ready money having failed to be the result of either of the two last
+visits to Castle Richmond, the family funds were running low.
+
+It may be said that ready money for the moment was the one desire
+nearest to the heart of Mollett pere, when he took that last journey
+over the Boggeragh mountains--ready money wherewith to satisfy the
+pressing claims of Miss O'Dwyer, and bring back civility, or rather
+servility, to the face and manner of Tom the waiter at the Kanturk
+Hotel. Very little of that servility can be enjoyed by persons of
+the Mollett class when money ceases to be ready in their hands and
+pocket, and there is, perhaps, nothing that they enjoy so keenly as
+servility. Mollett pere had gone down determined that that comfort
+should at any rate be forthcoming to him, whatever answer might be
+given to those other grander demands, and we know what success had
+attended his mission. He had looked to find his tame milch-cow
+trembling in her accustomed stall, and he had found a resolute bull
+there in her place--a bull whom he could by no means take by the
+horns. He had got no money, and before he had reached Cork he had
+begun to comprehend that it was not probable that he should get more
+from that source.
+
+During a part of the interview between him and Mr. Prendergast, some
+spark of mercy towards his victims had glimmered into his heart.
+When it was explained to him that the game was to be given up, that
+the family at Castle Richmond was prepared to acknowledge the truth,
+and that the effort made was with the view of proving that the poor
+lady up stairs was not entitled to the name she bore rather than
+that she was so entitled, then some slight promptings of a better
+spirit did for a while tempt him to be merciful. "Oh, what are you
+about to do?" he would have said had Mr. Prendergast admitted of
+speech from him. "Why make this terrible sacrifice? Matters have not
+come to that. There is no need for you to drag to the light this
+terrible fact. I will not divulge it--no not although you are hard
+upon me in regard to these terms of mine. I will still keep it to
+myself, and trust to you,--to you who are all so rich and able to
+pay, for what consideration you may please to give me." This was the
+state of his mind when Mrs. Jones's evidence was being slowly evoked
+from her; but it had undergone a considerable change before he
+reached Cork. By that time he had taught himself to understand that
+there was no longer a chance to him of any consideration whatever.
+Slowly he had brought it home to himself that these people had
+resolutely determined to blow up the ground on which they themselves
+stood. This he perceived was their honesty. He did not understand
+the nature of a feeling which could induce so fatal a suicide, but
+he did understand that the feeling was there, and that the suicide
+would be completed.
+
+And now what was he to do next in the way of earning his
+bread? Various thoughts ran through his brain, and different
+resolves--half-formed but still, perhaps, capable of shape--
+presented themselves to him for the future. It was still on the
+cards--on the cards, but barely so--that he might make money out of
+these people; but he must wait perhaps for weeks before he again
+commenced such an attempt. He might perhaps make money out of them,
+and be merciful to them at the same time;--not money by thousands
+and tens of thousands; that golden dream was gone for ever; but
+still money that might be comfortably luxurious as long as it could
+be made to last. But then on one special point he made a firm and
+final resolution,--whatever new scheme he might hatch he alone would
+manage. Never again would he call into his councils that son of his
+loins whose rapacious greed had, as he felt sure, brought upon him
+all this ruin. Had Aby not gone to Castle Richmond, with his cruelty
+and his greed, frightening to the very death the soul of that poor
+baronet by the enormity of his demands, Mr. Prendergast would not
+have been there. Of what further chance of Castle Richmond pickings
+there might be Aby should know nothing. He and his son would no
+longer hunt in couples. He would shake him off in that escape which
+they must both now make from Cork, and he would not care how long it
+might be before he again saw his countenance.
+
+But then that question of ready money; and that other question,
+perhaps as interesting, touching a criminal prosecution! How was he
+to escape if he could not raise the wind? And how could he raise the
+wind now that his milch-cow had run so dry? He had promised the
+O'Dwyers money that evening, and had struggled hard to make that
+promise with an easy face. He now had none to give them. His orders
+at the inn were treated almost with contempt. For the last three
+days they had given him what he wanted to eat and drink, but would
+hardly give him all that he wanted. When he called for brandy they
+brought him whisky, and it had only been by hard begging, and by
+oaths as to the promised money, that he had induced them to supply
+him with the car which had taken him on his fruitless journey to
+Castle Richmond. As he was driven up to the door in South Main
+Street, his heart was very sad on all these subjects.
+
+Aby was again sitting within the bar, but was no longer basking in
+the sunshine of Fanny's smiles. He was sitting there because Fanny
+had not yet mustered courage to turn him out. He was half-drunk, for
+it had been found impossible to keep spirits from him. And there had
+been hot words between him and Fanny, in which she had twitted him
+with his unpaid bill, and he had twitted her with her former love.
+And things had gone from bad to worse, and she had all but called in
+Tom for aid in getting quit of him; she had, however, refrained,
+thinking of the money that might be coming, and waiting also till
+her father should arrive. Fanny's love for Mr. Abraham Mollett had
+not been long lived.
+
+I will not describe another scene such as those which had of late
+been frequent in the Kanturk Hotel. The father and the son soon
+found themselves together in the small room in which they now both
+slept, at the top of the house, and Aby, tipsy as he was, understood
+the whole of what had happened at Castle Richmond. When he heard
+that Mr. Prendergast was seen in that room in lieu of Sir Thomas, he
+knew at once that the game had been abandoned. "But something may
+yet be done at 'Appy 'ouse," Aby said to himself, "only one must be
+deuced quick."
+
+The father and the son of course quarrelled frightfully, like dogs
+over the memory of a bone which had been arrested from the jaws of
+both of them. Aby said that his father had lost everything by his
+pusillanimity, and old Mollett declared that his son had destroyed
+all by his rashness. But we need not repeat their quarrels, nor
+repeat all that passed between them and Tom before food was
+forthcoming to satisfy the old man's wants. As he ate he calculated
+how much he might probably raise upon his watch towards taking him
+to London, and how best he might get off from Cork without leaving
+any scent in the nostrils of his son. His clothes he must leave
+behind him at the inn, at least all that he could not pack upon his
+person. Lately he had made himself comfortable in this respect, and
+he sorrowed over the fine linen which he had worn but once or twice
+since it had been bought with the last instalment from Sir Thomas.
+Nevertheless in this way he did make up his mind for the morrow's
+campaign.
+
+And Aby also made up his mind. Something, at any rate, he had
+learned from Fanny O'Dwyer in return for his honeyed words. When
+Herbert Fitzgerald should cease to be the heir to Castle Richmond,
+Owen Fitzgerald of Hap House would be the happy man. That knowledge
+was his own in absolute independence of his father, and there might
+still be time for him to use it. He knew well the locality of Hap
+House, and he would be there early on the following morning. These
+tidings had probably not as yet reached the owner of that blessed
+abode, and if he could be the first to tell him--! The game there
+too might be pretty enough, if it were played well, by such a
+master-hand as his own. Yes; he would be at Hap House early in the
+morning;--but then, how to get there?
+
+He left his father preparing for bed, and going down into the bar
+found Mr. O'Dwyer and his daughter there in close consultation. They
+were endeavouring to arrive, by their joint wisdom, at some
+conclusion as to what they should do with their two guests. Fanny
+was for turning them out at once. "The first loss is the least,"
+said she. "And they is so disrispectable. I niver know what they're
+afther, and always is expecting the p'lice will be down on them."
+But the father shook his head. He had done nothing wrong; the police
+could not hurt him; and thirty pounds, as he told his daughter, with
+much emphasis, was "a deuced sight of money." "The first loss is the
+least," said Fanny, perseveringly; and then Aby entered to them.
+
+"My father has made a mull of this matter again," said he, going at
+once into the middle of the subject. "'E 'as come back without a
+shiner."
+
+"I'll be bound he has," said Mr. O'Dwyer, sarcastically.
+
+"And that when 'e'd only got to go two or three miles further, and
+hall his troubles would have been over."
+
+"Troubles over, would they?" said Fanny, "I wish he'd have the
+goodness to get over his little troubles in this house, by paying us
+our bill. You'll have to walk if it's not done, and that to-morrow,
+Mr. Mollett; and so I tell you; and take nothing with you, I can
+tell you. Father'll have the police to see to that."
+
+"Don't you be so cruel now, Miss Fanny," said Aby, with a leering
+look. "I tell you what it is, Mr. O'Dwyer, I must go down again to
+them diggings very early to-morrow, starting, say, at four o'clock."
+
+"You'll not have a foot out of my stables," said Mr. O'Dwyer.
+"That's all."
+
+"Look here, Mr. O'Dwyer; there's been a sight of money due to us
+from those Fitzgerald people down there. You know 'em; and whether
+they're hable to pay or not. I won't deny but what father's 'ad the
+best of it,--'ad the best of it, and sent it trolling, bad luck to
+him. But there's no good looking hafter spilt milk; is there?"
+
+"If so be that Sir Thomas owed the likes of you money, he would have
+paid it without your tramping down there time after time to look for
+it. He's not one of that sort."
+
+"No, indeed," said Fanny; "and I don't believe anything about your
+seeing Sir Thomas."
+
+"Oh, we've seed him hoften enough. There's no mistake about that.
+But now--" and then, with a mysterious air and low voice, he
+explained to them, that this considerable balance of money still due
+to them was to be paid by the cousin, "Mr. Owen of 'Appy 'ouse." And
+to substantiate all his story, he exhibited a letter from Mr.
+Prendergast to his father, which some months since had intimated
+that a sum of money would be paid on behalf of Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald, if Mr. Mollett would call at Mr. Prendergast's office at
+a certain hour. The ultimate effect of all this was, that the car
+was granted for the morning, with certain dire threats as to any
+further breach of engagement.
+
+Very early on the following morning Aby was astir, hoping that he
+might manage to complete his not elaborate toilet without disturbing
+his father's slumbers. For, it must be known, he had been very
+urgent with the O'Dwyers as to the necessity of keeping this journey
+of his a secret from his "governor." But the governor was wide
+awake, looking at him out of the corner of his closed eye whenever
+his back was turned, and not caring much what he was about to do
+with himself. Mollett pere wished to be left alone for that morning,
+that he also might play his little game in his own solitary fashion,
+and was not at all disposed to question the movements of his son.
+
+At about five Aby started for Hap House. His toilet, I have said,
+was not elaborate; but in this I have perhaps wronged him. Up there
+in the bed-room he did not waste much time over his soap and water;
+but he was aware that first impressions are everything, and that one
+young man should appear smart and clever before another if he wished
+to carry any effect with him; so he took his brush and comb in his
+pocket, and a pot of grease with which he was wont to polish his
+long side-locks, and he hurriedly grasped up his pins, and his
+rings, and the satin stock which Fanny in her kinder mood had folded
+for him; and then, during his long journey to Hap House, he did
+perform a toilet which may, perhaps, be fairly called elaborate.
+
+There was a long, tortuous, narrow avenue, going from the Mallow and
+Kanturk road down to Hap House, which impressed Aby with the idea
+that the man on whom he was now about to call was also a big
+gentleman, and made him more uneasy than he would have been had he
+entered a place with less pretence. There is a story current, that
+in the west of England the grandeur of middle-aged maiden ladies is
+measured by the length of the tail of their cats; and Aby had a
+perhaps equally correct idea, that the length of the private drive
+up to a gentleman's house, was a fair criterion of the splendour of
+his position. If this man had about him as much grandeur as Sir
+Thomas himself, would he be so anxious as Aby had hoped to obtain
+the additional grandeur of Sir Thomas? It was in that direction that
+his mind was operating when he got down from the car and rang at the
+door-bell.
+
+Mr. Owen, as everybody called him, was at home, but not down; and so
+Aby was shown into the dining-room. It was now considerably past
+nine; and the servant told him that his master must be there soon,
+as he had to eat his breakfast and be at the hunt by eleven. The
+servant at Hap House was more unsophisticated than those at Castle
+Richmond, and Aby's personal adornments had had their effect. He
+found himself sitting in the room with the cups and saucers,--aye,
+and with the silver teaspoons; and began again to trust that his
+mission might be successful.
+
+And then the door opened, and a man appeared, clad from top to toe
+in hunting costume. This was not Owen Fitzgerald, but his friend
+Captain Donnellan. As it had happened, Captain Donnellan was the
+only guest who had graced the festivities of Hap House on the
+previous evening; and now he appeared at the breakfast table before
+his host. Aby got up from his chair when the gentleman entered, and
+was proceeding to business; but the Captain gave him to understand
+that the master of the house was not yet in presence, and so Aby sat
+down again. What was he to do when the master did arrive? His story
+was not one which would well bear telling before a third person.
+
+And then, while Captain Donnellan was scanning this visitor to his
+friend Owen, and bethinking himself whether he might not be a
+sheriff's officer, and whether if so some notice ought not to be
+conveyed upstairs to the master of the house, another car was driven
+up to the front door. In this case the arrival was from Castle
+Richmond, and the two servants knew each other well. "Thady," said
+Richard, with much authority in his voice, "this gentl'man is Mr.
+Prendergast from our place, and he must see the masther before he
+goes to the hunt." "Faix and the masther'll have something to do
+this blessed morning," said Thady, as he showed Mr. Prendergast also
+into the dining-room, and went upstairs to inform his master that
+there was yet another gentleman come upon business. "The Captain has
+got 'em both to hisself," said Thady, as he closed the door.
+
+The name of Mr. "Pendhrergrast," as the Irish servants generally
+called him, was quite unknown to the owner of Hap House, as was also
+that of Mr. Mollett, which had been brought up to him the first of
+the two; but Owen began to think that there must be something very
+unusual in a day so singularly ushered in to him. Callers at Hap
+House on business were very few, unless when tradesmen in want of
+money occasionally dropped in upon him. But now that he was so
+summoned Owen began to bestir himself with his boots and breeches. A
+gentleman's costume for a hunting morning is always a slow
+one--sometimes so slow and tedious as to make him think of
+forswearing such articles of dress for all future ages. But now he
+did bestir himself,--in a moody melancholy sort of manner; for his
+manner in all things latterly had become moody and melancholy.
+
+In the mean time Captain Donnellan and the two strangers sat almost
+in silence in the dining-room. The Captain, though he did not
+perhaps know much of things noticeable in this world, did know
+something of a gentleman, and was therefore not led away, as poor
+Thady had been, by Aby's hat and rings. He had stared Aby full in
+the face when he entered the room and having explained that he was
+not the master of the house, had not vouchsafed another word. But
+then he had also seen that Mr. Prendergast was of a different class,
+and had said a civil word or two, asking him to come near the fire,
+and suggesting that Owen would be down in less than five minutes.
+"But the old cock wouldn't crow," as he afterwards remarked to his
+friend, and so they all three sat in silence, the Captain being very
+busy about his knees, as hunting gentlemen sometimes are when they
+come down to bachelor breakfasts.
+
+And then at last Owen Fitzgerald entered the room. He has been
+described as a handsome man, but in no dress did he look so well as
+when equipped for a day's sport. And what dress that Englishmen ever
+wear is so handsome as this? Or we may perhaps say what other dress
+does English custom allow them that is in any respect not the
+reverse of handsome. We have come to be so dingy,--in our taste I
+was going to say, but it is rather in our want of taste,--so
+careless of any of the laws of beauty in the folds and lines and
+hues of our dress, so opposed to grace in the arrangement of our
+persons, that it is not permitted to the ordinary English gentleman
+to be anything else but ugly. Chimney-pot hats, swallow-tailed
+coats, and pantaloons that fit nothing, came creeping in upon us,
+one after the other, while the Georges reigned--creeping in upon us
+with such pictures as we painted under the reign of West, and such
+houses as we built under the reign of Nash, till the English eye
+required to rest on that which was constrained, dull, and graceless.
+For the last two score of years it has come to this, that if a man
+go in handsome attire he is a popinjay and a vain fool; and as it is
+better to be ugly than to be accounted vain I would not counsel a
+young friend to leave the beaten track on the strength of his own
+judgment. But not the less is the beaten track to be condemned, and
+abandoned, and abolished, if such be in any way possible. Beauty is
+good in all things; and I cannot but think that those old Venetian
+senators, and Florentine men of Council, owed somewhat of their
+country's pride and power to the manner in which they clipped their
+beards and wore their flowing garments.
+
+But an Englishman may still make himself brave when he goes forth
+into the hunting field. Custom there allows him colour, and garments
+that fit his limbs. Strength is the outward characteristic of
+manhood, and at the covert-side he may appear strong. Look at men as
+they walk along Fleet-street, and ask yourself whether any outward
+sign of manhood or strength can be seen there. And of gentle manhood
+outward dignity should be the trade mark. I will not say that such
+outward dignity is incompatible with a black hat and plaid trousers,
+for the eye instructed by habit will search out dignity for itself
+wherever it may truly exist, let it be hidden by what vile covering
+it may. But any man who can look well at his club, will look better
+as he clusters round the hounds; while many a one who is comely
+there, is mean enough as he stands on the hearth-rug before his club
+fire. In my mind men, like churches and books, and women too, should
+be brave, not mean, in their outward garniture.
+
+And Owen, as I have said, was brave as he walked into his
+dining-room. The sorrow which weighed on his heart had not wrinkled
+his brow, but had given him a set dignity of purpose. His tall
+figure, which his present dress allowed to be seen, was perfect in
+its symmetry of strength. His bright chestnut hair clustered round
+his forehead, and his eye shone like that of a hawk. They must have
+been wrong who said that he commonly spent his nights over the
+wine-cup. That pleasure always leaves its disgusting traces round
+the lips; and Owen Fitzgerald's lips were as full and lusty as
+Apollo's. Mollett, as he saw him, was stricken with envy. "If I
+could only get enough money out of this affair to look like that,"
+was his first thought, as his eye fell on the future heir; not
+understanding, poor wretch that he was, that all the gold of
+California could not bring him one inch nearer to the goal he aimed
+at. I think I have said before, that your silk purse will not get
+itself made out of that coarse material with which there are so
+many attempts to manufacture that article. And Mr. Prendergast
+rose from his chair when he saw him, with a respect that was
+almost involuntary. He had not heard men speak well of Owen
+Fitzgerald;--not that ill-natured things had been said by the family
+at Castle Richmond, but circumstances had prevented the possibility
+of their praising him. If a relative or friend be spoken of without
+praise, he is, in fact, censured. From what he had heard he had
+certainly not expected a man who would look so noble as did the
+owner of Hap House, who now came forward to ask him his business.
+
+Both Mr. Prendergast and Aby Mollett rose at the same time. Since
+the arrival of the latter gentleman, Aby had been wondering who he
+might be, but no idea that he was that lawyer from Castle Richmond
+had entered his head. That he was a stranger like himself, Aby saw;
+but he did not connect him with his own business. Indeed he had not
+yet realized the belief, though his father had done so, that the
+truth would be revealed by those at Castle Richmond to him at Hap
+House. His object now was that the old gentleman should say his say
+and begone, leaving him to dispose of the other young man in the
+top-boots as best he might. But then, as it happened, that was also
+Mr. Prendergast's line of action.
+
+"Gentlemen," said Owen, "I beg your pardon for keeping you waiting;
+but the fact is that I am so seldom honoured in this way in a
+morning, that I was hardly ready. Donnellan, there's the tea; don't
+mind waiting. These gentlemen will perhaps join us." And then he
+looked hard at Aby, as though he trusted in Providence that no such
+profanation would be done to his tablecloth.
+
+"Thank you, I have breakfasted," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"And so 'ave I," said Aby, who had eaten a penny loaf in the car,
+and would have been delighted to sit down at that rich table. But he
+was a little beside himself, and not able to pluck up courage for
+such an effort.
+
+"I don't know whether you two gentlemen have come about the same
+business," said Owen, looking from one to the other.
+
+"No," said Mr. Prendergast, very confidently, but not very
+correctly. "I wish to speak to you, Mr. Fitzgerald, for a few
+minutes: but my business with you is quite private."
+
+"So is mine," said Aby, "very private; very private indeed."
+
+"Well, gentlemen, I have just half an hour in which to eat my
+breakfast, attend to business, get on my horse and leave the house.
+Out of that twenty-five minutes are very much at your service.
+Donnellan, I beg your pardon. Do pitch into the broiled bones while
+they are hot, never mind me. And now, gentlemen, if you will walk
+with me into the other room. First come first served: that I suppose
+should be the order." And he opened the door and stood with it ajar
+in his hand.
+
+"I will wait, Mr. Fitzgerald, if you please," said Mr. Prendergast;
+and as he spoke he motioned Mollett with his hand to go to the door.
+
+"Oh! I can wait, sir, I'd rather wait, sir. I would indeed," said
+Aby. "My business is a little particular, and if you'll go on, sir,
+I'll take up with the gen'leman as soon as you've done, sir."
+
+But Mr. Prendergast was accustomed to have his own way. "I should
+prefer that you should go first, sir. And to tell the truth, Mr.
+Fitzgerald, what I have to say to you will take some time. It is of
+much importance, to yourself and to others; and I fear that you will
+probably find that it will detain you from your amusement to-day."
+
+Owen looked black as he heard this. The hounds were going to draw a
+covert of his own; and he was not in the habit of remaining away
+from the drawing of any coverts belonging to himself or others, on
+any provocation whatever. "That will be rather hard," said he,
+"considering that I do not know any more than the man in the moon
+what you've come about."
+
+"You shall be the sole judge yourself, sir, of the importance of my
+business with you," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"Well, Mr.--I forget your name," said Owen.
+
+"My name's Mollett," said Aby. Whereupon Mr. Prendergast looked up
+at him very sharply, but he said nothing.--He said nothing, but he
+looked very sharply indeed. He now knew well who this man was, and
+guessed with tolerable accuracy the cause of his visit. But,
+nevertheless, at the moment he said nothing.
+
+"Come along, then, Mr. Mollett. I hope your affair is not likely to
+be a very long one also. Perhaps you'll excuse my having a cup of
+tea sent in to me as you talk to me. There is nothing like saving
+time when such very important business is on the tapis. Donnellan,
+send Thady in with a cup of tea, like a good fellow. Now, Mr.
+Mollett."
+
+Mr. Mollett rose slowly from his chair, and followed his host. He
+would have given all he possessed in the world, and that was very
+little, to have had the coast clear. But in such an emergency, what
+was he to do? By the time he had reached the door of the
+drawing-room, he had all but made up his mind to tell Fitzgerald
+that, seeing there was so much other business on hand this morning
+at Hap House, this special piece of business of his must stand over.
+But then, how could he go back to Cork empty-handed? So he followed
+Owen into the room, and there opened his budget with what courage he
+had left to him.
+
+Captain Donnellan, as he employed himself on the broiled bones,
+twice invited Mr. Prendergast to assist him; but in vain. Donnellan
+remained there, waiting for Owen, till eleven; and then got on his
+horse. "You'll tell Fitzgerald, will you, that I've started? He'll
+see nothing of to-day's hunt; that's clear."
+
+"I don't think he will," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIV
+
+AFTER BREAKFAST AT HAP HOUSE
+
+
+"I don't think he will," said Mr. Prendergast; and as he spoke,
+Captain Donnellan's ear could detect that there was something
+approaching to sarcasm in the tone of the old man's voice. The
+Captain was quite sure that his friend would not be even at the heel
+of the hunt that day; and without further compunction proceeded to
+fasten his buckskin gloves round his wrists. The meet was so near to
+them, that they had both intended to ride their own hunters from the
+door; and the two nags were now being led up and down upon the
+gravel.
+
+But at this moment a terrible noise was heard to take place in the
+hall. There was a rush and crushing there which made even Mr.
+Prendergast to jump from his chair, and drove Captain Donnellan to
+forget his gloves and run to the door.
+
+It was as though all the winds of heaven were being driven down the
+passage, and as though each separate wind was shod with heavy-heeled
+boots. Captain Donnellan ran to the door, and Mr. Prendergast with
+slower steps followed him. When it was opened, Owen was to be seen
+in the hall, apparently in a state of great excitement; and the
+gentleman whom he had lately asked to breakfast,--he was to be seen
+also, in a position of unmistakable discomfort. He was at that
+moment proceeding, with the utmost violence, into a large round bed
+of bushes, which stood in the middle of the great sweep before the
+door of the house, his feet just touching the ground as he went; and
+then, having reached his bourne, he penetrated face foremost into
+the thicket, and in an instant disappeared. He had been kicked out
+of the house. Owen Fitzgerald had taken him by the shoulders, with a
+run along the passage and hall, and having reached the door, had
+applied the flat of his foot violently to poor Aby's back, and sent
+him flying down the stone steps. And now, as Captain Donnellan and
+Mr. Prendergast stood looking on, Mr. Mollett junior buried himself
+altogether out of sight among the shrubs.
+
+"You have done for that fellow, at any rate, Owen," said Captain
+Donnellan, glancing for a moment at Mr. Prendergast. "I should say
+that he will never get out of that alive."
+
+"Not if he wait till I pick him out," said Owen, breathing very hard
+after his exertion. "An infernal scoundrel! And now, Mr.
+Prendergast, if you are ready, sir, I am." It was as much as he
+could do to finish these few words with that sang froid which he
+desired to assume, so violent was his attempt at breathing after his
+late exercise.
+
+It was impossible not to conceive the idea that, as one disagreeable
+visitor had been disposed of in a somewhat summary fashion, so might
+be the other also. Mr. Prendergast did not look like a man who was
+in the habit of leaving gentlemen's houses in the manner just now
+adopted by Mr. Mollett; but nevertheless, as they had come together,
+both unwished for and unwelcome, Captain Donnellan did for a moment
+bethink himself whether there might not be more of such fun, if he
+remained there on the spot. At any rate, it would not do for him to
+go to the hunt while such deeds as these were being done. It might
+be that his assistance would be wanted.
+
+Mr. Prendergast smiled, with a saturnine and somewhat bitter
+smile--the nearest approach to a laugh in which he was known to
+indulge,--for the same notion came also into his head. "He has
+disposed of him, and now he is thinking how he will dispose of me."
+Such was Mr. Prendergast's thought about the matter; and that made
+him smile. And then, too, he was pleased at what he had seen. That
+this Mollett was the son of that other Mollett, with whom he had
+been closeted at Castle Richmond, was plain enough; it was plain
+enough also to him, used as he was to trace out in his mind the
+courses of action which men would follow, that Mollett junior,
+having heard of his father's calamitous failure at Castle Richmond,
+had come down to Hap House to see what he could make out of the
+hitherto unconscious heir. It had been matter of great doubt with
+Mr. Prendergast, when he first heard young Mollett's name mentioned,
+whether or no he would allow him to make his attempt. He, Mr.
+Prendergast, could by a word have spoilt the game; but acting, as he
+was forced to act, on the spur of the moment, he resolved to permit
+Mr. Mollett junior to play out his play. He would be yet in time to
+prevent any ill result to Mr. Fitzgerald, should that gentleman be
+weak enough to succumb to any such ill results. As things had now
+turned out Mr. Prendergast rejoiced that Mr. Mollett junior had been
+permitted to play out his play. "And now, Mr. Prendergast, if you
+are ready, I am," said Owen.
+
+"Perhaps we had better first pick up the gentleman among the trees,"
+said Mr. Prendergast. And he and Captain Donnellan went down into
+the bushes.
+
+"Do as you please about that," said Owen. "I have touched him once
+and shall not touch him again." And he walked back into the
+dining-room.
+
+One of the grooms who were leading the horses had now gone to the
+assistance of the fallen hero; and as Captain Donnellan also had
+already penetrated as far as Aby's shoulders, Mr. Prendergast,
+thinking that he was not needed, returned also to the house. "I hope
+he is not seriously hurt," he said.
+
+"Not he," said Owen. "Those sort of men are as used to be kicked, as
+girls are to be kissed; and it comes as naturally to them. But
+anything short of having his bones broken will be less than he
+deserves."
+
+"May I ask what was the nature of his offence?"
+
+Owen remained silent for a moment, looking his guest full in the
+face. "Well; not exactly," said he. "He has been talking of people
+of whom he knows nothing, but it would not be well for me to repeat
+what he has said to a perfect stranger."
+
+"Quite right, Mr. Fitzgerald; it would not be well. But there can be
+no harm in my repeating it to you. He came here to get money from
+you for certain tidings which he brought; tidings which if true
+would be of great importance to you. As I take it, however, he has
+altogether failed in his object."
+
+"And how do you come to know all this, sir?"
+
+"Merely from having heard that man mention his own name. I also have
+come with the same tidings; and as I ask for no money for
+communicating them, you may believe them to be true on my telling."
+
+"What tidings?" asked Owen, with a frown, and an angry jerk in his
+voice. No remotest notion had yet come in upon his mind that there
+was any truth in the story that had been told him. He had looked
+upon it all as a lie, and had regarded Mollett as a sorry knave who
+had come to him with a poor and low attempt at raising a few pounds.
+And even now he did not believe. Mr. Prendergast's words had been
+too sudden to produce belief of so great a fact, and his first
+thought was that an endeavour was being made to fool him.
+
+"Those tidings which that man has told you," said Mr. Prendergast,
+solemnly. "That you should not have believed them from him shows
+only your discretion. But from me you may believe them. I have come
+from Castle Richmond, and am here as a messenger from Sir
+Thomas,--from Sir Thomas and from his son. When the matter became
+clear to them both, then it was felt that you also should be made
+acquainted with it."
+
+Owen Fitzgerald now sat down, and looked up into the lawyer's face,
+staring at him. I may say that the power of saying much was for the
+moment taken away from him by the words that he heard. What! was it
+really possible that that title, that property, that place of honour
+in the country was to be his when one frail old man should drop
+away? And then again was it really true that all this immeasurable
+misery was to fall--had fallen--upon that family whom he had once
+known so well? It was but yesterday that he had been threatening all
+manner of evil to his cousin Herbert; and had his threats been
+proved true so quickly? But there was no shadow of triumph in his
+feelings. Owen Fitzgerald was a man of many faults. He was reckless,
+passionate, prone to depreciate the opinion of others, extravagant
+in his thoughts and habits, ever ready to fight, both morally and
+physically, those who did not at a moment's notice agree with him.
+He was a man who would at once make up his mind that the world was
+wrong when the world condemned him, and who would not in compliance
+with any argument allow himself to be so. But he was not avaricious,
+nor cruel, nor self-seeking, nor vindictive. In his anger he could
+pronounce all manner of ill things against his enemy, as he had
+pronounced some ill things against Herbert; but it was not in him to
+keep up a sustained wish that those ill things should really come to
+pass. This news which he now heard, and which he did not yet fully
+credit, struck him with awe, but created no triumph in his bosom. He
+realized the catastrophe as it affected his cousins of Castle
+Richmond rather than as it affected himself.
+
+"Do you mean to say that Lady Fitzgerald--" and then he stopped
+himself. He had not the courage to ask the question which was in his
+mind. Could it really be the case that Lady Fitzgerald,--that she
+whom all the world had so long honoured under that name, was in
+truth the wife of that man's father,--of the father of that wretch
+whom he had just spurned from his house? The tragedy was so deep
+that he could not believe in it.
+
+"We fear that it is so, Mr. Fitzgerald," said Mr. Prendergast. "That
+it certainly is so I cannot say. And therefore, if I may take the
+liberty to give you counsel, I would advise you not to make too
+certain of this change in your prospects."
+
+"Too certain!" said he, with a bitter laugh. "Do you suppose then
+that I would wish to see all this ruin accomplished? Heavens and
+earth! Lady Fitzgerald--! I cannot believe it."
+
+And then Captain Donnellan also returned to the room. "Fitzgerald,"
+said he, "what the mischief are we to do with this fellow? He says
+that he can't walk, and he bleeds from his face like a pig."
+
+"What fellow? Oh, do what you like with him. Here: give him a pound
+note, and let him go to the d----. And Donnellan, for heaven's sake
+go to Cecilstown at once. Do not wait for me. I have business that
+will keep me here all day."
+
+"But I do not know what to do with this fellow that's bleeding,"
+said the captain, piteously, as he took the proffered note. "If he
+puts up with a pound note for what you've done to him, he's softer
+than what I take him for."
+
+"He will be very glad to be allowed to escape without being given up
+to the police," said Mr. Prendergast.
+
+"But I don't know what to do with him," said Captain Donnellan. "He
+says that he can't stand."
+
+"Then lay him down on the dunghill," said Owen Fitzgerald; "but for
+heaven's sake do not let him interrupt me. And, Donnellan, you will
+altogether lose the day if you stay any longer." Whereupon the
+captain, seeing that in very truth he was not wanted, did take
+himself off, casting as he went one farewell look on Aby as he lay
+groaning on the turf on the far side of the tuft of bushes.
+
+"He's kilt intirely, I'm thinking, yer honor," said Thady, who was
+standing over him on the other side.
+
+"He'll come to life again before dinner-time," said the Captain.
+
+"Oh, in course he'll do that, yer honor," said Thady; and then added
+sotto voce, to himself, as the captain rode down the avenue, "Faix,
+an' I don't know about that. Shure an' it's the masther has a heavy
+hand." And then Thady stood for a while perplexed, endeavouring to
+reanimate Aby by a sight of the pound note which he held out visibly
+between his thumb and fingers.
+
+And now Mr. Prendergast and Owen were again alone. "And what am I to
+do?" said Owen, after a pause of a minute or two; and he asked the
+question with a serious, solemn voice.
+
+"Just for the present--for the next day or two--I think that you
+should do nothing. As soon as the first agony of this time is over
+at Castle Richmond, I think that Herbert should see you. It would be
+very desirable that he and you should take in concert such
+proceedings as will certainly become necessary. The absolute proof
+of the truth of this story must be obtained. You understand, I hope,
+Mr. Fitzgerald, that the case still admits of doubt."
+
+Owen nodded his head impatiently, as though it were needless on the
+part of Mr. Prendergast to insist upon this. He did not wish to take
+it for true a moment sooner than was necessary.
+
+"It is my duty to give you this caution. Many lawyers--I presume you
+know that I am a lawyer--"
+
+"I did not know it," said Owen; "but it makes no difference."
+
+"Thank you; that's very kind," said Mr. Prendergast; but the sarcasm
+was altogether lost upon his hearer. "Some lawyers, as I was saying,
+would in such a case have advised their clients to keep all their
+suspicions, nay all their knowledge, to themselves. Why play the
+game of an adversary? they would ask. But I have thought it better
+that we should have no adversary."
+
+"And you will have none," said Owen; "none in me, at least."
+
+"I am much gratified in so perceiving, and in having such evidence
+that my advice has not been indiscreet. It occurred to me that if
+you received the first intimation of these circumstances from other
+sources, you would be bound on your own behalf to employ an agent to
+look after your own interests."
+
+"I should have done nothing of the kind," said Owen.
+
+"Ah, but, my dear young friend, in such a case it would have been
+your duty to do so."
+
+"Then I should have neglected my duty. And do you tell Herbert this
+from me, that let the truth be what it may, I shall never interrupt
+him in his title or his property. It is not there that I shall look
+either for justice or revenge. He will understand what I mean."
+
+But Mr. Prendergast did not, by any means; nor did he enter into the
+tone of Owen Fitzgerald's mind. They were both just men, but just in
+an essentially different manner. The justice of Mr. Prendergast had
+come of thought and education. As a young man, when entering on his
+profession, he was probably less just than he was now. He had
+thought about matters of law and equity, till thought had shown to
+him the beauty of equity as it should be practised,--often by the
+aid of law, and not unfrequently in spite of law. Such was the
+justice of Mr. Prendergast. That of Owen Fitzgerald had come of
+impulse and nature, and was the justice of a very young man rather
+than of a very wise one. That title and property did not, as he
+felt, of justice belong to him, but to his cousin. What difference
+could it make in the true justice of things, whether or no that
+wretched man was still alive whom all the world had regarded as
+dead? In justice he ought to be dead. Now that this calamity of the
+man's life had fallen upon Sir Thomas and Lady Fitzgerald and his
+cousin Herbert, it would not be for him to aggravate it by seizing
+upon a heritage which might possibly accrue to him under the letter
+of the world's law, but which could not accrue to him under heaven's
+law. Such was the justice of Owen Fitzgerald; and we may say this of
+it in its dispraise, as comparing it with that other justice, that
+whereas that of Mr. Prendergast would wear for ever, through ages
+and ages, that other justice of Owen's would hardly have stood the
+pull of a ten years' struggle. When children came to him, would he
+not have thought of what might have been theirs by right; and then
+have thought of what ought to be theirs by right; and so on?
+
+But in speaking of justice, he had also spoken of revenge, and Mr.
+Prendergast was altogether in the dark. What revenge? He did not
+know that poor Owen had lost a love, and that Herbert had found it.
+In the midst of all the confused thoughts which this astounding
+intelligence had brought upon him, Owen still thought of his love.
+There Herbert had robbed him--robbed him by means of his wealth; and
+in that matter he desired justice--justice or revenge. He wanted
+back his love. Let him have that and Herbert might yet be welcome to
+his title and estates.
+
+Mr. Prendergast remained there for some half-hour longer, explaining
+what ought to be done, and how it ought to be done. Of course he
+combated that idea of Owen's, that the property might be allowed to
+remain in the hands of the wrong heir. Had that been consonant with
+his ideas of justice he would not have made his visit to Hap House
+this morning. Right must have its way, and if it should be that Lady
+Fitzgerald's marriage with Sir Thomas had not been legal, Owen, on
+Sir Thomas's death, must become Sir Owen, and Herbert could not
+become Sir Herbert. So much to the mind of Mr. Prendergast was as
+clear as crystal. Let justice be done, even though these Castle
+Richmond heavens should fall in ruins.
+
+And then he took his departure, leaving Owen to his solitude, much
+perplexed. "And where is that man?" Mr. Prendergast asked, as he got
+on to his car.
+
+"Bedad thin, yer honor, he's very bad intirely. He's jist sitthing
+over the kitchen fire, moaning and croning this way and that, but
+sorrow a word he's spoke since the masther hoisted him out o' the
+big hall door. And thin for blood--why, saving yer honer's presence,
+he's one mash of gore."
+
+"You'd better wash his face for him, and give him a little tea,"
+said Mr. Prendergast, and then he drove away.
+
+And strange ideas floated across Owen Fitzgerald's brain as he sat
+there alone, in his hunting gear, leaning on the still covered
+breakfast-table. They floated across his brain backwards and
+forwards, and at last remained there, taking almost the form of a
+definite purpose. He would make a bargain with Herbert, let each of
+them keep that which was fairly his own; let Herbert have all the
+broad lands of Castle Richmond; let him have the title, the seat in
+parliament, and the county honour; but for him, Owen--let him have
+Clara Desmond. He desired nothing that was not fairly his own; but
+as his own he did regard her, and without her he did not know how to
+face the future of his life. And in suggesting this arrangement to
+himself, he did not altogether throw over her feelings; he did take
+into account her heart, though he did not take into account her
+worldly prospects. She had loved him--him--Owen; and he would not
+teach himself to believe that she did not love him still. Her mother
+had been too powerful for her, and she had weakly yielded, but as to
+her heart--Owen could not bring himself to believe that that was
+gone from him.
+
+They two would make a bargain,--he and his cousin. Honour and
+renown, and the money and the title would be everything to his
+cousin. Herbert had been brought up to expect these things, and all
+the world around him had expected them for him. It would be terrible
+to him to find himself robbed of them. But the loss of Clara Desmond
+was equally terrible to Owen Fitzgerald. He allowed his heart to
+fill itself with a romantic sense of honour, teaching him that it
+behoved him as a man not to give up his love. Without her he would
+live disgraced in his own estimation; but who would not think the
+better of him for refraining from the possession of those Castle
+Richmond acres? Yes; he would make a bargain with Herbert. Who was
+there in the world to deny his right to do so?
+
+As he sat revolving these things in his mind, he suddenly heard a
+rushing sound, as of many horsemen down the avenue, and going to the
+window, he saw two or three leading men of the hunt, accompanied by
+the grey-haired old huntsman; and through and about and under the
+horsemen were the dogs, running in and out of the laurels which
+skirted the road, with their noses down, giving every now and then
+short yelps as they caught up the uncertain scent from the leaves on
+the ground, and hurried on upon the trail of their game.
+
+"Yo ho! to him, Messenger; hark to him Maybird; good bitch,
+Merrylass. He's down here, gen'lemen, and he'll never get away
+alive. He came to a bad place when he looked out for going to ground
+anywhere near Mr. Owen."
+
+And then there came, fast trotting down through the other horsemen,
+making his way eagerly to the front, a stout heavy man, with a
+florid handsome face and eager eye. He might be some fifty years of
+age, but no lad there of three-and-twenty was so anxious and
+impetuous as he. He was riding a large-boned, fast-trotting bay
+horse, that pressed on as eagerly as his rider. As he hurried
+forward all made way for him, till he was close to the shrubs in the
+front of the house.
+
+"Bless my soul, gentlemen," he said, in an angry voice, "how, in the
+name of all that's good, are hounds to hunt if you press them down
+the road in that way? By heavens, Barry, you are enough to drive a
+man wild. Yoicks, Merrylass! there it is, Pat;"--Pat was the
+huntsman--"outside the low wall there, down towards the river." This
+was Sam O'Grady, the master of the Duhallow hounds, the god of
+Owen's idolatry. No better fellow ever lived, and no master of
+hounds, so good; such at least was the opinion common among Duhallow
+sportsmen.
+
+"Yes, yer honer,--he did skirt round there, I knows that; but he's
+been among them laurels at the bottom, and he'll be about the place
+and outhouses somewhere. There's a drain here that I knows on, and
+he knows on. But Mr. Owen, he knows on it too; and there ain't a
+chance for him." So argued Pat, the Duhallow huntsman, the
+experienced craft of whose aged mind enabled him to run counter to
+the cutest dodges of the cutest fox in that and any of the three
+neighbouring baronies.
+
+And now the sweep before the door was crowded with red coats; and
+Owen, looking from his dining-room window, felt that he must take
+some step. As an ordinary rule, had the hunt thus drifted near his
+homestead, he would have been off his horse and down among his
+bottles, sending up sherry and cherry-brandy; and there would have
+been comfortable drink in plenty, and cold meat, perhaps, not in
+plenty; and every one would have been welcome in and out of the
+house. But now there was that at his heart which forbade him to mix
+with the men who knew him so well, and among whom he was customarily
+so loudly joyous. Dressed as he was, he could not go among them
+without explaining why he had remained at home; and as to that, he
+felt that he was not able to give any explanation at the present
+moment.
+
+"What's the matter with Owen?" said one fellow to Captain Donnellan.
+
+"Upon my word I hardly know. Two chaps came to him this morning,
+before he was up; about business, they said. He nearly murdered one
+of them out of hand; and I believe that he's locked up somewhere
+with the other this minute."
+
+But in the mean time a servant came up to Mr. O'Grady, and, touching
+his hat, asked the master of the hunt to go into the house for a
+moment; and then Mr. O'Grady, dismounting, entered in through the
+front door. He was only there two minutes, for his mind was still
+outside, among the laurels, with the fox; but as he put his foot
+again into the stirrup, he said to those around him that they must
+hurry away, and not disturb Owen Fitzgerald that day. It may,
+therefore, easily be imagined that the mystery would spread quickly
+through that portion of the county of Cork.
+
+They must hurry away;--but not before they could give an account of
+their fox. Neither for gods nor men must he be left, as long as his
+skin was whole above ground. There is an importance attaching to the
+pursuit of a fox, which gives it a character quite distinct from
+that of any other amusement which men follow in these realms. It
+justifies almost anything that men can do, and that at any place and
+in any season. There is about it a sanctity which forbids
+interruption, and makes its votaries safe under any circumstances of
+trespass or intrusion. A man in a hunting county who opposes the
+county hunt must be a misanthrope, willing to live in seclusion,
+fond of being in Coventry, and in love with the enmity of his
+fellow-creatures. There are such men, but they are regarded as
+lepers by those around them. All this adds to the nobleness of the
+noble sport, and makes it worthy of a man's energies.
+
+And then the crowd of huntsmen hurried round from the front of the
+house to a paddock at the back, and then again through the stable
+yard to the front. The hounds were about--here, there, and
+everywhere, as any one ignorant of the craft would have said, but
+still always on the scent of that doomed beast. From one thicket to
+another he tried to hide himself, but the moist leaves of the
+underwood told quickly of his whereabouts. He tried every hole and
+cranny about the house, but every hole and corner had been stopped
+by Owen's jealous care. He would have lived disgraced for ever in
+his own estimation, had a fox gone to ground anywhere about his
+domicile. At last a loud whoop was heard just in front of the hall
+door. The poor fox, with his last gasp of strength, had betaken
+himself to the thicket before the door, and there the hounds had
+killed him, at the very spot on which Aby Mollett had fallen.
+
+Standing well back from the window, still thinking of Clara Desmond,
+Owen Fitzgerald saw the fate of the hunted animal; he saw the pate
+and tail severed from the carcase by old Pat, and the body thrown to
+the hounds,--a ceremony over which he had presided so many scores of
+times; and then, when the hounds had ceased to growl over the bloody
+fragments, he saw the hunt move away, back along the avenue to the
+high road. All this he saw, but still he was thinking of Clara
+Desmond.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXV
+
+A MUDDY WALK ON A WET MORNING
+
+
+All that day of the hunt was passed very quietly at Castle Richmond.
+Herbert did not once leave the house, having begged Mr. Somers to
+make his excuse at a Relief Committee which it would have been his
+business to attend. A great portion of the day he spent with his
+father, who lay all but motionless, in a state that was apparently
+half comatose. During all those long hours very little was said
+between them about this tragedy of their family. Why should more be
+said now; now that the worst had befallen them--all that worst, to
+hide which Sir Thomas had endured such superhuman agony? And then
+four or five times during the day he went to his mother, but with
+her he did not stay long. To her he could hardly speak upon any
+subject, for to her as yet the story had not been told.
+
+And she, when he thus came to her from time to time, with a soft
+word or two, or a softer kiss, would ask him no question. She knew
+that he had learned the whole, and knew also from the solemn cloud
+on his brow that that whole must be very dreadful. Indeed we may
+surmise that her woman's heart had by this time guessed somewhat of
+the truth. But she would inquire of no one. Jones, she was sure,
+knew it all, but she did not ask a single question of her servant.
+It would be told to her when it was fitting. Why should she move in
+the matter?
+
+Whenever Herbert entered her room she tried to receive him with
+something of a smile. It was clear enough that she was always glad
+of his coming, and that she made some little show of welcoming him.
+A book was always put away, very softly and by the slightest motion;
+but Herbert well knew what that book was, and whence his mother
+sought that strength which enabled her to live through such an
+ordeal as this.
+
+And his sisters were to be seen, moving slowly about the house like
+the very ghosts of their former selves. Their voices were hardly
+heard; no ring of customary laughter ever came from the room in
+which they sat, when they passed their brother in the house they
+hardly dared to whisper to him. As to sitting down at table now with
+Mr. Prendergast, that effort was wholly abandoned; they kept
+themselves even from the sound of his footsteps.
+
+Aunt Letty perhaps spoke more than the others, but what could she
+speak to the purpose? "Herbert," she once said, as she caught him
+close by the door of the library and almost pulled him into the
+room--"Herbert, I charge you to tell me what all this is!"
+
+"I can tell you nothing, dear aunt, nothing;--nothing as yet."
+
+"But, Herbert, tell me this; is it about my sister?" For very many
+years past Aunt Letty had always called Lady Fitzgerald her sister.
+
+"I can tell you nothing;--nothing to-day."
+
+"Then, to-morrow."
+
+"I do not know--we must let Mr. Prendergast manage this matter as he
+will. I have taken nothing on myself, Aunt Letty--nothing."
+
+"Then I tell you what, Herbert; it will kill me. It will kill us
+all, as it is killing your father and your darling mother. I tell
+you that it is killing her fast. Human nature cannot bear it. For
+myself I could endure anything if I were trusted." And sitting down
+in one of the high-backed library chairs she burst into a flood of
+tears; a sight which, as regarded Aunt Letty, Herbert had never seen
+before.
+
+What if they all died? thought Herbert to himself in the bitterness
+of the moment. There was that in store for some of them which was
+worse than death. What business had Aunt Letty to talk of her
+misery? Of course she was wretched, as they all were; but how could
+she appreciate the burden that was on his back? What was Clara
+Desmond to her?
+
+Shortly after noon Mr. Prendergast was back at the house; but he
+slunk up to his room, and no one saw anything of him. At half-past
+six he came down, and Herbert constrained himself to sit at the
+table while dinner was served; and so the day passed away. One more
+day only Mr. Prendergast was to stay at Castle Richmond; and then,
+if, as he expected, certain letters should reach him on that
+morning, he was to start for London late on the following day. It
+may well be imagined that he was not desirous of prolonging his
+visit.
+
+Early on the following morning Herbert started for a long solitary
+walk. On that day Mr. Prendergast was to tell everything to his
+mother, and it was determined between them that her son should not
+be in the house during the telling. In the evening, when he came
+home, he was to see her. So he started on his walk, resolving some
+other things also in his mind before he went. He would reach Desmond
+Court before he returned home that day, and let the two ladies there
+know the fate that was before them. Then, after that, they might let
+him know what was to be his fate;--but on this head he would not
+hurry them.
+
+So he started on his walk, resolving to go round by Gortnaclough on
+his way to Desmond Court, and then to return home from that place.
+The road would be more than twenty long Irish miles; but he felt
+that the hard work would be of service. It was instinct rather than
+thought which taught him that it would be good for him to put some
+strain on the muscles of his body, and thus relieve the muscles of
+his mind. If his limbs could become thoroughly tired,--thoroughly
+tired so that he might wish to rest--then he might hope that for a
+moment he might cease to think of all this sorrow which encompassed
+him.
+
+So he started on his walk, taking with him a thick cudgel and his
+own thoughts. He went away across the demesne and down into the road
+that led away by Gortnaclough and Boherbue towards Castleisland and
+the wilds of county Kerry. As he went, the men about the place
+refrained from speaking to him, for they all knew that bad news had
+come to the big house. They looked at him with lowered eyes and with
+tenderness in their hearts, for they loved the very name of
+Fitzgerald. The love which a poor Irishman feels for the gentleman
+whom he regards as his master--"his masther," though he has probably
+never received from him, in money, wages for a day's work, and in
+all his intercourse has been the man who has paid money and not the
+man who received it--the love which he nevertheless feels, if he has
+been occasionally looked on with a smiling face and accosted with a
+kindly word, is astonishing to an Englishman. I will not say that
+the feeling is altogether good. Love should come of love. Where
+personal love exists on one side, and not even personal regard on
+the other, there must be some mixture of servility. That unbounded
+respect for human grandeur cannot be altogether good; for human
+greatness, if the greatness be properly sifted, it may be so.
+
+He got down into the road, and went forth upon his journey at a
+rapid pace. The mud was deep upon the way, but he went through the
+thickest without a thought of it. He had not been out long before
+there came on a cold, light, drizzling rain, such a rain as
+gradually but surely makes its way into the innermost rag of a man's
+clothing, running up the inside of his waterproof coat, and
+penetrating by its perseverance the very folds of his necktie. Such
+cold, drizzling rain is the commonest phase of hard weather during
+Irish winters, and those who are out and about get used to it and
+treat it tenderly. They are euphemistical as to the weather, calling
+it hazy and soft, and never allowing themselves to carry bad
+language on such a subject beyond the word dull. And yet at such a
+time one breathes the rain and again exhales it, and become as it
+were oneself a water spirit, assuming an aqueous fishlike nature
+into one's inner fibres. It must be acknowledged that a man does
+sometimes get wet in Ireland; but then a wetting there brings no
+cold in the head, no husky voice, no need for multitudinous
+pocket-handkerchiefs, as it does here in this land of catarrhs. It
+is the east wind and not the rain that kills; and of east wind in
+the south of Ireland they know nothing.
+
+But Herbert walked on quite unmindful of the mist, swinging his
+thick stick in his hand, and ever increasing his pace as he went. He
+was usually a man careful of such things, but it was nothing to him
+now whether he were wet or dry. His mind was so full of the
+immediate circumstances of his destiny that he could not think of
+small external accidents. What was to be his future life in this
+world, and how was he to fight the battle that was now before him?
+That was the question which he continually asked himself, and yet
+never succeeded in answering. How was he to come down from the
+throne on which early circumstances had placed him, and hustle and
+struggle among the crowd for such approach to other thrones as his
+sinews and shoulders might procure for him? If he had been only born
+to the struggle, he said to himself, how easy and pleasant it would
+have been to him! But to find himself thus cast out from his place
+by an accident--cast out with the eyes of all the world upon him; to
+be talked of, and pointed at, and pitied; to have little aids
+offered him by men whom he regarded as beneath him--all this was
+terribly sore, and the burden was almost too much for his strength.
+"I do not care for the money," he said to himself a dozen times; and
+in saying so he spoke in one sense truly. But he did care for things
+which money buys; for outward respect, permission to speak with
+authority among his fellow-men, for power and place, and the feeling
+that he was prominent in his walk of life. To be in advance of other
+men, that is the desire which is strongest in the hearts of all
+strong men; and in that desire how terrible a fall had he not
+received from this catastrophe!
+
+And what were they all to do, he and his mother and his sisters? How
+were they to act--now, at once? In what way were they to carry
+themselves when this man of law and judgment should have gone from
+them? For himself, his course of action must depend much upon the
+word which might be spoken to him to-day at Desmond Court. There
+would still be a drop of comfort left at the bottom of his cup if he
+might be allowed to hope there. But in truth he feared greatly. What
+the countess would say to him he thought he could foretell; what it
+would behove him to say himself--in matter, though not in
+words--that he knew well. Would not the two sayings tally well
+together? and could it be right for him even to hope that the love
+of a girl of seventeen should stand firm against her mother's will,
+when her lover himself could not dare to press his suit? And then
+another reflection pressed on his mind sorely. Clara had already
+given up one poor lover at her mother's instance; might she not
+resume that lover, also at her mother's instance, now that he was no
+longer poor? What if Owen Fitzgerald should take from him
+everything!
+
+And so he walked on through the mud and rain, always swinging his
+big stick. Perhaps, after all, the worst of it was over with him,
+when he could argue with himself in this way. It is the first plunge
+into the cold water that gives the shock. We may almost say that
+every human misery will cease to be miserable if it be duly faced;
+and something is done towards conquering our miseries, when we face
+them in any degree, even if not with due courage. Herbert had taken
+his plunge into the deep, dark, cold, comfortless pool of
+misfortune; and he felt that the waters around him were very cold.
+But the plunge had been taken, and the worst, perhaps, was gone by.
+
+As he approached near to Gortnaclough, he came upon one of those
+gangs of road-destroyers who were now at work everywhere, earning
+their pittance of "yellow meal" with a pickaxe and a wheelbarrow. In
+some sort or other the labourers had been got to their work.
+Gangsmen there were with lists, who did see, more or less
+accurately, that the men, before they received their sixpence or
+eightpence for their day's work, did at any rate pass their day with
+some sort of tool in their hands. And consequently the surface of
+the hill began to disappear, and there were chasms in the orad,
+which caused those who travelled on wheels to sit still, staring
+across with angry eyes, and sometimes to apostrophize the doer of
+these deeds with very naughty words. The doer was the Board of
+Works, or the "Board" as it was familiarly termed; and were it not
+that those ill words must have returned to the bosoms which vented
+them, and have flown no further, no Board could ever have been so
+terribly curse-laden. To find oneself at last utterly stopped, after
+proceeding with great strain to one's horse for half a mile through
+an artificial quagmire of slush up to the wheelbox, is harassing to
+the customary traveller; and men at that crisis did not bethink
+themselves quite so frequently as they should have done, that a
+people perishing from famine is more harassing.
+
+But Herbert was not on wheels, and was proceeding through the slush
+and across the chasm, regardless of it all, when he was stopped by
+some of the men. All the land thereabouts was Castle Richmond
+property; and it was not probable that the young master of it all
+would be allowed to pass through some two score of his own tenantry
+without greetings, and petitions, and blessings, and complaints.
+
+"Faix, yer honer, thin, Mr. Herbert," said one man, standing at the
+bottom of the hill, with the half-filled wheelbarrow still hanging
+in his hands--an Englishman would have put down the barrow while he
+was speaking, making some inner calculation about the waste of his
+muscles; but an Irishman would despise himself for such low
+economy--"Faix, thin, yer honer, Mr. Herbert; an' it's yourself is a
+sight good for sore eyes. May the heavens be your bed, for it's you
+is the frind to a poor man."
+
+"How are you, Pat?" said Herbert, without intending to stop. "How
+are you, Mooney? I hope the work suits you all." And then he would
+at once have passed on, with his hat pressed down low over his brow.
+
+But this could be by no means allowed. In the first place, the
+excitement arising from the young master's presence was too valuable
+to be lost so suddenly; and then, when might again occur so
+excellent a time for some mention of their heavy grievances? Men
+whose whole amount of worldly good consists in a bare allowance of
+nauseous food, just sufficient to keep body and soul together, must
+be excused if they wish to utter their complaints to ears that can
+hear them.
+
+"Arrah, yer honer, thin, we're none on us very well, and how could
+we, with the male at a penny a pound?" said Pat.
+
+"Sorrow to it for male," said Mooney. "It's the worst vittles iver a
+man tooked into the inside of him. Saving yer honer's presence it's
+as much as I can do to raise the bare arm of me since the day I
+first began with the yally male."
+
+"It's as wake as cats we all is," said another, who from the weary
+way in which he dragged his limbs about certainly did not himself
+seem to be gifted with much animal strength.
+
+"And the childer is worse, yer honer," said a fourth. "The male is
+bad for them intirely. Saving yer honer's presence, their bellies is
+gone away most to nothing."
+
+"And there's six of us in family, yer honer," said Pat. "Six mouths
+to feed; and what's eight pennorth of yally male among such a lot as
+that, let alone the Sundays, when there's nothing?"
+
+"An' shure, Mr. Herbert," said another, a small man with a squeaking
+voice, whose rags of clothes hardly hung on to his body, "warn't I
+here with the other boys the last Friday as iver was? Ax Pat Condon
+else, yer honer; and yet when they comed to give out the wages, they
+sconced me of--." And so on. There were as many complaints to be
+made as there were men, if only he could bring himself to listen to
+them.
+
+On ordinary occasions Herbert would listen to them, and answer them,
+and give them, at any rate, the satisfaction which they derived from
+discoursing with him, if he could give them no other satisfaction.
+But now, on this day, with his own burden so heavy at his heart, he
+could not even do this. He could not think of their sorrows; his own
+sorrow seemed to him to be so much the heavier. So he passed on,
+running the gauntlet through them as best he might, and shaking them
+off from him, as they attempted to cling round his steps. Nothing is
+so powerful in making a man selfish as misfortune.
+
+And then he went on to Gortnaclough. He had not chosen his walk to
+this place with any fixed object, except this perhaps, that it
+enabled him to return home round by Desmond Court. It was one of the
+places at which a Relief Committee sat every fortnight, and there
+was a soup-kitchen here, which, however, had not been so successful
+as the one at Berryhill; and it was the place of residence selected
+by Father Barney's coadjutor. But in spite of all this, when Herbert
+found himself in the wretched, dirty, straggling, damp street of the
+village, he did not know what to do or where to betake himself. That
+every eye in Gortnaclough would be upon him was a matter of course.
+He could hardly turn round on his heel and retrace his steps through
+the village, as he would have to do in going to Desmond Court,
+without showing some pretext for his coming there; so he walked into
+the little shop which was attached to the soup-kitchen, and there he
+found the Rev. Mr. Columb Creagh, giving his orders to the little
+girl behind the counter.
+
+Herbert Fitzgerald was customarily very civil to the Roman Catholic
+priests around him,--somewhat more so, indeed, than seemed good to
+those very excellent ladies, Mrs. Townsend and Aunt Letty; but it
+always went against the grain with him to be civil to the Rev.
+Columb Creagh; and on this special day it would have gone against
+the grain with him to be civil to anybody. But the coadjutor knew
+his character, and was delighted to have an opportunity of talking
+to him, when he could do so without being snubbed either by Mr.
+Somers, the chairman, or by his own parish priest. Mr. Creagh had
+rejoiced much at the idea of forming one at the same council board
+with county magistrates and Protestant parsons; but the fruition of
+his promised delights had never quite reached his lips. He had been
+like Sancho Panza in his government; he had sat down to the grand
+table day after day, but had never yet been allowed to enjoy the
+rich dish of his own oratory. Whenever he had proposed to help
+himself, Mr. Somers or Father Barney had stopped his mouth. Now
+probably he might be able to say a word or two; and though the glory
+would not be equal to that of making a speech at the Committee,
+still it would be something to be seen talking on equal terms, and
+on affairs of state, to the young heir of Castle Richmond.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald! well, I declare! And how are you, sir?" And he took
+off his hat and bowed, and got hold of Herbert's hand, shaking it
+ruthlessly; and altogether he made him very disagreeable.
+
+Herbert, though his mind was not really intent on the subject, asked
+some question of the girl as to the amount of meal that had been
+sold, and desired to see the little passbook that they kept at the
+shop.
+
+"We are doing pretty well, Mr. Fitzgerald," said the coadjutor;
+"pretty well. I always keep my eye on, for fear things should go
+wrong, you know."
+
+"I don't think they'll do that," said Herbert.
+
+"No; I hope not. But it's always good to be on the safe side, you
+know. And to tell you the truth, I don't think we're altogether on
+the right tack about them shops. It's very hard on a poor woman--"
+
+Now, the fact was, though the Relief Committee at Gortnaclough was
+attended by magistrates, priests, and parsons, the shop there was
+Herbert Fitzgerald's own affair. It had been stocked with his or his
+father's money; the flour was sold without profit at his risk, and
+the rent of the house and wages of the woman who kept it came out of
+his own pocket-money. Under these circumstances he did not see cause
+why Mr. Creagh should interfere, and at the present moment was not
+well inclined to put up with such interference.
+
+"We do the best we can, Mr. Creagh," said he, interrupting the
+priest. "And no good will be done at such a time as this by
+unnecessary difficulties."
+
+"No, no, certainly not. But still I do think--" And Mr. Creagh was
+girding up his loins for eloquence, when he was again interrupted.
+
+"I am rather in a hurry to-day," said Herbert, "and therefore, if
+you please, we won't make any change now. Never mind the book
+to-day, Sally. Good day, Mr. Creagh." And so saying, he left the
+shop and walked rapidly back out of the village.
+
+The poor coadjutor was left alone at the shop-door, anathematizing
+in his heart the pride of all Protestants. He had been told that
+this Mr. Fitzgerald was different from others, that he was a man
+fond of priests and addicted to the "ould religion;" and so hearing,
+he had resolved to make the most of such an excellent disposition.
+But he was forced to confess to himself that they were all alike.
+Mr. Somers could not have been more imperious, nor Mr. Townsend more
+insolent.
+
+And then, through the still drizzling rain, Herbert walked on to
+Desmond Court. By the time that he reached the desolate-looking
+lodge at the demesne gate, he was nearly wet through, and was
+besmeared with mud up to his knees. But he had thought nothing of
+this as he walked along. His mind had been intent on the scene that
+was before him. In what words was he to break the news to Clara
+Desmond and her mother? and with what words would they receive the
+tidings? The former question he had by no means answered to his own
+satisfaction, when, all muddy and wet, he passed up to the house
+through that desolate gate.
+
+"Is Lady Desmond at home?" he asked of the butler. "Her ladyship is
+at home," said the grey-haired old man, with his blandest smile,
+"and so is Lady Clara." He had already learned to look on the heir
+of Castle Richmond as the coming saviour of the impoverished Desmond
+family.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVI
+
+COMFORTLESS
+
+
+"But, Mr. Herbert, yer honor, you're wet through and
+through--surely," said the butler, as soon as Fitzgerald was well
+inside the hall. Herbert muttered something about his being only
+damp, and that it did not signify. But it did signify,--very
+much,--in the butler's estimation. Whose being wet through could
+signify more; for was not Mr. Herbert to be a baronet, and to have
+the spending of twelve thousand a-year; and would he not be the
+future husband of Lady Clara? not signify indeed!
+
+"An' shure, Mr. Herbert, you haven't walked to Desmond Court this
+blessed morning. Tare an' ages! Well; there's no knowing what you
+young gentlemen won't do. But I'll see and get a pair of trousers of
+my Lord's ready for you in two minutes. Faix, and he's nearly as big
+as yourself, now, Mr. Herbert."
+
+But Herbert would hardly speak to him, and gave no assent whatever
+as to his proposition for borrowing the Earl's clothes. "I'll go in
+as I am," said he. And the old man looking into his face saw that
+there was something wrong. "Shure an' he ain't going to sthrike off
+now," said this Irish Caleb Balderstone to himself. He also as well
+as some others about Desmond Court had feared greatly that Lady
+Clara would throw herself away upon a poor lover.
+
+It was now past noon, and Fitzgerald pressed forward into the room
+in which Lady Clara usually sat. It was the same in which she had
+received Owen's visit, and here of a morning she was usually to be
+found alone; but on this occasion when he opened the door he found
+that her mother was with her. Since the day on which Clara had
+disposed of herself so excellently, the mother had spent more of her
+time with her daughter. Looking at Clara now through Herbert
+Fitzgerald's eyes, the Countess had began to confess to herself that
+her child did possess beauty and charm.
+
+She got up to greet her future son-in-law with a sweet smile and
+that charming quiet welcome with which a woman so well knows how to
+make her house pleasant to a man that is welcome to it. And Clara,
+not rising, but turning her head round and looking at him, greeted
+him also. He came forward and took both their hands, and it was not
+till he had held Clara's for half a minute in his own that they both
+saw that he was more than ordinarily serious. "I hope Sir Thomas is
+not worse," said Lady Desmond, with that voice of feigned interest
+which is so common. After all, if anything should happen to the poor
+old weak gentleman, might it not be as well?
+
+"My father has not been very well these last two days," he said.
+
+"I am so sorry," said Clara. "And your mother, Herbert?"
+
+"But, Herbert, how wet you are. You must have walked," said the
+Countess.
+
+Herbert, in a few dull words, said that he had walked. He had
+thought that the walk would be good for him, and he had not expected
+that it would be so wet. And then Lady Desmond, looking carefully
+into his face, saw that in truth he was very serious;--so much so
+that she knew that he had come there on account of his seriousness.
+But still his sorrow did not in any degree go to her heart. He was
+grieving doubtless for his father,--or his mother. The house at
+Castle Richmond was probably sad, because sickness and fear of death
+were there;--nay, perhaps death itself now hanging over some loved
+head. But what was this to her? She had had her own sorrows;--enough
+of them perhaps to account for her being selfish. So with a solemn
+face, but with nothing amiss about her heart, she again asked for
+tidings from Castle Richmond.
+
+"Do tell us," said Clara, getting up. "I am afraid Sir Thomas is
+very ill." The old baronet had been kind to her, and she did regard
+him. To her it was a sorrow to think that there should be any sorrow
+at Castle Richmond.
+
+"Yes; he is ill," said Herbert. "We have had a gentleman from London
+with us for the last few days--a friend of my father's. His name is
+Mr. Prendergast."
+
+"Is he a doctor?" asked the Countess.
+
+"No, not a doctor," said Herbert. "He is a lawyer."
+
+It was very hard for him to begin his story; and perhaps the more so
+in that he was wet through and covered with mud. He now felt cold
+and clammy, and began to have an idea that he should not be seated
+there in that room in such a guise. Clara, too, had instinctively
+learned from his face, and tone, and general bearirg that something
+truly was the matter. At other times when he had been there, since
+that day on which he had been accepted, he had been completely
+master of himself. Perhaps it had almost been deemed a fault in him
+that he had had none of the timidity or hesitation of a lover. He
+had seemed to feel, no doubt, that he, with his fortune and position
+at his back, need feel no scruple in accepting as his own the fair
+hand for which he had asked. But now--nothing could be more
+different from this than his manner was now.
+
+Lady Desmond was now surprised, though probably not as yet
+frightened. Why should a lawyer have come from London to visit Sir
+Thomas at a period of such illness? and why should Herbert have
+walked over to Desmond Court to tell them of this illness? There
+must be something in this lawyer's coming which was intended to bear
+in some way on her daughter's marriage. "But, Herbert," she said,
+"you are quite wet. Will you not put on some of Patrick's things?"
+
+"No, thank you," said he; "I shall not stay long. I shall soon have
+said what I have got to say."
+
+"But do, Herbert," said Clara. "I cannot bear to see you so
+uncomfortable. And then you will not be in such a hurry to go back."
+
+"Ill as my father is," said he, "I cannot stay long; but I have
+thought it my duty to come over and tell you--tell you what has
+happened at Castle Richmond."
+
+And now the countess was frightened. There was that in Herbert's
+tone of voice and the form of his countenance which was enough to
+frighten any woman. What had happened at Castle Richmond? what could
+have happened there to make necessary the presence of a lawyer, and
+at the same time thus to sadden her future son-in-law? And Clara
+also was frightened, though she knew not why. His manner was so
+different from that which was usual; he was so cold, and serious,
+and awe-struck, that she could not but be unhappy.
+
+"And what is it?" said the countess.
+
+Herbert then sat for a few minutes silent, thinking how best he
+should tell them his story. He had been all the morning resolving to
+tell it, but he had in nowise as yet fixed upon any method. It was
+all so terribly tragic, so frightful in the extent of its reality,
+that he hardly knew how it would be possible for him to get through
+his task.
+
+"I hope that no misfortune has come upon any of the family," said
+Lady Desmond, now beginning to think that there might be misfortunes
+which would affect her own daughter more nearly than the illness
+either of the baronet or of his wife.
+
+"Oh, I hope not!" said Clara, getting up and clasping her hands.
+"What is it, Herbert? why don't you speak?" And coming round to him,
+she took hold of his arm.
+
+"Dearest Clara," he said, looking at her with more tenderness than
+had ever been usual with him, "I think that you had better leave us.
+I could tell it better to your mother alone."
+
+"Do, Clara, love. Go, dearest, and we will call you by-and-by."
+
+Clara moved away very slowly toward the door, and then she turned
+round. "If it is anything that makes you unhappy, Herbert," she
+said, "I must know it before you leave me."
+
+"Yes, yes; either I or your mother--. You shall be told, certainly."
+
+"Yes, yes, you shall be told," said the countess. "And now go, my
+darling." Thus dismissed, Clara did go, and betook herself to her
+own chamber. Had Owen had sorrows to tell her, he would have told
+them to herself; of that she was quite sure. "And now, Herbert, for
+heaven's sake what is it?" said the countess, pale with terror. She
+was fully certain now that something was to be spoken which would be
+calculated to interfere with her daughter's prospects.
+
+We all know the story which Herbert had to tell, and we need not
+therefore again be present at the telling of it. Sitting there, wet
+through, in Lady Desmond's drawing-room, he did contrive to utter it
+all--the whole of it from the beginning to the end, making it
+clearly to be understood that he was no longer Fitzgerald of Castle
+Richmond, but a nameless, pennyless outcast, without the hope of
+portion or position, doomed from henceforth to earn his bread in the
+sweat of his brow--if only he could be fortunate enough to find the
+means of earning it.
+
+Nor did Lady Desmond once interrupt him in his story. She sat
+perfectly still, listening to him almost with unmoved face. She was
+too wise to let him know what the instant working of her mind might
+be before she had made her own fixed resolve; and she had conceived
+the truth much before he had completed the telling of it. We
+generally use three times the number of words which are necessary
+for the purpose which we have in hand; but had he used six times the
+number, she would not have interrupted him. It was good in him to
+give her this time to determine in what tone and with what words she
+would speak, when speaking on her part should become absolutely
+necessary. "And now," he concluded by saying--and at this time he
+was standing up on the rug--"you know it all, Lady Desmond. It will
+perhaps be best that Clara should learn it from you."
+
+He had said not a word of giving up his pretensions to Lady Clara's
+hand; but then neither had he in any way hinted that the match
+should, in his opinion, be regarded as unbroken. He had not spoken
+of his sorrow at bringing down all this poverty on his wife: and
+surely he would have so spoken had he thought their engagement was
+still valid; but then he had not himself pointed out that the
+engagement must necessarily be broken, as, in Lady Desmond's
+opinion, he certainly should have done.
+
+"Yes," said she, in a cold, low, meaningless voice--in a voice that
+told nothing by its tones--"Lady Clara had better hear it from me."
+But in the title which she gave her daughter, Herbert instantly read
+his doom. He, however, remained silent. It was for the countess now
+to speak.
+
+"But it is possible it may not be true," she said, speaking almost
+in a whisper, looking not into his face, but by him, at the fire.
+
+"It is possible, but so barely possible, that I did not think it
+right to keep the matter from you any longer."
+
+"It would have been very wrong--very wicked, I may say," said the
+countess.
+
+"It is only two days since I knew anything of it myself," said he,
+vindicating himself.
+
+"You were of course bound to let me know immediately," she said,
+harshly.
+
+"And I have let you know immediately, Lady Desmond." And then they
+were both again silent for a while.
+
+"And Mr. Prendergast thinks there is no doubt?" she asked.
+
+"None," said Herbert, very decidedly.
+
+"And he has told your cousin Owen?"
+
+"He did so yesterday, and by this time my poor mother knows it
+also." And then there was another period of silence.
+
+During the whole time Lady Desmond had uttered no one word of
+condolence--not a syllable of commiseration for all the sufferings
+that had come upon Herbert and his family; and he was beginning to
+hate her for her harshness. The tenor of her countenance had become
+hard, and she received all his words as a judge might have taken
+them, merely wanting evidence before he pronounced his verdict. The
+evidence she was beginning to think sufficient, and there could be
+no doubt as to her verdict. After what she had heard, a match
+between Herbert Fitzgerald and her daughter would be out of the
+question. "It is very dreadful," she said, thinking only of her own
+child, and absolutely shivering at the danger which had been
+incurred.
+
+"It is very dreadful," said Herbert, shivering also. It was almost
+incredible to him that his great sorrow should be received in such a
+way by one who had professed to be so dear a friend to him.
+
+"And what do you propose to do, Mr. Fitzgerald?" said the countess.
+
+"What do I propose?" he said, repeating her words. "Hitherto I have
+had neither time nor heart to propose anything. Such a misfortune as
+that which I have told you does not break upon a man without
+disturbing for a while his power of resolving. I have thought so
+much of my mother, and of Clara, since Mr. Prendergast told me all
+this, that--that--that--" And then a slight gurgling struggle fell
+upon his throat and hindered him from speaking. He did not quite sob
+out, and he determined that he would not do so. If she could be so
+harsh and strong, he would be harsh and strong also.
+
+And again Lady Desmond sat silent, still thinking how she had better
+speak and act. After all she was not so cruel nor so bad as Herbert
+Fitzgerald thought her. What had the Fitzgeralds done for her that
+she should sorrow for their sorrows? She had lived there, in that
+old ugly barrack, long desolate, full of dreary wretchedness and
+poverty, and Lady Fitzgerald in her prosperity had never come to her
+to soften the hardness of her life. She had come over to Ireland a
+countess, and a countess she had been, proud enough at first in her
+little glory--too proud, no doubt; and proud enough afterwards in
+her loneliness and poverty; and there she had lived--alone. Whether
+the fault had been her own or no, she owed little to the kindness of
+any one; for no one had done aught to relieve her bitterness. And
+then her weak puny child had grown up in the same shade, and was now
+a lovely woman, gifted with high birth, and that special priceless
+beauty which high blood so often gives. There was a prize now within
+the walls of that old barrack--something to be won--something for
+which a man would strive, and a mother smile that her son might win
+it. And now Lady Fitzgerald had come to her. She had never
+complained of this, she said to herself. The bargain between Clara
+Desmond and Herbert Fitzgerald had been good for both of them, and
+let it be made and settled as a bargain. Young Herbert Fitzgerald
+had money and position; her daughter had beauty and high blood. Let
+it be a bargain. But in all this there was nothing to make her love
+that rich prosperous family at Castle Richmond. There are those
+whose nature it is to love new-found friends at a few hours'
+warning, but the Countess of Desmond was not one of them. The
+bargain had been made, and her daughter would have been able to
+perform her part of it. She was still able to give that which she
+had stipulated to give. But Herbert Fitzgerald was now a bankrupt,
+and could give nothing! Would it not have been madness to suppose
+that the bargain should still hold good?
+
+One person and one only had come to her at Desmond Court, whose
+coming had been a solace to her weariness. Of all those among whom
+she had lived in cold desolateness for so many years, one only had
+got near her heart. There had been but one Irish voice that she had
+cared to hear; and the owner of that voice had loved her child
+instead of loving her.
+
+And she had borne that wretchedness too, if not well, at least
+bravely. True, she had separated that lover from her daughter; but
+the circumstances of both had made it right for her, as a mother, to
+do so. What mother, circumstanced as she had been, would have given
+her girl to Owen Fitzgerald? So she had banished from the house the
+only voice that sounded sweetly in her ears, and again she had been
+alone.
+
+And then, perhaps, thoughts had come to her, when Herbert Fitzgerald
+was frequent about the place, a rich and thriving wooer, that Owen
+might come again to Desmond Court, when Clara had gone to Castle
+Richmond. Years were stealing over her. Ah, yes. She knew that full
+well. All her youth and the pride of her days she had given up for
+that countess-ship which she now wore so gloomily--given up for
+pieces of gold which had turned to stone and slate and dirt within
+her grasp. Years, alas! were fast stealing over her. But
+nevertheless she had something to give. Her woman's beauty was not
+all faded; and she had a heart which was as yet virgin--which had
+hitherto loved no other man. Might not that suffice to cover a few
+years, seeing that in return she wanted nothing but love? And so she
+had thought, lingering over her hopes, while Herbert was there at
+his wooing.
+
+It may be imagined with what feelings at her heart she had seen and
+listened to the frank attempt made by Owen to get back his childish
+love. But that too she had borne, bravely, if not well. It had not
+angered her that her child was loved by the only man she had ever
+loved herself. She had stroked her daughter's hair that day, and
+kissed her cheek, and bade her be happy with her better, richer
+lover. And had she not been right in this? Nor had she been angry
+even with Owen. She could forgive him all, because she loved him.
+But might there not even yet be a chance for her when Clara should
+in very truth have gone to Castle Richmond?
+
+But now! How was she to think about all this now? And thinking of
+these things, how was it possible that she should have heart left to
+feel for the miseries of Lady Fitzgerald? With all her miseries
+would not Lady Fitzgerald still be more fortunate than she? Let come
+what might, Lady Fitzgerald had had a life of prosperity and love.
+No; she could not think of Lady Fitzgerald, nor of Herbert: she
+could only think of Owen Fitzgerald, of her daughter, and of
+herself.
+
+He, Owen, was now the heir to Castle Richmond, and would, as far as
+she could learn, soon become the actual possessor. He, who had been
+cast forth from Desmond Court as too poor and contemptible in the
+world's eye to be her daughter's suitor, would become the rich
+inheritor of all those broad acres, and that old coveted family
+honour. And this Owen still loved her daughter--loved her not as
+Herbert did, with a quiet, gentleman-like, every-day attachment, but
+with the old, true, passionate love of which she had read in books,
+and dreamed herself, before she had sold herself to be a countess.
+That Owen did so love her daughter, she was very sure. And then, as
+to her daughter; that she did not still love this new heir in her
+heart of hearts--of that the mother was by no means sure. That her
+child had chosen the better part in choosing money and a title, she
+had not doubted; and that having so chosen Clara would be happy,--of
+that also she did not doubt. Clara was young, she would say, and her
+heart in a few months would follow her hand.
+
+But now! How was she to decide, sitting here with Herbert Fitzgerald
+before her, gloomy as death, cold, shivering, and muddy, telling of
+his own disasters with no more courage than a whipped dog? As she
+looked at him she declared to herself twenty times in half a second
+that he had not about him a tithe of the manhood of his cousin Owen.
+Women love a bold front, and a voice that will never own its master
+to have been beaten in the world's fight. Had Owen came there with
+such a story, he would have claimed his right boldly to the lady's
+hand, in spite of all that the world had done to him.
+
+"Let her have him," said Lady Desmond to herself, and the struggle
+within her bosom was made and over. No wonder that Herbert, looking
+into her face for pity, should find that she was harsh and cruel.
+She had been sacrificing herself, and had completed the sacrifice.
+Owen Fitzgerald, the heir to Castle Richmond, Sir Owen as he would
+soon be, should have her daughter. They two, at any rate, should be
+happy. And she--she would live there at Desmond Court, lonely as she
+had ever lived. While all this was passing through her mind, she
+hardly thought of Herbert and his sorrows. That he must be given up
+and abandoned, and left to make what best fight he could by himself;
+as to that how was it possible that she as a mother should have any
+doubt?
+
+And yet it was a pity--a thousand pities. Herbert Fitzgerald, with
+his domestic virtues, his industry and thorough respectability,
+would so exactly have suited Clara's taste and mode of life--had he
+only continued to be the heir of Castle Richmond. She and Owen would
+not enter upon the world together with nearly the same fair chance
+of happiness. Who could prophecy to what Owen might be led with his
+passionate impulses, his strong will, his unbridled temper, and his
+love of pleasure? That he was noble-hearted, affectionate, brave,
+and tender in his inmost spirit, Lady Desmond was very sure; but
+were such the qualities which would make her daughter happy? When
+Clara should come to know her future lord as Clara's mother knew
+him, would Clara love him and worship him as her mother did? The
+mother believed that Clara had not in her bosom heart enough for
+such a love. But then, as I have said before, the mother did not
+know the daughter.
+
+"You say that you will break all this to Clara," said Herbert,
+having during this silence turned over some of his thoughts also in
+his mind. "If so I may as well leave you now. You can imagine that I
+am anxious to get back to my mother."
+
+"Yes, it will be better that I should tell her. It is very sad, very
+sad, very sad indeed."
+
+"Yes, it is a hard load for a man to bear," he answered, speaking
+very, very slowly. "But for myself I think I can bear it, if--"
+
+"If what?" asked the countess.
+
+"If Clara can bear it."
+
+And now it was necessary that Lady Desmond should speak out. She did
+not mean to be unnecessarily harsh, but she did mean to be decided,
+and as she spoke her face became stern and ill-favoured. "That Clara
+will be terribly distressed," she said, "terribly, terribly
+distressed," repeating her words with great emphasis, "of that I am
+quite sure. She is very young, and will, I hope, in time get over
+it. And then too I think she is one whose feelings, young as she is,
+have never conquered her judgment. Therefore I do believe that, with
+God's mercy, she will be able to bear it. But, Mr. Fitzgerald--"
+
+"Well?"
+
+"Of course you feel with me--and I am sure that with your excellent
+judgment it is a thing of course--that everything must be over
+between you and Lady Clara." And then she came to a full stop as
+though all had been said that could be considered necessary.
+
+Herbert did not answer at once, but stood there shivering and
+shaking in his misery. He was all but overcome by the chill of his
+wet garments; and though he struggled to throw off the dead feeling
+of utter cold which struck him to the heart, he was quite unable to
+master it. He could hardly forgive himself that on such an occasion
+he should have been so conquered by his own outer feelings, but now
+he could not help himself. He was weak with hunger too--though he
+did not know it, for he had hardly eaten food that day, and was
+nearly exhausted with the unaccustomed amount of hard exercise which
+he had taken. He was, moreover, thoroughly wet through, and heavy
+laden with the mud of the road. It was no wonder that Lady Desmond
+had said to herself that he looked like a whipped dog.
+
+"That must be as Lady Clara shall decide," he said at last, barely
+uttering the words through his chattering teeth.
+
+"It must be as I say," said the countess firmly; "whether by her
+decision or by yours--or if necessary by mine. But if your feelings
+are, as I take them to be, those of a man of honour, you will not
+leave it to me or to her. What! now that you have the world to
+struggle with, would you seek to drag her down into the struggle?"
+
+"Our union was to be for better or worse. I would have given her all
+the better, and--"
+
+"Yes; and had there been a union she would have bravely borne her
+part in sharing the worst. But who ought to be so thankful as you
+that this truth has broken upon you before you had clogged yourself
+with a wife of high birth but without fortune? Alone, a man educated
+as you are, with your talents, may face the world without fearing
+anything. But how could you make your way now if my daughter were
+your wife? When you think of it, Mr. Fitzgerald, you will cease to
+wish for it."
+
+"Never; I have given my heart to your daughter, and I cannot take
+back the gift. She has accepted it, and she cannot return it."
+
+"And what would you have her do?" Lady Desmond asked, with anger and
+almost passion in her voice.
+
+"Wait--as I must wait," said Herbert. "That will be her duty, as I
+believe it will also be her wish."
+
+"Yes, and wear out her young heart here in solitude for the next ten
+years, and then learn when her beauty and her youth are gone--. But
+no, Mr. Fitzgerald; I will not allow myself to contemplate such a
+prospect either for her or for you. Under the lamentable
+circumstances which you have now told me it is imperative that this
+match should be broken off. Ask your own mother and hear what she
+will say. And if you are a man you will not throw upon my poor child
+the hard task of declaring that it must be so. You, by your
+calamity, are unable to perform your contract with her; and it is
+for you to announce that that contract is therefore over."
+
+Herbert in his present state was unable to argue with Lady Desmond.
+He had in his brain, and mind, and heart, and soul--at least so he
+said to himself afterwards, having perhaps but a loose idea of the
+different functions of these four different properties--a thorough
+conviction that as he and Clara had sworn to each other that for
+life they would live together and love each other, no misfortune to
+either of them could justify the other in breaking that oath;--
+could even justify him in breaking it, though he was the one on whom
+misfortune had fallen. He, no doubt, had first loved Clara for her
+beauty; but would he have ceased to love her, or have cast her from
+him, if, by God's will, her beauty had perished and gone from her?
+Would he not have held her closer to his heart, and told her, with
+strong comforting vows, that his love had now gone deeper than that;
+that they were already of the same bone, of the same flesh, of the
+same family and hearthstone? He knew himself in this, and knew that
+he would have been proud so to do, and so to feel,--that he would
+have cast from him with utter indignation any who would have
+counselled him to do or to feel differently. And why should Clara's
+heart be different from his?
+
+All this, I say, was his strong conviction. But, nevertheless, her
+heart might be different. She might look on that engagement of
+theirs with altogether other thoughts and other ideas; and if so his
+voice should never reproach her;--not his voice, however his heart
+might do so. Such might be the case with her, but he did not think
+it; and therefore he would not pronounce that decision which Clara's
+mother expected from him.
+
+"When you have told her of this, I suppose I may be allowed to see
+her," he said, avoiding the direct proposition which Lady Desmond
+had made to him.
+
+"Allowed to see her?" said Lady Desmond, now also in her turn
+speaking very slowly. "I cannot answer that question as yet; not
+quite immediately, I should say. But if you will leave the matter in
+my hands, I will write to you, if not to-morrow, then the next day."
+
+"I would sooner that she should write."
+
+"I cannot promise that--I do not know how far her good sense and
+strength may support her under this affliction. That she will suffer
+terribly, on your account as well as on her own, you may be quite
+sure." And then, again, there was a pause of some moments.
+
+"I, at any rate, shall write to her," he then said, "and shall tell
+her that I expect her to see me. Her will in this matter shall be my
+will. If she thinks that her misery will be greater in being engaged
+to a poor man, than,--than in relinquishing her love, she shall
+hear no word from me to overpersuade her. But, Lady Desmond, I will
+say nothing that shall authorize her to think that she is given up
+by me, till I have in some way learned from herself what her own
+feelings are. And now I will say good-bye to you."
+
+"Good-bye," said the countess, thinking that it might be as well
+that the interview should be ended. "But, Mr. Fitzgerald, you are
+very wet; and I fear that you are very cold. You had better take
+something before you go." Countess as she was, she had no carriage
+in which she could send him home; no horse even on which he could
+ride. "Nothing, thank you, Lady Desmond," he said; and so, without
+offering her the courtesy of his hand, he walked out of the room.
+
+He was very angry with her, as he tried to make the blood run
+quicker in his veins by hurrying down the avenue into the road at
+his quickest pace. So angry with her, that for a while, in his
+indignation, he almost forgot his father and his mother and his own
+family tragedy. That she should have wished to save her daughter
+from such a marriage might have been natural; but that she should
+have treated him so coldly, so harshly--without one spark of love or
+pity,--him, who to her had been so loyal during his courtship of her
+daughter! It was almost incredible to him. Was not his story one
+that would have melted the heart of a stranger--at which men would
+weep? He himself had seen tears in the eyes of that dry, time-worn,
+world-used London lawyer, as the full depth of the calamity had
+forced itself upon his heart. Yes, Mr. Prendergast had not been able
+to repress his tears when he told the tale; but Lady Desmond had
+shed no tears when the tale had been told to her. No soft woman's
+message had been sent to the afflicted mother on whom it had pleased
+God to allow so heavy a hand to fall. No word of tenderness had been
+uttered for the sinking father. There had been no feeling for the
+household which was to have been so nearly linked with her own. No.
+Looking round with greedy eyes for wealth for her daughter, Lady
+Desmond had found a match that suited her. Now that match no longer
+suited her greed, and she could throw from her without a struggle to
+her feelings the suitor that was now poor, and the family of the
+suitor that was now neither grand nor powerful.
+
+And then too he felt angry with Clara, though he knew that as yet,
+at any rate, he had no cause. In spite of what he had said and felt,
+he would imagine to himself that she also would be cold and untrue.
+"Let her go," he said to himself. "Love is worth nothing--nothing if
+it does not believe itself to be of more worth than everything
+beside. If she does not love me now in my misery--if she would not
+choose me now for her husband--her love has never been worthy the
+name. Love that has no faith in itself, that does not value itself
+above all worldly things, is nothing. If it be not so with her, let
+her go back to him."
+
+It may easily be understood who was the him. And then Herbert walked
+on so rapidly that at length his strength almost failed him, and in
+his exhaustion he had more than once to lean against a gate on the
+road-side. With difficulty at last he got home, and dragged himself
+up the long avenue to the front door. Even yet he was not warm
+through to his heart, and he felt as he entered the house that he
+was quite unfitted for the work which he might yet have to do before
+he could go to his bed.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVII
+
+COMFORTED
+
+
+When Herbert Fitzgerald got back to Castle Richmond it was nearly
+dark. He opened the hall door without ringing the bell, and walking
+at once into the dining room, threw himself into a large leathern
+chair which always stood near the fire-place. There was a bright
+fire burning on the hearth, and he drew himself close to it, putting
+his wet feet up on to the fender, thinking that he would at any rate
+warm himself before he went in among any of the family. The room,
+with its deep-red curtains and ruby-embossed paper, was almost
+dark, and he knew that he might remain there unseen and unnoticed
+for the next half-hour. If he could only get a glass of wine! He
+tried the cellaret, which was as often open as locked, but now
+unfortunately it was closed. In such a case it was impossible to say
+whether the butler had the key or Aunt Letty; so he sat himself down
+without that luxury.
+
+By this time, as he well knew, all would have been told to his
+mother, and his first duty would be to go to her--to go to her and
+comfort her, if comfort might be possible, by telling her that he
+could bear it all; that as far as he was concerned title and wealth
+and a proud name were as nothing to him in comparison with his
+mother's love. In whatever guise he may have appeared before Lady
+Desmond, he would not go to his mother with a fainting heart. She
+should not hear his teeth chatter, nor see his limbs shake. So he
+sat himself down there that he might become warm, and in five
+minutes he was fast asleep.
+
+How long he slept he did not know; not very long, probably; but when
+he awoke it was quite dark. He gazed at the fire for a moment,
+bethought himself of where he was and why, shook himself to get rid
+of his slumber, and then roused himself in his chair. As he did so a
+soft sweet voice close to his shoulder spoke to him. "Herbert," it
+said, "are you awake?" And he found that his mother, seated by his
+side on a low stool, had been watching him in his sleep.
+
+"Mother!" he exclaimed.
+
+"Herbert, my child, my son!" And the mother and son were fast locked
+in each other's arms.
+
+He had sat down there thinking how he would go to his mother and
+offer her solace in her sorrow; how he would bid her be of good
+cheer, and encourage her to bear the world as the world had now
+fallen to her lot. He had pictured to himself that he would find her
+sinking in despair, and had promised himself that with his vows, his
+kisses, and his prayers, he would bring her back to her
+self-confidence, and induce her to acknowledge that God's mercy was
+yet good to her. But now, on awakening, he discovered that she had
+been tending him in his misery, and watching him while he slept,
+that she might comfort him with her caresses the moment that he
+awoke to the remembrance of his misfortunes.
+
+"Herbert, Herbert, my son, my son!" she said again, as she pressed
+him close in her arms.
+
+"Mother, has he told you?"
+
+Yes, she had learned it all; but hardly more than she had known
+before; or, at any rate, not more than she had expected. As she now
+told him, for many days past she had felt that this trouble which
+had fallen upon his father must have come from the circumstances of
+their marriage. And she would have spoken out, she said, when the
+idea became clear to her, had she not then been told that Mr.
+Prendergast had been invited to come thither from London. Then she
+knew that she had better remain silent, at any rate till his visit
+had been made.
+
+And Herbert again sat in the chair, and his mother crouched, or
+almost kneeled, on the cushion at his knee. "Dearest, dearest,
+dearest mother," he said, as he supported her head against his
+shoulder, "we must love each other now more than ever we have
+loved."
+
+"And you forgive us, Herbert, for all that we have done to you?"
+
+"Mother, if you speak in that way to me you will kill me. My
+darling, darling mother!"
+
+There was but little more said between them upon the matter--but
+little more, at least, in words; but there was an infinity of
+caresses, and deep--deep assurances of undying love and confidence.
+And then she asked him about his bride, and he told her where he had
+been, and what had happened. "You must not claim her, Herbert," she
+said to him. "God is good, and will teach you to bear even that
+also."
+
+"Must I not?" he asked, with a sadly plaintive voice.
+
+"No, my child. You invited her to share your prosperity, and would
+it be just--"
+
+"But, mother, if she wills it?"
+
+"It is for you to give her back her troth, then leave it to time and
+her own heart."
+
+"But if she love me, mother, she will not take back her troth. Would
+I take back hers because she was in sorrow?"
+
+"Men and women, Herbert, are different. The oak cares not whether
+the creeper which hangs to it be weak or strong. If it be weak the
+oak can give it strength. But the staff which has to support the
+creeper must needs have strength of its own."
+
+He made no further answer to her, but understood that he must do as
+she bade him. He understood now also, without many arguments within
+himself, that he had no right to expect from Clara Desmond that
+adherence to him and his misfortunes which he would have owed to her
+had she been unfortunate. He understood this now; but still he
+hoped. "Two hearts that have once become as one cannot be
+separated," he said to himself that night, as he resolved that it
+was his duty to write to her, unconditionally returning to her her
+pledges.
+
+"But, Herbert, what a state you are in!" said Lady Fitzgerald, as
+the flame of the coal glimmering out, threw a faint light upon his
+clothes.
+
+"Yes, mother; I have been walking."
+
+"And you are wet!"
+
+"I am nearly dry now. I was wet. But, mother, I am tired and fagged.
+It would do me good if I could get a glass of wine."
+
+She rang the bell, and gave her orders calmly--though every servant
+in the house now knew the whole truth,--and then lit a candle
+herself, and looked at him. "My child, what have you done to
+yourself? Oh, Herbert, you will be ill!" And then, with his arm round
+her waist, she took him up to her own room, and sat by him while he
+took off his muddy boots and clammy socks, and made him hot drinks,
+and tended him as she had done when he was a child. And yet she had
+that day heard of her great ruin! With truth, indeed, had Mr.
+Prendergast said that she was made of more enduring material than
+Sir Thomas.
+
+And she endeavoured to persuade him to go to his bed; but in this he
+would not listen to her. He must, he said, see his father that
+night. "You have been with him, mother, since--since--"
+
+"Oh yes; directly after Mr. Prendergast left me."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"He cried like a child, Herbert. We both sobbed together like two
+children. It was very piteous. But I think I left him better than he
+has been. He knows now that those men cannot come again to harass
+him."
+
+Herbert gnashed his teeth, and clenched his fist as he thought of
+them; but he could not speak of them, or mention their name before
+his mother. What must her thoughts be, as she remembered that elder
+man and looked back to her early childhood!
+
+"He is very weak," she went on to say: "almost helplessly weak now,
+and does not seem to think of leaving his bed. I have begged him to
+let me send to Dublin for Sir Henry; but he says that nothing ails
+him."
+
+"And who is with him now, mother?"
+
+"The girls are both there."
+
+"And Mr. Prendergast?"
+
+Lady Fitzgerald then explained to him, that Mr. Prendergast had
+returned to Dublin that afternoon, starting twenty-four hours
+earlier than he intended,--or, at any rate, than he had said that he
+intended. Having done his work there, he had felt that he would now
+only be in the way. And, moreover, though his work was done at
+Castle Richmond, other work in the same matter had still to be done
+in England. Mr. Prendengast had very little doubt as to the truth of
+Mollett's story;--indeed we may say he had no doubt; otherwise he
+would hardly have made it known to all that world round Castle
+Richmond. But nevertheless it behoved him thoroughly to sift the
+matter. He felt tolerably sure that he should find Mollett in
+London; and whether he did or no, he should be able to identify, or
+not to identify, that scoundrel with the Mr. Talbot who had hired
+Chevy-chase Lodge, in Dorsetshire, and who had undoubtedly married
+poor Mary Wainwright.
+
+"He left a kind message for you," said Lady Fitzgerald.--My readers
+must excuse me if I still call her Lady Fitzgerald, for I cannot
+bring my pen to the use of any other name. And it was so also with
+the dependents and neighbours of Castle Richmond, when the time came
+that the poor lady felt that she was bound publicly to drop her
+title. It was not in her power to drop it: no effort that she could
+make would induce those around her to call her by another name.
+
+"He bade me say," she continued, "that if your future course of life
+should take you to London, you are to go to him, and look to him as
+another father. He has no child of his own," he said, "and you shall
+be to him as a son."
+
+"I will be no one's son but yours,--yours and my father's," he said,
+again embracing her.
+
+And then, when, under his mother's eye, he had eaten and drank and
+made himself warm, he did go to his father and found both his
+sisters sitting there. They came and clustered round him, taking
+hold of his hands and looking up into his face, loving him, and
+pitying him, and caressing him with their eyes, but standing there
+by their father's bed, they said little or nothing. Nor did Sir
+Thomas say much,--except this, indeed, that, just as Herbert was
+leaving him, he declared with a faint voice, that henceforth his son
+should be master of that house, and the disposer of that
+property--"As long as I live!" he exclaimed with his weak voice; "as
+long as I live!"
+
+"No, father, not so."
+
+"Yes, yes! as long as I live. It will be little that you will have,
+even so--very little. But so it shall be as long as I live."
+
+Very little indeed, poor man, for, alas! his days were numbered.
+
+And then, when Herbert left the room, Emmeline followed him. She had
+ever been his dearest sister, and now she longed to be with him that
+she might tell him how she loved him, and comfort him with her
+tears. And Clara too--Clara whom she had welcomed as a sister!--she
+must learn now how Clara would behave, for she had already made
+herself sure that her brother had been at Desmond Court, the herald
+of his own ruin.
+
+"May I come with you, Herbert?" she asked, closing in round him and
+getting under his arm. How could he refuse her? So they went
+together and sat over a fire in a small room that was sacred to her
+and her sister, and there, with many sobs on her part and much
+would-be brave contempt of poverty on his, they talked over the
+altered world as it now showed itself before them.
+
+"And you did not see her?" she asked, when with many efforts she had
+brought the subject round to Clara Desmond and her brother's walk to
+Desmond Court.
+
+"No; she left the room at my own bidding. I could not have told it
+myself to her."
+
+"And you cannot know, then, what she would say?"
+
+"No, I cannot know what she would say; but I know now what I must
+say myself. All that is over, Emmeline. I cannot ask her to marry a
+beggar."
+
+"Ask her; no! there will be no need of asking her; she has already
+given you her promise. You do not think that she will desert you?
+you do not wish it?"
+
+Herein were contained two distinct questions, the latter of which
+Herbert did not care to answer. "I shall not call it desertion," he
+said; "indeed the proposal will come from me. I shall write to her,
+telling her that she need think about me no longer. Only that I am
+so weary I would do it now."
+
+"And how will she answer you? If she is the Clara that I take her
+for she will throw your proposal back into your face. She will tell
+you that it is not in your power to reject her now. She will swear
+to you, that let your words be what they may, she will think of
+you--more now than she has ever thought in better days. She will
+tell you of her love in words that she could not use before. I know
+she will. I know that she is good, and true, and honest, and
+generous. Oh, I should die if I thought she were false! But,
+Herbert, I am sure that she is true. You can write your letter, and
+we shall see."
+
+Herbert, with wise arguments learned from his mother, reasoned with
+his sister, explaining to her that Clara was now by no means bound
+to cling to him, but as he spoke them his arm fastened itself
+closely round his sister's waist, for the words which she uttered
+with so much energy were comfortable to him.
+
+And then, seated there, before he moved from the room, he made her
+bring him pens, ink, and paper, and he wrote his letter to Clara
+Desmond. She would fain have stayed with him while he did so,
+sitting at his feet, and looking into his face, and trying to
+encourage his hope as to what Clara's answer might be; but this he
+would not allow; so she went again to her father's room, having
+succeeded in obtaining a promise that Clara's answer should be shown
+to her. And the letter, when it was written, copied, and recopied,
+ran as follows.--
+
+"Castle Richmond,----night.
+
+"My dearest Clara,"--It was with great difficulty that he could
+satisfy himself with that, or indeed with any other mode of
+commencement. In the short little love-notes which had hitherto
+gone from him, sent from house to house, he had written to her
+with appellations of endearment of his own--as all lovers do;
+and as all lovers seem to think that no lovers have done before
+themselves--with appellations which are so sweet to those who write,
+and so musical to those who read, but which sound so ludicrous when
+barbarously made public in hideous law courts by brazen-browed
+lawyers with mercenary tongues. In this way only had he written, and
+each of these sweet silly songs of love had been as full of honey as
+words could make it. But he had never yet written to her, on a full
+sheet of paper, a sensible positive letter containing thoughts and
+facts, as men do write to women and women also to men, when the
+lollypops and candied sugar-drops of early love have passed away.
+Now he was to write his first serious letter to her,--and probably
+his last, and it was with difficulty that he could get himself over
+the first three words; but there they were decided on at last.
+
+"My dearest Clara,
+
+"Before you get this your mother will have told you all that which I
+could not bring myself to speak out yesterday, as long as you were
+in the room. I am sure you will understand now why I begged you to
+go away, and not think the worse of me for doing so. You now know
+the whole truth, and I am sure that you will feel for us all here.
+
+"Having thought a good deal upon the matter, chiefly during my walk
+home from Desmond Court, and indeed since I have been at home, I
+have come to the resolution that everything between us must be over.
+It would be unmanly in me to wish to ruin you because I myself am
+ruined. Our engagement was, of course, made on the presumption that
+I should inherit my father's estate; as it is I shall not do so, and
+therefore I beg that you will regard that engagement as at an end.
+Of my own love for you I will say nothing. But I know that you have
+loved me truly, and that all this, therefore, will cause you great
+grief. It is better, however, that it should be so, than that I
+should seek to hold you to a promise which was made under such
+different circumstances.
+
+"You will, of course, show this letter to your mother. She, at any
+rate, will approve of what I am now doing; and so will you when you
+allow yourself to consider it calmly.
+
+"We have not known each other so long that there is much for us to
+give back to each other. If you do not think it wrong I should like
+still to keep that lock of your hair, to remind me of my first
+love--and, as I think, my only one. And you, I hope, will not be
+afraid to have near you the one little present that I made you.
+
+"And now, dearest Clara, good-bye. Let us always think, each of the
+other, as of a very dear friend. May God bless you, and preserve
+you, and make you happy.
+
+"Yours, with sincere affection,
+
+"HERBERT FITZGERALD."
+
+This, when at last he had succeeded in writing it, he read over and
+over again; but on each occasion he said to himself that it was cold
+and passionless, stilted and unmeaning. It by no means pleased him,
+and seemed as though it could bring but one answer--a cold
+acquiescence in the proposal which he so coldly made. But yet he
+knew not how to improve it. And after all it was a true exposition
+of that which he had determined to say. All the world--her world and
+his world--would think it better that they should part, and let the
+struggle cost him what it would, he would teach himself to wish that
+it might be so--if not for his own sake, then for hers. So he
+fastened the letter, and taking it with him determined to send it
+over, so that it should reach Clara quite early on the following
+morning.
+
+And then having once more visited his father, and once more kissed
+his mother, he betook himself to bed. It had been with him one of
+those days which seem to pass away without reference to usual hours
+and periods. It had been long dark, and he seemed to have been
+hanging about the house, doing nothing and aiding nobody, till he
+was weary of himself. So he went off to bed, almost wondering, as he
+bethought himself of what had happened to him within the last two
+days, that he was able to bear the burden of his life so easily as
+he did. He betook himself to bed, and with the letter close at his
+hand, so that he might despatch it when he awoke, he was soon
+asleep. After all, that walk, terrible as it had been, was in the
+end serviceable to him.
+
+He slept without waking till the light of the February morning was
+beginning to dawn into his room, and then he was roused by a servant
+knocking at the door. It was grievous enough that awaking to his
+sorrow after the pleasant dreams of the night.
+
+"Here is a letter, Mr. Herbert, from Desmond Court," said Richard.
+"The boy as brought it says as how--"
+
+"A letter from Desmond Court," said Herbert, putting out his hand
+greedily.
+
+"Yes, Mr. Herbert. The boy's been here this hour and better. I
+warn't just up and about myself, or I wouldn't have let 'em keep it
+from you, not half a minute."
+
+"And where is he? I have a letter to send to Desmond Court. But
+never mind. Perhaps--"
+
+"It's no good minding, for the gossoon's gone back any ways." And
+then Richard, having drawn the blind, and placed a little table by
+the bed-head, left his young master to read the despatch from
+Desmond Court. Herbert, till he saw the writing, feared that it was
+from the countess; but the letter was from Clara. She also had
+thought good to write before she betook herself to bed, and she had
+been earlier in despatching her messenger. Here is her letter:
+
+"Dear Herbert, my own Herbert,
+
+"I have heard it all. But remember this; nothing, nothing, NOTHING
+can make any change between you and me. I will hear of no arguments
+that are to separate us. I know beforehand what you will say, but I
+will not regard it--not in the least. I love you ten times the more
+for all your unhappiness; and as I would have shared your good
+fortune, I claim my right to share your bad fortune. PRAY BELIEVE
+ME, that nothing shall turn me from this; for I will NOT BE GIVEN
+UP.
+
+"Give my kindest love to your dear, dear, dearest mother--my mother,
+as she is and must be; and to my darling girls. I do so wish I could
+be with them, and with you, my own Herbert. I cannot help writing in
+confusion, but I will explain all when I see you. I have been so
+unhappy.
+
+"Your own faithful
+
+"CLARA."
+
+Having read this, Herbert Fitzgerald, in spite of his affliction,
+was comforted.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXVIII
+
+FOR A' THAT AND A' THAT
+
+
+Herbert as he started from his bed with this letter in his hand felt
+that he could yet hold up his head against all that the world could
+do to him. How could he be really unhappy while he possessed such an
+assurance of love as this, and while his mother was able to give him
+so glorious an example of endurance? He was not really unhappy. The
+low-spirited broken-hearted wretchedness of the preceding day seemed
+to have departed from him as he hurried on his clothes, and went off
+to his sister's room that he might show his letter to Emmeline in
+accordance with the promise he had made her.
+
+"May I come in?" he said, knocking at the door. "I must come in, for
+I have something to show you." But the two girls were dressing and
+he could not be admitted. Emmeline however, promised to come to him,
+and in about three minutes she was out in the cold little
+sitting-room which adjoined their bedroom with her slippers on, and
+her dressing gown wrapped round her, an object presentable to no
+male eyes but those of her brother.
+
+"Emmeline," said he, "I have got a letter this morning."
+
+"Not from Clara?"
+
+"Yes, from Clara. There; you may read it;" and he handed her the
+precious epistle.
+
+"But she could not have got your letter?" said Emmeline, before she
+looked at the one in her hand.
+
+"Certainly not, for I have it here. I must write another now; but in
+truth I do not know what to say. I can be as generous as she is."
+
+And then his sister read the letter. "My own Clara!" she exclaimed,
+as she saw what was the tenor of it. "Did I not tell you so,
+Herbert? I knew well what she would do and say. Love you ten times
+better!--of course she does. What honest girl would not? My own
+beautiful Clara, I knew I could depend on her. I did not doubt her
+for one moment." But in this particular it must be acknowledged that
+Miss Emmeline Fitzgerald hardly confined herself to the strictest
+veracity, for she had lain awake half the night perplexed with
+doubt. What, oh what, if Clara should be untrue! Such had been the
+burden of her doubting midnight thoughts. "'I will not be given
+up,'" she continued, quoting the letter. "No; of course not. And I
+tell you what, Herbert, you must not dare to talk of giving her up.
+Money and titles may be tossed to and fro, but not hearts. How
+beautifully she speaks of dear mamma!" and now the tears began to
+run down the young lady's cheeks. "Oh, I do wish she could be with
+us! My darling, darling, darling Clara! Unhappy? Yes: I am sure Lady
+Desmond will give her no peace. But never mind. She will be true
+through it all; and I said so from the first." And then she fell to
+crying, and embracing her brother, and declaring that nothing now
+should make her altogether unhappy.
+
+"But, Emmeline, you must not think that I shall take her at her
+word. It is very generous of her--"
+
+"Nonsense, Herbert!" And then there was another torrent of
+eloquence, in answering which Herbert found that his arguments were
+of very little efficacy.
+
+And now we must go back to Desmond Court, and see under what all but
+overwhelming difficulties poor Clara wrote her affectionate letter.
+And in the first place it should be pointed out how very wrong
+Herbert had been in going to Desmond Court on foot, through the mud
+and rain. A man can hardly bear himself nobly unless his outer
+aspect be in some degree noble. It may be very sad, this having to
+admit that the tailor does in great part make the man; but such I
+fear is undoubtedly the fact. Could the Chancellor look dignified on
+the woolsack, if he had had an accident with his wig, or allowed his
+robes to be torn or soiled? Does not half the piety of a bishop
+reside in his lawn sleeves, and all his meekness in his anti-virile
+apron? Had Herbert understood the world he would have had out the
+best pair of horses standing in the Castle Richmond stables, when
+going to Desmond Court on such an errand. He would have brushed his
+hair and anointed himself; he would have clothed himself in his rich
+Spanish cloak; he would have seen that his hat was brushed, and his
+boots spotless; and then with all due solemnity, but with head
+erect, he would have told his tale out boldly. The countess would
+still have wished to be rid of him, hearing that he was a pauper;
+but she would have lacked the courage to turn him from the house as
+she had done.
+
+But seeing how woebegone he was and wretched, how mean to look at,
+and low in his outward presence, she had been able to assume the
+mastery, and had kept it throughout the interview. And having done
+this her opinion of his prowess naturally became low, and she felt
+that he would have been unable to press his cause against her.
+
+For some time after he had departed, she sat alone in the room in
+which she had received him. She expected every minute that Clara
+would come down to her, still wishing, however, that she might be
+left for a while alone. But Clara did not come, and she was able to
+pursue her thoughts.
+
+How very terrible was this tragedy that had fallen out in her close
+neighbourhood! That was the first thought that came to her now that
+Herbert had left her. How terrible, overwhelming, and fatal! What
+calamity could fall upon a woman so calamitous as this which had now
+overtaken that poor lady at Castle Richmond? Could she live and
+support such a burden? Could she bear the eyes of people, when she
+knew the light in which she must be now regarded? To lose at one
+blow, her name, her pride of place, her woman's rank and high
+respect! Could it be possible that she would still live on? It was
+thus that Lady Desmond thought; and had any one told her that this
+degraded mother would that very day come down from her room, and sit
+watchful by her sleeping son, in order that she might comfort and
+encourage him when he awoke, she would not have found it in her
+heart to believe such a marvel. But then Lady Desmond knew but one
+solace in her sorrows--had but one comfort in her sad reflections.
+She was Countess of Desmond, and that was all. To Lady Fitzgerald
+had been vouchsafed other solace and other comforts.
+
+And then, on one point the countess made herself fixed as fate, by
+thinking and re-thinking upon it till no doubt remained upon her
+mind. The match between Clara and Herbert must be broken off, let
+the cost be what it might; and--a point on which there was more
+room for doubt, and more pain in coming to a conclusion--that other
+match with the more fortunate cousin must be encouraged and carried
+out. For herself, if her hope was small while Owen was needy and of
+poor account, what hope could there be now that he would be rich and
+great? Moreover, Owen loved Clara, and not herself; and Clara's hand
+would once more be vacant and ready for the winning. For herself her
+only chance had been in Clara's coming marriage.
+
+In all this she knew that there would be difficulty. She was sure
+enough that Clara would at first feel the imprudent generosity of
+youth, and offer to join her poverty to Herbert's poverty. That was
+a matter of course. She, Lady Desmond herself, would have done this,
+at Clara's age,--so at least to herself she said, and also to her
+daughter. But a little time, and a little patience, and a little
+care would set all this in a proper light. Herbert would go away and
+would gradually be forgotten. Owen would again come forth from
+beneath the clouds, with renewed splendour; and then, was it not
+probable that, in her very heart of hearts Owen was the man whom
+Clara had ever loved?
+
+And thus having realized to herself the facts which Herbert had told
+her, she prepared to make them known to her daughter. She got up
+from her chair, intending at first to seek her, and then, changing
+her purpose, rang the bell and sent for her. She was astonished to
+find how violently she herself was affected; not so much by the
+circumstances, as by this duty which had fallen to her of telling
+them to her child. She put one hand upon the other and felt that she
+herself was in a tremor, and was conscious that the blood was
+running quick round her heart. Clara came down, and going to her
+customary seat waited till her mother should speak to her.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald has brought very dreadful news," Lady Desmond said,
+after a minute's pause.
+
+"Oh mamma!" said Clara. She had expected bad tidings, having thought
+of all manner of miseries while she had been upstairs alone; but
+there was that in her mother's voice which seemed to be worse than
+the worst of her anticipations.
+
+"Dreadful, indeed, my child! It is my duty to tell them to you; but
+I must caution you, before I do so, to place a guard upon your
+feelings. That which I have to say must necessarily alter all your
+future prospects, and, unfortunately, make your marrying Herbert
+Fitzgerald quite impossible."
+
+"Mamma!" she exclaimed, with a loud voice, jumping from her chair.
+"Not marry him! Why; what can he have done? Is it his wish to break
+it off?"
+
+Lady Desmond had calculated that she would best effect her object by
+at once impressing her daughter with the idea that, under the
+circumstances which were about to be narrated, this marriage would
+not only be imprudent, but altogether impracticable and out of the
+question. Clara must be made to understand at once, that the
+circumstances gave her no option,--that the affair was of such a
+nature as to make it a thing manifest to everybody, that she could
+not now marry Herbert Fitzgerald. She must not be left to think
+whether she could, or whether she could not, exercise her own
+generosity. And therefore, not without discretion, the countess
+announced at once to her the conclusion at which it would be
+necessary to arrive. But Clara was not a girl to adopt such a
+conclusion on any other judgment than her own, or to be led in such
+a matter by the feelings of any other person.
+
+"Sit down, my dear, and I will explain it all. But, dearest Clara,
+grieved as I must be to grieve you, I am bound to tell you again
+that it must be as I say. For both your sakes it must be so; but
+especially, perhaps, for his. But when I have told you my story, you
+will understand that this must be so."
+
+"Tell me, then, mother." She said this, for Lady Desmond had again
+paused.
+
+"Won't you sit down, dearest?"
+
+"Well, yes; it does not matter;" and Clara, at her mother's bidding,
+sat down, and then the story was told to her.
+
+It was a difficult tale for a mother to tell to so young a child--to
+a child whom she had regarded as being so very young. There were
+various little points of law which she thought that she was obliged
+to explain; how it was necessary that the Castle Richmond property
+should go to an heir-at-law, and how it was impossible that Herbert
+should be that heir-at-law, seeing that he had not been born in
+lawful wedlock. All these things Lady Desmond attempted to explain,
+or was about to attempt such explanation, but desisted on finding
+that her daughter understood them as well as she herself did. And
+then she had to make it also intelligible to Clara that Owen would
+be called on, when Sir Thomas should die, to fill the position and
+enjoy the wealth accruing to the heir of Castle Richmond. When Owen
+Fitzgerald's name was mentioned a slight blush came upon Clara's
+cheek; it was very slight, but nevertheless her mother saw it, and
+took advantage of it to say a word in Owen's favour.
+
+"Poor Owen!" she said. "He will not be the first to triumph in this
+change of fortune."
+
+"I am sure he will not," said Clara. "He is much too generous for
+that." And then the countess began to hope that the task might not
+be so very difficult. Ignorant woman! Had she been able to read one
+page in her daughter's heart, she would have known that the task was
+impossible. After that the story was told out to the end without
+further interruption, and then Clara, hiding her face within her
+hands on the head of the sofa, uttered one long piteous moan.
+
+"It is all very dreadful," said the countess.
+
+"Oh, Lady Fitzgerald, dear Lady Fitzgerald!" sobbed forth Clara.
+
+"Yes, indeed. Poor Lady Fitzgerald! Her fate is so dreadful that I
+know not how to think of it."
+
+"But, mamma--" and as she spoke Clara pushed back from her forehead
+her hair with both her hands, showing, as she did so, the form of
+her forehead, and the firmness of purpose that was written there,
+legible to any eyes that could read. "But, mamma, you are wrong
+about my not marrying Herbert Fitzgerald. Why should I not marry
+him? Not now, as we, perhaps, might have done but for this; but at
+some future time when he may think himself able to support a wife.
+Mamma, I shall not break our engagement; certainly not."
+
+This was said in a tone of voice so very decided that Lady Desmond
+had to acknowledge to herself that there would be difficulty in her
+task. But she still did not doubt that she would have her way, if
+not by concession on the part of her daughter, then by concession on
+the part of Herbert Fitzgerald. "I can understand your generosity of
+feeling, my dear," she said; "and at your age I should probably have
+felt the same. And therefore I do not ask you to take any steps
+towards breaking your engagement. The offer must come from Mr.
+Fitzgerald, and I have no doubt that it will come. He, as a man of
+honour, will know that he cannot now offer to marry you; and he will
+also know, as a man of sense, that it would be ruin for him to think
+of--of such a marriage under his present circumstances."
+
+"Why, mamma? Why should it be ruin to him?"
+
+"Why, my dear? Do you think that a wife with a titled name can be of
+advantage to a young man who has not only got his bread to earn, but
+even to look out for a way in which he may earn it?"
+
+"If there be nothing to hurt him but the titled name, that
+difficulty shall be easily conquered."
+
+"Dearest Clara, you know what I mean. You must be aware that a girl
+of your rank, and brought up as you have been, cannot be a fitting
+wife for a man who will now have to struggle with the world at every
+turn."
+
+Clara, as this was said to her, and as she prepared to answer,
+blushed deeply, for she felt herself obliged to speak on a matter
+which had never yet been subject of speech between her and her
+mother. "Mamma," she said, "I cannot agree with you there. I may
+have what the world calls rank; but nevertheless we have been poor,
+and I have not been brought up with costly habits. Why should I not
+live with my husband as--as--as poorly as I have lived with my
+mother? You are not rich, dear mamma, and why should I be?"
+
+Lady Desmond did not answer her daughter at once; but she was not
+silent because an answer failed her. Her answer would have been
+ready enough had she dared to speak it out. "Yes, it is true; we
+have been poor. I, your mother, did by my imprudence bring down upon
+my head and on yours absolute, unrelenting, pitiless poverty. And
+because I did so, I hae never known one happy hour. I have spent my
+days in bitter remorse--in regretting the want of those things which
+it has been the more terrible to want as they are the customary
+attributes of people of my rank. I have been driven to hate those
+around me who have been rich, because I have been poor. I have been
+utterly friendless because I have been poor. I have been able to do
+none of those sweet, soft, lovely things, by doing which other women
+win the smiles of the world, because I have been poor. Poverty and
+rank together have made me wretched--have left me without
+employment, without society, and without love. And now would you
+tell me that because I have been poor you would choose to be poor
+also?" It would have been thus that she would have answered, had she
+been accustomed to speak out her thoughts. But she had ever been
+accustomed to conceal them.
+
+"I was thinking quite as much of him as of you," at last she said.
+"Such an engagement to you would be fraught with much misery, but to
+him it would be ruinous."
+
+"I do not think it, mamma."
+
+"But it is not necessary, Clara, that you should do anything. You
+will wait, of course, and see what Herbert may say himself."
+
+"Herbert--"
+
+"Wait half a moment, my love. I shall be very much surprised if we
+do not find that Mr. Fitzgerald himself will tell you that the match
+must be abandoned."
+
+"But that will make no difference, mamma."
+
+"No difference, my dear! You cannot marry him against his will. You
+do not mean to say that you would wish to bind him to his
+engagement, if he himself thought it would be to his disadvantage?"
+
+"Yes; I will bind him to it."
+
+"Clara!"
+
+"I will make him know that it is not for his disadvantage. I will
+make him understand that a friend and companion who loves him as I
+love him--as no one else will ever love him now--for I love him
+because he was so high-fortuned when he came to me, and because he
+is now so low-fortuned--that such a wife as I will be, cannot be a
+burden to him. I will cling to him whether he throws me off or no. A
+word from him might have broken our engagement before, but a
+thousand words cannot do it now."
+
+Lady Desmond stared at her daughter, for Clara, in her excitement,
+was walking up and down the room. The countess had certainly not
+expected all this, and she was beginning to think that the subject
+for the present might as well be left alone. But Clara had not done
+as yet.
+
+"Mamma." she said, "I will not do anything without telling you; but
+I cannot leave Herbert in all his misery to think that I have no
+sympathy with him. I shall write to him."
+
+"Not before he writes to you, Clara! You would not wish to be
+indelicate?"
+
+"I know but little about delicacy--what people call delicacy; but I
+will not be ungenerous or unkind. Mamma, you brought us two
+together. Was it not so? Did you not do so, fearing that I
+might--might still care for Herbert's cousin? You did it; and half
+wishing to obey you, half attracted by all his goodness, I did learn
+to love Herbert Fitzgerald; and I did learn to forget--no; but I
+learned to cease to love his cousin. You did this and rejoiced at
+it; and now what you did must remain done."
+
+"But, dearest Clara, it will not be for his good."
+
+"It shall be for his good. Mamma, I would not desert him now for all
+that the world could give me. Neither for mother nor brother could I
+do that. Without your leave I would not have given him the right to
+regard me as his own; but now I cannot take that right back again,
+even at your wish. I must write to him at once, mamma, and tell him
+this."
+
+"Clara, at any rate you must not do that, that at least I must
+forbid."
+
+"Mother, you cannot forbid it now," the daughter said, after walking
+twice the length of the room in silence. "If I be not allowed to
+send a letter, I shall leave the house and go to him."
+
+This was all very dreadful. Lady Desmond was astounded at the manner
+in which her daughter carried herself, and the voice with which she
+spoke. The form of her face was altered, and the very step with
+which she trod was unlike her usual gait. What would Lady Desmond
+do? She was not prepared to confine her daughter as a prisoner, nor
+could she publicly forbid the people about the place to go upon her
+message.
+
+"I did not expect that you would have been so undutiful," she said.
+
+"I hope I am not so," Clara answered. "But now my first duty is to
+him. Did you not sanction our loving each other? People cannot call
+back their hearts and their pledges."
+
+"You will, at any rate, wait till tomorrow, Clara."
+
+"It is dark now," said Clara, despondingly, looking out through the
+window upon the falling night; "I suppose I cannot send to-night."
+
+"And you will show me what you write, dearest?"
+
+"No, mamma. If I wrote it for your eyes it could not be the same as
+if I wrote it only for his."
+
+Very gloomy, sombre, and silent, was the Countess of Desmond all
+that night. Nothing further was said about the Fitzgeralds between
+her and her daughter, before they went to bed; and then Lady Desmond
+did speak a few futile words.
+
+"Clara," she said. "You had better think over what we have been
+saying, in bed to-night. You will be more collected to-morrow
+morning."
+
+"I shall think of it of course," said Clara; "but thinking can make
+no difference," and then just touching her mother's forehead with
+her lips she went off slowly to her room.
+
+What sort of a letter she wrote when she got there, we have already
+seen; and have seen also that she took effective steps to have her
+letter carried to Castle Richmond at an hour sufficiently early in
+the morning. There was no danger that the countess would stop the
+message, for the letter had been read twenty times by Emmeline and
+Mary, and had been carried by Herbert to his mother's room, before
+Lady Desmond had left her bed. "Do not set your heart on it too
+warmly," said Herbert's mother to him.
+
+"But is she not excellent?" said Herbert. "It is because she speaks
+of you in such a way--"
+
+"You would not wish to bring her into misery, because of her
+excellence."
+
+"But, mother, I am still a man," said Herbert. This was too much for
+the suffering woman, the one fault of whose life had brought her son
+to such a pass, and throwing her arm round his neck she wept upon
+his shoulders.
+
+There were other messengers went and came that day between Desmond
+Court and Castle Richmond. Clara and her mother saw nothing of each
+other early in the morning; they did not breakfast together, nor was
+there a word said between them on the subject of the Fitzgeralds.
+But Lady Desmond early in the morning--early for her, that is--sent
+her note also to Castle Richmond. It was addressed to Aunt Letty,
+Miss Letitia Fitzgerald, and went to say that Lady Desmond was very
+anxious to see Miss Letty. Under the present circumstances of the
+family, as described to Lady Desmond by Mr. Herbert Fitzgerald, she
+felt that she could not ask to see "his mother";--it was thus that
+she overcame the difficulty which presented itself to her as to the
+proper title now to be given to Lady Fitzgerald;--but perhaps Miss
+Letty would be good enough to see her, if she called at such and
+such an hour. Aunt Letty, much perplexed, had nothing for it, but to
+say that she would see her. The countess must now be looked on as
+closely connected with the family--at any rate, until that match
+were broken off; and therefore Aunt Letty had no alternative. And
+so, precisely at the hour named, the countess and Aunt Letty were
+seated together in the little breakfast-room of which mention has
+before been made.
+
+No two women were ever closeted together who were more unlike each
+other,--except that they had one common strong love for family rank.
+But in Aunt Letty it must be acknowledged that this passion was not
+unwholesome or malevolent in its course of action. She delighted in
+being a Fitzgerald, and in knowing that her branch of the
+Fitzgeralds had been considerable people ever since her Norman
+ancestor had come over to Ireland with Strongbow. But then she had
+a useful idea that considerable people should do a considerable
+deal of good. Her family pride operated more inwardly than
+outwardly,--inwardly as regarded her own family, and not outwardly
+as regarded the world. Her brother, and her nephew, and her
+sister-in-law, and nieces, were, she thought, among the highest
+commoners in Ireland; they were gentlefolks of the first water, and
+walked openly before the world accordingly, proving their claim to
+gentle blood by gentle deeds and honest conduct. Perhaps she did
+think too much of the Fitzgeralds of Castle Richmond; but the sin
+was one of which no recording angel could have made much in his
+entry. That she was a stupid old woman, prejudiced in the highest
+degree, and horribly ignorant of all the world beyond her own very
+narrow circle,--even of that, I do not think that the recording
+angel could, under the circumstances, have made a great deal.
+
+And now how was her family pride affected by this horrible
+catastrophe that had been made known to her? Herbert the heir, whom
+as heir she had almost idolized, was nobody. Her sister-in-law, whom
+she had learned to love with the whole of her big heart, was no
+sister-in-law. Her brother was one, who, in lieu of adding glory to
+the family, would always be regarded as the most unfortunate of the
+Fitzgerald baronets. But with her, human nature was stronger than
+family pride, and she loved them all, not better, but more tenderly
+than ever.
+
+The two ladies were closeted together for about two hours; and then,
+when the door was opened, Aunt Letty might have been seen with her
+bonnet much on one side, and her poor old eyes and cheeks red with
+weeping. The countess, too, held her handkerchief to her eyes as she
+got back into her pony-carriage. She saw no one else there but Aunt
+Letty; and from her mood when she returned to Desmond Court it might
+be surmised that from Aunt Letty she had learned little to comfort
+her.
+
+"They will be beggars!" she said to herself--"beggars!"--when the
+door of her own room had closed upon her. And there are few people
+in the world who held such beggary in less esteem than did the
+Countess of Desmond. It may almost be said that she hated herself on
+account of her own poverty.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXIX
+
+ILL NEWS FLIES FAST
+
+
+A dull, cold, wretched week passed over their heads at Castle
+Richmond, during which they did nothing but realize the truth of
+their position; and then came a letter from Mr. Prendergast,
+addressed to Herbert, in which he stated that such inquiries as he
+had hitherto made left no doubt on his mind that the man named
+Mollett, who had lately made repeated visits at Castle Richmond, was
+he who had formerly taken the house in Dorsetshire under the name of
+Talbot. In his packet Mr. Prendergast sent copies of documents and
+of verbal evidence which he had managed to obtain; but with the
+actual details of these it is not necessary that I should trouble
+those who are following me in this story. In this letter Mr.
+Prendergast also recommended that some intercourse should be had
+with Owen Fitzgerald. It was expedient, he said, that all the
+parties concerned should recognize Owen's position as the heir
+presumptive to the title and estate; and as he, he said, had found
+Mr. Fitzgerald of Hap House to be forbearing, generous, and
+high-spirited, he thought that this intercourse might be conducted
+without enmity or ill blood. And then he suggested that Mr. Somers
+should see Owen Fitzgerald.
+
+All this Herbert explained to his father gently and without
+complaint; but it seemed now as though Sir Thomas had ceased to
+interest himself in the matter. Such battle as it had been in his
+power to make he had made to save his son's heritage and his wife's
+name and happiness, even at the expense of his own conscience. That
+battle had gone altogether against him, and now there was nothing
+left for him but to turn his face to the wall and die. Absolute
+ruin, through his fault, had come upon him and all that belonged to
+him,--ruin that would now be known to the world at large; and it was
+beyond his power to face that world again. In that the glory was
+gone from the house of his son, and of his son's mother, the glory
+was gone from his own house. He made no attempt to leave his bed,
+though strongly recommended so to do by his own family doctor. And
+then a physician came down from Dublin, who could only feel,
+whatever he might say, how impossible it is to administer to a mind
+diseased. The mind of that poor man was diseased past all curing in
+this world, and there was nothing left for him but to die.
+
+Herbert, of course, answered Clara's letter, but he did not go over
+to see her during that week, nor indeed for some little time
+afterwards. He answered it at considerable length, professing his
+ready willingness to give back to Clara her troth, and even
+recommending her, with very strong logic and unanswerable arguments
+of worldly sense, to regard their union as unwise and even
+impossible; but nevertheless there protruded through all his sense
+and all his rhetoric, evidences of love and of a desire for love
+returned, which were much more unanswerable than his arguments, and
+much stronger than his logic. Clara read his letter, not as he would
+have advised her to read it, but certainly in the manner which best
+pleased his heart, and answered it again, declaring that all that he
+said was no avail. He might be false to her if he would. If through
+fickleness of heart and purpose he chose to abandon her, she would
+never complain--never at least aloud. But she would not be false to
+him, nor were her inclinations such as to make it likely that she
+should be fickle, even though her affection might be tried by a
+delay of years. Love with her had been too serious to be thrown
+aside. All which was rather strong language on the part of a young
+lady, but was thought by those other young ladies at Castle Richmond
+to show the very essence of becoming young-ladyhood. They pronounced
+Clara to be perfect in feeling and in judgment, and Herbert could
+not find it in his heart to contradict them.
+
+And of all these doings, writings, and resolves, Clara dutifully
+told her mother. Poor Lady Desmond was at her wits' end in the
+matter. She could scold her daughter, but she had no other power of
+doing anything. Clara had so taken the bit between her teeth that it
+was no longer possible to check her with any usual rein. In these
+days young ladies are seldom deprived by force of paper, pen, and
+ink, and the absolute incarceration of such an offender would be
+still more unusual. Another countess would have taken her daughter
+away, either to London and a series of balls, or to the South of
+Italy, or to the family castle in the North of Scotland, but poor
+Lady Desmond had not the power of other countesses. Now that it was
+put to the trial, she found that she had no power, even over her own
+daughter. "Mamma, it was your own doing," Clara would say; and the
+countess would feel that this alluded not only to her daughter's
+engagement with Herbert the disinherited, but also to her
+non-engagement with Owen the heir.
+
+Under these circumstances Lady Desmond sent for her son. The earl
+was still at Eton, but was now grown to be almost a man--such a man
+as forward Eton boys are at sixteen--tall, and lathy, and handsome,
+with soft incipient whiskers, a bold brow and blushing cheeks, with
+all a boy's love for frolic still strong within him, but some touch
+of a man's pride to check it. In her difficulty Lady Desmond sent
+for the young earl, who had now not been home since the previous
+midsummer, hoping that his young manhood might have some effect in
+saving his sister from the disgrace of a marriage which would make
+her so totally bankrupt both in wealth and rank.
+
+Mr. Somers did go once to Hap House, at Herbert's instigation; but
+very little came of his visit. He had always disliked Owen,
+regarding him as an unthrift, any close connexion with whom could
+only bring contamination on the Fitzgerald property; and Owen had
+returned the feeling tenfold. His pride had been wounded by what he
+had considered to be the agent's insolence, and he had stigmatized
+Mr. Somers to his friends as a self-seeking, mercenary prig. Very
+little, therefore, came of the visit. Mr. Somers, to give him his
+due, had attempted to do his best; being anxious, for Herbert's
+sake, to conciliate Owen; perhaps having--and why not?--some
+eye to the future agency. But Owen was hard, and cold, and
+uncommunicative,--very unlike what he had before been to Mr.
+Prendergast. But then Mr. Prendergast had never offended his pride.
+
+"You may tell my cousin Herbert," he said, with some little special
+emphasis on the word cousin, "that I shall be glad to see him, as
+soon as he feels himself able to meet me. It will be for the good of
+us both that we should have some conversation together. Will you
+tell him, Mr. Somers, that I shall be happy to go to him, or to see
+him here? Perhaps my going to Castle Richmond, during the present
+illness of Sir Thomas, may be inconvenient." And this was all that
+Mr. Somers could get from him.
+
+In a very short time the whole story became known to everybody round
+the neighbourhood. And what would have been the good of keeping it
+secret? There are some secrets,--kept as secrets because they cannot
+well be discussed openly,--which may be allowed to leak out with so
+much advantage! The day must come, and that apparently at no distant
+time, when all the world would know the fate of that Fitzgerald
+family; when Sir Owen must walk into the hall of Castle Richmond,
+the undoubted owner of the mansion and demesne. Why then keep it
+secret? Herbert openly declared his wish to Mr. Somers that there
+should be no secret in the matter. "There is no disgrace," he said,
+thinking of his mother; "nothing to be ashamed of, let the world say
+what it will."
+
+Down in the servants' hall the news came to them gradually,
+whispered about from one to another. They hardly understood what it
+meant, or how it had come to pass; but they did know that their
+master's marriage had been no marriage, and that their master's son
+was no heir. Mrs. Jones said not a word in the matter to any one.
+Indeed, since that day on which she had been confronted with
+Mollett, she had not associated with the servants at all, but had
+kept herself close to her mistress. She understood what it all meant
+perfectly; and the depth of the tragedy had so cowed her spirit that
+she hardly dared to speak of it. Who told the servants,--or who does
+tell servants of such matters, it is impossible to say, but before
+Mr. Prendergast had been three days out of the house they all knew
+that the Mr. Owen of Hap House was to be the future master of Castle
+Richmond.
+
+"An' a sore day it'll be; a sore day, a sore day," said Richard,
+seated in an armchair by the fire, at the end of the servants' hall,
+shaking his head despondingly.
+
+"Faix, an' you may say that," said Corney, the footman. "That
+Misther Owen will go tatthering away to the divil, when the old
+place comes into his hans. No fear he'll make it fly."
+
+"Sorrow seize the ould lawyer for coming down here at all at all,"
+said the cook.
+
+"I never knew no good come of thim dry ould bachelors," said Biddy
+the housemaid; "specially the Englishers."
+
+"The two of yez are no better nor simpletons," said Richard,
+magisterially. "'Twarn't he that done it. The likes of him couldn't
+do the likes o' that."
+
+"And what was it as done it?" said Biddy.
+
+"Ax no questions, and may be you'll be tould no lies," replied
+Richard.
+
+"In course we all knows it's along of her ladyship's marriage which
+warn't no marriage," said the cook. "May the heavens be her bed when
+the Lord takes her! A betther lady nor a kinder-hearted niver
+stepped the floor of a kitchen."
+
+"'Deed an that's thrue for you, cook," said Biddy, with the corner
+of her apron up to her eyes. "But tell me, Richard, won't poor Mr.
+Herbert have nothing?"
+
+"Never you mind about Mr. Herbert," said Richard, who had seen Biddy
+grow up from a slip of a girl, and therefore was competent to snub
+her at every word.
+
+"Ah, but I do mind," said the girl. "I minds more about him than ere
+a one of 'em; and av' that Lady Clara won't have em a cause of
+this--"
+
+"Not a step she won't, thin," said Corney. "She'll go back to Mr.
+Owen. He was her fust love. You'll see else." And so the matter was
+discussed in the servants' hall at the great house.
+
+But perhaps the greatest surprise, the greatest curiosity, and the
+greatest consternation, were felt at the parsonage. The rumour
+reached Mr. Townsend at one of the Relief Committees;--and Mrs.
+Townsend from the mouth of one of her servants, during his absence,
+on the same day; and when Mr. Townsend returned to the parsonage,
+they met each other with blank faces.
+
+"Oh, Aeneas!" said she, before she could get his greatcoat from off
+his shoulders, "have you heard the news?"
+
+"What news?--about Castle Richmond?"
+
+"Yes; about Castle Richmond." And then she knew that he had heard
+it.
+
+Some glimmering of Lady Fitzgerald's early history had been known to
+both of them, as it had been known almost to all in the country; but
+in late years this history had been so much forgotten, that men had
+ceased to talk of it, and this calamity therefore came with all the
+weight of a new misfortune.
+
+"And, Aeneas, who told you of it?" she asked, as they sat together
+over the fire, in their dingy, dirty parlour.
+
+"Well, strange to say, I heard it first from Father Barney."
+
+"Oh, mercy! and is it all about the country in that way?"
+
+"Herbert, you know, has not been at any one of the Committees for
+the last ten days, and Mr. Somers for the last week past has been as
+silent as death; so much so, that that horrid creature, Father
+Columb, would have made a regular set speech the other day at
+Gortnaclough, if I hadn't put him down."
+
+"Dear, dear, dear!" said Mrs. Townsend.
+
+"And I was talking to Father Barney about this, to-day--about Mr.
+Somers, that is."
+
+"Yes, yes, yes!"
+
+"And then he said, 'I suppose you know what has happened at Castle
+Richmond?'"
+
+"How on earth had he learned?" asked Mrs. Townsend, jealous that a
+Roman Catholic priest should have heard such completely Protestant
+news before the Protestant parson and his wife.
+
+"Oh, they learn everything--from the servants, I suppose."
+
+"Of course, the mean creatures!" said Mrs. Townsend, forgetting,
+probably, her own little conversation with her own man-of-all-work
+that morning. "But go on, Aeneas."
+
+"'What has happened,' said I, 'at Castle Richmond?' 'Oh, you
+haven't heard,' said he. And I was obliged to own that I had not,
+though I saw that it gave him a kind of triumph. 'Why,' said he,
+'very bad news has reached them indeed; the worst of news.' And then
+he told me about Lady Fitzgerald. To give him his due, I must say
+that he was very sorry--very sorry. 'The poor young fellow!' he
+said--'the poor young fellow!' And I saw that he turned away his
+face to hide a tear."
+
+"Crocodile tears!" said Mrs. Townsend.
+
+"No, they were not," said her reverend lord; "and Father Barney is
+not so bad as I once thought him."
+
+"I hope you are not going over too, Aeneas?" And his consort almost
+cried as such a horrid thought entered her head. In her ideas any
+feeling short of absolute enmity to a servant of the Church of Rome
+was an abandonment of some portion of the Protestant basis of the
+Church of England. "The small end of the wedge," she would call it,
+when people around her would suggest that that the heart of a Roman
+Catholic priest might possibly not be altogether black and devilish.
+
+"Well, I hope not, my dear," said Mr. Townsend, with a slight touch
+of sarcasm in his voice. "But, as I was saying, Father Barney told
+me then that this Mr. Prendergast--"
+
+"Oh, I had known of his being there from the day of his coming."
+
+"This Mr Prendergast, it seems, knew the whole affair, from
+beginning to end."
+
+"But how did he know it, Aeneas?"
+
+"That I can't tell you. He was a friend of Sir Thomas before his
+marriage, I know that. And he has told them that it is of no use
+their attempting to keep it secret. He was over at Hap House with
+Owen Fitzgerald before he went."
+
+"And has Owen Fitzgerald been told?"
+
+"Yes, he has been told--told that he is to be the next heir, so
+Father Barney says."
+
+Mrs. Townsend wished in her heart that the news could have reached
+her through a purer source, but all this, coming though it did from
+Father Barney, tallied too completely with what she herself had
+heard to leave on her mind any doubt of its truth. And then she
+began to think of Lady Fitzgerald and her condition, of Herbert and
+of his, and of the condition of them all, till by degrees her mind
+passed away from Father Barney and all his iniquities.
+
+"It is very dreadful," she said, in a low voice.
+
+"Very dreadful, very dreadful. I hardly know how to think of it. And
+I fear that Sir Thomas will not live many months to give them even
+the benefit of his life interest."
+
+"And when he dies all will be gone?"
+
+"Everything."
+
+And then tears stood in her eyes also, and in his also after a
+while. It is very easy for a clergyman in his pulpit to preach
+eloquently upon the vileness of worldly wealth, and the futility of
+worldly station; but where will you ever find one who, when the time
+of proof shall come, will give proof that he himself feels what he
+preaches? Mr. Townsend was customarily loud and eager upon this
+subject, and yet he was now shedding tears because his young friend
+Herbert was deprived of his inheritance.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXX
+
+PALLIDA MORS
+
+
+Mr. Somers, returning from Hap House, gave Owen's message to Herbert
+Fitzgerald, but at the same time told him that he did not think any
+good would come of such a meeting.
+
+"I went over there," he said, "because I would not willingly omit
+anything that Mr. Prendergast had suggested; but I did not expect
+any good to come of it. You know what I have always thought of Owen
+Fitzgerald."
+
+"But Mr. Prendergast said that he behaved so well."
+
+"He did not know Prendergast, and was cowed for the moment by what
+he had heard. That was natural enough. You do as you like, however;
+only do not have him over to Castle Richmond."
+
+Owen, however, did not trust solely to Mr. Somers, but on the
+following day wrote to Herbert, suggesting that they had better
+meet, and begging that the place and time of meeting might be named.
+He himself again suggested Hap House, and declared that he would be
+at home on any day and at any hour that his "cousin" might name,
+"only," as he added, "the sooner the better." Herbert wrote back by
+the same messenger, saying that he would be with him early on the
+following morning; and on the following morning he drove up to the
+door of Hap House, while Owen was still sitting with his coffee-pot
+and knife and fork before him.
+
+Captain Donnellan, whom we saw there on the occasion of our first
+morning visit, was now gone, and Owen Fitzgerald was all alone in
+his home. The captain had been an accustomed guest, spending perhaps
+half his time there during the hunting season, but since Mr.
+Prendergast had been at Hap House, he had been made to understand
+that the master would fain be alone. And since that day Owen had
+never hunted, nor been noticed in his old haunts, nor had been seen
+talking to his old friends. He had remained at home, sitting over
+the fire thinking, wandering up and down his own avenue, or standing
+about the stable, idly, almost unconscious of the grooming of his
+horses. Once and once only he had been mounted, and then as the dusk
+of evening was coming on he had trotted over quickly to Desmond
+Court, as though he had in hand some purport of great moment, but if
+so he changed his mind when he came to the gate, for he walked on
+slowly for three or four hundred yards beyond it, and then, turning
+his horse's head, slowly made his way back past the gate, and then
+trotted quickly home to Hap House. In these moments of his life he
+must make or mar himself for life, 'twas so that he felt it, and how
+should he make himself, or how avoid the marring? That was the
+question which he now strove to answer.
+
+When Herbert entered the room, he rose from his chair, and walked
+quickly up to his visitor, with extended hand, and a look of welcome
+in his face. His manner was very different from that with which he
+had turned and parted from his cousin not many days since in the
+demesne at Castle Richmond. Then he had intended absolutely to defy
+Herbert Fitzgerald; but there was no spirit of defiance now, either
+in his hand, or face, or in the tone of his voice.
+
+"I am very glad you have come," said he. "I hope you understood that
+I would have gone to you, only that I thought it might be better for
+both of us to be here."
+
+Herbert said something to the effect that he had been quite
+willing to come over to Hap House. But he was not at the moment so
+self-possessed as the other, and hardly knew how to begin the
+subject which was to be discussed between them.
+
+"Of course you know that Mr. Prendergast was here?" said Owen.
+
+"Oh yes," said Herbert.
+
+"And Mr. Somers also? I tell you fairly, Herbert, that when Mr.
+Somers came, I was not willing to say much to him. What has to be
+said must be said between you and me, and not to any third party. I
+could not open my heart, nor yet speak my thoughts, to Mr. Somers."
+
+In answer to this, Herbert again said that Owen need have no scruple
+in speaking to him. "It is all plain sailing; too plain, I fear,"
+said he. "There is no doubt whatever now as to the truth of what Mr.
+Prendergast has told you."
+
+And then having said so much, Herbert waited for Owen to speak. He,
+Herbert himself, had little or nothing to say. Castle Richmond with
+its title and acres was not to be his, but was to be the property of
+this man with whom he was now sitting. When that was actually and
+positively understood between them, there was nothing further to be
+said; nothing as far as Herbert knew. That other sorrow of his, that
+other and deeper sorrow which affected his mother's name and
+station,--as to that he did not find himself called on to speak to
+Owen Fitzgerald. Nor was it necessary that he should say anything as
+to his great consolation--the consolation which had reached him
+from Clara Desmond.
+
+"And is it true, Herbert," asked Owen at last, "that my uncle is so
+very ill?" In the time of their kindly intercourse, Owen had always
+called Sir Thomas his uncle, though latterly he had ceased to do so.
+
+"He is very ill; very ill indeed," said Herbert. This was a subject
+in which Owen had certainly a right to feel interested, seeing that
+his own investiture would follow immediately on the death of Sir
+Thomas; but Herbert almost felt that the question might as well have
+been spared. It had been asked, however, almost solely with the view
+of gaining some few moments.
+
+"Herbert," he said at last, standing up from his chair, as he made
+an effort to begin his speech, "I don't know how far you will
+believe me when I tell you that all this news has caused me great
+sorrow. I grieve for your father and your mother, and for you, from
+the very bottom of my heart."
+
+"It is very kind of you," said Herbert. "But the blow has fallen,
+and as for myself, I believe that I can bear it. I do not care so
+very much about the property."
+
+"Nor do I;" and now Owen spoke rather louder, and with his own look
+of strong impulse about his mouth and forehead. "Nor do I care so
+much about the property. You were welcome to it; and are so still. I
+have never coveted it from you, and do not covet it."
+
+"It will be yours now without coveting," replied Herbert; and then
+there was another pause, during which Herbert sat still, while Owen
+stood leaning with his back against the mantelpiece.
+
+"Herbert," said he, after they had thus remained silent for two or
+three minutes, "I have made up my mind on this matter, and I will
+tell you truly what I do desire, and what I do not. I do not desire
+your inheritance, but I do desire that Clara Desmond shall be my
+wife."
+
+"Owen," said the other, also getting up, "I did not expect when I
+came here that you would have spoken to me about this."
+
+"It was that we might speak about this that I asked you to come
+here. But listen to me. When I say that I want Clara Desmond to be
+my wife, I mean to say that I want that, and that only. It may be
+true that I am, or shall be, legally the heir to your father's
+estate. Herbert, I will relinquish all that, because I do not feel
+it to be my own. I will relinquish it in any way that may separate
+myself from it most thoroughly. But in return, do you separate
+yourself from her who was my own before you had ever known her."
+
+And thus he did make the proposition as to which he had been making
+up his mind since the morning on which Mr. Prendergast had come to
+him.
+
+Herbert for a while was struck dumb with amazement, not so much at
+the quixotic generosity of the proposal, as at the singular mind of
+the man in thinking that such a plan could be carried out. Herbert's
+best quality was no doubt his sturdy common sense, and that was
+shocked by a suggestion which presumed that all the legalities and
+ordinary bonds of life could be upset by such an agreement between
+two young men. He knew that Owen Fitzgerald could not give away his
+title to an estate of fourteen thousand a year in this off-hand
+way, and that no one could accept such a gift were it possible to be
+given. The estate and title must belong to Owen, and could not
+possibly belong to any one else, merely at his word and fancy. And
+then again, how could the love of a girl like Clara Desmond be
+bandied to and fro at the will of any suitor or suitors? That she
+had once accepted Owen's love, Herbert knew; but since that, in a
+soberer mood, and with maturer judgment, she had accepted his. How
+could he give it up to another, or how could that other take
+possession of it if so abandoned? The bargain was one quite
+impossible to be carried out; and yet Owen in proposing it had fully
+intended to be as good as his word.
+
+"That is impossible," said Herbert, in a low voice.
+
+"Why impossible? May I not do what I like with that which is my own?
+It is not impossible. I will have nothing to do with that property
+of yours. In fact, it is not my own, and I will not take it; I will
+not rob you of that which you have been born to expect. But in
+return for this--"
+
+"Owen, do not talk of it; would you abandon a girl whom you loved
+for any wealth, or any property?"
+
+"You cannot love her as I love her. I will talk to you on this
+matter openly, as I have never yet talked to any one. Since first I
+saw Clara Desmond, the only wish of my life has been that I might
+have her for my wife. I have longed for her as a child longs--if you
+know what I mean by that. When I saw that she was old enough to
+understand what love meant, I told her what was in my heart, and she
+accepted my love. She swore to me that she would be mine, let mother
+or brother say what they would. As sure as you are standing there a
+living man she loved me with all truth. And that I loved her--!
+Herbert, I have never loved aught but her; nothing else!--neither
+man nor woman, nor wealth nor title. All I ask is that I may have
+that which was my own."
+
+"But, Owen--" and Herbert touched his cousin's arm.
+
+"Well; why do you not speak? I have spoken plainly enough."
+
+"It is not easy to speak plainly on all subjects. I would not, if I
+could avoid it, say a word that would hurt your feelings."
+
+"Never mind my feelings. Speak out, and let us have the truth, in
+God's name. My feelings have never been much considered yet--either
+in this matter or in any other."
+
+"It seems to me," said Herbert, "that the giving of Lady Clara's
+hand cannot depend on your will, or on mine."
+
+"You mean her mother."
+
+"No, by no means. Her mother now would be the last to favour me. I
+mean herself. If she loves me, as I hope and believe--nay, am
+sure--"
+
+"She did love me!" shouted Owen.
+
+"But even if so--I do not now say anything of that; but even if so,
+surely you would not have her marry you if she does not love you
+still? You would not wish her to be your wife if her heart belongs
+to me?"
+
+"It has been given you at her mother's bidding."
+
+"However given it is now my own, and it cannot be returned. Look
+here, Owen. I will show you her last two letters, if you will allow
+me; not in pride, I hope, but that you may truly know what are her
+wishes." And he took from his breast, where they had been ever since
+he received them, the two letters which Clara had written to him.
+Owen read them both twice over before he spoke, first one and then
+the other, and an indescribable look of pain fell on his brow as he
+did so. They were so tenderly worded, so sweet, so generous! He
+would have given all the world to have had those letters addressed
+by her to himself. But even they did not convince him. His heart had
+never changed, and he could not believe that there had been any
+change in hers.
+
+"I might have known," he said, as he gave them back, "that she would
+be too noble to abandon you in your distress. As long as you were
+rich I might have had some chance of getting her back, despite the
+machinations of her mother. But now that she thinks you are poor--"
+And then he stopped, and hid his face between his hands.
+
+And in what he had last said there was undoubtedly something of
+truth. Clara's love for Herbert had never been passionate, till
+passion had been created by his misfortune. And in her thoughts of
+Owen there had been much of regret. Though she had resolved to
+withdraw her love, she had not wholly ceased to love him. Judgment
+had bade her to break her word to him, and she had obeyed her
+judgment. She had admitted to herself that her mother was right in
+telling her that she could not join her own bankrupt fortunes to the
+fortunes of one who was both poor and a spendthrift, and thus she
+had plucked from her heart the picture of the man she had loved,--or
+endeavoured so to pluck it. Some love for him, however, had
+unwittingly lingered there. And then Herbert had come with his suit,
+a suitor fitted for her in every way. She had not loved him as she
+had loved Owen. She had never felt that she could worship him, and
+tremble at the tones of his voice, and watch the glance of his eye,
+and gaze into his face as though he were half divine. But she
+acknowledged his worth, and valued him: she knew that it behoved her
+to choose some suitor as her husband; and now that her dream was
+gone, where could she choose better than here? And thus Herbert had
+been accepted. He had been accepted, but the dream was not wholly
+gone. Owen was in adversity, ill spoken of by those around her,
+shunned by his own relatives, living darkly, away from all that is
+soft in life; and for these reasons Clara could not wholly forget
+her dream. She had, in some sort, unconsciously clung to her old
+love, till he to whom she had plighted her new troth was in
+adversity,--and then all was changed. Then her love for Herbert did
+become a passion; and then, as Owen had become rich, she felt that
+she could think of him without remorse. He was quite right in
+perceiving that his chance was gone now that Herbert had ceased to
+be rich.
+
+"Owen," said Herbert, and his voice was full of tenderness, for at
+this moment he felt that he did love and pity his cousin, "we must
+each of us bear the weight which fortune has thrown on us. It may be
+that we are neither of us to be envied. I have lost all that men
+generally value, and you--"
+
+"I have lost all on earth that is valuable to me. But no, it is not
+lost,--not lost as yet. As long as her name is Clara Desmond, she is
+as open for me to win as she is for you. And, Herbert, think of it
+before you make me your enemy. See what I offer you,--not as a
+bargain, mind you. I give up all my title to your father's property.
+I will sign any paper that your lawyers may bring to me, which may
+serve to give you back your inheritance. As for me, I would scorn to
+take that which belongs in justice to another. I will not have your
+property. Come what may, I will not have it. I will give it up to
+you, either as to my enemy or as to my friend."
+
+"I sincerely hope that we may be friends, but what you say is
+impossible."
+
+"It is not impossible. I hereby pledge myself that I will not take
+an acre of your father's lands; but I pledge myself also that I will
+always be your enemy if Clara Desmond becomes your wife: and I mean
+what I say. I have set my heart on one thing, and on one thing only,
+and if I am ruined in that I am ruined indeed."
+
+Herbert remained silent, for he had nothing further that he knew how
+to plead; he felt as other men would feel, that each of them must
+keep that which Fate had given him. Fate had decreed that Owen
+should be the heir to Castle Richmond, and the decree thus gone
+forth must stand valid; and Fate had also decreed that Owen should
+be rejected by Clara Desmond, which other decree, as Herbert
+thought, must be held as valid also. But he had no further
+inclination to argue upon the subject: his cousin was becoming hot
+and angry; and Herbert was beginning to wish that he was on his way
+home, that he might be once more at his father's bedside, or in his
+mother's room, comforting her and being comforted.
+
+"Well," said Owen, after a while in his deep-toned voice, "what do
+you say to my offer?"
+
+"I have nothing further to say: we must each take our own course; as
+for me, I have lost everything but one thing, and it is not likely
+that I shall throw that away from me."
+
+"Nor, so help me Heaven in my need! will I let that thing be filched
+from me. I have offered you kindness and brotherly love, and wealth,
+and all that friendship could do for a man, give me my way in this,
+and I will be to you such a comrade and such a brother."
+
+"Should I be a man, Owen, were I to give up this?"
+
+"Be a man! Yes! It is pride on your part. You do not love her; you
+have never loved her as I have loved; you have not sat apart long
+months and months thinking of her, as I have done. From the time she
+was a child I marked her as my own. As God will help me when I die,
+she is all that I have coveted in this world;--all! But her I have
+coveted with such longings of the heart, that I cannot bring myself
+to live without her;--nor will I." And then again they both were
+silent.
+
+"It may be as well that we should part now," said Herbert at last.
+"I do not know that we can gain anything by further talking on this
+subject."
+
+"Well, you know that best; but I have one further question to ask
+you."
+
+"What is it, Owen?"
+
+"You still think of marrying Clara Desmond?"
+
+"Certainly; of course I think of it."
+
+"And when? I presume you are not so chicken-hearted as to be afraid
+of speaking out openly what you intend to do."
+
+"I cannot say when; I had hoped that it would have been very soon;
+but all this will of course delay it. It may be years first."
+
+These last were the only pleasant words that Owen had heard. If
+there were to be a delay of years, might not his chance still be as
+good as Herbert's? But then this delay was to be the consequence of
+his cousin's ruined prospects--and the accomplishment of that ruin
+Owen had pledged himself to prevent! Was he by his own deed to
+enable his enemy to take that very step which he was so firmly
+resolved to prevent?
+
+"You will give me your promise," said he, "that you will not marry
+her for the next three years? Make me that promise, and I will make
+you the same."
+
+Herbert felt that there could be no possibility of his now marrying
+within the time named, but nevertheless he would not bring himself
+to make such a promise as this. He would make no bargain about Clara
+Desmond, about his Clara, which could in any way admit a doubt as to
+his own right. Had Owen asked him to promise that he would not marry
+her during the next week he would have given no such pledge. "No,"
+said he, "I cannot promise that."
+
+"She is now only seventeen."
+
+"It does not matter. I will make no such promise, because on such a
+subject you have no right to ask for any. When she will consent to
+run her risk of happiness in coming to me, then I shall marry her."
+
+Owen was now walking up and down the room with rapid steps. "You
+have not the courage to fight me fairly," said he.
+
+"I do not wish to fight you at all."
+
+"Ah, but you must fight me! Shall I see the prey taken out of my
+jaws, and not struggle for it? No, by heavens! you must fight me;
+and I tell you fairly, that the fight shall be as hard as I can make
+it. I have offered you that which one living man is seldom able to
+offer to another,--money, and land, and wealth, and station; all
+these things I throw away from me, because I feel that they should
+be yours; and I ask only in return the love of a young girl. I ask
+that because I feel that it should be mine. If it has gone from
+me--which I do not believe--it has been filched and stolen by a
+thief in the night. She did love me, if a girl ever loved a man; but
+she was separated from me, and I bore that patiently because I
+trusted her. But she was young and weak, and her mother was strong
+and crafty. She has accepted you at her mother's instance; and were
+I base enough to keep from you your father's inheritance, her mother
+would no more give her to you now than she would to me then. This is
+true; and if you know it to be true--as you do know--you will be
+mean, and dastard, and a coward--you will be no Fitzgerald if you
+keep from me that which I have a right to claim as my own. Not
+fight! Ay, but you must fight. We cannot both live here in this
+country if Clara Desmond become your wife. Mark my words, if that
+take place, you and I cannot live here alongside of each other's
+houses." He paused for a moment after this, and then added, "You can
+go now if you will, for I have said out my say."
+
+And Herbert did go,--almost without uttering a word of adieu. What
+could he say in answer to such threats as these? That his cousin was
+in every way unreasonable,--as unreasonable in his generosity as he
+was in his claims, he felt convinced. But an unreasonable man,
+though he is one whom one would fain conquer by arguments were it
+possible, is the very man on whom arguments have no avail. A madman
+is mad because he is mad. Herbert had a great deal that was very
+sensible to allege in favour of his views, but what use of alleging
+anything of sense to such a mind as that of Owen Fitzgerald? So he
+went his way without further speech.
+
+When he was gone, Owen for a time went on walking his room, and then
+sank again into his chair. Abominably irrational as his method of
+arranging all these family difficulties will no doubt seem to all
+who may read it, to him it had appeared not only an easy but a happy
+mode of bringing back contentment to everybody. He was quite serious
+in his intention of giving up his position as heir to Castle
+Richmond. Mr. Prendergast had explained to him that the property was
+entailed as far as him, but no farther; and had done this,
+doubtless, with the view, not then expressed, to some friendly
+arrangement by which a small portion of the property might be saved
+and restored to the children of Sir Thomas. But Owen had looked at
+it quite in another light. He had, in justice, no right to inquire
+into all those circumstances of his old cousin's marriage. Such a
+union was a marriage in the eye of God, and should be held as such
+by him. He would take no advantage of so terrible an accident.
+
+He would take no advantage. So he said to himself over and over
+again; but yet, as he said it, he resolved that he would take
+advantage. He would not touch the estate; but surely if he abstained
+from touching it, Herbert would be generous enough to leave to him
+the solace of his love! And he had no scruple in allotting to Clara
+the poorer husband instead of the richer. He was no poorer now than
+when she had accepted him. Looking at it in that light, had he not a
+right to claim that she should abide by her first acceptance? Could
+any one be found to justify the theory that a girl may throw over a
+poor lover because a rich lover comes in the way? Owen had his own
+ideas of right and wrong--ideas which were not without a basis of
+strong, rugged justice; and nothing could be more antagonistic to
+them than such a doctrine as this. And then he still believed in his
+heart that he was dearer to Clara than that other richer suitor. He
+heard of her from time to time, and those who had spoken to him had
+spoken of her as pining for love of him. In this there had been much
+of the flattery of servants, and something of the subservience of
+those about him who wished to stand well in his graces. But he had
+believed it. He was not a conceited man, nor even a vain man. He did
+not think himself more clever than his cousin; and as for personal
+appearance, it was a matter to which his thoughts never descended;
+but he had about him a self-dependence and assurance in his own
+manhood, which forbade him to doubt the love of one who had told him
+that she loved him.
+
+And he did not believe in Herbert's love. His cousin was, as he
+thought, of a calibre too cold for love. That Clara was valued by
+him, Owen did not doubt--valued for her beauty, for her rank, for
+her grace and peerless manner; but what had such value as that to do
+with love? Would Herbert sacrifice everything for Clara Desmond?
+would he bid Pelion fall on Ossa? would he drink up Esil? All this
+would Owen do, and more; he would do more than any Laertes had ever
+dreamed. He would give up for now and for ever all title to those
+rich lands which made the Fitzgeralds of Castle Richmond the men of
+greatest mark in all their county.
+
+And thus he fanned himself into a fury as he thought of his cousin's
+want of generosity. Herbert would be the heir, and because he was
+the heir he would be the favoured lover. But there might yet be time
+and opportunity; and at any rate Clara should not marry without
+knowing what was the whole truth. Herbert was ungenerous, but Clara
+still might be just. If not,--then, as he had said before, he would
+fight out the battle to the end as with an enemy.
+
+Herbert, when he got on to his horse to ride home, was forced to
+acknowledge to himself that no good whatever had come from his visit
+to Hap House. Words had been spoken which might have been much
+better left unspoken. An angry man will often cling to his anger
+because his anger has been spoken; he will do evil because he has
+threatened evil, and is ashamed to be better than his words. And
+there was no comfort to be derived from those lavish promises made
+by Owen with regard to the property. To Herbert's mind they were
+mere moonshine--very graceful on the part of the maker, but meaning
+nothing. No one could have Castle Richmond but him who owned it
+legally. Owen Fitzgerald would become Sir Owen, and would, as a
+matter of course, be Sir Owen of Castle Richmond. There was no
+comfort on that score; and then, on that other score, there was so
+much discomfort. Of giving up his bride Herbert never for a moment
+thought; but he did think, with increasing annoyance, of the angry
+threats which had been pronounced against him.
+
+When he rode into the stable-yard as was his wont, he found Richard
+waiting for him. This was not customary; as in these latter days
+Richard, though he always drove the car, as a sort of subsidiary
+coachman to the young ladies to whom the car was supposed to belong
+in fee, did not act as general groom. He had been promoted beyond
+this, and was a sort of hanger-on about the house, half indoor
+servant and half out, doing very much what he liked, and giving
+advice to everybody, from the cook downwards. He thanked God that he
+knew his place, he would often say; but nobody else knew it.
+Nevertheless, everybody liked him; even the poor housemaid whom he
+snubbed.
+
+"Is anything the matter?" asked Herbert, looking at the man's
+sorrow-laden face.
+
+'"Deed an' there is, Mr. Herbert; Sir Thomas is--"
+
+"My father is not dead!" exclaimed Herbert.
+
+"Oh no, Mr. Herbert; it's not so bad as that; but he is very
+failing,--very failing. My lady is with him now."
+
+Herbert ran into the house, and at the bottom of the chief stairs he
+met one of his sisters, who had heard the steps of his horse.
+
+"Oh, Herbert, I am so glad you have come!" said she. Her eyes and
+cheeks were red with tears, and her hand, as her brother took it,
+was cold and numbed.
+
+"What is it, Mary? Is he worse?"
+
+"Oh, so much worse. Mamma and Emmeline are there. He has asked for
+you three or four times, and always says that he is dying. I had
+better go up and say that you are here."
+
+"And what does my mother think of it?"
+
+"She has never left him, and therefore I cannot tell; but I know
+from her face that she thinks that he is--dying. Shall I go up,
+Herbert?" and so she went; and Herbert, following softly on his
+toes, stood in the corridor outside the bedroom-door, waiting till
+his arrival should have been announced. It was but a minute, and
+then his sister, returning to the door, summoned him to enter.
+
+The room had been nearly darkened, but as there were no curtains to
+the bed, Herbert could see his mother's face as she knelt on a stool
+at the bedside. His father was turned away from him, and lay with
+his hand inside his wife's, and Emmeline was sitting on the foot of
+the bed, with her face between her hands, striving to stifle her
+sobs. "Here is Herbert now, dearest," said Lady Fitzgerald, with a
+low, soft voice, almost a whisper, yet clear enough to cause no
+effort in the hearing. "I knew that he would not be long." And
+Herbert, obeying the signal of his mother's eye, passed round to the
+other side of the bed.
+
+"Father," said he, "are you not so well to-day?"
+
+"My poor boy, my poor ruined boy!" said the dying man, hardly
+articulating the words as he dropped his wife's hand and took that
+of his son. Herbert found that it was wet, and clammy, and cold, and
+almost powerless in its feeble grasp.
+
+"Dearest father, you are wrong if you let that trouble you; all that
+will never trouble me. Is it not well that a man should earn his own
+bread? Is it not the lot of all good men?" But still the old man
+murmured with his broken voice, "My poor boy, my poor boy!"
+
+The hopes and aspirations of his eldest son are as the breath of his
+nostrils to an Englishman who has been born to land and fortune.
+What had not this poor man endured in order that his son might be
+Sir Herbert Fitzgerald of Castle Richmond? But this was no longer
+possible; and from the moment that this had been brought home to
+him, the father had felt that for him there was nothing left but to
+die. "My poor boy," he muttered, "tell me that you have forgiven
+me."
+
+And then they all knelt round the bed and prayed with him; and
+afterwards they tried to comfort him, telling him how good he had
+been to them; and his wife whispered in his ear that if there had
+been fault, the fault was hers, but that her conscience told her
+that such fault had been forgiven; and while she said this she
+motioned the children away from him, and strove to make him
+understand that human misery could never kill the soul, and should
+never utterly depress the spirit. "Dearest love," she said, still
+whispering to him in her low, sweet voice--so dear to him, but
+utterly inaudible beyond--"if you would cease to accuse yourself so
+bitterly, you might yet be better, and remain with us to comfort
+us."
+
+But the slender, half-knit man, whose arms are without muscles and
+whose back is without pith, will strive in vain to lift the weight
+which the brawny vigour of another tosses from the ground almost
+without an effort. It is with the mind and the spirit as with the
+body; only this, that the muscles of the body can be measured, but
+not so those of the spirit. Lady Fitzgerald was made of other stuff
+than Sir Thomas; and that which to her had cost an effort, but with
+an effort had been done surely, was to him as impossible as the
+labour of Hercules. "My poor boy, my poor ruined boy!" he still
+muttered, as she strove to comfort him.
+
+"Mamma has sent for Mr. Townsend," Emmeline whispered to her
+brother, as they stood together in the bow of the window.
+
+"And do you really think he is so bad as that?"
+
+"I am sure that mamma does. I believe he had some sort of a fit
+before you came. At any rate, he did not speak for two hours."
+
+"And was not Finucane here?" Finucane was the Mallow doctor.
+
+"Yes; but he had left before papa became so much worse. Mamma has
+sent for him also."
+
+But I do not know that it boots to dally longer in a dying chamber.
+It is an axiom of old that the stage curtain should be drawn before
+the inexorable one enters in upon his final work. Dr. Finucane did
+come, but his coming was all in vain. Sir Thomas had known that it
+was in vain, and so also had his patient wife. There was that mind
+diseased, towards the cure of which no Dr. Finucane could make any
+possible approach. And Mr. Townsend came also, let us hope not in
+vain; though the cure which he fain would have perfected can hardly
+be effected in such moments as those. Let us hope that it had been
+already effected. The only crying sin which we can lay to the charge
+of the dying man is that of which we have spoken; he had endeavoured
+by pensioning falsehood and fraud to preserve for his wife her name,
+and for his son that son's inheritance. Even over this, deep as it
+was, the recording angel may have dropped some cleansing tears of
+pity.
+
+That night the poor man died, and the Fitzgeralds who sat in the
+chambers of Castle Richmond were no longer the owners of the
+mansion. There was no speech of Sir Herbert among the servants as
+there would have been had these tidings not have reached them. Dr.
+Finucane had remained in the house, and even he, in speaking of the
+son, had shown that he knew the story. They were strangers there
+now, as they all knew--intruders, as they would soon be considered
+in the house of their cousin Owen; or rather not their cousin. In
+that he was above them by right of his blood, they had no right to
+claim him as their relation.
+
+It may be said that at such a moment all this should not have been
+thought of; but those who say so know little, as I imagine, of the
+true effect of sorrow. No wife and no children ever grieved more
+heartily for a father; but their grief was blacker and more gloomy
+in that they knew that they were outcasts in the world.
+
+And during that long night, as Herbert and his sisters sat up
+cowering round the fire, he told them of all that had been said at
+Hap House. "And can it not be as he says?" Mary had asked.
+
+"And that Herbert should give up his wife!" said Emmeline.
+
+"No; but the other thing."
+
+"Do not dream of it," said Herbert. "It is all, all impossible. The
+house that we are now in belongs to Sir Owen Fitzgerald."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXI
+
+THE FIRST MONTH
+
+
+And now I will beg my readers to suppose a month to have passed by
+since Sir Thomas Fitzgerald died. It was a busy month in Ireland. It
+may probably be said that so large a sum of money had never been
+circulated in the country in any one month since money had been
+known there; and yet it may also be said that so frightful a
+mortality had never occurred there from the want of that which money
+brings.
+
+It was well understood by all men now that the customary food of the
+country had disappeared. There was no longer any difference of
+opinion between rich and poor, between Protestant and Roman
+Catholic; as to that, no man dared now to say that the poor, if left
+to themselves, could feed themselves, or to allege that the
+sufferings of the country arose from the machinations of
+money-making speculators. The famine was an established fact, and
+all men knew that it was God's doing,--all men knew this, though few
+could recognize as yet with how much mercy God's hand was stretched
+out over the country.
+
+Or may it not perhaps be truer to say that in such matters there is
+no such thing as mercy--no special mercies--no other mercy than
+that fatherly, forbearing, all-seeing, perfect goodness by which the
+Creator is ever adapting this world to the wants of His creatures,
+and rectifying the evils arising from their faults and follies? Sed
+quo Musa tendis? Such discourses of the gods as these are not to be
+fitly handled in such small measures.
+
+At any rate, there was the famine, undoubted now by any one; and
+death, who in visiting Castle Richmond may be said to have knocked
+at the towers of a king, was busy enough also among the cabins of
+the poor. And now the great fault of those who were the most
+affected was becoming one which would not have been at first sight
+expected. One would think that starving men would become violent,
+taking food by open theft--feeling, and perhaps not without some
+truth, that the agony of their want robbed such robberies of its
+sin. But such was by no means the case. I only remember one instance
+in which the bakers' shops were attacked; and in that instance the
+work was done by those who were undergoing no real suffering. At
+Clonmel, in Tipperary, the bread was one morning stripped away from
+the bakers' shops; but at that time, and in that place, there was
+nothing approaching to famine. The fault of the people was apathy.
+It was the feeling of the multitude that the world and all that was
+good in it was passing away from them; that exertion was useless,
+and hope hopeless. "Ah, me! your honour," said a man to me,
+"there'll never be a bit and a sup again in the county Cork! The
+life of the world is fairly gone!"
+
+And it was very hard to repress this feeling. The energy of a man
+depends so much on the outward circumstances that encumber him! It
+is so hard to work when work seems hopeless--so hard to trust where
+the basis of our faith is so far removed from sight! When large
+tracts of land went out of cultivation, was it not natural to think
+that agriculture was receding from the country, leaving the green
+hills once more to be brown and barren, as hills once green have
+become in other countries? And when men were falling in the
+highways, and women would sit with their babes in their arms,
+listless till death should come to them, was it not natural to think
+that death was making a huge success--that he, the inexorable one,
+was now the inexorable indeed?
+
+There were greatly trusting hearts that could withstand the weight
+of this terrible pressure, and thinking minds which saw that good
+would come out of this great evil; but such hearts and such minds
+were not to be looked for among the suffering poor, and were not,
+perhaps, often found even among those who were not poor or
+suffering. It was very hard to be thus trusting and thoughtful while
+everything around was full of awe and agony.
+
+The people, however, were conscious of God's work, and were becoming
+dull and apathetic. They clustered about the roads, working lazily
+while their strength lasted them; and afterwards, when strength
+failed them for this, they clustered more largely in the
+poor-houses. And in every town--in every assemblage of houses which
+in England would be called a village, there was a poor-house. Any
+big barrack of a tenement that could be obtained at a moment's
+notice, whatever the rent, became a poor-house in the course of
+twelve hours,--in twelve, nay, in two hours. What was necessary but
+the bare walls, and a supply of yellow meal? Bad provision this for
+all a man's wants,--as was said often enough by irrational
+philanthropists; but better provision than no shelter and no yellow
+meal! It was bad that men should be locked up at night without any
+of the appliances of decency; bad that they should be herded
+together for day after day with no resource but the eating twice a
+day of enough unsavoury food to keep life and soul together;--very
+bad, ye philanthropical irrationalists! But is not a choice of evils
+all that is left to us in many a contingency? Was not even this
+better than that life and soul should be allowed to part, without
+any effect at preserving their union?
+
+And thus life and soul were kept together, the government of the day
+having wisely seen what, at so short a notice, was possible for them
+to do, and what was absolutely impossible. It is in such emergencies
+as these that the watching and the wisdom of a government are
+necessary; and I shall always think--as I did think then--that the
+wisdom of its action and the wisdom of its abstinence from action
+were very good. And now again the fields in Ireland are green, and
+the markets are busy, and money is chucked to and fro like a
+weathercock which the players do not wish to have abiding with them;
+and the tardy speculator going over to look for a bit of land comes
+back muttering angrily that fancy prices are demanded. "They'll run
+you up to thirty-three years' purchase," says the tardy speculator,
+thinking, as it seems, that he is specially ill used. Agricultural
+wages have been nearly doubled in Ireland during the last fifteen
+years. Think of that, Master Brook. Work for which, at six shillings
+a week, there would be a hundred hungry claimants in 1845,--in the
+good old days before the famine, when repeal was so immediately
+expected--will now fetch ten shillings, the claimants being by no
+means numerous. In 1843 and 1844, I knew men to work for fourpence a
+day--something over the dole on which we are told, being mostly
+incredulous as we hear it, that a Coolie labourer can feed himself
+with rice in India;--not one man or two men, the broken-down
+incapables of the parish, but the best labour of the country. One
+and twopence is now about the cheapest rate at which a man can be
+hired for agricultural purposes. While this is so, and while the
+prices are progressing, there is no cause for fear, let Bishops A
+and B, and Archbishops C and D fret and fume with never so great
+vexation touching the clipped honours of their father the Pope.
+
+But again, Quo Musa tendis? I could write on this subject for a week
+were it not that Rhadamanthus awaits me, Rhadamanthus the critic,
+and Rhadamanthus is, of all things, impatient of an episode.
+
+Life and soul were kept together in those terrible days,--that is,
+the Irish life and soul generally. There were many slips, in which
+the union was violently dissolved,--many cases in which the yellow
+meal allowed was not sufficient, or in which it did not reach the
+sufferer in time to prevent such dissolution,--cases which when
+numbered together amounted to thousands. And then the pestilence
+came, taking its victims by tens of thousands,--but that was after
+the time with which we shall have concern here; and immigration
+followed, taking those who were saved by hundreds of thousands. But
+the millions are still there, a thriving people, for His mercy
+endureth for ever.
+
+During this month, the month ensuing upon the death of Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald, Herbert could of course pay no outward attention to the
+wants or relief of the people. He could make no offer of assistance,
+for nothing belonged to him, nor could he aid in the councils of the
+committees, for no one could have defined the position of the
+speaker. And during that month nothing was defined about Castle
+Richmond. Lady Fitzgerald was still always called by her title. The
+people of the country, including the tradesmen of the neighbouring
+towns, addressed the owner of Hap House as Sir Owen; and gradually
+the name was working itself into common use, though he had taken no
+steps to make himself legally entitled to wear it. But no one spoke
+of Sir Herbert. The story was so generally known, that none were so
+ignorant as to suppose him to be his father's heir. The servants
+about the place still called him Mr. Herbert, orders to that effect
+having been specially given; and the peasants of the country, with
+that tact which graces them, and with that anxiety to abstain from
+giving pain which always accompanies them unless when angered,
+carefully called him by no name. They knew that he was not Sir
+Herbert, but they would not believe but what, perchance, he might be
+so yet on some future day. So they took off their old hats to him,
+and passed him silently in his sorrow, or if they spoke to him,
+addressed his honour simply, omitting all mention of that Christian
+name, which the poor Irishman is generally so fond of using. "Mister
+Blake" sounds cold and unkindly in his ears. It is the "Masther," or
+"His honour," or if possible "Misther Thady." Or if there be any
+handle, that is used with avidity. Pat is a happy man when he can
+address his landlord as "Sir Patrick."
+
+But now the "ould masther's son" could be called by no name. Men
+knew not what he was to be, though they knew well that he was not
+that which he ought to be. And there were some who attempted to
+worship Owen as the rising sun; but for such of them as had never
+worshipped him before that game was rather hopeless. In those days
+he was not much seen, neither hunting nor entertaining company; but
+when seen he was rough enough with those who made any deep attempt
+to ingratiate themselves with his coming mightiness. And during this
+month he went over to London, having been specially invited so to do
+by Mr. Prendergast; but very little came of his visit there, except
+that it was certified to him that he was beyond all doubt the
+baronet. "And there shall be no unnecessary delay, Sir Owen," said
+Mr. Prendergast, "in putting you into full possession of all your
+rights." In answer to which Owen had replied that he was not anxious
+to be put in possession of any rights. That as far as any active
+doing of his own was concerned, the title might lie in abeyance, and
+that regarding the property he would make known his wish to Mr.
+Prendergast very quickly after his return to Ireland. But he
+intimated at the same time that there could be no ground for
+disturbing Lady Fitzgerald, as he had no intention under any
+circumstances of living at Castle Richmond.
+
+"Had you not better tell Lady Fitzgerald that yourself?" said Mr.
+Prendergast, catching at the idea that his friend's widow--my
+readers will allow me so to call her--might be allowed to live
+undisturbed at the family mansion, if not for life, at any rate for
+a few years. If this young man were so generous, why should it not
+be so? He would not want the big house, at any rate, till he were
+married.
+
+"It would be better that you should say so," said Owen. "I have
+particular reasons for not wishing to go there."
+
+"But allow me to say, my dear young friend--and I hope I may call
+you so, for I greatly admire the way in which you have taken all
+these tidings--that I would venture to advise you to drop the
+remembrance of any unpleasantness that may have existed. You should
+now feel yourself to be the closest friend of that family."
+
+"So I would if--," and then Owen stopped short, though Mr.
+Prendergast gave him plenty of time to finish his sentence were he
+minded to do so.
+
+"In your present position," continued the lawyer, "your influence
+will be very great."
+
+"I can't explain it all," said Owen; "but I don't think my influence
+will be great at all. And what is more, I do not want any influence
+of that sort. I wish Lady Fitzgerald to understand that she is at
+perfect liberty to stay where she is,--as far as I am concerned. Not
+as a favour from me, mind; for I do not think that she would take a
+favour from my hands."
+
+"But, my dear sir!"
+
+"Therefore you had better write to her about remaining there."
+
+Mr. Prendergast did write to her, or rather to Herbert: but in doing
+so he thought it right to say that the permission to live at Castle
+Richmond should be regarded as a kindness granted them by their
+relative. "It is a kindness which, under the circumstances, your
+mother may, I think, accept without compunction; at any rate, for
+some time to come,--till she shall have suited herself without
+hurrying her choice; but, nevertheless, it must be regarded as a
+generous offer on his part; and I do hope, my dear Herbert, that you
+and he will be fast friends."
+
+But Mr. Prendergast did not in the least comprehend the workings of
+Owen's mind; and Herbert, who knew more of them than any one else,
+did not understand them altogether. Owen had no idea of granting any
+favour to his relatives, who, as he thought, had never granted any
+to him. What Owen wanted,--or what he told himself that he
+wanted,--was justice. It was his duty as a just man to abstain from
+taking hold of those acres, and he was prepared to do his duty. But
+it was equally Herbert's duty as a just man to abstain from taking
+hold of Clara Desmond, and he was resolved that he would never be
+Herbert's friend if Herbert did not perform that duty. And then,
+though he felt himself bound to give up the acres,--though he did
+regard this as an imperative duty, he nevertheless felt also that
+something was due to him for his readiness to perform such a
+duty,--that some reward should be conceded to him; what this reward
+was to be, or rather what he wished it to be, we all know.
+
+Herbert had utterly refused to engage in any such negotiation; but
+Owen, nevertheless, would not cease to think that something might
+yet be done. Who was so generous as Clara, and would not Clara
+herself speak out if she knew how much her old lover was prepared to
+do for this newer lover? Half a dozen times Owen made up his mind to
+explain the whole thing to Mr. Prendergast; but when he found
+himself in the presence of the lawyer, he could not talk about love.
+Young men are so apt to think that their seniors in age cannot
+understand romance, or acknowledge the force of a passion. But here
+they are wrong, for there would be as much romance after forty as
+before, I take it, were it not checked by the fear of ridicule. So
+Owen stayed a week in London, seeing Mr. Prendergast every day; and
+then he returned to Hap House.
+
+In the mean time life went on at a very sad pace at Desmond Court.
+There was no concord whatever between the two ladies residing there.
+The mother was silent, gloomy, and sometimes bitter, seldom saying a
+word about Herbert Fitzgerald or his prospects, but saying that word
+with great fixity of purpose when it was spoken. "No one," she said,
+"should attribute to her the poverty and misery of her child. That
+marriage should not take place from her house, or with her consent."
+And Clara for the most part was silent also. In answer to such words
+as the above she would say nothing; but when, as did happen once or
+twice, she was forced to speak, she declared openly enough that no
+earthly consideration should induce her to give up her engagement.
+
+And then the young earl came home, brought away from his school in
+order that his authority might have effect on his sister. To speak
+the truth, he was unwilling enough to interfere, and would have
+declined to come at all could he have dared to do so. Eton was now
+more pleasant to him than Desmond Court, which, indeed, had but
+little of pleasantness to offer to a lad such as he was now. He was
+sixteen, and manly for his age, but the question in dispute at
+Desmond Court offered little attraction even to a manly boy of
+sixteen. In that former question as to Owen he had said a word or
+two, knowing that Owen could not be looked upon as a fitting husband
+for his sister, but now he knew not how to counsel her again as to
+Herbert, seeing that it was but the other day that he had written a
+long letter, congratulating her on that connection.
+
+Towards the end of the month, however, he did arrive, making glad
+his mother's heart as she looked at his strong limbs and his
+handsome open face. And Clara, too, threw herself so warmly into his
+arms that he did feel glad that he had come to her. "Oh, Patrick, it
+is so sweet to have you here!" she said, before his mother had had
+time to speak to him.
+
+"Dearest Clara!"
+
+"But, Patrick, you must not be cruel to me. Look here, Patrick, you
+are my only brother, and I so love you that I would not offend you
+or turn you against me for worlds. You are the head of our family,
+too, and nothing should be done that you do not like. But if so much
+depends on you, you must think well before you decide on anything."
+
+He opened his young eyes and looked intently into her face, for
+there was an earnestness in her words that almost frightened him.
+"You must think well of it before you speak, Patrick; and remember
+this, you and I must be honest and honourable, whether we be poor or
+no. You remember about Owen Fitzgerald, how I gave way then because
+I could do so without dishonour. But now--"
+
+"But, Clara, I do not understand it all as yet."
+
+"No; you cannot,--not as yet--and I will let mamma tell you the
+story. All I ask is this, that you will think of my honour before
+you say a word that can favour either her or me." And then he
+promised her that he would do so; and his mother, when on the
+following morning she told him all the history, found him reserved
+and silent.
+
+"Look at his position," said the mother, pleading her cause before
+her son. "He is illegitimate, and--"
+
+"Yes, but, mother--"
+
+"I know all that, my dear; I know what you would say; and no one can
+pity Mr. Fitzgerald's position more than I do; but you would not on
+that account have your sister ruined. It is romance on her part."
+
+"But what does he say?"
+
+"He is quite willing to give up the match. He has told me so, and
+said as much to his aunt, whom I have seen three times on the
+subject."
+
+"Do you mean that he wishes to give it up?"
+
+"No;--at least, I don't know. If he does, he cannot express such a
+wish, because Clara is so headstrong. Patrick, in my heart I do not
+believe that she cares for him. I have doubted it for some time."
+
+"But you wanted her to marry him."
+
+"So I did. It was an excellent match, and in a certain way she did
+like him; and then, you know, there was that great danger about poor
+Owen. It was a great danger then. But now she is so determined about
+this, because she thinks it would be ungenerous to go back from her
+word; and in this way she will ruin the very man she wishes to
+serve. Of course he cannot break off the match if she persists in
+it. What I want you to perceive is this, that he, utterly penniless
+as he is, will have to begin the world with a clog round his neck,
+because she is so obstinate. What could possibly be worse for him
+than a titled wife without a penny?" And in this way the countess
+pleaded her side of the question before her son.
+
+It was quite true that she had been three times to Castle Richmond,
+and had thrice driven Aunt Letty into a state bordering on
+distraction. If she could only get the Castle Richmond people to
+take it up as they ought to do! It was thus she argued with
+herself,--and with Aunt Letty also, endeavouring to persuade her
+that these two young people would undoubtedly ruin each other,
+unless those who were really wise and prudent, and who understood
+the world--such as Aunt Letty, for instance--would interfere to
+prevent it.
+
+Aunt Letty on the whole did agree with her, though she greatly
+disliked her. Miss Fitzgerald had strongly planted within her bosom
+the prudent old-world notion, that young gentlefolks should not love
+each other unless they have plenty of money; and that, if
+unfortunately such did love each other, it was better that they
+should suffer all the pangs of hopeless love than marry and trust to
+God and their wits for bread and cheese. To which opinion of Aunt
+Letty's, as well as to some others entertained by that lady with
+much pertinacity, I cannot subscribe myself as an adherent.
+
+Lady Desmond had wit enough to discover that Aunt Letty did agree
+with her in the main, and on this account she was eager in seeking
+her assistance. Lady Fitzgerald of course could not be seen, and
+there was no one else at Castle Richmond who could be supposed to
+have any weight with Herbert. And therefore Lady Desmond was very
+eloquent with Aunt Letty, talking much of the future miseries of the
+two young people, till the old lady had promised to use her best
+efforts in enlisting Lady Fitzgerald on the same side. "You cannot
+wonder, Miss Fitzgerald, that I should wish to put an end to the
+cruel position in which my poor girl is placed. You know how much a
+girl suffers from that kind of thing."
+
+Aunt Letty did dislike Lady Desmond very much; but, nevertheless,
+she could not deny the truth of all this, and therefore it may be
+said that the visits of the countess to Castle Richmond were on the
+whole successful.
+
+And the month wore itself away also in that sad household, and the
+Fitzgeralds were gradually becoming used to their position. Family
+discussions were held among them as to what they should do, and
+where they should live in future. Mr. Prendergast had written,
+seeing that Owen had persisted in refusing to make the offer
+personally himself--saying that there was no hurry for any removal.
+"Sir Owen," he said,--having considered deeply whether or no he
+would call him by the title or no, and having resolved that it would
+be best to do so at once--"Sir Owen was inclined to behave very
+generously. Lady Fitzgerald could have the house and demesne at any
+rate for twelve months, and by that time the personal property left
+by Sir Thomas would be realized, and there would be enough," Mr.
+Prendergast said, "for the three ladies to live 'in decent quiet
+comfort.'" Mr. Prendergast had taken care before he left Castle
+Richmond that a will should be made and duly executed by Sir Thomas,
+leaving what money he had to his three children by name,--in trust
+for their mother's use. Till the girls should be of age that trust
+would be vested in Herbert.
+
+"Decent quiet comfort!" said Mary to her brother and sister as they
+conned the letter over; "how comfortless it sounds!"
+
+And so the first month after the death of Sir Thomas passed by, and
+the misfortunes of the Fitzgerald family ceased to be the only
+subject spoken of by the inhabitants of county Cork.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXII
+
+PREPARATIONS FOR GOING
+
+
+At the end of the month, Herbert began to prepare himself for facing
+the world. The first question to be answered was that one which is
+so frequently asked in most families, but which had never yet been
+necessary in this--What profession would he follow? All manners of
+ways by which an educated man can earn his bread had been turned
+over in his mind, and in the minds of those who loved him, beginning
+with the revenues of the Archbishop of Armagh, which was Aunt
+Letty's idea, and ending with a seat at a government desk, which was
+his own. Mr. Prendergast had counselled the law; not his own lower
+branch of the profession, but a barrister's full-blown wig, adding,
+in his letter to Lady Fitzgerald, that if Herbert would come to
+London, and settle in chambers, he, Mr. Prendergast, would see that
+his life was made agreeable to him. But Mr. Somers gave other
+advice. In those days Assistant Poor-Law Commissioners were being
+appointed in Ireland, almost by the score, and Mr. Somers declared
+that Herbert had only to signify his wish for such a position, and
+he would get it. The interest which he had taken in the welfare of
+the poor around him was well known, and as his own story was well
+known also, there could be no doubt that the government would be
+willing to assist one so circumstanced, and who when assisted would
+make himself so useful. Such was the advice of Mr. Somers; and he
+might have been right but for this, that both Herbert and Lady
+Fitzgerald felt that it would be well for them to move out of that
+neighbourhood,--out of Ireland altogether, if such could be
+possible.
+
+Aunt Letty was strong for the Church. A young man who had
+distinguished himself at the University so signally as her nephew
+had done, taking his degree at the very first attempt, and that in
+so high a class of honour as the fourth, would not fail to succeed
+in the Church. He might not perhaps succeed as to Armagh; that she
+admitted, but there were some thirty other bishoprics to be had, and
+it would be odd if, with his talents, he did not get one of them.
+Think what it would be if he were to return to his own country as
+Bishop of Cork, Cloyne, and Ross, as to which amalgamation of sees,
+however, Aunt Letty had her own ideas. He was slightly tainted with
+the venom of Puseyism, Aunt Letty said to herself; but nothing would
+dispel this with so much certainty as the theological studies
+necessary for ordination. And then Aunt Letty talked it over by
+the hour together with Mrs. Townsend, and both those ladies were
+agreed that Herbert should get himself ordained as quickly as
+possible;--not in England, where there might be danger even in
+ordination, but in good, wholesome, Protestant Ireland, where
+a Church of England clergyman was a clergyman of the Church of
+England, and not a priest, slipping about in the mud halfway between
+England and Rome.
+
+Herbert himself was anxious to get some employment by which he might
+immediately earn his bread, but not unnaturally wished that London
+should be the scene of his work. Anywhere in Ireland he would be
+known as the Fitzgerald who ought to have been the Fitzgerald of
+Castle Richmond. And then too, he, as other young men, had an
+undefined idea, that as he must earn his bread London should be his
+ground. He had at first been not ill inclined to that Church
+project, and had thus given a sort of ground on which Aunt Letty was
+able to stand,--had, as it were, given her some authority for
+carrying on an agitation in furtherance of her own views; but
+Herbert himself soon gave up this idea. A man, he thought, to be a
+clergyman should have a very strong predilection in favour of that
+profession; and so he gradually abandoned that idea,--actuated, as
+poor Aunt Letty feared, by the agency of the evil one, working
+through the means of Puseyism.
+
+His mother and sisters were in favour of Mr. Prendergast's views,
+and as it was gradually found by them all that there would not be
+any immediate pressure as regarded pecuniary means, that seemed at
+last to be their decision. Herbert would remain yet for three or
+four weeks at Castle Richmond, till matters there were somewhat more
+thoroughly settled, and would then put himself into the hands of Mr.
+Prendergast in London. Mr. Prendergast would select a legal tutor
+for him, and proper legal chambers; and then not long afterwards his
+mother and sisters should follow, and they would live together at
+some small villa residence near St. John's Wood Road, or perhaps out
+at Brompton.
+
+It is astonishing how quickly in this world of ours chaos will
+settle itself into decent and graceful order, when it is properly
+looked in the face, and handled with a steady hand which is not
+sparing of the broom. Some three months since, everything at Castle
+Richmond was ruin; such ruin, indeed, that the very power of living
+under it seemed to be doubtful. When first Mr. Prendergast arrived
+there, a feeling came upon them all as though they might hardly dare
+to live in a world which would look at them as so thoroughly
+degraded. As regards means, they would be beggars! and as regards
+position, so much worse than beggars! A broken world was in truth
+falling about their ears, and it was felt to be impossible that they
+should endure its convulsions and yet live.
+
+But now the world had fallen, the ruin had come, and they were
+already strong in future hopes. They had dared to look at their
+chaos, and found that it still contained the elements of order.
+There was much still that marred their happiness, and forbade the
+joyousness of other days. Their poor father had gone from them in
+their misery, and the house was still a house of mourning; and their
+mother too, though she bore up so wonderfully against her fate, and
+for their sakes hoped and planned and listened to their wishes, was
+a stricken woman. That she would never smile again with any
+heartfelt joy they were all sure. But, nevertheless, their chaos was
+conquered, and there was hope that the fields of life would again
+show themselves green and fruitful.
+
+On one subject their mother never spoke to them, nor had even
+Herbert dared to speak to her: not a word had been said in that
+house since Mr. Prendergast left it as to the future whereabouts or
+future doings of that man to whom she had once given her hand at the
+altar. But she had ventured to ask by letter a question of Mr.
+Prendergast. Her question had been this: What must I do that he may
+not come to me or to my children? In answer to this Mr. Prendergast
+had told her, after some delay, that he believed she need fear
+nothing. He had seen the man, and he thought that he might assure
+her that she would not be troubled in that respect.
+
+"It is possible," said Mr. Prendergast, "that he may apply to you by
+letter for money. If so, give him no answer whatever, but send his
+letters to me."
+
+"And are you all going?" asked Mrs. Townsend of Aunt Letty, with a
+lachrymose voice soon after the fate of the family was decided. They
+were sitting together with their knees over the fire in Mrs.
+Townsend's dining-parlour, in which the perilous state of the
+country had been discussed by them for many a pleasant hour
+together.
+
+"Well, I think we shall; you see, my sister would never be happy
+here."
+
+"No, no; the shock and the change would be too great for her. Poor
+Lady Fitzgerald! And when is that man coming into the house?"
+
+"What, Owen?"
+
+"Yes! Sir Owen I suppose he is now."
+
+"Well, I don't know; he does not seem to be in any hurry. I believe
+that he has said that my sister may continue to live there if she
+pleases. But of course she cannot do that."
+
+"They do say about the country," whispered Mrs. Townsend, "that he
+refuses to be the heir at all. He certainly has not had any cards
+printed with the title on them--I know that as a fact."
+
+"He is a very singular man, very. You know I never could bear him,"
+said Aunt Letty.
+
+"No, nor I either. He has not been to our church once these six
+months. But it's very odd, isn't it? Of course you know the story?"
+
+"What story?" asked Aunt Letty.
+
+"About Lady Clara. Owen Fitzgerald was dreadfully in love with her
+before your Herbert had ever seen her. And they do say that he has
+sworn his cousin shall never live if he marries her."
+
+"They can never marry now, you know. Only think of it. There would
+be three hundred a year between them.--Not at present, that is,"
+added Aunt Letty, looking forward to a future period after her own
+death.
+
+"That is very little, very little indeed," said Mrs. Townsend,
+remembering, however, that she herself had married on less. "But,
+Miss Fitzgerald, if Herbert does not marry her do you think this
+Owen will?"
+
+"I don't think she'd have him. I am quite sure she would not."
+
+"Not when he has all the property, and the title too?"
+
+"No, nor double as much. What would people say of her if she did?
+But, however, there is no fear, for she declares that nothing shall
+induce her to give up her engagement with our Herbert."
+
+And so they discussed it backward and forward in every way, each
+having her own theory as to that singular rumour which was going
+about the country, signifying that Owen had declined to accept the
+title. Aunt Letty, however, would not believe that any good could
+come from so polluted a source, and declared that he had his own
+reasons for the delay. "It's not for any love of us," she said, "if
+he refuses to take either that or the estate." And in this she was
+right. But she would have been more surprised still had she learned
+that Owen's forbearance arose from a strong anxiety to do what was
+just in the matter.
+
+"And so Herbert won't go into the Church?"
+
+And Letty shook her head sorrowing.
+
+"Aeneas would have been so glad to have taken him for a
+twelvemonth's reading," said Mrs. Townsend. "He could have come
+here, you know, when you went away, and been ordained at Cork, and
+got a curacy close in the neighbourhood, where he was known. It
+would have been so nice; wouldn't it?"
+
+Aunt Letty would not exactly have advised the scheme as suggested by
+Mrs. Townsend. Her ideas as to Herbert's clerical studies would have
+been higher than this. Trinity College, Dublin, was in her
+estimation the only place left for good Church of England
+ecclesiastical teaching. But as Herbert was obstinately bent on
+declining sacerdotal life, there was no use in dispelling Mrs.
+Townsend's bright vision.
+
+"It's all of no use," she said; "he is determined to go to the bar."
+
+"The bar is very respectable," said Mrs. Townsend, kindly.
+
+"And you mean to go with them, too?" said Mrs. Townsend, after
+another pause. "You'll hardly be happy, I'm thinking, so far away
+from your old home."
+
+"It is sad to change at my time of life," said Aunt Letty,
+plaintively. "I'm sixty-two now."
+
+"Nonsense," said Mrs. Townsend, who, however, knew her age to a day.
+
+"Sixty-two if I live another week, and I have never yet had any home
+but Castle Richmond. There I was born, and till the other day I had
+every reason to trust that there I might die. But what does it
+matter?"
+
+"No, that's true of course, what does it matter where we are while
+we linger in this vale of tears? But couldn't you get a little place
+for yourself somewhere near here? There's Callaghan's cottage, with
+the two-acre piece for a cow, and as nice a spot of a garden as
+there is in the county Cork."
+
+"I wouldn't separate myself from her now," said Aunt Letty, "for all
+the cottages and all the gardens in Ireland. The Lord has been
+pleased to throw us together, and together we will finish our
+pilgrimage. Whither she goes, I will go, and where she lodges, I
+will lodge; her people shall be my people, and her God my God." And
+then Mrs. Townsend said nothing further of Callaghan's pretty
+cottage, or of the two-acre piece.
+
+But one reason for her going Aunt Letty did not give, even to her
+friend Mrs. Townsend. Her income, that which belonged exclusively to
+herself, was in no way affected by these sad Castle Richmond
+revolutions. This was a comfortable,--we may say a generous
+provision for an old maiden lady, amounting to some six hundred a
+year, settled upon her for life, and this, if added to what could be
+saved and scraped together, would enable them to live comfortably,
+as far as means were concerned, in that suburban villa to which they
+were looking forward. But without Aunt Letty's income that suburban
+villa must be but a poor home. Mr. Prendergast had calculated that
+some fourteen thousand pounds would represent the remaining property
+of the family, with which it would be necessary to purchase
+government stock. Such being the case, Aunt Letty's income was very
+material to them.
+
+"I trust you will be able to find some one there who will preach the
+gospel to you," said Mrs. Townsend, in a tone that showed how
+serious were her misgivings on the subject.
+
+"I will search for such a one, at any rate," said Aunt Letty. "You
+need not be afraid that I shall be a backslider."
+
+"But they have crosses now over the communion tables in the churches
+in England," said Mrs. Townsend.
+
+"I know it is very bad," said Aunt Letty. "But there will always be
+a remnant left. The Lord will not utterly desert us." And then she
+took her departure, leaving Mrs. Townsend with the conviction that
+the land to which her friend was going was one in which the light of
+the gospel no longer shone in its purity.
+
+It was not wonderful that they should all be anxious to get away
+from Castle Richmond, for the house there was now not a pleasant one
+in which to live. Let all those who have houses and the adjuncts of
+houses think how considerable a part of their life's pleasures
+consists in their interest in the things around them. When will the
+seakale be fit to cut, and when will the crocuses come up? will the
+violets be sweeter than ever? and the geranium cuttings, are they
+thriving? we have dug, and manured, and sown, and we look forward to
+the reaping, and to see our garners full. The very furniture which
+ministers to our daily uses is loved and petted; and in decorating
+our rooms we educate ourselves in design. The place in church which
+has been our own for years,--is not that dear to us, and the voice
+that has told us of God's tidings--even though the drone become more
+evident as it waxes in years, and though it grows feeble and
+indolent? And the faces of those who have lived around us, do we not
+love them too, the servants who have worked for us, and the children
+who have first toddled beneath our eyes and prattled in our ears,
+and now run their strong races, screaming loudly, splashing us as
+they pass--very unpleasantly? Do we not love them all? Do they not
+all contribute to the great sum of our enjoyment? All men love such
+things, more or less, even though they know it not. And women love
+them even more than men.
+
+And the Fitzgeralds were about to leave them all. The early buds of
+spring were now showing themselves, but how was it possible that
+they should look to them? One loves the bud because one expects the
+flower. The seakale now was beyond their notice, and though they
+plucked the crocuses, they did so with tears upon their cheeks.
+After much consideration the church had been abandoned by all except
+Aunt Letty and Herbert. That Lady Fitzgerald should go there was
+impossible, and the girls were only too glad to be allowed to stay
+with their mother. And the schools in which they had taught since
+the first day in which teaching had been possible for them, had to
+be abandoned with such true pangs of heart-felt sorrow.
+
+From the time when their misery first came upon them, from the days
+when it first began to be understood that the world had gone wrong
+at Castle Richmond, this separation from the schools had commenced.
+The work had been dropped for a while, but the dropping had in fact
+been final, and there was nothing further to be done than the
+saddest of all leave-taking. The girls had sent word to the
+children, perhaps imprudently, that they would go down and say a
+word of adieu to their pupils. The children had of course told their
+mothers, and when the girls reached the two neat buildings which
+stood at the corner of the park, there were there to meet them, not
+unnaturally, a concourse of women and children.
+
+In former prosperous days the people about Castle Richmond had, as a
+rule, been better to do than their neighbours. Money wages had been
+more plentiful, and there had been little or no subletting of land;
+the children had been somewhat more neatly clothed, and the women
+less haggard in their faces; but this difference was hardly
+perceptible any longer. To them, the Miss Fitzgeralds, looking at
+the poverty-stricken assemblage, it almost seemed as though the
+misfortune of their house had brought down its immediate
+consequences on all who had lived within their circle; but this was
+the work of the famine. In those days one could rarely see any
+member of a peasant's family bearing in his face a look of health.
+The yellow meal was a useful food--the most useful, doubtless, which
+could at that time be found; but it was not one that was gratifying
+either to the eye or palate.
+
+The girls had almost regretted their offer before they had left the
+house. It would have been better, they said to themselves, to have
+had the children up in the hall, and there to have spoken their
+farewells, and made their little presents. The very entering those
+school-rooms again would almost be too much for them; but this
+consideration was now too late, and when they got to the corner of
+the gate, they found that there was a crowd to receive them. "Mary,
+I must go back," said Emmeline, when she first saw them; but Aunt
+Letty, who was with them, stepped forward, and they soon found
+themselves in the school-room.
+
+"We have come to say good-bye to you all," said Aunt Letty, trying
+to begin a speech.
+
+"May the heavens be yer bed then, the lot of yez, for ye war always
+good to the poor. May the Blessed Virgin guide and protect ye
+wherever ye be"--a blessing against which Aunt Letty at once entered
+a little inward protest, perturbed though she was in spirit. "May
+the heavens rain glory on yer heads, for ye war always the finest
+family that war ever in the county Cork!"
+
+"You know, I dare say, that we are going to leave you," continued
+Aunt Letty.
+
+"We knows it, we knows it; sorrow come to them as did it all. Faix,
+an' there'll niver be any good in the counthry, at all at all, when
+you're gone, Miss Emmeline; an' what'll we do at all for the want of
+yez, and when shall we see the likes of yez? Eh, Miss Letty, but
+there'll be sore eyes weeping for ye; and for her leddyship too; may
+the Lord Almighty bless her, and presarve her, and carry her sowl to
+glory when she dies; for av there war iver a good woman on God's
+'arth, that woman is Leddy Fitzgerald."
+
+And then Aunt Letty found that there was no necessity for her to
+continue her speech, and indeed no possibility of her doing so even
+if she were so minded. The children began to wail and cry, and the
+mothers also mixed loud sobbings with their loud prayers; and
+Emmeline and Mary, dissolved in tears, sat themselves down, drawing
+to them the youngest bairns and those whom they had loved the best,
+kissing their sallow, famine-stricken, unwholesome faces, and
+weeping over them with a love of which hitherto they had been hardly
+conscious.
+
+There was not much more in the way of speech possible to any of
+them, for even Aunt Letty was far gone in tender wailing; and it was
+wonderful to see the liberties that were taken even with that
+venerable bonnet. The women had first of all taken hold of her hands
+to kiss them, and had kissed her feet, and her garments, and her
+shoulders, and then behind her back they had made crosses on her,
+although they knew how dreadfully she would have raged had she
+caught them polluting her by such doings; and they grasped her arms
+and embraced them, till at last, those who were more daring, reached
+her forehead and her face, and poor old Aunt Letty, who in her
+emotion could not now utter a syllable, was almost pulled to pieces
+among them.
+
+Mary and Emmeline had altogether surrendered themselves, and were
+the centres of clusters of children who hung upon them. And the sobs
+now were no longer low and tearful, but they had grown into long,
+protracted groanings, and loud wailings, and clapping of hands, and
+tearings of the hair. O, my reader, have you ever seen a railway
+train taking its departure from an Irish station, with a freight of
+Irish emigrants? If so, you know how the hair is torn, and how the
+hands are clapped, and how the low moanings gradually swell into
+notes of loud lamentation. It means nothing, I have heard men
+say,--men and women too. But such men and women are wrong. It means
+much; it means this: that those who are separated, not only love
+each other, but are anxious to tell each other that they so love. We
+have all heard of demonstrative people. A demonstrative person, I
+take it, is he who is desirous of speaking out what is in his heart.
+For myself I am inclined to think that such speaking out has its
+good ends. "The faculty of silence! is it not of all things the most
+beautiful?" That is the doctrine preached by a great latter-day
+philosopher; for myself, I think that the faculty of speech is much
+more beautiful--of speech if it be made but by howlings, and
+wailings, and loud clappings of the hand. What is in a man, let it
+come out and be known to those around him, if it be bad it will find
+correction, if it be good it will spread and be beneficent.
+
+And then one woman made herself audible over the sobs of the
+crowding children; she was a gaunt, high-boned woman, but she would
+have been comely, if not handsome, had not the famine come upon her.
+She held a baby in her arms, and another little toddling thing had
+been hanging on her dress till Emmeline had seen it, and plucked it
+away; and it was now sitting in her lap quite composed, and sucking
+a piece of cake that had been given to it. "An' it's a bad day for
+us all," said the woman, beginning in a low voice, which became
+louder and louder as she went on, "it's a bad day for us all that
+takes away from us the only rale friends that we iver had, and the
+back of my hand to them that have come in the way, bringin' sorrow,
+an' desolation, an' misery on gentlefolks that have been good to the
+poor since iver the poor have been in the land, rale gentlefolks,
+sich as there ain't no others to be found nowadays in any of these
+parts. O'hone, o'hone! but it's a bad day for us and for the
+childer, for where shall we find the dhrop to comfort us or the bit
+to ate when the sickness comes on us, as it's likely to come now,
+when the Fitzgeralds is out of the counthry. May the Lord bless
+them, and keep them, and presarve them, and the Holy Virgin have
+them in her keepin'!"
+
+"Wh--i--s--h--h," said Aunt Letty, who could not allow such idolatry
+to pass by unobserved or unrebuked.
+
+"An' shure the blessin' of a poor woman cannot haram you," continued
+the mother, "an' I'll tell you what, neighbours, it'll be a bad day
+for him that folk call the heir when he puts his foot in that
+house."
+
+"'Deed an' that's thrue for you, Bridget Magrath," said another
+voice from among the crowd of women.
+
+"A bad day intirely," continued the woman, with the baby; "av the
+house stans over his head when he does the like o' that, there'll be
+no justice in the heavens."
+
+"But, Mrs. Magrath," said Aunt Letty, trying to interrupt her, "you
+must not speak in that way; you are mistaken in supposing that Mr.
+Owen--"
+
+"We'll all live to see," said the woman; "for the time's comin'
+quick upon us now. But it's a bad law that kills our ould masther
+over our heads, an' takes away from us our ould misthress. An' as
+for him they calls Mr. Owen--"
+
+But the ladies found it impossible to listen to her any longer, so
+with some difficulty they extricated themselves from the crowd by
+which they were surrounded, and once more shaking hands with those
+who were nearest to them escaped into the park, and made their way
+back towards the house.
+
+They had not expected so much demonstration, and were not a little
+disconcerted at the scene which had taken place. Aunt Letty had
+never been so handled in her life, and hardly knew how to make her
+bonnet sit comfortably on her head; and the two girls were
+speechless till they were half across the park.
+
+"I am glad we have been," said Emmeline at last, as soon as the
+remains of her emotion would allow her to articulate her words.
+
+"It would have been dreadful to have gone away without seeing them,"
+said Mary. "Poor creatures, poor dear creatures; we shall never
+again have any more people to be fond of us like that!"
+
+"There is no knowing," said Aunt Letty; "the Lord giveth and the
+Lord taketh away, and blessed is the name of the Lord. You are both
+young, and may come back again; but for me--"
+
+"Dear Aunt Letty, if we come back you shall come too."
+
+"If I only thought that my bones could lie here near my brother's.
+But never mind; what signifies it where our bones lie?" And then
+they were silent for a while, till Aunt Letty spoke again. "I mean
+to be quite happy over in England; I believe I shall be happiest of
+you all if I can find any clergyman who is not half perverted to
+idolatry."
+
+This took place some time before the ladies left Castle
+Richmond,--perhaps as much as three weeks; it was even before
+Herbert's departure, who started for London the day but one after
+the scene here recorded; he had gone to various places to take his
+last farewell; to see the Townsends at their parsonage; to call on
+Father Barney at Kanturk, and had even shaken hands with the Rev.
+Mr. Creagh, at Gortnaclough. But one farewell visit had been put off
+for the last. It was now arranged that he was to go over to Desmond
+Court and see Clara before he went. There had been some difficulty
+in this, for Lady Desmond had at first declared that she could not
+feel justified in asking him into her house; but the earl was now at
+home, and her ladyship had at last given her consent: he was to see
+the countess first, and was afterwards to see Clara--alone. He had
+declared that he would not go there unless he were to be allowed an
+interview with her in private. The countess, as I have said, at last
+consented, trusting that her previous eloquence might be efficacious
+in counteracting the ill effects of her daughter's imprudence. On
+the day after that interview he was to start for London; "never to
+return," as he said to Emmeline, "unless he came to seek his wife."
+
+"But you will come to seek your wife," said Emmeline, stoutly; "I
+shall think you faint-hearted if you doubt it."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIII
+
+THE LAST STAGE
+
+
+On the day before his departure for London, Herbert Fitzgerald once
+more got on his horse--the horse that was to be no longer his after
+that day--and rode off towards Desmond Court. He had already
+perceived how foolish he had been in walking thither through the mud
+and rain when last he went there, and how much he had lost by his
+sad appearance that day, and by his want of personal comfort. So he
+dressed himself with some care--dressing not for his love, but for
+the countess,--and taking his silver-mounted whip in his gloved
+hand, he got up on his well-groomed nag with more spirit than he had
+hitherto felt.
+
+Nothing could be better than the manner in which, at this time, the
+servants about Castle Richmond conducted themselves. Most of
+them--indeed, all but three--had been told that they must go, and in
+so telling them, the truth had been explained. It had been "found,"
+Aunt Letty said to one of the elder among them, that Mr. Herbert was
+not the heir to the property, and therefore the family was obliged
+to go away. Mrs. Jones of course accompanied her mistress. Richard
+had been told, both by Herbert and by Aunt Letty, that he had better
+remain and live on a small patch of land that should be provided for
+him. But in answer to this he stated his intention of removing
+himself to London. If the London air was fit for "my leddy and Miss
+Letty," it would be fit for him. "It's no good any more talking, Mr.
+Herbert," said Richard, "I main to go." So there was no more
+talking, and he did go.
+
+But all the other servants took their month's warning with tears and
+blessings, and strove one beyond another how they might best serve
+the ladies of the family to the end. "I'd lose the little fingers
+off me to go with you, Miss Emmeline; so I would," said one poor
+girl,--all in vain. If they could not keep a retinue of servants in
+Ireland, it was clear enough that they could not keep them in
+London.
+
+The groom who held the horse for Herbert to mount, touched his hat
+respectfully as his young master rode off slowly down the avenue,
+and then went back to the stables to meditate with awe on the
+changes which had happened in his time, and to bethink himself
+whether or no he could bring himself to serve in the stables of Owen
+the usurper.
+
+Herbert did not take the direct road to Desmond Court, but went
+round as though he were going to Gortnaclough, and then turning away
+from the Gortnaclough road, made his way by a cross lane towards
+Clady and the mountains. He hardly knew himself whether he had any
+object in this beyond one which he did not express even to
+himself,--that, namely, of not being seen on the way leading to
+Desmond Court. But this he did do, thereby riding out of the
+district with which he was most thoroughly acquainted, and passing
+by cabins and patches of now deserted land which were strange to
+him. It was a poor, bleak, damp, undrained country, lying beyond the
+confines of his father's property, which in good days had never been
+pleasant to the eye, but which now in these days--days that were so
+decidedly bad, was anything but pleasant. It was one of those tracts
+of land which had been divided and subdivided among the cottiers
+till the fields had dwindled down to parts of acres, each surrounded
+by rude low banks, which of themselves seemed to occupy a quarter of
+the surface of the land. The original landmarks, the big earthen
+banks,--banks so large that a horse might walk on the top of
+them,--were still visible enough, showing to the practised eye what
+had once been the fields into which the land had been divided; but
+these had since been bisected and crossected, and intersected by
+family arrangements, in which brothers had been jealous of brothers,
+and fathers of their children, till each little lot contained but a
+rood or two of available surface.
+
+This had been miserable enough to look at, even when those roods had
+been cropped with potatoes or oats; but now they were not cropped at
+all, nor was there preparation being made for cropping them. They
+had been let out under the con-acre system, at so much a rood, for
+the potato season, at rents amounting sometimes to ten or twelve
+pounds the acre; but nobody would take them now. There, in that
+electoral division, the whole proceeds of such land would hardly
+have paid the poor rates, and therefore the land was left
+uncultivated.
+
+The winter was over, for it was now April, and had any tillage been
+intended, it would have been commenced--even in Ireland. It was the
+beginning of April, but the weather was still stormy and cold, and
+the east wind, which, as a rule, strikes Ireland with but a light
+land, was blowing sharply. On a sudden a squall of rain came
+on,--one of those spring squalls which are so piercingly cold, but
+which are sure to pass by rapidly, if the wayfarer will have
+patience to wait for them. Herbert, remembering his former
+discomfiture, resolved that he would have such patience, and
+dismounting from his horse at a cabin on the roadside, entered it
+himself, and led his horse in after him. In England no one would
+think of taking his steed into a poor man's cottage, and would
+hardly put his beast into a cottager's shed without leave asked and
+granted, but people are more intimate with each other, and take
+greater liberties in Ireland. It is no uncommon thing on a wet
+hunting-day to see a cabin packed with horses, and the children
+moving about among them, almost as unconcernedly as though the
+animals were pigs. But then the Irish horses are so well mannered
+and good-natured.
+
+The cabin was one abutting as it were on the road, not standing back
+upon the land, as is most customary; and it was built in an angle at
+a spot where the road made a turn, so that two sides of it stood
+close out in the wayside. It was small and wretched to look at,
+without any sort of outside shed, or even a scrap of potato-garden
+attached to it,--a miserable, low-roofed, damp, ragged tenement, as
+wretched as any that might be seen even in the county Cork.
+
+But the nakedness of the exterior was as nothing to the nakedness of
+the interior. When Herbert entered, followed by his horse, his eye
+glanced round the dark place, and it seemed to be empty of
+everything. There was no fire on the hearth, though a fire on the
+hearth is the easiest of all luxuries for an Irishman to acquire,
+and the last which he is willing to lose. There was not an article
+of furniture in the whole place; neither chairs, nor table, nor bed,
+nor dresser; there was there neither dish, nor cup, nor plate, nor
+even the iron pot in which all the cookery of the Irish cottiers'
+menage is usually carried on. Beneath his feet was the damp earthen
+floor, and around him were damp, cracked walls, and over his head
+was the old lumpy thatch, through which the water was already
+dropping; but inside was to be seen none of those articles of daily
+use which are usually to be found in the houses even of the poorest.
+
+But, nevertheless, the place was inhabited. Squatting in the middle
+of the cabin, seated on her legs crossed under her, with nothing
+between her and the wet earth, there crouched a woman with a child
+in her arms. At first, so dark was the place, Herbert hardly thought
+that the object before him was a human being. She did not move when
+he entered, or speak to him, or in any way show sign of surprise
+that he should have come there. There was room for him and his horse
+without pushing her from her place; and, as it seemed, he might have
+stayed there and taken his departure without any sign having been
+made by her.
+
+But as his eyes became used to the light he saw her eyes gleaming
+brightly through the gloom. They were very large and bright as they
+turned round upon him while he moved--large and bright, but with a
+dull, unwholesome brightness,--a brightness that had in it none of
+the light of life.
+
+And then he looked at her more closely. She had on her some rag of
+clothing which barely sufficed to cover her nakedness, and the baby
+which she held in her arms was covered in some sort; but he could
+see, as he came to stand close over her, that these garments were
+but loose rags which were hardly fastened round her body. Her rough
+short hair hung down upon her back, clotted with dirt, and the head
+and face of the child which she held was covered with dirt and
+sores. On no more wretched object, in its desolate solitude, did the
+eye of man ever fall.
+
+In those days there was a form of face which came upon the sufferers
+when their state of misery was far advanced, and which was a sure
+sign that their last stage of misery was nearly run. The mouth would
+fall and seem to hang, the lips at the two ends of the mouth would
+be dragged down, and the lower parts of the cheeks would fall as
+though they had been dragged and pulled. There were no signs of
+acute agony when this phasis of countenance was to be seen, none of
+the horrid symptoms of gnawing hunger by which one generally
+supposes that famine is accompanied. The look is one of apathy,
+desolation, and death. When custom had made these signs easily
+legible, the poor doomed wretch was known with certainty. "It's no
+use in life meddling with him; he's gone," said a lady to me in the
+far west of the south of Ireland, while the poor boy, whose doom was
+thus spoken, stood by listening. Her delicacy did not equal her
+energy in doing good,--for she did much good; but in truth it was
+difficult to be delicate when the hands were so full. And then she
+pointed out to me the signs on the lad's face, and I found that her
+reading was correct.
+
+The famine was not old enough at the time of which we are speaking
+for Herbert to have learned all this, or he would have known that
+there was no hope left in this world for the poor creature whom he
+saw before him. The skin of her cheek had fallen, and her mouth was
+dragged, and the mark of death was upon her; but the agony of want
+was past. She sat there listless, indifferent, hardly capable of
+suffering, even for her child, waiting her doom unconsciously.
+
+As he had entered without eliciting a word from her, so might he
+have departed without any outward sign of notice; but this would
+have been impossible on his part. "I have come in out of the rain
+for shelter," said he, looking down on her.
+
+"Out o' the rain, is it?" said she, still fixing on him her glassy
+bright eyes. "Yer honour's welcome thin." But she did not attempt to
+move, nor show any of those symptoms of reverence which are habitual
+to the Irish when those of a higher rank enter their cabins.
+
+"You seem to be very poorly off here," said Herbert, looking round
+the bare walls of the cabin. "Have you no chair, and no bed to lie
+on?"
+
+"'Deed, no," said she.
+
+"And no fire?" said he, for the damp and chill of the place struck
+through to his bones.
+
+"'Deed, no," she said again; but she made no wail as to her wants,
+and uttered no complaint as to her misery.
+
+"And are you living here by yourself, without furniture or utensils
+of any kind?"
+
+"It's jist as yer honour sees it," answered she.
+
+For a while Herbert stood still, looking round him, for the woman
+was so motionless and uncommunicative that he hardly knew how to
+talk to her. That she was in the lowest depth of distress was
+evident enough, and it behoved him to administer to her immediate
+wants before he left her; but what could he do for one who seemed to
+be so indifferent to herself? He stood for a time looking round him
+till he could see through the gloom that there was a bundle of straw
+lying in the dark corner beyond the hearth, and that the straw was
+huddled up, as though there were something lying under it. Seeing
+this he left the bridle of his horse, and, stepping across the
+cabin, moved the straw with the handle of his whip. As he did so he
+turned his back from the wall in which the small window-hole had
+been pierced, so that a gleam of light fell upon the bundle at his
+feet, and he could see that the body of a child was lying there,
+stripped of every vestige of clothing.
+
+For a minute or two he said nothing--hardly indeed, knowing how to
+speak, and looking from the corpse-like woman back to the lifelike
+corpse, and then from the corpse back to the woman, as though he
+expected that she would say something unasked. But she did not say a
+word, though she so turned her head that her eyes rested on him.
+
+He then knelt down and put his hand upon the body, and found that it
+was not yet stone cold. The child apparently had been about four
+years old, while that still living in her arms might perhaps be half
+that age.
+
+"Was she your own?" asked Herbert, speaking hardly above his breath.
+
+"'Deed, yes!" said the woman. "She was my own, own little Kittie."
+But there was no tear in her eye or gurgling sob audible from her
+throat.
+
+"And when did she die?" he asked.
+
+"'Deed, thin, and I don't jist know--not exactly;" and sinking lower
+down upon her haunches, she put up to her forehead the hand with
+which she had supported herself on the floor--the hand which was not
+occupied with the baby, and pushing back with it the loose hairs
+from her face, tried to make an effort at thinking.
+
+"She was alive in the night, wasn't she?" he said.
+
+"I b'lieve thin she was, yer honour. 'Twas broad day, I'm thinking,
+when she guv' over moaning. She warn't that way when he went away."
+
+"And who's he?"
+
+"Jist Mike, thin."
+
+"And is Mike your husband?" he asked. She was not very willing to
+talk; but it appeared at last that Mike was her husband, and that
+having become a cripple through rheumatism, he had not been able to
+work on the roads. In this condition he and his should of course
+have gone into a poor-house. It was easy enough to give such advice
+in such cases when one came across them, and such advice when given
+at that time was usually followed; but there were so many who had no
+advice, who could get no aid, who knew not which way to turn
+themselves! This wretched man had succeeded in finding some one who
+would give him his food--food enough to keep himself alive--for such
+work as he could do in spite of his rheumatism, and this work to the
+last he would not abandon. Even this was better to him than the
+poor-house. But then, as long as a man found work out of the
+poor-house, his wife and children would not be admitted into it.
+They would not be admitted if the fact of the working husband was
+known. The rule in itself was salutary, as without it a man could
+work, earning such wages as were adjudged to be needful for a
+family, and at the same time send his wife and children to be
+supported on the rates. But in some cases, such as this, it pressed
+very cruelly. Exceptions were of course made in such cases, if they
+were known: but then it was so hard to know them!
+
+This man Mike, the husband of that woman, and the father of those
+children, alive and dead, had now gone to his work, leaving his home
+without one morsel of food within it, and the wife of his bosom and
+children of his love without the hope of getting any. And then
+looking closely round him, Herbert could see that a small basin or
+bowl lay on the floor near her, capable of holding perhaps a pint;
+and on lifting it he saw that there still clung to it a few grains
+of uncooked Indian corn-flour--the yellow meal, as it was called.
+Her husband, she said at last, had brought home with him in his cap
+a handful of this flour, stolen from the place where he was
+working--perhaps a quarter of a pound, then worth over a farthing,
+and she had mixed this with water in a basin; and this was the food
+which had sustained her, or rather had not sustained her, since
+yesterday morning--her and her two children, the one that was
+living and the one that was dead.
+
+Such was her story, told by her in the fewest of words. And then he
+asked her as to her hopes for the future. But though she cared, as
+it seemed, but little for the past, for the future she cared less.
+"'Deed, thin, an' I don't jist know." She would say no more than
+that, and would not even raise her voice to ask for alms when he
+pitied her in her misery. But with her the agony of death was
+already over.
+
+"And the child that you have in your arms," he said, "is it not
+cold?" And he stood close over her, and put out his hand and touched
+the baby's body. As he did so, she made some motion as though to
+arrange the clothing closer round the child's limbs, but Herbert
+could see that she was making an effort to hide her own nakedness.
+It was the only effort that she made while he stood there beside
+her.
+
+"Is she not cold?" he said again, when he had turned his face away
+to relieve her from her embarrassment.
+
+"Cowld," she muttered, with a vacant face and wondering tone of
+voice, as though she did not quite understand him. "I suppose she is
+could. Why wouldn't she be could? We're could enough, if that's
+all." But still she did not stir from the spot on which she sat; and
+the child, though it gave from time to time a low moan that was
+almost inaudible, lay still in her arms, with its big eyes staring
+into vacancy.
+
+He felt that he was stricken with horror as he remained there in the
+cabin with the dying woman and the naked corpse of the poor dead
+child. But what was he to do? He could not go and leave them without
+succour. The woman had made no plaint of her suffering, and had
+asked for nothing; but he felt that it would be impossible to
+abandon her without offering her relief; nor was it possible that he
+should leave the body of the child in that horribly ghastly state.
+So he took from his pocket his silk handkerchief, and, returning to
+the corner of the cabin, spread it as a covering over the corpse. At
+first he did not like to touch the small, naked, dwindled remains of
+humanity from which life had fled; but gradually he overcame his
+disgust, and kneeling down, he straightened the limbs and closed the
+eyes, and folded the handkerchief round the slender body. The mother
+looked on him the while, shaking her head slowly, as though asking
+him with all the voice that was left to her, whether it were not
+piteous; but of words she still uttered none.
+
+And then he took from his pocket a silver coin or two, and tendered
+them to her. These she did take, muttering some word of thanks, but
+they caused in her no emotion of joy. "She was there waiting," she
+said, "till Mike should return," and there she would still wait,
+even though she should die with the silver in her hand.
+
+"I will send some one to you," he said, as he took his departure;
+"some one that shall take the poor child and bury it, and who shall
+move you and the other one into the workhouse." She thanked him once
+more with some low muttered words, but the promise brought her no
+joy. And when the succour came it was all too late, for the mother
+and the two children never left the cabin till they left it
+together, wrapped in their workhouse shrouds.
+
+Herbert, as he remounted his horse and rode quietly on, forgot for a
+while both himself and Clara Desmond. Whatever might be the extent
+of his own calamity, how could he think himself unhappy after what
+he had seen? how could he repine at aught that the world had done
+for him, having now witnessed to how low a state of misery a fellow
+human being might be brought? Could he, after that, dare to consider
+himself unfortunate?
+
+Before he reached Desmond Court he did make some arrangements for
+the poor woman, and directed that a cart might be sent for her, so
+that she might be carried to the union workhouse at Kanturk. But his
+efforts in her service were of little avail. People then did not
+think much of a dying woman, and were in no special hurry to obey
+Herbert's behest.
+
+"A woman to be carried to the union, is it? For Mr. Fitzgerald, eh?
+What Mr. Fitzgerald says must be done, in course. But sure av' it's
+done before dark, won't that be time enough for the likes of her?"
+
+But had they flown to the spot on the wings of love, it would not
+have sufficed to prolong her life one day. Her doom had been spoken
+before Herbert had entered the cabin.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIV
+
+FAREWELL
+
+
+He was two hours later than he had intended as he rode up the avenue
+to Lady Desmond's gate, and his chief thought at the moment was how
+he should describe to the countess the scene he had just witnessed.
+Why describe it at all? That is what we should all say. He had come
+there to talk about other things--about other things which must be
+discussed, and which would require all his wits. Let him keep that
+poor woman on his mind, but not embarrass himself with any mention
+of her for the present. This, no doubt, would have been wise if only
+it had been possible; but out of the full heart the mouth speaks.
+
+But Lady Desmond had not witnessed the scene which I have attempted
+to describe, and her heart, therefore, was not full of it, and was
+not inclined to be so filled. And so, in answer to Herbert's
+exclamation, "Oh, Lady Desmond, I have seen such a sight!" she gave
+him but little encouragement to describe it, and by her coldness,
+reserve, and dignity, soon quelled the expression of his feelings.
+
+The earl was present, and shook hands very cordially with Herbert
+when he entered the room; and he, being more susceptible as being
+younger, and not having yet become habituated to the famine as his
+mother was, did express some eager sympathy. He would immediately go
+down, or send Fahy with the car, and have her brought up and saved,
+but his mother had other work to do, and soon put a stop to all
+this.
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald," said she, speaking with a smile upon her face, and
+with much high-bred dignity of demeanour, "as you and Lady Clara
+both wish to see each other before you leave the country, and as you
+have known each other so intimately, and considering all the
+circumstances, I have not thought it well absolutely to forbid an
+interview. But I do doubt its expediency; I do, indeed. And Lord
+Desmond, who feels for your late misfortune as we all do, perfectly
+agrees with me. He thinks that it would be much wiser for you both
+to have parted without the pain of a meeting, seeing how impossible
+it is that you should ever be more to each other than you are now."
+And then she appealed to her son, who stood by, looking not quite so
+wise, nor even quite so decided as his mother's words would seem to
+make him.
+
+"Well, yes; upon my word I don't see how it's to be," said the young
+earl. "I am deuced sorry for it for one, and I wish I was well off,
+so that I could give Clara a pot of money, and then I should not
+care so much about your not being the baronet."
+
+"I am sure you must see, Mr. Fitzgerald, and I know that you do see
+it because you have very properly said so, that a marriage between
+you and Lady Clara is now impossible. For her such an engagement
+would be very bad--very bad indeed; but for you it would be utter
+ruin. Indeed, it would be ruin for you both. Unencumbered as you
+will be, and with the good connection which you will have, and with
+your excellent talents, it will be quite within your reach to win
+for yourself a high position. But with you, as with other gentlemen
+who have to work their way, marriage must come late in life, unless
+you marry an heiress. This I think is thoroughly understood by all
+people in our position; and I am sure that it is understood by your
+excellent mother, for whom I always had and still have the most
+unfeigned respect. As this is so undoubtedly the case, and as I
+cannot of course consent that Lady Clara should remain hampered by
+an engagement which would in all human probability hang over the ten
+best years of her life, I thought it wise that you should not see
+each other. I have, however, allowed myself to be overruled, and now
+I must only trust to your honour, forbearance, and prudence to
+protect my child from what might possibly be the ill effects of her
+own affectionate feelings. That she is romantic,--enthusiastic to a
+fault, I should perhaps rather call it--I need not tell you. She
+thinks that your misfortune demands from her a sacrifice of herself;
+but you, I know, will feel that, even were such a sacrifice
+available to you, it would not become you to accept it. Because you
+have fallen, you will not wish to drag her down; more especially as
+you can rise again--and she could not."
+
+So spoke the countess, with much worldly wisdom, and with
+considerable tact in adjusting her words to the object which she had
+in view. Herbert, as he stood before her silent during the period of
+her oration, did feel that it would be well for him to give up his
+love, and go away in utter solitude of heart to those dingy studies
+which Mr. Prendergast was preparing for him. His love, or rather the
+assurance of Clara's love, had been his great consolation. But what
+right had he, with all the advantages of youth, and health, and
+friends, and education, to require consolation? And then from moment
+to moment he thought of the woman whom he had left in the cabin, and
+confessed that he did not dare to call himself unhappy.
+
+He had listened attentively, although he did thus think of other
+eloquence besides that of the countess--of the eloquence of that
+silent, solitary, dying woman; but when she had done he hardly knew
+what to say for himself. She did make him feel that it would be
+ungenerous in him to persist in his engagement; but then again,
+Clara's letters and his sister's arguments had made him feel that it
+was impossible to abandon it. They pleaded of heart-feelings so well
+that he could not resist them; and the countess--she pleaded so well
+as to world's prudence that he could not resist her.
+
+"I would not willingly do anything to injure Lady Clara," he said.
+
+"That's what we all knew," said the young earl. "You see, what is a
+girl to do like her? Love in a cottage is all very well, and all
+that; and as for riches, I don't care about them. It would be a pity
+if I did, for I shall be about the poorest nobleman in the three
+kingdoms, I suppose. But a chap when he marries should have
+something; shouldn't he now?"
+
+To tell the truth the earl had been very much divided in his
+opinions since he had come home, veering round a point or two this
+way or a point or two that, in obedience to the blast of eloquence
+to which he might be last subjected. But latterly the idea had grown
+upon him that Clara might possibly marry Owen Fitzgerald. There was
+about Owen a strange fascination which all felt who had once loved
+him. To the world he was rough and haughty, imperious in his
+commands, and exacting even in his fellowship; but to the few whom
+he absolutely loved, whom he had taken into his heart's core, no man
+ever was more tender or more gracious. Clara, though she had
+resolved to banish him from her heart, had found it impossible to do
+so till Herbert's misfortunes had given him a charm in her eyes
+which was not all his own. Clara's mother had loved him--had loved
+him as she never before had loved; and now she loved him still,
+though she had so strongly determined that her love should be that
+of a mother, and not that of a wife. And the young earl, now that
+Owen's name was again rife in his ears, remembered all the
+pleasantness of former days. He had never again found such a
+companion as Owen had been. He had met no other friend to whom he
+could talk of sport and a man's outward pleasures when his mind was
+that way given, and to whom he could also talk of soft inward
+things,--the heart's feelings, and aspirations, and wants. Owen
+would be as tender with him as a woman, allowing the young lad's arm
+round his body, listening to words which the outer world would have
+called bosh--and have derided as girlish. So at least thought the
+young earl to himself. And all boys long to be allowed utterance
+occasionally for these soft tender things;--as also do all men,
+unless the devil's share in the world has become altogether
+uppermost with them.
+
+And the young lad's heart hankered after his old friend. He had
+listened to his sister, and for a while had taken her part; but his
+mother had since whispered to him that Owen would now be the better
+suitor, the preferable brother-in-law; and that in fact Clara loved
+Owen the best, though she felt herself bound by honour to his
+kinsman. And then she reminded her son of Clara's former love for
+Owen--a love which he himself had witnessed; and he thought of the
+day when with so much regret he had told his friend that he was
+unsuited to wed with an earl's penniless daughter. Of the subsequent
+pleasantness which had come with Herbert's arrival, he had seen
+little or nothing. He had been told by letter that Herbert
+Fitzgerald, the prosperous heir of Castle Richmond, was to be his
+future brother-in-law, and he had been satisfied. But now, if Owen
+could return--how pleasant it would be!
+
+"But a chap when he marries should have something; shouldn't he
+now?" So spoke the young earl, re-echoing his mother's prudence.
+
+Herbert did not quite like this interference on the boy's part. Was
+he to explain to a young lad from Eton what his future intentions
+were with reference to his mode of living and period of marriage?
+"Of course," he said, addressing himself to the countess, "I
+shall not insist on an engagement made under such different
+circumstances."
+
+"Nor will you allow her to do so through a romantic feeling of
+generosity," said the countess.
+
+"You should know your own daughter, Lady Desmond, better than I do,"
+he answered; "but I cannot say what I may do at her instance till I
+shall have seen her."
+
+"Do you mean to say that you will allow a girl of her age to talk
+you into a proceeding which you know to be wrong?"
+
+"I will allow no one," he said, "to talk me into a proceeding which
+I know to be wrong; nor will I allow any one to talk me out of a
+proceeding which I believe to be right." And then, having uttered
+these somewhat grandiloquent words, he shut himself up as though
+there were no longer any need for discussing the subject.
+
+"My poor child!" said the countess, in a low tremulous voice, as
+though she did not intend him to hear them. "My poor unfortunate
+child!" Herbert as he did hear them thought of the woman in the
+cabin, and of her misfortunes and of her children. "Come, Patrick,"
+continued the countess, "it is perhaps useless for us to say
+anything further at present. If you will remain here, Mr.
+Fitzgerald, for a minute or two, I will send Lady Clara to wait upon
+you;" and then curtsying with great dignity she withdrew, and the
+young earl scuffled out after her. "Mamma," he said, as he went, "he
+is determined that he will have her."
+
+"My poor child!" answered the countess.
+
+"And if I were in his place I should be determined also. You may as
+well give it up. Not but that I like Owen a thousand times the
+best."
+
+Herbert did wait there for some five minutes, and then the door was
+opened very gently, was gently closed again, and Clara Desmond was
+in the room. He came towards her respectfully, holding out his hand
+that he might take hers; but before he had thought of how she would
+act she was in his arms. Hitherto, of all betrothed maidens, she had
+been the most retiring. Sometimes he had thought her cold when she
+had left the seat by his side to go and nestle closely by his
+sister. She had avoided the touch of his hand and the pressure of
+his arm, and had gone from him speechless, if not with anger then
+with dismay, when he had carried the warmth of his love beyond the
+touch of his hand or the pressure of his arm. But now she rushed
+into his embrace and hid her face upon his shoulder, as though she
+were over glad to return to the heart from which those around her
+had endeavoured to banish her. Was he or was he not to speak of his
+love? That had been the question which he had asked himself when
+left alone there for those five minutes, with the eloquence of the
+countess ringing in his ears. Now that question had in truth been
+answered for him.
+
+"Herbert," she said, "Herbert! I have so sorrowed for you; but I
+know that you have borne it like a man."
+
+She was thinking of what he had now half forgotten,--the position
+which he had lost, those hopes which had all been shipwrecked, his
+title surrendered to another, and his lost estates. She was thinking
+of them as the loss affected him, but he, he had reconciled himself
+to all that,--unless all that were to separate him from his promised
+bride.
+
+"Dearest Clara," he said, with his arm close round her waist, while
+neither anger nor dismay appeared to disturb the sweetness of that
+position, "the letter which you wrote me has been my chief comfort."
+Now if he had any intention of liberating Clara from the bond of
+her engagement,--if he really had any feeling that it behoved him
+not to involve her in the worldly losses which had come upon
+him,--he was taking a very bad way of carrying out his views in that
+respect. Instead of confessing the comfort which he had received
+from that letter, and holding her close to his breast while he did
+confess it, he should have stood away from her--quite as far apart
+as he had done from the countess; and he should have argued with
+her, showing her how foolish and imprudent her letter had been,
+explaining that it behoved her now to repress her feelings, and
+teaching her that peers' daughters as well as housemaids should look
+out for situations which would suit them, guided by prudence and a
+view to the wages,--not follow the dictates of impulse and of the
+heart. This is what he should have done, according, I believe, to
+the views of most men and women. Instead of that he held her there
+as close as he could hold her, and left her to do the most of the
+speaking. I think he was right. According to my ideas woman's love
+should be regarded as fair prize of war,--as long as the war has
+been earned on with due adherence to the recognized law of nations.
+When it has been fairly won, let it be firmly held. I have no
+opinion of that theory of giving up.
+
+"You knew that I would not abandon you! Did you not know it? say
+that you knew it?" said Clara, and then she insisted on having an
+answer.
+
+"I could hardly dare to think that there was so much happiness left
+for me," said Herbert.
+
+"Then you were a traitor to your love, sir; a false traitor." But
+deep as was the offence for which she arraigned him, it was clear to
+see that the pardon came as quick as the conviction. "And was
+Emmeline so untrue to me also as to believe that?"
+
+"Emmeline said--" and then he told her what Emmeline had said.
+
+"Dearest, dearest Emmeline! give her a whole cart-load of love from
+me; now mind you do,--and to Mary, too. And remember this, sir; that
+I love Emmeline ten times better than I do you; twenty times--,
+because she knew me. Oh, if she had mistrusted me--!"
+
+"And do you think that I mistrusted you?"
+
+"Yes, you did; you know you did, sir. You wrote and told me so;--and
+now, this very day, you come here to act as though you mistrusted me
+still. You know you have, only you have not the courage to go on
+with the acting."
+
+And then he began to defend himself, showing how ill it would have
+become him to have kept her bound to her engagements had she feared
+poverty as most girls in her position would have feared it. But on
+this point she would not hear much from him, lest the very fact of
+her hearing it should make it seem that such a line of conduct were
+possible to her.
+
+"You know nothing about most girls, sir, or about any, I am afraid;
+not even about one. And if most girls were frightfully heartless,
+which they are not, what right had you to liken me to most girls?
+Emmeline knew better, and why could not you take her as a type of
+most girls? You have behaved very badly, Master Herbert, and you
+know it; and nothing on earth shall make me forgive you;
+nothing--but your promise that you will not so misjudge me any
+more." And then the tears came to his eyes, and her face was again
+hidden on his shoulder.
+
+It was not very probable that after such a commencement the
+interview would terminate in a manner favourable to the wishes of
+the countess. Clara swore to her lover that she had given him all
+that she had to give,--her heart, and will, and very self; and
+swore, also, that she could not and would not take back the gift.
+She would remain as she was now as long as he thought proper, and
+would come to him whenever he should tell her that his home was
+large enough for them both. And so that matter was settled between
+them.
+
+Then she had much to say about his mother and sisters, and a word
+too about his poor father. And now that it was settled between them
+so fixedly, that come what might they were to float together in the
+same boat down the river of life, she had a question or two also to
+ask, and her approbation to give or to withhold, as to his future
+prospects. He was not to think, she told him, of deciding on
+anything without at any rate telling her. So he had to explain to
+her all the family plans, making her know why he had decided on the
+law as his own path to fortune, and asking for and obtaining her
+consent to all his proposed measures.
+
+In this way her view of the matter became more and more firmly
+adopted as that which should be the view resolutely to be taken by
+them both. The countess had felt that that interview would be fatal
+to her; and she had been right. But how could she have prevented it?
+Twenty times she had resolved that she would prevent it; but twenty
+times she had been forced to confess that she was powerless to do
+so. In these days a mother even can only exercise such power over a
+child as public opinion permits her to use. "Mother, it was you who
+brought us together, and you cannot separate us now." That had
+always been Clara's argument, leaving the countess helpless, except
+as far as she could work on Herbert's generosity. That she had
+tried,--and, as we have seen, been foiled there also. If only she
+could have taken her daughter away while the Castle Richmond family
+were still mersed in the bitter depth of their suffering,--at that
+moment when the blows were falling on them! Then, indeed, she might
+have done something; but she was not like other titled mothers. In
+such a step as this she was absolutely without the means.
+
+Thus talking together they remained closeted fora most
+unconscionable time. Clara had had her purpose to carry out, and to
+Herbert the moments had been too precious to cause him any regret as
+they passed. But now at last a knock was heard at the door, and Lady
+Desmond, without waiting for an answer to it, entered the room.
+Clara immediately started from her seat, not as though she were
+either guilty or tremulous, but with a brave resolve to go on with
+her purposed plan.
+
+"Mamma," she said, "it is fixed now; it cannot be altered now."
+
+"What is fixed, Clara?"
+
+"Herbert and I have renewed our engagement, and nothing must now
+break it, unless we die."
+
+"Mr. Fitzgerald, if this be true your conduct to my daughter has
+been unmanly as well as ungenerous."
+
+"Lady Desmond, it is true; and I think that my conduct is neither
+unmanly nor ungenerous."
+
+"Your own relations are against you, sir."
+
+"What relations?" asked Clara, sharply.
+
+"I am not speaking to you, Clara; your absurdity and romance are so
+great that I cannot speak to you."
+
+"What relations, Herbert?" again asked Clara; for she would not for
+the world have had Lady Fitzgerald against her.
+
+"Lady Desmond has, I believe, seen my Aunt Letty two or three times
+lately; I suppose she must mean her."
+
+"Oh," said Clara, turning away as though she were now satisfied. And
+then Herbert, escaping from the house as quickly as he could, rode
+home with a renewal of that feeling of triumph which he had once
+enjoyed before when returning from Desmond Court to Castle Richmond.
+
+On the next day Herbert started for London. The parting was sad
+enough, and the occasion of it was such that it could hardly be
+otherwise. "I am quite sure of one thing," he said to his sister
+Emmeline, "I shall never see Castle Richmond again." And, indeed,
+one may say that small as might be his chance of doing so, his wish
+to do so must be still less. There could be no possible inducement
+to him to come back to a place which had so nearly been his own, and
+the possession of which he had lost in so painful a manner. Every
+tree about the place, every path across the wide park, every hedge
+and ditch and hidden leafy corner, had had for him a special
+interest,--for they had all been his own. But all that was now over.
+They were not only not his own, but they belonged to one who was
+mounting into his seat of power over his head.
+
+He had spent the long evening before his last dinner in going round
+the whole demesne alone, so that no eye should witness what he felt.
+None but those who have known the charms of a country-house early in
+life can conceive the intimacy to which a man attains with all the
+various trifling objects round his own locality; how he knows the
+bark of every tree, and the bend of every bough; how he has marked
+where the rich grass grows in tufts, and where the poorer soil is
+always dry and bare; how he watches the nests of the rooks, and the
+holes of the rabbits, and has learned where the thrushes build, and
+can show the branch on which the linnet sits. All these things had
+been dear to Herbert, and they all required at his hand some last
+farewell. Every dog, too, he had to see, and to lay his hand on the
+neck of every horse. This making of his final adieu under such
+circumstances was melancholy enough.
+
+And then, too, later in the evening, after dinner, all the servants
+were called into the parlour that he might shake hands with them.
+There was not one of them who had not hoped, as lately as three
+months since, that he or she would live to call Herbert Fitzgerald
+master. Indeed, he had already been their master--their young
+master. All Irish servants especially love to pay respect to the
+"young masther;" but Herbert now was to be their master no longer,
+and the probability was that he would never see one of them again.
+
+He schooled himself to go through the ordeal with a manly gait and
+with dry eyes, and he did it; but their eyes were not dry, not even
+those of the men. Mrs. Jones and a favourite girl whom the young
+ladies patronized were not of the number, for it had been decided
+that they should follow the fortunes of their mistress; but Richard
+was there, standing a little apart from the others, as being now on
+a different footing. He was to go also, but before the scene was
+over he also had taken to sobbing violently.
+
+"I wish you all well and happy," said Herbert, making his little
+speech, "and regret deeply that the intercourse between us should be
+thus suddenly severed. You have served me and mine well and truly,
+and it is hard upon you now, that you should be bid to go and seek
+another home elsewhere."
+
+"It isn't that we mind, Mr. Herbert; it ain't that as frets us,"
+said one of the men.
+
+"It ain't that at all, at all," said Richard, doing chorus; "but
+that yer honour should be robbed of what is yer honour's own."
+
+"But you all know that we cannot help it," continued Herbert; "a
+misfortune has come upon us which nobody could have foreseen, and
+therefore we are obliged to part with our old friends and servants."
+
+At the word friends the maid-servants all sobbed. "And 'deed we is
+your frinds, and true frinds, too," wailed the cook.
+
+"I know you are, and it grieves me to feel that I shall see you no
+more. But you must not be led to think by what Richard says that
+anybody is depriving me of that which ought to be my own. I am now
+leaving Castle Richmond because it is not my own, but justly belongs
+to another,--to another who, I must in justice tell you, is in no
+hurry to claim his inheritance. We none of us have any ground for
+displeasure against the present owner of this place, my cousin, Sir
+Owen Fitzgerald."
+
+"We don't know nothing about Sir Owen," said one voice.
+
+"And don't want," said another, convulsed with sobs.
+
+"He's a very good sort of young gentleman--of his own kind, no
+doubt," said Richard.
+
+"But you can all of you understand," continued Herbert, "that as
+this place is no longer our own, we are obliged to leave it; and as
+we shall live in a very different way in the home to which we are
+going, we are obliged to part with you, though we have no reason to
+find fault with any one among you. I am going to-morrow morning
+early, and my mother and sisters will follow after me in a few
+weeks. It will be a sad thing too for them to say good-bye to you
+all, as it is for me now; but it cannot be helped. God bless you
+all, and I hope that you will find good masters and kind mistresses,
+with whom you may live comfortably, as I hope you have done here."
+
+"We can't find no other mistresses like her leddyship," sobbed out
+the senior housemaid.
+
+"There ain't niver such a one in the county Cork," said the cook;
+"in a week of Sundays you wouldn't hear the breath out of her above
+her own swait nathural voice."
+
+"I've driv' her since iver--" began Richard; but he was going to say
+since ever she was married, but he remembered that this allusion
+would be unbecoming, so he turned his face to the doorpost, and
+began to wail bitterly.
+
+And then Herbert shook hands with them all, and it was pretty to see
+how the girls wiped their hands in their aprons before they gave
+them to him, and how they afterwards left the room with their aprons
+up to their faces. The women walked out first, and then the men,
+hanging down their heads, and muttering as they went, each some
+little prayer that fortune and prosperity might return to the house
+of Fitzgerald. The property might go, but according to their views
+Herbert was always, and always would be, the head of the house. And
+then, last of all, Richard went. "There ain't one of 'em, Mr.
+Herbert, as wouldn't guv his fist to go wid yer, and think nothing
+about the wages."
+
+He was to start very early, and his packing was all completed that
+night. "I do so wish we were going with you," said Emmeline, sitting
+in his room on the top of a corded box, which was to follow him by
+some slower conveyance.
+
+"And I do so wish I was staying with you," said he.
+
+"What is the good of staying here now?" said she; "what pleasure can
+there be in it? I hardly dare to go outside the house door for fear
+I should be seen."
+
+"But why? We have done nothing that we need be ashamed of."
+
+"No; I know that. But, Herbert, do you not find that the pity of the
+people is hard to bear? It is written in their eyes, and meets one
+at every turn."
+
+"We shall get rid of that very soon. In a few months we shall be
+clean forgotten."
+
+"I do not know about being forgotten."
+
+"You will be as clean forgotten,--as though you had never existed.
+And all these servants who are now so fond of us, in three months'
+time will be just as fond of Owen Fitzgerald, if he will let them
+stay here; it's the way of the world."
+
+That Herbert should have indulged in a little morbid misanthropy on
+such an occasion was not surprising. But I take leave to think that
+he was wrong in his philosophy; we do make new friends when we lose
+our old friends, and the heart is capable of cure as is the body;
+were it not so, how terrible would be our fate in this world! But we
+are so apt to find fault with God's goodness to us in this respect,
+arguing, of others if not of ourselves, that the heart once widowed
+should remain a widow through all rime. I, for one, think that the
+heart should receive its new spouses with what alacrity it may, and
+always with thankfulness.
+
+"I suppose Lady Desmond will let us see Clara," said Emmeline.
+
+"Of course you must see her. If you knew how much she talks about
+you, you would not think of leaving Ireland without seeing her."
+
+"Dear Clara! I am sure she does not love me better than I do her.
+But suppose that Lady Desmond won't let us see her! and I know that
+it will be so. That grave old man with the bald head will come out
+and say that 'the Lady Clara is not at home,' and then we shall have
+to leave without seeing her. But it does not matter with her as it
+might with others, for I know that her heart will be with us."
+
+"If you write beforehand to say that you are coming, and explain
+that you are doing so to say good-bye, then I think they will admit
+you."
+
+"Yes; and the countess would take care to be there, so that I could
+not say one word to Clara about you. Oh, Herbert! I would give
+anything if I could have her here for one day,--only for one day."
+But when they talked it over they both of them decided that this
+would not be practicable. Clara could not stay away from her own
+house without her mother's leave, and it was not probable that her
+mother would give her permission to stay at Castle Richmond.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXV
+
+HERBERT FITZGERALD IN LONDON
+
+
+On the following morning the whole household was up and dressed very
+early. Lady Fitzgerald--the poor lady made many futile attempts to
+drop her title, but hitherto without any shadow of success--Lady
+Fitzgerald was down in the breakfast parlour at seven, as also were
+Aunt Letty, and Mary, and Emmeline. Herbert had begged his mother
+not to allow herself to be disturbed, alleging that there was no
+cause, seeing that they all so soon would meet in London; but she
+was determined that she would superintend his last meal at Castle
+Richmond. The servants brought in the trays with melancholy silence,
+and now that the absolute moment of parting had come the girls could
+not speak lest the tears should come and choke them. It was not that
+they were about to part with him; that parting would only be for a
+month. But he was now about to part from all that ought to have been
+his own. He sat down at the table in his accustomed place, with a
+forced smile on his face, but without a word, and his sisters put
+before him his cup of tea, and the slice of ham that had been cut
+for him, and his portion of bread. That he was making an effort they
+all saw. He bowed his head down over the tea to sip it, and took the
+knife in his hand, and then he looked up at them, for he knew that
+their eyes were on him; he looked up at them to show that he could
+still endure it. But, alas! he could not endure it. The struggle was
+too much for him; he pushed his plate violently from him into the
+middle of the table, and dropping his head upon his hands, he burst
+forth into audible lamentations.
+
+Oh, my friends! be not hard on him in that he was thus weeping like
+a woman. It was not for his lost wealth that he was wailing, nor
+even for the name or splendour that could be no longer his; nor was
+it for his father's memory, though he had truly loved his father;
+nor for his mother's sorrow, or the tragedy of her life's history.
+For none of these things were his tears flowing and his sobs coming
+so violently that it nearly choked him to repress them. Nor could he
+himself have said why he was weeping.
+
+It was the hundred small things from which he was parting for ever
+that thus disturbed him. The chair on which he sat, the carpet on
+the floor, the table on which he leaned, the dull old picture of his
+great-grandfather over the fire-place,--they were all his old
+familiar friends, they were all part of Castle Richmond,--of that
+Castle Richmond which he might never be allowed to see again.
+
+His mother and sisters came to him, hanging over him, and they
+joined their tears together. "Do not tell her that I was like this,"
+said he at last.
+
+"She will love you the better for it if she has a true woman's heart
+within her breast," said his mother.
+
+"As true a heart as ever breathed," said Emmeline, through her sobs.
+
+And then they pressed him to eat, but it was in vain. He knew that
+the food would choke him if he attempted it. So he gulped down the
+cup of tea, and with one kiss to his mother he rushed from them,
+refusing Aunt Letty's proffered embrace, passing through the line of
+servants without another word to one of them, and burying himself in
+the post-chaise which was to carry him the first stage on his
+melancholy journey.
+
+It was a melancholy journey all through. From the time that he left
+the door at Castle Richmond that was no longer his own, till he
+reached the Euston Station in London, he spoke no word to any one
+more than was absolutely necessary for the purposes of his
+travelling. Nothing could be more sad than the prospect of his
+residence in London. Not that he was without friends there, for he
+belonged to a fashionable club to which he could still adhere if it
+so pleased him, and had all his old Oxford comrades to fall back
+upon if that were of any service to him. But how is a man to walk
+into his club who yesterday was known as his father's eldest son and
+the heir to a baronetcy and twelve thousand a year, and who to-day
+is known as nobody's son and the heir to nothing? Men would feel so
+much for him and pity him so deeply! That was the worst feature of
+his present position. He could hardly dare to show himself more than
+was absolutely necessary till the newness of his tragedy was worn
+off.
+
+Mr. Prendergast had taken lodgings for him, in which he was to
+remain till he could settle himself in the same house with his
+mother. And this house, in which they were all to live, had also
+been taken,--up in that cheerful locality near Harrow-on-the-Hill,
+called St. John's Wood Road, the cab fares to which from any central
+part of London are so very ruinous. But that house was not yet
+ready, and so he went into lodgings in Lincoln's Inn Fields. Mr.
+Prendergast had chosen this locality because it was near the
+chambers of that great Chancery barrister, Mr. Die, under whose
+beneficent wing Herbert Fitzgerald was destined to learn all the
+mysteries of the Chancery bar. The sanctuary of Mr. Die's wig was in
+Stone Buildings, immediately close to that milky way of
+vice-chancellors, whose separate courts cluster about the old chapel
+of Lincoln's Inn; and here was Herbert to sit, studious, for the
+next three years,--to sit there instead of at the various relief
+committees in the vicinity of Kanturk. And why could he not be as
+happy at the one as at the other? Would not Mr. Die be as amusing as
+Mr. Townsend; and the arguments of Vice-Chancellor Stuart's court
+quite as instructive as those heard in the committee room at
+Gortnaclough?
+
+On the morning of his arrival in London he drove to his lodgings,
+and found a note there from Mr. Prendergast asking him to dinner on
+that day, and promising to take him to Mr. Die on the following
+morning. Mr. Prendergast kept a bachelor's house in Bloomsbury
+Square, not very far from Lincoln's Inn--just across Holborn, as all
+Londoners know; and there he would expect Herbert at seven o'clock.
+"I will not ask any one to meet you," he said, "because you will be
+tired after your journey, and perhaps more inclined to talk to me
+than to strangers."
+
+Mr. Prendergast was one of those old-fashioned people who think
+that a spacious substantial house in Bloomsbury Square, at a rent of
+a hundred and twenty pounds a year, is better worth having than a
+narrow, lath-and-plaster, ill-built tenement at nearly double the
+price out westward of the Parks. A quite new man is necessarily
+afraid of such a locality as Bloomsbury Square, for he has no chance
+of getting any one into his house if he do not live westward. Who
+would dine with Mr. Jones in Woburn Terrace, unless he had known Mr.
+Jones all his days, or unless Jones were known as a top sawyer in
+some walk of life? But Mr. Prendergast was well enough known to his
+old friends to be allowed to live where he pleased, and he was not
+very anxious to add to their number by any new fashionable
+allurements.
+
+Herbert sent over to Bloomsbury Square to say that he would be there
+at seven o'clock, and then sat himself down in his new lodgings. It
+was but a dingy abode, consisting of a narrow sitting-room looking
+out into the big square from over a covered archway, and a narrower
+bedroom looking backwards into a dull, dirty-looking, crooked
+street. Nothing, he thought, could be more melancholy than such a
+home. But then, what did it signify? His days would be passed in Mr.
+Die's chambers, and his evenings would be spent over his law books
+with closed windows and copious burnings of the midnight oil. For
+Herbert had wisely resolved that hard work, and hard work alone,
+could mitigate the misery of the present position.
+
+But he had no work for the present day. He could not at once unpack
+his portmanteau and begin his law studies on the moment. It was
+about noon when he had completed the former preparation, and eaten
+such breakfast as his new London landlady had gotten for him. And
+the breakfast had not of itself been bad, for Mrs. Whereas had been
+a daughter of Themis all her life, waiting upon scions of the law
+since first she had been able to run for a penn'orth of milk. She
+had been laundress on a stairs for ten years, having married a law
+stationer's apprentice, and now she owned the dingy house over the
+covered way, and let her own lodgings with her own furniture; nor
+was she often without friends who would recommend her zeal and
+honesty, and make excuse for the imperiousness of her ways and the
+too great fluency of her by no means servile tongue.
+
+"Oh, Mrs.--," said Herbert, "I beg your pardon, but might I ask your
+name?"
+
+"No offence, sir, none in life. My name's Whereas. Martha Whereas,
+and 'as been now for five-and-twenty year. There be'ant many of the
+gen'lemen about the courts here as don't know some'at of me. And I
+knew some'at of them too, before they carried their wigs so grandly.
+My husband, that's Whereas,--you'll all'ays find him at the little
+stationer's shop outside the gate in Carey Street. You'll know him
+some of these days, I'll go bail, if you're going to Mr. Die;
+anyways you'll know his handwrite. Tea to your liking, sir? I
+all'ays gets cream for gentlemen, sir, unless they tells me not.
+Milk a 'alfpenny, sir; cream tuppence; three 'alfpence difference;
+hain't it, sir? So now you can do as you pleases, and if you like
+bacon and heggs to your breakfastesses you've only to say the words.
+But then the heggs hain't heggs, that's the truth; and they hain't
+chickens, but some'at betwixt the two."
+
+And so she went on during the whole time that he was eating, moving
+about from place to place, and putting back into the places which
+she had chosen for them anything which he had chanced to move; now
+dusting a bit of furniture with her apron, and then leaning on the
+back of a chair while she asked him some question as to his habits
+and future mode of living. She also wore a bonnet, apparently as a
+customary part of her house costume, and Herbert could not help
+thinking that she looked very like his Aunt Letty.
+
+But when she had gone and taken the breakfast things with her, then
+began the tedium of the day. It seemed to him as though he had no
+means of commencing his life in London until he had been with Mr.
+Prendergast or Mr. Die. And so new did it all feel to him, so
+strange and wonderful, that he hardly dared to go out of the house
+by himself and wander about the premises of the Inn. He was not
+absolutely a stranger in London, for he had been elected at a club
+before he had left Oxford, and had been up in town twice, staying on
+each occasion some few weeks. Had he therefore been asked about the
+metropolis some four months since at Castle Richmond, he would have
+professed that he knew it well. Starting from Pall Mall he could
+have gone to any of the central theatres, or to the Parks, or to the
+houses of Parliament, or to the picture galleries in June. But now
+in that dingy big square he felt himself to be absolutely a
+stranger; and when he did venture out he watched the corners, in
+order that he might find his way back without asking questions.
+
+And then he roamed round the squares and about the little courts,
+and found out where were Stone Buildings,--so called because they
+are so dull and dead and stony-hearted; and as his courage increased
+he made his way into one of the courts, and stood up for a while on
+an uncomfortable narrow step, so that he might watch the proceedings
+as they went on, and it all seemed to him to be dull and deadly.
+There was no life and amusement such as he had seen at the Assize
+Court in county Cork, when he was sworn in as one of the Grand Jury.
+There the gentlemen in wigs--for on the Munster circuit they do wear
+wigs, or at any rate did then--laughed and winked and talked
+together joyously; and when a Roman Catholic fisherman from
+Berehaven was put into the dock for destroying the boat and nets of
+a Protestant fisherman from Dingle in county Kerry, who had chanced
+to come that way, "not fishing at all, at all, yer honour, but just
+souping," as the Papist prisoner averred with great emphasis, the
+gentlemen of the robe had gone to the fight with all the animation
+and courage of Matadors and Picadors in a bull-ring. It was
+delightful to see the way in which Roman Catholic skill combated
+Protestant fury, with a substratum below of Irish fun which showed
+to everybody that is was not all quite in earnest;--that the great
+O'Fagan and the great Fitzberesford could sit down together
+afterwards with all the pleasure in life over their modicum of
+claret in the barristers' room at the Imperial hotel. And then the
+judge had added to the life of the meeting, helping to bamboozle and
+make miserable a wretch of a witness who had been caught in the act
+of seeing the boat smashed with a fragment of rock, and was now, in
+consequence, being impaled alive by his lordship's assistance.
+
+"What do you say your name is?" demanded his lordship, angrily.
+
+"Rowland Houghton," said the miserable stray Saxon tourist who had
+so unfortunately strayed that way on the occasion.
+
+"What?" repeated the judge, whose ears were sharper to such sounds
+as O'Shaughnessy, Macgillycuddy, and O'Callaghan.
+
+"Rowland Houghton," said the offender, in his distress; quicker,
+louder, and perhaps not more distinctly than before.
+
+"What does the man say?" said the judge, turning his head down
+towards a satellite who sat on a bench beneath his cushion.
+
+The gentleman appealed to pronounced the name for the judge's
+hearing with a full rolling Irish brogue, that gave great delight
+through all the court: "R-rowland Hough-h-ton, me lor-r-d."
+
+Whereupon his lordship threw up his hands in dismay. "Oulan Outan!"
+said he. "Oulan Outan! I never heard such a name in my life!" And
+then, having thoroughly impaled the wicked witness, and added
+materially to the amusement of the day, the judge wrote down the
+name in his book; and there it is to this day, no doubt, Oulan
+Outan. And when one thinks of it, it was monstrous that an English
+witness should go into an Irish law court with such a name as
+Rowland Houghton.
+
+But here, in the dark dingy court to which Herbert had penetrated in
+Lincoln's Inn, there was no such life as this. Here, whatever skill
+there might be, was of a dark subterranean nature, quite
+unintelligible to any minds but those of experts; and as for fury or
+fun, there was no spark either of one or of the other. The judge sat
+back in his seat, a tall, handsome, speechless man, not asleep, for
+his eye from time to time moved slowly from the dingy barrister who
+was on his legs to another dingy barrister who was sitting with his
+hands in his pockets, and with his eyes fixed upon the ceiling. The
+gentleman who was in the act of pleading had a huge open paper in
+his hand, from which he droned forth certain legal quiddities of the
+dullest and most uninteresting nature. He was in earnest, for there
+was a perpetual energy in his drone, as a droning bee might drone
+who was known to drone louder than other drones. But it was a
+continuous energy supported by perseverance, and not by impulse; and
+seemed to come of a fixed determination to continue the reading of
+that paper till all the world should be asleep. A great part of the
+world around was asleep; but the judge's eye was still open, and one
+might say that the barrister was resolved to go on till that eye
+should have become closed in token of his success.
+
+Herbert remained there for an hour, thinking that he might learn
+something that would be serviceable to him in his coming legal
+career; but at the end of the hour the same thing was going on,--the
+judge's eye was still open, and the lawyer's drone was still
+sounding; and so he came away, having found himself absolutely
+dozing in the uncomfortable position in which he was standing.
+
+At last the day wore away, and at seven o'clock he found himself in
+Mr. Prendergast's hall in Bloomsbury Square; and his hat and
+umbrella were taken away from him by an old servant looking very
+much like Mr. Prendergast himself;--having about him the same look
+of the stiffness of years, and the same look also of excellent
+preservation and care.
+
+"Mr. Prendergast is in the library, sir, if you please," said the
+old servant; and so saying he ushered Herbert into the back
+down-stairs room. It was a spacious, lofty apartment, well fitted up
+for a library, and furnished for that purpose with exceeding
+care;--such a room as one does not find in the flashy new houses in
+the west, where the dining-room and drawing-room occupy all of the
+house that is visible. But then, how few of those who live in flashy
+new houses in the west require to have libraries in London!
+
+As he entered the room Mr. Prendergast came forward to meet him, and
+seemed heartily glad to see him. There was a cordiality about him
+which Herbert had never recognized at Castle Richmond, and an
+appearance of enjoyment which had seemed to be almost foreign to the
+lawyer's nature. Herbert perhaps had not calculated, as he should
+have done, that Mr. Prendergast's mission in Ireland had not
+admitted of much enjoyment. Mr. Prendergast had gone there to do a
+job of work, and that he had done, very thoroughly; but he certainly
+had not enjoyed himself.
+
+There was time for only few words before the old man again entered
+the room, announcing dinner; and those few words had no reference
+whatever to the Castle Richmond sorrow. He had spoken of Herbert's
+lodging, and of his journey, and a word or two of Mr. Die, and then
+they went in to dinner. And at dinner too the conversation wholly
+turned upon indifferent matters, upon reform at Oxford, the state of
+parties, and of the peculiar idiosyncrasies of the Irish Low Church
+clergymen, on all of which subjects Herbert found that Mr.
+Prendergast had a tolerably strong opinion of his own. The dinner
+was very good, though by no means showy,--as might have been
+expected in a house in Bloomsbury Square--and the wine excellent,
+as might have been expected in any house inhabited by Mr.
+Prendergast.
+
+And then, when the dinner was over, and the old servant had slowly
+removed his last tray, when they had each got into an arm-chair, and
+were seated at properly comfortable distances from the fire, Mr.
+Prendergast began to talk freely; not that he at once plunged into
+the middle of the old history, or began with lugubrious force to
+recapitulate the horrors that were now partly over; but gradually he
+veered round to those points as to which he thought it good that he
+should speak before setting Herbert at work on his new London life.
+
+"You drink claret, I suppose?" said Mr. Prendergast, as he adjusted
+a portion of the table for their evening symposium.
+
+"Oh yes," said Herbert, not caring very much at that moment what the
+wine was.
+
+"You'll find that pretty good; a good deal better than what you'll
+get in most houses in London nowadays. But you know a man always
+likes his own wine, and especially an old man."
+
+Herbert said something about it being very good, but did not give
+that attention to the matter which Mr. Prendergast thought that it
+deserved. Indeed, he was thinking more about Mr. Die and Stone
+Buildings than about the wine.
+
+"And how do you find my old friend Mrs. Whereas?" asked the lawyer.
+
+"She seems to be a very attentive sort of woman."
+
+"Yes; rather too much so sometimes. People do say that she never
+knows how to hold her tongue. But she won't rob you, nor yet poison
+you; and in these days that is saying a very great deal for a woman
+in London." And then there was a pause, as Mr Prendergast sipped his
+wine with slow complacency. "And we are to go to Mr. Die to-morrow,
+I suppose?" he said, beginning again. To which Herbert replied that
+he would be ready at any time in the morning that might be suitable.
+
+"The sooner you get into harness the better. It is not only that you
+have much to learn, but you have much to forget also."
+
+"Yes," said Herbert, "I have much to forget indeed; more than I can
+forget, I'm afraid, Mr. Prendergast."
+
+"There is, I fancy, no sorrow which a man cannot forget; that is, as
+far as the memory of it is likely to be painful to him. You will not
+absolutely cease to remember Castle Richmond and all its
+circumstances; you will still think of the place and all the people
+whom you knew there; but you will learn to do so without the pain
+which of course you now suffer. That is what I mean by forgetting."
+
+"Oh, I don't complain, sir."
+
+"No, I know you don't; and that is the reason why I am so anxious to
+see you happy. You have borne the whole matter so well that I am
+quite sure that you will be able to live happily in this new life.
+That is what I mean when I say that you will forget Castle
+Richmond."
+
+Herbert bethought himself of Clara Desmond, and of the woman whom he
+had seen in the cabin, and reflected that even at present he had no
+right to be unhappy.
+
+"I suppose you have no thought of going back to Ireland?" said Mr.
+Prendergast.
+
+"Oh, none in the least."
+
+"On the whole I think you are right. No doubt a family connection is
+a great assistance to a barrister, and there would be reasons which
+would make attorneys in Ireland throw business into your hands at an
+early period of your life. Your history would give you an eclat
+there, if you know what I mean."
+
+"Oh yes, perfectly; but I don't want that."
+
+"No. It is a kind of assistance which in my opinion a man should not
+desire. In the first place, it does not last. A man so buoyed up is
+apt to trust to such support, instead of his own steady exertions;
+and the firmest of friends won't stick to a lawyer long if he can
+get better law for his money elsewhere."
+
+"There should be no friendship in such matters, I think."
+
+"Well, I won't say that. But the friendship should come of the
+service, not the service of the friendship. Good, hard, steady, and
+enduring work,--work that does not demand immediate acknowledgment
+and reward, but that can afford to look forward for its results,
+--it is that, and that only, which in my opinion will insure to a
+man permanent success."
+
+"It is hard though for a poor man to work so many years without an
+income," said Herbert, thinking of Lady Clara Desmond.
+
+"Not hard if you get the price of your work at last. But you can
+have your choice. A moderate fixed income can now be had by any
+barrister early in life,--by any barrister of fair parts and sound
+acquirements. There are more barristers now filling salaried places
+than practising in the courts."
+
+"But those places are given by favour."
+
+"No; not so generally,--or if by favour, by that sort of favour
+which is as likely to come to you as to another. Such places are not
+given to incompetent young men because their fathers and mothers ask
+for them. But won't you fill your glass?"
+
+"I am doing very well, thank you."
+
+"You'll do better if you'll fill your glass, and let me have the
+bottle back. But you are thinking of the good old historical days
+when you talk of barristers having to wait for their incomes. There
+has been a great change in that respect,--for the better, as you of
+course will think. Nowadays a man is taken away from his boat-racing
+and his skittle-ground to be made a judge. A little law and a great
+fund of physical strength--that is the extent of the demand." And
+Mr. Prendergast plainly showed by the tone of his voice that he did
+not admire the wisdom of this new policy of which he spoke.
+
+"But I suppose a man must work five years before he can earn
+anything," said Herbert, still despondingly; for five years is a
+long time to an expectant lover.
+
+"Fifteen years of unpaid labour used not to be thought too great a
+price to pay for ultimate success," said Mr. Prendergast, almost
+sighing at the degeneracy of the age. "But men in those days were
+ambitious and patient."
+
+"And now they are ambitious and impatient," suggested Herbert.
+
+"Covetous and impatient might perhaps be the truer epithets," said
+Mr. Prendergast, with grim sarcasm.
+
+It is sad for a man to feel, when he knows that he is fast going
+down the hill of life, that the experience of old age is to be no
+longer valued nor its wisdom appreciated. The elderly man of this
+day thinks that he has been robbed of his chance in life. When he
+was in his full physical vigour he was not old enough for mental
+success. He was still winning his spurs at forty. But at fifty--so
+does the world change--he learns that he is past his work. By some
+unconscious and unlucky leap he has passed from the unripeness of
+youth to the decay of age, without even knowing what it was to be in
+his prime. A man should always seize his opportunity; but the
+changes of the times in which he has lived have never allowed him to
+have one. There has been no period of flood in his tide which might
+lead him on to fortune. While he has been waiting patiently for high
+water the ebb has come upon him. Mr. Prendergast himself had been a
+successful man, and his regrets, therefore, were philosophical
+rather than practical. As for Herbert, he did not look upon the
+question at all in the same light as his elderly friend, and on the
+whole was rather exhilarated by the tone of Mr. Prendergast's
+sarcasm. Perhaps Mr. Prendergast had intended that such should be
+its effect.
+
+The long evening passed away cosily enough, leaving on Herbert's
+mind an impression that in choosing to be a barrister he had
+certainly chosen the noblest walk of life in which a man could earn
+his bread. Mr. Prendergast did not promise him either fame or
+fortune, nor did he speak by any means in high enthusiastic
+language; he said much of the necessity of long hours, of tedious
+work, of Amaryllis left by herself in the shade, and of Neaera's
+locks unheeded; but nevertheless he spoke in a manner to arouse the
+ambition and satisfy the longings of the young man who listened to
+him. There were much wisdom in what he did, and much benevolence
+also.
+
+And then at about eleven o'clock, Herbert having sat out the second
+bottle of claret, betook himself to his bed at the lodgings over the
+covered way.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVI
+
+HOW THE EARL WAS WON
+
+
+It was not quite at first that the countess could explain to her son
+how she now wished that Owen Fitzgerald might become her son-in-law.
+She had been so steadfast in her opposition to Owen when the earl
+had last spoken of the matter, and had said so much of the wickedly
+dissipated life which Owen was leading, that she feared to shock the
+boy. But by degrees she brought the matter round, speaking of Owen's
+great good fortune, pointing out how much better he was suited for
+riches than for poverty, insisting warmly on all his good qualities
+and high feelings, and then saying at last, as it were without
+thought, "Poor Clara! She has been unfortunate, for at one time she
+loved Owen Fitzgerald much better than she will ever love his cousin
+Herbert."
+
+"Do you think so, mother?"
+
+"I am sure of it. The truth is, Patrick, you do not understand your
+sister; and indeed it is hard to do so. I have also always had an
+inward fear that she had now engaged herself to a man whom she did
+not love. Of course as things were then it was impossible that she
+should marry Owen; and I was glad to break her off from that
+feeling. But she never loved Herbert Fitzgerald."
+
+"Why, she is determined to have him, even now."
+
+"Ah, yes! That is where you do not understand her. Now, at this
+special moment, her heart is touched by his misfortune, and she
+thinks herself bound by her engagement to sacrifice herself with
+him. But that is not love. She has never loved any one but
+Owen,--and who can wonder at it? for he is a man made for a woman to
+love."
+
+The earl said nothing for a while, but sat balancing himself on the
+back legs of his chair. And then, as though a new idea had struck
+him, he exclaimed, "If I thought that, mother, I would find out what
+Owen thinks of it himself."
+
+"Poor Owen!" said the countess. "There is no doubt as to what he
+thinks;" and then she left the room, not wishing to carry the
+conversation any further.
+
+Two days after this, and without any further hint from his mother,
+he betook himself along the banks of the river to Hap House. In his
+course thither he never let his horse put a foot upon the road, but
+kept low down upon the water meadows, leaping over all the fences,
+as he had so often done with the man whom he was now going to see.
+It was here, among these banks, that he had received his earliest
+lessons in horsemanship, and they had all been given by Owen
+Fitzgerald. It had been a thousand pities, he had thought, that Owen
+had been so poor as to make it necessary for them all to discourage
+that love affair with Clara. He would have been so delighted to
+welcome Owen as his brother-in-law. And as he strode along over the
+ground, and landed himself knowingly over the crabbed fences, he
+began to think how much pleasanter the country would be for him if
+he had a downright good fellow and crack sportsman as his fast
+friend at Castle Richmond. Sir Owen Fitzgerald of Castle Richmond!
+He would be the man to whom he would be delighted to give his sister
+Clara.
+
+And then he hopped in from one of Owen's fields into a small paddock
+at the back of Owen's house, and seeing one of the stable-boys
+about the place, asked him if his master was at home.
+
+"Shure an' he's here thin, yer honour;" and Lord Desmond could hear
+the boy whispering, "It's the young lord hisself." In a moment Owen
+Fitzgerald was standing by his horse's side. It was the first time
+that Owen had seen one of the family since the news had been spread
+abroad concerning his right to the inheritance of Castle Richmond.
+
+"Desmond," said he, taking the lad's hand with one of his, and
+putting the other on the animal's neck, "this is very good of you. I
+am delighted to see you. I had heard that you were in the country."
+
+"Yes; I have been home for this week past. But things are all so at
+sixes and sevens among us all that a fellow can't go and do just
+what he would like."
+
+Owen well understood what he meant. "Indeed, they are at sixes and
+sevens; you may well say that. But get off your horse, old fellow,
+and come into the house. Why, what a lather of heat the mare's in!"
+
+"Isn't she? it's quite dreadful. That chap of ours has no more idea
+of condition than I have of--of--of--of an archbishop. I've just
+trotted along the fields, and put her over a ditch or two, and you
+see the state she's in. It's a beastly shame."
+
+"I know of old what your trottings are, Desmond; and what a ditch or
+two means. You've been at every bank between this and Banteer as
+though you were going for a steeple-chase plate."
+
+"Upon my honour, Owen--"
+
+"Look here, Patsey. Walk that mare up and down here, between this
+gate and that post, till the big sweat has all dried on her; and
+then stick to her with a whisp of straw till she's as soft as silk.
+Do you hear?"
+
+Patsey said that he did hear; and then Owen, throwing his arm over
+the earl's shoulder, walked slowly towards the house.
+
+"I can't tell you how glad I am to see you, old boy," said Owen,
+pressing his young friend with something almost like an embrace.
+"You will hardly believe how long it is since I have seen a face
+that I cared to look at."
+
+"Haven't you?" said the young lord, wondering. He knew that
+Fitzgerald had now become heir to a very large fortune, or rather
+the possessor of that fortune, and he could not understand why a man
+who had been so popular while he was poor should be deserted now
+that he was rich.
+
+"No, indeed, have I not. Things are all at sixes and sevens, as you
+say. Let me see. Donnellan was here when you last saw me; and I was
+soon tired of him when things became serious."
+
+"I don't wonder you were tired of him."
+
+"But, Desmond, how's your mother?"
+
+"Oh, she's very well. These are bad times for poor people like us,
+you know."
+
+"And your sister?"
+
+"She's pretty well too, thank you" And then there was a pause.
+"You've had a great change in your fortune since I saw you, have you
+not?" said the earl, after a minute or two. And there it occurred to
+him for the first time, that, having refused his sister to this man
+when he was poor, he had now come to offer her to him when he was
+rich. "Not that that was the reason," he said to himself. "But it
+was impossible then, and now it would be so pleasant."
+
+"It is a sad history, is it not?" said Owen.
+
+"Very sad," said the earl, remembering, however, that he had ridden
+over there with his heart full of joy,--of joy occasioned by that
+very catastrophe which now, following his friend's words like a
+parrot, he declared to be so very sad.
+
+And now they were in the dining-room in which Owen usually lived,
+and were both standing on the rug, as two men always do stand when
+they first get into a room together. And it was clear to see that
+neither of them knew how to break at once into the sort of loving,
+genial talk which each was longing to have with the other. It is so
+easy to speak when one has little or nothing to say; but often so
+difficult when there is much that must be said: and the same paradox
+is equally true of writing.
+
+Then Owen walked away to the window, looking out among the shrubs
+into which Aby Mollett had been precipitated, as though he could
+collect his thoughts there; and in a moment or two the earl followed
+him, and looked out also among the shrubs. "They killed a fox
+exactly there the other day; didn't they?" asked the earl,
+indicating the spot by a nod of his head.
+
+"Yes, they did." And then there was another pause. "I'll tell you
+what it is, Desmond," Owen said at last, going back to the rug and
+speaking with an effort. "As the people say, 'a sight of you is good
+for sore eyes.' There is a positive joy to me in seeing you. It is
+like a cup of cold water when a man is thirsty. But I cannot put the
+drink to my lips till I know on what terms we are to meet. When last
+we saw each other, we were speaking of your sister; and now that we
+meet again, we must again speak of her. Desmond, all my thoughts are
+of her; I dream of her at night, and find myself talking to her
+spirit when I wake in the morning. I have much else that I ought to
+think of; but I go about thinking of nothing but of her. I am told
+that she is engaged to my cousin Herbert. Nay, she has told me so
+herself, and I know that it is so. But if she becomes his wife--any
+man's wife but mine--I cannot live in this country."
+
+He had not said one word of that state of things in his life's
+history of which the countryside was so full. He had spoken of
+Herbert, but he had not alluded to Herbert's fall. He had spoken of
+such hope as he still might have with reference to Clara Desmond;
+but he did not make the slightest reference to that change in his
+fortunes--in his fortunes, and in those of his rival--which might
+have so strong a bias on those hopes, and which ought so to have in
+the minds of all worldly, prudent people. It was to speak of this
+specially that Lord Desmond had come thither; and then, if
+opportunity should offer, to lead away the subject to that other
+one; but now Owen had begun at the wrong end. If called upon to
+speak about his sister at once, what could the brother say, except
+that she was engaged to Herbert Fitzgerald?
+
+"Tell me this, Desmond, whom does your sister love?" said Owen,
+speaking almost fiercely in his earnestness. "I know so much of you,
+at any rate, that whatever may be your feelings you will not lie to
+me,"--thereby communicating to the young lord an accusation, which
+he very well understood, against the truth of the countess, his
+mother.
+
+"When I have spoken to her about this she declares that she is
+engaged to Herbert Fitzgerald."
+
+"Engaged to him! yes, I know that; I do not doubt that. It has been
+dinned into my ears now for the last six months till it is
+impossible to doubt it. And she will marry him too, if no one
+interferes to prevent it. I do not doubt that either. But, Desmond,
+that is not the question that I have asked. She did love me; and
+then she was ordered by her mother to abandon that love, and to give
+her heart to another. That in words she has been obedient, I know
+well; but what I doubt is this,--that she has in truth been able so
+to chuck her heart about like a shuttlecock. I can only say that I
+am not able to do it."
+
+How was the earl to answer him? The very line of argument which
+Owen's mind was taking was exactly that which the young lord himself
+desired to promote. He too was desirous that Clara should go back to
+her first love. He himself thought strongly that Owen was a man more
+fitted than Herbert for the worshipful adoration of such a girl as
+his sister Clara. But then he, Desmond, had opposed the match while
+Owen was poor, and how was he to frame words by which he might
+encourage it now that Owen was rich?
+
+"I have been so little with her, that I hardly know," he said. "But,
+Owen--"
+
+"Well?"
+
+"It is so difficult for me to talk to you about all this."
+
+"Is it?"
+
+"Why, yes. You know that I have always liked you--always. No chap
+was ever such a friend to me as you have been;" and he squeezed
+Owen's arm with strong boyish love.
+
+"I know all about it," said Owen.
+
+"Well; then all that happened about Clara. I was young then, you
+know,"--he was now sixteen--"and had not thought anything about it.
+The idea of you and Clara falling in love had never occurred to me.
+Boys are so blind, you know. But when it did happen--you remember
+that day, old fellow, when you and I met down at the gate?"
+
+"Remember it!" said Owen. He would remember it, as he thought, when
+half an eternity should have passed over his head.
+
+"And I told you then what I thought. I don't think I am a particular
+fellow myself about money and rank and that sort of thing. I am as
+poor as a church mouse, and so I shall always remain; and for myself
+I don't care about it. But for one's sister, Owen--you never had a
+sister, had you?"
+
+"Never," said Owen, hardly thinking of the question.
+
+"One is obliged to think of such things for her. We should all go to
+rack and ruin, the whole family of us, box and dice,--as indeed we
+have pretty well already--if some of us did not begin to look about
+us. I don't suppose I shall ever marry and have a family. I couldn't
+afford it, you know. And in that case Clara's son would be Earl of
+Desmond; or if I died she would be Countess of Desmond in her own
+right." And the young lord looked the personification of family
+prudence.
+
+"I know all that," said Owen; "but you do not suppose that I was
+thinking of it?"
+
+"What; as regards yourself. No; I am sure you never did. But,
+looking to all that, it would never have done for her to marry a man
+as poor as you were. It is not a comfortable thing to be a very poor
+nobleman, I can tell you."
+
+Owen again remained silent. He wanted to talk the earl over into
+favouring his views, but he wanted to do so as Owen of Hap House,
+not as Owen of Castle Richmond. He perceived at once from the tone
+of the boy's voice, and even from his words, that there was no
+longer anything to be feared from the brother's opposition; and
+perceiving this, he thought that the mother's opposition might now
+perhaps also be removed. But it was quite manifest that this had
+come from what was supposed to be his altered position. "A man as
+poor as you were," Lord Desmond had said, urging that though now the
+marriage might be well enough, in those former days it would have
+been madness. The line of argument was very clear; but as Owen was
+as poor as ever, and intended to remain so, there was nothing in it
+to comfort him.
+
+"I cannot say that I, myself, have so much worldly wisdom as you
+have," said he at last, with something like a sneer.
+
+"Ah, that is just what I knew you would say. You think that I am
+coming to you now, and offering to make up matters between you and
+Clara because you are rich!"
+
+"But can you make up matters between me and Clara?" said Owen,
+eagerly.
+
+"Well, I do not know. The countess seems to think it might be so."
+
+And then again Owen was silent, walking about the room with his
+hands behind his back. Then, after all, the one thing of this world
+which his eye regarded as desirable was within his reach. He had
+then been right in supposing that that face which had once looked up
+to his so full of love had been a true reflex of the girl's
+heart,--that it had indicated to him love which was not changeable.
+It was true that Clara, having accepted a suitor at her mother's
+order, might now be allowed to come back to him! As he thought of
+this, he wondered at the endurance and obedience of a woman's heart
+which could thus give up all that it held as sacred at the instance
+of another. But even this, though it was but little flattering to
+Clara, by no means lessened the transport which he felt. He had had
+that pride in himself, that he had never ceased to believe that she
+loved him. Full of that thought, of which he had not dared to speak,
+he had gone about, gloomily miserable since the news of her
+engagement with Herbert had reached him, and now he learned, as he
+thought with certainty, that his belief had been well grounded.
+Through all that had passed Clara Desmond did love him still!
+
+But as to this overture of reconciliation that was now made to him,
+how was he to accept it or reject it? It was made to him because he
+was believed to be Sir Owen Fitzgerald of Castle Richmond, a baronet
+of twelve thousand a year, instead of a poor squire, whose wife
+would have to look narrowly to the kitchen, in order that food in
+sufficiency might be forthcoming for the parlour. That he would
+become Sir Owen he thought probable; but that he would be Sir Owen
+of Hap House and not of Castle Richmond he had firmly resolved. He
+had thought of this for long hours and hours together, and felt that
+he could never again be happy were he to put his foot into that
+house as its owner. Every tenant would scorn him, every servant
+would hate him, every neighbour would condemn him; but this would be
+as nothing to his hatred of himself, to his own scorn and his own
+condemnation. And yet how great was the temptation to him now! If he
+would consent to call himself master of Castle Richmond, Clara's
+hand might still be his.
+
+So he thought; but those who know Clara Desmond better than he did
+will know how false were his hopes. She was hardly the girl to have
+gone back to a lover when he was rich, whom she had rejected when he
+was poor.
+
+"Desmond," said he, "come here and sit down;" and both sat leaning
+on the table together, with their arms touching. "I understand it
+all now, I think; and remember this, my boy, that whomever I may
+blame, I do not blame you; that you are true and honest I am sure;
+and, indeed, there is only one person whom I do blame." He did not
+say that this one person was the countess, but the earl knew just as
+well as though he had been told.
+
+"I understand all this now," he repeated, "and before we go any
+further, I must tell you one thing; I shall never be owner of Castle
+Richmond."
+
+"Why, I thought it was all settled!" said the earl, looking up with
+surprise.
+
+"Nothing at all is settled. To every bargain there must be two
+parties, and I have never yet become a party to the bargain which
+shall make me owner of Castle Richmond."
+
+"But is it not yours of right?"
+
+"I do not know what you call right."
+
+"Right of inheritance," said the earl, who, having succeeded to his
+own rank by the strength of the same right enduring through many
+ages, looked upon it as the one substantial palladium of the
+country.
+
+"Look here, old fellow, and I'll tell you my views about this. Sir
+Thomas Fitzgerald, when he married that poor lady who is still
+staying at Castle Richmond, did so in the face of the world with the
+full assurance that he made her his legal wife. Whether such a case
+as this ever occurred before I don't know, but I am sure of this,
+that in the eye of God she is his widow. Herbert Fitzgerald was
+brought up as the heir to all that estate, and I cannot see that he
+can fairly be robbed of that right because another man has been a
+villain. The title he cannot have, I suppose, because the law won't
+give it him; but the property can be made over to him, and as far as
+I am concerned it shall be made over. No earthly consideration shall
+induce me to put my hand upon it, for in doing so I should look upon
+myself as a thief and a scoundrel."
+
+"And you mean then that Herbert will have it all, just the same as
+it was before?"
+
+"Just the same as regards the estate."
+
+"Then why has he gone away?"
+
+"I cannot answer for him. I can only tell you what I shall do. I
+dare say it may take months before it is all settled. But now,
+Desmond, you know how I stand; I am Owen Fitzgerald of Hap House,
+now as I have ever been, that and nothing more,--for as to the
+handle to my name it is not worth talking about."
+
+They were still sitting at the table, and now they both sat silent,
+not looking at each other, but with their eyes fixed on the wood.
+Owen had in his hand a pen, which he had taken from the mantelpiece,
+and unconsciously began to trace signs on the polished surface
+before him. The earl sat with his forehead leaning on his two hands,
+thinking what he was to say next. He felt that he himself loved the
+man better than ever; but when his mother should come to hear all
+this, what would she say?
+
+"You know it all now, my boy," said Owen, looking up at last; and as
+he did so there was an expression about his face to which the young
+earl thought that he had never seen the like. There was a gleam in
+his eye which, though not of joy, was so bright; and a smile round
+his mouth which was so sweet, though full of sadness! "How can she
+not love him?" said he to himself, thinking of his sister. "And now,
+Desmond, go back to your mother and tell her all. She has sent you
+here."
+
+"No, she did not send me," said the boy, stoutly,--almost angrily;
+"she does not even know that I have come."
+
+"Go back then to your sister."
+
+"Nor does she know it."
+
+"Nevertheless, go back to them, and tell them both what I have told
+you; and tell them this also, that I, Owen Fitzgerald of Hap House,
+still love her better than all that the world else can give me;
+indeed, there is nothing else that I do love,--except you, Desmond.
+But tell them also that I am Owen of Hap House still--that and
+nothing more."
+
+"Owen," said the lad, looking up at him; and Fitzgerald as he
+glanced into the boy's face could see that there was that arising
+within his breast which almost prevented him from speaking.
+
+"And look, Desmond," continued Fitzgerald; "do not think that I
+shall blame you because you turn from me, or call you mercenary. Do
+you do what you think right. What you said just now of your
+sister's--, well, of the possibility of our marriage, you said under
+the idea that I was a rich man. You now find that I am a poor man;
+and you may consider that the words were never spoken."
+
+"Owen!" said the boy again; and now that which was before rising in
+his breast had risen to his brow and cheeks, and was telling its
+tale plainly in his eyes. And then he rose from his chair, turning
+away his face, and walking towards the window; but before he had
+gone two steps he turned again, and throwing himself on Fitzgerald's
+breast, he burst out into a passion of tears.
+
+"Come, old fellow, what is this? This will never do," said Owen. But
+his own eyes were full of tears also, and he too was nearly past
+speaking.
+
+"I know you will think--I am a boy and a--fool," said the earl,
+through his sobs, as soon as he could speak; "but I can't--help it."
+
+"I think you are the dearest, finest, best fellow that ever lived,"
+said Fitzgerald, pressing him with his arm.
+
+"And I'll tell you what, Owen, you should have her to-morrow if it
+were in my power, for, by heaven! there is not another man so worthy
+of a girl in all the world; and I'll tell her so; and I don't care
+what the countess says. And, Owen, come what come may, you shall
+always have my word;" and then he stood apart, and rubbing his eyes
+with his arm, tried to look like a man who was giving this pledge
+from his judgment, not from his impulse.
+
+"It all depends on this, Desmond; whom does she love? See her alone,
+Desmond, and talk softly to her, and find out that." This he said
+thoughtfully, for in his mind "love should still be lord of all."
+
+"By heavens! if I were her, I know whom I should love," said the
+brother.
+
+"I would not have her as a gift if she did not love me," said Owen,
+proudly; "but if she do, I have a right to claim her as my own."
+
+And then they parted, and the earl rode back home with a quieter
+pace than that which had brought him there, and in a different mood.
+He had pledged himself now to Owen,--not to Owen of Castle Richmond,
+but to Owen of Hap House--and he intended to redeem his pledge if it
+were possible. He had been so conquered by the nobleness of his
+friend, that he had forgotten his solicitude for his family and his
+sister.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVII
+
+A TALE OF A TURBOT
+
+
+It would have been Owen Fitzgerald's desire to disclaim the
+inheritance which chance had put in his way in absolute silence, had
+such a course been possible to him. And, indeed, not being very well
+conversant with matters of business, he had thought for a while that
+this might be done--or at any rate something not far different from
+this. To those who had hitherto spoken to him upon the subject, to
+Mr. Prendergast, Mr. Somers, and his cousin, he had disclaimed the
+inheritance, and that he had thought would have sufficed. That Sir
+Thomas should die so quickly after the discovery had not of course
+been expected by anybody; and much, therefore, had not been thought
+at the moment of these disclaimers;--neither at the moment, nor
+indeed afterwards, when Sir Thomas did die.
+
+Even Mr. Somers was prepared to admit that as the game had been
+given up,--as his branch of the Fitzgeralds, acting under the advice
+of their friend and lawyer, admitted that the property must go from
+them--even he, much as he contested within his own breast the
+propriety of Mr. Prendergast's decisions, was fain to admit now that
+it was Owen's business to walk in upon the property. Any words which
+he may have spoken on the impulse of the moment were empty words.
+When a man becomes heir to twelve thousand a year, he does not give
+it up in a freak of benevolence. And, therefore, when Sir Thomas had
+been dead some four or five weeks, and when Herbert had gone away
+from the scene which was no longer one of interest to him, it was
+necessary that something should be done.
+
+During the last two or three days of his life Sir Thomas had
+executed a new will, in which he admitted that his son was not the
+heir to his estates, and so disposed of such moneys as it was in his
+power to leave as he would have done had Herbert been a younger son.
+Early in his life he himself had added something to the property,
+some two or three hundred a year, and this, also, he left of course
+to his own family. Such having been done, there would have been no
+opposition made to Owen had he immediately claimed the inheritance;
+but as he made no claim, and took no step whatever,--as he appeared
+neither by himself, nor by letter, nor by lawyer, nor by agent,--as
+no rumour ever got about as to what he intended to do, Mr. Somers
+found it necessary to write to him. This he did on the day of
+Herbert's departure, merely asking him, perhaps with scant courtesy,
+who was his man of business, in order that he, Mr. Somers, as agent
+to the late proprietor, might confer with him. With but scant
+courtesy,--for Mr. Somers had made one visit to Hap House since the
+news had been known, with some intention of ingratiating himself
+with the future heir; but his tenders had not been graciously
+received. Mr. Somers was a proud man, and though his position in
+life depended on the income he received from the Castle Richmond
+estate, he would not make any further overture. So his letter was
+somewhat of the shortest, and merely contained the request above
+named.
+
+Owen's reply was sharp, immediate, and equally short, and was
+carried back by the messenger from Castle Richmond who had brought
+the letter, to which it was an answer. It was as follows:--
+
+"Hap House, Thursday morning, two o'clock."
+
+(There was no other date; and Owen probably was unaware that his
+letter being written at two P.M. was not written on Thursday
+morning.)
+
+"DEAR SIR,
+
+"I have got no lawyer, and no man of business; nor do I mean to
+employ any if I can help it. I intend to make no claim to Mr.
+Herbert Fitzgerald's property of Castle Richmond; and if it be
+necessary that I should sign any legal document making over to him
+any claim that I may have, I am prepared to do so at any moment. As
+he has got a lawyer, he can get this arranged, and I suppose Mr.
+Prendergast had better do it.
+
+"I am, dear sir,
+
+"Your faithful servant,
+
+"OWEN FITZGERALD of Hap House."
+
+And with those four or five lines he thought it would be practicable
+for him to close the whole affair.
+
+This happened on the day of Herbert's departure, and on the day
+preceding Lord Desmond's visit to Hap House; so that on the occasion
+of that visit, Owen looked upon the deed as fully done. He had
+put it quite beyond his own power to recede now, even had he so
+wished. And then came the tidings to him,--true tidings as he
+thought,--that Clara was still within his reach if only he were
+master of Castle Richmond. That this view of his position did for a
+moment shake him I will not deny; but it was only for a moment: and
+then it was that he had looked up at Clara's brother, and bade him
+go back to his mother and sister, and tell them that Owen of Hap
+House was Owen of Hap House still;--that and nothing more. Clara
+Desmond might be bought at a price which would be too costly even
+for such a prize as her. It was well for him that he so resolved,
+for at no price could she have been bought.
+
+Mr. Somers, when he received that letter, was much inclined to doubt
+whether or no it might not be well to take Owen at his word. After
+all, what just right had he to the estate? According to the eternal
+and unalterable laws of right and wrong ought it not to belong to
+Herbert Fitzgerald? Mr. Somers allowed his wish on this occasion to
+be father to many thoughts much at variance from that line of
+thinking which was customary to him as a man of business. In his
+ordinary moods, law with him was law, and a legal claim a legal
+claim. Had he been all his life agent to the Hap House property
+instead of to that of Castle Richmond, a thought so romantic would
+never have entered his head. He would have scouted a man as nearly a
+maniac who should suggest to him that his client ought to surrender
+an undoubted inheritance of twelve thousand a year on a point of
+feeling. He would have rejected it as a proposed crime, and talked
+much of the indefeasible rights of the coming heirs of the new heir.
+He would have been as firm as a rock, and as trenchant as a sword in
+defence of his patron's claims. But now, having in his hands that
+short, pithy letter from Owen Fitzgerald, he could not but look at
+the matter in a more Christian light. After all, was not justice,
+immutable justice, better than law? And would not the property be
+enough for both of them? Might not law and justice make a
+compromise? Let Owen be the baronet, and take a slice of four or
+five thousand, and add that to Hap House; and then if these things
+were well arranged, might not Mr. Somers still be agent to them
+both?
+
+Meditating all this in his newly tuned romantic frame of mind, Mr.
+Somers sat down and wrote a long letter to Mr. Prendergast,
+enclosing the short letter from Owen, and saying all that he, as a
+man of business with a new dash of romance, could say on such a
+subject. This letter, not having slept on the road as Herbert did in
+Dublin, and having been conveyed with that lightning rapidity for
+which the British Post-office has ever been remarkable--and
+especially that portion of it which has reference to the sister
+island,--was in Mr. Prendergast's pocket when Herbert dined with
+him. That letter, and another to which we shall have to refer more
+specially. But so much at variance were Mr. Prendergast's ideas from
+those entertained by Mr. Somers, that he would not even speak to
+Herbert on the subject. Perhaps, also, that other more important
+letter, which, if we live, we shall read at length, might also have
+had some effect in keeping him silent.
+
+But in truth Mr. Somers' mind, and that of Mr. Prendergast, did not
+work in harmony on this subject. Judging of the two men together by
+their usual deeds and ascertained character, we may say that there
+was much more romance about Mr. Prendergast than there was about Mr.
+Somers. But then it was a general romance, and not one with an
+individual object. Or perhaps we may say, without injury to Mr.
+Somers, that it was a true feeling, and not a false one. Mr.
+Prendergast, also, was much more anxious for the welfare of Herbert
+Fitzgerald than that of his cousin; but then he could feel on behalf
+of the man for whom he was interested that it did not behove him to
+take a present of an estate from the hands of the true owner.
+
+For more than a week Mr. Somers waited, but got no reply to his
+letter, and heard nothing from Mr. Prendergast; and during this time
+he was really puzzled as to what he should do. As regarded himself,
+he did not know at what moment his income might end, or how long he
+and his family might be allowed to inhabit the house which he now
+held: and then he could take no steps as to the tenants; could
+neither receive money nor pay it away, and was altogether at his
+wits' ends. Lady Fitzgerald looked to him for counsel in everything,
+and he did not know how to counsel her. Arrangements were to be made
+for an auction in the house as soon as she should be able to move;
+but would it not be a thousand pities to sell all the furniture if
+there was a prospect of the family returning? And so he waited for
+Mr. Prendergast's letter with an uneasy heart and vexation of
+spirit.
+
+But still he attended the relief committees, and worked at the
+soup-kitchens attached to the estate, as though he were still the
+agent to Castle Richmond; and still debated warmly with Father
+Barney on one side, and Mr. Townsend on the other, on that vexatious
+question of out-door relief. And now the famine was in full swing;
+and, strange to say, men had ceased to be uncomfortable about it;
+--such men, that is, as Mr. Somers and Mr. Townsend. The cutting off
+of maimed limbs, and wrenching out from their sockets of smashed
+bones, is by no means shocking to the skilled practitioner. And
+dying paupers, with "the drag" in their face--that certain sign of
+coming death of which I have spoken--no longer struck men to the
+heart. Like the skilled surgeon, they worked hard enough at what
+good they could do, and worked the better in that they could treat
+the cases without express compassion for the individuals that met
+their eyes. In administering relief one may rob five unseen
+sufferers of what would keep them in life if one is moved to bestow
+all that is comfortable on one sufferer that is seen. Was it wise to
+spend money in alleviating the last hours of those whose doom was
+already spoken, which money, if duly used, might save the lives of
+others not yet so far gone in misery? And so in one sense those who
+were the best in the county, who worked the hardest for the poor and
+spent their time most completely among them, became the hardest of
+heart, and most obdurate in their denials. It was strange to see
+devoted women neglecting the wants of the dying, so that they might
+husband their strength and time and means for the wants of those who
+might still be kept among the living.
+
+At this time there came over to the parish of Drumbarrow a young
+English clergyman who might be said to be in many respects the very
+opposite to Mr. Townsend. Two men could hardly be found in the same
+profession more opposite in their ideas, lives, purposes, and
+pursuits;--with this similarity, however, that each was a sincere,
+and on the whole an honest man. The Rev. Mr. Carter was much the
+junior, being at that time under thirty. He had now visited Ireland
+with the sole object of working among the poor, and distributing
+according to his own judgment certain funds which had been collected
+for this purpose in England.
+
+And indeed there did often exist in England at this time a
+misapprehension as to Irish wants, which led to some misuses of the
+funds which England so liberally sent. It came at that time to be
+the duty of a certain public officer to inquire into a charge made
+against a seemingly respectable man in the far west of Ireland,
+purporting that he had appropriated to his own use a sum of twelve
+pounds sent to him for the relief of the poor of his parish. It had
+been sent by three English maiden ladies to the relieving officer of
+the parish of Kilcoutymorrow, and had come to his hands, he then
+filling that position. He, so the charge said,--and unfortunately
+said so with only too much truth,--had put the twelve pounds into
+his own private pocket. The officer's duty in the matter took him to
+the chairman of the Relief Committee, a stanch old Roman Catholic
+gentleman nearly eighty years of age, with a hoary head and white
+beard, and a Milesian name that had come down to him through
+centuries of Catholic ancestors;--a man urbane in his manner, of the
+old school, an Irishman such as one does meet still here and there
+through the country, but now not often--one who, above all things,
+was true to the old religion.
+
+Then the officer of the government told his story to the old Irish
+gentleman--with many words, for there were all manner of small
+collateral proofs, to all of which the old Irish gentleman listened
+with a courtesy and patience which were admirable. And when the
+officer of the government had done, the old Irish gentleman thus
+replied:--
+
+"My neighbour Hobbs,"--such was the culprit's name--"has undoubtedly
+done this thing. He has certainly spent upon his own uses the
+generous offering made to our poor parish by those noble-minded
+ladies, the three Miss Walkers. But he has acted with perfect
+honesty in the matter."
+
+"What!" said the government officer, "robbing the poor, and at such
+a time as this!"
+
+"No robbery at all, dear sir," said the good old Irish gentleman,
+with the blandest of all possible smiles; "the excellent Miss
+Walkers sent their money for the Protestant poor of the parish of
+Kilcoutymorrow, and Mr. Hobbs is the only Protestant within it." And
+from the twinkle in the old man's eye, it was clear to see that his
+triumph consisted in this,--that not only he had but one Protestant
+in the parish, but that that Protestant should have learned so
+little from his religion.
+
+But this is an episode. And nowadays no episodes are allowed.
+
+And now Mr. Carter had come over to see that if possible certain
+English funds were distributed according to the wishes of the
+generous English hearts by whom they had been sent. For as some
+English, such as the three Miss Walkers, feared on the one hand that
+the Babylonish woman so rampant in Ireland might swallow up their
+money for Babylonish purposes; so, on the other hand, did others
+dread that the too stanch Protestantism of the church militant in
+that country might expand the funds collected for undoubted bodily
+wants in administering to the supposed wants of the soul. No such
+faults did, in truth, at that time prevail. The indomitable force of
+the famine had absolutely knocked down all that; but there had been
+things done in Ireland, before the famine came upon them, which gave
+reasonable suspicion for such fears.
+
+Mr. Townsend among others had been very active in soliciting aid
+from England, and hence had arisen a correspondence between him and
+Mr. Carter; and now Mr. Carter had arrived at Drumbarrow with a
+respectable sum to his credit at the provincial bank, and an intense
+desire to make himself useful in this time of sore need. Mr. Carter
+was a tall, thin, austere-looking man; one, seemingly, who had
+macerated himself inwardly and outwardly by hard living. He had a
+high, narrow forehead, a sparse amount of animal development, thin
+lips, and a piercing, sharp, gray eye. He was a man, too, of few
+words, and would have been altogether harsh in his appearance had
+there not been that in the twinkle of his eye which seemed to say
+that, in spite of all that his gait said to the contrary, the
+cockles of his heart might yet be reached by some play of wit--if
+only the wit were to his taste.
+
+Mr. Carter was a man of personal means, so that he not only was not
+dependent on his profession, but was able--as he also was willing
+--to aid that profession by his liberality. In one thing only was he
+personally expensive. As to his eating and drinking it was, or might
+have been for any solicitude of his own, little more than bread and
+water. As for the comforts of home, he had none, for since his
+ordination his missions had ever been migrating. But he always
+dressed with care, and consequently with expense, for careful
+dressing is ever expensive. He always wore new black gloves, and a
+very long black coat which never degenerated to rust, black cloth
+trousers, a high black silk waistcoat, and a new black hat.
+Everything about him was black except his neck, and that was always
+scrupulously white.
+
+Mr. Carter was a good man--one may say a very good man--for he gave
+up himself and his money to carry out high views of charity and
+religion, in which he was sincere with the sincerity of his whole
+heart, and from which he looked for no reward save such as the godly
+ever seek. But yet there was about him too much of the Pharisee. He
+was greatly inclined to condemn other men, and to think none
+righteous who differed from him. And now he had come to Ireland with
+a certain conviction that the clergy of his own Church there were
+men not to be trusted; that they were mere Irish, and little better
+in their habits and doctrines than under-bred dissenters. He had
+been elsewhere in the country before he visited Drumbarrow, and had
+shown this too plainly; but then Mr. Carter was a very young man,
+and it is not perhaps fair to expect zeal and discretion also from
+those who are very young.
+
+Mrs. Townsend had heard of him, and was in dismay when she found
+that he was to stay with them at Drumbarrow parsonage for three
+days. If Mr. Carter did not like clerical characters of her stamp,
+neither did she like them of the stamp of Mr. Carter. She had heard
+of him, of his austerity, of his look, of his habits, and in her
+heart she believed him to be a Jesuit. Had she possessed full sway
+herself in the parish of Drumbarrow, no bodies should have been
+saved at such terrible peril to the souls of the whole parish. But
+this Mr Carter came with such recommendation--with such assurances
+of money given and to be given, of service done and to be
+done,--that there was no refusing him. And so the husband, more
+worldly wise than his wife, had invited the Jesuit to his parsonage.
+
+"You'll find, Aeneas, he'll have mass in his room in the morning
+instead of coming to family prayers," said the wife.
+
+"But what on earth shall we give him for dinner?" said the husband,
+whose soul at the present moment was among the flesh-pots, and
+indeed Mrs. Townsend had also turned over that question in her
+prudent mind.
+
+"He'll not eat meat in Lent, you may be sure," said Mrs. Townsend,
+remembering that that was the present period of the year.
+
+"And if he would there is none for him to eat," said Mr. Townsend,
+calling to mind the way in which the larder had of late been
+emptied.
+
+Protestant clergymen in Ireland in those days had very frequently
+other reasons for fasting than those prescribed by ecclesiastical
+canons. A well-nurtured lady, the wife of a parish rector in the
+county Cork, showed me her larder one day about that time. It
+contained two large loaves of bread, and a pan full of stuff which I
+should have called paste, but which she called porridge. It was all
+that she had for herself, her husband, her children, and her
+charity. Her servants had left her before she came to that pass. And
+she was a well-nurtured, handsome, educated woman, born to such
+comforts as you and I enjoy every day,--oh, my reader! perhaps
+without much giving of thanks for them. Poor lady! the struggle was
+too much for her, and she died under it.
+
+Mr. Townsend was, as I have said, the very opposite to Mr. Carter,
+but he also was a man who could do without the comforts of life, if
+the comforts of life did not come readily in his way. He liked his
+glass of whisky punch dearly, and had an idea that it was good for
+him. Not caring much about personal debts, he would go in debt for
+whisky. But if the whisky and credit were at an end, the loss did
+not make him miserable. He was a man with a large appetite, and who
+took great advantage of a good dinner when it was before him, nay,
+he would go a long distance to insure a good dinner; but,
+nevertheless, he would leave himself without the means of getting a
+mutton chop, and then not be unhappy. Now Mr. Carter would have been
+very unhappy had he been left without his superfine long black coat.
+
+In tendering his invitation to Mr. Carter, Mr. Townsend had
+explained that with him the res angusta domi, which was always a
+prevailing disease, had been heightened by the circumstances of the
+time; but that of such crust and cup as he had, his brother English
+clergyman would be made most welcome to partake. In answer to this,
+Mr. Carter had explained that in these days good men thought but
+little of crusts and cups, and that as regarded himself, nature had
+so made him that he had but few concupiscences of that sort. And
+then, all this having been so far explained and settled, Mr. Carter
+came.
+
+The first day the two clergymen spent together at Berryhill, and
+found plenty to employ them. They were now like enough to be in want
+of funds at that Berryhill soup-kitchen, seeing that the great
+fount of supplies, the house, namely, of Castle Richmond, would soon
+have stopped running altogether. And Mr. Carter was ready to provide
+funds to some moderate extent if all his questions were answered
+satisfactorily. "There was to be no making of Protestants," he said,
+"by giving away of soup purchased with his money." Mr. Townsend
+thought that this might have been spared him. "I regret to say,"
+replied he, with some touch of sarcasm, "that we have no time for
+that now." "And so better," said Mr. Carter, with a sarcasm of a
+blunter sort. "So better. Let us not clog our alms with impossible
+conditions which will only create falsehood." "Any conditions are
+out of the question when one has to feed a whole parish," answered
+Mr. Townsend.
+
+And then Mr Carter would teach them how to boil their yellow meal,
+on which subject he had a theory totally opposite to the practice of
+the woman employed at the soup-kitchen. "Av we war to hocus it that,
+yer riverence," said Mrs. Daly, turning to Mr. Townsend, "the
+crathurs couldn't ate a bit of it; it wouldn't bile at all, at all,
+not like that."
+
+"Try it, woman," said Mr. Carter, when he had uttered his receipt
+oracularly for the third time.
+
+"'Deed, an' I won't," said Mrs. Daly, whose presence there was
+pretty nearly a labour of love, and who was therefore independent.
+"It'd be a sin an' a shame to spile Christian vittels in them times,
+an' I won't do it." And then there was some hard work that day; and
+though Mr. Townsend kept his temper with his visitor, seeing that he
+had much to get and nothing to give, he did not on this occasion
+learn to alter his general opinion of his brethren of the English
+High Church.
+
+And then, when they got home, very hungry after their toil, Mr.
+Townsend made another apology for the poorness of his table. "I am
+almost ashamed," said he, "to ask an English gentleman to sit down
+to such a dinner as Mrs. Townsend will put before you."
+
+"And indeed then it isn't much," said Mrs. Townsend; "just a bit of
+fish I found going the road."
+
+"My dear madam, anything will suffice," said Mr. Carter, somewhat
+pretentiously. And anything would have sufficed. Had they put before
+him a mess of that paste of which I have spoken he would have ate it
+and said nothing,--ate enough of it at least to sustain him till the
+morrow.
+
+But things had not come to so bad a pass as this at Drumbarrow
+parsonage; and, indeed, that day fortune had been propitious;
+fortune which ever favours the daring. Mrs. Townsend, knowing that
+she had really nothing in the house, had sent Jerry to waylay the
+Lent fishmonger, who twice a week was known to make his way from
+Kanturk to Mallow with a donkey and panniers, and Jerry had returned
+with a prize.
+
+And now they sat down to dinner, and lo and behold, to the great
+surprise of Mr. Carter, and perhaps also to the surprise of the
+host, a magnificent turbot smoked upon the board. The fins no doubt
+had been cut off to render possible the insertion of the animal into
+the largest of the Drumbarrow parsonage kitchen-pots,--an injury
+against which Mr. Townsend immediately exclaimed angrily. "My
+goodness, they have cut off the fins!" said he, holding up both
+hands in deep dismay. According to his philosophy, if he did have a
+turbot, why should he not have it with all its perfections about
+it--fins and all?
+
+"My dear Aeneas!" said Mrs. Townsend, looking at him with that agony
+of domestic distress which all wives so well know how to assume.
+
+Mr. Carter said nothing. He said not a word, but he thought much.
+This then was their pretended poorness of living; with all their
+mock humility, these false Irishmen could not resist the opportunity
+of showing off before the English stranger, and of putting on their
+table before him a dish which an English dean could afford only on
+gala days. And then this clergyman, who was so loudly anxious for
+the poor, could not repress the sorrow of his heart because the rich
+delicacy was somewhat marred in the cooking. "It was too bad,"
+thought Mr. Carter to himself, "too bad."
+
+"None, thank you," said he, drawing himself up with gloomy
+reprobation of countenance. "I will not take any fish, I am much
+obliged to you."
+
+Then the face of Mrs. Townsend was one on which neither Christian
+nor heathen could have looked without horror and grief. What, the
+man whom in her heart she believed to be a Jesuit, and for whom
+nevertheless, Jesuit though he was, she had condescended to cater
+with all her woman's wit!--this man, I say, would not eat fish in
+Lent! And it was horrible to her warm Irish heart to think that
+after that fish now upon the table there was nothing to come but two
+or three square inches of cold bacon. Not eat turbot in Lent! Had he
+been one of her own sort she might have given him credit for true
+antagonism to popery; but every inch of his coat gave the lie to
+such a supposition as that.
+
+"Do take a bit," said Mr. Townsend, hospitably. "The fins should not
+have been cut off, otherwise I never saw a finer fish in my life."
+
+"None, I am very much obliged to you," said Mr. Carter, with
+sternest reprobation of feature.
+
+It was too much for Mrs. Townsend. "Oh, Aeneas," said she, "what are
+we to do?" Mr. Townsend merely shrugged his shoulders, while he
+helped himself. His feelings were less acute, perhaps, than those of
+his wife, and he, no doubt, was much more hungry. Mr. Carter the
+while sat by, saying nothing, but looking daggers. He also was
+hungry, but under such circumstances he would rather starve than
+eat.
+
+"Don't you ever eat fish, Mr. Carter?" said Mr. Townsend, proceeding
+to help himself for a second time, and poking about round the edges
+of the delicate creature before him for some relics of the glutinous
+morsels which he loved so well. He was not, however, enjoying it as
+he should have done, for seeing that his guest ate none, and that
+his wife's appetite was thoroughly marred, he was alone in his
+occupation. No one but a glutton could have feasted well under such
+circumstances, and Mr. Townsend was not a glutton.
+
+"Thank you, I will eat none to-day," said Mr. Carter, sitting bolt
+upright, and fixing his keen gray eyes on the wall opposite.
+
+"Then you may take away, Biddy; I've done with it. But it's a
+thousand pities such a fish should have been so wasted."
+
+The female heart of Mrs. Townsend could stand these wrongs no
+longer, and with a tear in one corner of her eye, and a gleam of
+anger in the other, she at length spoke out. "I am sure then I don't
+know what you will eat, Mr. Carter, and I did think that all you
+English clergymen always ate fish in Lent,--and indeed nothing else;
+for indeed people do say that you are much the same as the papists
+in that respect."
+
+"Hush, my dear!" said Mr. Townsend.
+
+"Well, but I can't hush when there's nothing for the gentleman to
+eat."
+
+"My dear madam, such a matter does not signify in the least," said
+Mr. Carter, not unbending an inch.
+
+"But it does signify, it signifies a great deal; and so you'd know
+if you were a family man;"--"as you ought to be," Mrs. Townsend
+would have been delighted to add. "And I'm sure I sent Jerry five
+miles, and he was gone four hours to get that bit of fish from Paddy
+Magrath, as he stops always at Ballygibblin Gate; and indeed I
+thought myself so lucky, for I only gave Jerry one and sixpence. But
+they had an uncommon take of fish yesterday at Skibbereen, and--"
+
+"One and sixpence!" said Mr. Carter, now slightly relaxing his brow
+for the first time.
+
+"I'd have got it for one and three," said Mr. Townsend, upon whose
+mind an inkling of the truth was beginning to dawn.
+
+"Indeed and you wouldn't, Aeneas; and Jerry was forced to promise
+the man a glass of whisky the first time he comes this road, which
+he does sometimes. That fish weighed over nine pounds, every ounce
+of it."
+
+"Nine fiddlesticks," said Mr. Townsend.
+
+"I weighed it myself, Aeneas, with my own hands, and it was nine
+pounds four ounces before we were obliged to cut it, and as firm as
+a rock the flesh was."
+
+"For one and sixpence!" said Mr. Carter, relaxing still a little
+further, and condescending to look his hostess in the face.
+
+"Yes, for one and six, and now--"
+
+"I'm sure I'd have bought it for one and four, fins and all," said
+the parson, determined to interrupt his wife in her pathos.
+
+"I'm sure you would not then," said his wife, taking his assertion
+in earnest. "You could never market against Jerry in your life; I
+will say that for him."
+
+"If you will allow me to change my mind, I think I will have a
+little bit of it," said Mr. Carter, almost humbly.
+
+"By all means," said Mr. Townsend. "Biddy, bring that fish back. Now
+I think of it, I have not half dined myself yet."
+
+And then they all three forgot their ill humours, and enjoyed their
+dinner thoroughly,--in spite of the acknowledged fault as touching
+the lost fins of the animal.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXVIII
+
+CONDEMNED
+
+
+I have said that Lord Desmond rode home from Hap House that day in a
+quieter mood and at a slower pace than that which had brought him
+thither, and in truth it was so. He had things to think of now much
+more serious than any that had filled his mind as he had cantered
+along, joyously hoping that after all he might have for his brother
+the man that he loved, and the owner of Castle Richmond also. This
+was now impossible; but he felt that he loved Owen better than ever
+he had done, and he was pledged to fight Owen's battle, let Owen be
+ever so poor.
+
+"And what does it signify after all?" he said to himself, as he rode
+along. "We shall all be poor together, and then we sha'n't mind it
+so much; and if I don't marry, Hap House itself will be something to
+add to the property;" and then he made up his mind that he could be
+happy enough, living at Desmond Court all his life, so long as he
+could have Owen Fitzgerald near him to make life palatable.
+
+That night he spoke to no one on the subject, at least to no one of
+his own accord. When they were alone his mother asked him where he
+had been; and when she learned that he had been at Hap House, she
+questioned him much as to what had passed between him and Owen; but
+he would tell her nothing, merely saying that Owen had spoken of
+Clara with his usual ecstasy of love, but declining to go into the
+subject at any length. The countess, however, gathered from him that
+he and Owen were on kindly terms together, and so far she felt
+satisfied.
+
+On the following morning he made up his mind "to have it out," as he
+called it, with Clara; but when the hour came his courage failed
+him: it was a difficult task--that which he was now to undertake--of
+explaining to her his wish that she should go back to her old lover,
+not because he was no longer poor, but, as it were in spite of his
+poverty, and as a reward to him for consenting to remain poor. As he
+had thought about it while riding home, it had seemed feasible
+enough. He would tell her how nobly Owen was going to behave to
+Herbert, and would put it to her whether, as he intended willingly
+to abandon the estate, he ought not to be put into possession of the
+wife. There was a romantic justice about this which he thought would
+touch Clara's heart. But on the following morning when he came to
+think what words he would use for making his little proposition, the
+picture did not seem to him to be so beautiful. If Clara really
+loved Herbert--and she had declared that she did twenty times
+over--it would be absurd to expect her to give him up merely because
+he was not a ruined man. But then, which did she love? His mother
+declared that she loved Owen. "That's the real question," said the
+earl to himself, as on the second morning he made up his mind that
+he would "have it out" with Clara without any further delay. He must
+be true to Owen; that was his first great duty at the present
+moment.
+
+"Clara, I want to talk to you," he said, breaking suddenly into the
+room where she usually sat alone o' mornings. "I was at Hap House
+the day before yesterday with Owen Fitzgerald, and to tell you the
+truth at once, we were talking about you the whole time we were
+there. And now what I want is, that something should be settled, so
+that we may all understand one another."
+
+These words he spoke to her quite abruptly. When he first said that
+he wished to speak to her, she had got up from her chair to welcome
+him, for she dearly loved to have him there. There was nothing she
+liked better than having him to herself when he was in a soft
+brotherly humour; and then she would interest herself about his
+horse, and his dogs, and his gun, and predict his life for him,
+sending him up as a peer to Parliament, and giving him a noble wife,
+and promising him that he should be such a Desmond as would redeem
+all the family from their distresses. But now as he rapidly brought
+out his words, she found that on this day her prophecies must regard
+herself chiefly.
+
+"Surely, Patrick, it is easy enough to understand me," she said.
+
+"Well, I don't know; I don't in the least mean to find fault with
+you."
+
+"I am glad of that, dearest," she said, laying her hand upon his
+arm.
+
+"But my mother says one thing, and you another, and Owen another;
+and I myself, I hardly know what to say."
+
+"Look here, Patrick, it is simply this: I became engaged to Herbert
+with my mother's sanction and yours; and now--"
+
+"Stop a moment," said the impetuous boy, "and do not pledge yourself
+to anything till you have heard me. I know that you are cut to the
+heart about Herbert Fitzgerald losing his property."
+
+"No, indeed; not at all cut to the heart; that is as regards
+myself."
+
+"I don't mean as regards yourself; I mean as regards him. I have
+heard you say over and over again that it is a piteous thing that he
+should be so treated. Have I not?"
+
+"Yes, I have said that, and I think so."
+
+"And I think that most of your great--great--great love for him, if
+you will, comes from that sort of feeling."
+
+"But, Patrick, it came long before."
+
+"Dear Clara, do listen to me, will you? You may at any rate do as
+much as that for me." And then Clara stood perfectly mute, looking
+into his handsome face as he continued to rattle out his words at
+her.
+
+"Now, if you please, Clara, you may have the means of giving back to
+him all his property, every shilling that he ever had, or expected
+to have. Owen Fitzgerald,--who certainly is the finest fellow that
+ever I came across in all my life, or ever shall, if I live to five
+hundred,--says that he will make over every acre of Castle Richmond
+back to his cousin Herbert if--" Oh, my lord, my lord, what a scheme
+is this you are concocting to entrap your sister! Owen Fitzgerald
+inserted no "if," as you are well aware! "If," he continued, with
+some little qualm of conscience, "if you will consent to be his
+wife."
+
+"Patrick!"
+
+"Listen, now listen. He thinks, and, Clara, by the heavens above me!
+I think also, that you did love him better than you ever loved
+Herbert Fitzgerald." Clara as she heard these words blushed ruby red
+up to her very hair, but she said never a word. "And I think, and he
+thinks, that you are bound now to Herbert by his misfortunes--that
+you feel that you cannot desert him because he has fallen so low. By
+George, Clara, I am proud of you for sticking to him through thick
+and thin, now that he is down! But the matter will be very difficult
+if you have the means of giving back to him all that he has lost, as
+you have. Owen will be poor, but he is a prince among men. By
+heaven, Clara, if you will only say that he is your choice, Herbert
+shall have back all Castle Richmond! and I--I shall never marry, and
+you may give to the man that I love as my brother all that there is
+left to us of Desmond."
+
+There was something grand about the lad's eager tone of voice as he
+made his wild proposal, and something grand also about his heart. He
+meant what he said, foolish as he was either to mean or to say it.
+Clara burst into tears, and threw herself into his arms. "You don't
+understand," she said, through her sobs, "my own, own brother, you
+do not understand."
+
+"But, by Jove! I think I do understand. As sure as you are a living
+girl he will give back Castle Richmond to Herbert Fitzgerald."
+
+She recovered herself, and leaving her brother's arms, walked away
+to the window, and from thence looked down to that path beneath the
+elms which was the spot in the world which she thought of the
+oftenest, but as she gazed, there was no lack of loyalty in her
+heart to the man to whom she was betrothed. It seemed to her as
+though those childish days had been in another life, as though Owen
+had been her lover in another world,--a sweet, childish, innocent,
+happy world which she remembered well, but which was now dissevered
+from her by an impassable gulf. She thought of his few words of
+love,--so few that she remembered every word that he had then
+spoken, and thought of them with a singular mixture of pain and
+pleasure. And now she heard of his noble self-denial with a thrill
+which was in no degree enhanced by the fact that she, or even
+Herbert, was to be the gainer by it. She rejoiced at his nobility,
+merely because it was a joy to her to know that he was so noble. And
+yet all through this she was true to Herbert. Another work-a-day
+world had come upon her in her womanhood, and as that came she had
+learned to love a man of another stamp, with a love that was
+quieter, more subdued, and perhaps, as she thought, more enduring.
+Whatever might be Herbert's lot in life, that lot she would share.
+Her love for Owen should never be more to her than a dream.
+
+"Did he send you to me?" she said at last, without turning her face
+away from the window.
+
+"Yes, then, he did; he did send me to you, and he told me to say
+that as Owen of Hap House he loved you still. And I, I promised to
+do his bidding; and I promised, moreover, that as far as my good
+word could go with you, he should have it. And now you know it all;
+if you care for my pleasure in the matter you will take Owen, and
+let Herbert have his property. By Jove! if he is treated in that way
+he cannot complain."
+
+"Patrick," said she, returning to him and again laying her hand on
+him. "You must now take my message also. You must go to him and bid
+him come here that I may see him."
+
+"Who? Owen?"
+
+"Yes, Owen Fitzgerald."
+
+"Very well, I have no objection in life." And the earl thought that
+the difficulty was really about to be overcome. "And about my
+mother?"
+
+"I will tell mamma."
+
+"And what shall I say to Owen?"
+
+"Say nothing to him, but bid him come here. But wait, Patrick; yes,
+he must not misunderstand me; I can never, never, never marry him."
+
+"Clara!"
+
+"Never, never; it is impossible. Dear Patrick, I am so sorry to make
+you unhappy, and I love you so very dearly,--better than ever, I
+think, for speaking as you do now. But that can never be. Let him
+come here, however, and I myself will tell him all." At last,
+disgusted and unhappy though he was, the earl did accept the
+commission, and again on that afternoon rode across the fields to
+Hap House.
+
+"I will tell him nothing but that he is to come," said the earl to
+himself as he went thither. And he did tell Owen nothing else.
+Fitzgerald questioned him much, but learned but little from him. "By
+heavens, Owen," he said, "you must settle the matter between you,
+for I don't understand it. She has bid me ask you to come to her;
+and now you must fight your own battle." Fitzgerald of course said
+that he would obey, and so Lord Desmond left him.
+
+In the evening Clara told her mother. "Owen Fitzgerald is to be here
+to-morrow," she said.
+
+"Owen Fitzgerald; is he?" said the countess. She hardly knew how to
+bear herself, or how to interfere so as to assist her own object; or
+how not to interfere, lest she should mar it.
+
+"Yes, mamma. Patrick saw him the other day, and I think it is better
+that I should see him also."
+
+"Very well, my dear. But you must be aware, Clara, that you have
+been so very--I don't wish to say headstrong exactly--so very
+entetee about your own affairs, that I hardly know how to speak of
+them. If your brother is in your confidence I shall be satisfied."
+
+"He is in my confidence, and so may you be also, mamma, if you
+please."
+
+But the countess thought it better not to have any conversation
+forced upon her at that moment; and so she asked her daughter for no
+further show of confidence then. It would probably be as well that
+Owen should come and plead his own cause.
+
+And Owen did come. All that night and on the next morning the poor
+girl remained alone in a state of terrible doubt. She had sent for
+her old lover, thinking at the moment that no one could explain to
+him in language so clear as her own what was her fixed resolve. And
+she had too been so moved by the splendour of his offer, that she
+longed to tell him what she thought of it. The grandeur of that
+offer was enhanced tenfold in her mind by the fact that it had been
+so framed as to include her in this comparative poverty with which
+Owen himself was prepared to rest contented. He had known that she
+was not to be bought by wealth, and had given her credit for a
+nobility that was akin to his own.
+
+But yet, now that the moment was coming, how was she to talk to him?
+How was she to speak the words which would rob him of his hope, and
+tell him that he did not, could not, never could possess that one
+treasure which he desired more than houses and lands, or station and
+rank? Alas, alas! If it could have been otherwise! If it could have
+been otherwise! She also was in love with poverty;--but at any rate,
+no one could accuse her now of sacrificing a poor lover for a rich
+one. Herbert Fitzgerald would be poor enough.
+
+And then he came. They had hitherto met but once since that
+afternoon, now so long ago--that afternoon to which she looked back
+as to another former world--and that meeting had been in the very
+room in which she was now prepared to receive him. But her feelings
+towards him had been very different then. Then he had almost forced
+himself upon her, and for months previously she had heard nothing of
+him but what was evil. He had come complaining loudly, and her heart
+had been somewhat hardened against him. Now he was there at her
+bidding, and her heart and very soul were full of tenderness. She
+rose rapidly, and sat down again, and then again rose as she heard
+his footsteps; but when he entered the room she was standing in the
+middle of it.
+
+"Clara," he said, taking the hand which she mechanically held out,
+"I have come here now at your brother's request."
+
+Her name sounded so sweet upon his lips. No idea occurred to her
+that she ought to be angry with him for using it. Angry with him!
+Could it be possible that she should ever be angry with him--that
+she ever had been so?
+
+"Yes," she said. "Patrick said something to me which made me think
+that it would be better that we should meet."
+
+"Well, yes; it is better. If people are honest they had always
+better say to each other's faces that which they have to say."
+
+"I mean to be honest, Mr. Fitzgerald."
+
+"Yes, I am sure you do; and so do I also. And if this is so, why
+cannot we say each to the other that which we have to say? My tale
+will be a very short one; but it will be true if it is short."
+
+"But, Mr. Fitzgerald--"
+
+"Well, Clara?"
+
+"Will you not sit down?" And she herself sat upon the sofa; and he
+drew a chair for himself near to her; but he was too impetuous to
+remain seated on it long. During the interview between them he was
+sometimes standing, and sometimes walking quickly about the room;
+and then for a moment he would sit down, or lean down over her on
+the sofa arm.
+
+"But, Mr. Fitzgerald, it is my tale that I wish you to hear."
+
+"Well; I will listen to it." But he did not listen; for before she
+had spoken a dozen words he had interrupted her, and poured out upon
+her his own wild plans and generous schemes. She, poor girl, had
+thought to tell him that she loved Herbert, and Herbert only--as a
+lover. But that if she could love him, him Owen, as a brother and a
+friend, that love she would so willingly give him. And then she
+would have gone on to say how impossible it would have been for
+Herbert, under any circumstances, to have availed himself of such
+generosity as that which had been offered. But her eloquence was all
+cut short in the bud. How could she speak with such a storm of
+impulse raging before her as that which was now strong within Owen
+Fitzgerald's bosom?
+
+He interrupted her before she had spoken a dozen words, in order
+that he might exhibit before her eyes the project with which his
+bosom was filled. This he did, standing for the most part before
+her, looking down upon her as she sat beneath him, with her eyes
+fixed upon the floor, while his were riveted on her down-turned
+face. She knew it all before--all this that he had to say to her, or
+she would hardly have understood it from his words, they were so
+rapid and vehement. And yet they were tender, too; spoken in a
+loving tone, and containing ever and anon assurances of respect, and
+a resolve to be guided now and for ever by her wishes,--even though
+those wishes should be utterly subversive of his happiness.
+
+"And now you know it all," he said, at last. "And as for my cousin's
+property, that is safe enough. No earthly consideration would induce
+me to put a hand upon that, seeing that by all justice it is his."
+But in this she hardly yet quite understood him. "Let him have what
+luck he may in other respects, he shall still be master of Castle
+Richmond. If it were that that you wanted--as I know it is not--that
+I cannot give you. I cannot tell you with what scorn I should regard
+myself if I were to take advantage of such an accident as this to
+rob any man of his estate."
+
+Her brother had been right, so Clara felt, when he declared that
+Owen Fitzgerald was the finest fellow that ever he had come across.
+She made another such declaration within her own heart, only with
+words that were more natural to her. He was the noblest gentleman of
+whom she had ever heard, or read, or thought.
+
+"But," continued Owen, "as I will not interfere with him in that
+which should be his, neither should he interfere with me in that
+which should be mine. Clara, the only estate that I claim, is your
+heart."
+
+And that estate she could not give him. On that at any rate she was
+fixed. She could not barter herself about from one to the other
+either as a make-weight or a counterpoise. All his pleading was in
+vain; all his generosity would fail in securing to him this one
+reward that he desired. And now she had to tell him so.
+
+"Your brother seems to think," he continued, "that you still--;" but
+now it was her turn to interrupt him.
+
+"Patrick is mistaken," she said, with her eyes still fixed upon the
+ground.
+
+"What. You will tell me, then, that I am utterly indifferent to
+you?"
+
+"No, no, no; I did not say so." And now she got up and took hold of
+his arm, and looked into his face imploringly. "I did not say so.
+But, oh, Mr. Fitzgerald, be kind to me, be forbearing with me, be
+good to me," and she almost embraced his arm as she appealed to him,
+with her eyes all swimming with tears.
+
+"Good to you!" he said. And a strong passion came upon him, urging
+him to throw his arm round her slender body, and press her to his
+bosom. Good to her! would he not protect her with his life's blood
+against all the world if she would only come to him? "Good to you,
+Clara! Can you not trust me that I will be good to you if you will
+let me?"
+
+"But not so, Owen." It was the first time she had ever called him by
+his name, and she blushed again as she remembered that it was so.
+"Not good, as you mean, for now I must trust to another for that
+goodness. Herbert must be my husband, Owen; but will not you be our
+friend?"
+
+"Herbert must be your husband!"
+
+"Yes, yes, yes. It is so. Do not look at me in that way, pray do
+not; what would you have me do? You would not have me false to my
+troth, and false to my own heart, because you are generous. Be
+generous to me--to me also."
+
+He turned away from her, and walked the whole length of the long
+room; away and back, before he answered her, and even then, when he
+had returned to her, he stood looking at her before he spoke. And
+she now looked full into his face, hoping, but yet fearing; hoping
+that he might yield to her; and fearing his terrible displeasure
+should he not yield.
+
+"Clara," he said; and he spoke solemnly, slowly, and in a mood
+unlike his own,--"I cannot as yet read your heart clearly; nor do I
+know whether you can quite so read it yourself."
+
+"I can, I can," she answered quickly; "and you shall know it
+all--all, if you wish."
+
+"I want to know but one thing. Whom is it that you love? And,
+Clara,"--and this he said interrupting her as she was about to
+speak--"I do not ask you to whom you are engaged. You have engaged
+yourself both to him and to me."
+
+"Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald!"
+
+"I do not blame you, not in the least. But is it not so? as to that
+I will ask no question, and say nothing; only this, that so far we
+are equal. But now ask of your own heart, and then answer me. Whom
+is it then you love?"
+
+"Herbert Fitzgerald," she said. The words hardly formed themselves
+into a whisper, but nevertheless they were audible enough to him.
+
+"Then I have no further business here," he said, and turned about as
+though to leave the room.
+
+But she ran forward and stopped him, standing between him and the
+door. "Oh, Mr. Fitzgerald, do not leave me like that. Say one word
+of kindness to me before you go. Tell me that you forgive me for the
+injury I have done you."
+
+"Yes, I forgive you."
+
+"And is that all? Oh, I will love you so, if you will let me,--as
+your friend, as your sister; you shall be our dearest, best, and
+nearest friend. You do not know how good he is. Owen, will you not
+tell me that you will love me as a brother loves?"
+
+"No!" and the sternness of his face was such that it was dreadful to
+look on it. "I will tell you nothing that is false."
+
+"And would that be false?"
+
+"Yes, false as hell! What, sit by at his hearthstone and see you
+leaning on his bosom! Sleep under his roof while you were in his
+arms! No, Lady Clara, that would not be possible. That virtue, if it
+be virtue, I cannot possess."
+
+"And you must go from me in anger? If you knew what I am suffering
+you would not speak to me so cruelly."
+
+"Cruel! I would not wish to be cruel to you; certainly not now, for
+we shall not meet again; if ever, not for many years. I do not think
+that I have been cruel to you."
+
+"Then say one word of kindness before you go!"
+
+"A word of kindness! Well; what shall I say? Every night, as I have
+lain in my bed, I have said words of kindness to you, since--
+since--since longer than you will remember; since I first knew you
+as a child. Do you ever think of the day when you walked with me
+round by the bridge?"
+
+"It is bootless thinking of that now."
+
+"Bootless! yes, and words of kindness are bootless. Between you and
+me, such words should be full of love, or they would have no
+meaning. What can I say to you that shall be both kind and true?"
+
+"Bid God bless me before you leave me."
+
+"Well. I will say that. May God bless you, in this world and in the
+next! And now, Lady Clara Desmond, good-bye!" and he tendered to her
+his hand.
+
+She took it, and pressed it between both of hers, and looked up into
+his face, and stood so while the fast tears ran down her face. He
+must have been more or less than man had he not relented then. "And,
+Owen," she said, "dear Owen, may God in His mercy bless you also,
+and make you happy, and give you some one that you can love,
+and--and--teach you in your heart to forgive the injury I have done
+you." And then she stooped down her head and pressed her lips upon
+the hand which she held within her own.
+
+"Forgive you! Well--I do forgive you. Perhaps it may be right that
+we should both forgive; though I have not wittingly brought
+unhappiness upon you. But what there is to be forgiven on my side, I
+do forgive. And--and I hope that you may be happy." They were the
+last words that he spoke; and then leading her back to her seat, he
+placed her there, and without turning to look at her again, he left
+the room.
+
+He hurried down into the court, and called for his horse. As he
+stood there, when his foot was in the stirrup, and his hand on the
+animal's neck, Lord Desmond came up to him. "Goodbye, Desmond," he
+said. "It is all over; God knows when you and I may meet again." And
+without waiting for a word of reply he rode out under the porch, and
+putting spurs to his horse, galloped fast across the park. The earl,
+when he spoke of it afterwards to his mother, said that Owen's face
+had been as it were a thunder-cloud.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XXXIX
+
+FOX-HUNTING IN SPINNY LANE
+
+
+I think it will be acknowledged that Mr. Prendergast had said no
+word throughout the conversation recorded in a late chapter as
+having taken place between him and Herbert Fitzgerald over their
+wine, which could lead Herbert to think it possible that he might
+yet recover his lost inheritance; but nevertheless during the whole
+of that evening he held in his pocket a letter, received by him only
+that afternoon, which did encourage him to think that such an event
+might at any rate be possible. And, indeed, he held in his pocket
+two letters, having a tendency to the same effect, but we shall have
+nothing now to say as to that letter from Mr. Somers of which we
+have spoken before.
+
+It must be understood that up to this time certain inquiries had
+been going on with reference to the life of Mr. Matthew Mollett, and
+that these inquiries were being made by agents employed by Mr.
+Prendergast. He had found that Mollett's identity with Talbot had
+been so fully proved as to make it, in his opinion, absolutely
+necessary that Herbert and his mother should openly give up Castle
+Richmond. But, nevertheless, without a hope, and in obedience solely
+to what he felt that prudence demanded in so momentous a matter, he
+did prosecute all manner of inquiries;--but prosecuted them
+altogether in vain. And now, O thou most acute of lawyers, this new
+twinkling spark of hope has come to thee from a source whence thou
+least expectedst it!
+
+Quod minime reris Graia pandetur ab urbe.
+
+And then, as soon as Herbert was gone from him, crossing one leg
+over the other as he sat in his easy chair, he took it from his
+pocket and read it for the third time. The signature at the end of
+it was very plain and legible, being that of a scholar no less
+accomplished than Mr. Abraham Mollett. This letter we will have
+entire, though it was not perhaps as short as it might have been. It
+ran as follows:--
+
+"45 Tabernacle row London April--1847.
+
+"RESPECTIT SIR--
+
+"In hall them doings about the Fitsjerrals at Carsal Richmon I
+halways felt the most profound respict for you because you wanted to
+do the thing as was rite wich was what I halways wanted to myself
+only coodent becase of the guvnor. 'Let the right un win, guvnor,'
+said I, hover hand hover again; but no, he woodent. And what cood
+the likes of me do then seeing as ow I was obligated by the forth
+comanment to honor my father and mother, wich however if it wasent
+that she was ded leving me a horphand there woodent av been none of
+this trobbel. If she ad livd Mr. Pindargrasp Ide av been brot hup
+honest, and thats what I weps for. But she dide and my guvnor why
+hes been a gitten the rong side of the post hever sins that
+hunfortunate day. Praps you knows Mr. Pindargrasp what it is to lose
+a mother in your herly hinfantsey. But I was at the guvnor hovers
+and hovers agin, but hall of no yuse. 'He as stumpt hoff with my
+missus and now he shall stump hup the reddy.' Them was my guvnors
+hown words halways. Well, Mr. Pindargrasp; what does I do. It warnt
+no good my talking to him he was for going so confounedly the rong
+side of the post. But I new as how Appy ouse Fitsjerral was the orse
+as ort to win. Leestways I thawt I new it, and so you thawt too Mr.
+Pindargrasp only we was both running the rong cent. But what did I
+do when I was so confounedly disgusted by my guvnor ankring after
+the baronnites money wich it wasn't rite nor yet onest. Why I went
+meself to Appy ouse as you noes Mr. Pindargrasp, and was the first
+to tel the Appy ouse gent hall about it. But what dos he do. Hoh,
+Mr. Pindargrasp, I shal never forgit that faitel day and only he got
+me hunewairs by the scruf of the nek Im has good a man as he hevery
+day of the week. But you was ther Mr. Pindargrasp and noes wat I got
+for befrindin the Appy ouse side wich was agin the guvnor and he as
+brot me to the loest pich of distress in the way of rino seein the
+guvnor as cut of my halowence becase I wint agin his hinterest.
+
+"And now Mr. Pindargrasp I ave a terrible secret to hunraffel wich
+will put the sadel on the rite orse at last and as I does hall this
+agin my own guvnor wich of corse I love derely I do hope Mr.
+Pindargrasp you wont see me haltoogether left in the lerch. A litel
+something to go on with at furst wood be very agrebbel for indeed
+Mr. Pindargrasp its uncommon low water with your umbel servant at
+this presant moment. And now wat I has to say is this--Lady Fits
+warnt niver my guvnors wife hat all becase why hed a wife alivin has
+I can pruv and will and shes alivin now number 7 Spinny lane
+Centbotollfs intheheast. Now I do call that noos worse a Jews high
+Mr. Pindargrasp and I opes youll see me honestly delt with sein as
+how I coms forward and tels it hall without any haskin and cood keep
+it all to miself and no one coodent be the wiser only I chews to do
+the thing as is rite.
+
+"You may fine out hall about it hall at number 7 Spinny lane and I
+advises you to go there immejat. Missus Mary Swan thats what she
+calls herself but her richeous name his Mollett--and why not seein
+who is er usban. So no more at presence but will come foward hany
+day to pruv hall this agin my guvnor becase he arnt doing the thing
+as is rite and I looks to you Mr. Pindargrasp to see as I gits
+someat ansum sein as ow I coms forward agin the Appy ouse gent and
+for the hother party oos side you is a bakkin.
+
+"I ham respictit Sir
+
+"Your umbel servant to command,
+
+"ABM. MOLLETT."
+
+I cannot say that Mr. Prendergast believed much of this terribly
+long epistle when he first received it, or felt himself imbued with
+any great hope that his old friend's wife might be restored to her
+name and rank, and his old friend's son to his estate and fortune.
+But nevertheless he knew that it was worth inquiry. That Aby Mollett
+had been kicked out of Hap House in a manner that must have been
+mortifying to his feelings, Mr. Prendergast had himself seen; and
+that he would, therefore, do anything in his power to injure Owen
+Fitzgerald, Mr. Prendergast was quite sure. That he was a viler
+wretch even than his father, Mr. Prendergast suspected,--having
+been led to think so by words which had fallen from Sir Thomas, and
+being further confirmed in that opinion by the letter now in his
+hand. He was not, therefore, led into any strong opinion that these
+new tidings were of value. And, indeed, he was prone to disbelieve
+them, because they ran counter to a conviction which had already
+been made in his own heart, and had been extensively acted on by
+him. Nevertheless he resolved that even Aby's letter deserved
+attention, and that it should receive that attention early on the
+following morning.
+
+And thus he had sat for the three hours after dinner, chatting
+comfortably with his young friend, and holding this letter in his
+pocket. Had he shown it to Herbert, or spoken of it, he would have
+utterly disturbed the equilibrium of the embryo law student, and
+rendered his entrance in Mr. Die's chambers absolutely futile. "Ten
+will not be too early for you," he had said. "Mr. Die is always in
+his room by that hour." Herbert had of course declared that ten
+would not be at all too early for him; and Mr. Prendergast had
+observed that after leaving Mr. Die's chambers, he himself would go
+on to the City. He might have said beyond the City, for his intended
+expedition was to Spinny lane, at St. Botolph's in the East When
+Herbert was gone he sat musing over his fire with Aby's letter still
+in his hand. A lawyer has always a sort of affection for a
+scoundrel,--such affection as a hunting man has for a fox. He loves
+to watch the skill and dodges of the animal, to study the wiles by
+which he lives, and to circumvent them by wiles of his own, still
+more wily. It is his glory to run the beast down; but then he would
+not for worlds run him down, except in conformity with certain laws,
+fixed by old custom for the guidance of men in such sports. And the
+two-legged vermin is adapted for pursuit as is the fox with four
+legs. He is an unclean animal, leaving a scent upon his trail, which
+the nose of your acute law hound can pick up over almost any ground.
+And the more wily the beast is, the longer he can run, the more
+trouble he can give in the pursuit, the longer he can stand up
+before a pack of legal hounds, the better does the forensic
+sportsman love and value him. There are foxes of so excellent a
+nature, so keen in their dodges, so perfect in their cunning, so
+skilful in evasion, that a sportsman cannot find it in his heart to
+push them to their destruction unless the field be very large so
+that many eyes are looking on. And the feeling is I think the same
+with lawyers.
+
+Mr. Prendergast had always felt a tenderness towards the Molletts,
+father and son,--a tenderness which would by no means have prevented
+him from sending them both to the halter had that been necessary,
+and had they put themselves so far in his power. Much as the
+sportsman loves the fox, it is a moment to him of keen enjoyment
+when he puts his heavy boot on the beast's body,--the expectant dogs
+standing round demanding their prey--and there both beheads and
+betails him. "A grand old dog," he says to those around him. "I know
+him well. It was he who took us that day from Poulnarer, through
+Castlecor, and right away to Drumcollogher." And then he throws the
+heavy carcase to the hungry hounds. And so could Mr. Prendergast
+have delivered up either of the Molletts to be devoured by the dogs
+of the law; but he did not the less love them tenderly while they
+were yet running.
+
+And so he sat with the letter in his hand, smiling to think that the
+father and son had come to grief among themselves; smiling also at
+the dodge by which, as he thought most probable, Aby Mollett was
+striving to injure the man who had kicked him, and raise a little
+money for his own private needs. There was too much earnestness in
+that prayer for cash to leave Mr. Prendergast in any doubt as to
+Aby's trust that money would be forthcoming. There must be something
+in the dodge, or Aby would not have had such trust.
+
+And the lawyer felt that he might, perhaps, be inclined to give some
+little assistance to poor Aby in the soreness of his needs. Foxes
+will not do well in any country which is not provided with their
+natural food. Rats they eat, and if rats be plentiful it is so far
+good. But one should not begrudge them occasional geese and turkeys,
+or even break one's heart if they like a lamb in season. A fox will
+always run well when he has come far from home seeking his
+breakfast.
+
+Poor Aby, when he had been so cruelly treated by the "gent of Appy
+ouse," whose side in the family dispute he had latterly been so
+anxious to take, had remained crouching for some hour or two in
+Owen's kitchen, absolutely mute. The servants there for a while felt
+sure that he was dying; but in their master's present mood they did
+not dare to go near him with any such tidings. And then when the
+hounds were gone, and the place was again quiet, Aby gradually
+roused himself, allowed them to wash the blood from his hands and
+face, to restore him to life by whisky and scraps of food, and
+gradually got himself into his car, and so back to the Kanturk
+Hotel, in South Main Street, Cork.
+
+But, alas, his state there was more wretched by far than it had been
+in the Hap House kitchen. That his father had fled was no more than
+he expected. Each had known that the other would now play some
+separate secret game. But not the less did he complain loudly when
+he heard that "his guvnor" had not paid the bill, and had left
+neither money nor message for him. How Fanny had scorned and
+upbraided him, and ordered Tom to turn him out of the house "neck
+and crop;" how he had squared at Tom, and ultimately had been turned
+out of the house "neck and crop,"--whatever that may mean--by
+Fanny's father, needs not here to be particularly narrated. With
+much suffering and many privations--such as foxes in their solitary
+wanderings so often know--he did find his way to London; and did,
+moreover, by means of such wiles as foxes have, find out something
+as to his "guvnor's" whereabouts, and some secrets also as to his
+"guvnor" which his "guvnor" would fain have kept to himself had it
+been possible. And then, also, he again found for himself a sort of
+home--or hole rather--in his old original gorse covert of London;
+somewhere among the Jews, we may surmise, from the name of the row
+from which he dated; and here, setting to work once more with his
+usual cunning industry,--for your fox is very industrious,--he once
+more attempted to build up a slender fortune by means of the
+"Fitsjerral" family. The grand days in which he could look for the
+hand of the fair Emmeline were all gone by; but still the property
+had been too good not to leave something for which he might grasp.
+Properly worked, by himself alone, as he said to himself, it might
+still yield him some comfortable returns, especially as he should be
+able to throw over that "confounded old guvnor of his."
+
+He remained at home the whole of the day after his letter was
+written, indeed for the next three days, thinking that Mr.
+Prendergast would come to him, or send for him; but Mr. Prendergast
+did neither the one nor the other. Mr. Prendergast took his advice
+instead, and putting himself into a Hansom cab, had himself driven
+to "Centbotollfs intheheast."
+
+Spinny Lane, St. Botolph's in the East, when at last it was found,
+was not exactly the sort of place that Mr. Prendergast had expected.
+It must be known that he did not allow the cabman to drive him up to
+the very door indicated, nor even to the lane itself; but contented
+himself with leaving the cab at St. Botolph's church. The huntsman
+in looking after his game is as wily as the fox himself. Men do not
+talk at the covert side--or at any rate they ought not. And they
+should stand together discreetly at the non-running side. All manner
+of wiles and silences and discretions are necessary, though too
+often broken through by the uninstructed,--much to their own
+discomfort. And so in hunting his fox, Mr. Prendergast did not dash
+up loudly into the covert, but discreetly left his cab at the church
+of St. Botolph's.
+
+Spinny Lane, when at last found by intelligence given to him at the
+baker's,--never in such unknown regions ask a lad in the street, for
+he invariably will accompany you, talking of your whereabouts very
+loudly, so that people stare at you, and ask each other what can
+possibly be your business in those parts--Spinny Lane, I say, was
+not the sort of locality that he had expected. He knew the look of
+the half-protected, half-condemned Alsatias of the present-day
+rascals, and Spinny Lane did not at all bear their character. It was
+a street of small new tenements, built, as yet, only on one side of
+the way, with the pavement only one third finished, and the stones
+in the road as yet unbroken and untrodden. Of such streets there are
+thousands now round London. They are to be found in every suburb,
+creating wonder in all thoughtful minds as to who can be their tens
+of thousands of occupants. The houses are a little too good for
+artisans, too small and too silent to be the abode of various
+lodgers, and too mean for clerks who live on salaries. They are as
+dull-looking as Lethe itself, dull and silent, dingy and repulsive.
+But they are not discreditable in appearance, and never have that
+Mohawk look which by some unknown sympathy in bricks and mortar
+attaches itself to the residences of professional ruffians.
+
+Number seven he found to be as quiet and decent a house as any in
+the row, and having inspected it from a little distance he walked up
+briskly to the door, and rang the bell. He walked up briskly in
+order that his advance might not be seen; unless, indeed, as he
+began to think not impossible, Aby's statement was altogether a
+hoax.
+
+"Does a woman named Mrs. Mary Swan live here?" he asked of a
+decent-looking young woman of some seven or eight and twenty, who
+opened the door for him. She was decent looking, but poverty
+stricken and wan with work and care, and with that heaviness about
+her which perpetual sorrow always gives. Otherwise she would not
+have been ill featured; and even as it was she was feminine and soft
+in her gait and manner. "Does Mrs. Mary Swan live here?" asked Mr.
+Prendergast in a mild voice.
+
+She at once said Mrs. Mary Swan did live there; but she stood with
+the door in her hand by no means fully opened, as though she did not
+wish to ask him to enter; and yet there was nothing in her tone to
+repel him. Mr. Prendergast at once felt that he was on the right
+scent, and that it behoved him at any rate to make his way into that
+house; for if ever a modest-looking daughter was like an
+immodest-looking father, that young woman was like Mr. Mollett
+senior.
+
+"Then I will see her, if you please," said Mr. Prendergast, entering
+the passage without her invitation. Not that he pushed in with
+roughness, but she receded before the authority of his tone, and
+obeyed the command which she read in his eye. The poor young woman
+hesitated as though it had been her intention to declare that Mrs.
+Swan was not within; but if so, she had not strength to carry out
+her purpose, for in the next moment Mr. Prendergast found himself in
+the presence of the woman he had come to seek.
+
+"Mrs. Mary Swan?" said Mr. Prendergast, asking a question as to her
+identity.
+
+"Yes, sir, that is my name," said a sickly-looking elderly woman,
+rising from her chair.
+
+The room in which the two had been sitting was very poor; but
+nevertheless it was neat, and arranged with some attention to
+appearance. It was not carpeted, but there was a piece of drugget
+some three yards long spread before the fireplace. The wall had been
+papered from time to time with scraps of different coloured paper,
+as opportunity offered. The table on which the work of the two women
+was lying was very old and somewhat rickety, but it was of mahogany;
+and Mrs. Mary Swan herself was accommodated with a high-backed
+arm-chair, which gave some appearance of comfort to her position. It
+was now spring; but they had a small, very small fire in the small
+grate, on which a pot had been placed in hopes that it might be
+induced to boil. All these things did the eye of Mr. Prendergast
+take in; but the fact which his eye took in with its keenest glance
+was this,--that on the other side of the fire to that on which sat
+Mrs. Mary Swan, there was a second arm-chair standing close over the
+fender, an ordinary old mahogany chair, in which it was evident that
+the younger woman had not been sitting. Her place had been close to
+the table-side, where her needles and thread were still lying. But
+the arm-chair was placed idly away from any accommodation for work,
+and had, as Mr. Prendergast thought, been recently filled by some
+idle person.
+
+The woman who rose from her chair as she declared herself to be Mary
+Swan was old and sickly looking, but nevertheless there was that
+about her which was prepossessing. Her face was thin and delicate
+and pale, and not hard and coarse; her voice was low, as a woman's
+should be, and her hands were white and small. Her clothes, though
+very poor, were neat, and worn as a poor lady might have worn them.
+Though there was in her face an aspect almost of terror as she owned
+to her name in the stranger's presence, yet there was also about her
+a certain amount of female dignity, which made Mr. Prendergast feel
+that it behoved him to treat her not only with gentleness, but also
+with respect.
+
+"I want to say a few words to you," said he, "in consequence of a
+letter I have received; perhaps you will allow me to sit down for a
+minute or two."
+
+"Certainly, sir, certainly. This is my daughter, Mary Swan; do you
+wish that she should leave the room, sir?" And Mary Swan, as her
+mother spoke, got up and prepared to depart quietly.
+
+"By no means, by no means," said Mr. Prendergast, putting his hand
+out so as to detain her. "I would much rather that she should
+remain, as it may be very likely that she may assist me in my
+inquiries. You will know who I am, no doubt, when I mention my name;
+Mr. Mollett will have mentioned me to you--I am Mr. Prendergast."
+
+"No, sir, he never did," said Mrs. Swan.
+
+"Oh!" said Mr. Prendergast, having ascertained that Mr. Mollett was
+at any rate well known at No. 7, Spinny Lane. "I thought that he
+might probably have done so. He is at home at present, I believe?"
+
+"Sir?" said Mary Swan senior.
+
+"Your father is at home, I believe?" said Mr. Prendergast, turning
+to the younger woman.
+
+"Sir?" said Mary Swan junior. It was clear at any rate that the
+women were not practised liars, for they could not bring themselves
+on the spur of the moment to deny that he was in the house.
+
+Mr. Prendergast did not wish to be confronted at present with
+Matthew Mollett. Such a step might or might not be desirable before
+the termination of the interview; but at the present moment he
+thought that he might probably learn more from the two women as they
+were than he would do if Mollett were with them.
+
+It had been acknowledged to him that Mollett was living in that
+house, that he was now at home, and also that the younger woman
+present before him was the child of Mollett and of Mary Swan the
+elder. That the young woman was older than Herbert Fitzgerald, and
+that therefore the connection between Mollett and her mother must
+have been prior to that marriage down in Dorsetshire, he was sure;
+but then it might still be possible that there had been no marriage
+between Mollett and Mary Swan. If he could show that they had been
+man and wife when that child was born, then would his old friend Mr.
+Die lose his new pupil.
+
+"I have a letter in my pocket, Mrs. Swan, from Abraham Mollett--"
+Mr. Prendergast commenced, pulling out the letter in question.
+
+"He is nothing to me, sir," said the woman, almost in a tone of
+anger. "I know nothing whatever about him."
+
+"So I should have supposed from the respectability of your
+appearance, if I may be allowed to say so."
+
+"Nothing at all, sir; and as for that, we do try to keep ourselves
+respectable. But this is a very hard world for some people to live
+in. It has been very hard to me and this poor girl here."
+
+"It is a hard world to some people, and to some honest people,
+too,--which is harder still."
+
+"We've always tried to be honest," said Mary Swan the elder.
+
+"I am sure you have; and permit me to say, madam, that you will find
+it at the last to be the best policy;--at the last, even as far as
+this world is concerned. But about this letter--I can assure you
+that I have never thought of identifying you with Abraham Mollett."
+
+"His mother was dead, sir, before ever I set eyes on him or his
+father; and though I tried to do my--" and then she stopped herself
+suddenly. Honesty might be the best policy, but, nevertheless, was
+it necessary that she should tell everything to this stranger?
+
+"Ah, yes; Abraham's mother was dead before you were married," said
+Mr. Prendergast, hunting his fox ever so craftily,--his fox whom he
+knew to be lying in ambush upstairs. It was of course possible that
+old Mollett should slip away out of the back door and over a wall.
+If foxes did not do those sort of things they would not be worth
+half the attention that is paid to them. But Mr. Prendergast was
+well on the scent; all that a sportsman wants is good scent. He
+would rather not have a view till the run comes to its close. "But,"
+continued Mr. Prendergast, "it is necessary that I should say a few
+words to you about this letter. Abraham's mother was, I suppose, not
+exactly an--an educated woman?"
+
+"I never saw her, sir."
+
+"She died when he was very young?"
+
+"Four years old, sir."
+
+"And her son hardly seems to have had much education?"
+
+"It was his own fault, sir; I sent him to school when he came to me,
+though, goodness knows, sir, I was short enough of means of doing
+so. He had better opportunities than my own daughter there, and
+though I say it myself, who ought not to say it, she is a good
+scholar."
+
+"I'm sure she is,--and a very good young woman too, if I can judge
+by her appearance. But about this letter. I am afraid your husband
+has not been so particular in his way of living as he should have
+been."
+
+"What could I do, sir? a poor weak woman!"
+
+"Nothing; what you could do, I'm sure you did do."
+
+"I've always kept a house over my head, though it's very humble, as
+you see, sir. And he has had a morsel to eat and a cup to drink of
+when he has come here. It is not often that he has troubled me this
+many years past."
+
+"Mother," said Mary Swan the younger, "the gentleman won't care to
+know about, about all that between you and father."
+
+"Ah, but it is just what I do care to know."
+
+"But, sir, father perhaps mightn't choose it."
+
+The obedience of women to men--to those men to whom they are legally
+bound--is, I think, the most remarkable trait in human nature.
+Nothing equals it but the instinctive loyalty of a dog. Of course we
+hear of gray mares, and of garments worn by the wrong persons.
+Xanthippe doubtless did live, and the character from time to time is
+repeated; but the rule, I think, is as I have said.
+
+"Mrs. Swan," said Mr. Prendergast, "I should think myself dishonest
+were I to worm your secrets out of you, seeing that you are yourself
+so truthful and so respectable." Perhaps it may be thought that Mr.
+Prendergast was a little late in looking at the matter in this
+light. "But it behoves me to learn much of the early history of your
+husband, who is now living with you here, and whose name, as I take
+it, is not Swan, but Mollett. Your maiden name probably was Swan?"
+
+"But I was honestly married, sir, in the parish church at Putney,
+and that young woman was honestly born."
+
+"I am quite sure of it. I have never doubted it. But as I was
+saying, I have come here for information about your husband, and I
+do not like to ask you questions off your guard,"--oh, Mr.
+Prendergast!--"and therefore I think it right to tell you, that
+neither I nor those for whom I am concerned have any wish to bear
+more heavily than we can help upon your husband, if he will only
+come forward with willingness to do that which we can make him do
+either willingly or unwillingly."
+
+"But what was it about Abraham's letter, sir?"
+
+"Well, it does not so much signify now."
+
+"It was he sent you here, was it, sir? How has he learned where we
+are, Mary?" and the poor woman turned to her daughter. "The truth
+is, sir, he has never known anything of us for these twenty years,
+nor we of him. I have not set eyes on him for more than twenty
+years,--not that I know of. And he never knew me by any other name
+than Swan, and when he was a child he took me for his aunt."
+
+"He hasn't known then that you and his father were husband and
+wife?"
+
+"I have always thought he didn't, sir. But how--"
+
+Then after all the young fox had not been so full of craft as the
+elder one, thought Mr. Prendergast to himself. But nevertheless, he
+still liked the old fox best. There are foxes that run so uncommonly
+short that you can never get a burst after them.
+
+"I suppose, Mrs. Swan," continued Mr. Prendergast, "that you have
+heard the name of Fitzgerald?"
+
+The poor woman sat silent and amazed, but after a moment the
+daughter answered him. "My mother, sir, would rather that you should
+ask her no questions."
+
+"But, my good girl, your mother, I suppose, would wish to protect
+your father, and she would not wish to answer these questions in a
+court of law."
+
+"Heaven forbid!" said the poor woman.
+
+"Your father has behaved very badly to an unfortunate lady whose
+friend I am, and on her behalf I must learn the truth."
+
+"He has behaved badly, sir, to a great many ladies," said Mrs. Swan,
+or Mrs. Mollett as we may now call her.
+
+"You are aware, are you not, that he went through a form of marriage
+with this lady many years ago?" said Mr. Prendergast, almost
+severely.
+
+"Let him answer for himself," said the true wife. "Mary, go
+upstairs, and ask your father to come down."
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XL
+
+THE FOX IN HIS EARTH
+
+
+Mary Swan the younger hesitated a moment before she executed her
+mother's order, not saying anything, but looking doubtfully up into
+her mother's face. "Go, my dear," said the old woman, "and ask your
+father to come down. It is no use denying him."
+
+"None in the least," said Mr. Prendergast; and then the daughter
+went.
+
+For ten minutes the lawyer and the old woman sat alone, during which
+time the ear of the former was keenly alive to any steps that might
+be heard on the stairs or above head. Not that he would himself have
+taken any active measures to prevent Mr. Mollett's escape, had such
+an attempt been made. The woman could be a better witness for him
+than the man, and there would be no fear of her running.
+Nevertheless, he was anxious that Mollett should, of his own accord,
+come into his presence.
+
+"I am sorry to keep you so long waiting, sir," said Mrs. Swan.
+
+"It does not signify. I can easily understand that your husband
+should wish to reflect a little before he speaks to me. I can
+forgive that."
+
+"And, sir--"
+
+"Well, Mrs. Mollett?"
+
+"Are you going to do anything to punish him, sir? If a poor woman
+may venture to speak a word, I would beg you on my bended knees to
+be merciful to him. If you would forgive him now I think he would
+live honest, and be sorry for what he has done."
+
+"He has worked terrible evil," said Mr. Prendergast solemnly. "Do
+you know that he has harassed a poor gentleman into his grave?"
+
+"Heaven be merciful to him!" said the poor woman. "But, sir, was not
+that his son? Was it not Abraham Mollett who did that? Oh, sir, if
+you will let a poor wife speak, it is he that has been worse than
+his father."
+
+Before Mr. Prendergast had made up his mind how he would answer her,
+he heard the sound of footsteps slowly descending upon the stairs.
+They were those of a person who stepped heavily and feebly, and it
+was still a minute before the door was opened.
+
+"Sir," said the woman. "Sir," and as she spoke she looked eagerly
+into his face--"Forgive us our trespasses as we forgive them that
+trespass against us. We should all remember that, sir."
+
+"True, Mrs. Mollett, quite true," and Mr. Prendergast rose from his
+chair as the door opened.
+
+It will be remembered that Mr. Prendergast and Matthew Mollett had
+met once before, in the room usually occupied by Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald. On that occasion Mr. Mollett had at any rate entered the
+chamber with some of the prestige of power about him. He had come to
+Castle Richmond as the man having the whip hand; and though his
+courage had certainly fallen somewhat before he left it,
+nevertheless he had not been so beaten down but what he was able to
+say a word or two for himself. He had been well in health and decent
+in appearance, and even as he left the room had hardly realized the
+absolute ruin which had fallen upon him.
+
+But now he looked as though he had realized it with sufficient
+clearness. He was lean and sick and pale, and seemed to be ten years
+older than when Mr. Prendergast had last seen him. He was wrapped in
+an old dressing-gown, and had a night-cap on his head, and coughed
+violently before he got himself into his chair. It is hard for any
+tame domestic animal to know through what fire and water a poor fox
+is driven as it is hunted from hole to hole and covert to covert. It
+is a wonderful fact, but no less a fact, that no men work so hard
+and work for so little pay as scoundrels who strive to live without
+any work at all, and to feed on the sweat of other men's brows. Poor
+Matthew Mollett had suffered dire misfortune, had encountered very
+hard lines, betwixt that day on which he stole away from the Kanturk
+Hotel in South Main Street, Cork, and that other day on which he
+presented himself, cold and hungry and almost sick to death, at the
+door of his wife's house in Spinny Lane, St. Botolph's in the East.
+
+He never showed himself there unless when hard pressed indeed, and
+then he would skulk in, seeking for shelter and food, and pleading
+with bated voice his husband right to assistance and comfort. Nor
+was his plea ever denied him.
+
+On this occasion he had arrived in very bad plight indeed: he had
+brought away from Cork nothing but what he could carry on his body,
+and had been forced to pawn what he could pawn in order that he
+might subsist. And then he had been taken with ague, and with the
+fit strong on him had crawled away to Spinny Lane, and had there
+been nursed by the mother and daughter whom he had ill used,
+deserted, and betrayed. "When the devil was sick the devil a monk
+would be;" and now his wife, credulous as all women are in such
+matters, believed the devil's protestations. A time may perhaps come
+when even--But stop!--or I may chance to tread on the corns of
+orthodoxy. What I mean to insinuate is this; that it was on the
+cards that Mr. Mollett would now at last turn over a new leaf.
+
+"How do you do, Mr. Mollett?" said Mr. Prendergast. "I am sorry to
+see you looking so poorly."
+
+"Yes, sir. I am poorly enough certainly. I have been very ill since
+I last had the pleasure of seeing you, sir."
+
+"Ah, yes, that was at Castle Richmond; was it not? Well, you have
+done the best thing that a man can do; you have come home to your
+wife and family now that you are ill and require their attendance."
+
+Mr. Mollett looked up at him with a countenance full of unutterable
+woe and weakness. What was he to say on such a subject in such a
+company? There sat his wife and daughter, his veritable wife and
+true-born daughter, on whom he was now dependent, and in whose hands
+he lay, as a sick man does lie in the hands of women: could he deny
+them? And there sat the awful Mr. Prendergast, the representative of
+all that Fitzgerald interest which he had so wronged, and who up to
+this morning had at any rate believed the story with which he,
+Mollett, had pushed his fortunes in county Cork. Could he in his
+presence acknowledge that Lady Fitzgerald had never been his wife?
+It must be confessed that he was in a sore plight. And then remember
+his ague!
+
+"You feel yourself tolerably comfortable, I suppose, now that you
+are with your wife and daughter," continued Mr. Prendergast, most
+inhumanly.
+
+Mr. Mollett continued to look at him so piteously from beneath his
+nightcap. "I am better than I was, thank you, sir," said he.
+
+"There is nothing like the bosom of one's family for restoring one
+to health; is there, Mrs. Mollett;--or for keeping one in health?"
+
+"I wish you gentlemen would think so," said she, dryly.
+
+"As for me, I never was blessed with a wife. When I am sick I have
+to trust to hired attendance. In that respect I am not so fortunate
+as your husband; I am only an old bachelor."
+
+"Oh, ain't you, sir?" said Mrs. Mollett; "and perhaps it's best so.
+It ain't all married people that are the happiest."
+
+The daughter during this time was sitting intent on her work, not
+lifting her face from the shirt she was sewing. But an observer
+might have seen from her forehead and eye that she was not only
+listening to what was said, but thinking and meditating on the scene
+before her.
+
+"Well, Mr. Mollett," said Mr. Prendergast, "you at any rate are not
+an old bachelor." Mr. Mollett still looked piteously at him, but
+said nothing. It may be thought that in all this Mr. Prendergast was
+more cruel than necessary, but it must be remembered that it was
+incumbent on him to bring the poor wretch before him down absolutely
+on his marrow-bones. Mollett must be made to confess his sin, and
+own that this woman before him was his real wife; and the time for
+mercy had not commenced till that had been done.
+
+And then his daughter spoke, seeing how things were going with him.
+"Father," said she, "this gentleman has called because he has had a
+letter from Abraham Mollett: and he was speaking about what Abraham
+has been doing in Ireland."
+
+"Oh dear, oh dear!" said poor Mollett. "The unfortunate young man;
+that wretched, unfortunate young man! He will bring me to the grave
+at last--to the grave at last."
+
+"Come, Mr. Mollett," said Mr. Prendergast, now getting up and
+standing with his back to the fire, "I do not know that you and I
+need beat about the bush much longer. I suppose I may speak openly
+before these ladies as to what has been taking place in county
+Cork."
+
+"Sir!" said Mr. Mollett, with a look of deprecation about his mouth
+that ought to have moved the lawyer's heart.
+
+"I know nothing about it," said Mrs. Mollett, very stiffly.
+
+"Yes, mother, we do know something about it; and the gentleman may
+speak out if it so pleases him. It will be better, father, for you
+that he should do so."
+
+"Very well, my dear," said Mr. Mollett, in the lowest possible
+voice; "whatever the gentleman likes--only I do hope--" and he
+uttered a deep sigh, and gave no further expression to his hopes or
+wishes.
+
+"I presume, in the first place," began Mr. Prendergast, "that this
+lady here is your legal wife, and this younger lady your legitimate
+daughter? There is no doubt, I take it, as to that?"
+
+"Not--any--doubt--in the world, sir," said the Mrs. Mollett, who
+claimed to be so de jure. "I have got my marriage lines to show,
+sir. Abraham's mother was dead just six months before we came
+together; and then we were married just six months after that."
+
+"Well, Mr. Mollett; I suppose you do not wish to contradict that?"
+
+"He can't, sir, whether he wish it or not," said Mrs. Mollett.
+
+"Could you show me that--that marriage certificate?" asked Mr.
+Prendergast.
+
+Mrs. Mollett looked rather doubtful as to this. It may be, that much
+as she trusted in her husband's reform, she did not wish to let him
+know where she kept this important palladium of her rights.
+
+"It can be forthcoming, sir, whenever it may be wanted," said Mary
+Mollett the younger; and then Mr. Prendergast, seeing what was
+passing through the minds of the two women, did not press that
+matter any further.
+
+"But I should be glad to hear from your own lips, Mr. Mollett, that
+you acknowledge the marriage, which took place at--at Fulham, I
+think you said, ma'am?"
+
+"At Putney, sir; at Putney parish church, in the year of our Lord
+eighteen hundred and fourteen."
+
+"Ah, that was the year before Mr. Mollett went into Dorsetshire."
+
+"Yes, sir. He didn't stay with me long, not at that time. He went
+away and left me: and then all that happened, that you know of--
+down in Dorsetshire, as they told me. And afterwards when he went
+away on his keeping, leaving Aby behind, I took the child, and said
+that I was his aunt. There were reasons then; and I feared--But
+never mind about that, sir; for anything that I was wrong enough to
+say then to the contrary, I am his lawful wedded wife, and before my
+face he won't deny it. And then when he was sore pressed and in
+trouble he came back to me, and after that Mary here was born; and
+one other, a boy, who, God rest him, has gone from these troubles.
+And since that it is not often that he has been with me. But now,
+now that he is here, you should have pity on us, and give him
+another chance."
+
+But still Mr. Mollett had said nothing himself. He sat during all
+this time, wearily moving his head to and fro, as though the
+conversation were anything but comfortable to him. And, indeed, it
+cannot be presumed to have been very pleasant. He moved his head
+slowly and wearily to and fro; every now and then lifting up one
+hand weakly, as though deprecating any recurrence to circumstances
+so decidedly unpleasant. But Mr. Prendergast was determined that he
+should speak.
+
+"Mr. Mollett," said he, "I must beg you to say in so many words,
+whether the statement of this lady is correct or is incorrect. Do
+you acknowledge her for your lawful wife?"
+
+"He daren't deny me, sir," said the woman, who was, perhaps, a
+little too eager in the matter.
+
+"Father, why don't you behave like a man and speak?" said his
+daughter, now turning upon him. "You have done ill to all of us;--
+to so many; but now--"
+
+"And are you going to turn against me, Mary?" he whined out, almost
+crying.
+
+"Turn against you! no, I have never done that. But look at mother.
+Would you let that gentleman think that she is--what I won't name
+before him? Will you say that I am not your honest-born child? You
+have done very wickedly, and you must now make what amends is in
+your power. If you do not answer him here he will make you answer in
+some worse place than this."
+
+"What is it I am to say, sir?" he whined out again.
+
+"Is this lady here your legal wife?"
+
+"Yes, sir," said the poor man, whimpering.
+
+"And that marriage ceremony which you went through in Dorsetshire
+with Miss Wainwright was not a legal marriage?"
+
+"I suppose not, sir."
+
+"You were well aware at the time that you were committing bigamy?"
+
+"Sir!"
+
+"You knew, I say, that you were committing bigamy; that the child
+whom you were professing to marry would not become your wife through
+that ceremony. I say that you knew all this at the time? Come, Mr.
+Mollett, answer me, if you do not wish me to have you dragged out of
+this by a policeman and taken at once before a magistrate."
+
+"Oh, sir! be merciful to us; pray be merciful to us," said Mrs.
+Mollett, holding up her apron to her eyes.
+
+"Father, why don't you speak out plainly to the gentleman? He will
+forgive you, if you do that."
+
+"Am I to criminate myself, sir?" said Mr. Mollett, still in the
+humblest voice in the world, and hardly above his breath.
+
+After all, this fox had still some running left in him, Mr.
+Prendergast thought to himself. He was not even yet so thoroughly
+beaten but what he had a dodge or two remaining at his service. "Am
+I to criminate myself, sir?" he asked, as innocently as a child
+might ask whether or no she were to stand longer in the corner.
+
+"You may do as you like about that, Mr. Mollett," said the lawyer;
+"I am neither a magistrate nor a policeman; and at the present
+moment I am not acting even as a lawyer. I am the friend of a family
+whom you have misused and defrauded most outrageously. You killed
+the father of that family--"
+
+"Oh, gracious!" said Mrs. Mollett
+
+"Yes, madam, he has done so; and nearly broken the heart of that
+poor lady, and driven her son from the house which is his own. You
+have done all this in order that you might swindle them out of money
+for your vile indulgences, while you left your own wife and your own
+child to starve at home. In the whole course of my life I never came
+across so mean a scoundrel; and now you chaffer with me as to
+whether or no you shall criminate yourself! Scoundrel and villain as
+you are--a double-dyed scoundrel, still there are reasons why I
+shall not wish to have you gibbeted, as you deserve."
+
+"Oh, sir, he has done nothing that would come to that!" said the
+poor wife.
+
+"You had better let the gentleman finish," said the daughter. "He
+doesn't mean that father will be hung."
+
+"It would be too good for him," said Mr. Prendergast, who was now
+absolutely almost out of temper. "But I do not wish to be his
+executioner. For the peace of that family which you have so brutally
+plundered and ill-used, I shall remain quiet,--if I can attain my
+object without a public prosecution. But, remember, that I guarantee
+nothing to you. For aught I know you may be in gaol before the night
+is come. All I have to tell you is this, that if by obtaining a
+confession from you I am able to restore my friends to their
+property without a prosecution, I shall do so. Now you may answer me
+or not, as you like."
+
+"Trust him, father," said the daughter. "It will be best for you."
+
+"But I have told him everything," said Mollett. "What more does he
+want of me?"
+
+"I want you to give your written acknowledgment that when you went
+through that ceremony of marriage with Miss Wainwright in
+Dorsetshire, you committed bigamy, and that you knew at that time
+that you were doing so."
+
+Mr. Mollett, as a matter of course, gave him the written document,
+and then Mr. Prendergast took his leave, bowing graciously to the
+two women, and not deigning to cast his eyes again on the abject
+wretch who crouched by the fire.
+
+"Don't be hard on a poor creature who has fallen so low," said Mrs.
+Mollett as he left the room. But Mary Mollett junior followed him to
+the door and opened it for him. "Sir," she said, addressing him with
+some hesitation as he was preparing to depart.
+
+"Well, Miss Mollett; if I could do anything for you it would gratify
+me, for I sincerely feel for you,--both for you and for your
+mother."
+
+"Thank you, sir; I don't know that there is anything you can do for
+us--except to spare him. The thief on the cross was forgiven, sir."
+
+"But the thief on the cross repented."
+
+"And who shall say that he does not repent? You cannot tell of his
+heart by scripture word, as you can of that other one. But our Lord
+has taught us that it is good to forgive the worst of sinners. Tell
+that poor lady to think of this when she remembers him in her
+prayers."
+
+"I will, Miss Mollett; indeed, indeed I will;" and then as he left
+her he gave her his hand in token of respect. And so he walked away
+out of Spinny Lane.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLI
+
+THE LOBBY OF THE HOUSE OF COMMONS
+
+
+Mr. Prendergast as he walked out of Spinny Lane, and back to St.
+Botolph's church, and as he returned thence again to Bloomsbury
+Square in his cab, had a good deal of which to think. In the first
+place it must be explained that he was not altogether self-satisfied
+with the manner in which things had gone. That he would have made
+almost any sacrifice to recover the property for Herbert Fitzgerald,
+is certainly true; and it is as true that he would have omitted no
+possible effort to discover all that which he had now discovered,
+almost without necessity for any effort. But nevertheless he was not
+altogether pleased; he had made up his mind a month or two ago that
+Lady Fitzgerald was not the lawful wife of her husband; and had come
+to this conclusion on, as he still thought, sufficient evidence. But
+now he was proved to have been wrong; his character for shrewdness
+and discernment would be damaged, and his great ally and chum Mr.
+Die, the Chancery barrister, would be down on him with unmitigated
+sarcasm. A man who has been right so frequently as Mr. Prendergast,
+does not like to find that he is ever in the wrong. And then, had
+his decision not have been sudden, might not the life of that old
+baronet have been saved?
+
+Mr. Prendergast could not help feeling this in some degree as he
+drove away to Bloomsbury Square; but nevertheless he had also the
+feeling of having achieved a great triumph. It was with him as with
+a man who has made a fortune when he has declared to his friends
+that he should infallibly be ruined. It piques him to think how
+wrong he has been in his prophecy; but still it is very pleasant to
+have made one's fortune.
+
+When he found himself at the top of Chancery Lane in Holborn, he
+stopped his cab and got out of it. He had by that time made up his
+mind as to what he would do; so he walked briskly down to Stone
+Buildings, and nodding to the old clerk, with whom he was very
+intimate, asked if he could see Mr. Die. It was his second visit to
+those chambers that morning, seeing that he had been there early in
+the day, introducing Herbert to his new Gamaliel. "Yes, Mr. Die is
+in," said the clerk, smiling; and so Mr. Prendergast passed on into
+the well-known dingy temple of the Chancery god himself.
+
+There he remained for full an hour, a message in the mean while
+having been sent out to Herbert Fitzgerald, begging him not to leave
+the chambers till he should have seen Mr. Die; "and your friend Mr.
+Prendergast is with him," said the clerk. "A very nice gentleman is
+Mr. Prendergast, uncommon clever too; but it seems to me that he
+never can hold his own when he comes across our Mr. Die."
+
+At the end of the hour Herbert was summoned into the sanctum, and
+there he found Mr. Die sitting in his accustomed chair, with his
+body much bent, nursing the calf of his leg, which was always
+enveloped in a black, well-fitting close pantaloon, and smiling very
+blandly. Mr. Prendergast had in his countenance not quite so sweet
+an aspect. Mr. Die had repeated to him, perhaps once too often, a
+very well-known motto of his; one by the aid of which he professed
+to have steered himself safely through the shoals of life--himself
+and perhaps some others. It was a motto which he would have loved to
+see inscribed over the great gates of the noble inn to which he
+belonged; and which, indeed, a few years since might have been
+inscribed there with much justice. "Festina lente," Mr. Die would
+say to all those who came to him in any sort of hurry. And then when
+men accused him of being dilatory by premeditation, he would say no,
+he had always recommended despatch. "Festina," he would say;
+"festina" by all means; but "festina lente." The doctrine had at any
+rate thriven with the teacher, for Mr. Die had amassed a large
+fortune.
+
+Herbert at once saw that Mr. Prendergast was a little fluttered.
+Judging from what he had seen of the lawyer in Ireland, he would
+have said that it was impossible to flutter Mr. Prendergast; but in
+truth greatness is great only till it encounters greater greatness.
+Mars and Apollo are terrible and magnificent gods till one is
+enabled to see them seated at the foot of Jove's great throne. That
+Apollo, Mr. Prendergast, though greatly in favour with the old
+Chancery Jupiter, had now been reminded that he had also on this
+occasion driven his team too fast, and been nearly as indiscreet in
+his own rash offering.
+
+"We are very sorry to keep you waiting here, Mr. Fitzgerald," said
+Mr. Die, giving his hand to the young man without, however, rising
+from his chair; "especially sorry, seeing that it is your first day
+in harness. But your friend Mr. Prendergast thinks it as well that
+we should talk over together a piece of business which does not seem
+as yet to be quite settled."
+
+Herbert of course declared that he had been in no hurry to go away;
+he was, he said, quite ready to talk over anything; but to his mind
+at that moment nothing occurred more momentous than the nature of
+the agreement between himself and Mr. Die. There was an honorarium
+which it was presumed Mr. Die would expect, and which Herbert
+Fitzgerald had ready for the occasion.
+
+"I hardly know how to describe what has taken place this morning
+since I saw you," said Mr. Prendergast, whose features told plainly
+that something more important than the honorarium was now on the
+tapis.
+
+"What has taken place?" said Herbert, whose mind now flew off to
+Castle Richmond.
+
+"Gently, gently," said Mr. Die; "in the whole course of my legal
+experience,--and that now has been a very long experience,--I have
+never come across so,--so singular a family history as this of
+yours, Mr. Fitzgerald. When our friend Mr. Prendergast here, on his
+return from Ireland, first told me the whole of it, I was inclined
+to think that he had formed a right and just decision--"
+
+"There can be no doubt about that," said Herbert.
+
+"Stop a moment, my dear sir; wait half a moment--a just decision, I
+say--regarding the evidence of the facts as conclusive. But I was
+not quite so certain that he might not have been a little--premature
+perhaps may be too strong a word--a little too assured in taking
+those facts as proved."
+
+"But they were proved," said Herbert.
+
+"I shall always maintain that there was ample ground to induce me to
+recommend your poor father so to regard them," said Mr. Prendergast,
+stoutly. "You must remember that those men would instantly have been
+at work on the other side; indeed, one of them did attempt it."
+
+"Without any signal success, I believe," said Mr. Die.
+
+"My father thought you were quite right, Mr. Prendergast," said
+Herbert, with a tear forming in his eye; "and though it may be
+possible that the affair hurried him to his death, there was no
+alternative but that he should know the whole." At this Mr.
+Prendergast seemed to wince as he sat in his chair. "And I am sure
+of this," continued Herbert, "that had he been left to the villanies
+of those two men, his last days would have been much less
+comfortable than they were, My mother feels that quite as strongly
+as I do." And then Mr. Prendergast looked as though he were somewhat
+reassured.
+
+"It was a difficult crisis in which to act," said Mr. Prendergast,
+"and I can only say that I did so to the best of my poor judgment."
+
+"It was a difficult crisis in which to act," said Mr. Die,
+assenting.
+
+"But why is all this brought up now?" asked Herbert.
+
+"Festina lente," said Mr. Die; "lente, lente, lente; always lente.
+The more haste we make in trying to understand each other, with the
+less speed shall we arrive at that object."
+
+"What is it, Mr. Prendergast?" again demanded Herbert, who was now
+too greatly excited to care much for the Chancery wisdom of the
+great barrister. "Has anything new turned up about--about those
+Molletts?"
+
+"Yes, Herbert, something has turned up--"
+
+"Remember, Prendergast, that your evidence is again incomplete."
+
+"Upon my word, sir, I do not think it is: it would be sufficient for
+any intellectual jury in a Common Law court," said Mr. Prendergast,
+who sometimes, behind his back, gave to Mr. Die the surname of
+Cunctator.
+
+"But juries in Common Law courts are not always intelligent. And you
+may be sure, Prendergast, that any gentleman taking up the case on
+the other side would have as much to say for his client as your
+counsel would have for yours. Remember, you have not even been to
+Putney yet."
+
+"Been to Putney!" said Herbert, who was becoming uneasy.
+
+"The onus probandi would lie with them," said Mr. Prendergast. "We
+take possession of that which is our own till it is proved to belong
+to others."
+
+"You have already abandoned the possession."
+
+"No; we have done nothing already: we have taken no legal step; when
+we believed--"
+
+"Having by your own act put yourself in your present position, I
+think you ought to be very careful before you take up another."
+
+"Certainly we ought to be careful. But I do maintain that we may be
+too punctilious. As a matter of course I shall go to Putney."
+
+"To Putney!" said Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+"Yes, Herbert, and now, if Mr. Die will permit, I will tell you what
+has happened. On yesterday afternoon, before you came to dine with
+me, I received that letter. No, that is from your cousin, Owen
+Fitzgerald. You must see that also by-and-by. It was this one,--
+from the younger Mollett, the man whom you saw that day in your poor
+father's room."
+
+Herbert anxiously put out his hand for the letter, but he was again
+interrupted by Mr. Die. "I beg your pardon, Mr. Fitzgerald, for a
+moment. Prendergast, let me see that letter again, will you?" And
+taking hold of it, he proceeded to read it very carefully, still
+nursing his leg with his left hand, while he held the letter with
+his right.
+
+"What's it all about?" said Herbert, appealing to Prendergast almost
+in a whisper.
+
+"Lente, lente, lente, my dear Mr. Fitzgerald," said Mr. Die, while
+his eyes were still intent upon the paper. "If you will take
+advantage of the experience of grey hairs, and bald heads,"--his own
+was as bald all round as a big white stone--"you must put up with
+some of the disadvantages of a momentary delay. Suppose now,
+Prendergast, that he is acting in concert with those people in--what
+do you call the street?"
+
+"In Spinny Lane."
+
+"Yes; with his father and the two women there."
+
+"What could they gain by that?"
+
+"Share with him whatever he might be able to get out of you."
+
+"The man would never accuse himself of bigamy for that. Besides, you
+should have seen the women, Die."
+
+"Seen the women! Tsh--tsh--tsh; I have seen enough of them, young
+and old, to know that a clean apron and a humble tone and a
+down-turned eye don't always go with a true tongue and an honest
+heart. Women are now the most successful swindlers of the age! That
+profession at any rate is not closed against them."
+
+"You will not find these women to be swindlers; at least I think
+not."
+
+"Ah! but we want to be sure, Prendergast;" and then Mr. Die finished
+the letter, very leisurely, as Herbert thought.
+
+When he had finished it, he folded it up and gave it back to Mr.
+Prendergast. "I don't think but what you've a strong prima facie
+case; so strong that perhaps you are right to explain the whole
+matter to our young friend here, who is so deeply concerned in it.
+But at the same time I should caution him that the matter is still
+enveloped in doubt."
+
+Herbert eagerly put out his hand for the letter. "You may trust me
+with it," said he: "I am not of a sanguine temperament, nor easily
+excited; and you may be sure that I will not take it for more than
+it is worth." So saying, he at last got hold of the letter, and
+managed to read it through much more quickly than Mr. Die had done.
+As he did so he became very red in the face, and too plainly showed
+that he had made a false boast in speaking of the coolness of his
+temperament. Indeed, the stakes were so high that it was difficult
+for a young man to be cool while he was playing the game: he had
+made up his mind to lose, and to that he had been reconciled; but
+now again every pulse of his heart and every nerve of his body was
+disturbed. "Was never his wife," he said out loud when he got to
+that part of the letter. "His real wife living now in Spinny Lane!
+Do you believe that, Mr. Prendergast?"
+
+"Yes, I do," said the attorney.
+
+"Lente, lente, lente," said the barrister, quite oppressed by his
+friend's unprofessional abruptness.
+
+"But I do believe it," said Mr. Prendergast: "you must always
+understand, Herbert, that this new story may possibly not be true--"
+
+"Quite possible," said Mr. Die, with something almost approaching to
+a slight laugh.
+
+"But the evidence is so strong," continued the other, "that I do
+believe it heartily. I have been to that house, and seen the man,
+old Mollett, and the woman whom I believe to be his wife, and a
+daughter who lives with them. As far as my poor judgment goes," and
+he made a bow of deference towards the barrister, whose face,
+however, seemed to say, that in his opinion the judgment of his
+friend Mr. Prendergast did not always go very far--"As far as my
+poor judgment goes, the women are honest and respectable. The man is
+as great a villain as there is unhung--unless his son be a greater
+one; but he is now so driven into a corner, that the truth may be
+more serviceable to him than a lie."
+
+"People of that sort are never driven into a corner," said Mr. Die;
+"they may sometimes be crushed to death."
+
+"Well, I believe the matter is as I tell you. There at any rate is
+Mollett's assurance that it is so. The woman has been residing in
+the same place for years, and will come forward at any time to prove
+that she was married to this man before he ever saw--before he went
+to Dorsetshire: she has her marriage certificate; and as far as I
+can learn there is no one able or willing to raise the question
+against you. Your cousin Owen certainly will not do so."
+
+"It will hardly do to depend upon that," said Mr. Die, with another
+sneer. "Twelve thousand a-year is a great provocative to
+litigation."
+
+"If he does we must fight him; that's all. Of course steps will be
+taken at once to get together in the proper legal form all evidence
+of every description which may bear on the subject, so that should
+the question ever be raised again, the whole matter may be in a
+nutshell."
+
+"You'll find it a nutshell very difficult to crack in
+five-and-twenty years' time," said Mr. Die.
+
+"And what would you advise me to do?" asked Herbert.
+
+That after all was now the main question, and it was discussed
+between them for a long time, till the shades of evening came upon
+them, and the dull dingy chambers became almost dark as they sat
+there. Mr. Die at first conceived that it would be well that Herbert
+should stick to the law. What indeed could be more conducive to
+salutary equanimity in the mind of a young man so singularly
+circumstanced, than the study of Blackstone, of Coke, and of Chitty?
+as long as he remained there, at work in those chambers, amusing
+himself occasionally with the eloquence of the neighbouring courts,
+there might be reasonable hope that he would be able to keep his
+mind equally poised, so that neither success nor failure as regarded
+his Irish inheritance should affect him injuriously. Thus at least
+argued Mr. Die. But at this point Herbert seemed to have views of
+his own: he said that in the first place he must be with his mother;
+and then, in the next place, as it was now clear that he was not to
+throw up Castle Richmond--as it would not now behove him to allow
+any one else to call himself master there,--it would be his duty to
+reassume the place of master. "The onus probandi will now rest with
+them," he said, repeating Mr. Prendergast's words; and then he was
+ultimately successful in persuading even Mr. Die to agree that it
+would be better for him to go to Ireland than to remain in London,
+sipping the delicious honey of Chancery buttercups.
+
+"And you will assume the title, I suppose?" said Mr. Die.
+
+"Not, at any rate, till I get to Castle Richmond," he said,
+blushing. He had so completely abandoned all thought of being Sir
+Herbert Fitzgerald, that he had now almost felt ashamed of saying
+that he should so far presume as to call himself by that name.
+
+And then he and Mr. Prendergast went away and dined together,
+leaving Mr. Die to complete his legal work for the day. At this he
+would often sit till nine or ten, or even eleven in the evening,
+without any apparent ill results from such effects, and then go home
+to his dinner and port wine. He was already nearly seventy, and work
+seemed to have no effect on him. In what Medea's caldron is it that
+the great lawyers so cook themselves, that they are able to achieve
+half an immortality, even while the body still clings to the soul?
+Mr. Die, though he would talk of his bald head, had no idea of
+giving way to time. Superannuated! The men who think of
+superannuation at sixty are those whose lives have been idle, not
+they who have really buckled themselves to work. It is my opinion
+that nothing seasons the mind for endurance like hard work. Port
+wine should perhaps be added.
+
+It was not till Herbert once more found himself alone that he fully
+realized this new change in his position. He had dined with Mr.
+Prendergast at that gentleman's club, and had been specially called
+upon to enjoy himself, drinking as it were to his own restoration in
+large glasses of some special claret, which Mr. Prendergast assured
+him was very extraordinary.
+
+"You may be as satisfied as that you are sitting there that that's
+34," said he; "and I hardly know anywhere else that you'll get it."
+
+This assertion Herbert was not in the least inclined to dispute. In
+the first place, he was not quite clear what 34 meant, and then any
+other number, 32 or 36, would have suited his palate as well. But he
+drank the 34, and tried to look as though he appreciated it.
+
+"Our wines here are wonderfully cheap," said Mr. Prendergast,
+becoming confidential; "but nevertheless we have raised the price of
+that to twelve shillings. We'll have another bottle."
+
+During all this Herbert could hardly think of his own fate and
+fortune, though, indeed, he could hardly think of anything else. He
+was eager to be alone, that he might think, and was nearly
+broken-hearted when the second bottle of 34 made its appearance.
+Something, however, was arranged in those intercalary moments
+between the raising of the glasses. Mr. Prendergast said that he
+would write both to Owen Fitzgerald and to Mr. Somers; and it was
+agreed that Herbert should immediately return to Castle Richmond,
+merely giving his mother time to have notice of his coming.
+
+And then at last he got away, and started by himself for a night
+walk through the streets of London. It seemed to him now to be a
+month since he had arrived there; but in truth it was only on the
+yesterday that he had got out of the train at the Euston Station. He
+had come up, looking forward to live in London all his life, and now
+his London life was over,--unless, indeed, those other hopes should
+come back to him, unless he should appear again, not as a student in
+Mr. Die's chamber, but as one of the council of the legislature
+assembled to make laws for the governance of Mr. Die and of others.
+It was singular how greatly this episode in his life had humbled him
+in his own esteem. Six months ago he had thought himself almost too
+good for Castle Richmond, and had regarded a seat in Parliament as
+the only place which he could fitly fill without violation to his
+nature. But now he felt as though he should hardly dare to show
+himself within the walls of that assembly. He had been so knocked
+about by circumstances, so rudely toppled from his high place,--he
+had found it necessary to put himself so completely into the hands
+of other people, that his self-pride had all left him. That it would
+in fact return might be held as certain, but the lesson which he had
+learned would not altogether be thrown away upon him. At this
+moment, as I was saying, he felt himself to be completely humbled. A
+lie spoken by one of the meanest of God's creatures had turned him
+away from all his pursuits, and broken all his hopes; and now
+another word from this man was to restore him,--if only that other
+word should not appear to be the greater lie! and then that there
+should be such question as to his mother's name and fame--as to the
+very name by which she should now be called! that it should depend
+on the amount of infamy of which that wretch had been guilty,
+whether or no the woman whom in the world he most honoured was
+entitled to any share of respect from the world around her! That she
+was entitled to the respect of all good men, let the truth in these
+matters be where it might, Herbert knew, and all who heard the story
+would acknowledge. But respect is of two sorts, and the outer
+respect of the world cannot be parted with conveniently.
+
+He did acknowledge himself to be a humbled man,--more so than he had
+ever yet done, or had been like to do, while conscious of the loss
+which had fallen on him. It was at this moment when he began to
+perceive that his fortune would return to him, when he became aware
+that he was knocked about like a shuttlecock from a battledore, that
+his pride came by its first fall. Mollett was in truth the great
+man,--the Warwick who was to make and unmake the kings of Castle
+Richmond. A month ago, and it had pleased Earl Mollett to say that
+Owen Fitzgerald should reign; but there had been a turn upon the
+cards, and now he, King Herbert, was to be again installed.
+
+He walked down all alone through St. James's Street, and by Pall
+Mall and Charing Cross, feeling rather than thinking of all this.
+Those doubts of Mr. Die did not trouble him much. He fully believed
+that he should regain his title and property; or rather that he
+should never lose them. But he thought that he could never show
+himself about the country again as he had done before all this was
+known. In spite of his good fortune he was sad at heart, little
+conscious of the good that all this would do him.
+
+He went on by the Horse Guards and Treasury Chambers into Parliament
+Street, and so up to the new Houses of Parliament, and sauntered
+into Westminster Hall; and there, at the privileged door between the
+lamps on his left hand, he saw busy men going in and out, some slow
+and dignified, others hot, hasty, and anxious, and he felt as though
+the regions to and from which they passed must be far out of his
+reach. Could he aspire to pass those august lamp-posts, he whose
+very name depended on what in truth might have been the early doings
+of a low scoundrel who was now skulking from the law?
+
+And then he went on, and mounting by the public stairs and anterooms
+found his way to the lobby of the house. There he stood with his
+back to the ginger-beer stall, moody and melancholy, looking on as
+men in the crowd pushed forward to speak to members whom they knew,
+or, as it sometimes appeared, to members whom they did not know.
+There was somewhat of interest going on in the house, for the throng
+was thick, and ordinary men sometimes jostled themselves on into the
+middle of the hall--with impious steps, for on those centre stones
+none but legislators should presume to stand.
+
+"Stand back, gentlemen, stand back; back a little, if you please,
+sir," said a very courteous but peremptory policeman, so moving the
+throng that Herbert, who had been behind, in no way anxious for a
+forward place, or for distinguishing nods from passing members,
+found himself suddenly in the front rank, in the immediate
+neighbourhood of a cluster of young senators who were cooling
+themselves in the lobby after the ardour of the debate.
+
+"It was as pretty a thing as ever I saw in my life," said one, "and
+beautifully ridden." Surely it must have been the Spring Meeting and
+not the debate that they were discussing.
+
+"I don't know much about that," said another, and the voice sounded
+on Herbert's ears as it might almost be the voice of a brother. "I
+know I lost the odds. But I'll have a bottle of soda-water. Hallo,
+Fitzgerald! Why--;" and then the young member stopped himself, for
+Herbert Fitzgerald's story was rife about London at this time.
+
+"How do you do, Moulsey?" said Herbert, very glumly, for he did not
+at all like being recognized. This was Lord Moulsey, the eldest son
+of the Earl of Hampton Court, who was now member for the River
+Regions, and had been one of Herbert's most intimate friends at
+Oxford.
+
+"I did not exactly expect to see you here," said Lord Moulsey,
+drawing him apart. "And upon my soul I was never so cut up in my
+life as when I heard all that. Is it true?"
+
+"True! why no;--it was true, but I don't think it is. That is to
+say--upon my word I don't know. It's all unsettled--Good evening to
+you." And again nodding his head at his old friend in a very sombre
+manner, he skulked off and made his way out of Westminster Hall.
+
+"Do you know who that was?" said Lord Moulsey, going back to his
+ally. "That was young Fitzgerald, the poor fellow who has been done
+out of his title and all his property. You have heard about his
+mother, haven't you?"
+
+"Was that young Fitzgerald?" said the other senator, apparently more
+interested in this subject than he had even been about the pretty
+riding. "I wish I'd looked at him. Poor fellow! How does he bear
+it?"
+
+"Upon my word, then, I never saw a fellow so changed in my life. He
+and I were like brothers, but he would hardly speak to me. Perhaps I
+ought to have written to him. But he says it's not settled."
+
+"Oh, that's all gammon. It's settled enough. Why, they've given up
+the place. I heard all about it the other day from Sullivan O'Leary.
+They are not even making any fight. Sullivan O'Leary says they are
+the greatest fools in the world."
+
+"Upon my word I think young Fitzgerald was mad just now. His manner
+was so very odd."
+
+"I shouldn't wonder. I know I should go mad if my mother turned out
+to be somebody else's wife." And then they both sauntered away.
+
+Herbert was doubly angry with himself as he made his way down into
+the noble old hall,--angry that he had gone where there was a
+possibility of his being recognized, and angry also that he had
+behaved himself with so little presence of mind when he was
+recognized. He felt that he had been taken aback, that he had been
+beside himself, and unable to maintain his own dignity; he had run
+away from his old intimate friend because he had been unable to bear
+being looked on as the hero of a family tragedy. "He would go back
+to Ireland," he said to himself, "and he would never leave it again.
+Perhaps he might teach himself there to endure the eyes and voices
+of men around him. Nothing at any rate should induce him to come
+again to London." And so he went home to bed in a mood by no means
+so happy as might have been expected from the result of the day's
+doings. And yet he had been cheerful enough when he went to Mr.
+Die's chambers in the morning.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLII
+
+ANOTHER JOURNEY
+
+
+On the following day he did go back to Ireland, stopping a night in
+Dublin on the road, so that his mother might receive his letter, and
+that his cousin and Somers might receive those written by Mr.
+Prendergast. He spent one night in Dublin, and then went on, so that
+he might arrive at Castle Richmond after dark. In his present mood
+he dreaded to be seen returning, even by his own people about the
+place.
+
+At Buttevant he was met by his own car and by Richard, as he had
+desired; but he found that he was utterly frustrated as to that
+method of seating himself in his vehicle which he had promised to
+himself. He was still glum and gloomy enough when the coach stopped,
+for he had been all alone, thinking over many things--thinking of
+his father's death and his mother's early life--of all that he had
+suffered and might yet have to suffer, and above all things dreading
+the consciousness that men were talking of him and staring at him.
+In this mood he was preparing to leave the coach when he found
+himself approaching near to that Buttevant stage; but he had more to
+go through at present than he expected.
+
+"There's his honour--Hurrah! God bless his sweet face that's come
+among us agin this day! Hurrah for Sir Herbert, boys! hurrah! The
+rail ould Fitzgerald 'll be back agin among us, glory be to God and
+the Blessed Virgin! Hurrah for Sir Herbert!" and then there was a
+shout that seemed to be repeated all down the street of Buttevant.
+
+But that was nothing to what was coming. Herbert, when he first
+heard this, retreated for a moment back into the coach. But there
+was little use in that. It was necessary that he should descend, and
+had he not done so he would have been dragged out. He put his foot
+on the steps, and then found himself seized in the arms of a man
+outside, and pressed and embraced as though he had been a baby.
+
+"Ugh, ugh, ugh!" exclaimed a voice, the owner of which intended to
+send forth notes of joy; but so overcome was he by the intensity of
+his own feelings that he was in nowise able to moderate his voice
+either for joy or sorrow.
+
+"Ugh, ugh, ugh! Eh! Sir Herbert! but it's I that am proud to see yer
+honour this day,--wid yer ouwn name, wid yer ouwn name. Glory be to
+God; oh dear! oh dear! And I knew the Lord'd niver forgit us that
+way, and let the warld go intirely wrong like that. For av you
+weren't the masther, Sir Herbert, as you are, the Lord presarve you
+to us, divil a masther'd iver be able to hould a foot in Castle
+Richmond, and that's God's ouwn thruth."
+
+"And that's thrue for you, Richard," said another, whom Herbert in
+the confusion could not recognize, though his voice was familiar to
+him. "'Deed and the boys had it all made out. But what matthers now
+Sir Herbert's back?"
+
+"And God bless the day and the hour that he came to us!" And then
+leaving his master's arm and coat to which he had still stuck, he
+began to busy himself loudly about the travelling gear. "Coachman,
+where's Sir Herbert's port-mantel? Yes; that's Sir Herbert's
+hat-box. 'Deed an' I ought to know it well. And the black bag; yes,
+that'll be Sir Herbert's, to be sure," and so on.
+
+Nor was this all. The name seemed to run like wildfire through all
+the Buttevantians there assembled; and no sound seemed to reach our
+hero's name but that of Sir Herbert, Sir Herbert. Everybody took
+hold of him, and kissed his hand, and pulled his skirts, and stroked
+his face. His hat was knocked off, and put on again amid thousands
+of blessings. It was nearly dark, and his eyes were dazed by the
+coach lanterns which were carried about, so that he could hardly see
+his friends; but the one sound which was dinned into his ears was
+that of Sir Herbert, Sir Herbert.
+
+Had he thought about it when starting from Dublin early that morning
+he would have said that it would have killed him to have heard
+himself so greeted in the public street, but as it was he found that
+he got over it very easily. Before he was well seated on his car it
+may be questioned whether he was not so used to his name, that he
+would have been startled to hear himself designated as Mr.
+Fitzgerald. For half a minute he had been wretched, and had felt a
+disgust at poor Richard which he thought at the moment would be
+insuperable; but when he was on the car, and the poor fellow came
+round to tuck the apron in under his feet, he could not help giving
+him his hand, and fraternizing with him.
+
+"And how is my mother, Richard?"
+
+"'Deed then, Sir Herbert, me lady is surprising--very quiet-like;
+but her leddyship was always that, and as sweet to them as comes
+nigh her as flowers in May; but sure that's nathural to her
+leddyship."
+
+"And, Richard--"
+
+"Yes, Sir Herbert."
+
+"Was Mr. Owen over at Castle Richmond since I left?"
+
+"Sorrow a foot, Sir Herbert. Nor no one ain't heard on him, nor seen
+him. And I will say this on him--"
+
+"Don't say anything against him, Richard."
+
+"No, surely not, seeing he is yer honour's far-away cousin, Sir
+Herbert. But what I war going to say warn't agin Mr. Owen at all, at
+all. For they do say that cart-ropes wouldn't have dragged him to
+Castle Richmond; and that only yer honour has come back to yer
+own,--and why not?--there wouldn't have been any masther in Castle
+Richmond at all, at all. That's what they do say."
+
+"There's no knowing how it will go yet, Richard."
+
+"'Deed, an' I know how it 'll go very well, Sir Herbert, and so does
+Mr. Somers, God bless him! 'Twas only this morning he tould me. An',
+faix, it's he has the right to be glad."
+
+"He is a very old friend."
+
+"So is we all ould frinds, an' we're all glad--out of our skins wid
+gladness, Sir Herbert. 'Deed an' I thought the eend of the warld had
+come when I heerd it, for my head went round and round and round as
+I stood in the stable, and only for the fork I had a hould of, I'd
+have been down among the crathur's legs."
+
+And then it struck Herbert that as they were going on he heard the
+footsteps of some one running after the car, always at an equal
+distance behind them. "Who's that running, Richard?"
+
+"Sure an' that's just Larry Carson, yer honour's own boy, that minds
+yer honour's own nag, Sir Herbert. But, faix, I suppose ye'll be
+having a dozen of 'em now."
+
+"Stop and take him up; you've room there."
+
+"Room enough, Sir Herbert, an' yer honour's so good. Here, Larry,
+yer born fool, Sir Herbert says ye're to get up. He would come over,
+Sir Herbert, just to say he'd been the first to see yer honour."
+
+"God--bless--yer honour--Sir Herbert," exclaimed the poor fellow,
+out of breath, as he took his seat. It was his voice that Sir
+Herbert had recognized among the crowd, angry enough at that moment.
+But in future days it was remembered in Larry Carson's favour, that
+he had come over to Castle Richmond to see his master, contented to
+run the whole road back to Castle Richmond behind the car. A better
+fate, however, was his, for he made one in the triumphal entry up
+the avenue.
+
+When they got to the lodge it was quite dark--so dark that even
+Richard, who was experienced in night-driving, declared that a cat
+could not see. However, they turned in at the great gates without
+any accident, the accustomed woman coming out to open them.
+
+"An' is his honour there thin?" said the woman; "and may God bless
+you, Sir Herbert, and ye're welcome back to yer own; so ye are!"
+
+And then a warm large hand was laid upon his leg, and a warm voice
+sounded greeting in his ear. "Herbert, my boy, how are you? This is
+well, is it not?" It was Mr. Somers who had been waiting there for
+him at the lodge gate.
+
+Upon the whole he could not but acknowledge to himself that it was
+well. Mr. Somers got up beside him on the car, so that by this time
+it was well laden. "And how does my mother take it?" Herbert asked.
+
+"Very quietly. Your Aunt Letty told me that she had spent most of
+her time in prayer since she heard it. But Miss Letty seems to think
+that on your account she is very full of joy."
+
+"And the girls?"
+
+"Oh! the girls--what girls? Well, they must answer for themselves; I
+left them about half an hour ago, and now you hear their voices in
+the porch."
+
+He did hear the voices in the porch plainly, though he could not
+distinguish them, as the horse's feet and the car wheels rattled
+over the gravel. But as the car stopped at the door with somewhat of
+a crash, he heard Emmeline say, "There's Herbert," and then as he
+got down they all retreated in among the lights in the hall.
+
+"God bless your honour, Sir Herbert. An' it's you that are welcome
+back this blessed night to Castle Richmond." Such and such like were
+the greetings which met him from twenty different voices as he
+essayed to enter the house. Every servant and groom about the place
+was there, and some few of the nearest tenants,--of those who had
+lived near enough to hear the glad tidings since the morning. A
+dozen, at any rate, took his hands as he strove to make his way
+through them, and though he was never quite sure about it, he
+believed that one or two had kissed him in the dark. At last he
+found himself in the hall, and even then the first person who got
+hold of him was Mrs. Jones.
+
+"And so you've come back to us after all, Mr. Herbert--Sir Herbert I
+should say, begging your pardon, sir; and it's all right about my
+lady. I never thought to be so happy again, never--never--never."
+And then she retreated with her apron up to her eyes, leaving him in
+the arms of Aunt Letty.
+
+"The Lord giveth, and the Lord taketh away. Blessed be the name of
+the Lord. Oh! Herbert, my darling boy. I hope this may be a lesson
+and a warning to you, so that you may flee from the wrath to come."
+Aunt Letty, had time been allowed to her, would certainly have
+shown that the evil had all come from tampering with papistical
+abominations; and that the returning prosperity of the house of
+Castle Richmond was due to Protestant energy and truth. But much
+time was not allowed to Aunt Letty, as Herbert hurried on after his
+sisters.
+
+As he had advanced they had retreated, and now he heard them in the
+drawing-room. He began to be conscious that they were not alone,--
+that they had some visitor with them, and began to be conscious also
+who that visitor was. And when he got himself at last into the room,
+sure enough there were three girls there, two running forward to
+meet him from the fireplace to which they had retreated, and the
+other lingering a little in their rear.
+
+"Oh, Herbert!" and "oh, Herbert!" and then their arms were thrown
+about his neck, and their warm kisses were on his cheeks--kisses
+not unmixed with tears; for of course they began to cry immediately
+that he was with them, though their eyes had been dry enough for the
+two or three hours before. Their arms were about his neck, and their
+kisses on his cheeks, I have said,--meaning thereby the arms and
+kisses of his sisters, for the third young lady still lingered a
+little in the rear.
+
+"Was it not lucky Clara was here when the news came to us this
+morning?" said Mary.
+
+"Such difficulty as we have had to get her," said Emmeline. "It was
+to have been her farewell visit to us; but we will have no more
+farewells now; will we, Clara?"
+
+And now at last he had his arm round her waist, or as near to that
+position as he was destined to get it on the present occasion. She
+gave him her hand, and let him hold that fast, and smiled on him
+through her soft tears, and was gracious to him with her sweet words
+and pleasant looks; but she would not come forward and kiss him
+boldly as she had done when last they had met at Desmond Court. He
+attempted it now; but he could get his lips no nearer to hers than
+her forehead; and when he tried to hold her she slipped away from
+him, and he continually found himself in the embraces of his
+sisters,--which was not the same thing at all. "Never mind," he said
+to himself; "his day would soon come round."
+
+"You did not expect to find Clara here, did you?" asked Emmeline.
+
+"I hardly know what I have expected, or not expected, for the last
+two days. No, certainly, I had no hope of seeing her to-night."
+
+"I trust I am not in the way," said Clara.
+
+Whereupon he made another attempt with his arm, but when he thought
+he had caught his prize, Emmeline was again within his grasp.
+
+"And my mother?" he then said. It must be remembered that he had
+only yet been in the room for three minutes, though his little
+efforts have taken longer than that in the telling.
+
+"She is upstairs, and you are to go to her. But I told her that we
+should keep you for a quarter of an hour, and you have not been here
+half that time yet."
+
+"And how has she borne all this?"
+
+"Why, well on the whole. When first she heard it this morning, which
+she did before any of us, you know--"
+
+"Oh yes, I wrote to her."
+
+"But your letter told her nothing. Mr. Somers came down almost as
+soon as your letter was here. He had heard also--from Mr.
+Prendergast, I think it was, and Mr. Prendergast said a great deal
+more than you did."
+
+"Well?"
+
+"We thought she was going to be ill at first, for she became so very
+pale,--flushing up sometimes for half a minute or so; but after an
+hour or two she became quite calm. She has seen nobody since but us
+and Aunt Letty."
+
+"She saw me," said Clara.
+
+"Oh yes, you; you are one of us now,--just the same as ourselves,
+isn't she, Herbert?"
+
+Not exactly the same, Herbert thought. And then he went upstairs to
+his mother.
+
+This interview I will not attempt to describe. Lady Fitzgerald had
+become a stricken woman from the first moment that she had heard
+that that man had returned to life, who in her early girlhood had
+come to her as a suitor. Nay, this had been so from the first moment
+that she had expected his return. And these misfortunes had come
+upon her so quickly that, though they had not shattered her in body
+and mind as they had shattered her husband, nevertheless they had
+told terribly on her heart. The coming of those men, the agony of
+Sir Thomas, the telling of the story as it had been told to her by
+Mr. Prendergast, the resolve to abandon everything--even a name by
+which she might be called, as far as she herself was concerned, the
+death of her husband, and then the departure of her ruined son, had,
+one may say, been enough to destroy the spirit of any woman. Her
+spirit they had not utterly destroyed. Her powers of endurance were
+great,--and she had endured, still hoping. But as the uttermost
+malice of adversity had not been able altogether to depress her, so
+neither did returning prosperity exalt her,--as far as she herself
+was concerned. She rejoiced for her children greatly, thanking God
+that she had not entailed on them an existence without a name. But
+for herself, as she now told Herbert, outside life was all over. Her
+children and the poor she might still have with her, but beyond,
+nothing in this world,--to them would be confined all her wishes on
+this side the grave.
+
+But nevertheless she could be warm in her greetings to her son. She
+could understand that though she were dead to the world he need not
+be so,--nor indeed ought to be so. Things that were now all ending
+with her were but beginning with him. She had no feeling that taught
+her to think that it was bad for him to be a man of rank and
+fortune, the head of his family, and the privileged one of his race.
+It had been perhaps her greatest misery that she, by her doing, had
+placed him in the terrible position which he had lately been called
+upon to fill.
+
+"Dearest mother, it did not make me unhappy," he said, caressing
+her.
+
+"You bore it like a man, Herbert, as I shall ever remember. But it
+did make me unhappy,--more unhappy than it should have done, when
+we remember how very short is our time here below."
+
+He remained with his mother for more than an hour, and then returned
+to the drawing-room, where the girls were waiting for him with the
+tea-things arranged before them.
+
+"I was very nearly coming up to fetch you," said Mary, "only that we
+knew how much mamma must have to say to you."
+
+"We dined early because we are all so upset," said Emmeline; "and
+Clara must be dying for her tea."
+
+"And why should Clara die for tea any more than any one else?" asked
+Lady Clara herself.
+
+I will not venture to say what hour it was before they separated for
+bed. They sat there with their feet over the fender, talking about
+things gone and things coming,--and there were so many of such
+things for them to discuss! Even yet, as one of the girls remarked,
+Lady Desmond had not heard of the last change, or if she had so
+heard, had had no time to communicate with her daughter upon the
+subject.
+
+And then Owen was spoken of with the warmest praise by them all, and
+Clara explained openly what had been the full tenor of his intended
+conduct.
+
+"That would have been impossible," said Herbert.
+
+"But it was not the less noble in him, was it?" said Clara, eagerly.
+But she did not tell how Owen Fitzgerald had prayed that her love
+might be given back to him, as his reward for what he wished to do
+on behalf of his cousin. Now, at least, at this moment it was not
+told; yet the day did come when all that was described,--a day when
+Owen in his absence was regarded by them both among the dearest of
+their friends.
+
+But even on that night Clara resolved that he should have some meed
+of praise. "Has he not been noble?" she said, appealing to him who
+was to be her husband; "has he not been very noble?"
+
+Herbert, too happy to be jealous, acknowledged that it was so.
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLIII
+
+PLAYING ROUNDERS
+
+
+My story is nearly at its close, and all readers will now know how
+it is to end. Those difficulties raised by Mr. Die were all made to
+vanish; and though he implored Mr. Prendergast over and over again
+to go about this business with a moderated eagerness, that gentleman
+would not consent to let any grass grow under his heels till he had
+made assurance doubly sure, and had seen Herbert Fitzgerald firmly
+seated on his throne. All that the women in Spinny Lane had told him
+was quite true. The register was found in the archives of the parish
+of Putney, and Mr. Prendergast was able to prove that Mr. Matthew
+Mollett, now of Spinny Lane, and the Mr. Matthew Mollett then
+designated as of Newmarket in Cambridgeshire, were one and the same
+person; therefore Mr. Mollett's marriage with Miss Wainwright was no
+marriage, and therefore, also, the marriage between Sir Thomas
+Fitzgerald and that lady was a true marriage; all which things will
+now be plain to any novel-reading capacity, mean as such capacity
+may be in respect to legal law.
+
+And I have only further to tell in respect to this part of my story,
+that the Molletts, both father and son, escaped all punishments for
+the frauds and villanies related in these pages--except such
+punishment as these frauds and villanies, acting by their own innate
+destructive forces and poisons, brought down upon their unfortunate
+heads. For so allowing them to escape I shall be held by many to
+have been deficient in sound teaching. "What!" men will say, "not
+punish your evil principle! Allow the prevailing evil genius of your
+book to escape scot free, without administering any of that condign
+punishment which it would have been so easy for you to allot to
+them! Had you not treadmills to your hand, and all manner of new
+prison disciplines? Should not Matthew have repented in the
+sackcloth of solitary confinement, and Aby have munched and crunched
+between his teeth the bitter ashes of prison bread and water? Nay,
+for such offences as those did you wot of no penal settlements? Were
+not Portland and Spike Islands gaping for them? Had you no memory of
+Dartmoor and the Bermudas?"
+
+Gentle readers, no; not in this instance shall Spike Island or the
+Bermudas be asked to give us their assistance. There is a sackcloth
+harsher to the skin than that of the penal settlement, and ashes
+more bitter in the crunching than convict rations. It would be sad
+indeed if we thought that those rascals who escape the law escape
+also the just reward of their rascality. May it not rather be
+believed that the whole life of the professional rascal is one long
+wretched punishment, to which, if he could but know it, the rations
+and comparative innocence of Bermuda would be so preferable? Is he
+not always rolling the stone of Sysiphus, gyrating on the wheel of
+Ixion, hankering after the waters of Tantalus, filling the sieves of
+the daughters of Danaus? He pours into his sieve stolen corn beyond
+measure, but no grain will stay there. He lifts to his lips rich
+cups, but Rhadamanthus the policeman allows him no moment for a
+draught. The wheel of justice is ever going, while his poor hanging
+head is in a whirl. The stone which he rolls never perches for a
+moment at the top of the hill, for the trade which he follows admits
+of no rest. Have I not said truly that he is hunted like a fox,
+driven from covert to covert with his poor empty craving belly?
+prowling about through the wet night, he returns with his prey, and
+finds that he is shut out from his lair; his bloodshot eye is ever
+over his shoulder, and his advanced foot is ever ready for a start;
+he stinks in the nostrils of the hounds of the law, and is held by
+all men to be vermin.
+
+One would say that the rascal, if he but knew the truth, would look
+forward to Spike Island and the Bermudas with impatience and
+raptures. The cold, hungry, friendless, solitary doom of unconvicted
+rascaldom has ever seemed to me to be the most wretched phase of
+human existence,--that phase of living in which the liver can trust
+no one, and be trusted by none; in which the heart is ever quailing
+at the policeman's hat, and the eye ever shrinking from the
+policeman's gaze. The convict does trust his gaoler, at any rate his
+master gaoler, and in so doing is not all wretched. It is Bill Sikes
+before conviction that I have ever pitied. Any man can endure to be
+hanged; but how can any man have taken that Bill Sikes' walk and
+have lived through it?
+
+To such punishments will we leave the Molletts, hoping of the elder
+one, that under the care of those ministering angels in Spinny Lane,
+his heart may yet be softened; hoping also for the younger one that
+some ministering angel may be appointed also for his aid. 'Tis a
+grievous piece of work though, that of a ministering angel to such a
+soul as his. And now, having seen them so far on their mortal
+career, we will take our leave of both of them.
+
+Mr. Prendergast's object in sparing them was of course that of
+saving Lady Fitzgerald from the terrible pain of having her name
+brought forward at any trial. She never spoke of this, even to
+Herbert, allowing those in whom she trusted to manage those things
+for her without an expression of anxiety on her own part; but she
+was not the less thankful when she found that no public notice was
+to be taken of the matter.
+
+Very shortly after Herbert's return to Castle Richmond, it was
+notified to him that he need have no fear as to his inheritance; and
+it was so notified with the great additional comfort of an assuring
+opinion from Mr. Die. He then openly called himself Sir Herbert,
+took upon himself the property which became his by right of the
+entail, and issued orders for the preparation of his marriage
+settlement. During this period he saw Owen Fitzgerald; but he did so
+in the presence of Mr. Somers, and not a word was then said about
+Lady Clara Desmond. Both the gentlemen, Herbert and Mr. Somers,
+cordially thanked the master of Hap House for the way in which he
+had behaved to the Castle Richmond family, and in reference to the
+Castle Richmond property during the terrible events of the last two
+months; but Owen took their thanks somewhat haughtily. He shook
+hands warmly enough with his cousin, wishing him joy on the
+arrangement of his affairs, and was at first less distant than usual
+with Mr. Somers; but when they alluded to his own conduct, and
+expressed their gratitude, he declared that he had done nothing for
+which thanks were due, and that he begged it to be understood that
+he laid claim to no gratitude. Had he acted otherwise, he said, he
+would have deserved to be kicked out of the presence of all honest
+men; and to be thanked for the ordinary conduct of a gentleman was
+almost an insult. This he said looking chiefly at Mr. Somers, and
+then turning to his cousin, he asked him if he intended to remain in
+the country.
+
+"Oh, certainly," said Herbert.
+
+"I shall not," said Owen; "and if you know any one who will take a
+lease of Hap House for ten or twelve years, I shall be glad to find
+a tenant."
+
+"And you, where are you going?"
+
+"To Africa in the first instance," said he; "there seems to be some
+good hunting there, and I think that I shall try it."
+
+The new tidings were not long in reaching Desmond Court, and the
+countess was all alone when she first heard them. With very great
+difficulty, taking as it were the bit between her teeth, Clara had
+managed to get over to Castle Richmond that she might pay a last
+visit to the Fitzgerald girls. At this time Lady Desmond's mind was
+in a terribly distracted state. The rumour was rife about the
+country that Owen had refused to accept the property; and the
+countess herself had of course been made aware that he had so
+refused. But she was too keenly awake to the affairs of the world to
+suppose that such a refusal could continue long in force; neither,
+as she knew well, could Herbert accept of that which was offered to
+him. It might be that for some years to come the property might be
+unenjoyed; the rich fruit might fall rotten from the wall; but what
+would that avail to her or to her child? Herbert would still be a
+nameless man, and could never be master of Castle Richmond.
+
+Nevertheless Clara carried her point, and went over to her friends,
+leaving the countess all alone. She had now permitted her son to
+return to Eton, finding that he was powerless to aid her. The young
+earl was quite willing that his sister should marry Owen Fitzgerald;
+but he was not willing to use any power of persuasion that he might
+have, in what his mother considered a useful or legitimate manner.
+He talked of rewarding Owen for his generosity; but Clara would have
+nothing to do either with the generosity or with the reward. And so
+Lady Desmond was left alone, hearing that even Owen, Owen himself,
+had now given up the quest, and feeling that it was useless to have
+any further hope. "She will make her own bed," the countess said to
+herself, "and she must lie on it."
+
+And then came this rumour that after all Herbert was to be the man.
+It first reached her ears about the same time that Herbert arrived
+at his own house, but it did so in such a manner as to make but
+little impression at the moment. Lady Desmond had but few gossips,
+and in a general way heard but little of what was doing in the
+country. On this occasion the Caleb Balderston of her house came in,
+making stately bows to his mistress, and with low voice, and eyes
+wide open, told her what a gossoon running over from Castle Richmond
+had reported in the kitchen of Desmond Court. "At any rate, my lady,
+Mr. Herbert is expected this evening at the house;" and then Caleb
+Balderston, bowing stately again, left the room. This did not make
+much impression, but it made some.
+
+And then on the following day Clara wrote to her: this she did after
+deep consideration and much consultation with her friends. It would
+be unkind, they argued, to leave Lady Desmond in ignorance on such a
+subject; and therefore a note was written very guardedly, the joint
+production of the three, in which, with the expression of many
+doubts, it was told that perhaps after all Herbert might yet be the
+man. But even then the countess did not believe it.
+
+But during the next week the rumour became a fact through the
+country, and everybody knew, even the Countess of Desmond, that all
+that family history was again changed. Lady Fitzgerald, whom they
+had all known, was Lady Fitzgerald still, and Herbert was once more
+on his throne. When rumours thus became a fact, there was no longer
+any doubt about the matter. The countryside did not say that,
+"perhaps after all so and so would go in such and such a way," or
+that "legal doubts having been entertained, the gentlemen of the
+long robe were about to do this and that." By the end of the first
+week the affair was as surely settled in county Cork as though the
+line of the Fitzgeralds had never been disturbed; and Sir Herbert
+was fully seated on his throne.
+
+It was well then for poor Owen that he had never assumed the regalia
+of royalty: had he done so his fall would have been very dreadful;
+as it was, not only were all those pangs spared to him, but he
+achieved at once an immense popularity through the whole country.
+Everybody called him poor Owen, and declared how well he had
+behaved. Some expressed almost a regret that his generosity should
+go unrewarded, and others went so far as to give him his reward: he
+was to marry Emmeline Fitzgerald, they said at the clubs in Cork,
+and a considerable slice of the property was destined to give
+additional charms to the young lady's hand and heart. For a month or
+so Owen Fitzgerald was the most popular man in the south of Ireland;
+that is, as far as a man can be popular who never shows himself.
+
+And the countess had to answer her daughter's letter. "If this be
+so," she said, "of course I shall be well pleased. My anxiety has
+been only for your welfare, to further which I have been willing to
+make any possible sacrifice." Clara when she read this did not know
+what sacrifice had been made, nor had the countess thought as she
+wrote the words what had been the sacrifice to which she had thus
+alluded, though her heart was ever conscious of it, unconsciously.
+And the countess sent her love to them all at Castle Richmond. "She
+did not fear," she said, "that they would misinterpret her. Lady
+Fitzgerald, she was sure, would perfectly understand that she had
+endeavoured to do her duty by her child." It was by no means a bad
+letter, and, which was better, was in the main a true letter.
+According to her light she had striven to do her duty, and her
+conduct was not misjudged, at any rate at Castle Richmond.
+
+"You must not think harshly of mamma," said Clara to her future
+mother-in-law.
+
+"Oh no," said Lady Fitzgerald. "I certainly do not think harshly of
+her. In her position I should probably have acted as she has done."
+The difference, however, between them was this, that it was all but
+impossible that Lady Fitzgerald should not sympathize with her
+children, while it was almost impossible that the Countess Desmond
+should do so.
+
+And so Lady Desmond remained all alone at Desmond Court, brooding
+over the things as they now were. For the present it was better that
+Clara should remain at Castle Richmond, and nothing therefore was
+said of her return on either side. She could not add to her mother's
+comfort at home, and why should she not remain happy where she was?
+She was already a Fitzgerald in heart rather than a Desmond; and was
+it not well that she should be so? If she could love Herbert
+Fitzgerald, that was well also. Since the day on which he had
+appeared at Desmond Court, wet and dirty and wretched, with a broken
+spirit and fortunes as draggled as his dress, he had lost all claim
+to be a hero in the estimation of Lady Desmond. To her those only
+were heroes whose pride and spirit were never draggled; and such a
+hero there still was in her close neighbourhood.
+
+Lady Desmond herself was a woman of a mercenary spirit; so at least
+it will be said and thought of her. But she was not altogether so,
+although the two facts were strong against her that she had sold
+herself for a title, and had been willing to sell her daughter for a
+fortune. Poverty she herself had endured upon the whole with
+patience; and though she hated and scorned it from her very soul,
+she would now have given herself in marriage to a poor man without
+rank or station,--she, a countess, and the mother of an earl; and
+that she would have done with all the romantic love of a girl of
+sixteen, though she was now a woman verging upon forty!
+
+Men and women only know so much of themselves and others as
+circumstances and their destiny have allowed to appear. Had it
+perchance fallen to thy lot, O my forensic friend, heavy laden with
+the wisdom of the law, to write tales such as this of mine, how
+charmingly might not thy characters have come forth upon the
+canvas--how much more charmingly than I can limn them! While, on the
+other hand, ignorant as thou now tellest me that I am of the very
+alphabet of the courts, had thy wig been allotted to me, I might
+have gathered guineas thick as daisies in summer, while to thee
+perhaps they come no faster than snow-drops in the early spring. It
+is all in our destiny. Chance had thrown that terrible earl in the
+way of the poor girl in her early youth, and she had married him.
+She had married him, and all idea of love had flown from her heart.
+All idea of love, but not all the capacity--as now within this last
+year or two she had learned, so much to her cost.
+
+Long months had passed since she had first owned this to herself,
+since she had dared to tell herself that it was possible even for
+her to begin the world again, and to play the game which women love
+to play, once at least before they die. She could have worshipped
+this man, and sat at his feet, and endowed him in her heart with
+heroism, and given him her soft brown hair to play with when it
+suited her Hercules to rest from his labours. She could have
+forgotten her years, and have forgotten too the children who had now
+grown up to seize the world from beneath her feet--to seize it
+before she herself had enjoyed it. She could have forgotten all that
+was past, and have been every whit as young as her own daughter. If
+only--!
+
+It is so, I believe, with most of us who have begun to turn the
+hill. I myself could go on to that common that is at this moment
+before me, and join that game of rounders with the most intense
+delight. "By George! you fellow, you've no eyes; didn't you see that
+he hadn't put his foot in the hole. He'll get back now that
+long-backed, hard-hitting chap, and your side is done for the next
+half-hour!" But then they would all be awestruck for a while; and
+after that, when they grew to be familiar with me, they would laugh
+at me because I loomed large in my running, and returned to my
+ground scant of breath. Alas, alas! I know that it would not do. So
+I pass by, imperious in my heavy manhood, and one of the lads
+respectfully abstains from me though the ball is under my very feet.
+
+But then I have had my game of rounders. No horrible old earl with
+gloating eyes carried me off in my childhood and robbed me of the
+pleasure of my youth. That part of my cake has been eaten, and, in
+spite of some occasional headache, has been digested not altogether
+unsatisfactorily. Lady Desmond had as yet been allowed no slice of
+her cake. She had never yet taken her side in any game of rounders.
+But she too had looked on and seen how jocund was the play; she also
+had acknowledged that that running in the ring, that stout hitting
+of the ball, that innocent craft, that bringing back by her own
+skill and with her own hand of some long-backed fellow, would be
+pleasant to her as well as to others. If only she now could be
+chosen in at that game! But what if the side that she cared for
+would not have her?
+
+But tempus edax rerum, though it had hardly nibbled at her heart or
+wishes, had been feeding on the freshness of her brow and the bloom
+of her lips. The child with whom she would have loved to play kept
+aloof from her too, and would not pick up the ball when it rolled to
+his feet. All this, if one thinks of it, is hard to bear. It is very
+hard to have had no period for rounders, not to be able even to look
+back to one's games, and to talk of them to one's old comrades! "But
+why then did she allow herself to be carried off by the wicked
+wrinkled earl with the gloating eyes?" asks of me the prettiest girl
+in the world, just turned eighteen. Oh heavens! Is it not possible
+that one should have one more game of rounders? Quite impossible, O
+my fat friend! And therefore I answer the young lady somewhat
+grimly. "Take care that thou also art not carried off by a wrinkled
+earl. Is thy heart free from all vanity? Of what nature is the
+heroism that thou worshippest?" "A nice young man!" she says,
+boldly, though in words somewhat different. "If so it will be well
+for thee; but did I not see thine eyes hankering the other day after
+the precious stones of Ophir, and thy mouth watering for the
+flesh-pots of Egypt? Was I not watching thee as thou sattest at that
+counter, so frightfully intent? Beware!"
+
+"The grumpy old fellow with the bald head!" she said shortly
+afterwards to her bosom friend, not careful that her words should be
+duly inaudible.
+
+Some idea that all was not yet over with her had come upon her poor
+heart,--upon Lady Desmond's heart, soon after Owen Fitzgerald had
+made himself familiar in her old mansion. We have read how that idea
+was banished, and how she had ultimately resolved that that man whom
+she could have loved herself should be given up to her own child
+when she thought that he was no longer poor and of low rank. She
+could not sympathize with her daughter,--love with her love, and
+rejoice with her joy; but she could do her duty by her, and
+according to her lights she endeavoured so to do.
+
+But now again all was turned and changed and altered. Owen of Hap
+House was once more Owen of Hap House only, but still in her eyes
+heroic, as it behoved a man to be. He would not creep about the
+country with moaning voice and melancholy eyes, with draggled dress
+and outward signs of wretchedness. He might be wretched, but he
+would still be manly. Could it be possible that to her should yet be
+given the privilege of soothing that noble, unbending wretchedness?
+By no means possible, poor, heart-laden countess; thy years are all
+against thee. Girls whose mouths will water unduly for the
+flesh-pots of Egypt must in after life undergo such penalties as
+these. Art thou not a countess?
+
+But not so did she answer herself. Might it not be possible? Ah,
+might it not be possible? And as the question was even then being
+asked, perhaps for the ten thousandth time, Owen Fitzgerald stood
+before her. She had not yet seen him since the new news had gone
+abroad, and had hardly yet conceived how it might be possible that
+she should do so. But now as she thought of him there he was. They
+two were together,--alone together; and the door by which he had
+entered had closed upon him before she was aware of his presence.
+
+"Owen Fitzgerald!" she said, starting up and giving him both her
+hands. This she did, not of judgment, nor yet from passion, but of
+impulse. She had been thinking of him with such kindly thoughts, and
+now he was there it became natural that her greeting should be
+kindly. It was more so than it had ever been to any but her son
+since the wrinkled, gloating earl had come and fetched her.
+
+"Yes, Owen Fitzgerald," said he, taking the two hands that were
+offered to him, and holding them awhile; not pressing them as a man
+who loved her, who could have loved her, would have done. "After all
+that has gone and passed between us, Lady Desmond, I cannot leave
+the country without saying one word of farewell to you."
+
+"Leave the country!" she exclaimed. "And where are you going?"
+
+As she looked into his face with her hands still in his,--for she
+did not on the moment withdraw them, she felt that he had never
+before looked so noble, so handsome, so grand. Leave the country!
+ah, yes; and why should not she leave it also? What was there to
+bind her to those odious walls in which she had been immolated
+during the best half of her life?
+
+"Where are you going?" she asked, looking almost wildly up at him.
+
+"Somewhere very far a-field, Lady Desmond," he said; and then the
+hands dropped from him.
+
+"You will understand, at any rate, that Hap House will not be a
+fitting residence for me."
+
+"I hate the whole country," said she, "the whole place hereabouts. I
+have never been happy here. Happy! I have never been other than
+unhappy. I have been wretched. What would I not give to leave it
+also?"
+
+"To you it cannot be intolerable as it will be to me. You have known
+so thoroughly where all my hopes were garnered, that I need not tell
+you why I must go from Hap House. I think that I have been wronged,
+but I do not desire that others should think so. And as for you and
+me, Lady Desmond, though we have been enemies, we have been friends
+also."
+
+"Enemies!" said she, "I hope not." And she spoke so softly, so
+unlike her usual self, in the tones so suited to a loving, clinging
+woman, that though he did not understand it, he was startled at her
+tenderness. "I have never felt that you were my enemy, Mr.
+Fitzgerald; and certainly I never was an enemy to you."
+
+"Well; we were opposed to each other. I thought that you were
+robbing me of all I valued in life; and you, you thought--"
+
+"I thought that Clara's happiness demanded rank and wealth and
+position. There; I tell you my sins fairly. You may say that I was
+mercenary if you will, mercenary for her. I thought that I knew what
+would be needful for her. Can you be angry with a mother for that?"
+
+"She had given me a promise! But never mind. It is all over now. I
+did not come to upbraid you, but to tell you that I now know how it
+must be, and that I am going."
+
+"Had you won her, Owen," said the countess, looking intently into
+his face, "had you won her, she would not have made you happy."
+
+"As to that it was for me to judge--for me and her. I thought it
+would, and was willing to peril all in the trial. And so was
+she--willing at one time. But never mind, it is useless to talk of
+that."
+
+"Quite useless now."
+
+"I did think--when it was, as they said, in my power to give him
+back his own,--I did think,--but no, it would have been mean to look
+for payment. It is all over, and I will say nothing further, not a
+word. I am not a girl to harp on such a thing day after day, and to
+grow sick with love. I shall be better away. And therefore I am
+going, and I have now come to say goodbye, because we were friends
+in old days, Lady Desmond."
+
+Friends in old days! They were old days to him, but they were no
+more than the other day to her. It was as yet hardly more than two
+years since she had first known him, and yet he looked on the
+acquaintance as one that had run out its time and required to be
+ended. She would so fain have been able to think that the beginning
+only had as yet come to them. But there he was, anxious to bid her
+adieu, and what was she to say to him?
+
+"Yes, we were friends. You have been my only friend here, I think.
+You will hardly believe with how much true friendship I have thought
+of you when the feud between us--if it was a feud--was at the
+strongest. Owen Fitzgerald, I have loved you through it all."
+
+Loved him? She was so handsome as she spoke, so womanly, so
+graceful, there was still about her so much of the charm of beauty,
+that he could hardly take the word when coming from her mouth as
+applicable to ordinary friendship. And yet he did so take it. They
+had all loved each other--as friends should love-and now that he was
+going she had chosen to say as much. He felt the blood tingle his
+cheek at the sound of her words; but he was not vain enough to take
+it in its usual sense. "Then we will part as friends," said
+he--tamely enough.
+
+"Yes, we will part," she said. And as she spoke the blood mantled
+deep on her neck and cheek and forehead, and a spirit came out of
+her eye, such as never had shone there before in his presence. "Yes,
+we will part," and she took up his right hand, and held it closely,
+pressed between both her own. "And as we must part I will tell you
+all. Owen Fitzgerald, I have loved you with all my heart,--with all
+the love that a woman has to give. I have loved you, and have never
+loved any other. Stop, stop," for he was going to interrupt her.
+"You shall hear me now to the last,--and for the last time. I have
+loved you with such love--such love as you perhaps felt for her, but
+as she will never feel. But you shall not say, nay you shall not
+think that I have been selfish. I would have kept you from her when
+you were poor as you are now,--not because I loved you. No; you will
+never think that of me. And when I thought that you were rich, and
+the head of your family, I did all that I could to bring her back
+for you. Did I not, Owen?"
+
+"Yes, I think you did," he muttered between his teeth, hardly
+knowing how to speak.
+
+"Indeed, indeed I did so. Others may say that I was selfish for my
+child, but you shall not think that I was selfish for myself. I sent
+for Patrick, and bade him go to you. I strove as mothers do strive
+for their children. I taught myself,--I strove to teach myself to
+forget that I had loved you. I swore on my knees that I would love
+you only as my son,--as my dear, dear son. Nay, Owen, I did; on my
+knees before my God."
+
+He turned away from her to rub the tears from his eyes, and in doing
+so he dragged his hand away from her. But she followed him, and
+again took it. "You will hear me to the end now," she said; "will
+you not? you will not begrudge me that? And then came these other
+tidings, and all that scheme was dashed to the ground. It was better
+so, Owen; you would not have been happy with the property--"
+
+"I should never have taken it."
+
+"And she, she would have clung closer to him as a poor man than ever
+she had done when he was rich. She is her mother's daughter there.
+And then--then--But I need not tell you more. You will know it all
+now. If you had become rich, I would have ceased to love you; but I
+shall never cease now that you are again poor,--now that you are
+Owen of Hap House again, as you sent us word yourself that day."
+
+And then she ceased, and bending down her head bathed his hand with
+her tears. Had any one asked him that morning, he would have said
+that it was impossible that the Countess of Desmond should weep. And
+now the tears were streaming from her eyes as though she were a
+broken-hearted girl. And so she was. Her girlhood had been postponed
+and marred,--not destroyed and made away with, by the wrinkled earl
+with the gloating eyes.
+
+She had said all now, and she stood there, still holding his hand in
+hers, but with her head turned from him. It was his turn to speak
+now, and how was he to answer her. I know how most men would have
+answered;--by the pressure of an arm, by a warm kiss, by a promise
+of love, and by a feeling that such love was possible. And then most
+men would have gone home, leaving the woman triumphant, and have
+repented bitterly as they sat moody over their own fires, with their
+wine-bottles before them. But it was not so with Owen Fitzgerald.
+His heart was to him a reality. He had loved with all his power and
+strength, with all the vigour of his soul,--having chosen to love.
+But he would not now be enticed by pity into a bastard feeling,
+which would die away when the tenderness of the moment was no longer
+present to his eye and touch. His love for Clara had been such that
+he could not even say that he loved another.
+
+"Dear Lady Desmond," he began.
+
+"Ah, Owen; we are to part now, part for ever," she said; "speak to
+me once in your life as though we were equal friends. Cannot you
+forget for one minute that I am Countess of Desmond?"
+
+Mary, Countess of Desmond; such was her name and title. But so
+little familiar had he been with the name by which he had never
+heard her called, that in his confusion he could not remember it.
+And had he done so, he could not have brought himself to use it.
+"Yes," he said; "we must part. It is impossible for me to remain
+here."
+
+"Doubly impossible now," she replied, half reproaching him.
+
+"Yes; doubly impossible now. Is it not better that the truth should
+be spoken?"
+
+"Oh yes. I have spoken it--too plainly."
+
+"And so will I speak it plainly. We cannot control our own hearts,
+Lady Desmond. It is, as you say, doubly impossible now. All the love
+I have had to give she has had,--and has. Such being so, why should
+I stay here? or could you wish that I should do so?"
+
+"I do not wish it." That was true enough. The wish would have been
+to wander away with him.
+
+"I must go, and shall start at once. My very things are packed for
+my going. I will not be here to have the sound of their marriage
+bells jangling in my ears. I will not be pointed at as the man who
+has been duped on every side."
+
+"Ah me, that I was a man too,--that I could go away and make for
+myself a life!"
+
+"You have Desmond with you."
+
+"No, no. He will go too; of course he will go. He will go, and I
+shall be utterly alone. What a fool I am,--what an ass, that by this
+time I have not learned to bear it!"
+
+"They will always be near you at Castle Richmond."
+
+"Ah, Owen, how little you understand! Have we been friends while we
+lived under the same roof? And now that she is there, do you think
+that she will heed me? I tell you that you do not know her. She is
+excellent, good, devoted; but cold as ice. She will live among the
+poor, and grace his table; and he will have all that he wants. In
+twelve months, Owen, she would have turned your heart to a stone."
+
+"It is that already, I think," said he. "At any rate, it will be so
+to all others. Good-bye, Lady Desmond."
+
+"Good-bye, Owen; and God bless you. My secret will be safe with
+you."
+
+"Safe! yes, it will be safe." And then, as she put her cheek up to
+him, he kissed it and left her.
+
+He had been very stern. She had laid bare to him her whole heart,
+and he had answered her love by never a word. He had made no reply
+in any shape,--given her no thanks for her heart's treasure. He had
+responded to her affection by no tenderness. He had not even said
+that this might have been so, had that other not have come to pass.
+By no word had he alluded to her confession,--but had regarded her
+delusion as monstrous, a thing of which no word was to be spoken.
+
+So at least said the countess to herself, sitting there all alone
+where he had left her. "He regards me as old and worn. In his eyes I
+am wrinkled and ugly." 'Twas thus that her thoughts expressed
+themselves; and then she walked across the room towards the mirror,
+but when there she could not look in it: she turned her back upon it
+without a glance, and returned to her seat by the window. What
+mattered it now? It was her doom to live there alone for the term of
+life with which it might still please God to afflict her.
+
+And then looking out from the window her eyes fell upon Owen as he
+rode slowly down across the park. His horse was walking very slowly,
+and it seemed as though he himself were unconscious of the pace. As
+long as he remained in sight she did not take her eyes from his
+figure, gazing at him painfully as he grew dimmer and more dim in
+the distance. Then at last he turned behind the bushes near the
+lodge, and she felt that she was all alone. It was the last that she
+ever saw of Owen Fitzgerald.
+
+Unfortunate girl, marred in thy childhood by that wrinkled earl with
+the gloating eyes; or marred rather by thine own vanity! Those
+flesh-pots of Egypt! Are they not always thus bitter in the eating?
+
+
+
+
+CHAPTER XLIV
+
+CONCLUSION
+
+
+And now my story is told; and were it not for the fashion of the
+thing, this last short chapter might be spared. It shall at any rate
+be very short.
+
+Were it not that I eschew the fashion of double names for a book,
+thinking that no amount of ingenuity in this respect will make a bad
+book pass muster, whereas a good book will turn out as such though
+no such ingenuity be displayed, I might have called this "A Tale of
+the Famine Year in Ireland." At the period of the year to which the
+story has brought us--and at which it will leave us--the famine was
+at its very worst. People were beginning to believe that there would
+never be a bit more to eat in the land, and that the time for hope
+and energy was gone. Land was becoming of no value, and the only
+thing regarded was a sufficiency of food to keep body and soul
+together. Under such circumstances it was difficult to hope.
+
+But energy without hope is impossible, and therefore was there such
+an apathy and deadness through the country. It was not that they did
+not work who were most concerned to work. The amount of
+conscientious work then done was most praiseworthy. But it was done
+almost without hope of success, and done chiefly as a matter of
+conscience. There was a feeling, which was not often expressed but
+which seemed to prevail everywhere, that ginger would not again be
+hot in the mouth, and that in very truth the time for cakes and ale
+in this world was all over. It was this feeling that made a
+residence in Ireland at that period so very sad.
+
+Ah me! how little do we know what is coming to us! Irish cakes and
+ale were done and over for this world, we all thought. But in truth
+the Irish cakes were only then a-baking, and the Irish ale was being
+brewed. I am not sure that these good things are yet quite fit for
+the palates of the guest;--not as fit as a little more time will
+make them. The cake is still too new,--cakes often are; and the ale
+is not sufficiently mellowed. But of this I am sure, that the cakes
+and ale are there;--and the ginger, too, very hot in the mouth. Let
+a committee of Irish landlords say how the rents are paid now, and
+what amount of arrears was due through the country when the famine
+came among them. Rents paid to the day: that is the ginger hot in
+the mouth which best pleases the palate of a country gentleman.
+
+But if one did in truth write a tale of the famine, after that it
+would behove the author to write a tale of the pestilence; and then
+another, a tale of the exodus. These three wonderful events,
+following each other, were the blessings coming from Omniscience and
+Omnipotence by which the black clouds were driven from the Irish
+firmament. If one through it all could have dared to hope, and have
+had from the first that wisdom which has learned to acknowledge that
+His mercy endureth for ever! And then the same author going on with
+his series would give in his last set,--Ireland in her prosperity.
+
+Of all those who did true good conscientious work at this time, none
+exceeded in energy our friend Herbert Fitzgerald after his return to
+Castle Richmond. It seemed to him as though some thank-offering were
+due from him for all the good things that Providence had showered
+upon him, and the best thank-offering that he could give was a
+devoted attention to the interest of the poor around him. Mr. Somers
+soon resigned to him the chair at those committee meetings at
+Berryhill and Gortnaclough, and it was acknowledged that the Castle
+Richmond arrangements for soup-kitchens, out-door relief, and
+labour-gangs, might be taken as a model for the south of Ireland.
+Few other men were able to go to the work with means so ample and
+with hands so perfectly free. Mr. Carter even, who by this time had
+become cemented in a warm trilateral friendship with Father Barney
+and the Rev. Aeneas Townsend, was obliged to own that many a young
+English country gentleman might take a lesson from Sir Herbert
+Fitzgerald in the duties peculiar to his position.
+
+His marriage did not take place till full six months after the
+period to which our story has brought us. Baronets with twelve
+thousand a-year cannot be married off the hooks, as may be done
+with ordinary mortals. Settlements of a grandiose nature were
+required, and were duly concocted. Perhaps Mr. Die had something to
+say to them, so that the great maxim of the law was brought into
+play. Perhaps also, though of this Herbert heard no word, it was
+thought inexpedient to hurry matters while any further inquiry was
+possible in that affair of the Mollett connection. Mr. Die and Mr.
+Prendergast were certainly going about, still drawing all coverts
+far and near, lest their fox might not have been fairly run to his
+last earth. But, as I have said, no tidings as to this reached
+Castle Richmond. There, in Ireland, no man troubled himself further
+with any doubt upon the subject; and Sir Herbert took his title and
+received his rents, by the hands of Mr. Somers, exactly as though
+the Molletts, father and son, had never appeared in those parts.
+
+It was six months before the marriage was celebrated, but during a
+considerable part of that time Clara remained a visitor at Castle
+Richmond. To Lady Fitzgerald she was now the same as a daughter, and
+to Aunt Letty the same as a niece. By the girls she had for months
+been regarded as a sister. So she remained in the house of which she
+was to be the mistress, learning to know their ways, and
+ingratiating herself with those who were to be dependent on her.
+
+"But I had rather stay with you, mamma, if you will allow me," Clara
+had said to her mother when the countess was making some arrangement
+with her that she should return to Castle Richmond. "I shall be
+leaving you altogether so soon now!" And she got up close to her
+mother's side caressingly, and would fain have pressed into her arms
+and kissed her, and have talked to her of what was coming, as a
+daughter loves to talk to a loving mother. But Lady Desmond's heart
+was sore and sad and harsh, and she preferred to be alone.
+
+"You will be better at Castle Richmond, my dear: you will be much
+happier there, of course. There can be no reason why you should come
+again into the gloom of this prison."
+
+"But I should be with you, dearest mamma."
+
+"It is better that you should be with the Fitzgeralds now; and as
+for me--I must learn to live alone. Indeed I have learned it, so you
+need not mind for me." Clara was rebuffed by the tone rather than
+the words, but she still looked up into her mother's face wistfully.
+"Go, my dear," said the countess--"I would sooner be alone at
+present." And so Clara went. It was hard upon her that even now her
+mother would not accept her love.
+
+But Lady Desmond could not be cordial with her daughter. She made
+more than one struggle to do so, but always failed. She could,--she
+thought that she could, have watched her child's happiness with
+contentment had Clara married Owen Fitzgerald--Sir Owen, as he would
+then have been. But now she could only remember that Owen was lost
+to them both, lost through her child's fault. She did not hate
+Clara: nay, she would have made any sacrifice for her daughter's
+welfare; but she could not take her lovingly to her bosom. So she
+shut herself up alone, in her prison as she called it, and then
+looked back upon the errors of her life. It was as well for her to
+look back as to look forward, for what joy was there for which she
+could dare to hope?
+
+In the days that were coming, however, she did relax something of
+her sternness. Clara was of course married from Desmond Court, and
+the very necessity of making some preparations for this festivity
+was in itself salutary. But indeed it could hardly be called a
+festivity,--it was so quiet and sombre. Clara had but two
+bridesmaids, and they were Mary and Emmeline Fitzgerald. The young
+earl gave away his sister, and Aunt Letty was there, and Mr.
+Prendergast, who had come over about the settlements; Mr. Somers
+also attended, and the ceremony was performed by our old friend Mr.
+Townsend. Beyond these there were no guests at the wedding of Sir
+Herbert Fitzgerald.
+
+The young earl was there, and at the last the wedding had been
+postponed a week for his coming. He had left Eton at Midsummer in
+order that he might travel for a couple of years with Owen
+Fitzgerald before he went to Oxford. It had been the lad's own
+request, and had been for a while refused by Owen. But Fitzgerald
+had at last given way to the earl's love, and they had started
+together for Norway.
+
+"They want me to be home," he had said one morning to his friend.
+
+"Ah, yes; I suppose so."
+
+"Do you know why?" They had never spoken a word about Clara since
+they had left England together, and the earl now dreaded to mention
+her name.
+
+"Know why!" replied Owen; "of course I do. It is to give away your
+sister. Go home, Desmond, my boy; when you have returned we will
+talk about her. I shall bear it better when I know that she is his
+wife."
+
+And so it was with them. For two years Lord Desmond travelled with
+him, and after that Owen Fitzgerald went on upon his wanderings
+alone. Many a long year has run by since that, and yet he has never
+come back to Hap House. Men of the county Cork now talk of him as
+one whom they knew long since. He who took his house as a stranger
+is a stranger no longer in the country, and the place that Owen left
+vacant has been filled. The hounds of Duhallow would not recognize
+his voice, nor would the steed in the stable follow gently at his
+heels. But there is yet one left who thinks of him, hoping that she
+may yet see him before she dies.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Castle Richmond, by Anthony Trollope
+
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CASTLE RICHMOND ***
+
+This file should be named cslrc10.txt or cslrc10.zip
+Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks get a new NUMBER, cslrc11.txt
+VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, cslrc10a.txt
+
+Produced by Charles Aldarondo, Charles Franks
+and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team
+
+Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance
+of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.
+Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections,
+even years after the official publication date.
+
+Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til
+midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
+The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at
+Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
+preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
+and editing by those who wish to do so.
+
+Most people start at our Web sites at:
+http://gutenberg.net or
+http://promo.net/pg
+
+These Web sites include award-winning information about Project
+Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new
+eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).
+
+
+Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement
+can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is
+also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the
+indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an
+announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter.
+
+http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext03 or
+ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext03
+
+Or /etext02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90
+
+Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want,
+as it appears in our Newsletters.
+
+
+Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
+
+We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
+time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
+to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
+searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our
+projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value
+per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
+million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text
+files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+
+We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002
+If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total
+will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end.
+
+The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks!
+This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
+which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users.
+
+Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated):
+
+eBooks Year Month
+
+ 1 1971 July
+ 10 1991 January
+ 100 1994 January
+ 1000 1997 August
+ 1500 1998 October
+ 2000 1999 December
+ 2500 2000 December
+ 3000 2001 November
+ 4000 2001 October/November
+ 6000 2002 December*
+ 9000 2003 November*
+10000 2004 January*
+
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created
+to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people
+and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut,
+Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois,
+Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts,
+Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New
+Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio,
+Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South
+Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West
+Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming.
+
+We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones
+that have responded.
+
+As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list
+will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states.
+Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state.
+
+In answer to various questions we have received on this:
+
+We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally
+request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and
+you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have,
+just ask.
+
+While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are
+not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting
+donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to
+donate.
+
+International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about
+how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made
+deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are
+ways.
+
+Donations by check or money order may be sent to:
+
+Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+PMB 113
+1739 University Ave.
+Oxford, MS 38655-4109
+
+Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment
+method other than by check or money order.
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by
+the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN
+[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are
+tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising
+requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be
+made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+You can get up to date donation information online at:
+
+http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html
+
+
+***
+
+If you can't reach Project Gutenberg,
+you can always email directly to:
+
+Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
+
+Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.
+
+We would prefer to send you information by email.
+
+
+**The Legal Small Print**
+
+
+(Three Pages)
+
+***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START***
+Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
+They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
+your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from
+someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
+fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
+disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
+you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to.
+
+*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK
+By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
+eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
+this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
+a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by
+sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
+you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical
+medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
+
+ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS
+This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks,
+is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
+through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project").
+Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
+on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
+distribute it in the United States without permission and
+without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
+below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook
+under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
+
+Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market
+any commercial products without permission.
+
+To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable
+efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
+works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any
+medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
+things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
+disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer
+codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
+But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
+[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may
+receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims
+all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
+legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
+UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
+INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
+OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
+POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
+
+If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of
+receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
+you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
+time to the person you received it from. If you received it
+on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
+such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
+copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
+choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
+receive it electronically.
+
+THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
+TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
+PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
+
+Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
+the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
+above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
+may have other legal rights.
+
+INDEMNITY
+You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation,
+and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated
+with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
+texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including
+legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
+following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook,
+[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook,
+or [3] any Defect.
+
+DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
+You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by
+disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
+"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
+or:
+
+[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
+ requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
+ eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
+ if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable
+ binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
+ including any form resulting from conversion by word
+ processing or hypertext software, but only so long as
+ *EITHER*:
+
+ [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
+ does *not* contain characters other than those
+ intended by the author of the work, although tilde
+ (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
+ be used to convey punctuation intended by the
+ author, and additional characters may be used to
+ indicate hypertext links; OR
+
+ [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at
+ no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
+ form by the program that displays the eBook (as is
+ the case, for instance, with most word processors);
+ OR
+
+ [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
+ no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
+ eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
+ or other equivalent proprietary form).
+
+[2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this
+ "Small Print!" statement.
+
+[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the
+ gross profits you derive calculated using the method you
+ already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
+ don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
+ payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation"
+ the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
+ legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
+ periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to
+ let us know your plans and to work out the details.
+
+WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
+Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of
+public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed
+in machine readable form.
+
+The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time,
+public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses.
+Money should be paid to the:
+"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or
+software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at:
+hart@pobox.com
+
+[Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only
+when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by
+Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be
+used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be
+they hardware or software or any other related product without
+express permission.]
+
+*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*
+
diff --git a/old/cslrc10.zip.20020918 b/old/cslrc10.zip.20020918
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0381166
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/cslrc10.zip.20020918
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/cslrc10.zip.20081027 b/old/cslrc10.zip.20081027
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..2e19e4e
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/cslrc10.zip.20081027
Binary files differ